|
|
DEMOCRACY IN AMERICA
By Alexis De Tocqueville
Translated by Henry Reeve
Contents
Book One
Introduction
Hon. John T. Morgan
Introductory Chapter
Chapter I: Exterior Form Of North America
Chapter Summary
Chapter II: Origin Of The Anglo-Americans—Part I
Chapter Summary
Chapter II: Origin Of The Anglo-Americans—Part II
Chapter III: Social Conditions Of The Anglo-Americans
Chapter Summary
Chapter IV: The Principle Of The Sovereignty Of The People In America
Chapter Summary
Chapter V: Necessity Of Examining The Condition Of The States—Part I
Chapter V: Necessity Of Examining The Condition Of The States—Part II
Chapter V: Necessity Of Examining The Condition Of The States—Part III
Chapter VI: Judicial Power In The United States
Chapter Summary
Chapter VII: Political Jurisdiction In The United States
Chapter Summary
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part I
Chapter Summary
Summary Of The Federal Constitution
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part II
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part III
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part IV
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part V
Chapter IX: Why The People May Strictly Be Said To Govern In The United
Chapter X: Parties In The United States
Chapter Summary
Parties In The United States
Chapter XI: Liberty Of The Press In The United States
Chapter Summary
Chapter XII: Political Associations In The United States
Chapter Summary
Chapter XIII: Government Of The Democracy In America—Part I
Chapter XIII: Government Of The Democracy In America—Part II
Chapter XIII: Government Of The Democracy In America—Part III
Chapter XIV: Advantages American Society Derive From Democracy—Part I
Chapter XIV: Advantages American Society Derive From Democracy—Part II
Chapter XV: Unlimited Power Of Majority, And Its Consequences—Part I
Chapter Summary
Chapter XV: Unlimited Power Of Majority, And Its Consequences—Part II
Chapter XVI: Causes Mitigating Tyranny In The United States—Part I
Chapter Summary
Chapter XVI: Causes Mitigating Tyranny In The United States—Part II
Chapter XVII: Principal Causes Maintaining The Democratic Republic—Part I
Chapter XVII: Principal Causes Maintaining The Democratic Republic—Part II
Chapter XVII: Principal Causes Maintaining The Democratic Republic—Part III
Chapter XVII: Principal Causes Maintaining The Democratic Republic—Part IV
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races In The United States—Part I
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part II
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part III
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part IV
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part V
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part VI
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part VII
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part VIII
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part IX
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part X
Conclusion
Book One
Introduction
Special Introduction By Hon. John T. Morgan
In the eleven years that separated the Declaration of the Independence of the
United States from the completion of that act in the ordination of our written
Constitution, the great minds of America were bent upon the study of the
principles of government that were essential to the preservation of the
liberties which had been won at great cost and with heroic labors and
sacrifices. Their studies were conducted in view of the imperfections that
experience had developed in the government of the Confederation, and they were,
therefore, practical and thorough.
When the Constitution was thus perfected and established, a new form of
government was created, but it was neither speculative nor experimental as to
the principles on which it was based. If they were true principles, as they
were, the government founded upon them was destined to a life and an influence
that would continue while the liberties it was intended to preserve should be
valued by the human family. Those liberties had been wrung from reluctant
monarchs in many contests, in many countries, and were grouped into creeds and
established in ordinances sealed with blood, in many great struggles of the
people. They were not new to the people. They were consecrated theories, but no
government had been previously established for the great purpose of their
preservation and enforcement. That which was experimental in our plan of
government was the question whether democratic rule could be so organized and
conducted that it would not degenerate into license and result in the tyranny of
absolutism, without saving to the people the power so often found necessary of
repressing or destroying their enemy, when he was found in the person of a
single despot.
When, in 1831, Alexis de Tocqueville came to study Democracy in America, the
trial of nearly a half-century of the working of our system had been made, and
it had been proved, by many crucial tests, to be a government of "liberty
regulated by law," with such results in the development of strength, in
population, wealth, and military and commercial power, as no age had ever
witnessed.
[See Alexis De Tocqueville]
De Tocqueville had a special inquiry to prosecute, in his visit to America, in
which his generous and faithful soul and the powers of his great intellect were
engaged in the patriotic effort to secure to the people of France the blessings
that Democracy in America had ordained and established throughout nearly the
entire Western Hemisphere. He had read the story of the French Revolution, much
of which had been recently written in the blood of men and women of great
distinction who were his progenitors; and had witnessed the agitations and
terrors of the Restoration and of the Second Republic, fruitful in crime and
sacrifice, and barren of any good to mankind.
He had just witnessed the spread of republican government through all the vast
continental possessions of Spain in America, and the loss of her great colonies.
He had seen that these revolutions were accomplished almost without the shedding
of blood, and he was filled with anxiety to learn the causes that had placed
republican government, in France, in such contrast with Democracy in America.
De Tocqueville was scarcely thirty years old when he began his studies of
Democracy in America. It was a bold effort for one who had no special training
in government, or in the study of political economy, but he had the example of
Lafayette in establishing the military foundation of these liberties, and of
Washington, Jefferson, Madison, and Hamilton, all of whom were young men, in
building upon the Independence of the United States that wisest and best plan of
general government that was ever devised for a free people.
He found that the American people, through their chosen representatives who were
instructed by their wisdom and experience and were supported by their
virtues—cultivated, purified and ennobled by self-reliance and the love of
God—had matured, in the excellent wisdom of their counsels, a new plan of
government, which embraced every security for their liberties and equal rights
and privileges to all in the pursuit of happiness. He came as an honest and
impartial student and his great commentary, like those of Paul, was written for
the benefit of all nations and people and in vindication of truths that will
stand for their deliverance from monarchical rule, while time shall last.
A French aristocrat of the purest strain of blood and of the most honorable
lineage, whose family influence was coveted by crowned heads; who had no quarrel
with the rulers of the nation, and was secure against want by his inherited
estates; was moved by the agitations that compelled France to attempt to grasp
suddenly the liberties and happiness we had gained in our revolution and, by his
devout love of France, to search out and subject to the test of reason the basic
principles of free government that had been embodied in our Constitution. This
was the mission of De Tocqueville, and no mission was ever more honorably or
justly conducted, or concluded with greater eclat, or better results for the
welfare of mankind.
His researches were logical and exhaustive. They included every phase of every
question that then seemed to be apposite to the great inquiry he was making.
The judgment of all who have studied his commentaries seems to have been
unanimous, that his talents and learning were fully equal to his task. He began
with the physical geography of this country, and examined the characteristics of
the people, of all races and conditions, their social and religious sentiments,
their education and tastes; their industries, their commerce, their local
governments, their passions and prejudices, and their ethics and literature;
leaving nothing unnoticed that might afford an argument to prove that our plan
and form of government was or was not adapted especially to a peculiar people,
or that it would be impracticable in any different country, or among any
different people.
The pride and comfort that the American people enjoy in the great commentaries
of De Tocqueville are far removed from the selfish adulation that comes from a
great and singular success. It is the consciousness of victory over a false
theory of government which has afflicted mankind for many ages, that gives joy
to the true American, as it did to De Tocqueville in his great triumph.
When De Tocqueville wrote, we had lived less than fifty years under our
Constitution. In that time no great national commotion had occurred that tested
its strength, or its power of resistance to internal strife, such as had
converted his beloved France into fields of slaughter torn by tempests of wrath.
He had a strong conviction that no government could be ordained that could
resist these internal forces, when, they are directed to its destruction by bad
men, or unreasoning mobs, and many then believed, as some yet believe, that our
government is unequal to such pressure, when the assault is thoroughly
desperate.
Had De Tocqueville lived to examine the history of the United States from 1860
to 1870, his misgivings as to this power of self-preservation would, probably,
have been cleared off. He would have seen that, at the end of the most
destructive civil war that ever occurred, when animosities of the bitterest sort
had banished all good feeling from the hearts of our people, the States of the
American Union, still in complete organization and equipped with all their
official entourage, aligned themselves in their places and took up the powers
and duties of local government in perfect order and without embarrassment. This
would have dispelled his apprehensions, if he had any, about the power of the
United States to withstand the severest shocks of civil war. Could he have
traced the further course of events until they open the portals of the twentieth
century, he would have cast away his fears of our ability to restore peace,
order, and prosperity, in the face of any difficulties, and would have rejoiced
to find in the Constitution of the United States the remedy that is provided for
the healing of the nation.
De Tocqueville examined, with the care that is worthy the importance of the
subject, the nature and value of the system of "local self-government," as we
style this most important feature of our plan, and (as has often happened) when
this or any subject has become a matter of anxious concern, his treatment of the
questions is found to have been masterly and his preconceptions almost
prophetic.
We are frequently indebted to him for able expositions and true doctrines
relating to subjects that have slumbered in the minds of the people until they
were suddenly forced on our attention by unexpected events.
In his introductory chapter, M. De Tocqueville says: "Amongst the novel objects
that attracted my attention during my stay in the United States, nothing struck
me more forcibly than the general equality of conditions." He referred,
doubtless, to social and political conditions among the people of the white
race, who are described as "We, the people," in the opening sentence of the
Constitution. The last three amendments of the Constitution have so changed
this, that those who were then negro slaves are clothed with the rights of
citizenship, including the right of suffrage. This was a political party
movement, intended to be radical and revolutionary, but it will, ultimately,
react because it has not the sanction of public opinion.
If M. De Tocqueville could now search for a law that would negative this
provision in its effect upon social equality, he would fail to find it. But he
would find it in the unwritten law of the natural aversion of the races. He
would find it in public opinion, which is the vital force in every law in a free
government. This is a subject that our Constitution failed to regulate, because
it was not contemplated by its authors. It is a question that will settle
itself, without serious difficulty. The equality in the suffrage, thus
guaranteed to the negro race, alone—for it was not intended to include other
colored races—creates a new phase of political conditions that M. De Tocqueville
could not foresee. Yet, in his commendation of the local town and county
governments, he applauds and sustains that elementary feature of our political
organization which, in the end, will render harmless this wide departure from
the original plan and purpose of American Democracy. "Local Self-Government,"
independent of general control, except for general purposes, is the root and
origin of all free republican government, and is the antagonist of all great
political combinations that threaten the rights of minorities. It is the public
opinion formed in the independent expressions of towns and other small civil
districts that is the real conservatism of free government. It is equally the
enemy of that dangerous evil, the corruption of the ballot-box, from which it is
now apprehended that one of our greatest troubles is to arise.
The voter is selected, under our laws, because he has certain physical
qualifications—age and sex. His disqualifications, when any are imposed, relate
to his education or property, and to the fact that he has not been convicted of
crime. Of all men he should be most directly amenable to public opinion.
The test of moral character and devotion to the duties of good citizenship are
ignored in the laws, because the courts can seldom deal with such questions in a
uniform and satisfactory way, under rules that apply alike to all. Thus the
voter, selected by law to represent himself and four other non-voting citizens,
is often a person who is unfit for any public duty or trust. In a town
government, having a small area of jurisdiction, where the voice of the majority
of qualified voters is conclusive, the fitness of the person who is to exercise
that high representative privilege can be determined by his neighbors and
acquaintances, and, in the great majority of cases, it will be decided honestly
and for the good of the country. In such meetings, there is always a spirit of
loyalty to the State, because that is loyalty to the people, and a reverence for
God that gives weight to the duties and responsibilities of citizenship.
M. De Tocqueville found in these minor local jurisdictions the theoretical
conservatism which, in the aggregate, is the safest reliance of the State. So we
have found them, in practice, the true protectors of the purity of the ballot,
without which all free government will degenerate into absolutism.
In the future of the Republic, we must encounter many difficult and dangerous
situations, but the principles established in the Constitution and the check
upon hasty or inconsiderate legislation, and upon executive action, and the
supreme arbitrament of the courts, will be found sufficient for the safety of
personal rights, and for the safety of the government, and the prophetic outlook
of M. De Tocqueville will be fully realized through the influence of Democracy
in America. Each succeeding generation of Americans will find in the pure and
impartial reflections of De Tocqueville a new source of pride in our
institutions of government, and sound reasons for patriotic effort to preserve
them and to inculcate their teachings. They have mastered the power of
monarchical rule in the American Hemisphere, freeing religion from all shackles,
and will spread, by a quiet but resistless influence, through the islands of the
seas to other lands, where the appeals of De Tocqueville for human rights and
liberties have already inspired the souls of the people.
Hon. John T. Morgan
Special Introduction By Hon. John J. Ingalls
Nearly two-thirds of a century has elapsed since the appearance of "Democracy in
America," by Alexis Charles Henri Clerel de Tocqueville, a French nobleman, born
at Paris, July 29, 1805.
Bred to the law, he exhibited an early predilection for philosophy and political
economy, and at twenty-two was appointed judge-auditor at the tribunal of
Versailles.
In 1831, commissioned ostensibly to investigate the penitentiary system of the
United States, he visited this country, with his friend, Gustave de Beaumont,
travelling extensively through those parts of the Republic then subdued to
settlement, studying the methods of local, State, and national administration,
and observing the manners and habits, the daily life, the business, the
industries and occupations of the people.
"Democracy in America," the first of four volumes upon "American Institutions
and their Influence," was published in 1835. It was received at once by the
scholars and thinkers of Europe as a profound, impartial, and entertaining
exposition of the principles of popular, representative self-government.
Napoleon, "The mighty somnambulist of a vanished dream," had abolished feudalism
and absolutism, made monarchs and dynasties obsolete, and substituted for the
divine right of kings the sovereignty of the people.
Although by birth and sympathies an aristocrat, M. de Tocqueville saw that the
reign of tradition and privilege at last was ended. He perceived that
civilization, after many bloody centuries, had entered a new epoch. He beheld,
and deplored, the excesses that had attended the genesis of the democratic
spirit in France, and while he loved liberty, he detested the crimes that had
been committed in its name. Belonging neither to the class which regarded the
social revolution as an innovation to be resisted, nor to that which considered
political equality the universal panacea for the evils of humanity, he resolved
by personal observation of the results of democracy in the New World to
ascertain its natural consequences, and to learn what the nations of Europe had
to hope or fear from its final supremacy.
That a youth of twenty-six should entertain a design so broad and bold implies
singular intellectual intrepidity. He had neither model nor precedent. The
vastness and novelty of the undertaking increase admiration for the remarkable
ability with which the task was performed.
Were literary excellence the sole claim of "Democracy in America" to
distinction, the splendor of its composition alone would entitle it to high
place among the masterpieces of the century. The first chapter, upon the
exterior form of North America, as the theatre upon which the great drama is to
be enacted, for graphic and picturesque description of the physical
characteristics of the continent is not surpassed in literature: nor is there
any subdivision of the work in which the severest philosophy is not invested
with the grace of poetry, and the driest statistics with the charm of romance.
Western emigration seemed commonplace and prosaic till M. de Tocqueville said,
"This gradual and continuous progress of the European race toward the Rocky
Mountains has the solemnity of a providential event; it is like a deluge of men
rising unabatedly, and daily driven onward by the hand of God!"
The mind of M. de Tocqueville had the candor of the photographic camera. It
recorded impressions with the impartiality of nature. The image was sometimes
distorted, and the perspective was not always true, but he was neither a
panegyrist, nor an advocate, nor a critic. He observed American phenomena as
illustrations, not as proof nor arguments; and although it is apparent that the
tendency of his mind was not wholly favorable to the democratic principle, yet
those who dissent from his conclusions must commend the ability and courage with
which they are expressed.
Though not originally written for Americans, "Democracy in America" must always
remain a work of engrossing and constantly increasing interest to citizens of
the United States as the first philosophic and comprehensive view of our
society, institutions, and destiny. No one can rise even from the most cursory
perusal without clearer insight and more patriotic appreciation of the blessings
of liberty protected by law, nor without encouragement for the stability and
perpetuity of the Republic. The causes which appeared to M. de Tocqueville to
menace both, have gone. The despotism of public opinion, the tyranny of
majorities, the absence of intellectual freedom which seemed to him to degrade
administration and bring statesmanship, learning, and literature to the level of
the lowest, are no longer considered. The violence of party spirit has been
mitigated, and the judgment of the wise is not subordinated to the prejudices of
the ignorant.
Other dangers have come. Equality of conditions no longer exists. Prophets of
evil predict the downfall of democracy, but the student of M. de Tocqueville
will find consolation and encouragement in the reflection that the same spirit
which has vanquished the perils of the past, which he foresaw, will be equally
prepared for the responsibilities of the present and the future.
The last of the four volumes of M. de Tocqueville's work upon American
institutions appeared in 1840.
In 1838 he was chosen member of the Academy of Moral and Political Sciences. In
1839 he was elected to the Chamber of Deputies. He became a member of the French
Academy in 1841. In 1848 he was in the Assembly, and from June 2nd to October
31st he was Minister of Foreign Affairs. The coup d'etat of December 2, 1851
drove him from the public service. In 1856 he published "The Old Regime and the
Revolution." He died at Cannes, April 15, 1859, at the age of fifty-four.
Hon. John J. Ingalls
Introductory Chapter
Amongst the novel objects that attracted my attention during my stay in the
United States, nothing struck me more forcibly than the general equality of
conditions. I readily discovered the prodigious influence which this primary
fact exercises on the whole course of society, by giving a certain direction to
public opinion, and a certain tenor to the laws; by imparting new maxims to the
governing powers, and peculiar habits to the governed. I speedily perceived that
the influence of this fact extends far beyond the political character and the
laws of the country, and that it has no less empire over civil society than over
the Government; it creates opinions, engenders sentiments, suggests the ordinary
practices of life, and modifies whatever it does not produce. The more I
advanced in the study of American society, the more I perceived that the
equality of conditions is the fundamental fact from which all others seem to be
derived, and the central point at which all my observations constantly
terminated.
I then turned my thoughts to our own hemisphere, where I imagined that I
discerned something analogous to the spectacle which the New World presented to
me. I observed that the equality of conditions is daily progressing towards
those extreme limits which it seems to have reached in the United States, and
that the democracy which governs the American communities appears to be rapidly
rising into power in Europe. I hence conceived the idea of the book which is now
before the reader.
It is evident to all alike that a great democratic revolution is going on
amongst us; but there are two opinions as to its nature and consequences. To
some it appears to be a novel accident, which as such may still be checked; to
others it seems irresistible, because it is the most uniform, the most ancient,
and the most permanent tendency which is to be found in history. Let us
recollect the situation of France seven hundred years ago, when the territory
was divided amongst a small number of families, who were the owners of the soil
and the rulers of the inhabitants; the right of governing descended with the
family inheritance from generation to generation; force was the only means by
which man could act on man, and landed property was the sole source of power.
Soon, however, the political power of the clergy was founded, and began to exert
itself: the clergy opened its ranks to all classes, to the poor and the rich,
the villein and the lord; equality penetrated into the Government through the
Church, and the being who as a serf must have vegetated in perpetual bondage
took his place as a priest in the midst of nobles, and not infrequently above
the heads of kings.
The different relations of men became more complicated and more numerous as
society gradually became more stable and more civilized. Thence the want of
civil laws was felt; and the order of legal functionaries soon rose from the
obscurity of the tribunals and their dusty chambers, to appear at the court of
the monarch, by the side of the feudal barons in their ermine and their mail.
Whilst the kings were ruining themselves by their great enterprises, and the
nobles exhausting their resources by private wars, the lower orders were
enriching themselves by commerce. The influence of money began to be perceptible
in State affairs. The transactions of business opened a new road to power, and
the financier rose to a station of political influence in which he was at once
flattered and despised. Gradually the spread of mental acquirements, and the
increasing taste for literature and art, opened chances of success to talent;
science became a means of government, intelligence led to social power, and the
man of letters took a part in the affairs of the State. The value attached to
the privileges of birth decreased in the exact proportion in which new paths
were struck out to advancement. In the eleventh century nobility was beyond all
price; in the thirteenth it might be purchased; it was conferred for the first
time in 1270; and equality was thus introduced into the Government by the
aristocracy itself.
In the course of these seven hundred years it sometimes happened that in order
to resist the authority of the Crown, or to diminish the power of their rivals,
the nobles granted a certain share of political rights to the people. Or, more
frequently, the king permitted the lower orders to enjoy a degree of power, with
the intention of repressing the aristocracy. In France the kings have always
been the most active and the most constant of levellers. When they were strong
and ambitious they spared no pains to raise the people to the level of the
nobles; when they were temperate or weak they allowed the people to rise above
themselves. Some assisted the democracy by their talents, others by their vices.
Louis XI and Louis XIV reduced every rank beneath the throne to the same
subjection; Louis XV descended, himself and all his Court, into the dust.
As soon as land was held on any other than a feudal tenure, and personal
property began in its turn to confer influence and power, every improvement
which was introduced in commerce or manufacture was a fresh element of the
equality of conditions. Henceforward every new discovery, every new want which
it engendered, and every new desire which craved satisfaction, was a step
towards the universal level. The taste for luxury, the love of war, the sway of
fashion, and the most superficial as well as the deepest passions of the human
heart, co-operated to enrich the poor and to impoverish the rich.
From the time when the exercise of the intellect became the source of strength
and of wealth, it is impossible not to consider every addition to science, every
fresh truth, and every new idea as a germ of power placed within the reach of
the people. Poetry, eloquence, and memory, the grace of wit, the glow of
imagination, the depth of thought, and all the gifts which are bestowed by
Providence with an equal hand, turned to the advantage of the democracy; and
even when they were in the possession of its adversaries they still served its
cause by throwing into relief the natural greatness of man; its conquests
spread, therefore, with those of civilization and knowledge, and literature
became an arsenal where the poorest and the weakest could always find weapons to
their hand.
In perusing the pages of our history, we shall scarcely meet with a single great
event, in the lapse of seven hundred years, which has not turned to the
advantage of equality. The Crusades and the wars of the English decimated the
nobles and divided their possessions; the erection of communities introduced an
element of democratic liberty into the bosom of feudal monarchy; the invention
of fire-arms equalized the villein and the noble on the field of battle;
printing opened the same resources to the minds of all classes; the post was
organized so as to bring the same information to the door of the poor man's
cottage and to the gate of the palace; and Protestantism proclaimed that all men
are alike able to find the road to heaven. The discovery of America offered a
thousand new paths to fortune, and placed riches and power within the reach of
the adventurous and the obscure. If we examine what has happened in France at
intervals of fifty years, beginning with the eleventh century, we shall
invariably perceive that a twofold revolution has taken place in the state of
society. The noble has gone down on the social ladder, and the roturier has gone
up; the one descends as the other rises. Every half century brings them nearer
to each other, and they will very shortly meet.
Nor is this phenomenon at all peculiar to France. Whithersoever we turn our eyes
we shall witness the same continual revolution throughout the whole of
Christendom. The various occurrences of national existence have everywhere
turned to the advantage of democracy; all men have aided it by their exertions:
those who have intentionally labored in its cause, and those who have served it
unwittingly; those who have fought for it and those who have declared themselves
its opponents, have all been driven along in the same track, have all labored to
one end, some ignorantly and some unwillingly; all have been blind instruments
in the hands of God.
The gradual development of the equality of conditions is therefore a
providential fact, and it possesses all the characteristics of a divine decree:
it is universal, it is durable, it constantly eludes all human interference, and
all events as well as all men contribute to its progress. Would it, then, be
wise to imagine that a social impulse which dates from so far back can be
checked by the efforts of a generation? Is it credible that the democracy which
has annihilated the feudal system and vanquished kings will respect the citizen
and the capitalist? Will it stop now that it has grown so strong and its
adversaries so weak? None can say which way we are going, for all terms of
comparison are wanting: the equality of conditions is more complete in the
Christian countries of the present day than it has been at any time or in any
part of the world; so that the extent of what already exists prevents us from
foreseeing what may be yet to come.
The whole book which is here offered to the public has been written under the
impression of a kind of religious dread produced in the author's mind by the
contemplation of so irresistible a revolution, which has advanced for centuries
in spite of such amazing obstacles, and which is still proceeding in the midst
of the ruins it has made. It is not necessary that God himself should speak in
order to disclose to us the unquestionable signs of His will; we can discern
them in the habitual course of nature, and in the invariable tendency of events:
I know, without a special revelation, that the planets move in the orbits traced
by the Creator's finger. If the men of our time were led by attentive
observation and by sincere reflection to acknowledge that the gradual and
progressive development of social equality is at once the past and future of
their history, this solitary truth would confer the sacred character of a Divine
decree upon the change. To attempt to check democracy would be in that case to
resist the will of God; and the nations would then be constrained to make the
best of the social lot awarded to them by Providence.
The Christian nations of our age seem to me to present a most alarming
spectacle; the impulse which is bearing them along is so strong that it cannot
be stopped, but it is not yet so rapid that it cannot be guided: their fate is
in their hands; yet a little while and it may be so no longer. The first duty
which is at this time imposed upon those who direct our affairs is to educate
the democracy; to warm its faith, if that be possible; to purify its morals; to
direct its energies; to substitute a knowledge of business for its inexperience,
and an acquaintance with its true interests for its blind propensities; to adapt
its government to time and place, and to modify it in compliance with the
occurrences and the actors of the age. A new science of politics is
indispensable to a new world. This, however, is what we think of least; launched
in the middle of a rapid stream, we obstinately fix our eyes on the ruins which
may still be described upon the shore we have left, whilst the current sweeps us
along, and drives us backwards towards the gulf.
In no country in Europe has the great social revolution which I have been
describing made such rapid progress as in France; but it has always been borne
on by chance. The heads of the State have never had any forethought for its
exigencies, and its victories have been obtained without their consent or
without their knowledge. The most powerful, the most intelligent, and the most
moral classes of the nation have never attempted to connect themselves with it
in order to guide it. The people has consequently been abandoned to its wild
propensities, and it has grown up like those outcasts who receive their
education in the public streets, and who are unacquainted with aught but the
vices and wretchedness of society. The existence of a democracy was seemingly
unknown, when on a sudden it took possession of the supreme power. Everything
was then submitted to its caprices; it was worshipped as the idol of strength;
until, when it was enfeebled by its own excesses, the legislator conceived the
rash project of annihilating its power, instead of instructing it and correcting
its vices; no attempt was made to fit it to govern, but all were bent on
excluding it from the government.
The consequence of this has been that the democratic revolution has been
effected only in the material parts of society, without that concomitant change
in laws, ideas, customs, and manners which was necessary to render such a
revolution beneficial. We have gotten a democracy, but without the conditions
which lessen its vices and render its natural advantages more prominent; and
although we already perceive the evils it brings, we are ignorant of the
benefits it may confer.
While the power of the Crown, supported by the aristocracy, peaceably governed
the nations of Europe, society possessed, in the midst of its wretchedness,
several different advantages which can now scarcely be appreciated or conceived.
The power of a part of his subjects was an insurmountable barrier to the tyranny
of the prince; and the monarch, who felt the almost divine character which he
enjoyed in the eyes of the multitude, derived a motive for the just use of his
power from the respect which he inspired. High as they were placed above the
people, the nobles could not but take that calm and benevolent interest in its
fate which the shepherd feels towards his flock; and without acknowledging the
poor as their equals, they watched over the destiny of those whose welfare
Providence had entrusted to their care. The people never having conceived the
idea of a social condition different from its own, and entertaining no
expectation of ever ranking with its chiefs, received benefits from them without
discussing their rights. It grew attached to them when they were clement and
just, and it submitted without resistance or servility to their exactions, as to
the inevitable visitations of the arm of God. Custom, and the manners of the
time, had moreover created a species of law in the midst of violence, and
established certain limits to oppression. As the noble never suspected that
anyone would attempt to deprive him of the privileges which he believed to be
legitimate, and as the serf looked upon his own inferiority as a consequence of
the immutable order of nature, it is easy to imagine that a mutual exchange of
good-will took place between two classes so differently gifted by fate.
Inequality and wretchedness were then to be found in society; but the souls of
neither rank of men were degraded. Men are not corrupted by the exercise of
power or debased by the habit of obedience, but by the exercise of a power which
they believe to be illegal and by obedience to a rule which they consider to be
usurped and oppressive. On one side was wealth, strength, and leisure,
accompanied by the refinements of luxury, the elegance of taste, the pleasures
of wit, and the religion of art. On the other was labor and a rude ignorance;
but in the midst of this coarse and ignorant multitude it was not uncommon to
meet with energetic passions, generous sentiments, profound religious
convictions, and independent virtues. The body of a State thus organized might
boast of its stability, its power, and, above all, of its glory.
But the scene is now changed, and gradually the two ranks mingle; the divisions
which once severed mankind are lowered, property is divided, power is held in
common, the light of intelligence spreads, and the capacities of all classes are
equally cultivated; the State becomes democratic, and the empire of democracy is
slowly and peaceably introduced into the institutions and the manners of the
nation. I can conceive a society in which all men would profess an equal
attachment and respect for the laws of which they are the common authors; in
which the authority of the State would be respected as necessary, though not as
divine; and the loyalty of the subject to its chief magistrate would not be a
passion, but a quiet and rational persuasion. Every individual being in the
possession of rights which he is sure to retain, a kind of manly reliance and
reciprocal courtesy would arise between all classes, alike removed from pride
and meanness. The people, well acquainted with its true interests, would allow
that in order to profit by the advantages of society it is necessary to satisfy
its demands. In this state of things the voluntary association of the citizens
might supply the individual exertions of the nobles, and the community would be
alike protected from anarchy and from oppression.
I admit that, in a democratic State thus constituted, society will not be
stationary; but the impulses of the social body may be regulated and directed
forwards; if there be less splendor than in the halls of an aristocracy, the
contrast of misery will be less frequent also; the pleasures of enjoyment may be
less excessive, but those of comfort will be more general; the sciences may be
less perfectly cultivated, but ignorance will be less common; the impetuosity of
the feelings will be repressed, and the habits of the nation softened; there
will be more vices and fewer crimes. In the absence of enthusiasm and of an
ardent faith, great sacrifices may be obtained from the members of a
commonwealth by an appeal to their understandings and their experience; each
individual will feel the same necessity for uniting with his fellow-citizens to
protect his own weakness; and as he knows that if they are to assist he must
co-operate, he will readily perceive that his personal interest is identified
with the interest of the community. The nation, taken as a whole, will be less
brilliant, less glorious, and perhaps less strong; but the majority of the
citizens will enjoy a greater degree of prosperity, and the people will remain
quiet, not because it despairs of amelioration, but because it is conscious of
the advantages of its condition. If all the consequences of this state of things
were not good or useful, society would at least have appropriated all such as
were useful and good; and having once and for ever renounced the social
advantages of aristocracy, mankind would enter into possession of all the
benefits which democracy can afford.
But here it may be asked what we have adopted in the place of those
institutions, those ideas, and those customs of our forefathers which we have
abandoned. The spell of royalty is broken, but it has not been succeeded by the
majesty of the laws; the people has learned to despise all authority, but fear
now extorts a larger tribute of obedience than that which was formerly paid by
reverence and by love.
I perceive that we have destroyed those independent beings which were able to
cope with tyranny single-handed; but it is the Government that has inherited the
privileges of which families, corporations, and individuals have been deprived;
the weakness of the whole community has therefore succeeded that influence of a
small body of citizens, which, if it was sometimes oppressive, was often
conservative. The division of property has lessened the distance which separated
the rich from the poor; but it would seem that the nearer they draw to each
other, the greater is their mutual hatred, and the more vehement the envy and
the dread with which they resist each other's claims to power; the notion of
Right is alike insensible to both classes, and Force affords to both the only
argument for the present, and the only guarantee for the future. The poor man
retains the prejudices of his forefathers without their faith, and their
ignorance without their virtues; he has adopted the doctrine of self-interest as
the rule of his actions, without understanding the science which controls it,
and his egotism is no less blind than his devotedness was formerly. If society
is tranquil, it is not because it relies upon its strength and its well-being,
but because it knows its weakness and its infirmities; a single effort may cost
it its life; everybody feels the evil, but no one has courage or energy enough
to seek the cure; the desires, the regret, the sorrows, and the joys of the time
produce nothing that is visible or permanent, like the passions of old men which
terminate in impotence.
We have, then, abandoned whatever advantages the old state of things afforded,
without receiving any compensation from our present condition; we have destroyed
an aristocracy, and we seem inclined to survey its ruins with complacency, and
to fix our abode in the midst of them.
The phenomena which the intellectual world presents are not less deplorable. The
democracy of France, checked in its course or abandoned to its lawless passions,
has overthrown whatever crossed its path, and has shaken all that it has not
destroyed. Its empire on society has not been gradually introduced or peaceably
established, but it has constantly advanced in the midst of disorder and the
agitation of a conflict. In the heat of the struggle each partisan is hurried
beyond the limits of his opinions by the opinions and the excesses of his
opponents, until he loses sight of the end of his exertions, and holds a
language which disguises his real sentiments or secret instincts. Hence arises
the strange confusion which we are witnessing. I cannot recall to my mind a
passage in history more worthy of sorrow and of pity than the scenes which are
happening under our eyes; it is as if the natural bond which unites the opinions
of man to his tastes and his actions to his principles was now broken; the
sympathy which has always been acknowledged between the feelings and the ideas
of mankind appears to be dissolved, and all the laws of moral analogy to be
dissolved, and all the laws of moral analogy to be abolished.
Zealous Christians may be found amongst us whose minds are nurtured in the love
and knowledge of a future life, and who readily espouse the cause of human
liberty as the source of all moral greatness. Christianity, which has declared
that all men are equal in the sight of God, will not refuse to acknowledge that
all citizens are equal in the eye of the law. But, by a singular concourse of
events, religion is entangled in those institutions which democracy assails, and
it is not unfrequently brought to reject the equality it loves, and to curse
that cause of liberty as a foe which it might hallow by its alliance.
By the side of these religious men I discern others whose looks are turned to
the earth more than to Heaven; they are the partisans of liberty, not only as
the source of the noblest virtues, but more especially as the root of all solid
advantages; and they sincerely desire to extend its sway, and to impart its
blessings to mankind. It is natural that they should hasten to invoke the
assistance of religion, for they must know that liberty cannot be established
without morality, nor morality without faith; but they have seen religion in the
ranks of their adversaries, and they inquire no further; some of them attack it
openly, and the remainder are afraid to defend it.
In former ages slavery has been advocated by the venal and slavish-minded,
whilst the independent and the warm-hearted were struggling without hope to save
the liberties of mankind. But men of high and generous characters are now to be
met with, whose opinions are at variance with their inclinations, and who praise
that servility which they have themselves never known. Others, on the contrary,
speak in the name of liberty, as if they were able to feel its sanctity and its
majesty, and loudly claim for humanity those rights which they have always
disowned. There are virtuous and peaceful individuals whose pure morality, quiet
habits, affluence, and talents fit them to be the leaders of the surrounding
population; their love of their country is sincere, and they are prepared to
make the greatest sacrifices to its welfare, but they confound the abuses of
civilization with its benefits, and the idea of evil is inseparable in their
minds from that of novelty.
Not far from this class is another party, whose object is to materialize
mankind, to hit upon what is expedient without heeding what is just, to acquire
knowledge without faith, and prosperity apart from virtue; assuming the title of
the champions of modern civilization, and placing themselves in a station which
they usurp with insolence, and from which they are driven by their own
unworthiness. Where are we then? The religionists are the enemies of liberty,
and the friends of liberty attack religion; the high-minded and the noble
advocate subjection, and the meanest and most servile minds preach independence;
honest and enlightened citizens are opposed to all progress, whilst men without
patriotism and without principles are the apostles of civilization and of
intelligence. Has such been the fate of the centuries which have preceded our
own? and has man always inhabited a world like the present, where nothing is
linked together, where virtue is without genius, and genius without honor; where
the love of order is confounded with a taste for oppression, and the holy rites
of freedom with a contempt of law; where the light thrown by conscience on human
actions is dim, and where nothing seems to be any longer forbidden or allowed,
honorable or shameful, false or true? I cannot, however, believe that the
Creator made man to leave him in an endless struggle with the intellectual
miseries which surround us: God destines a calmer and a more certain future to
the communities of Europe; I am unacquainted with His designs, but I shall not
cease to believe in them because I cannot fathom them, and I had rather mistrust
my own capacity than His justice.
There is a country in the world where the great revolution which I am speaking
of seems nearly to have reached its natural limits; it has been effected with
ease and simplicity, say rather that this country has attained the consequences
of the democratic revolution which we are undergoing without having experienced
the revolution itself. The emigrants who fixed themselves on the shores of
America in the beginning of the seventeenth century severed the democratic
principle from all the principles which repressed it in the old communities of
Europe, and transplanted it unalloyed to the New World. It has there been
allowed to spread in perfect freedom, and to put forth its consequences in the
laws by influencing the manners of the country.
It appears to me beyond a doubt that sooner or later we shall arrive, like the
Americans, at an almost complete equality of conditions. But I do not conclude
from this that we shall ever be necessarily led to draw the same political
consequences which the Americans have derived from a similar social
organization. I am far from supposing that they have chosen the only form of
government which a democracy may adopt; but the identity of the efficient cause
of laws and manners in the two countries is sufficient to account for the
immense interest we have in becoming acquainted with its effects in each of
them.
It is not, then, merely to satisfy a legitimate curiosity that I have examined
America; my wish has been to find instruction by which we may ourselves profit.
Whoever should imagine that I have intended to write a panegyric will perceive
that such was not my design; nor has it been my object to advocate any form of
government in particular, for I am of opinion that absolute excellence is rarely
to be found in any legislation; I have not even affected to discuss whether the
social revolution, which I believe to be irresistible, is advantageous or
prejudicial to mankind; I have acknowledged this revolution as a fact already
accomplished or on the eve of its accomplishment; and I have selected the
nation, from amongst those which have undergone it, in which its development has
been the most peaceful and the most complete, in order to discern its natural
consequences, and, if it be possible, to distinguish the means by which it may
be rendered profitable. I confess that in America I saw more than America; I
sought the image of democracy itself, with its inclinations, its character, its
prejudices, and its passions, in order to learn what we have to fear or to hope
from its progress.
In the first part of this work I have attempted to show the tendency given to
the laws by the democracy of America, which is abandoned almost without
restraint to its instinctive propensities, and to exhibit the course it
prescribes to the Government and the influence it exercises on affairs. I have
sought to discover the evils and the advantages which it produces. I have
examined the precautions used by the Americans to direct it, as well as those
which they have not adopted, and I have undertaken to point out the causes which
enable it to govern society. I do not know whether I have succeeded in making
known what I saw in America, but I am certain that such has been my sincere
desire, and that I have never, knowingly, moulded facts to ideas, instead of
ideas to facts.
Whenever a point could be established by the aid of written documents, I have
had recourse to the original text, and to the most authentic and approved works.
I have cited my authorities in the notes, and anyone may refer to them. Whenever
an opinion, a political custom, or a remark on the manners of the country was
concerned, I endeavored to consult the most enlightened men I met with. If the
point in question was important or doubtful, I was not satisfied with one
testimony, but I formed my opinion on the evidence of several witnesses. Here
the reader must necessarily believe me upon my word. I could frequently have
quoted names which are either known to him, or which deserve to be so, in proof
of what I advance; but I have carefully abstained from this practice. A stranger
frequently hears important truths at the fire-side of his host, which the latter
would perhaps conceal from the ear of friendship; he consoles himself with his
guest for the silence to which he is restricted, and the shortness of the
traveller's stay takes away all fear of his indiscretion. I carefully noted
every conversation of this nature as soon as it occurred, but these notes will
never leave my writing-case; I had rather injure the success of my statements
than add my name to the list of those strangers who repay the generous
hospitality they have received by subsequent chagrin and annoyance.
I am aware that, notwithstanding my care, nothing will be easier than to
criticise this book, if anyone ever chooses to criticise it. Those readers who
may examine it closely will discover the fundamental idea which connects the
several parts together. But the diversity of the subjects I have had to treat is
exceedingly great, and it will not be difficult to oppose an isolated fact to
the body of facts which I quote, or an isolated idea to the body of ideas I put
forth. I hope to be read in the spirit which has guided my labors, and that my
book may be judged by the general impression it leaves, as I have formed my own
judgment not on any single reason, but upon the mass of evidence. It must not be
forgotten that the author who wishes to be understood is obliged to push all his
ideas to their utmost theoretical consequences, and often to the verge of what
is false or impracticable; for if it be necessary sometimes to quit the rules of
logic in active life, such is not the case in discourse, and a man finds that
almost as many difficulties spring from inconsistency of language as usually
arise from inconsistency of conduct.
I conclude by pointing out myself what many readers will consider the principal
defect of the work. This book is written to favor no particular views, and in
composing it I have entertained no designs of serving or attacking any party; I
have undertaken not to see differently, but to look further than parties, and
whilst they are busied for the morrow I have turned my thoughts to the Future.
Chapter I: Exterior Form Of North America
Chapter Summary
North America divided into two vast regions, one inclining towards the Pole, the
other towards the Equator—Valley of the Mississippi—Traces of the Revolutions of
the Globe—Shore of the Atlantic Ocean where the English Colonies were
founded—Difference in the appearance of North and of South America at the time
of their Discovery—Forests of North America—Prairies—Wandering Tribes of
Natives—Their outward appearance, manners, and language—Traces of an unknown
people.
Exterior Form Of North America
North America presents in its external form certain general features which it is
easy to discriminate at the first glance. A sort of methodical order seems to
have regulated the separation of land and water, mountains and valleys. A
simple, but grand, arrangement is discoverable amidst the confusion of objects
and the prodigious variety of scenes. This continent is divided, almost equally,
into two vast regions, one of which is bounded on the north by the Arctic Pole,
and by the two great oceans on the east and west. It stretches towards the
south, forming a triangle whose irregular sides meet at length below the great
lakes of Canada. The second region begins where the other terminates, and
includes all the remainder of the continent. The one slopes gently towards the
Pole, the other towards the Equator.
The territory comprehended in the first region descends towards the north with
so imperceptible a slope that it may almost be said to form a level plain.
Within the bounds of this immense tract of country there are neither high
mountains nor deep valleys. Streams meander through it irregularly: great rivers
mix their currents, separate and meet again, disperse and form vast marshes,
losing all trace of their channels in the labyrinth of waters they have
themselves created; and thus, at length, after innumerable windings, fall into
the Polar Seas. The great lakes which bound this first region are not walled in,
like most of those in the Old World, between hills and rocks. Their banks are
flat, and rise but a few feet above the level of their waters; each of them thus
forming a vast bowl filled to the brim. The slightest change in the structure of
the globe would cause their waters to rush either towards the Pole or to the
tropical sea.
The second region is more varied on its surface, and better suited for the
habitation of man. Two long chains of mountains divide it from one extreme to
the other; the Alleghany ridge takes the form of the shores of the Atlantic
Ocean; the other is parallel with the Pacific. The space which lies between
these two chains of mountains contains 1,341,649 square miles. *a Its surface is
therefore about six times as great as that of France. This vast territory,
however, forms a single valley, one side of which descends gradually from the
rounded summits of the Alleghanies, while the other rises in an uninterrupted
course towards the tops of the Rocky Mountains. At the bottom of the valley
flows an immense river, into which the various streams issuing from the
mountains fall from all parts. In memory of their native land, the French
formerly called this river the St. Louis. The Indians, in their pompous
language, have named it the Father of Waters, or the Mississippi.
a
[ Darby's "View of the United States."]
The Mississippi takes its source above the limit of the two great regions of
which I have spoken, not far from the highest point of the table-land where they
unite. Near the same spot rises another river, *b which empties itself into the
Polar seas. The course of the Mississippi is at first dubious: it winds several
times towards the north, from whence it rose; and at length, after having been
delayed in lakes and marshes, it flows slowly onwards to the south. Sometimes
quietly gliding along the argillaceous bed which nature has assigned to it,
sometimes swollen by storms, the Mississippi waters 2,500 miles in its course.
*c At the distance of 1,364 miles from its mouth this river attains an average
depth of fifteen feet; and it is navigated by vessels of 300 tons burden for a
course of nearly 500 miles. Fifty-seven large navigable rivers contribute to
swell the waters of the Mississippi; amongst others, the Missouri, which
traverses a space of 2,500 miles; the Arkansas of 1,300 miles, the Red River
1,000 miles, four whose course is from 800 to 1,000 miles in length, viz., the
Illinois, the St. Peter's, the St. Francis, and the Moingona; besides a
countless multitude of rivulets which unite from all parts their tributary
streams.
b
[ The Red River.]
c
[ Warden's "Description of the United States."]
The valley which is watered by the Mississippi seems formed to be the bed of
this mighty river, which, like a god of antiquity, dispenses both good and evil
in its course. On the shores of the stream nature displays an inexhaustible
fertility; in proportion as you recede from its banks, the powers of vegetation
languish, the soil becomes poor, and the plants that survive have a sickly
growth. Nowhere have the great convulsions of the globe left more evident traces
than in the valley of the Mississippi; the whole aspect of the country shows the
powerful effects of water, both by its fertility and by its barrenness. The
waters of the primeval ocean accumulated enormous beds of vegetable mould in the
valley, which they levelled as they retired. Upon the right shore of the river
are seen immense plains, as smooth as if the husbandman had passed over them
with his roller. As you approach the mountains the soil becomes more and more
unequal and sterile; the ground is, as it were, pierced in a thousand places by
primitive rocks, which appear like the bones of a skeleton whose flesh is partly
consumed. The surface of the earth is covered with a granite sand and huge
irregular masses of stone, among which a few plants force their growth, and give
the appearance of a green field covered with the ruins of a vast edifice. These
stones and this sand discover, on examination, a perfect analogy with those
which compose the arid and broken summits of the Rocky Mountains. The flood of
waters which washed the soil to the bottom of the valley afterwards carried away
portions of the rocks themselves; and these, dashed and bruised against the
neighboring cliffs, were left scattered like wrecks at their feet. *d The valley
of the Mississippi is, upon the whole, the most magnificent dwelling-place
prepared by God for man's abode; and yet it may be said that at present it is
but a mighty desert.
d
[ See Appendix, A.]
On the eastern side of the Alleghanies, between the base of these mountains and
the Atlantic Ocean, there lies a long ridge of rocks and sand, which the sea
appears to have left behind as it retired. The mean breadth of this territory
does not exceed one hundred miles; but it is about nine hundred miles in length.
This part of the American continent has a soil which offers every obstacle to
the husbandman, and its vegetation is scanty and unvaried.
Upon this inhospitable coast the first united efforts of human industry were
made. The tongue of arid land was the cradle of those English colonies which
were destined one day to become the United States of America. The centre of
power still remains here; whilst in the backwoods the true elements of the great
people to whom the future control of the continent belongs are gathering almost
in secrecy together.
When the Europeans first landed on the shores of the West Indies, and afterwards
on the coast of South America, they thought themselves transported into those
fabulous regions of which poets had sung. The sea sparkled with phosphoric
light, and the extraordinary transparency of its waters discovered to the view
of the navigator all that had hitherto been hidden in the deep abyss. *e Here
and there appeared little islands perfumed with odoriferous plants, and
resembling baskets of flowers floating on the tranquil surface of the ocean.
Every object which met the sight, in this enchanting region, seemed prepared to
satisfy the wants or contribute to the pleasures of man. Almost all the trees
were loaded with nourishing fruits, and those which were useless as food
delighted the eye by the brilliancy and variety of their colors. In groves of
fragrant lemon-trees, wild figs, flowering myrtles, acacias, and oleanders,
which were hung with festoons of various climbing plants, covered with flowers,
a multitude of birds unknown in Europe displayed their bright plumage,
glittering with purple and azure, and mingled their warbling with the harmony of
a world teeming with life and motion. *f Underneath this brilliant exterior
death was concealed. But the air of these climates had so enervating an
influence that man, absorbed by present enjoyment, was rendered regardless of
the future.
e
[ Malte Brun tells us (vol. v. p. 726) that the water of the Caribbean Sea is so
transparent that corals and fish are discernible at a depth of sixty fathoms.
The ship seemed to float in air, the navigator became giddy as his eye
penetrated through the crystal flood, and beheld submarine gardens, or beds of
shells, or gilded fishes gliding among tufts and thickets of seaweed.]
f
[ See Appendix, B.]
North America appeared under a very different aspect; there everything was
grave, serious, and solemn: it seemed created to be the domain of intelligence,
as the South was that of sensual delight. A turbulent and foggy ocean washed its
shores. It was girt round by a belt of granite rocks, or by wide tracts of sand.
The foliage of its woods was dark and gloomy, for they were composed of firs,
larches, evergreen oaks, wild olive-trees, and laurels. Beyond this outer belt
lay the thick shades of the central forest, where the largest trees which are
produced in the two hemispheres grow side by side. The plane, the catalpa, the
sugar-maple, and the Virginian poplar mingled their branches with those of the
oak, the beech, and the lime. In these, as in the forests of the Old World,
destruction was perpetually going on. The ruins of vegetation were heaped upon
each other; but there was no laboring hand to remove them, and their decay was
not rapid enough to make room for the continual work of reproduction. Climbing
plants, grasses, and other herbs forced their way through the mass of dying
trees; they crept along their bending trunks, found nourishment in their dusty
cavities, and a passage beneath the lifeless bark. Thus decay gave its
assistance to life, and their respective productions were mingled together. The
depths of these forests were gloomy and obscure, and a thousand rivulets,
undirected in their course by human industry, preserved in them a constant
moisture. It was rare to meet with flowers, wild fruits, or birds beneath their
shades. The fall of a tree overthrown by age, the rushing torrent of a cataract,
the lowing of the buffalo, and the howling of the wind were the only sounds
which broke the silence of nature.
To the east of the great river, the woods almost disappeared; in their stead
were seen prairies of immense extent. Whether Nature in her infinite variety had
denied the germs of trees to these fertile plains, or whether they had once been
covered with forests, subsequently destroyed by the hand of man, is a question
which neither tradition nor scientific research has been able to resolve.
These immense deserts were not, however, devoid of human inhabitants. Some
wandering tribes had been for ages scattered among the forest shades or the
green pastures of the prairie. From the mouth of the St. Lawrence to the delta
of the Mississippi, and from the Atlantic to the Pacific Ocean, these savages
possessed certain points of resemblance which bore witness of their common
origin; but at the same time they differed from all other known races of men: *g
they were neither white like the Europeans, nor yellow like most of the
Asiatics, nor black like the negroes. Their skin was reddish brown, their hair
long and shining, their lips thin, and their cheekbones very prominent. The
languages spoken by the North American tribes are various as far as regarded
their words, but they were subject to the same grammatical rules. These rules
differed in several points from such as had been observed to govern the origin
of language. The idiom of the Americans seemed to be the product of new
combinations, and bespoke an effort of the understanding of which the Indians of
our days would be incapable. *h
g
[ With the progress of discovery some resemblance has been found to exist
between the physical conformation, the language, and the habits of the Indians
of North America, and those of the Tongous, Mantchous, Mongols, Tartars, and
other wandering tribes of Asia. The land occupied by these tribes is not very
distant from Behring's Strait, which allows of the supposition, that at a remote
period they gave inhabitants to the desert continent of America. But this is a
point which has not yet been clearly elucidated by science. See Malte Brun, vol.
v.; the works of Humboldt; Fischer, "Conjecture sur l'Origine des Americains";
Adair, "History of the American Indians."]
h
[ See Appendix, C.]
The social state of these tribes differed also in many respects from all that
was seen in the Old World. They seemed to have multiplied freely in the midst of
their deserts without coming in contact with other races more civilized than
their own. Accordingly, they exhibited none of those indistinct, incoherent
notions of right and wrong, none of that deep corruption of manners, which is
usually joined with ignorance and rudeness among nations which, after advancing
to civilization, have relapsed into a state of barbarism. The Indian was
indebted to no one but himself; his virtues, his vices, and his prejudices were
his own work; he had grown up in the wild independence of his nature.
If, in polished countries, the lowest of the people are rude and uncivil, it is
not merely because they are poor and ignorant, but that, being so, they are in
daily contact with rich and enlightened men. The sight of their own hard lot and
of their weakness, which is daily contrasted with the happiness and power of
some of their fellow-creatures, excites in their hearts at the same time the
sentiments of anger and of fear: the consciousness of their inferiority and of
their dependence irritates while it humiliates them. This state of mind displays
itself in their manners and language; they are at once insolent and servile. The
truth of this is easily proved by observation; the people are more rude in
aristocratic countries than elsewhere, in opulent cities than in rural
districts. In those places where the rich and powerful are assembled together
the weak and the indigent feel themselves oppressed by their inferior condition.
Unable to perceive a single chance of regaining their equality, they give up to
despair, and allow themselves to fall below the dignity of human nature.
This unfortunate effect of the disparity of conditions is not observable in
savage life: the Indians, although they are ignorant and poor, are equal and
free. At the period when Europeans first came among them the natives of North
America were ignorant of the value of riches, and indifferent to the enjoyments
which civilized man procures to himself by their means. Nevertheless there was
nothing coarse in their demeanor; they practised an habitual reserve and a kind
of aristocratic politeness. Mild and hospitable when at peace, though merciless
in war beyond any known degree of human ferocity, the Indian would expose
himself to die of hunger in order to succor the stranger who asked admittance by
night at the door of his hut; yet he could tear in pieces with his hands the
still quivering limbs of his prisoner. The famous republics of antiquity never
gave examples of more unshaken courage, more haughty spirits, or more
intractable love of independence than were hidden in former times among the wild
forests of the New World. *i The Europeans produced no great impression when
they landed upon the shores of North America; their presence engendered neither
envy nor fear. What influence could they possess over such men as we have
described? The Indian could live without wants, suffer without complaint, and
pour out his death-song at the stake. *j Like all the other members of the great
human family, these savages believed in the existence of a better world, and
adored under different names, God, the creator of the universe. Their notions on
the great intellectual truths were in general simple and philosophical. *k
i
[ We learn from President Jefferson's "Notes upon Virginia," p. 148, that among
the Iroquois, when attacked by a superior force, aged men refused to fly or to
survive the destruction of their country; and they braved death like the ancient
Romans when their capital was sacked by the Gauls. Further on, p. 150, he tells
us that there is no example of an Indian who, having fallen into the hands of
his enemies, begged for his life; on the contrary, the captive sought to obtain
death at the hands of his conquerors by the use of insult and provocation.]
j
[ See "Histoire de la Louisiane," by Lepage Dupratz; Charlevoix, "Histoire de la
Nouvelle France"; "Lettres du Rev. G. Hecwelder;" "Transactions of the American
Philosophical Society," v. I; Jefferson's "Notes on Virginia," pp. 135-190. What
is said by Jefferson is of especial weight, on account of the personal merit of
the writer, of his peculiar position, and of the matter-of-fact age in which he
lived.]
k
[ See Appendix, D.]
Although we have here traced the character of a primitive people, yet it cannot
be doubted that another people, more civilized and more advanced in all
respects, had preceded it in the same regions.
An obscure tradition which prevailed among the Indians to the north of the
Atlantic informs us that these very tribes formerly dwelt on the west side of
the Mississippi. Along the banks of the Ohio, and throughout the central valley,
there are frequently found, at this day, tumuli raised by the hands of men. On
exploring these heaps of earth to their centre, it is usual to meet with human
bones, strange instruments, arms and utensils of all kinds, made of metal, or
destined for purposes unknown to the present race. The Indians of our time are
unable to give any information relative to the history of this unknown people.
Neither did those who lived three hundred years ago, when America was first
discovered, leave any accounts from which even an hypothesis could be formed.
Tradition—that perishable, yet ever renewed monument of the pristine
world—throws no light upon the subject. It is an undoubted fact, however, that
in this part of the globe thousands of our fellow-beings had lived. When they
came hither, what was their origin, their destiny, their history, and how they
perished, no one can tell. How strange does it appear that nations have existed,
and afterwards so completely disappeared from the earth that the remembrance of
their very names is effaced; their languages are lost; their glory is vanished
like a sound without an echo; though perhaps there is not one which has not left
behind it some tomb in memory of its passage! The most durable monument of human
labor is that which recalls the wretchedness and nothingness of man.
Although the vast country which we have been describing was inhabited by many
indigenous tribes, it may justly be said at the time of its discovery by
Europeans to have formed one great desert. The Indians occupied without
possessing it. It is by agricultural labor that man appropriates the soil, and
the early inhabitants of North America lived by the produce of the chase. Their
implacable prejudices, their uncontrolled passions, their vices, and still more
perhaps their savage virtues, consigned them to inevitable destruction. The ruin
of these nations began from the day when Europeans landed on their shores; it
has proceeded ever since, and we are now witnessing the completion of it. They
seem to have been placed by Providence amidst the riches of the New World to
enjoy them for a season, and then surrender them. Those coasts, so admirably
adapted for commerce and industry; those wide and deep rivers; that
inexhaustible valley of the Mississippi; the whole continent, in short, seemed
prepared to be the abode of a great nation, yet unborn.
In that land the great experiment was to be made, by civilized man, of the
attempt to construct society upon a new basis; and it was there, for the first
time, that theories hitherto unknown, or deemed impracticable, were to exhibit a
spectacle for which the world had not been prepared by the history of the past.
Chapter II: Origin Of The Anglo-Americans—Part I
Chapter Summary
Utility of knowing the origin of nations in order to understand their social
condition and their laws—America the only country in which the starting-point of
a great people has been clearly observable—In what respects all who emigrated to
British America were similar—In what they differed—Remark applicable to all
Europeans who established themselves on the shores of the New World—Colonization
of Virginia—Colonization of New England—Original character of the first
inhabitants of New England—Their arrival—Their first laws—Their social
contract—Penal code borrowed from the Hebrew legislation—Religious
fervor—Republican spirit—Intimate union of the spirit of religion with the
spirit of liberty.
Origin Of The Anglo-Americans, And Its Importance In Relation To Their Future
Condition.
After the birth of a human being his early years are obscurely spent in the
toils or pleasures of childhood. As he grows up the world receives him, when his
manhood begins, and he enters into contact with his fellows. He is then studied
for the first time, and it is imagined that the germ of the vices and the
virtues of his maturer years is then formed. This, if I am not mistaken, is a
great error. We must begin higher up; we must watch the infant in its mother's
arms; we must see the first images which the external world casts upon the dark
mirror of his mind; the first occurrences which he witnesses; we must hear the
first words which awaken the sleeping powers of thought, and stand by his
earliest efforts, if we would understand the prejudices, the habits, and the
passions which will rule his life. The entire man is, so to speak, to be seen in
the cradle of the child.
The growth of nations presents something analogous to this: they all bear some
marks of their origin; and the circumstances which accompanied their birth and
contributed to their rise affect the whole term of their being. If we were able
to go back to the elements of states, and to examine the oldest monuments of
their history, I doubt not that we should discover the primal cause of the
prejudices, the habits, the ruling passions, and, in short, of all that
constitutes what is called the national character; we should then find the
explanation of certain customs which now seem at variance with the prevailing
manners; of such laws as conflict with established principles; and of such
incoherent opinions as are here and there to be met with in society, like those
fragments of broken chains which we sometimes see hanging from the vault of an
edifice, and supporting nothing. This might explain the destinies of certain
nations, which seem borne on by an unknown force to ends of which they
themselves are ignorant. But hitherto facts have been wanting to researches of
this kind: the spirit of inquiry has only come upon communities in their latter
days; and when they at length contemplated their origin, time had already
obscured it, or ignorance and pride adorned it with truth-concealing fables.
America is the only country in which it has been possible to witness the natural
and tranquil growth of society, and where the influences exercised on the future
condition of states by their origin is clearly distinguishable. At the period
when the peoples of Europe landed in the New World their national
characteristics were already completely formed; each of them had a physiognomy
of its own; and as they had already attained that stage of civilization at which
men are led to study themselves, they have transmitted to us a faithful picture
of their opinions, their manners, and their laws. The men of the sixteenth
century are almost as well known to us as our contemporaries. America,
consequently, exhibits in the broad light of day the phenomena which the
ignorance or rudeness of earlier ages conceals from our researches. Near enough
to the time when the states of America were founded, to be accurately acquainted
with their elements, and sufficiently removed from that period to judge of some
of their results, the men of our own day seem destined to see further than their
predecessors into the series of human events. Providence has given us a torch
which our forefathers did not possess, and has allowed us to discern fundamental
causes in the history of the world which the obscurity of the past concealed
from them. If we carefully examine the social and political state of America,
after having studied its history, we shall remain perfectly convinced that not
an opinion, not a custom, not a law, I may even say not an event, is upon record
which the origin of that people will not explain. The readers of this book will
find the germ of all that is to follow in the present chapter, and the key to
almost the whole work.
The emigrants who came, at different periods to occupy the territory now covered
by the American Union differed from each other in many respects; their aim was
not the same, and they governed themselves on different principles. These men
had, however, certain features in common, and they were all placed in an
analogous situation. The tie of language is perhaps the strongest and the most
durable that can unite mankind. All the emigrants spoke the same tongue; they
were all offsets from the same people. Born in a country which had been agitated
for centuries by the struggles of faction, and in which all parties had been
obliged in their turn to place themselves under the protection of the laws,
their political education had been perfected in this rude school, and they were
more conversant with the notions of right and the principles of true freedom
than the greater part of their European contemporaries. At the period of their
first emigrations the parish system, that fruitful germ of free institutions,
was deeply rooted in the habits of the English; and with it the doctrine of the
sovereignty of the people had been introduced into the bosom of the monarchy of
the House of Tudor.
The religious quarrels which have agitated the Christian world were then rife.
England had plunged into the new order of things with headlong vehemence. The
character of its inhabitants, which had always been sedate and reflective,
became argumentative and austere. General information had been increased by
intellectual debate, and the mind had received a deeper cultivation. Whilst
religion was the topic of discussion, the morals of the people were reformed.
All these national features are more or less discoverable in the physiognomy of
those adventurers who came to seek a new home on the opposite shores of the
Atlantic.
Another remark, to which we shall hereafter have occasion to recur, is
applicable not only to the English, but to the French, the Spaniards, and all
the Europeans who successively established themselves in the New World. All
these European colonies contained the elements, if not the development, of a
complete democracy. Two causes led to this result. It may safely be advanced,
that on leaving the mother-country the emigrants had in general no notion of
superiority over one another. The happy and the powerful do not go into exile,
and there are no surer guarantees of equality among men than poverty and
misfortune. It happened, however, on several occasions, that persons of rank
were driven to America by political and religious quarrels. Laws were made to
establish a gradation of ranks; but it was soon found that the soil of America
was opposed to a territorial aristocracy. To bring that refractory land into
cultivation, the constant and interested exertions of the owner himself were
necessary; and when the ground was prepared, its produce was found to be
insufficient to enrich a master and a farmer at the same time. The land was then
naturally broken up into small portions, which the proprietor cultivated for
himself. Land is the basis of an aristocracy, which clings to the soil that
supports it; for it is not by privileges alone, nor by birth, but by landed
property handed down from generation to generation, that an aristocracy is
constituted. A nation may present immense fortunes and extreme wretchedness, but
unless those fortunes are territorial there is no aristocracy, but simply the
class of the rich and that of the poor.
All the British colonies had then a great degree of similarity at the epoch of
their settlement. All of them, from their first beginning, seemed destined to
witness the growth, not of the aristocratic liberty of their mother-country, but
of that freedom of the middle and lower orders of which the history of the world
had as yet furnished no complete example.
In this general uniformity several striking differences were however
discernible, which it is necessary to point out. Two branches may be
distinguished in the Anglo-American family, which have hitherto grown up without
entirely commingling; the one in the South, the other in the North.
Virginia received the first English colony; the emigrants took possession of it
in 1607. The idea that mines of gold and silver are the sources of national
wealth was at that time singularly prevalent in Europe; a fatal delusion, which
has done more to impoverish the nations which adopted it, and has cost more
lives in America, than the united influence of war and bad laws. The men sent to
Virginia *a were seekers of gold, adventurers, without resources and without
character, whose turbulent and restless spirit endangered the infant colony, *b
and rendered its progress uncertain. The artisans and agriculturists arrived
afterwards; and, although they were a more moral and orderly race of men, they
were in nowise above the level of the inferior classes in England. *c No lofty
conceptions, no intellectual system, directed the foundation of these new
settlements. The colony was scarcely established when slavery was introduced, *d
and this was the main circumstance which has exercised so prodigious an
influence on the character, the laws, and all the future prospects of the South.
Slavery, as we shall afterwards show, dishonors labor; it introduces idleness
into society, and with idleness, ignorance and pride, luxury and distress. It
enervates the powers of the mind, and benumbs the activity of man. The influence
of slavery, united to the English character, explains the manners and the social
condition of the Southern States.
a
[ The charter granted by the Crown of England in 1609 stipulated, amongst other
conditions, that the adventurers should pay to the Crown a fifth of the produce
of all gold and silver mines. See Marshall's "Life of Washington," vol. i. pp.
18-66.] [Footnote b: A large portion of the adventurers, says Stith ("History of
Virginia"), were unprincipled young men of family, whom their parents were glad
to ship off, discharged servants, fraudulent bankrupts, or debauchees; and
others of the same class, people more apt to pillage and destroy than to assist
the settlement, were the seditious chiefs, who easily led this band into every
kind of extravagance and excess. See for the history of Virginia the following
works:—
"History of Virginia, from the First Settlements in the year 1624," by Smith.
"History of Virginia," by William Stith.
"History of Virginia, from the Earliest Period," by Beverley.]
c
[ It was not till some time later that a certain number of rich English
capitalists came to fix themselves in the colony.]
d
[ Slavery was introduced about the year 1620 by a Dutch vessel which landed
twenty negroes on the banks of the river James. See Chalmer.]
In the North, the same English foundation was modified by the most opposite
shades of character; and here I may be allowed to enter into some details. The
two or three main ideas which constitute the basis of the social theory of the
United States were first combined in the Northern English colonies, more
generally denominated the States of New England. *e The principles of New
England spread at first to the neighboring states; they then passed successively
to the more distant ones; and at length they imbued the whole Confederation.
They now extend their influence beyond its limits over the whole American world.
The civilization of New England has been like a beacon lit upon a hill, which,
after it has diffused its warmth around, tinges the distant horizon with its
glow.
e
[ The States of New England are those situated to the east of the Hudson; they
are now six in number: 1, Connecticut; 2, Rhode Island; 3, Massachusetts; 4,
Vermont; 5, New Hampshire; 6, Maine.]
The foundation of New England was a novel spectacle, and all the circumstances
attending it were singular and original. The large majority of colonies have
been first inhabited either by men without education and without resources,
driven by their poverty and their misconduct from the land which gave them
birth, or by speculators and adventurers greedy of gain. Some settlements cannot
even boast so honorable an origin; St. Domingo was founded by buccaneers; and
the criminal courts of England originally supplied the population of Australia.
The settlers who established themselves on the shores of New England all
belonged to the more independent classes of their native country. Their union on
the soil of America at once presented the singular phenomenon of a society
containing neither lords nor common people, neither rich nor poor. These men
possessed, in proportion to their number, a greater mass of intelligence than is
to be found in any European nation of our own time. All, without a single
exception, had received a good education, and many of them were known in Europe
for their talents and their acquirements. The other colonies had been founded by
adventurers without family; the emigrants of New England brought with them the
best elements of order and morality—they landed in the desert accompanied by
their wives and children. But what most especially distinguished them was the
aim of their undertaking. They had not been obliged by necessity to leave their
country; the social position they abandoned was one to be regretted, and their
means of subsistence were certain. Nor did they cross the Atlantic to improve
their situation or to increase their wealth; the call which summoned them from
the comforts of their homes was purely intellectual; and in facing the
inevitable sufferings of exile their object was the triumph of an idea.
The emigrants, or, as they deservedly styled themselves, the Pilgrims, belonged
to that English sect the austerity of whose principles had acquired for them the
name of Puritans. Puritanism was not merely a religious doctrine, but it
corresponded in many points with the most absolute democratic and republican
theories. It was this tendency which had aroused its most dangerous adversaries.
Persecuted by the Government of the mother-country, and disgusted by the habits
of a society opposed to the rigor of their own principles, the Puritans went
forth to seek some rude and unfrequented part of the world, where they could
live according to their own opinions, and worship God in freedom.
A few quotations will throw more light upon the spirit of these pious adventures
than all we can say of them. Nathaniel Morton, *f the historian of the first
years of the settlement, thus opens his subject:
f
[ "New England's Memorial," p. 13; Boston, 1826. See also "Hutchinson's
History," vol. ii. p. 440.]
"Gentle Reader,—I have for some length of time looked upon it as a duty
incumbent, especially on the immediate successors of those that have had so
large experience of those many memorable and signal demonstrations of God's
goodness, viz., the first beginners of this Plantation in New England, to commit
to writing his gracious dispensations on that behalf; having so many inducements
thereunto, not onely otherwise but so plentifully in the Sacred Scriptures: that
so, what we have seen, and what our fathers have told us (Psalm lxxviii. 3, 4),
we may not hide from our children, showing to the generations to come the
praises of the Lord; that especially the seed of Abraham his servant, and the
children of Jacob his chosen (Psalm cv. 5, 6), may remember his marvellous works
in the beginning and progress of the planting of New England, his wonders and
the judgments of his mouth; how that God brought a vine into this wilderness;
that he cast out the heathen, and planted it; that he made room for it and
caused it to take deep root; and it filled the land (Psalm lxxx. 8, 9). And not
onely so, but also that he hath guided his people by his strength to his holy
habitation and planted them in the mountain of his inheritance in respect of
precious Gospel enjoyments: and that as especially God may have the glory of all
unto whom it is most due; so also some rays of glory may reach the names of
those blessed Saints that were the main instruments and the beginning of this
happy enterprise."
It is impossible to read this opening paragraph without an involuntary feeling
of religious awe; it breathes the very savor of Gospel antiquity. The sincerity
of the author heightens his power of language. The band which to his eyes was a
mere party of adventurers gone forth to seek their fortune beyond seas appears
to the reader as the germ of a great nation wafted by Providence to a
predestined shore.
The author thus continues his narrative of the departure of the first pilgrims:—
"So they left that goodly and pleasant city of Leyden, *g which had been their
resting-place for above eleven years; but they knew that they were pilgrims and
strangers here below, and looked not much on these things, but lifted up their
eyes to Heaven, their dearest country, where God hath prepared for them a city
(Heb. xi. 16), and therein quieted their spirits. When they came to Delfs-Haven
they found the ship and all things ready; and such of their friends as could not
come with them followed after them, and sundry came from Amsterdam to see them
shipt, and to take their leaves of them. One night was spent with little sleep
with the most, but with friendly entertainment and Christian discourse, and
other real expressions of true Christian love. The next day they went on board,
and their friends with them, where truly doleful was the sight of that sad and
mournful parting, to hear what sighs and sobs and prayers did sound amongst
them; what tears did gush from every eye, and pithy speeches pierced each
other's heart, that sundry of the Dutch strangers that stood on the Key as
spectators could not refrain from tears. But the tide (which stays for no man)
calling them away, that were thus loth to depart, their Reverend Pastor falling
down on his knees, and they all with him, with watery cheeks commended them with
most fervent prayers unto the Lord and his blessing; and then, with mutual
embraces and many tears they took their leaves one of another, which proved to
be the last leave to many of them."
g
[ The emigrants were, for the most part, godly Christians from the North of
England, who had quitted their native country because they were "studious of
reformation, and entered into covenant to walk with one another according to the
primitive pattern of the Word of God." They emigrated to Holland, and settled in
the city of Leyden in 1610, where they abode, being lovingly respected by the
Dutch, for many years: they left it in 1620 for several reasons, the last of
which was, that their posterity would in a few generations become Dutch, and so
lose their interest in the English nation; they being desirous rather to enlarge
His Majesty's dominions, and to live under their natural prince.—Translator's
Note.]
The emigrants were about 150 in number, including the women and the children.
Their object was to plant a colony on the shores of the Hudson; but after having
been driven about for some time in the Atlantic Ocean, they were forced to land
on that arid coast of New England which is now the site of the town of Plymouth.
The rock is still shown on which the pilgrims disembarked. *h
h
[ This rock is become an object of veneration in the United States. I have seen
bits of it carefully preserved in several towns of the Union. Does not this
sufficiently show how entirely all human power and greatness is in the soul of
man? Here is a stone which the feet of a few outcasts pressed for an instant,
and this stone becomes famous; it is treasured by a great nation, its very dust
is shared as a relic: and what is become of the gateways of a thousand palaces?]
"But before we pass on," continues our historian, "let the reader with me make a
pause and seriously consider this poor people's present condition, the more to
be raised up to admiration of God's goodness towards them in their preservation:
for being now passed the vast ocean, and a sea of troubles before them in
expectation, they had now no friends to welcome them, no inns to entertain or
refresh them, no houses, or much less towns to repair unto to seek for succour:
and for the season it was winter, and they that know the winters of the country
know them to be sharp and violent, subject to cruel and fierce storms, dangerous
to travel to known places, much more to search unknown coasts. Besides, what
could they see but a hideous and desolate wilderness, full of wilde beasts, and
wilde men? and what multitudes of them there were, they then knew not: for which
way soever they turned their eyes (save upward to Heaven) they could have but
little solace or content in respect of any outward object; for summer being
ended, all things stand in appearance with a weather-beaten face, and the whole
country full of woods and thickets, represented a wild and savage hew; if they
looked behind them, there was the mighty ocean which they had passed, and was
now as a main bar or gulph to separate them from all the civil parts of the
world."
It must not be imagined that the piety of the Puritans was of a merely
speculative kind, or that it took no cognizance of the course of worldly
affairs. Puritanism, as I have already remarked, was scarcely less a political
than a religious doctrine. No sooner had the emigrants landed on the barren
coast described by Nathaniel Morton than it was their first care to constitute a
society, by passing the following Act:
"In the name of God. Amen. We, whose names are underwritten, the loyal subjects
of our dread Sovereign Lord King James, etc., etc., Having undertaken for the
glory of God, and advancement of the Christian Faith, and the honour of our King
and country, a voyage to plant the first colony in the northern parts of
Virginia; Do by these presents solemnly and mutually, in the presence of God and
one another, covenant and combine ourselves together into a civil body politick,
for our better ordering and preservation, and furtherance of the ends aforesaid:
and by virtue hereof do enact, constitute and frame such just and equal laws,
ordinances, acts, constitutions, and officers, from time to time, as shall be
thought most meet and convenient for the general good of the Colony: unto which
we promise all due submission and obedience," etc. *i
i
[ The emigrants who founded the State of Rhode Island in 1638, those who landed
at New Haven in 1637, the first settlers in Connecticut in 1639, and the
founders of Providence in 1640, began in like manner by drawing up a social
contract, which was acceded to by all the interested parties. See "Pitkin's
History," pp. 42 and 47.]
This happened in 1620, and from that time forwards the emigration went on. The
religious and political passions which ravaged the British Empire during the
whole reign of Charles I drove fresh crowds of sectarians every year to the
shores of America. In England the stronghold of Puritanism was in the middle
classes, and it was from the middle classes that the majority of the emigrants
came. The population of New England increased rapidly; and whilst the hierarchy
of rank despotically classed the inhabitants of the mother-country, the colony
continued to present the novel spectacle of a community homogeneous in all its
parts. A democracy, more perfect than any which antiquity had dreamt of, started
in full size and panoply from the midst of an ancient feudal society.
Chapter II: Origin Of The Anglo-Americans—Part II
The English Government was not dissatisfied with an emigration which removed the
elements of fresh discord and of further revolutions. On the contrary,
everything was done to encourage it, and great exertions were made to mitigate
the hardships of those who sought a shelter from the rigor of their country's
laws on the soil of America. It seemed as if New England was a region given up
to the dreams of fancy and the unrestrained experiments of innovators.
The English colonies (and this is one of the main causes of their prosperity)
have always enjoyed more internal freedom and more political independence than
the colonies of other nations; but this principle of liberty was nowhere more
extensively applied than in the States of New England.
It was generally allowed at that period that the territories of the New World
belonged to that European nation which had been the first to discover them.
Nearly the whole coast of North America thus became a British possession towards
the end of the sixteenth century. The means used by the English Government to
people these new domains were of several kinds; the King sometimes appointed a
governor of his own choice, who ruled a portion of the New World in the name and
under the immediate orders of the Crown; *j this is the colonial system adopted
by other countries of Europe. Sometimes grants of certain tracts were made by
the Crown to an individual or to a company, *k in which case all the civil and
political power fell into the hands of one or more persons, who, under the
inspection and control of the Crown, sold the lands and governed the
inhabitants. Lastly, a third system consisted in allowing a certain number of
emigrants to constitute a political society under the protection of the
mother-country, and to govern themselves in whatever was not contrary to her
laws. This mode of colonization, so remarkably favorable to liberty, was only
adopted in New England. *l
j
[ This was the case in the State of New York.]
k
[ Maryland, the Carolinas, Pennsylvania, and New Jersey were in this situation.
See "Pitkin's History," vol. i. pp. 11-31.]
l
[ See the work entitled "Historical Collection of State Papers and other
authentic Documents intended as materials for a History of the United States of
America, by Ebenezer Hasard. Philadelphia, 1792," for a great number of
documents relating to the commencement of the colonies, which are valuable from
their contents and their authenticity: amongst them are the various charters
granted by the King of England, and the first acts of the local governments.
See also the analysis of all these charters given by Mr. Story, Judge of the
Supreme Court of the United States, in the Introduction to his "Commentary on
the Constitution of the United States." It results from these documents that the
principles of representative government and the external forms of political
liberty were introduced into all the colonies at their origin. These principles
were more fully acted upon in the North than in the South, but they existed
everywhere.]
In 1628 *m a charter of this kind was granted by Charles I to the emigrants who
went to form the colony of Massachusetts. But, in general, charters were not
given to the colonies of New England till they had acquired a certain existence.
Plymouth, Providence, New Haven, the State of Connecticut, and that of Rhode
Island *n were founded without the co-operation and almost without the knowledge
of the mother-country. The new settlers did not derive their incorporation from
the seat of the empire, although they did not deny its supremacy; they
constituted a society of their own accord, and it was not till thirty or forty
years afterwards, under Charles II. that their existence was legally recognized
by a royal charter.
m
[ See "Pitkin's History," p, 35. See the "History of the Colony of Massachusetts
Bay," by Hutchinson, vol. i. p. 9.] [Footnote n: See "Pitkin's History," pp. 42,
47.]
This frequently renders its it difficult to detect the link which connected the
emigrants with the land of their forefathers in studying the earliest historical
and legislative records of New England. They exercised the rights of
sovereignty; they named their magistrates, concluded peace or declared war, made
police regulations, and enacted laws as if their allegiance was due only to God.
*o Nothing can be more curious and, at the same time more instructive, than the
legislation of that period; it is there that the solution of the great social
problem which the United States now present to the world is to be found.
o
[ The inhabitants of Massachusetts had deviated from the forms which are
preserved in the criminal and civil procedure of England; in 1650 the decrees of
justice were not yet headed by the royal style. See Hutchinson, vol. i. p. 452.]
Amongst these documents we shall notice, as especially characteristic, the code
of laws promulgated by the little State of Connecticut in 1650. *p The
legislators of Connecticut *q begin with the penal laws, and, strange to say,
they borrow their provisions from the text of Holy Writ. "Whosoever shall
worship any other God than the Lord," says the preamble of the Code, "shall
surely be put to death." This is followed by ten or twelve enactments of the
same kind, copied verbatim from the books of Exodus, Leviticus, and Deuteronomy.
Blasphemy, sorcery, adultery, *r and rape were punished with death; an outrage
offered by a son to his parents was to be expiated by the same penalty. The
legislation of a rude and half-civilized people was thus applied to an
enlightened and moral community. The consequence was that the punishment of
death was never more frequently prescribed by the statute, and never more rarely
enforced towards the guilty.
p
[ Code of 1650, p. 28; Hartford, 1830.]
q
[ See also in "Hutchinson's History," vol. i. pp. 435, 456, the analysis of the
penal code adopted in 1648 by the Colony of Massachusetts: this code is drawn up
on the same principles as that of Connecticut.]
r
[ Adultery was also punished with death by the law of Massachusetts: and
Hutchinson, vol. i. p. 441, says that several persons actually suffered for this
crime. He quotes a curious anecdote on this subject, which occurred in the year
1663. A married woman had had criminal intercourse with a young man; her husband
died, and she married the lover. Several years had elapsed, when the public
began to suspect the previous intercourse of this couple: they were thrown into
prison, put upon trial, and very narrowly escaped capital punishment.]
The chief care of the legislators, in this body of penal laws, was the
maintenance of orderly conduct and good morals in the community: they constantly
invaded the domain of conscience, and there was scarcely a sin which was not
subject to magisterial censure. The reader is aware of the rigor with which
these laws punished rape and adultery; intercourse between unmarried persons was
likewise severely repressed. The judge was empowered to inflict a pecuniary
penalty, a whipping, or marriage *s on the misdemeanants; and if the records of
the old courts of New Haven may be believed, prosecutions of this kind were not
unfrequent. We find a sentence bearing date the first of May, 1660, inflicting a
fine and reprimand on a young woman who was accused of using improper language,
and of allowing herself to be kissed. *t The Code of 1650 abounds in preventive
measures. It punishes idleness and drunkenness with severity. *u Innkeepers are
forbidden to furnish more than a certain quantity of liquor to each consumer;
and simple lying, whenever it may be injurious, *v is checked by a fine or a
flogging. In other places, the legislator, entirely forgetting the great
principles of religious toleration which he had himself upheld in Europe,
renders attendance on divine service compulsory, *w and goes so far as to visit
with severe punishment, ** and even with death, the Christians who chose to
worship God according to a ritual differing from his own. *x Sometimes indeed
the zeal of his enactments induces him to descend to the most frivolous
particulars: thus a law is to be found in the same Code which prohibits the use
of tobacco. *y It must not be forgotten that these fantastical and vexatious
laws were not imposed by authority, but that they were freely voted by all the
persons interested, and that the manners of the community were even more austere
and more puritanical than the laws. In 1649 a solemn association was formed in
Boston to check the worldly luxury of long hair. *z
s
[ Code of 1650, p. 48. It seems sometimes to have happened that the judges
superadded these punishments to each other, as is seen in a sentence pronounced
in 1643 (p. 114, "New Haven Antiquities"), by which Margaret Bedford, convicted
of loose conduct, was condemned to be whipped, and afterwards to marry Nicholas
Jemmings, her accomplice.]
t
[ "New Haven Antiquities," p. 104. See also "Hutchinson's History," for several
causes equally extraordinary.]
u
[ Code of 1650, pp. 50, 57.]
v
[ Ibid., p. 64.]
w
[ Ibid., p. 44.]
*
[ This was not peculiar to Connecticut. See, for instance, the law which, on
September 13, 1644, banished the Anabaptists from the State of Massachusetts.
("Historical Collection of State Papers," vol. i. p. 538.) See also the law
against the Quakers, passed on October 14, 1656: "Whereas," says the preamble,
"an accursed race of heretics called Quakers has sprung up," etc. The clauses of
the statute inflict a heavy fine on all captains of ships who should import
Quakers into the country. The Quakers who may be found there shall be whipped
and imprisoned with hard labor. Those members of the sect who should defend
their opinions shall be first fined, then imprisoned, and finally driven out of
the province.—"Historical Collection of State Papers," vol. i. p. 630.]
x
[ By the penal law of Massachusetts, any Catholic priest who should set foot in
the colony after having been once driven out of it was liable to capital
punishment.]
y
[ Code of 1650, p. 96.]
z
[ "New England's Memorial," p. 316. See Appendix, E.]
These errors are no doubt discreditable to human reason; they attest the
inferiority of our nature, which is incapable of laying firm hold upon what is
true and just, and is often reduced to the alternative of two excesses. In
strict connection with this penal legislation, which bears such striking marks
of a narrow sectarian spirit, and of those religious passions which had been
warmed by persecution and were still fermenting among the people, a body of
political laws is to be found, which, though written two hundred years ago, is
still ahead of the liberties of our age. The general principles which are the
groundwork of modern constitutions—principles which were imperfectly known in
Europe, and not completely triumphant even in Great Britain, in the seventeenth
century—were all recognized and determined by the laws of New England: the
intervention of the people in public affairs, the free voting of taxes, the
responsibility of authorities, personal liberty, and trial by jury, were all
positively established without discussion. From these fruitful principles
consequences have been derived and applications have been made such as no nation
in Europe has yet ventured to attempt.
In Connecticut the electoral body consisted, from its origin, of the whole
number of citizens; and this is readily to be understood, *a when we recollect
that this people enjoyed an almost perfect equality of fortune, and a still
greater uniformity of opinions. *b In Connecticut, at this period, all the
executive functionaries were elected, including the Governor of the State. *c
The citizens above the age of sixteen were obliged to bear arms; they formed a
national militia, which appointed its own officers, and was to hold itself at
all times in readiness to march for the defence of the country. *d
a
[ Constitution of 1638, p. 17.]
b
[ In 1641 the General Assembly of Rhode Island unanimously declared that the
government of the State was a democracy, and that the power was vested in the
body of free citizens, who alone had the right to make the laws and to watch
their execution.—Code of 1650, p. 70.]
c
[ "Pitkin's History," p. 47.]
d
[ Constitution of 1638, p. 12.]
In the laws of Connecticut, as well as in all those of New England, we find the
germ and gradual development of that township independence which is the life and
mainspring of American liberty at the present day. The political existence of
the majority of the nations of Europe commenced in the superior ranks of
society, and was gradually and imperfectly communicated to the different members
of the social body. In America, on the other hand, it may be said that the
township was organized before the county, the county before the State, the State
before the Union. In New England townships were completely and definitively
constituted as early as 1650. The independence of the township was the nucleus
round which the local interests, passions, rights, and duties collected and
clung. It gave scope to the activity of a real political life most thoroughly
democratic and republican. The colonies still recognized the supremacy of the
mother-country; monarchy was still the law of the State; but the republic was
already established in every township. The towns named their own magistrates of
every kind, rated themselves, and levied their own taxes. *e In the parish of
New England the law of representation was not adopted, but the affairs of the
community were discussed, as at Athens, in the market-place, by a general
assembly of the citizens.
e
[ Code of 1650, p. 80.]
In studying the laws which were promulgated at this first era of the American
republics, it is impossible not to be struck by the remarkable acquaintance with
the science of government and the advanced theory of legislation which they
display. The ideas there formed of the duties of society towards its members are
evidently much loftier and more comprehensive than those of the European
legislators at that time: obligations were there imposed which were elsewhere
slighted. In the States of New England, from the first, the condition of the
poor was provided for; *f strict measures were taken for the maintenance of
roads, and surveyors were appointed to attend to them; *g registers were
established in every parish, in which the results of public deliberations, and
the births, deaths, and marriages of the citizens were entered; *h clerks were
directed to keep these registers; *i officers were charged with the
administration of vacant inheritances, and with the arbitration of litigated
landmarks; and many others were created whose chief functions were the
maintenance of public order in the community. *j The law enters into a thousand
useful provisions for a number of social wants which are at present very
inadequately felt in France. [Footnote f: Ibid., p. 78.]
g
[ Ibid., p. 49.]
h
[ See "Hutchinson's History," vol. i. p. 455.]
i
[ Code of 1650, p. 86.]
j
[ Ibid., p. 40.]
But it is by the attention it pays to Public Education that the original
character of American civilization is at once placed in the clearest light. "It
being," says the law, "one chief project of Satan to keep men from the knowledge
of the Scripture by persuading from the use of tongues, to the end that learning
may not be buried in the graves of our forefathers, in church and commonwealth,
the Lord assisting our endeavors. . . ." *k Here follow clauses establishing
schools in every township, and obliging the inhabitants, under pain of heavy
fines, to support them. Schools of a superior kind were founded in the same
manner in the more populous districts. The municipal authorities were bound to
enforce the sending of children to school by their parents; they were empowered
to inflict fines upon all who refused compliance; and in case of continued
resistance society assumed the place of the parent, took possession of the
child, and deprived the father of those natural rights which he used to so bad a
purpose. The reader will undoubtedly have remarked the preamble of these
enactments: in America religion is the road to knowledge, and the observance of
the divine laws leads man to civil freedom.
k
[ Ibid., p. 90.]
If, after having cast a rapid glance over the state of American society in 1650,
we turn to the condition of Europe, and more especially to that of the
Continent, at the same period, we cannot fail to be struck with astonishment. On
the Continent of Europe, at the beginning of the seventeenth century, absolute
monarchy had everywhere triumphed over the ruins of the oligarchical and feudal
liberties of the Middle Ages. Never were the notions of right more completely
confounded than in the midst of the splendor and literature of Europe; never was
there less political activity among the people; never were the principles of
true freedom less widely circulated; and at that very time those principles,
which were scorned or unknown by the nations of Europe, were proclaimed in the
deserts of the New World, and were accepted as the future creed of a great
people. The boldest theories of the human reason were put into practice by a
community so humble that not a statesman condescended to attend to it; and a
legislation without a precedent was produced offhand by the imagination of the
citizens. In the bosom of this obscure democracy, which had as yet brought forth
neither generals, nor philosophers, nor authors, a man might stand up in the
face of a free people and pronounce the following fine definition of liberty. *l
l
[ Mather's "Magnalia Christi Americana," vol. ii. p. 13. This speech was made by
Winthrop; he was accused of having committed arbitrary actions during his
magistracy, but after having made the speech of which the above is a fragment,
he was acquitted by acclamation, and from that time forwards he was always
re-elected governor of the State. See Marshal, vol. i. p. 166.]
"Nor would I have you to mistake in the point of your own liberty. There is a
liberty of a corrupt nature which is effected both by men and beasts to do what
they list, and this liberty is inconsistent with authority, impatient of all
restraint; by this liberty 'sumus omnes deteriores': 'tis the grand enemy of
truth and peace, and all the ordinances of God are bent against it. But there is
a civil, a moral, a federal liberty which is the proper end and object of
authority; it is a liberty for that only which is just and good: for this
liberty you are to stand with the hazard of your very lives and whatsoever
crosses it is not authority, but a distemper thereof. This liberty is maintained
in a way of subjection to authority; and the authority set over you will, in all
administrations for your good, be quietly submitted unto by all but such as have
a disposition to shake off the yoke and lose their true liberty, by their
murmuring at the honor and power of authority."
The remarks I have made will suffice to display the character of Anglo-American
civilization in its true light. It is the result (and this should be constantly
present to the mind of two distinct elements), which in other places have been
in frequent hostility, but which in America have been admirably incorporated and
combined with one another. I allude to the spirit of Religion and the spirit of
Liberty.
The settlers of New England were at the same time ardent sectarians and daring
innovators. Narrow as the limits of some of their religious opinions were, they
were entirely free from political prejudices. Hence arose two tendencies,
distinct but not opposite, which are constantly discernible in the manners as
well as in the laws of the country.
It might be imagined that men who sacrificed their friends, their family, and
their native land to a religious conviction were absorbed in the pursuit of the
intellectual advantages which they purchased at so dear a rate. The energy,
however, with which they strove for the acquirement of wealth, moral enjoyment,
and the comforts as well as liberties of the world, is scarcely inferior to that
with which they devoted themselves to Heaven.
Political principles and all human laws and institutions were moulded and
altered at their pleasure; the barriers of the society in which they were born
were broken down before them; the old principles which had governed the world
for ages were no more; a path without a turn and a field without an horizon were
opened to the exploring and ardent curiosity of man: but at the limits of the
political world he checks his researches, he discreetly lays aside the use of
his most formidable faculties, he no longer consents to doubt or to innovate,
but carefully abstaining from raising the curtain of the sanctuary, he yields
with submissive respect to truths which he will not discuss. Thus, in the moral
world everything is classed, adapted, decided, and foreseen; in the political
world everything is agitated, uncertain, and disputed: in the one is a passive,
though a voluntary, obedience; in the other an independence scornful of
experience and jealous of authority.
These two tendencies, apparently so discrepant, are far from conflicting; they
advance together, and mutually support each other. Religion perceives that civil
liberty affords a noble exercise to the faculties of man, and that the political
world is a field prepared by the Creator for the efforts of the intelligence.
Contented with the freedom and the power which it enjoys in its own sphere, and
with the place which it occupies, the empire of religion is never more surely
established than when it reigns in the hearts of men unsupported by aught beside
its native strength. Religion is no less the companion of liberty in all its
battles and its triumphs; the cradle of its infancy, and the divine source of
its claims. The safeguard of morality is religion, and morality is the best
security of law and the surest pledge of freedom. *m
m
[ See Appendix, F.]
Reasons Of Certain Anomalies Which The Laws And Customs Of The Anglo-Americans
Present
Remains of aristocratic institutions in the midst of a complete
democracy—Why?—Distinction carefully to be drawn between what is of Puritanical
and what is of English origin.
The reader is cautioned not to draw too general or too absolute an inference
from what has been said. The social condition, the religion, and the manners of
the first emigrants undoubtedly exercised an immense influence on the destiny of
their new country. Nevertheless they were not in a situation to found a state of
things solely dependent on themselves: no man can entirely shake off the
influence of the past, and the settlers, intentionally or involuntarily, mingled
habits and notions derived from their education and from the traditions of their
country with those habits and notions which were exclusively their own. To form
a judgment on the Anglo-Americans of the present day it is therefore necessary
to distinguish what is of Puritanical and what is of English origin.
Laws and customs are frequently to be met with in the United States which
contrast strongly with all that surrounds them. These laws seem to be drawn up
in a spirit contrary to the prevailing tenor of the American legislation; and
these customs are no less opposed to the tone of society. If the English
colonies had been founded in an age of darkness, or if their origin was already
lost in the lapse of years, the problem would be insoluble.
I shall quote a single example to illustrate what I advance. The civil and
criminal procedure of the Americans has only two means of action—committal and
bail. The first measure taken by the magistrate is to exact security from the
defendant, or, in case of refusal, to incarcerate him: the ground of the
accusation and the importance of the charges against him are then discussed. It
is evident that a legislation of this kind is hostile to the poor man, and
favorable only to the rich. The poor man has not always a security to produce,
even in a civil cause; and if he is obliged to wait for justice in prison, he is
speedily reduced to distress. The wealthy individual, on the contrary, always
escapes imprisonment in civil causes; nay, more, he may readily elude the
punishment which awaits him for a delinquency by breaking his bail. So that all
the penalties of the law are, for him, reducible to fines. *n Nothing can be
more aristocratic than this system of legislation. Yet in America it is the poor
who make the law, and they usually reserve the greatest social advantages to
themselves. The explanation of the phenomenon is to be found in England; the
laws of which I speak are English, *o and the Americans have retained them,
however repugnant they may be to the tenor of their legislation and the mass of
their ideas. Next to its habits, the thing which a nation is least apt to change
is its civil legislation. Civil laws are only familiarly known to legal men,
whose direct interest it is to maintain them as they are, whether good or bad,
simply because they themselves are conversant with them. The body of the nation
is scarcely acquainted with them; it merely perceives their action in particular
cases; but it has some difficulty in seizing their tendency, and obeys them
without premeditation. I have quoted one instance where it would have been easy
to adduce a great number of others. The surface of American society is, if I may
use the expression, covered with a layer of democracy, from beneath which the
old aristocratic colors sometimes peep.
n
[ Crimes no doubt exist for which bail is inadmissible, but they are few in
number.]
o
[ See Blackstone; and Delolme, book I chap. x.]
Chapter III: Social Conditions Of The Anglo-Americans
Chapter Summary
A Social condition is commonly the result of circumstances, sometimes of laws,
oftener still of these two causes united; but wherever it exists, it may justly
be considered as the source of almost all the laws, the usages, and the ideas
which regulate the conduct of nations; whatever it does not produce it modifies.
It is therefore necessary, if we would become acquainted with the legislation
and the manners of a nation, to begin by the study of its social condition.
The Striking Characteristic Of The Social Condition Of The Anglo-Americans In
Its Essential Democracy.
The first emigrants of New England—Their equality—Aristocratic laws introduced
in the South—Period of the Revolution—Change in the law of descent—Effects
produced by this change—Democracy carried to its utmost limits in the new States
of the West—Equality of education.
Many important observations suggest themselves upon the social condition of the
Anglo-Americans, but there is one which takes precedence of all the rest. The
social condition of the Americans is eminently democratic; this was its
character at the foundation of the Colonies, and is still more strongly marked
at the present day. I have stated in the preceding chapter that great equality
existed among the emigrants who settled on the shores of New England. The germ
of aristocracy was never planted in that part of the Union. The only influence
which obtained there was that of intellect; the people were used to reverence
certain names as the emblems of knowledge and virtue. Some of their
fellow-citizens acquired a power over the rest which might truly have been
called aristocratic, if it had been capable of transmission from father to son.
This was the state of things to the east of the Hudson: to the south-west of
that river, and in the direction of the Floridas, the case was different. In
most of the States situated to the south-west of the Hudson some great English
proprietors had settled, who had imported with them aristocratic principles and
the English law of descent. I have explained the reasons why it was impossible
ever to establish a powerful aristocracy in America; these reasons existed with
less force to the south-west of the Hudson. In the South, one man, aided by
slaves, could cultivate a great extent of country: it was therefore common to
see rich landed proprietors. But their influence was not altogether aristocratic
as that term is understood in Europe, since they possessed no privileges; and
the cultivation of their estates being carried on by slaves, they had no tenants
depending on them, and consequently no patronage. Still, the great proprietors
south of the Hudson constituted a superior class, having ideas and tastes of its
own, and forming the centre of political action. This kind of aristocracy
sympathized with the body of the people, whose passions and interests it easily
embraced; but it was too weak and too short-lived to excite either love or
hatred for itself. This was the class which headed the insurrection in the
South, and furnished the best leaders of the American revolution.
At the period of which we are now speaking society was shaken to its centre: the
people, in whose name the struggle had taken place, conceived the desire of
exercising the authority which it had acquired; its democratic tendencies were
awakened; and having thrown off the yoke of the mother-country, it aspired to
independence of every kind. The influence of individuals gradually ceased to be
felt, and custom and law united together to produce the same result.
But the law of descent was the last step to equality. I am surprised that
ancient and modern jurists have not attributed to this law a greater influence
on human affairs. *a It is true that these laws belong to civil affairs; but
they ought nevertheless to be placed at the head of all political institutions;
for, whilst political laws are only the symbol of a nation's condition, they
exercise an incredible influence upon its social state. They have, moreover, a
sure and uniform manner of operating upon society, affecting, as it were,
generations yet unborn.
a
[ I understand by the law of descent all those laws whose principal object is to
regulate the distribution of property after the death of its owner. The law of
entail is of this number; it certainly prevents the owner from disposing of his
possessions before his death; but this is solely with the view of preserving
them entire for the heir. The principal object, therefore, of the law of entail
is to regulate the descent of property after the death of its owner: its other
provisions are merely means to this end.]
Through their means man acquires a kind of preternatural power over the future
lot of his fellow-creatures. When the legislator has regulated the law of
inheritance, he may rest from his labor. The machine once put in motion will go
on for ages, and advance, as if self-guided, towards a given point. When framed
in a particular manner, this law unites, draws together, and vests property and
power in a few hands: its tendency is clearly aristocratic. On opposite
principles its action is still more rapid; it divides, distributes, and
disperses both property and power. Alarmed by the rapidity of its progress,
those who despair of arresting its motion endeavor to obstruct it by
difficulties and impediments; they vainly seek to counteract its effect by
contrary efforts; but it gradually reduces or destroys every obstacle, until by
its incessant activity the bulwarks of the influence of wealth are ground down
to the fine and shifting sand which is the basis of democracy. When the law of
inheritance permits, still more when it decrees, the equal division of a
father's property amongst all his children, its effects are of two kinds: it is
important to distinguish them from each other, although they tend to the same
end.
In virtue of the law of partible inheritance, the death of every proprietor
brings about a kind of revolution in property; not only do his possessions
change hands, but their very nature is altered, since they are parcelled into
shares, which become smaller and smaller at each division. This is the direct
and, as it were, the physical effect of the law. It follows, then, that in
countries where equality of inheritance is established by law, property, and
especially landed property, must have a tendency to perpetual diminution. The
effects, however, of such legislation would only be perceptible after a lapse of
time, if the law was abandoned to its own working; for supposing the family to
consist of two children (and in a country people as France is the average number
is not above three), these children, sharing amongst them the fortune of both
parents, would not be poorer than their father or mother.
But the law of equal division exercises its influence not merely upon the
property itself, but it affects the minds of the heirs, and brings their
passions into play. These indirect consequences tend powerfully to the
destruction of large fortunes, and especially of large domains. Among nations
whose law of descent is founded upon the right of primogeniture landed estates
often pass from generation to generation without undergoing division, the
consequence of which is that family feeling is to a certain degree incorporated
with the estate. The family represents the estate, the estate the family; whose
name, together with its origin, its glory, its power, and its virtues, is thus
perpetuated in an imperishable memorial of the past and a sure pledge of the
future.
When the equal partition of property is established by law, the intimate
connection is destroyed between family feeling and the preservation of the
paternal estate; the property ceases to represent the family; for as it must
inevitably be divided after one or two generations, it has evidently a constant
tendency to diminish, and must in the end be completely dispersed. The sons of
the great landed proprietor, if they are few in number, or if fortune befriends
them, may indeed entertain the hope of being as wealthy as their father, but not
that of possessing the same property as he did; the riches must necessarily be
composed of elements different from his.
Now, from the moment that you divest the landowner of that interest in the
preservation of his estate which he derives from association, from tradition,
and from family pride, you may be certain that sooner or later he will dispose
of it; for there is a strong pecuniary interest in favor of selling, as floating
capital produces higher interest than real property, and is more readily
available to gratify the passions of the moment.
Great landed estates which have once been divided never come together again; for
the small proprietor draws from his land a better revenue, in proportion, than
the large owner does from his, and of course he sells it at a higher rate. *b
The calculations of gain, therefore, which decide the rich man to sell his
domain will still more powerfully influence him against buying small estates to
unite them into a large one.
b
[ I do not mean to say that the small proprietor cultivates his land better, but
he cultivates it with more ardor and care; so that he makes up by his labor for
his want of skill.]
What is called family pride is often founded upon an illusion of self-love. A
man wishes to perpetuate and immortalize himself, as it were, in his
great-grandchildren. Where the esprit de famille ceases to act individual
selfishness comes into play. When the idea of family becomes vague,
indeterminate, and uncertain, a man thinks of his present convenience; he
provides for the establishment of his succeeding generation, and no more. Either
a man gives up the idea of perpetuating his family, or at any rate he seeks to
accomplish it by other means than that of a landed estate. Thus not only does
the law of partible inheritance render it difficult for families to preserve
their ancestral domains entire, but it deprives them of the inclination to
attempt it, and compels them in some measure to co-operate with the law in their
own extinction.
The law of equal distribution proceeds by two methods: by acting upon things, it
acts upon persons; by influencing persons, it affects things. By these means the
law succeeds in striking at the root of landed property, and dispersing rapidly
both families and fortunes. *c
c
[ Land being the most stable kind of property, we find, from time to time, rich
individuals who are disposed to make great sacrifices in order to obtain it, and
who willingly forfeit a considerable part of their income to make sure of the
rest. But these are accidental cases. The preference for landed property is no
longer found habitually in any class but among the poor. The small landowner,
who has less information, less imagination, and fewer passions than the great
one, is generally occupied with the desire of increasing his estate: and it
often happens that by inheritance, by marriage, or by the chances of trade, he
is gradually furnished with the means. Thus, to balance the tendency which leads
men to divide their estates, there exists another, which incites them to add to
them. This tendency, which is sufficient to prevent estates from being divided
ad infinitum, is not strong enough to create great territorial possessions,
certainly not to keep them up in the same family.]
Most certainly it is not for us Frenchmen of the nineteenth century, who daily
witness the political and social changes which the law of partition is bringing
to pass, to question its influence. It is perpetually conspicuous in our
country, overthrowing the walls of our dwellings and removing the landmarks of
our fields. But although it has produced great effects in France, much still
remains for it to do. Our recollections, opinions, and habits present powerful
obstacles to its progress.
In the United States it has nearly completed its work of destruction, and there
we can best study its results. The English laws concerning the transmission of
property were abolished in almost all the States at the time of the Revolution.
The law of entail was so modified as not to interrupt the free circulation of
property. *d The first generation having passed away, estates began to be
parcelled out, and the change became more and more rapid with the progress of
time. At this moment, after a lapse of a little more than sixty years, the
aspect of society is totally altered; the families of the great landed
proprietors are almost all commingled with the general mass. In the State of New
York, which formerly contained many of these, there are but two who still keep
their heads above the stream, and they must shortly disappear. The sons of these
opulent citizens are become merchants, lawyers, or physicians. Most of them have
lapsed into obscurity. The last trace of hereditary ranks and distinctions is
destroyed—the law of partition has reduced all to one level. [Footnote d: See
Appendix, G.]
I do not mean that there is any deficiency of wealthy individuals in the United
States; I know of no country, indeed, where the love of money has taken stronger
hold on the affections of men, and where the profounder contempt is expressed
for the theory of the permanent equality of property. But wealth circulates with
inconceivable rapidity, and experience shows that it is rare to find two
succeeding generations in the full enjoyment of it.
This picture, which may perhaps be thought to be overcharged, still gives a very
imperfect idea of what is taking place in the new States of the West and
South-west. At the end of the last century a few bold adventurers began to
penetrate into the valleys of the Mississippi, and the mass of the population
very soon began to move in that direction: communities unheard of till then were
seen to emerge from the wilds: States whose names were not in existence a few
years before claimed their place in the American Union; and in the Western
settlements we may behold democracy arrived at its utmost extreme. In these
States, founded off-hand, and, as it were, by chance, the inhabitants are but of
yesterday. Scarcely known to one another, the nearest neighbors are ignorant of
each other's history. In this part of the American continent, therefore, the
population has not experienced the influence of great names and great wealth,
nor even that of the natural aristocracy of knowledge and virtue. None are there
to wield that respectable power which men willingly grant to the remembrance of
a life spent in doing good before their eyes. The new States of the West are
already inhabited, but society has no existence among them. *e
e
[ This may have been true in 1832, but is not so in 1874, when great cities like
Chicago and San Francisco have sprung up in the Western States. But as yet the
Western States exert no powerful influence on American society.—-Translator's
Note.]
It is not only the fortunes of men which are equal in America; even their
requirements partake in some degree of the same uniformity. I do not believe
that there is a country in the world where, in proportion to the population,
there are so few uninstructed and at the same time so few learned individuals.
Primary instruction is within the reach of everybody; superior instruction is
scarcely to be obtained by any. This is not surprising; it is in fact the
necessary consequence of what we have advanced above. Almost all the Americans
are in easy circumstances, and can therefore obtain the first elements of human
knowledge.
In America there are comparatively few who are rich enough to live without a
profession. Every profession requires an apprenticeship, which limits the time
of instruction to the early years of life. At fifteen they enter upon their
calling, and thus their education ends at the age when ours begins. Whatever is
done afterwards is with a view to some special and lucrative object; a science
is taken up as a matter of business, and the only branch of it which is attended
to is such as admits of an immediate practical application. In America most of
the rich men were formerly poor; most of those who now enjoy leisure were
absorbed in business during their youth; the consequence of which is, that when
they might have had a taste for study they had no time for it, and when time is
at their disposal they have no longer the inclination.
There is no class, then, in America, in which the taste for intellectual
pleasures is transmitted with hereditary fortune and leisure, and by which the
labors of the intellect are held in honor. Accordingly there is an equal want of
the desire and the power of application to these objects.
A middle standard is fixed in America for human knowledge. All approach as near
to it as they can; some as they rise, others as they descend. Of course, an
immense multitude of persons are to be found who entertain the same number of
ideas on religion, history, science, political economy, legislation, and
government. The gifts of intellect proceed directly from God, and man cannot
prevent their unequal distribution. But in consequence of the state of things
which we have here represented it happens that, although the capacities of men
are widely different, as the Creator has doubtless intended they should be, they
are submitted to the same method of treatment.
In America the aristocratic element has always been feeble from its birth; and
if at the present day it is not actually destroyed, it is at any rate so
completely disabled that we can scarcely assign to it any degree of influence in
the course of affairs. The democratic principle, on the contrary, has gained so
much strength by time, by events, and by legislation, as to have become not only
predominant but all-powerful. There is no family or corporate authority, and it
is rare to find even the influence of individual character enjoy any durability.
America, then, exhibits in her social state a most extraordinary phenomenon. Men
are there seen on a greater equality in point of fortune and intellect, or, in
other words, more equal in their strength, than in any other country of the
world, or in any age of which history has preserved the remembrance.
Political Consequences Of The Social Condition Of The Anglo-Americans
The political consequences of such a social condition as this are easily
deducible. It is impossible to believe that equality will not eventually find
its way into the political world as it does everywhere else. To conceive of men
remaining forever unequal upon one single point, yet equal on all others, is
impossible; they must come in the end to be equal upon all. Now I know of only
two methods of establishing equality in the political world; every citizen must
be put in possession of his rights, or rights must be granted to no one. For
nations which are arrived at the same stage of social existence as the
Anglo-Americans, it is therefore very difficult to discover a medium between the
sovereignty of all and the absolute power of one man: and it would be vain to
deny that the social condition which I have been describing is equally liable to
each of these consequences.
There is, in fact, a manly and lawful passion for equality which excites men to
wish all to be powerful and honored. This passion tends to elevate the humble to
the rank of the great; but there exists also in the human heart a depraved taste
for equality, which impels the weak to attempt to lower the powerful to their
own level, and reduces men to prefer equality in slavery to inequality with
freedom. Not that those nations whose social condition is democratic naturally
despise liberty; on the contrary, they have an instinctive love of it. But
liberty is not the chief and constant object of their desires; equality is their
idol: they make rapid and sudden efforts to obtain liberty, and if they miss
their aim resign themselves to their disappointment; but nothing can satisfy
them except equality, and rather than lose it they resolve to perish.
On the other hand, in a State where the citizens are nearly on an equality, it
becomes difficult for them to preserve their independence against the
aggressions of power. No one among them being strong enough to engage in the
struggle with advantage, nothing but a general combination can protect their
liberty. And such a union is not always to be found.
From the same social position, then, nations may derive one or the other of two
great political results; these results are extremely different from each other,
but they may both proceed from the same cause.
The Anglo-Americans are the first nations who, having been exposed to this
formidable alternative, have been happy enough to escape the dominion of
absolute power. They have been allowed by their circumstances, their origin,
their intelligence, and especially by their moral feeling, to establish and
maintain the sovereignty of the people.
Chapter IV: The Principle Of The Sovereignty Of The People In America
Chapter Summary
It predominates over the whole of society in America—Application made of this
principle by the Americans even before their Revolution—Development given to it
by that Revolution—Gradual and irresistible extension of the elective
qualification.
The Principle Of The Sovereignty Of The People In America
Whenever the political laws of the United States are to be discussed, it is with
the doctrine of the sovereignty of the people that we must begin. The principle
of the sovereignty of the people, which is to be found, more or less, at the
bottom of almost all human institutions, generally remains concealed from view.
It is obeyed without being recognized, or if for a moment it be brought to
light, it is hastily cast back into the gloom of the sanctuary. "The will of the
nation" is one of those expressions which have been most profusely abused by the
wily and the despotic of every age. To the eyes of some it has been represented
by the venal suffrages of a few of the satellites of power; to others by the
votes of a timid or an interested minority; and some have even discovered it in
the silence of a people, on the supposition that the fact of submission
established the right of command.
In America the principle of the sovereignty of the people is not either barren
or concealed, as it is with some other nations; it is recognized by the customs
and proclaimed by the laws; it spreads freely, and arrives without impediment at
its most remote consequences. If there be a country in the world where the
doctrine of the sovereignty of the people can be fairly appreciated, where it
can be studied in its application to the affairs of society, and where its
dangers and its advantages may be foreseen, that country is assuredly America.
I have already observed that, from their origin, the sovereignty of the people
was the fundamental principle of the greater number of British colonies in
America. It was far, however, from then exercising as much influence on the
government of society as it now does. Two obstacles, the one external, the other
internal, checked its invasive progress. It could not ostensibly disclose itself
in the laws of colonies which were still constrained to obey the mother-country:
it was therefore obliged to spread secretly, and to gain ground in the
provincial assemblies, and especially in the townships.
American society was not yet prepared to adopt it with all its consequences. The
intelligence of New England, and the wealth of the country to the south of the
Hudson (as I have shown in the preceding chapter), long exercised a sort of
aristocratic influence, which tended to retain the exercise of social authority
in the hands of a few. The public functionaries were not universally elected,
and the citizens were not all of them electors. The electoral franchise was
everywhere placed within certain limits, and made dependent on a certain
qualification, which was exceedingly low in the North and more considerable in
the South.
The American revolution broke out, and the doctrine of the sovereignty of the
people, which had been nurtured in the townships and municipalities, took
possession of the State: every class was enlisted in its cause; battles were
fought, and victories obtained for it, until it became the law of laws.
A no less rapid change was effected in the interior of society, where the law of
descent completed the abolition of local influences.
At the very time when this consequence of the laws and of the revolution was
apparent to every eye, victory was irrevocably pronounced in favor of the
democratic cause. All power was, in fact, in its hands, and resistance was no
longer possible. The higher orders submitted without a murmur and without a
struggle to an evil which was thenceforth inevitable. The ordinary fate of
falling powers awaited them; each of their several members followed his own
interests; and as it was impossible to wring the power from the hands of a
people which they did not detest sufficiently to brave, their only aim was to
secure its good-will at any price. The most democratic laws were consequently
voted by the very men whose interests they impaired; and thus, although the
higher classes did not excite the passions of the people against their order,
they accelerated the triumph of the new state of things; so that by a singular
change the democratic impulse was found to be most irresistible in the very
States where the aristocracy had the firmest hold. The State of Maryland, which
had been founded by men of rank, was the first to proclaim universal suffrage,
and to introduce the most democratic forms into the conduct of its government.
When a nation modifies the elective qualification, it may easily be foreseen
that sooner or later that qualification will be entirely abolished. There is no
more invariable rule in the history of society: the further electoral rights are
extended, the greater is the need of extending them; for after each concession
the strength of the democracy increases, and its demands increase with its
strength. The ambition of those who are below the appointed rate is irritated in
exact proportion to the great number of those who are above it. The exception at
last becomes the rule, concession follows concession, and no stop can be made
short of universal suffrage.
At the present day the principle of the sovereignty of the people has acquired,
in the United States, all the practical development which the imagination can
conceive. It is unencumbered by those fictions which have been thrown over it in
other countries, and it appears in every possible form according to the exigency
of the occasion. Sometimes the laws are made by the people in a body, as at
Athens; and sometimes its representatives, chosen by universal suffrage,
transact business in its name, and almost under its immediate control.
In some countries a power exists which, though it is in a degree foreign to the
social body, directs it, and forces it to pursue a certain track. In others the
ruling force is divided, being partly within and partly without the ranks of the
people. But nothing of the kind is to be seen in the United States; there
society governs itself for itself. All power centres in its bosom; and scarcely
an individual is to be meet with who would venture to conceive, or, still less,
to express, the idea of seeking it elsewhere. The nation participates in the
making of its laws by the choice of its legislators, and in the execution of
them by the choice of the agents of the executive government; it may almost be
said to govern itself, so feeble and so restricted is the share left to the
administration, so little do the authorities forget their popular origin and the
power from which they emanate. *a [Footnote a: See Appendix, H.]
Chapter V: Necessity Of Examining The Condition Of The States—Part I
Necessity Of Examining The Condition Of The States Before That Of The Union At
Large.
It is proposed to examine in the following chapter what is the form of
government established in America on the principle of the sovereignty of the
people; what are its resources, its hindrances, its advantages, and its dangers.
The first difficulty which presents itself arises from the complex nature of the
constitution of the United States, which consists of two distinct social
structures, connected and, as it were, encased one within the other; two
governments, completely separate and almost independent, the one fulfilling the
ordinary duties and responding to the daily and indefinite calls of a community,
the other circumscribed within certain limits, and only exercising an
exceptional authority over the general interests of the country. In short, there
are twenty-four small sovereign nations, whose agglomeration constitutes the
body of the Union. To examine the Union before we have studied the States would
be to adopt a method filled with obstacles. The form of the Federal Government
of the United States was the last which was adopted; and it is in fact nothing
more than a modification or a summary of those republican principles which were
current in the whole community before it existed, and independently of its
existence. Moreover, the Federal Government is, as I have just observed, the
exception; the Government of the States is the rule. The author who should
attempt to exhibit the picture as a whole before he had explained its details
would necessarily fall into obscurity and repetition.
The great political principles which govern American society at this day
undoubtedly took their origin and their growth in the State. It is therefore
necessary to become acquainted with the State in order to possess a clue to the
remainder. The States which at present compose the American Union all present
the same features, as far as regards the external aspect of their institutions.
Their political or administrative existence is centred in three focuses of
action, which may not inaptly be compared to the different nervous centres which
convey motion to the human body. The township is the lowest in order, then the
county, and lastly the State; and I propose to devote the following chapter to
the examination of these three divisions.
The American System Of Townships And Municipal Bodies
Why the Author begins the examination of the political institutions with the
township—Its existence in all nations—Difficulty of establishing and preserving
municipal independence—Its importance—Why the Author has selected the township
system of New England as the main topic of his discussion.
It is not undesignedly that I begin this subject with the Township. The village
or township is the only association which is so perfectly natural that wherever
a number of men are collected it seems to constitute itself.
The town, or tithing, as the smallest division of a community, must necessarily
exist in all nations, whatever their laws and customs may be: if man makes
monarchies and establishes republics, the first association of mankind seems
constituted by the hand of God. But although the existence of the township is
coeval with that of man, its liberties are not the less rarely respected and
easily destroyed. A nation is always able to establish great political
assemblies, because it habitually contains a certain number of individuals
fitted by their talents, if not by their habits, for the direction of affairs.
The township is, on the contrary, composed of coarser materials, which are less
easily fashioned by the legislator. The difficulties which attend the
consolidation of its independence rather augment than diminish with the
increasing enlightenment of the people. A highly civilized community spurns the
attempts of a local independence, is disgusted at its numerous blunders, and is
apt to despair of success before the experiment is completed. Again, no
immunities are so ill protected from the encroachments of the supreme power as
those of municipal bodies in general: they are unable to struggle,
single-handed, against a strong or an enterprising government, and they cannot
defend their cause with success unless it be identified with the customs of the
nation and supported by public opinion. Thus until the independence of townships
is amalgamated with the manners of a people it is easily destroyed, and it is
only after a long existence in the laws that it can be thus amalgamated.
Municipal freedom is not the fruit of human device; it is rarely created; but it
is, as it were, secretly and spontaneously engendered in the midst of a
semi-barbarous state of society. The constant action of the laws and the
national habits, peculiar circumstances, and above all time, may consolidate it;
but there is certainly no nation on the continent of Europe which has
experienced its advantages. Nevertheless local assemblies of citizens constitute
the strength of free nations. Town-meetings are to liberty what primary schools
are to science; they bring it within the people's reach, they teach men how to
use and how to enjoy it. A nation may establish a system of free government, but
without the spirit of municipal institutions it cannot have the spirit of
liberty. The transient passions and the interests of an hour, or the chance of
circumstances, may have created the external forms of independence; but the
despotic tendency which has been repelled will, sooner or later, inevitably
reappear on the surface.
In order to explain to the reader the general principles on which the political
organization of the counties and townships of the United States rests, I have
thought it expedient to choose one of the States of New England as an example,
to examine the mechanism of its constitution, and then to cast a general glance
over the country. The township and the county are not organized in the same
manner in every part of the Union; it is, however, easy to perceive that the
same principles have guided the formation of both of them throughout the Union.
I am inclined to believe that these principles have been carried further in New
England than elsewhere, and consequently that they offer greater facilities to
the observations of a stranger. The institutions of New England form a complete
and regular whole; they have received the sanction of time, they have the
support of the laws, and the still stronger support of the manners of the
community, over which they exercise the most prodigious influence; they
consequently deserve our attention on every account.
Limits Of The Township
The township of New England is a division which stands between the commune and
the canton of France, and which corresponds in general to the English tithing,
or town. Its average population is from two to three thousand; *a so that, on
the one hand, the interests of its inhabitants are not likely to conflict, and,
on the other, men capable of conducting its affairs are always to be found among
its citizens.
a
[ In 1830 there were 305 townships in the State of Massachusetts, and 610,014
inhabitants, which gives an average of about 2,000 inhabitants to each
township.]
Authorities Of The Township In New England
The people the source of all power here as elsewhere—Manages its own affairs—No
corporation—The greater part of the authority vested in the hands of the
Selectmen—How the Selectmen act—Town-meeting—Enumeration of the public officers
of the township—Obligatory and remunerated functions.
In the township, as well as everywhere else, the people is the only source of
power; but in no stage of government does the body of citizens exercise a more
immediate influence. In America the people is a master whose exigencies demand
obedience to the utmost limits of possibility.
In New England the majority acts by representatives in the conduct of the public
business of the State; but if such an arrangement be necessary in general
affairs, in the townships, where the legislative and administrative action of
the government is in more immediate contact with the subject, the system of
representation is not adopted. There is no corporation; but the body of
electors, after having designated its magistrates, directs them in everything
that exceeds the simple and ordinary executive business of the State. *b
b
[ The same rules are not applicable to the great towns, which generally have a
mayor, and a corporation divided into two bodies; this, however, is an exception
which requires the sanction of a law.—See the Act of February 22, 1822, for
appointing the authorities of the city of Boston. It frequently happens that
small towns as well as cities are subject to a peculiar administration. In 1832,
104 townships in the State of New York were governed in this manner.—Williams'
Register.]
This state of things is so contrary to our ideas, and so different from our
customs, that it is necessary for me to adduce some examples to explain it
thoroughly.
The public duties in the township are extremely numerous and minutely divided,
as we shall see further on; but the larger proportion of administrative power is
vested in the hands of a small number of individuals, called "the Selectmen." *c
The general laws of the State impose a certain number of obligations on the
selectmen, which they may fulfil without the authorization of the body they
represent, but which they can only neglect on their own responsibility. The law
of the State obliges them, for instance, to draw up the list of electors in
their townships; and if they omit this part of their functions, they are guilty
of a misdemeanor. In all the affairs, however, which are determined by the
town-meeting, the selectmen are the organs of the popular mandate, as in France
the Maire executes the decree of the municipal council. They usually act upon
their own responsibility, and merely put in practice principles which have been
previously recognized by the majority. But if any change is to be introduced in
the existing state of things, or if they wish to undertake any new enterprise,
they are obliged to refer to the source of their power. If, for instance, a
school is to be established, the selectmen convoke the whole body of the
electors on a certain day at an appointed place; they explain the urgency of the
case; they give their opinion on the means of satisfying it, on the probable
expense, and the site which seems to be most favorable. The meeting is consulted
on these several points; it adopts the principle, marks out the site, votes the
rate, and confides the execution of its resolution to the selectmen.
c
[ Three selectmen are appointed in the small townships, and nine in the large
ones. See "The Town-Officer," p. 186. See also the principal laws of the State
of Massachusetts relative to the selectmen:
Act of February 20, 1786, vol. i. p. 219; February 24, 1796, vol. i. p. 488;
March 7, 1801, vol. ii. p. 45; June 16, 1795, vol. i. p. 475; March 12, 1808,
vol. ii. p. 186; February 28, 1787, vol. i. p. 302; June 22, 1797, vol. i. p.
539.]
The selectmen have alone the right of calling a town-meeting, but they may be
requested to do so: if ten citizens are desirous of submitting a new project to
the assent of the township, they may demand a general convocation of the
inhabitants; the selectmen are obliged to comply, but they have only the right
of presiding at the meeting. *d
d
[ See Laws of Massachusetts, vol. i. p. 150, Act of March 25, 1786.]
The selectmen are elected every year in the month of April or of May. The
town-meeting chooses at the same time a number of other municipal magistrates,
who are entrusted with important administrative functions. The assessors rate
the township; the collectors receive the rate. A constable is appointed to keep
the peace, to watch the streets, and to forward the execution of the laws; the
town-clerk records all the town votes, orders, grants, births, deaths, and
marriages; the treasurer keeps the funds; the overseer of the poor performs the
difficult task of superintending the action of the poor-laws; committee-men are
appointed to attend to the schools and to public instruction; and the
road-surveyors, who take care of the greater and lesser thoroughfares of the
township, complete the list of the principal functionaries. They are, however,
still further subdivided; and amongst the municipal officers are to be found
parish commissioners, who audit the expenses of public worship; different
classes of inspectors, some of whom are to direct the citizens in case of fire;
tithing-men, listers, haywards, chimney-viewers, fence-viewers to maintain the
bounds of property, timber-measurers, and sealers of weights and measures. *e
e
[ All these magistrates actually exist; their different functions are all
detailed in a book called "The Town-Officer," by Isaac Goodwin, Worcester, 1827;
and in the "Collection of the General Laws of Massachusetts," 3 vols., Boston,
1823.]
There are nineteen principal officers in a township. Every inhabitant is
constrained, on the pain of being fined, to undertake these different functions;
which, however, are almost all paid, in order that the poorer citizens may be
able to give up their time without loss. In general the American system is not
to grant a fixed salary to its functionaries. Every service has its price, and
they are remunerated in proportion to what they have done.
Existence Of The Township
Every one the best judge of his own interest—Corollary of the principle of the
sovereignty of the people—Application of those doctrines in the townships of
America—The township of New England is sovereign in all that concerns itself
alone: subject to the State in all other matters—Bond of the township and the
State—In France the Government lends its agent to the Commune—In America the
reverse occurs.
I have already observed that the principle of the sovereignty of the people
governs the whole political system of the Anglo-Americans. Every page of this
book will afford new instances of the same doctrine. In the nations by which the
sovereignty of the people is recognized every individual possesses an equal
share of power, and participates alike in the government of the State. Every
individual is, therefore, supposed to be as well informed, as virtuous, and as
strong as any of his fellow-citizens. He obeys the government, not because he is
inferior to the authorities which conduct it, or that he is less capable than
his neighbor of governing himself, but because he acknowledges the utility of an
association with his fellow-men, and because he knows that no such association
can exist without a regulating force. If he be a subject in all that concerns
the mutual relations of citizens, he is free and responsible to God alone for
all that concerns himself. Hence arises the maxim that every one is the best and
the sole judge of his own private interest, and that society has no right to
control a man's actions, unless they are prejudicial to the common weal, or
unless the common weal demands his co-operation. This doctrine is universally
admitted in the United States. I shall hereafter examine the general influence
which it exercises on the ordinary actions of life; I am now speaking of the
nature of municipal bodies.
The township, taken as a whole, and in relation to the government of the
country, may be looked upon as an individual to whom the theory I have just
alluded to is applied. Municipal independence is therefore a natural consequence
of the principle of the sovereignty of the people in the United States: all the
American republics recognize it more or less; but circumstances have peculiarly
favored its growth in New England.
In this part of the Union the impulsion of political activity was given in the
townships; and it may almost be said that each of them originally formed an
independent nation. When the Kings of England asserted their supremacy, they
were contented to assume the central power of the State. The townships of New
England remained as they were before; and although they are now subject to the
State, they were at first scarcely dependent upon it. It is important to
remember that they have not been invested with privileges, but that they have,
on the contrary, forfeited a portion of their independence to the State. The
townships are only subordinate to the State in those interests which I shall
term social, as they are common to all the citizens. They are independent in all
that concerns themselves; and amongst the inhabitants of New England I believe
that not a man is to be found who would acknowledge that the State has any right
to interfere in their local interests. The towns of New England buy and sell,
sue or are sued, augment or diminish their rates, without the slightest
opposition on the part of the administrative authority of the State.
They are bound, however, to comply with the demands of the community. If the
State is in need of money, a town can neither give nor withhold the supplies. If
the State projects a road, the township cannot refuse to let it cross its
territory; if a police regulation is made by the State, it must be enforced by
the town. A uniform system of instruction is organized all over the country, and
every town is bound to establish the schools which the law ordains. In speaking
of the administration of the United States I shall have occasion to point out
the means by which the townships are compelled to obey in these different cases:
I here merely show the existence of the obligation. Strict as this obligation
is, the government of the State imposes it in principle only, and in its
performance the township resumes all its independent rights. Thus, taxes are
voted by the State, but they are levied and collected by the township; the
existence of a school is obligatory, but the township builds, pays, and
superintends it. In France the State-collector receives the local imposts; in
America the town-collector receives the taxes of the State. Thus the French
Government lends its agents to the commune; in America the township is the agent
of the Government. This fact alone shows the extent of the differences which
exist between the two nations.
Public Spirit Of The Townships Of New England
How the township of New England wins the affections of its
inhabitants—Difficulty of creating local public spirit in Europe—The rights and
duties of the American township favorable to it—Characteristics of home in the
United States—Manifestations of public spirit in New England—Its happy effects.
In America, not only do municipal bodies exist, but they are kept alive and
supported by public spirit. The township of New England possesses two advantages
which infallibly secure the attentive interest of mankind, namely, independence
and authority. Its sphere is indeed small and limited, but within that sphere
its action is unrestrained; and its independence gives to it a real importance
which its extent and population may not always ensure.
It is to be remembered that the affections of men generally lie on the side of
authority. Patriotism is not durable in a conquered nation. The New Englander is
attached to his township, not only because he was born in it, but because it
constitutes a social body of which he is a member, and whose government claims
and deserves the exercise of his sagacity. In Europe the absence of local public
spirit is a frequent subject of regret to those who are in power; everyone
agrees that there is no surer guarantee of order and tranquility, and yet
nothing is more difficult to create. If the municipal bodies were made powerful
and independent, the authorities of the nation might be disunited and the peace
of the country endangered. Yet, without power and independence, a town may
contain good subjects, but it can have no active citizens. Another important
fact is that the township of New England is so constituted as to excite the
warmest of human affections, without arousing the ambitious passions of the
heart of man. The officers of the country are not elected, and their authority
is very limited. Even the State is only a second-rate community, whose tranquil
and obscure administration offers no inducement sufficient to draw men away from
the circle of their interests into the turmoil of public affairs. The federal
government confers power and honor on the men who conduct it; but these
individuals can never be very numerous. The high station of the Presidency can
only be reached at an advanced period of life, and the other federal
functionaries are generally men who have been favored by fortune, or
distinguished in some other career. Such cannot be the permanent aim of the
ambitious. But the township serves as a centre for the desire of public esteem,
the want of exciting interests, and the taste for authority and popularity, in
the midst of the ordinary relations of life; and the passions which commonly
embroil society change their character when they find a vent so near the
domestic hearth and the family circle.
In the American States power has been disseminated with admirable skill for the
purpose of interesting the greatest possible number of persons in the common
weal. Independently of the electors who are from time to time called into
action, the body politic is divided into innumerable functionaries and officers,
who all, in their several spheres, represent the same powerful whole in whose
name they act. The local administration thus affords an unfailing source of
profit and interest to a vast number of individuals.
The American system, which divides the local authority among so many citizens,
does not scruple to multiply the functions of the town officers. For in the
United States it is believed, and with truth, that patriotism is a kind of
devotion which is strengthened by ritual observance. In this manner the activity
of the township is continually perceptible; it is daily manifested in the
fulfilment of a duty or the exercise of a right, and a constant though gentle
motion is thus kept up in society which animates without disturbing it.
The American attaches himself to his home as the mountaineer clings to his
hills, because the characteristic features of his country are there more
distinctly marked than elsewhere. The existence of the townships of New England
is in general a happy one. Their government is suited to their tastes, and
chosen by themselves. In the midst of the profound peace and general comfort
which reign in America the commotions of municipal discord are unfrequent. The
conduct of local business is easy. The political education of the people has
long been complete; say rather that it was complete when the people first set
foot upon the soil. In New England no tradition exists of a distinction of
ranks; no portion of the community is tempted to oppress the remainder; and the
abuses which may injure isolated individuals are forgotten in the general
contentment which prevails. If the government is defective (and it would no
doubt be easy to point out its deficiencies), the fact that it really emanates
from those it governs, and that it acts, either ill or well, casts the
protecting spell of a parental pride over its faults. No term of comparison
disturbs the satisfaction of the citizen: England formerly governed the mass of
the colonies, but the people was always sovereign in the township where its rule
is not only an ancient but a primitive state.
The native of New England is attached to his township because it is independent
and free: his co-operation in its affairs ensures his attachment to its
interest; the well-being it affords him secures his affection; and its welfare
is the aim of his ambition and of his future exertions: he takes a part in every
occurrence in the place; he practises the art of government in the small sphere
within his reach; he accustoms himself to those forms which can alone ensure the
steady progress of liberty; he imbibes their spirit; he acquires a taste for
order, comprehends the union or the balance of powers, and collects clear
practical notions on the nature of his duties and the extent of his rights.
The Counties Of New England
The division of the countries in America has considerable analogy with that of
the arrondissements of France. The limits of the counties are arbitrarily laid
down, and the various districts which they contain have no necessary connection,
no common tradition or natural sympathy; their object is simply to facilitate
the administration of justice.
The extent of the township was too small to contain a system of judicial
institutions; each county has, however, a court of justice, *f a sheriff to
execute its decrees, and a prison for criminals. There are certain wants which
are felt alike by all the townships of a county; it is therefore natural that
they should be satisfied by a central authority. In the State of Massachusetts
this authority is vested in the hands of several magistrates, who are appointed
by the Governor of the State, with the advice *g of his council. *h The officers
of the county have only a limited and occasional authority, which is applicable
to certain predetermined cases. The State and the townships possess all the
power requisite to conduct public business. The budget of the county is drawn up
by its officers, and is voted by the legislature, but there is no assembly which
directly or indirectly represents the county. It has, therefore, properly
speaking, no political existence.
f
[ See the Act of February 14, 1821, Laws of Massachusetts, vol. i. p. 551.]
g
[ See the Act of February 20, 1819, Laws of Massachusetts, vol. ii. p. 494.]
h
[ The council of the Governor is an elective body.] A twofold tendency may be
discerned in the American constitutions, which impels the legislator to
centralize the legislative and to disperse the executive power. The township of
New England has in itself an indestructible element of independence; and this
distinct existence could only be fictitiously introduced into the county, where
its utility has not been felt. But all the townships united have but one
representation, which is the State, the centre of the national authority: beyond
the action of the township and that of the nation, nothing can be said to exist
but the influence of individual exertion.
Administration In New England
Administration not perceived in America—Why?—The Europeans believe that liberty
is promoted by depriving the social authority of some of its rights; the
Americans, by dividing its exercise—Almost all the administration confined to
the township, and divided amongst the town-officers—No trace of an
administrative body to be perceived, either in the township or above it—The
reason of this—How it happens that the administration of the State is
uniform—Who is empowered to enforce the obedience of the township and the county
to the law—The introduction of judicial power into the
administration—Consequence of the extension of the elective principle to all
functionaries—The Justice of the Peace in New England—By whom appointed—County
officer: ensures the administration of the townships—Court of Sessions—Its
action—Right of inspection and indictment disseminated like the other
administrative functions—Informers encouraged by the division of fines.
Nothing is more striking to an European traveller in the United States than the
absence of what we term the Government, or the Administration. Written laws
exist in America, and one sees that they are daily executed; but although
everything is in motion, the hand which gives the impulse to the social machine
can nowhere be discovered. Nevertheless, as all peoples are obliged to have
recourse to certain grammatical forms, which are the foundation of human
language, in order to express their thoughts; so all communities are obliged to
secure their existence by submitting to a certain dose of authority, without
which they fall a prey to anarchy. This authority may be distributed in several
ways, but it must always exist somewhere.
There are two methods of diminishing the force of authority in a nation: The
first is to weaken the supreme power in its very principle, by forbidding or
preventing society from acting in its own defence under certain circumstances.
To weaken authority in this manner is what is generally termed in Europe to lay
the foundations of freedom. The second manner of diminishing the influence of
authority does not consist in stripping society of any of its rights, nor in
paralyzing its efforts, but in distributing the exercise of its privileges in
various hands, and in multiplying functionaries, to each of whom the degree of
power necessary for him to perform his duty is entrusted. There may be nations
whom this distribution of social powers might lead to anarchy; but in itself it
is not anarchical. The action of authority is indeed thus rendered less
irresistible and less perilous, but it is not totally suppressed.
The revolution of the United States was the result of a mature and dignified
taste for freedom, and not of a vague or ill-defined craving for independence.
It contracted no alliance with the turbulent passions of anarchy; but its course
was marked, on the contrary, by an attachment to whatever was lawful and
orderly.
It was never assumed in the United States that the citizen of a free country has
a right to do whatever he pleases; on the contrary, social obligations were
there imposed upon him more various than anywhere else. No idea was ever
entertained of attacking the principles or of contesting the rights of society;
but the exercise of its authority was divided, to the end that the office might
be powerful and the officer insignificant, and that the community should be at
once regulated and free. In no country in the world does the law hold so
absolute a language as in America, and in no country is the right of applying it
vested in so many hands. The administrative power in the United States presents
nothing either central or hierarchical in its constitution, which accounts for
its passing, unperceived. The power exists, but its representative is not to be
perceived.
We have already seen that the independent townships of New England protect their
own private interests; and the municipal magistrates are the persons to whom the
execution of the laws of the State is most frequently entrusted. *i Besides the
general laws, the State sometimes passes general police regulations; but more
commonly the townships and town officers, conjointly with justices of the peace,
regulate the minor details of social life, according to the necessities of the
different localities, and promulgate such enactments as concern the health of
the community, and the peace as well as morality of the citizens. *j Lastly,
these municipal magistrates provide, of their own accord and without any
delegated powers, for those unforeseen emergencies which frequently occur in
society. *k
i
[ See "The Town-Officer," especially at the words Selectmen, Assessors,
Collectors, Schools, Surveyors of Highways. I take one example in a thousand:
the State prohibits travelling on the Sunday; the tything-men, who are
town-officers, are specially charged to keep watch and to execute the law. See
the Laws of Massachusetts, vol. i. p. 410.
The selectmen draw up the lists of electors for the election of the Governor,
and transmit the result of the ballot to the Secretary of the State. See Act of
February 24, 1796: Id., vol. i. p. 488.]
j
[ Thus, for instance, the selectmen authorize the construction of drains, point
out the proper sites for slaughter-houses and other trades which are a nuisance
to the neighborhood. See the Act of June 7, 1785: Id., vol. i. p. 193.]
k
[ The selectmen take measures for the security of the public in case of
contagious diseases, conjointly with the justices of the peace. See Act of June
22, 1797, vol. i. p. 539.]
It results from what we have said that in the State of Massachusetts the
administrative authority is almost entirely restricted to the township, *l but
that it is distributed among a great number of individuals. In the French
commune there is properly but one official functionary, namely, the Maire; and
in New England we have seen that there are nineteen. These nineteen
functionaries do not in general depend upon one another. The law carefully
prescribes a circle of action to each of these magistrates; and within that
circle they have an entire right to perform their functions independently of any
other authority. Above the township scarcely any trace of a series of official
dignitaries is to be found. It sometimes happens that the county officers alter
a decision of the townships or town magistrates, *m but in general the
authorities of the county have no right to interfere with the authorities of the
township, *n except in such matters as concern the county.
l
[ I say almost, for there are various circumstances in the annals of a township
which are regulated by the justice of the peace in his individual capacity, or
by the justices of the peace assembled in the chief town of the county; thus
licenses are granted by the justices. See the Act of February 28, 1787, vol. i.
p. 297.]
m
[ Thus licenses are only granted to such persons as can produce a certificate of
good conduct from the selectmen. If the selectmen refuse to give the
certificate, the party may appeal to the justices assembled in the Court of
Sessions, and they may grant the license. See Act of March 12, 1808, vol. ii. p.
186.
The townships have the right to make by-laws, and to enforce them by fines which
are fixed by law; but these by-laws must be approved by the Court of Sessions.
See Act of March 23, 1786, vol. i. p. 254.]
n
[ In Massachusetts the county magistrates are frequently called upon to
investigate the acts of the town magistrates; but it will be shown further on
that this investigation is a consequence, not of their administrative, but of
their judicial power.]
The magistrates of the township, as well as those of the county, are bound to
communicate their acts to the central government in a very small number of
predetermined cases. *o But the central government is not represented by an
individual whose business it is to publish police regulations and ordinances
enforcing the execution of the laws; to keep up a regular communication with the
officers of the township and the county; to inspect their conduct, to direct
their actions, or to reprimand their faults. There is no point which serves as a
centre to the radii of the administration.
o
[ The town committees of schools are obliged to make an annual report to the
Secretary of the State on the condition of the school. See Act of March 10,
1827, vol. iii. p. 183.]
Chapter V: Necessity Of Examining The Condition Of The States—Part II
What, then, is the uniform plan on which the government is conducted, and how is
the compliance of the counties and their magistrates or the townships and their
officers enforced? In the States of New England the legislative authority
embraces more subjects than it does in France; the legislator penetrates to the
very core of the administration; the law descends to the most minute details;
the same enactment prescribes the principle and the method of its application,
and thus imposes a multitude of strict and rigorously defined obligations on the
secondary functionaries of the State. The consequence of this is that if all the
secondary functionaries of the administration conform to the law, society in all
its branches proceeds with the greatest uniformity: the difficulty remains of
compelling the secondary functionaries of the administration to conform to the
law. It may be affirmed that, in general, society has only two methods of
enforcing the execution of the laws at its disposal: a discretionary power may
be entrusted to a superior functionary of directing all the others, and of
cashiering them in case of disobedience; or the courts of justice may be
authorized to inflict judicial penalties on the offender: but these two methods
are not always available.
The right of directing a civil officer presupposes that of cashiering him if he
does not obey orders, and of rewarding him by promotion if he fulfils his duties
with propriety. But an elected magistrate can neither be cashiered nor promoted.
All elective functions are inalienable until their term is expired. In fact, the
elected magistrate has nothing either to expect or to fear from his
constituents; and when all public offices are filled by ballot there can be no
series of official dignities, because the double right of commanding and of
enforcing obedience can never be vested in the same individual, and because the
power of issuing an order can never be joined to that of inflicting a punishment
or bestowing a reward.
The communities therefore in which the secondary functionaries of the government
are elected are perforce obliged to make great use of judicial penalties as a
means of administration. This is not evident at first sight; for those in power
are apt to look upon the institution of elective functionaries as one
concession, and the subjection of the elected magistrate to the judges of the
land as another. They are equally averse to both these innovations; and as they
are more pressingly solicited to grant the former than the latter, they accede
to the election of the magistrate, and leave him independent of the judicial
power. Nevertheless, the second of these measures is the only thing that can
possibly counterbalance the first; and it will be found that an elective
authority which is not subject to judicial power will, sooner or later, either
elude all control or be destroyed. The courts of justice are the only possible
medium between the central power and the administrative bodies; they alone can
compel the elected functionary to obey, without violating the rights of the
elector. The extension of judicial power in the political world ought therefore
to be in the exact ratio of the extension of elective offices: if these two
institutions do not go hand in hand, the State must fall into anarchy or into
subjection.
It has always been remarked that habits of legal business do not render men apt
to the exercise of administrative authority. The Americans have borrowed from
the English, their fathers, the idea of an institution which is unknown upon the
continent of Europe: I allude to that of the Justices of the Peace. The Justice
of the Peace is a sort of mezzo termine between the magistrate and the man of
the world, between the civil officer and the judge. A justice of the peace is a
well-informed citizen, though he is not necessarily versed in the knowledge of
the laws. His office simply obliges him to execute the police regulations of
society; a task in which good sense and integrity are of more avail than legal
science. The justice introduces into the administration a certain taste for
established forms and publicity, which renders him a most unserviceable
instrument of despotism; and, on the other hand, he is not blinded by those
superstitions which render legal officers unfit members of a government. The
Americans have adopted the system of the English justices of the peace, but they
have deprived it of that aristocratic character which is discernible in the
mother-country. The Governor of Massachusetts *p appoints a certain number of
justices of the peace in every county, whose functions last seven years. *q He
further designates three individuals from amongst the whole body of justices who
form in each county what is called the Court of Sessions. The justices take a
personal share in public business; they are sometimes entrusted with
administrative functions in conjunction with elected officers, *r they sometimes
constitute a tribunal, before which the magistrates summarily prosecute a
refractory citizen, or the citizens inform against the abuses of the magistrate.
But it is in the Court of Sessions that they exercise their most important
functions. This court meets twice a year in the county town; in Massachusetts it
is empowered to enforce the obedience of the greater number *s of public
officers. *t It must be observed, that in the State of Massachusetts the Court
of Sessions is at the same time an administrative body, properly so called, and
a political tribunal. It has been asserted that the county is a purely
administrative division. The Court of Sessions presides over that small number
of affairs which, as they concern several townships, or all the townships of the
county in common, cannot be entrusted to any one of them in particular. *u In
all that concerns county business the duties of the Court of Sessions are purely
administrative; and if in its investigations it occasionally borrows the forms
of judicial procedure, it is only with a view to its own information, *v or as a
guarantee to the community over which it presides. But when the administration
of the township is brought before it, it always acts as a judicial body, and in
some few cases as an official assembly.
p
[ We shall hereafter learn what a Governor is: I shall content myself with
remarking in this place that he represents the executive power of the whole
State.]
q
[ See the Constitution of Massachusetts, chap. II. sect. 1. Section 9; chap.
III. Section 3.]
r
[ Thus, for example, a stranger arrives in a township from a country where a
contagious disease prevails, and he falls ill. Two justices of the peace can,
with the assent of the selectmen, order the sheriff of the county to remove and
take care of him.—Act of June 22, 1797, vol. i. p. 540.
In general the justices interfere in all the important acts of the
administration, and give them a semi-judicial character.] [Footnote s: I say the
greater number, because certain administrative misdemeanors are brought before
ordinary tribunals. If, for instance, a township refuses to make the necessary
expenditure for its schools or to name a school-committee, it is liable to a
heavy fine. But this penalty is pronounced by the Supreme Judicial Court or the
Court of Common Pleas. See Act of March 10, 1827, Laws of Massachusetts, vol.
iii. p. 190. Or when a township neglects to provide the necessary
war-stores.—Act of February 21, 1822: Id., vol. ii. p. 570.]
t
[ In their individual capacity the justices of the peace take a part in the
business of the counties and townships.] [Footnote u: These affairs may be
brought under the following heads:—1. The erection of prisons and courts of
justice. 2. The county budget, which is afterwards voted by the State. 3. The
distribution of the taxes so voted. 4. Grants of certain patents. 5. The laying
down and repairs of the country roads.]
v
[ Thus, when a road is under consideration, almost all difficulties are disposed
of by the aid of the jury.]
The first difficulty is to procure the obedience of an authority as entirely
independent of the general laws of the State as the township is. We have stated
that assessors are annually named by the town-meetings to levy the taxes. If a
township attempts to evade the payment of the taxes by neglecting to name its
assessors, the Court of Sessions condemns it to a heavy penalty. *w The fine is
levied on each of the inhabitants; and the sheriff of the county, who is the
officer of justice, executes the mandate. Thus it is that in the United States
the authority of the Government is mysteriously concealed under the forms of a
judicial sentence; and its influence is at the same time fortified by that
irresistible power with which men have invested the formalities of law.
w
[ See Act of February 20, 1786, Laws of Massachusetts, vol. i. p. 217.]
These proceedings are easy to follow and to understand. The demands made upon a
township are in general plain and accurately defined; they consist in a simple
fact without any complication, or in a principle without its application in
detail. *x But the difficulty increases when it is not the obedience of the
township, but that of the town officers which is to be enforced. All the
reprehensible actions of which a public functionary may be guilty are reducible
to the following heads:
x
[ There is an indirect method of enforcing the obedience of a township. Suppose
that the funds which the law demands for the maintenance of the roads have not
been voted, the town surveyor is then authorized, ex officio, to levy the
supplies. As he is personally responsible to private individuals for the state
of the roads, and indictable before the Court of Sessions, he is sure to employ
the extraordinary right which the law gives him against the township. Thus by
threatening the officer the Court of Sessions exacts compliance from the town.
See Act of March 5, 1787, Id., vol. i. p. 305.]
He may execute the law without energy or zeal;
He may neglect to execute the law;
He may do what the law enjoins him not to do.
The last two violations of duty can alone come under the cognizance of a
tribunal; a positive and appreciable fact is the indispensable foundation of an
action at law. Thus, if the selectmen omit to fulfil the legal formalities usual
at town elections, they may be condemned to pay a fine; *y but when the public
officer performs his duty without ability, and when he obeys the letter of the
law without zeal or energy, he is at least beyond the reach of judicial
interference. The Court of Sessions, even when it is invested with its official
powers, is in this case unable to compel him to a more satisfactory obedience.
The fear of removal is the only check to these quasi-offences; and as the Court
of Sessions does not originate the town authorities, it cannot remove
functionaries whom it does not appoint. Moreover, a perpetual investigation
would be necessary to convict the officer of negligence or lukewarmness; and the
Court of Sessions sits but twice a year and then only judges such offences as
are brought before its notice. The only security of that active and enlightened
obedience which a court of justice cannot impose upon public officers lies in
the possibility of their arbitrary removal. In France this security is sought
for in powers exercised by the heads of the administration; in America it is
sought for in the principle of election.
y
[ Laws of Massachusetts, vol. ii. p. 45.]
Thus, to recapitulate in a few words what I have been showing: If a public
officer in New England commits a crime in the exercise of his functions, the
ordinary courts of justice are always called upon to pass sentence upon him. If
he commits a fault in his official capacity, a purely administrative tribunal is
empowered to punish him; and, if the affair is important or urgent, the judge
supplies the omission of the functionary. *z Lastly, if the same individual is
guilty of one of those intangible offences of which human justice has no
cognizance, he annually appears before a tribunal from which there is no appeal,
which can at once reduce him to insignificance and deprive him of his charge.
This system undoubtedly possesses great advantages, but its execution is
attended with a practical difficulty which it is important to point out.
z
[ If, for instance, a township persists in refusing to name its assessors, the
Court of Sessions nominates them; and the magistrates thus appointed are
invested with the same authority as elected officers. See the Act quoted above,
February 20, 1787.]
I have already observed that the administrative tribunal, which is called the
Court of Sessions, has no right of inspection over the town officers. It can
only interfere when the conduct of a magistrate is specially brought under its
notice; and this is the delicate part of the system. The Americans of New
England are unacquainted with the office of public prosecutor in the Court of
Sessions, *a and it may readily be perceived that it could not have been
established without difficulty. If an accusing magistrate had merely been
appointed in the chief town of each county, and if he had been unassisted by
agents in the townships, he would not have been better acquainted with what was
going on in the county than the members of the Court of Sessions. But to appoint
agents in each township would have been to centre in his person the most
formidable of powers, that of a judicial administration. Moreover, laws are the
children of habit, and nothing of the kind exists in the legislation of England.
The Americans have therefore divided the offices of inspection and of
prosecution, as well as all the other functions of the administration. Grand
jurors are bound by the law to apprise the court to which they belong of all the
misdemeanors which may have been committed in their county. *b There are certain
great offences which are officially prosecuted by the States; *c but more
frequently the task of punishing delinquents devolves upon the fiscal officer,
whose province it is to receive the fine: thus the treasurer of the township is
charged with the prosecution of such administrative offences as fall under his
notice. But a more special appeal is made by American legislation to the private
interest of the citizen; *d and this great principle is constantly to be met
with in studying the laws of the United States. American legislators are more
apt to give men credit for intelligence than for honesty, and they rely not a
little on personal cupidity for the execution of the laws. When an individual is
really and sensibly injured by an administrative abuse, it is natural that his
personal interest should induce him to prosecute. But if a legal formality be
required, which, however advantageous to the community, is of small importance
to individuals, plaintiffs may be less easily found; and thus, by a tacit
agreement, the laws may fall into disuse. Reduced by their system to this
extremity, the Americans are obliged to encourage informers by bestowing on them
a portion of the penalty in certain cases, *e and to insure the execution of the
laws by the dangerous expedient of degrading the morals of the people. The only
administrative authority above the county magistrates is, properly speaking,
that of the Government.
a
[ I say the Court of Sessions, because in common courts there is a magistrate
who exercises some of the functions of a public prosecutor.]
b
[ The grand-jurors are, for instance, bound to inform the court of the bad state
of the roads.—Laws of Massachusetts, vol. i. p. 308.]
c
[ If, for instance, the treasurer of the county holds back his accounts.—Laws of
Massachusetts, vol. i. p. 406.] [Footnote d: Thus, if a private individual
breaks down or is wounded in consequence of the badness of a road, he can sue
the township or the county for damages at the sessions.—Laws of Massachusetts,
vol. i. p. 309.]
e
[ In cases of invasion or insurrection, if the town-officers neglect to furnish
the necessary stores and ammunition for the militia, the township may be
condemned to a fine of from $200 to $500. It may readily be imagined that in
such a case it might happen that no one cared to prosecute; hence the law adds
that all the citizens may indict offences of this kind, and that half of the
fine shall belong to the plaintiff. See Act of March 6, 1810, vol. ii. p. 236.
The same clause is frequently to be met with in the law of Massachusetts. Not
only are private individuals thus incited to prosecute the public officers, but
the public officers are encouraged in the same manner to bring the disobedience
of private individuals to justice. If a citizen refuses to perform the work
which has been assigned to him upon a road, the road surveyor may prosecute him,
and he receives half the penalty for himself. See the Laws above quoted, vol. i.
p. 308.]
General Remarks On The Administration Of The United States Differences of the
States of the Union in their system of administration—Activity and perfection of
the local authorities decrease towards the South—Power of the magistrate
increases; that of the elector diminishes—Administration passes from the
township to the county—States of New York, Ohio, Pennsylvania—Principles of
administration applicable to the whole Union—Election of public officers, and
inalienability of their functions—Absence of gradation of ranks—Introduction of
judicial resources into the administration.
I have already premised that, after having examined the constitution of the
township and the county of New England in detail, I should take a general view
of the remainder of the Union. Townships and a local activity exist in every
State; but in no part of the confederation is a township to be met with
precisely similar to those of New England. The more we descend towards the
South, the less active does the business of the township or parish become; the
number of magistrates, of functions, and of rights decreases; the population
exercises a less immediate influence on affairs; town meetings are less
frequent, and the subjects of debate less numerous. The power of the elected
magistrate is augmented and that of the elector diminished, whilst the public
spirit of the local communities is less awakened and less influential. *f These
differences may be perceived to a certain extent in the State of New York; they
are very sensible in Pennsylvania; but they become less striking as we advance
to the northwest. The majority of the emigrants who settle in the northwestern
States are natives of New England, and they carry the habits of their mother
country with them into that which they adopt. A township in Ohio is by no means
dissimilar from a township in Massachusetts.
f
[ For details see the Revised Statutes of the State of New York, part i. chap.
xi. vol. i. pp. 336-364, entitled, "Of the Powers, Duties, and Privileges of
Towns."
See in the Digest of the Laws of Pennsylvania, the words Assessors, Collector,
Constables, Overseer of the Poor, Supervisors of Highways; and in the Acts of a
general nature of the State of Ohio, the Act of February 25, 1834, relating to
townships, p. 412; besides the peculiar dispositions relating to divers
town-officers, such as Township's Clerk, Trustees, Overseers of the Poor, Fence
Viewers, Appraisers of Property, Township's Treasurer, Constables, Supervisors
of Highways.]
We have seen that in Massachusetts the mainspring of public administration lies
in the township. It forms the common centre of the interests and affections of
the citizens. But this ceases to be the case as we descend to States in which
knowledge is less generally diffused, and where the township consequently offers
fewer guarantees of a wise and active administration. As we leave New England,
therefore, we find that the importance of the town is gradually transferred to
the county, which becomes the centre of administration, and the intermediate
power between the Government and the citizen. In Massachusetts the business of
the county is conducted by the Court of Sessions, which is composed of a quorum
named by the Governor and his council; but the county has no representative
assembly, and its expenditure is voted by the national legislature. In the great
State of New York, on the contrary, and in those of Ohio and Pennsylvania, the
inhabitants of each county choose a certain number of representatives, who
constitute the assembly of the county. *g The county assembly has the right of
taxing the inhabitants to a certain extent; and in this respect it enjoys the
privileges of a real legislative body: at the same time it exercises an
executive power in the county, frequently directs the administration of the
townships, and restricts their authority within much narrower bounds than in
Massachusetts.
g
[ See the Revised Statutes of the State of New York, part i. chap. xi. vol. i.
p. 340. Id. chap. xii. p. 366; also in the Acts of the State of Ohio, an act
relating to county commissioners, February 25, 1824, p. 263. See the Digest of
the Laws of Pennsylvania, at the words County-rates and Levies, p. 170. In the
State of New York each township elects a representative, who has a share in the
administration of the county as well as in that of the township.]
Such are the principal differences which the systems of county and town
administration present in the Federal States. Were it my intention to examine
the provisions of American law minutely, I should have to point out still
further differences in the executive details of the several communities. But
what I have already said may suffice to show the general principles on which the
administration of the United States rests. These principles are differently
applied; their consequences are more or less numerous in various localities; but
they are always substantially the same. The laws differ, and their outward
features change, but their character does not vary. If the township and the
county are not everywhere constituted in the same manner, it is at least true
that in the United States the county and the township are always based upon the
same principle, namely, that everyone is the best judge of what concerns himself
alone, and the most proper person to supply his private wants. The township and
the county are therefore bound to take care of their special interests: the
State governs, but it does not interfere with their administration. Exceptions
to this rule may be met with, but not a contrary principle.
The first consequence of this doctrine has been to cause all the magistrates to
be chosen either by or at least from amongst the citizens. As the officers are
everywhere elected or appointed for a certain period, it has been impossible to
establish the rules of a dependent series of authorities; there are almost as
many independent functionaries as there are functions, and the executive power
is disseminated in a multitude of hands. Hence arose the indispensable necessity
of introducing the control of the courts of justice over the administration, and
the system of pecuniary penalties, by which the secondary bodies and their
representatives are constrained to obey the laws. This system obtains from one
end of the Union to the other. The power of punishing the misconduct of public
officers, or of performing the part of the executive in urgent cases, has not,
however, been bestowed on the same judges in all the States. The Anglo-Americans
derived the institution of justices of the peace from a common source; but
although it exists in all the States, it is not always turned to the same use.
The justices of the peace everywhere participate in the administration of the
townships and the counties, *h either as public officers or as the judges of
public misdemeanors, but in most of the States the more important classes of
public offences come under the cognizance of the ordinary tribunals.
h
[ In some of the Southern States the county courts are charged with all the
details of the administration. See the Statutes of the State of Tennessee, arts.
Judiciary, Taxes, etc.]
The election of public officers, or the inalienability of their functions, the
absence of a gradation of powers, and the introduction of a judicial control
over the secondary branches of the administration, are the universal
characteristics of the American system from Maine to the Floridas. In some
States (and that of New York has advanced most in this direction) traces of a
centralized administration begin to be discernible. In the State of New York the
officers of the central government exercise, in certain cases, a sort of
inspection or control over the secondary bodies. *i
i
[ For instance, the direction of public instruction centres in the hands of the
Government. The legislature names the members of the University, who are
denominated Regents; the Governor and Lieutentant-Governor of the State are
necessarily of the number.—Revised Statutes, vol. i. p. 455. The Regents of the
University annually visit the colleges and academies, and make their report to
the legislature. Their superintendence is not inefficient, for several reasons:
the colleges in order to become corporations stand in need of a charter, which
is only granted on the recommendation of the Regents; every year funds are
distributed by the State for the encouragement of learning, and the Regents are
the distributors of this money. See chap. xv. "Instruction," Revised Statutes,
vol. i. p. 455.
The school-commissioners are obliged to send an annual report to the
Superintendent of the Republic.—Id. p. 488.
A similar report is annually made to the same person on the number and condition
of the poor.—Id. p. 631.]
At other times they constitute a court of appeal for the decision of affairs. *j
In the State of New York judicial penalties are less used than in other parts as
a means of administration, and the right of prosecuting the offences of public
officers is vested in fewer hands. *k The same tendency is faintly observable in
some other States; *l but in general the prominent feature of the administration
in the United States is its excessive local independence.
j
[ If any one conceives himself to be wronged by the school-commissioners (who
are town-officers), he can appeal to the superintendent of the primary schools,
whose decision is final.—Revised Statutes, vol. i. p. 487.
Provisions similar to those above cited are to be met with from time to time in
the laws of the State of New York; but in general these attempts at
centralization are weak and unproductive. The great authorities of the State
have the right of watching and controlling the subordinate agents, without that
of rewarding or punishing them. The same individual is never empowered to give
an order and to punish disobedience; he has therefore the right of commanding,
without the means of exacting compliance. In 1830 the Superintendent of Schools
complained in his Annual Report addressed to the legislature that several
school-commissioners had neglected, notwithstanding his application, to furnish
him with the accounts which were due. He added that if this omission continued
he should be obliged to prosecute them, as the law directs, before the proper
tribunals.]
k
[ Thus the district-attorney is directed to recover all fines below the sum of
fifty dollars, unless such a right has been specially awarded to another
magistrate.—Revised Statutes, vol. i. p. 383.]
l
[ Several traces of centralization may be discovered in Massachusetts; for
instance, the committees of the town-schools are directed to make an annual
report to the Secretary of State. See Laws of Massachusetts, vol. i. p. 367.]
Of The State
I have described the townships and the administration; it now remains for me to
speak of the State and the Government. This is ground I may pass over rapidly,
without fear of being misunderstood; for all I have to say is to be found in
written forms of the various constitutions, which are easily to be procured.
These constitutions rest upon a simple and rational theory; their forms have
been adopted by all constitutional nations, and are become familiar to us. In
this place, therefore, it is only necessary for me to give a short analysis; I
shall endeavor afterwards to pass judgment upon what I now describe.
Chapter V: Necessity Of Examining The Condition Of The States—Part III
Legislative Power Of The State
Division of the Legislative Body into two Houses—Senate—House of
Representatives—Different functions of these two Bodies.
The legislative power of the State is vested in two assemblies, the first of
which generally bears the name of the Senate. The Senate is commonly a
legislative body; but it sometimes becomes an executive and judicial one. It
takes a part in the government in several ways, according to the constitution of
the different States; *m but it is in the nomination of public functionaries
that it most commonly assumes an executive power. It partakes of judicial power
in the trial of certain political offences, and sometimes also in the decision
of certain civil cases. *n The number of its members is always small. The other
branch of the legislature, which is usually called the House of Representatives,
has no share whatever in the administration, and only takes a part in the
judicial power inasmuch as it impeaches public functionaries before the Senate.
The members of the two Houses are nearly everywhere subject to the same
conditions of election. They are chosen in the same manner, and by the same
citizens. The only difference which exists between them is, that the term for
which the Senate is chosen is in general longer than that of the House of
Representatives. The latter seldom remain in office longer than a year; the
former usually sit two or three years. By granting to the senators the privilege
of being chosen for several years, and being renewed seriatim, the law takes
care to preserve in the legislative body a nucleus of men already accustomed to
public business, and capable of exercising a salutary influence upon the junior
members.
m
[ In Massachusetts the Senate is not invested with any administrative
functions.]
n
[ As in the State of New York.]
The Americans, plainly, did not desire, by this separation of the legislative
body into two branches, to make one house hereditary and the other elective; one
aristocratic and the other democratic. It was not their object to create in the
one a bulwark to power, whilst the other represented the interests and passions
of the people. The only advantages which result from the present constitution of
the United States are the division of the legislative power and the consequent
check upon political assemblies; with the creation of a tribunal of appeal for
the revision of the laws.
Time and experience, however, have convinced the Americans that if these are its
only advantages, the division of the legislative power is still a principle of
the greatest necessity. Pennsylvania was the only one of the United States which
at first attempted to establish a single House of Assembly, and Franklin himself
was so far carried away by the necessary consequences of the principle of the
sovereignty of the people as to have concurred in the measure; but the
Pennsylvanians were soon obliged to change the law, and to create two Houses.
Thus the principle of the division of the legislative power was finally
established, and its necessity may henceforward be regarded as a demonstrated
truth. This theory, which was nearly unknown to the republics of antiquity—which
was introduced into the world almost by accident, like so many other great
truths—and misunderstood by several modern nations, is at length become an axiom
in the political science of the present age.
[See Benjamin Franklin]
The Executive Power Of The State
Office of Governor in an American State—The place he occupies in relation to the
Legislature—His rights and his duties—His dependence on the people.
The executive power of the State may with truth be said to be represented by the
Governor, although he enjoys but a portion of its rights. The supreme
magistrate, under the title of Governor, is the official moderator and
counsellor of the legislature. He is armed with a veto or suspensive power,
which allows him to stop, or at least to retard, its movements at pleasure. He
lays the wants of the country before the legislative body, and points out the
means which he thinks may be usefully employed in providing for them; he is the
natural executor of its decrees in all the undertakings which interest the
nation at large. *o In the absence of the legislature, the Governor is bound to
take all necessary steps to guard the State against violent shocks and
unforeseen dangers. The whole military power of the State is at the disposal of
the Governor. He is the commander of the militia, and head of the armed force.
When the authority, which is by general consent awarded to the laws, is
disregarded, the Governor puts himself at the head of the armed force of the
State, to quell resistance, and to restore order. Lastly, the Governor takes no
share in the administration of townships and counties, except it be indirectly
in the nomination of Justices of the Peace, which nomination he has not the
power to cancel. *p The Governor is an elected magistrate, and is generally
chosen for one or two years only; so that he always continues to be strictly
dependent upon the majority who returned him.
o
[ Practically speaking, it is not always the Governor who executes the plans of
the Legislature; it often happens that the latter, in voting a measure, names
special agents to superintend the execution of it.]
p
[ In some of the States the justices of the peace are not elected by the
Governor.]
Political Effects Of The System Of Local Administration In The United States
Necessary distinction between the general centralization of Government and the
centralization of the local administration—Local administration not centralized
in the United States: great general centralization of the Government—Some bad
consequences resulting to the United States from the local
administration—Administrative advantages attending this order of things—The
power which conducts the Government is less regular, less enlightened, less
learned, but much greater than in Europe—Political advantages of this order of
things—In the United States the interests of the country are everywhere kept in
view—Support given to the Government by the community—Provincial institutions
more necessary in proportion as the social condition becomes more
democratic—Reason of this.
Centralization is become a word of general and daily use, without any precise
meaning being attached to it. Nevertheless, there exist two distinct kinds of
centralization, which it is necessary to discriminate with accuracy. Certain
interests are common to all parts of a nation, such as the enactment of its
general laws and the maintenance of its foreign relations. Other interests are
peculiar to certain parts of the nation; such, for instance, as the business of
different townships. When the power which directs the general interests is
centred in one place, or vested in the same persons, it constitutes a central
government. In like manner the power of directing partial or local interests,
when brought together into one place, constitutes what may be termed a central
administration.
Upon some points these two kinds of centralization coalesce; but by classifying
the objects which fall more particularly within the province of each of them,
they may easily be distinguished. It is evident that a central government
acquires immense power when united to administrative centralization. Thus
combined, it accustoms men to set their own will habitually and completely
aside; to submit, not only for once, or upon one point, but in every respect,
and at all times. Not only, therefore, does this union of power subdue them
compulsorily, but it affects them in the ordinary habits of life, and influences
each individual, first separately and then collectively.
These two kinds of centralization mutually assist and attract each other; but
they must not be supposed to be inseparable. It is impossible to imagine a more
completely central government than that which existed in France under Louis
XIV.; when the same individual was the author and the interpreter of the laws,
and the representative of France at home and abroad, he was justified in
asserting that the State was identified with his person. Nevertheless, the
administration was much less centralized under Louis XIV. than it is at the
present day.
In England the centralization of the government is carried to great perfection;
the State has the compact vigor of a man, and by the sole act of its will it
puts immense engines in motion, and wields or collects the efforts of its
authority. Indeed, I cannot conceive that a nation can enjoy a secure or
prosperous existence without a powerful centralization of government. But I am
of opinion that a central administration enervates the nations in which it
exists by incessantly diminishing their public spirit. If such an administration
succeeds in condensing at a given moment, on a given point, all the disposable
resources of a people, it impairs at least the renewal of those resources. It
may ensure a victory in the hour of strife, but it gradually relaxes the sinews
of strength. It may contribute admirably to the transient greatness of a man,
but it cannot ensure the durable prosperity of a nation.
If we pay proper attention, we shall find that whenever it is said that a State
cannot act because it has no central point, it is the centralization of the
government in which it is deficient. It is frequently asserted, and we are
prepared to assent to the proposition, that the German empire was never able to
bring all its powers into action. But the reason was, that the State was never
able to enforce obedience to its general laws, because the several members of
that great body always claimed the right, or found the means, of refusing their
co-operation to the representatives of the common authority, even in the affairs
which concerned the mass of the people; in other words, because there was no
centralization of government. The same remark is applicable to the Middle Ages;
the cause of all the confusion of feudal society was that the control, not only
of local but of general interests, was divided amongst a thousand hands, and
broken up in a thousand different ways; the absence of a central government
prevented the nations of Europe from advancing with energy in any
straightforward course.
We have shown that in the United States no central administration and no
dependent series of public functionaries exist. Local authority has been carried
to lengths which no European nation could endure without great inconvenience,
and which has even produced some disadvantageous consequences in America. But in
the United States the centralization of the Government is complete; and it would
be easy to prove that the national power is more compact than it has ever been
in the old nations of Europe. Not only is there but one legislative body in each
State; not only does there exist but one source of political authority; but
district assemblies and county courts have not in general been multiplied, lest
they should be tempted to exceed their administrative duties, and interfere with
the Government. In America the legislature of each State is supreme; nothing can
impede its authority; neither privileges, nor local immunities, nor personal
influence, nor even the empire of reason, since it represents that majority
which claims to be the sole organ of reason. Its own determination is,
therefore, the only limit to this action. In juxtaposition to it, and under its
immediate control, is the representative of the executive power, whose duty it
is to constrain the refractory to submit by superior force. The only symptom of
weakness lies in certain details of the action of the Government. The American
republics have no standing armies to intimidate a discontented minority; but as
no minority has as yet been reduced to declare open war, the necessity of an
army has not been felt. *q The State usually employs the officers of the
township or the county to deal with the citizens. Thus, for instance, in New
England, the assessor fixes the rate of taxes; the collector receives them; the
town-treasurer transmits the amount to the public treasury; and the disputes
which may arise are brought before the ordinary courts of justice. This method
of collecting taxes is slow as well as inconvenient, and it would prove a
perpetual hindrance to a Government whose pecuniary demands were large. It is
desirable that, in whatever materially affects its existence, the Government
should be served by officers of its own, appointed by itself, removable at
pleasure, and accustomed to rapid methods of proceeding. But it will always be
easy for the central government, organized as it is in America, to introduce new
and more efficacious modes of action, proportioned to its wants. [Footnote q:
[The Civil War of 1860-65 cruelly belied this statement, and in the course of
the struggle the North alone called two millions and a half of men to arms; but
to the honor of the United States it must be added that, with the cessation of
the contest, this army disappeared as rapidly as it had been
raised.—Translator's Note.]]
The absence of a central government will not, then, as has often been asserted,
prove the destruction of the republics of the New World; far from supposing that
the American governments are not sufficiently centralized, I shall prove
hereafter that they are too much so. The legislative bodies daily encroach upon
the authority of the Government, and their tendency, like that of the French
Convention, is to appropriate it entirely to themselves. Under these
circumstances the social power is constantly changing hands, because it is
subordinate to the power of the people, which is too apt to forget the maxims of
wisdom and of foresight in the consciousness of its strength: hence arises its
danger; and thus its vigor, and not its impotence, will probably be the cause of
its ultimate destruction.
The system of local administration produces several different effects in
America. The Americans seem to me to have outstepped the limits of sound policy
in isolating the administration of the Government; for order, even in
second-rate affairs, is a matter of national importance. *r As the State has no
administrative functionaries of its own, stationed on different points of its
territory, to whom it can give a common impulse, the consequence is that it
rarely attempts to issue any general police regulations. The want of these
regulations is severely felt, and is frequently observed by Europeans. The
appearance of disorder which prevails on the surface leads him at first to
imagine that society is in a state of anarchy; nor does he perceive his mistake
till he has gone deeper into the subject. Certain undertakings are of importance
to the whole State; but they cannot be put in execution, because there is no
national administration to direct them. Abandoned to the exertions of the towns
or counties, under the care of elected or temporary agents, they lead to no
result, or at least to no durable benefit.
r
[ The authority which represents the State ought not, I think, to waive the
right of inspecting the local administration, even when it does not interfere
more actively. Suppose, for instance, that an agent of the Government was
stationed at some appointed spot in the country, to prosecute the misdemeanors
of the town and county officers, would not a more uniform order be the result,
without in any way compromising the independence of the township? Nothing of the
kind, however, exists in America: there is nothing above the county-courts,
which have, as it were, only an incidental cognizance of the offences they are
meant to repress.]
The partisans of centralization in Europe are wont to maintain that the
Government directs the affairs of each locality better than the citizens could
do it for themselves; this may be true when the central power is enlightened,
and when the local districts are ignorant; when it is as alert as they are slow;
when it is accustomed to act, and they to obey. Indeed, it is evident that this
double tendency must augment with the increase of centralization, and that the
readiness of the one and the incapacity of the others must become more and more
prominent. But I deny that such is the case when the people is as enlightened,
as awake to its interests, and as accustomed to reflect on them, as the
Americans are. I am persuaded, on the contrary, that in this case the collective
strength of the citizens will always conduce more efficaciously to the public
welfare than the authority of the Government. It is difficult to point out with
certainty the means of arousing a sleeping population, and of giving it passions
and knowledge which it does not possess; it is, I am well aware, an arduous task
to persuade men to busy themselves about their own affairs; and it would
frequently be easier to interest them in the punctilios of court etiquette than
in the repairs of their common dwelling. But whenever a central administration
affects to supersede the persons most interested, I am inclined to suppose that
it is either misled or desirous to mislead. However enlightened and however
skilful a central power may be, it cannot of itself embrace all the details of
the existence of a great nation. Such vigilance exceeds the powers of man. And
when it attempts to create and set in motion so many complicated springs, it
must submit to a very imperfect result, or consume itself in bootless efforts.
Centralization succeeds more easily, indeed, in subjecting the external actions
of men to a certain uniformity, which at least commands our regard,
independently of the objects to which it is applied, like those devotees who
worship the statue and forget the deity it represents. Centralization imparts
without difficulty an admirable regularity to the routine of business; provides
for the details of the social police with sagacity; represses the smallest
disorder and the most petty misdemeanors; maintains society in a status quo
alike secure from improvement and decline; and perpetuates a drowsy precision in
the conduct of affairs, which is hailed by the heads of the administration as a
sign of perfect order and public tranquillity: *s in short, it excels more in
prevention than in action. Its force deserts it when society is to be disturbed
or accelerated in its course; and if once the co-operation of private citizens
is necessary to the furtherance of its measures, the secret of its impotence is
disclosed. Even whilst it invokes their assistance, it is on the condition that
they shall act exactly as much as the Government chooses, and exactly in the
manner it appoints. They are to take charge of the details, without aspiring to
guide the system; they are to work in a dark and subordinate sphere, and only to
judge the acts in which they have themselves cooperated by their results. These,
however, are not conditions on which the alliance of the human will is to be
obtained; its carriage must be free and its actions responsible, or (such is the
constitution of man) the citizen had rather remain a passive spectator than a
dependent actor in schemes with which he is unacquainted.
s
[ China appears to me to present the most perfect instance of that species of
well-being which a completely central administration may furnish to the nations
among which it exists. Travellers assure us that the Chinese have peace without
happiness, industry without improvement, stability without strength, and public
order without public morality. The condition of society is always tolerable,
never excellent. I am convinced that, when China is opened to European
observation, it will be found to contain the most perfect model of a central
administration which exists in the universe.]
It is undeniable that the want of those uniform regulations which control the
conduct of every inhabitant of France is not unfrequently felt in the United
States. Gross instances of social indifference and neglect are to be met with,
and from time to time disgraceful blemishes are seen in complete contrast with
the surrounding civilization. Useful undertakings which cannot succeed without
perpetual attention and rigorous exactitude are very frequently abandoned in the
end; for in America, as well as in other countries, the people is subject to
sudden impulses and momentary exertions. The European who is accustomed to find
a functionary always at hand to interfere with all he undertakes has some
difficulty in accustoming himself to the complex mechanism of the administration
of the townships. In general it may be affirmed that the lesser details of the
police, which render life easy and comfortable, are neglected in America; but
that the essential guarantees of man in society are as strong there as
elsewhere. In America the power which conducts the Government is far less
regular, less enlightened, and less learned, but an hundredfold more
authoritative than in Europe. In no country in the world do the citizens make
such exertions for the common weal; and I am acquainted with no people which has
established schools as numerous and as efficacious, places of public worship
better suited to the wants of the inhabitants, or roads kept in better repair.
Uniformity or permanence of design, the minute arrangement of details, *t and
the perfection of an ingenious administration, must not be sought for in the
United States; but it will be easy to find, on the other hand, the symptoms of a
power which, if it is somewhat barbarous, is at least robust; and of an
existence which is checkered with accidents indeed, but cheered at the same time
by animation and effort.
t
[ A writer of talent, who, in the comparison which he has drawn between the
finances of France and those of the United States, has proved that ingenuity
cannot always supply the place of a knowledge of facts, very justly reproaches
the Americans for the sort of confusion which exists in the accounts of the
expenditure in the townships; and after giving the model of a departmental
budget in France, he adds:—"We are indebted to centralization, that admirable
invention of a great man, for the uniform order and method which prevail alike
in all the municipal budgets, from the largest town to the humblest commune."
Whatever may be my admiration of this result, when I see the communes of France,
with their excellent system of accounts, plunged into the grossest ignorance of
their true interests, and abandoned to so incorrigible an apathy that they seem
to vegetate rather than to live; when, on the other hand, I observe the
activity, the information, and the spirit of enterprise which keep society in
perpetual labor, in those American townships whose budgets are drawn up with
small method and with still less uniformity, I am struck by the spectacle; for
to my mind the end of a good government is to ensure the welfare of a people,
and not to establish order and regularity in the midst of its misery and its
distress. I am therefore led to suppose that the prosperity of the American
townships and the apparent confusion of their accounts, the distress of the
French communes and the perfection of their budget, may be attributable to the
same cause. At any rate I am suspicious of a benefit which is united to so many
evils, and I am not averse to an evil which is compensated by so many benefits.]
Granting for an instant that the villages and counties of the United States
would be more usefully governed by a remote authority which they had never seen
than by functionaries taken from the midst of them—admitting, for the sake of
argument, that the country would be more secure, and the resources of society
better employed, if the whole administration centred in a single arm—still the
political advantages which the Americans derive from their system would induce
me to prefer it to the contrary plan. It profits me but little, after all, that
a vigilant authority should protect the tranquillity of my pleasures and
constantly avert all dangers from my path, without my care or my concern, if
this same authority is the absolute mistress of my liberty and of my life, and
if it so monopolizes all the energy of existence that when it languishes
everything languishes around it, that when it sleeps everything must sleep, that
when it dies the State itself must perish.
In certain countries of Europe the natives consider themselves as a kind of
settlers, indifferent to the fate of the spot upon which they live. The greatest
changes are effected without their concurrence and (unless chance may have
apprised them of the event) without their knowledge; nay more, the citizen is
unconcerned as to the condition of his village, the police of his street, the
repairs of the church or of the parsonage; for he looks upon all these things as
unconnected with himself, and as the property of a powerful stranger whom he
calls the Government. He has only a life-interest in these possessions, and he
entertains no notions of ownership or of improvement. This want of interest in
his own affairs goes so far that, if his own safety or that of his children is
endangered, instead of trying to avert the peril, he will fold his arms, and
wait till the nation comes to his assistance. This same individual, who has so
completely sacrificed his own free will, has no natural propensity to obedience;
he cowers, it is true, before the pettiest officer; but he braves the law with
the spirit of a conquered foe as soon as its superior force is removed: his
oscillations between servitude and license are perpetual. When a nation has
arrived at this state it must either change its customs and its laws or perish:
the source of public virtue is dry, and, though it may contain subjects, the
race of citizens is extinct. Such communities are a natural prey to foreign
conquests, and if they do not disappear from the scene of life, it is because
they are surrounded by other nations similar or inferior to themselves: it is
because the instinctive feeling of their country's claims still exists in their
hearts; and because an involuntary pride in the name it bears, or a vague
reminiscence of its bygone fame, suffices to give them the impulse of
self-preservation.
Nor can the prodigious exertions made by tribes in the defence of a country to
which they did not belong be adduced in favor of such a system; for it will be
found that in these cases their main incitement was religion. The permanence,
the glory, or the prosperity of the nation were become parts of their faith, and
in defending the country they inhabited they defended that Holy City of which
they were all citizens. The Turkish tribes have never taken an active share in
the conduct of the affairs of society, but they accomplished stupendous
enterprises as long as the victories of the Sultan were the triumphs of the
Mohammedan faith. In the present age they are in rapid decay, because their
religion is departing, and despotism only remains. Montesquieu, who attributed
to absolute power an authority peculiar to itself, did it, as I conceive, an
undeserved honor; for despotism, taken by itself, can produce no durable
results. On close inspection we shall find that religion, and not fear, has ever
been the cause of the long-lived prosperity of an absolute government. Whatever
exertions may be made, no true power can be founded among men which does not
depend upon the free union of their inclinations; and patriotism and religion
are the only two motives in the world which can permanently direct the whole of
a body politic to one end.
Laws cannot succeed in rekindling the ardor of an extinguished faith, but men
may be interested in the fate of their country by the laws. By this influence
the vague impulse of patriotism, which never abandons the human heart, may be
directed and revived; and if it be connected with the thoughts, the passions,
and the daily habits of life, it may be consolidated into a durable and rational
sentiment.
Let it not be said that the time for the experiment is already past; for the old
age of nations is not like the old age of men, and every fresh generation is a
new people ready for the care of the legislator.
It is not the administrative but the political effects of the local system that
I most admire in America. In the United States the interests of the country are
everywhere kept in view; they are an object of solicitude to the people of the
whole Union, and every citizen is as warmly attached to them as if they were his
own. He takes pride in the glory of his nation; he boasts of its success, to
which he conceives himself to have contributed, and he rejoices in the general
prosperity by which he profits. The feeling he entertains towards the State is
analogous to that which unites him to his family, and it is by a kind of egotism
that he interests himself in the welfare of his country.
The European generally submits to a public officer because he represents a
superior force; but to an American he represents a right. In America it may be
said that no one renders obedience to man, but to justice and to law. If the
opinion which the citizen entertains of himself is exaggerated, it is at least
salutary; he unhesitatingly confides in his own powers, which appear to him to
be all-sufficient. When a private individual meditates an undertaking, however
directly connected it may be with the welfare of society, he never thinks of
soliciting the co-operation of the Government, but he publishes his plan, offers
to execute it himself, courts the assistance of other individuals, and struggles
manfully against all obstacles. Undoubtedly he is often less successful than the
State might have been in his position; but in the end the sum of these private
undertakings far exceeds all that the Government could have done.
As the administrative authority is within the reach of the citizens, whom it in
some degree represents, it excites neither their jealousy nor their hatred; as
its resources are limited, every one feels that he must not rely solely on its
assistance. Thus, when the administration thinks fit to interfere, it is not
abandoned to itself as in Europe; the duties of the private citizens are not
supposed to have lapsed because the State assists in their fulfilment, but every
one is ready, on the contrary, to guide and to support it. This action of
individual exertions, joined to that of the public authorities, frequently
performs what the most energetic central administration would be unable to
execute. It would be easy to adduce several facts in proof of what I advance,
but I had rather give only one, with which I am more thoroughly acquainted. *u
In America the means which the authorities have at their disposal for the
discovery of crimes and the arrest of criminals are few. The State police does
not exist, and passports are unknown. The criminal police of the United States
cannot be compared to that of France; the magistrates and public prosecutors are
not numerous, and the examinations of prisoners are rapid and oral. Nevertheless
in no country does crime more rarely elude punishment. The reason is, that every
one conceives himself to be interested in furnishing evidence of the act
committed, and in stopping the delinquent. During my stay in the United States I
witnessed the spontaneous formation of committees for the pursuit and
prosecution of a man who had committed a great crime in a certain county. In
Europe a criminal is an unhappy being who is struggling for his life against the
ministers of justice, whilst the population is merely a spectator of the
conflict; in America he is looked upon as an enemy of the human race, and the
whole of mankind is against him.
u
[ See Appendix, I.]
I believe that provincial institutions are useful to all nations, but nowhere do
they appear to me to be more indispensable than amongst a democratic people. In
an aristocracy order can always be maintained in the midst of liberty, and as
the rulers have a great deal to lose order is to them a first-rate
consideration. In like manner an aristocracy protects the people from the
excesses of despotism, because it always possesses an organized power ready to
resist a despot. But a democracy without provincial institutions has no security
against these evils. How can a populace, unaccustomed to freedom in small
concerns, learn to use it temperately in great affairs? What resistance can be
offered to tyranny in a country where every private individual is impotent, and
where the citizens are united by no common tie? Those who dread the license of
the mob, and those who fear the rule of absolute power, ought alike to desire
the progressive growth of provincial liberties.
On the other hand, I am convinced that democratic nations are most exposed to
fall beneath the yoke of a central administration, for several reasons, amongst
which is the following. The constant tendency of these nations is to concentrate
all the strength of the Government in the hands of the only power which directly
represents the people, because beyond the people nothing is to be perceived but
a mass of equal individuals confounded together. But when the same power is
already in possession of all the attributes of the Government, it can scarcely
refrain from penetrating into the details of the administration, and an
opportunity of doing so is sure to present itself in the end, as was the case in
France. In the French Revolution there were two impulses in opposite directions,
which must never be confounded—the one was favorable to liberty, the other to
despotism. Under the ancient monarchy the King was the sole author of the laws,
and below the power of the sovereign certain vestiges of provincial
institutions, half destroyed, were still distinguishable. These provincial
institutions were incoherent, ill compacted, and frequently absurd; in the hands
of the aristocracy they had sometimes been converted into instruments of
oppression. The Revolution declared itself the enemy of royalty and of
provincial institutions at the same time; it confounded all that had preceded
it—despotic power and the checks to its abuses—in indiscriminate hatred, and its
tendency was at once to overthrow and to centralize. This double character of
the French Revolution is a fact which has been adroitly handled by the friends
of absolute power. Can they be accused of laboring in the cause of despotism
when they are defending that central administration which was one of the great
innovations of the Revolution? *v In this manner popularity may be conciliated
with hostility to the rights of the people, and the secret slave of tyranny may
be the professed admirer of freedom.
v
[ See Appendix K.]
I have visited the two nations in which the system of provincial liberty has
been most perfectly established, and I have listened to the opinions of
different parties in those countries. In America I met with men who secretly
aspired to destroy the democratic institutions of the Union; in England I found
others who attacked the aristocracy openly, but I know of no one who does not
regard provincial independence as a great benefit. In both countries I have
heard a thousand different causes assigned for the evils of the State, but the
local system was never mentioned amongst them. I have heard citizens attribute
the power and prosperity of their country to a multitude of reasons, but they
all placed the advantages of local institutions in the foremost rank. Am I to
suppose that when men who are naturally so divided on religious opinions and on
political theories agree on one point (and that one of which they have daily
experience), they are all in error? The only nations which deny the utility of
provincial liberties are those which have fewest of them; in other words, those
who are unacquainted with the institution are the only persons who pass a
censure upon it.
Chapter VI: Judicial Power In The United States
Chapter Summary
The Anglo-Americans have retained the characteristics of judicial power which
are common to all nations—They have, however, made it a powerful political
organ—How—In what the judicial system of the Anglo-Americans differs from that
of all other nations—Why the American judges have the right of declaring the
laws to be unconstitutional—How they use this right—Precautions taken by the
legislator to prevent its abuse.
Judicial Power In The United States And Its Influence On Political Society.
I have thought it essential to devote a separate chapter to the judicial
authorities of the United States, lest their great political importance should
be lessened in the reader's eyes by a merely incidental mention of them.
Confederations have existed in other countries beside America, and republics
have not been established upon the shores of the New World alone; the
representative system of government has been adopted in several States of
Europe, but I am not aware that any nation of the globe has hitherto organized a
judicial power on the principle now adopted by the Americans. The judicial
organization of the United States is the institution which a stranger has the
greatest difficulty in understanding. He hears the authority of a judge invoked
in the political occurrences of every day, and he naturally concludes that in
the United States the judges are important political functionaries;
nevertheless, when he examines the nature of the tribunals, they offer nothing
which is contrary to the usual habits and privileges of those bodies, and the
magistrates seem to him to interfere in public affairs of chance, but by a
chance which recurs every day.
When the Parliament of Paris remonstrated, or refused to enregister an edict, or
when it summoned a functionary accused of malversation to its bar, its political
influence as a judicial body was clearly visible; but nothing of the kind is to
be seen in the United States. The Americans have retained all the ordinary
characteristics of judicial authority, and have carefully restricted its action
to the ordinary circle of its functions.
The first characteristic of judicial power in all nations is the duty of
arbitration. But rights must be contested in order to warrant the interference
of a tribunal; and an action must be brought to obtain the decision of a judge.
As long, therefore, as the law is uncontested, the judicial authority is not
called upon to discuss it, and it may exist without being perceived. When a
judge in a given case attacks a law relating to that case, he extends the circle
of his customary duties, without however stepping beyond it; since he is in some
measure obliged to decide upon the law in order to decide the case. But if he
pronounces upon a law without resting upon a case, he clearly steps beyond his
sphere, and invades that of the legislative authority.
The second characteristic of judicial power is that it pronounces on special
cases, and not upon general principles. If a judge in deciding a particular
point destroys a general principle, by passing a judgment which tends to reject
all the inferences from that principle, and consequently to annul it, he remains
within the ordinary limits of his functions. But if he directly attacks a
general principle without having a particular case in view, he leaves the circle
in which all nations have agreed to confine his authority, he assumes a more
important, and perhaps a more useful, influence than that of the magistrate, but
he ceases to be a representative of the judicial power.
The third characteristic of the judicial power is its inability to act unless it
is appealed to, or until it has taken cognizance of an affair. This
characteristic is less general than the other two; but, notwithstanding the
exceptions, I think it may be regarded as essential. The judicial power is by
its nature devoid of action; it must be put in motion in order to produce a
result. When it is called upon to repress a crime, it punishes the criminal;
when a wrong is to be redressed, it is ready to redress it; when an act requires
interpretation, it is prepared to interpret it; but it does not pursue
criminals, hunt out wrongs, or examine into evidence of its own accord. A
judicial functionary who should open proceedings, and usurp the censorship of
the laws, would in some measure do violence to the passive nature of his
authority.
The Americans have retained these three distinguishing characteristics of the
judicial power; an American judge can only pronounce a decision when litigation
has arisen, he is only conversant with special cases, and he cannot act until
the cause has been duly brought before the court. His position is therefore
perfectly similar to that of the magistrate of other nations; and he is
nevertheless invested with immense political power. If the sphere of his
authority and his means of action are the same as those of other judges, it may
be asked whence he derives a power which they do not possess. The cause of this
difference lies in the simple fact that the Americans have acknowledged the
right of the judges to found their decisions on the constitution rather than on
the laws. In other words, they have left them at liberty not to apply such laws
as may appear to them to be unconstitutional.
I am aware that a similar right has been claimed—but claimed in vain—by courts
of justice in other countries; but in America it is recognized by all
authorities; and not a party, nor so much as an individual, is found to contest
it. This fact can only be explained by the principles of the American
constitution. In France the constitution is (or at least is supposed to be)
immutable; and the received theory is that no power has the right of changing
any part of it. In England the Parliament has an acknowledged right to modify
the constitution; as, therefore, the constitution may undergo perpetual changes,
it does not in reality exist; the Parliament is at once a legislative and a
constituent assembly. The political theories of America are more simple and more
rational. An American constitution is not supposed to be immutable as in France,
nor is it susceptible of modification by the ordinary powers of society as in
England. It constitutes a detached whole, which, as it represents the
determination of the whole people, is no less binding on the legislator than on
the private citizen, but which may be altered by the will of the people in
predetermined cases, according to established rules. In America the constitution
may therefore vary, but as long as it exists it is the origin of all authority,
and the sole vehicle of the predominating force. *a
a
[ [The fifth article of the original Constitution of the United States provides
the mode in which amendments of the Constitution may be made. Amendments must be
proposed by two-thirds of both Houses of Congress, and ratified by the
Legislatures of three-fourths of the several States. Fifteen amendments of the
Constitution have been made at different times since 1789, the most important of
which are the Thirteenth, Fourteenth, and Fifteenth, framed and ratified after
the Civil War. The original Constitution of the United States, followed by these
fifteen amendments, is printed at the end of this edition. —Translator's Note,
1874.]]
It is easy to perceive in what manner these differences must act upon the
position and the rights of the judicial bodies in the three countries I have
cited. If in France the tribunals were authorized to disobey the laws on the
ground of their being opposed to the constitution, the supreme power would in
fact be placed in their hands, since they alone would have the right of
interpreting a constitution, the clauses of which can be modified by no
authority. They would therefore take the place of the nation, and exercise as
absolute a sway over society as the inherent weakness of judicial power would
allow them to do. Undoubtedly, as the French judges are incompetent to declare a
law to be unconstitutional, the power of changing the constitution is indirectly
given to the legislative body, since no legal barrier would oppose the
alterations which it might prescribe. But it is better to grant the power of
changing the constitution of the people to men who represent (however
imperfectly) the will of the people, than to men who represent no one but
themselves.
It would be still more unreasonable to invest the English judges with the right
of resisting the decisions of the legislative body, since the Parliament which
makes the laws also makes the constitution; and consequently a law emanating
from the three powers of the State can in no case be unconstitutional. But
neither of these remarks is applicable to America.
In the United States the constitution governs the legislator as much as the
private citizen; as it is the first of laws it cannot be modified by a law, and
it is therefore just that the tribunals should obey the constitution in
preference to any law. This condition is essential to the power of the
judicature, for to select that legal obligation by which he is most strictly
bound is the natural right of every magistrate.
In France the constitution is also the first of laws, and the judges have the
same right to take it as the ground of their decisions, but were they to
exercise this right they must perforce encroach on rights more sacred than their
own, namely, on those of society, in whose name they are acting. In this case
the State-motive clearly prevails over the motives of an individual. In America,
where the nation can always reduce its magistrates to obedience by changing its
constitution, no danger of this kind is to be feared. Upon this point,
therefore, the political and the logical reasons agree, and the people as well
as the judges preserve their privileges.
Whenever a law which the judge holds to be unconstitutional is argued in a
tribunal of the United States he may refuse to admit it as a rule; this power is
the only one which is peculiar to the American magistrate, but it gives rise to
immense political influence. Few laws can escape the searching analysis of the
judicial power for any length of time, for there are few which are not
prejudicial to some private interest or other, and none which may not be brought
before a court of justice by the choice of parties, or by the necessity of the
case. But from the time that a judge has refused to apply any given law in a
case, that law loses a portion of its moral cogency. The persons to whose
interests it is prejudicial learn that means exist of evading its authority, and
similar suits are multiplied, until it becomes powerless. One of two
alternatives must then be resorted to: the people must alter the constitution,
or the legislature must repeal the law. The political power which the Americans
have intrusted to their courts of justice is therefore immense, but the evils of
this power are considerably diminished by the obligation which has been imposed
of attacking the laws through the courts of justice alone. If the judge had been
empowered to contest the laws on the ground of theoretical generalities, if he
had been enabled to open an attack or to pass a censure on the legislator, he
would have played a prominent part in the political sphere; and as the champion
or the antagonist of a party, he would have arrayed the hostile passions of the
nation in the conflict. But when a judge contests a law applied to some
particular case in an obscure proceeding, the importance of his attack is
concealed from the public gaze, his decision bears upon the interest of an
individual, and if the law is slighted it is only collaterally. Moreover,
although it is censured, it is not abolished; its moral force may be diminished,
but its cogency is by no means suspended, and its final destruction can only be
accomplished by the reiterated attacks of judicial functionaries. It will
readily be understood that by connecting the censorship of the laws with the
private interests of members of the community, and by intimately uniting the
prosecution of the law with the prosecution of an individual, legislation is
protected from wanton assailants, and from the daily aggressions of party
spirit. The errors of the legislator are exposed whenever their evil
consequences are most felt, and it is always a positive and appreciable fact
which serves as the basis of a prosecution.
I am inclined to believe this practice of the American courts to be at once the
most favorable to liberty as well as to public order. If the judge could only
attack the legislator openly and directly, he would sometimes be afraid to
oppose any resistance to his will; and at other moments party spirit might
encourage him to brave it at every turn. The laws would consequently be attacked
when the power from which they emanate is weak, and obeyed when it is strong.
That is to say, when it would be useful to respect them they would be contested,
and when it would be easy to convert them into an instrument of oppression they
would be respected. But the American judge is brought into the political arena
independently of his own will. He only judges the law because he is obliged to
judge a case. The political question which he is called upon to resolve is
connected with the interest of the suitors, and he cannot refuse to decide it
without abdicating the duties of his post. He performs his functions as a
citizen by fulfilling the precise duties which belong to his profession as a
magistrate. It is true that upon this system the judicial censorship which is
exercised by the courts of justice over the legislation cannot extend to all
laws indiscriminately, inasmuch as some of them can never give rise to that
exact species of contestation which is termed a lawsuit; and even when such a
contestation is possible, it may happen that no one cares to bring it before a
court of justice. The Americans have often felt this disadvantage, but they have
left the remedy incomplete, lest they should give it an efficacy which might in
some cases prove dangerous. Within these limits the power vested in the American
courts of justice of pronouncing a statute to be unconstitutional forms one of
the most powerful barriers which has ever been devised against the tyranny of
political assemblies.
Other Powers Granted To American Judges
The United States all the citizens have the right of indicting public
functionaries before the ordinary tribunals—How they use this right—Art. 75 of
the French Constitution of the An VIII—The Americans and the English cannot
understand the purport of this clause.
It is perfectly natural that in a free country like America all the citizens
should have the right of indicting public functionaries before the ordinary
tribunals, and that all the judges should have the power of punishing public
offences. The right granted to the courts of justice of judging the agents of
the executive government, when they have violated the laws, is so natural a one
that it cannot be looked upon as an extraordinary privilege. Nor do the springs
of government appear to me to be weakened in the United States by the custom
which renders all public officers responsible to the judges of the land. The
Americans seem, on the contrary, to have increased by this means that respect
which is due to the authorities, and at the same time to have rendered those who
are in power more scrupulous of offending public opinion. I was struck by the
small number of political trials which occur in the United States, but I had no
difficulty in accounting for this circumstance. A lawsuit, of whatever nature it
may be, is always a difficult and expensive undertaking. It is easy to attack a
public man in a journal, but the motives which can warrant an action at law must
be serious. A solid ground of complaint must therefore exist to induce an
individual to prosecute a public officer, and public officers are careful not to
furnish these grounds of complaint when they are afraid of being prosecuted.
This does not depend upon the republican form of American institutions, for the
same facts present themselves in England. These two nations do not regard the
impeachment of the principal officers of State as a sufficient guarantee of
their independence. But they hold that the right of minor prosecutions, which
are within the reach of the whole community, is a better pledge of freedom than
those great judicial actions which are rarely employed until it is too late.
In the Middle Ages, when it was very difficult to overtake offenders, the judges
inflicted the most dreadful tortures on the few who were arrested, which by no
means diminished the number of crimes. It has since been discovered that when
justice is more certain and more mild, it is at the same time more efficacious.
The English and the Americans hold that tyranny and oppression are to be treated
like any other crime, by lessening the penalty and facilitating conviction.
In the year VIII of the French Republic a constitution was drawn up in which the
following clause was introduced: "Art. 75. All the agents of the government
below the rank of ministers can only be prosecuted for offences relating to
their several functions by virtue of a decree of the Conseil d'Etat; in which
the case the prosecution takes place before the ordinary tribunals." This clause
survived the "Constitution de l'An VIII," and it is still maintained in spite of
the just complaints of the nation. I have always found the utmost difficulty in
explaining its meaning to Englishmen or Americans. They were at once led to
conclude that the Conseil d'Etat in France was a great tribunal, established in
the centre of the kingdom, which exercised a preliminary and somewhat tyrannical
jurisdiction in all political causes. But when I told them that the Conseil
d'Etat was not a judicial body, in the common sense of the term, but an
administrative council composed of men dependent on the Crown, so that the king,
after having ordered one of his servants, called a Prefect, to commit an
injustice, has the power of commanding another of his servants, called a
Councillor of State, to prevent the former from being punished; when I
demonstrated to them that the citizen who has been injured by the order of the
sovereign is obliged to solicit from the sovereign permission to obtain redress,
they refused to credit so flagrant an abuse, and were tempted to accuse me of
falsehood or of ignorance. It frequently happened before the Revolution that a
Parliament issued a warrant against a public officer who had committed an
offence, and sometimes the proceedings were stopped by the authority of the
Crown, which enforced compliance with its absolute and despotic will. It is
painful to perceive how much lower we are sunk than our forefathers, since we
allow things to pass under the color of justice and the sanction of the law
which violence alone could impose upon them.
Chapter VII: Political Jurisdiction In The United States
Chapter Summary
Definition of political jurisdiction—What is understood by political
jurisdiction in France, in England, and in the United States—In America the
political judge can only pass sentence on public officers—He more frequently
passes a sentence of removal from office than a penalty—Political jurisdiction
as it exists in the United States is, notwithstanding its mildness, and perhaps
in consequence of that mildness, a most powerful instrument in the hands of the
majority.
Political Jurisdiction In The United States
I understand, by political jurisdiction, that temporary right of pronouncing a
legal decision with which a political body may be invested.
In absolute governments no utility can accrue from the introduction of
extraordinary forms of procedure; the prince in whose name an offender is
prosecuted is as much the sovereign of the courts of justice as of everything
else, and the idea which is entertained of his power is of itself a sufficient
security. The only thing he has to fear is, that the external formalities of
justice should be neglected, and that his authority should be dishonored from a
wish to render it more absolute. But in most free countries, in which the
majority can never exercise the same influence upon the tribunals as an absolute
monarch, the judicial power has occasionally been vested for a time in the
representatives of the nation. It has been thought better to introduce a
temporary confusion between the functions of the different authorities than to
violate the necessary principle of the unity of government.
England, France, and the United States have established this political
jurisdiction by law; and it is curious to examine the different adaptations
which these three great nations have made of the principle. In England and in
France the House of Lords and the Chambre des Paris *a constitute the highest
criminal court of their respective nations, and although they do not habitually
try all political offences, they are competent to try them all. Another
political body enjoys the right of impeachment before the House of Lords: the
only difference which exists between the two countries in this respect is, that
in England the Commons may impeach whomsoever they please before the Lords,
whilst in France the Deputies can only employ this mode of prosecution against
the ministers of the Crown.
a
[ [As it existed under the constitutional monarchy down to 1848.]]
In both countries the Upper House may make use of all the existing penal laws of
the nation to punish the delinquents.
In the United States, as well as in Europe, one branch of the legislature is
authorized to impeach and another to judge: the House of Representatives
arraigns the offender, and the Senate awards his sentence. But the Senate can
only try such persons as are brought before it by the House of Representatives,
and those persons must belong to the class of public functionaries. Thus the
jurisdiction of the Senate is less extensive than that of the Peers of France,
whilst the right of impeachment by the Representatives is more general than that
of the Deputies. But the great difference which exists between Europe and
America is, that in Europe political tribunals are empowered to inflict all the
dispositions of the penal code, while in America, when they have deprived the
offender of his official rank, and have declared him incapable of filling any
political office for the future, their jurisdiction terminates and that of the
ordinary tribunals begins.
Suppose, for instance, that the President of the United States has committed the
crime of high treason; the House of Representatives impeaches him, and the
Senate degrades him; he must then be tried by a jury, which alone can deprive
him of his liberty or his life. This accurately illustrates the subject we are
treating. The political jurisdiction which is established by the laws of Europe
is intended to try great offenders, whatever may be their birth, their rank, or
their powers in the State; and to this end all the privileges of the courts of
justice are temporarily extended to a great political assembly. The legislator
is then transformed into the magistrate; he is called upon to admit, to
distinguish, and to punish the offence; and as he exercises all the authority of
a judge, the law restricts him to the observance of all the duties of that high
office, and of all the formalities of justice. When a public functionary is
impeached before an English or a French political tribunal, and is found guilty,
the sentence deprives him ipso facto of his functions, and it may pronounce him
to be incapable of resuming them or any others for the future. But in this case
the political interdict is a consequence of the sentence, and not the sentence
itself. In Europe the sentence of a political tribunal is to be regarded as a
judicial verdict rather than as an administrative measure. In the United States
the contrary takes place; and although the decision of the Senate is judicial in
its form, since the Senators are obliged to comply with the practices and
formalities of a court of justice; although it is judicial in respect to the
motives on which it is founded, since the Senate is in general obliged to take
an offence at common law as the basis of its sentence; nevertheless the object
of the proceeding is purely administrative. If it had been the intention of the
American legislator to invest a political body with great judicial authority,
its action would not have been limited to the circle of public functionaries,
since the most dangerous enemies of the State may be in the possession of no
functions at all; and this is especially true in republics, where party
influence is the first of authorities, and where the strength of many a reader
is increased by his exercising no legal power.
If it had been the intention of the American legislator to give society the
means of repressing State offences by exemplary punishment, according to the
practice of ordinary justice, the resources of the penal code would all have
been placed at the disposal of the political tribunals. But the weapon with
which they are intrusted is an imperfect one, and it can never reach the most
dangerous offenders, since men who aim at the entire subversion of the laws are
not likely to murmur at a political interdict.
The main object of the political jurisdiction which obtains in the United States
is, therefore, to deprive the ill-disposed citizen of an authority which he has
used amiss, and to prevent him from ever acquiring it again. This is evidently
an administrative measure sanctioned by the formalities of a judicial decision.
In this matter the Americans have created a mixed system; they have surrounded
the act which removes a public functionary with the securities of a political
trial; and they have deprived all political condemnations of their severest
penalties. Every link of the system may easily be traced from this point; we at
once perceive why the American constitutions subject all the civil functionaries
to the jurisdiction of the Senate, whilst the military, whose crimes are
nevertheless more formidable, are exempted from that tribunal. In the civil
service none of the American functionaries can be said to be removable; the
places which some of them occupy are inalienable, and the others are chosen for
a term which cannot be shortened. It is therefore necessary to try them all in
order to deprive them of their authority. But military officers are dependent on
the chief magistrate of the State, who is himself a civil functionary, and the
decision which condemns him is a blow upon them all.
If we now compare the American and the European systems, we shall meet with
differences no less striking in the different effects which each of them
produces or may produce. In France and in England the jurisdiction of political
bodies is looked upon as an extraordinary resource, which is only to be employed
in order to rescue society from unwonted dangers. It is not to be denied that
these tribunals, as they are constituted in Europe, are apt to violate the
conservative principle of the balance of power in the State, and to threaten
incessantly the lives and liberties of the subject. The same political
jurisdiction in the United States is only indirectly hostile to the balance of
power; it cannot menace the lives of the citizens, and it does not hover, as in
Europe, over the heads of the community, since those only who have submitted to
its authority on accepting office are exposed to the severity of its
investigations. It is at the same time less formidable and less efficacious;
indeed, it has not been considered by the legislators of the United States as a
remedy for the more violent evils of society, but as an ordinary means of
conducting the government. In this respect it probably exercises more real
influence on the social body in America than in Europe. We must not be misled by
the apparent mildness of the American legislation in all that relates to
political jurisdiction. It is to be observed, in the first place, that in the
United States the tribunal which passes sentence is composed of the same
elements, and subject to the same influences, as the body which impeaches the
offender, and that this uniformity gives an almost irresistible impulse to the
vindictive passions of parties. If political judges in the United States cannot
inflict such heavy penalties as those of Europe, there is the less chance of
their acquitting a prisoner; and the conviction, if it is less formidable, is
more certain. The principal object of the political tribunals of Europe is to
punish the offender; the purpose of those in America is to deprive him of his
authority. A political condemnation in the United States may, therefore, be
looked upon as a preventive measure; and there is no reason for restricting the
judges to the exact definitions of criminal law. Nothing can be more alarming
than the excessive latitude with which political offences are described in the
laws of America. Article II., Section 4, of the Constitution of the United
States runs thus:—"The President, Vice-President, and all civil officers of the
United States shall be removed from office on impeachment for, and conviction
of, treason, bribery, or other high crimes and misdemeanors." Many of the
Constitutions of the States are even less explicit. "Public officers," says the
Constitution of Massachusetts, *b "shall be impeached for misconduct or
maladministration;" the Constitution of Virginia declares that all the civil
officers who shall have offended against the State, by maladministration,
corruption, or other high crimes, may be impeached by the House of Delegates; in
some constitutions no offences are specified, in order to subject the public
functionaries to an unlimited responsibility. *c But I will venture to affirm
that it is precisely their mildness which renders the American laws most
formidable in this respect. We have shown that in Europe the removal of a
functionary and his political interdiction are the consequences of the penalty
he is to undergo, and that in America they constitute the penalty itself. The
consequence is that in Europe political tribunals are invested with rights which
they are afraid to use, and that the fear of punishing too much hinders them
from punishing at all. But in America no one hesitates to inflict a penalty from
which humanity does not recoil. To condemn a political opponent to death, in
order to deprive him of his power, is to commit what all the world would
execrate as a horrible assassination; but to declare that opponent unworthy to
exercise that authority, to deprive him of it, and to leave him uninjured in
life and limb, may be judged to be the fair issue of the struggle. But this
sentence, which it is so easy to pronounce, is not the less fatally severe to
the majority of those upon whom it is inflicted. Great criminals may undoubtedly
brave its intangible rigor, but ordinary offenders will dread it as a
condemnation which destroys their position in the world, casts a blight upon
their honor, and condemns them to a shameful inactivity worse than death. The
influence exercised in the United States upon the progress of society by the
jurisdiction of political bodies may not appear to be formidable, but it is only
the more immense. It does not directly coerce the subject, but it renders the
majority more absolute over those in power; it does not confer an unbounded
authority on the legislator which can be exerted at some momentous crisis, but
it establishes a temperate and regular influence, which is at all times
available. If the power is decreased, it can, on the other hand, be more
conveniently employed and more easily abused. By preventing political tribunals
from inflicting judicial punishments the Americans seem to have eluded the worst
consequences of legislative tyranny, rather than tyranny itself; and I am not
sure that political jurisdiction, as it is constituted in the United States, is
not the most formidable weapon which has ever been placed in the rude grasp of a
popular majority. When the American republics begin to degenerate it will be
easy to verify the truth of this observation, by remarking whether the number of
political impeachments augments.*d
b
[ Chap. I. sect. ii. Section 8.]
c
[ See the constitutions of Illinois, Maine, Connecticut, and Georgia.]
d
[ See Appendix, N.
[The impeachment of President Andrew Johnson in 1868—which was resorted to by
his political opponents solely as a means of turning him out of office, for it
could not be contended that he had been guilty of high crimes and misdemeanors,
and he was in fact honorably acquitted and reinstated in office—is a striking
confirmation of the truth of this remark.—Translator's Note, 1874.]]
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part I
I have hitherto considered each State as a separate whole, and I have explained
the different springs which the people sets in motion, and the different means
of action which it employs. But all the States which I have considered as
independent are forced to submit, in certain cases, to the supreme authority of
the Union. The time is now come for me to examine separately the supremacy with
which the Union has been invested, and to cast a rapid glance over the Federal
Constitution.
Chapter Summary
Origin of the first Union—Its weakness—Congress appeals to the constituent
authority—Interval of two years between this appeal and the promulgation of the
new Constitution.
History Of The Federal Constitution
The thirteen colonies which simultaneously threw off the yoke of England towards
the end of the last century professed, as I have already observed, the same
religion, the same language, the same customs, and almost the same laws; they
were struggling against a common enemy; and these reasons were sufficiently
strong to unite them one to another, and to consolidate them into one nation.
But as each of them had enjoyed a separate existence and a government within its
own control, the peculiar interests and customs which resulted from this system
were opposed to a compact and intimate union which would have absorbed the
individual importance of each in the general importance of all. Hence arose two
opposite tendencies, the one prompting the Anglo-Americans to unite, the other
to divide their strength. As long as the war with the mother-country lasted the
principle of union was kept alive by necessity; and although the laws which
constituted it were defective, the common tie subsisted in spite of their
imperfections. *a But no sooner was peace concluded than the faults of the
legislation became manifest, and the State seemed to be suddenly dissolved. Each
colony became an independent republic, and assumed an absolute sovereignty. The
federal government, condemned to impotence by its constitution, and no longer
sustained by the presence of a common danger, witnessed the outrages offered to
its flag by the great nations of Europe, whilst it was scarcely able to maintain
its ground against the Indian tribes, and to pay the interest of the debt which
had been contracted during the war of independence. It was already on the verge
of destruction, when it officially proclaimed its inability to conduct the
government, and appealed to the constituent authority of the nation. *b If
America ever approached (for however brief a time) that lofty pinnacle of glory
to which the fancy of its inhabitants is wont to point, it was at the solemn
moment at which the power of the nation abdicated, as it were, the empire of the
land. All ages have furnished the spectacle of a people struggling with energy
to win its independence; and the efforts of the Americans in throwing off the
English yoke have been considerably exaggerated. Separated from their enemies by
three thousand miles of ocean, and backed by a powerful ally, the success of the
United States may be more justly attributed to their geographical position than
to the valor of their armies or the patriotism of their citizens. It would be
ridiculous to compare the American was to the wars of the French Revolution, or
the efforts of the Americans to those of the French when they were attacked by
the whole of Europe, without credit and without allies, yet capable of opposing
a twentieth part of their population to the world, and of bearing the torch of
revolution beyond their frontiers whilst they stifled its devouring flame within
the bosom of their country. But it is a novelty in the history of society to see
a great people turn a calm and scrutinizing eye upon itself, when apprised by
the legislature that the wheels of government are stopped; to see it carefully
examine the extent of the evil, and patiently wait for two whole years until a
remedy was discovered, which it voluntarily adopted without having wrung a tear
or a drop of blood from mankind. At the time when the inadequacy of the first
constitution was discovered America possessed the double advantage of that calm
which had succeeded the effervescence of the revolution, and of those great men
who had led the revolution to a successful issue. The assembly which accepted
the task of composing the second constitution was small; *c but George
Washington was its President, and it contained the choicest talents and the
noblest hearts which had ever appeared in the New World. This national
commission, after long and mature deliberation, offered to the acceptance of the
people the body of general laws which still rules the Union. All the States
adopted it successively. *d The new Federal Government commenced its functions
in 1789, after an interregnum of two years. The Revolution of America terminated
when that of France began.
a
[ See the articles of the first confederation formed in 1778. This constitution
was not adopted by all the States until 1781. See also the analysis given of
this constitution in "The Federalist" from No. 15 to No. 22, inclusive, and
Story's "Commentaries on the Constitution of the United States," pp. 85-115.]
b
[ Congress made this declaration on February 21, 1787.]
c
[ It consisted of fifty-five members; Washington, Madison, Hamilton, and the two
Morrises were amongst the number.]
d
[ It was not adopted by the legislative bodies, but representatives were elected
by the people for this sole purpose; and the new constitution was discussed at
length in each of these assemblies.]
Summary Of The Federal Constitution
Division of authority between the Federal Government and the States—The
Government of the States is the rule, the Federal Government the exception.
The first question which awaited the Americans was intricate, and by no means
easy of solution: the object was so to divide the authority of the different
States which composed the Union that each of them should continue to govern
itself in all that concerned its internal prosperity, whilst the entire nation,
represented by the Union, should continue to form a compact body, and to provide
for the general exigencies of the people. It was as impossible to determine
beforehand, with any degree of accuracy, the share of authority which each of
two governments was to enjoy, as to foresee all the incidents in the existence
of a nation.
The obligations and the claims of the Federal Government were simple and easily
definable, because the Union had been formed with the express purpose of meeting
the general exigencies of the people; but the claims and obligations of the
States were, on the other hand, complicated and various, because those
Governments had penetrated into all the details of social life. The attributes
of the Federal Government were therefore carefully enumerated and all that was
not included amongst them was declared to constitute a part of the privileges of
the several Governments of the States. Thus the government of the States
remained the rule, and that of the Confederation became the exception. *e
e
[ See the Amendment to the Federal Constitution; "Federalist," No. 32; Story, p.
711; Kent's "Commentaries," vol. i. p. 364.
It is to be observed that whenever the exclusive right of regulating certain
matters is not reserved to Congress by the Constitution, the States may take up
the affair until it is brought before the National Assembly. For instance,
Congress has the right of making a general law on bankruptcy, which, however, it
neglects to do. Each State is then at liberty to make a law for itself. This
point has been established by discussion in the law-courts, and may be said to
belong more properly to jurisprudence.]
But as it was foreseen that, in practice, questions might arise as to the exact
limits of this exceptional authority, and that it would be dangerous to submit
these questions to the decision of the ordinary courts of justice, established
in the States by the States themselves, a high Federal court was created, *f
which was destined, amongst other functions, to maintain the balance of power
which had been established by the Constitution between the two rival
Governments. *g
f
[ The action of this court is indirect, as we shall hereafter show.]
g
[ It is thus that "The Federalist," No. 45, explains the division of supremacy
between the Union and the States: "The powers delegated by the Constitution to
the Federal Government are few and defined. Those which are to remain in the
State Governments are numerous and indefinite. The former will be exercised
principally on external objects, as war, peace, negotiation, and foreign
commerce. The powers reserved to the several States will extend to all the
objects which, in the ordinary course of affairs, concern the internal order and
prosperity of the State." I shall often have occasion to quote "The Federalist"
in this work. When the bill which has since become the Constitution of the
United States was submitted to the approval of the people, and the discussions
were still pending, three men, who had already acquired a portion of that
celebrity which they have since enjoyed—John Jay, Hamilton, and Madison—formed
an association with the intention of explaining to the nation the advantages of
the measure which was proposed. With this view they published a series of
articles in the shape of a journal, which now form a complete treatise. They
entitled their journal "The Federalist," a name which has been retained in the
work. "The Federalist" is an excellent book, which ought to be familiar to the
statesmen of all countries, although it especially concerns America.]
Prerogative Of The Federal Government
Power of declaring war, making peace, and levying general taxes vested in the
Federal Government—What part of the internal policy of the country it may
direct—The Government of the Union in some respects more central than the King's
Government in the old French monarchy.
The external relations of a people may be compared to those of private
individuals, and they cannot be advantageously maintained without the agency of
a single head of a Government. The exclusive right of making peace and war, of
concluding treaties of commerce, of raising armies, and equipping fleets, was
granted to the Union. *h The necessity of a national Government was less
imperiously felt in the conduct of the internal policy of society; but there are
certain general interests which can only be attended to with advantage by a
general authority. The Union was invested with the power of controlling the
monetary system, of directing the post office, and of opening the great roads
which were to establish a communication between the different parts of the
country. *i The independence of the Government of each State was formally
recognized in its sphere; nevertheless, the Federal Government was authorized to
interfere in the internal affairs of the States *j in a few predetermined cases,
in which an indiscreet abuse of their independence might compromise the security
of the Union at large. Thus, whilst the power of modifying and changing their
legislation at pleasure was preserved in all the republics, they were forbidden
to enact ex post facto laws, or to create a class of nobles in their community.
*k Lastly, as it was necessary that the Federal Government should be able to
fulfil its engagements, it was endowed with an unlimited power of levying taxes.
*l
h
[ See Constitution, sect. 8; "Federalist," Nos. 41 and 42; Kent's
"Commentaries," vol. i. p. 207; Story, pp. 358-382; Ibid. pp. 409-426.]
i
[ Several other privileges of the same kind exist, such as that which empowers
the Union to legislate on bankruptcy, to grant patents, and other matters in
which its intervention is clearly necessary.]
j
[ Even in these cases its interference is indirect. The Union interferes by
means of the tribunals, as will be hereafter shown.]
k
[ Federal Constitution, sect. 10, art. I.]
l
[ Constitution, sects. 8, 9, and 10; "Federalist," Nos. 30-36, inclusive, and
41-44; Kent's "Commentaries," vol. i. pp. 207 and 381; Story, pp. 329 and 514.]
In examining the balance of power as established by the Federal Constitution; in
remarking on the one hand the portion of sovereignty which has been reserved to
the several States, and on the other the share of power which the Union has
assumed, it is evident that the Federal legislators entertained the clearest and
most accurate notions on the nature of the centralization of government. The
United States form not only a republic, but a confederation; nevertheless the
authority of the nation is more central than it was in several of the monarchies
of Europe when the American Constitution was formed. Take, for instance, the two
following examples.
Thirteen supreme courts of justice existed in France, which, generally speaking,
had the right of interpreting the law without appeal; and those provinces which
were styled pays d'etats were authorized to refuse their assent to an impost
which had been levied by the sovereign who represented the nation. In the Union
there is but one tribunal to interpret, as there is one legislature to make the
laws; and an impost voted by the representatives of the nation is binding upon
all the citizens. In these two essential points, therefore, the Union exercises
more central authority than the French monarchy possessed, although the Union is
only an assemblage of confederate republics.
In Spain certain provinces had the right of establishing a system of
custom-house duties peculiar to themselves, although that privilege belongs, by
its very nature, to the national sovereignty. In America the Congress alone has
the right of regulating the commercial relations of the States. The government
of the Confederation is therefore more centralized in this respect than the
kingdom of Spain. It is true that the power of the Crown in France or in Spain
was always able to obtain by force whatever the Constitution of the country
denied, and that the ultimate result was consequently the same; but I am here
discussing the theory of the Constitution.
Federal Powers
After having settled the limits within which the Federal Government was to act,
the next point was to determine the powers which it was to exert.
Legislative Powers *m
m
[ [In this chapter the author points out the essence of the conflict between the
seceding States and the Union which caused the Civil War of 1861.]]
Division of the Legislative Body into two branches—Difference in the manner of
forming the two Houses—The principle of the independence of the States
predominates in the formation of the Senate—The principle of the sovereignty of
the nation in the composition of the House of Representatives—Singular effects
of the fact that a Constitution can only be logical in the early stages of a
nation.
The plan which had been laid down beforehand for the Constitutions of the
several States was followed, in many points, in the organization of the powers
of the Union. The Federal legislature of the Union was composed of a Senate and
a House of Representatives. A spirit of conciliation prescribed the observance
of distinct principles in the formation of these two assemblies. I have already
shown that two contrary interests were opposed to each other in the
establishment of the Federal Constitution. These two interests had given rise to
two opinions. It was the wish of one party to convert the Union into a league of
independent States, or a sort of congress, at which the representatives of the
several peoples would meet to discuss certain points of their common interests.
The other party desired to unite the inhabitants of the American colonies into
one sole nation, and to establish a Government which should act as the sole
representative of the nation, as far as the limited sphere of its authority
would permit. The practical consequences of these two theories were exceedingly
different.
The question was, whether a league was to be established instead of a national
Government; whether the majority of the State, instead of the majority of the
inhabitants of the Union, was to give the law: for every State, the small as
well as the great, would then remain in the full enjoyment of its independence,
and enter the Union upon a footing of perfect equality. If, however, the
inhabitants of the United States were to be considered as belonging to one and
the same nation, it would be just that the majority of the citizens of the Union
should prescribe the law. Of course the lesser States could not subscribe to the
application of this doctrine without, in fact, abdicating their existence in
relation to the sovereignty of the Confederation; since they would have passed
from the condition of a co-equal and co-legislative authority to that of an
insignificant fraction of a great people. But if the former system would have
invested them with an excessive authority, the latter would have annulled their
influence altogether. Under these circumstances the result was, that the strict
rules of logic were evaded, as is usually the case when interests are opposed to
arguments. A middle course was hit upon by the legislators, which brought
together by force two systems theoretically irreconcilable.
The principle of the independence of the States prevailed in the formation of
the Senate, and that of the sovereignty of the nation predominated in the
composition of the House of Representatives. It was decided that each State
should send two senators to Congress, and a number of representatives
proportioned to its population. *n It results from this arrangement that the
State of New York has at the present day forty representatives and only two
senators; the State of Delaware has two senators and only one representative;
the State of Delaware is therefore equal to the State of New York in the Senate,
whilst the latter has forty times the influence of the former in the House of
Representatives. Thus, if the minority of the nation preponderates in the
Senate,. it may paralyze the decisions of the majority represented in the other
House, which is contrary to the spirit of constitutional government.
n
[ Every ten years Congress fixes anew the number of representatives which each
State is to furnish. The total number was 69 in 1789, and 240 in 1833. (See
"American Almanac," 1834, p. 194.) The Constitution decided that there should
not be more than one representative for every 30,000 persons; but no minimum was
fixed on. The Congress has not thought fit to augment the number of
representatives in proportion to the increase of population. The first Act which
was passed on the subject (April 14, 1792: see "Laws of the United States," by
Story, vol. i. p. 235) decided that there should be one representative for every
33,000 inhabitants. The last Act, which was passed in 1832, fixes the proportion
at one for 48,000. The population represented is composed of all the free men
and of three-fifths of the slaves.
[The last Act of apportionment, passed February 2, 1872, fixes the
representation at one to 134,684 inhabitants. There are now (1875) 283 members
of the lower House of Congress, and 9 for the States at large, making in all 292
members. The old States have of course lost the representatives which the new
States have gained.—Translator's Note.]]
These facts show how rare and how difficult it is rationally and logically to
combine all the several parts of legislation. In the course of time different
interests arise, and different principles are sanctioned by the same people; and
when a general constitution is to be established, these interests and principles
are so many natural obstacles to the rigorous application of any political
system, with all its consequences. The early stages of national existence are
the only periods at which it is possible to maintain the complete logic of
legislation; and when we perceive a nation in the enjoyment of this advantage,
before we hasten to conclude that it is wise, we should do well to remember that
it is young. When the Federal Constitution was formed, the interests of
independence for the separate States, and the interest of union for the whole
people, were the only two conflicting interests which existed amongst the
Anglo-Americans, and a compromise was necessarily made between them.
It is, however, just to acknowledge that this part of the Constitution has not
hitherto produced those evils which might have been feared. All the States are
young and contiguous; their customs, their ideas, and their exigencies are not
dissimilar; and the differences which result from their size or inferiority do
not suffice to set their interests at variance. The small States have
consequently never been induced to league themselves together in the Senate to
oppose the designs of the larger ones; and indeed there is so irresistible an
authority in the legitimate expression of the will of a people that the Senate
could offer but a feeble opposition to the vote of the majority of the House of
Representatives.
It must not be forgotten, on the other hand, that it was not in the power of the
American legislators to reduce to a single nation the people for whom they were
making laws. The object of the Federal Constitution was not to destroy the
independence of the States, but to restrain it. By acknowledging the real
authority of these secondary communities (and it was impossible to deprive them
of it), they disavowed beforehand the habitual use of constraint in enforcing g
the decisions of the majority. Upon this principle the introduction of the
influence of the States into the mechanism of the Federal Government was by no
means to be wondered at, since it only attested the existence of an acknowledged
power, which was to be humored and not forcibly checked.
A Further Difference Between The Senate And The House Of Representatives
The Senate named by the provincial legislators, the Representatives by the
people—Double election of the former; single election of the latter—Term of the
different offices—Peculiar functions of each House.
The Senate not only differs from the other House in the principle which it
represents, but also in the mode of its election, in the term for which it is
chosen, and in the nature of its functions. The House of Representatives is
named by the people, the Senate by the legislators of each State; the former is
directly elected, the latter is elected by an elected body; the term for which
the representatives are chosen is only two years, that of the senators is six.
The functions of the House of Representatives are purely legislative, and the
only share it takes in the judicial power is in the impeachment of public
officers. The Senate co-operates in the work of legislation, and tries those
political offences which the House of Representatives submits to its decision.
It also acts as the great executive council of the nation; the treaties which
are concluded by the President must be ratified by the Senate, and the
appointments he may make must be definitely approved by the same body. *o
o
[ See "The Federalist," Nos. 52-56, inclusive; Story, pp. 199-314; Constitution
of the United States, sects. 2 and 3.] The Executive Power *p
p
[ See "The Federalist," Nos. 67-77; Constitution of the United States, art. 2;
Story, p. 315, pp. 615-780; Kent's "Commentaries," p. 255.]
Dependence of the President—He is elective and responsible—He is free to act in
his own sphere under the inspection, but not under the direction, of the
Senate—His salary fixed at his entry into office—Suspensive veto.
The American legislators undertook a difficult task in attempting to create an
executive power dependent on the majority of the people, and nevertheless
sufficiently strong to act without restraint in its own sphere. It was
indispensable to the maintenance of the republican form of government that the
representative of the executive power should be subject to the will of the
nation.
The President is an elective magistrate. His honor, his property, his liberty,
and his life are the securities which the people has for the temperate use of
his power. But in the exercise of his authority he cannot be said to be
perfectly independent; the Senate takes cognizance of his relations with foreign
powers, and of the distribution of public appointments, so that he can neither
be bribed nor can he employ the means of corruption. The legislators of the
Union acknowledged that the executive power would be incompetent to fulfil its
task with dignity and utility, unless it enjoyed a greater degree of stability
and of strength than had been granted to it in the separate States.
The President is chosen for four years, and he may be reelected; so that the
chances of a prolonged administration may inspire him with hopeful undertakings
for the public good, and with the means of carrying them into execution. The
President was made the sole representative of the executive power of the Union,
and care was taken not to render his decisions subordinate to the vote of a
council—a dangerous measure, which tends at the same time to clog the action of
the Government and to diminish its responsibility. The Senate has the right of
annulling g certain acts of the President; but it cannot compel him to take any
steps, nor does it participate in the exercise of the executive power.
The action of the legislature on the executive power may be direct; and we have
just shown that the Americans carefully obviated this influence; but it may, on
the other hand, be indirect. Public assemblies which have the power of depriving
an officer of state of his salary encroach upon his independence; and as they
are free to make the laws, it is to be feared lest they should gradually
appropriate to themselves a portion of that authority which the Constitution had
vested in his hands. This dependence of the executive power is one of the
defects inherent in republican constitutions. The Americans have not been able
to counteract the tendency which legislative assemblies have to get possession
of the government, but they have rendered this propensity less irresistible. The
salary of the President is fixed, at the time of his entering upon office, for
the whole period of his magistracy. The President is, moreover, provided with a
suspensive veto, which allows him to oppose the passing of such laws as might
destroy the portion of independence which the Constitution awards him. The
struggle between the President and the legislature must always be an unequal
one, since the latter is certain of bearing down all resistance by persevering
in its plans; but the suspensive veto forces it at least to reconsider the
matter, and, if the motion be persisted in, it must then be backed by a majority
of two-thirds of the whole house. The veto is, in fact, a sort of appeal to the
people. The executive power, which, without this security, might have been
secretly oppressed, adopts this means of pleading its cause and stating its
motives. But if the legislature is certain of overpowering all resistance by
persevering in its plans, I reply, that in the constitutions of all nations, of
whatever kind they may be, a certain point exists at which the legislator is
obliged to have recourse to the good sense and the virtue of his
fellow-citizens. This point is more prominent and more discoverable in
republics, whilst it is more remote and more carefully concealed in monarchies,
but it always exists somewhere. There is no country in the world in which
everything can be provided for by the laws, or in which political institutions
can prove a substitute for common sense and public morality.
Differences Between The Position Of The President Of The United States And That
Of A Constitutional King Of France
Executive power in the Northern States as limited and as partial as the
supremacy which it represents—Executive power in France as universal as the
supremacy it represents—The King a branch of the legislature—The President the
mere executor of the law—Other differences resulting from the duration of the
two powers—The President checked in the exercise of the executive authority—The
King independent in its exercise—Notwithstanding these discrepancies France is
more akin to a republic than the Union to a monarchy—Comparison of the number of
public officers depending upon the executive power in the two countries.
The executive power has so important an influence on the destinies of nations
that I am inclined to pause for an instant at this portion of my subject, in
order more clearly to explain the part it sustains in America. In order to form
an accurate idea of the position of the President of the United States, it may
not be irrelevant to compare it to that of one of the constitutional kings of
Europe. In this comparison I shall pay but little attention to the external
signs of power, which are more apt to deceive the eye of the observer than to
guide his researches. When a monarchy is being gradually transformed into a
republic, the executive power retains the titles, the honors, the etiquette, and
even the funds of royalty long after its authority has disappeared. The English,
after having cut off the head of one king and expelled another from his throne,
were accustomed to accost the successor of those princes upon their knees. On
the other hand, when a republic falls under the sway of a single individual, the
demeanor of the sovereign is simple and unpretending, as if his authority was
not yet paramount. When the emperors exercised an unlimited control over the
fortunes and the lives of their fellow-citizens, it was customary to call them
Caesar in conversation, and they were in the habit of supping without formality
at their friends' houses. It is therefore necessary to look below the surface.
The sovereignty of the United States is shared between the Union and the States,
whilst in France it is undivided and compact: hence arises the first and the
most notable difference which exists between the President of the United States
and the King of France. In the United States the executive power is as limited
and partial as the sovereignty of the Union in whose name it acts; in France it
is as universal as the authority of the State. The Americans have a federal and
the French a national Government.
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part II
This cause of inferiority results from the nature of things, but it is not the
only one; the second in importance is as follows: Sovereignty may be defined to
be the right of making laws: in France, the King really exercises a portion of
the sovereign power, since the laws have no weight till he has given his assent
to them; he is, moreover, the executor of all they ordain. The President is also
the executor of the laws, but he does not really co-operate in their formation,
since the refusal of his assent does not annul them. He is therefore merely to
be considered as the agent of the sovereign power. But not only does the King of
France exercise a portion of the sovereign power, he also contributes to the
nomination of the legislature, which exercises the other portion. He has the
privilege of appointing the members of one chamber, and of dissolving the other
at his pleasure; whereas the President of the United States has no share in the
formation of the legislative body, and cannot dissolve any part of it. The King
has the same right of bringing forward measures as the Chambers; a right which
the President does not possess. The King is represented in each assembly by his
ministers, who explain his intentions, support his opinions, and maintain the
principles of the Government. The President and his ministers are alike excluded
from Congress; so that his influence and his opinions can only penetrate
indirectly into that great body. The King of France is therefore on an equal
footing with the legislature, which can no more act without him than he can
without it. The President exercises an authority inferior to, and depending
upon, that of the legislature.
Even in the exercise of the executive power, properly so called—the point upon
which his position seems to be most analogous to that of the King of France—the
President labors under several causes of inferiority. The authority of the King,
in France, has, in the first place, the advantage of duration over that of the
President, and durability is one of the chief elements of strength; nothing is
either loved or feared but what is likely to endure. The President of the United
States is a magistrate elected for four years; the King, in France, is an
hereditary sovereign. In the exercise of the executive power the President of
the United States is constantly subject to a jealous scrutiny. He may make, but
he cannot conclude, a treaty; he may designate, but he cannot appoint, a public
officer. *q The King of France is absolute within the limits of his authority.
The President of the United States is responsible for his actions; but the
person of the King is declared inviolable by the French Charter. *r
q
[ The Constitution had left it doubtful whether the President was obliged to
consult the Senate in the removal as well as in the appointment of Federal
officers. "The Federalist" (No. 77) seemed to establish the affirmative; but in
1789 Congress formally decided that, as the President was responsible for his
actions, he ought not to be forced to employ agents who had forfeited his
esteem. See Kent's "Commentaries", vol. i. p. 289.]
r
[ [This comparison applied to the Constitutional King of France and to the
powers he held under the Charter of 1830, till the overthrow of the monarchy in
1848.—Translator's Note.]]
Nevertheless, the supremacy of public opinion is no less above the head of the
one than of the other. This power is less definite, less evident, and less
sanctioned by the laws in France than in America, but in fact it exists. In
America, it acts by elections and decrees; in France it proceeds by revolutions;
but notwithstanding the different constitutions of these two countries, public
opinion is the predominant authority in both of them. The fundamental principle
of legislation—a principle essentially republican—is the same in both countries,
although its consequences may be different, and its results more or less
extensive. Whence I am led to conclude that France with its King is nearer akin
to a republic than the Union with its President is to a monarchy.
In what I have been saying I have only touched upon the main points of
distinction; and if I could have entered into details, the contrast would have
been rendered still more striking. I have remarked that the authority of the
President in the United States is only exercised within the limits of a partial
sovereignty, whilst that of the King in France is undivided. I might have gone
on to show that the power of the King's government in France exceeds its natural
limits, however extensive they may be, and penetrates in a thousand different
ways into the administration of private interests. Amongst the examples of this
influence may be quoted that which results from the great number of public
functionaries, who all derive their appointments from the Government. This
number now exceeds all previous limits; it amounts to 138,000 *s nominations,
each of which may be considered as an element of power. The President of the
United States has not the exclusive right of making any public appointments, and
their whole number scarcely exceeds 12,000. *t
s
[ The sums annually paid by the State to these officers amount to 200,000,000
fr. ($40,000,000).]
t
[ This number is extracted from the "National Calendar" for 1833. The "National
Calendar" is an American almanac which contains the names of all the Federal
officers. It results from this comparison that the King of France has eleven
times as many places at his disposal as the President, although the population
of France is not much more than double that of the Union.
[I have not the means of ascertaining the number of appointments now at the
disposal of the President of the United States, but his patronage and the abuse
of it have largely increased since 1833.—Translator's Note, 1875.]]
Accidental Causes Which May Increase The Influence Of The Executive Government
External security of the Union—Army of six thousand men—Few ships—The President
has no opportunity of exercising his great prerogatives—In the prerogatives he
exercises he is weak.
If the executive government is feebler in America than in France, the cause is
more attributable to the circumstances than to the laws of the country.
It is chiefly in its foreign relations that the executive power of a nation is
called upon to exert its skill and its vigor. If the existence of the Union were
perpetually threatened, and if its chief interests were in daily connection with
those of other powerful nations, the executive government would assume an
increased importance in proportion to the measures expected of it, and those
which it would carry into effect. The President of the United States is the
commander-in-chief of the army, but of an army composed of only six thousand
men; he commands the fleet, but the fleet reckons but few sail; he conducts the
foreign relations of the Union, but the United States are a nation without
neighbors. Separated from the rest of the world by the ocean, and too weak as
yet to aim at the dominion of the seas, they have no enemies, and their
interests rarely come into contact with those of any other nation of the globe.
The practical part of a Government must not be judged by the theory of its
constitution. The President of the United States is in the possession of almost
royal prerogatives, which he has no opportunity of exercising; and those
privileges which he can at present use are very circumscribed. The laws allow
him to possess a degree of influence which circumstances do not permit him to
employ.
On the other hand, the great strength of the royal prerogative in France arises
from circumstances far more than from the laws. There the executive government
is constantly struggling against prodigious obstacles, and exerting all its
energies to repress them; so that it increases by the extent of its
achievements, and by the importance of the events it controls, without modifying
its constitution. If the laws had made it as feeble and as circumscribed as it
is in the Union, its influence would very soon become still more preponderant.
Why The President Of The United States Does Not Require The Majority Of The Two
Houses In Order To Carry On The Government It is an established axiom in Europe
that a constitutional King cannot persevere in a system of government which is
opposed by the two other branches of the legislature. But several Presidents of
the United States have been known to lose the majority in the legislative body
without being obliged to abandon the supreme power, and without inflicting a
serious evil upon society. I have heard this fact quoted as an instance of the
independence and the power of the executive government in America: a moment's
reflection will convince us, on the contrary, that it is a proof of its extreme
weakness.
A King in Europe requires the support of the legislature to enable him to
perform the duties imposed upon him by the Constitution, because those duties
are enormous. A constitutional King in Europe is not merely the executor of the
law, but the execution of its provisions devolves so completely upon him that he
has the power of paralyzing its influence if it opposes his designs. He requires
the assistance of the legislative assemblies to make the law, but those
assemblies stand in need of his aid to execute it: these two authorities cannot
subsist without each other, and the mechanism of government is stopped as soon
as they are at variance.
In America the President cannot prevent any law from being passed, nor can he
evade the obligation of enforcing it. His sincere and zealous co-operation is no
doubt useful, but it is not indispensable, in the carrying on of public affairs.
All his important acts are directly or indirectly submitted to the legislature,
and of his own free authority he can do but little. It is therefore his
weakness, and not his power, which enables him to remain in opposition to
Congress. In Europe, harmony must reign between the Crown and the other branches
of the legislature, because a collision between them may prove serious; in
America, this harmony is not indispensable, because such a collision is
impossible.
Election Of The President
Dangers of the elective system increase in proportion to the extent of the
prerogative—This system possible in America because no powerful executive
authority is required—What circumstances are favorable to the elective
system—Why the election of the President does not cause a deviation from the
principles of the Government—Influence of the election of the President on
secondary functionaries.
The dangers of the system of election applied to the head of the executive
government of a great people have been sufficiently exemplified by experience
and by history, and the remarks I am about to make refer to America alone. These
dangers may be more or less formidable in proportion to the place which the
executive power occupies, and to the importance it possesses in the State; and
they may vary according to the mode of election and the circumstances in which
the electors are placed. The most weighty argument against the election of a
chief magistrate is, that it offers so splendid a lure to private ambition, and
is so apt to inflame men in the pursuit of power, that when legitimate means are
wanting force may not unfrequently seize what right denied.
It is clear that the greater the privileges of the executive authority are, the
greater is the temptation; the more the ambition of the candidates is excited,
the more warmly are their interests espoused by a throng of partisans who hope
to share the power when their patron has won the prize. The dangers of the
elective system increase, therefore, in the exact ratio of the influence
exercised by the executive power in the affairs of State. The revolutions of
Poland were not solely attributable to the elective system in general, but to
the fact that the elected monarch was the sovereign of a powerful kingdom.
Before we can discuss the absolute advantages of the elective system we must
make preliminary inquiries as to whether the geographical position, the laws,
the habits, the manners, and the opinions of the people amongst whom it is to be
introduced will admit of the establishment of a weak and dependent executive
government; for to attempt to render the representative of the State a powerful
sovereign, and at the same time elective, is, in my opinion, to entertain two
incompatible designs. To reduce hereditary royalty to the condition of an
elective authority, the only means that I am acquainted with are to circumscribe
its sphere of action beforehand, gradually to diminish its prerogatives, and to
accustom the people to live without its protection. Nothing, however, is further
from the designs of the republicans of Europe than this course: as many of them
owe their hatred of tyranny to the sufferings which they have personally
undergone, it is oppression, and not the extent of the executive power, which
excites their hostility, and they attack the former without perceiving how
nearly it is connected with the latter.
Hitherto no citizen has shown any disposition to expose his honor and his life
in order to become the President of the United States; because the power of that
office is temporary, limited, and subordinate. The prize of fortune must be
great to encourage adventurers in so desperate a game. No candidate has as yet
been able to arouse the dangerous enthusiasm or the passionate sympathies of the
people in his favor, for the very simple reason that when he is at the head of
the Government he has but little power, but little wealth, and but little glory
to share amongst his friends; and his influence in the State is too small for
the success or the ruin of a faction to depend upon the elevation of an
individual to power.
The great advantage of hereditary monarchies is, that as the private interest of
a family is always intimately connected with the interests of the State, the
executive government is never suspended for a single instant; and if the affairs
of a monarchy are not better conducted than those of a republic, at least there
is always some one to conduct them, well or ill, according to his capacity. In
elective States, on the contrary, the wheels of government cease to act, as it
were, of their own accord at the approach of an election, and even for some time
previous to that event. The laws may indeed accelerate the operation of the
election, which may be conducted with such simplicity and rapidity that the seat
of power will never be left vacant; but, notwithstanding these precautions, a
break necessarily occurs in the minds of the people.
At the approach of an election the head of the executive government is wholly
occupied by the coming struggle; his future plans are doubtful; he can undertake
nothing new, and the he will only prosecute with indifference those designs
which another will perhaps terminate. "I am so near the time of my retirement
from office," said President Jefferson on the 21st of January, 1809 (six weeks
before the election), "that I feel no passion, I take no part, I express no
sentiment. It appears to me just to leave to my successor the commencement of
those measures which he will have to prosecute, and for which he will be
responsible."
On the other hand, the eyes of the nation are centred on a single point; all are
watching the gradual birth of so important an event. The wider the influence of
the executive power extends, the greater and the more necessary is its constant
action, the more fatal is the term of suspense; and a nation which is accustomed
to the government, or, still more, one used to the administrative protection of
a powerful executive authority would be infallibly convulsed by an election of
this kind. In the United States the action of the Government may be slackened
with impunity, because it is always weak and circumscribed. *u
u
[ [This, however, may be a great danger. The period during which Mr. Buchanan
retained office, after the election of Mr. Lincoln, from November, 1860, to
March, 1861, was that which enabled the seceding States of the South to complete
their preparations for the Civil War, and the Executive Government was
paralyzed. No greater evil could befall a nation.—Translator's Note.]]
One of the principal vices of the elective system is that it always introduces a
certain degree of instability into the internal and external policy of the
State. But this disadvantage is less sensibly felt if the share of power vested
in the elected magistrate is small. In Rome the principles of the Government
underwent no variation, although the Consuls were changed every year, because
the Senate, which was an hereditary assembly, possessed the directing authority.
If the elective system were adopted in Europe, the condition of most of the
monarchical States would be changed at every new election. In America the
President exercises a certain influence on State affairs, but he does not
conduct them; the preponderating power is vested in the representatives of the
whole nation. The political maxims of the country depend therefore on the mass
of the people, not on the President alone; and consequently in America the
elective system has no very prejudicial influence on the fixed principles of the
Government. But the want of fixed principles is an evil so inherent in the
elective system that it is still extremely perceptible in the narrow sphere to
which the authority of the President extends.
The Americans have admitted that the head of the executive power, who has to
bear the whole responsibility of the duties he is called upon to fulfil, ought
to be empowered to choose his own agents, and to remove them at pleasure: the
legislative bodies watch the conduct of the President more than they direct it.
The consequence of this arrangement is, that at every new election the fate of
all the Federal public officers is in suspense. Mr. Quincy Adams, on his entry
into office, discharged the majority of the individuals who had been appointed
by his predecessor: and I am not aware that General Jackson allowed a single
removable functionary employed in the Federal service to retain his place beyond
the first year which succeeded his election. It is sometimes made a subject of
complaint that in the constitutional monarchies of Europe the fate of the
humbler servants of an Administration depends upon that of the Ministers. But in
elective Governments this evil is far greater. In a constitutional monarchy
successive ministries are rapidly formed; but as the principal representative of
the executive power does not change, the spirit of innovation is kept within
bounds; the changes which take place are in the details rather than in the
principles of the administrative system; but to substitute one system for
another, as is done in America every four years, by law, is to cause a sort of
revolution. As to the misfortunes which may fall upon individuals in consequence
of this state of things, it must be allowed that the uncertain situation of the
public officers is less fraught with evil consequences in America than
elsewhere. It is so easy to acquire an independent position in the United States
that the public officer who loses his place may be deprived of the comforts of
life, but not of the means of subsistence.
I remarked at the beginning of this chapter that the dangers of the elective
system applied to the head of the State are augmented or decreased by the
peculiar circumstances of the people which adopts it. However the functions of
the executive power may be restricted, it must always exercise a great influence
upon the foreign policy of the country, for a negotiation cannot be opened or
successfully carried on otherwise than by a single agent. The more precarious
and the more perilous the position of a people becomes, the more absolute is the
want of a fixed and consistent external policy, and the more dangerous does the
elective system of the Chief Magistrate become. The policy of the Americans in
relation to the whole world is exceedingly simple; for it may almost be said
that no country stands in need of them, nor do they require the co-operation of
any other people. Their independence is never threatened. In their present
condition, therefore, the functions of the executive power are no less limited
by circumstances than by the laws; and the President may frequently change his
line of policy without involving the State in difficulty or destruction.
Whatever the prerogatives of the executive power may be, the period which
immediately precedes an election and the moment of its duration must always be
considered as a national crisis, which is perilous in proportion to the internal
embarrassments and the external dangers of the country. Few of the nations of
Europe could escape the calamities of anarchy or of conquest every time they
might have to elect a new sovereign. In America society is so constituted that
it can stand without assistance upon its own basis; nothing is to be feared from
the pressure of external dangers, and the election of the President is a cause
of agitation, but not of ruin.
Mode Of Election
Skill of the American legislators shown in the mode of election adopted by
them—Creation of a special electoral body—Separate votes of these electors—Case
in which the House of Representatives is called upon to choose the
President—Results of the twelve elections which have taken place since the
Constitution has been established.
Besides the dangers which are inherent in the system, many other difficulties
may arise from the mode of election, which may be obviated by the precaution of
the legislator. When a people met in arms on some public spot to choose its
head, it was exposed to all the chances of civil war resulting from so martial a
mode of proceeding, besides the dangers of the elective system in itself. The
Polish laws, which subjected the election of the sovereign to the veto of a
single individual, suggested the murder of that individual or prepared the way
to anarchy.
In the examination of the institutions and the political as well as social
condition of the United States, we are struck by the admirable harmony of the
gifts of fortune and the efforts of man. The nation possessed two of the main
causes of internal peace; it was a new country, but it was inhabited by a people
grown old in the exercise of freedom. America had no hostile neighbors to dread;
and the American legislators, profiting by these favorable circumstances,
created a weak and subordinate executive power which could without danger be
made elective.
It then only remained for them to choose the least dangerous of the various
modes of election; and the rules which they laid down upon this point admirably
correspond to the securities which the physical and political constitution of
the country already afforded. Their object was to find the mode of election
which would best express the choice of the people with the least possible
excitement and suspense. It was admitted in the first place that the simple
majority should be decisive; but the difficulty was to obtain this majority
without an interval of delay which it was most important to avoid. It rarely
happens that an individual can at once collect the majority of the suffrages of
a great people; and this difficulty is enhanced in a republic of confederate
States, where local influences are apt to preponderate. The means by which it
was proposed to obviate this second obstacle was to delegate the electoral
powers of the nation to a body of representatives. This mode of election
rendered a majority more probable; for the fewer the electors are, the greater
is the chance of their coming to a final decision. It also offered an additional
probability of a judicious choice. It then remained to be decided whether this
right of election was to be entrusted to a legislative body, the habitual
representative assembly of the nation, or whether an electoral assembly should
be formed for the express purpose of proceeding to the nomination of a
President. The Americans chose the latter alternative, from a belief that the
individuals who were returned to make the laws were incompetent to represent the
wishes of the nation in the election of its chief magistrate; and that, as they
are chosen for more than a year, the constituency they represent might have
changed its opinion in that time. It was thought that if the legislature was
empowered to elect the head of the executive power, its members would, for some
time before the election, be exposed to the manoeuvres of corruption and the
tricks of intrigue; whereas the special electors would, like a jury, remain
mixed up with the crowd till the day of action, when they would appear for the
sole purpose of giving their votes.
It was therefore established that every State should name a certain number of
electors, *v who in their turn should elect the President; and as it had been
observed that the assemblies to which the choice of a chief magistrate had been
entrusted in elective countries inevitably became the centres of passion and of
cabal; that they sometimes usurped an authority which did not belong to them;
and that their proceedings, or the uncertainty which resulted from them, were
sometimes prolonged so much as to endanger the welfare of the State, it was
determined that the electors should all vote upon the same day, without being
convoked to the same place. *w This double election rendered a majority
probable, though not certain; for it was possible that as many differences might
exist between the electors as between their constituents. In this case it was
necessary to have recourse to one of three measures; either to appoint new
electors, or to consult a second time those already appointed, or to defer the
election to another authority. The first two of these alternatives,
independently of the uncertainty of their results, were likely to delay the
final decision, and to perpetuate an agitation which must always be accompanied
with danger. The third expedient was therefore adopted, and it was agreed that
the votes should be transmitted sealed to the President of the Senate, and that
they should be opened and counted in the presence of the Senate and the House of
Representatives. If none of the candidates has a majority, the House of
Representatives then proceeds immediately to elect a President, but with the
condition that it must fix upon one of the three candidates who have the highest
numbers. *x
v
[ As many as it sends members to Congress. The number of electors at the
election of 1833 was 288. (See "The National Calendar," 1833.)]
w
[ The electors of the same State assemble, but they transmit to the central
government the list of their individual votes, and not the mere result of the
vote of the majority.] [Footnote x: In this case it is the majority of the
States, and not the majority of the members, which decides the question; so that
New York has not more influence in the debate than Rhode Island. Thus the
citizens of the Union are first consulted as members of one and the same
community; and, if they cannot agree, recourse is had to the division of the
States, each of which has a separate and independent vote. This is one of the
singularities of the Federal Constitution which can only be explained by the jar
of conflicting interests.]
Thus it is only in case of an event which cannot often happen, and which can
never be foreseen, that the election is entrusted to the ordinary
representatives of the nation; and even then they are obliged to choose a
citizen who has already been designated by a powerful minority of the special
electors. It is by this happy expedient that the respect which is due to the
popular voice is combined with the utmost celerity of execution and those
precautions which the peace of the country demands. But the decision of the
question by the House of Representatives does not necessarily offer an immediate
solution of the difficulty, for the majority of that assembly may still be
doubtful, and in this case the Constitution prescribes no remedy. Nevertheless,
by restricting the number of candidates to three, and by referring the matter to
the judgment of an enlightened public body, it has smoothed all the obstacles *y
which are not inherent in the elective system.
y
[ Jefferson, in 1801, was not elected until the thirty-sixth time of balloting.]
In the forty-four years which have elapsed since the promulgation of the Federal
Constitution the United States have twelve times chosen a President. Ten of
these elections took place simultaneously by the votes of the special electors
in the different States. The House of Representatives has only twice exercised
its conditional privilege of deciding in cases of uncertainty; the first time
was at the election of Mr. Jefferson in 1801; the second was in 1825, when Mr.
Quincy Adams was named. *z
z
[ [General Grant is now (1874) the eighteenth President of the United States.]]
Crises Of The Election
The Election may be considered as a national crisis—Why?—Passions of the
people—Anxiety of the President—Calm which succeeds the agitation of the
election.
I have shown what the circumstances are which favored the adoption of the
elective system in the United States, and what precautions were taken by the
legislators to obviate its dangers. The Americans are habitually accustomed to
all kinds of elections, and they know by experience the utmost degree of
excitement which is compatible with security. The vast extent of the country and
the dissemination of the inhabitants render a collision between parties less
probable and less dangerous there than elsewhere. The political circumstances
under which the elections have hitherto been carried on have presented no real
embarrassments to the nation.
Nevertheless, the epoch of the election of a President of the United States may
be considered as a crisis in the affairs of the nation. The influence which he
exercises on public business is no doubt feeble and indirect; but the choice of
the President, which is of small importance to each individual citizen, concerns
the citizens collectively; and however trifling an interest may be, it assumes a
great degree of importance as soon as it becomes general. The President
possesses but few means of rewarding his supporters in comparison to the kings
of Europe, but the places which are at his disposal are sufficiently numerous to
interest, directly or indirectly, several thousand electors in his success.
Political parties in the United States are led to rally round an individual, in
order to acquire a more tangible shape in the eyes of the crowd, and the name of
the candidate for the Presidency is put forward as the symbol and
personification of their theories. For these reasons parties are strongly
interested in gaining the election, not so much with a view to the triumph of
their principles under the auspices of the President-elect as to show by the
majority which returned him, the strength of the supporters of those principles.
For a long while before the appointed time is at hand the election becomes the
most important and the all-engrossing topic of discussion. The ardor of faction
is redoubled; and all the artificial passions which the imagination can create
in the bosom of a happy and peaceful land are agitated and brought to light. The
President, on the other hand, is absorbed by the cares of self-defence. He no
longer governs for the interest of the State, but for that of his re-election;
he does homage to the majority, and instead of checking its passions, as his
duty commands him to do, he frequently courts its worst caprices. As the
election draws near, the activity of intrigue and the agitation of the populace
increase; the citizens are divided into hostile camps, each of which assumes the
name of its favorite candidate; the whole nation glows with feverish excitement;
the election is the daily theme of the public papers, the subject of private
conversation, the end of every thought and every action, the sole interest of
the present. As soon as the choice is determined, this ardor is dispelled; and
as a calmer season returns, the current of the State, which had nearly broken
its banks, sinks to its usual level: *a but who can refrain from astonishment at
the causes of the storm.
a
[ [Not always. The election of President Lincoln was the signal of civil
war.—Translator's Note.]]
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part III
Re-election Of The President
When the head of the executive power is re-eligible, it is the State which is
the source of intrigue and corruption—The desire of being re-elected the chief
aim of a President of the United States—Disadvantage of the system peculiar to
America—The natural evil of democracy is that it subordinates all authority to
the slightest desires of the majority—The re-election of the President
encourages this evil.
It may be asked whether the legislators of the United States did right or wrong
in allowing the re-election of the President. It seems at first sight contrary
to all reason to prevent the head of the executive power from being elected a
second time. The influence which the talents and the character of a single
individual may exercise upon the fate of a whole people, in critical
circumstances or arduous times, is well known: a law preventing the re-election
of the chief magistrate would deprive the citizens of the surest pledge of the
prosperity and the security of the commonwealth; and, by a singular
inconsistency, a man would be excluded from the government at the very time when
he had shown his ability in conducting its affairs.
But if these arguments are strong, perhaps still more powerful reasons may be
advanced against them. Intrigue and corruption are the natural defects of
elective government; but when the head of the State can be re-elected these
evils rise to a great height, and compromise the very existence of the country.
When a simple candidate seeks to rise by intrigue, his manoeuvres must
necessarily be limited to a narrow sphere; but when the chief magistrate enters
the lists, he borrows the strength of the government for his own purposes. In
the former case the feeble resources of an individual are in action; in the
latter, the State itself, with all its immense influence, is busied in the work
of corruption and cabal. The private citizen, who employs the most immoral
practices to acquire power, can only act in a manner indirectly prejudicial to
the public prosperity. But if the representative of the executive descends into
the combat, the cares of government dwindle into second-rate importance, and the
success of his election is his first concern. All laws and all the negotiations
he undertakes are to him nothing more than electioneering schemes; places become
the reward of services rendered, not to the nation, but to its chief; and the
influence of the government, if not injurious to the country, is at least no
longer beneficial to the community for which it was created.
It is impossible to consider the ordinary course of affairs in the United States
without perceiving that the desire of being re-elected is the chief aim of the
President; that his whole administration, and even his most indifferent
measures, tend to this object; and that, as the crisis approaches, his personal
interest takes the place of his interest in the public good. The principle of
re-eligibility renders the corrupt influence of elective government still more
extensive and pernicious.
In America it exercises a peculiarly fatal influence on the sources of national
existence. Every government seems to be afflicted by some evil which is inherent
in its nature, and the genius of the legislator is shown in eluding its attacks.
A State may survive the influence of a host of bad laws, and the mischief they
cause is frequently exaggerated; but a law which encourages the growth of the
canker within must prove fatal in the end, although its bad consequences may not
be immediately perceived.
The principle of destruction in absolute monarchies lies in the excessive and
unreasonable extension of the prerogative of the crown; and a measure tending to
remove the constitutional provisions which counterbalance this influence would
be radically bad, even if its immediate consequences were unattended with evil.
By a parity of reasoning, in countries governed by a democracy, where the people
is perpetually drawing all authority to itself, the laws which increase or
accelerate its action are the direct assailants of the very principle of the
government.
The greatest proof of the ability of the American legislators is, that they
clearly discerned this truth, and that they had the courage to act up to it.
They conceived that a certain authority above the body of the people was
necessary, which should enjoy a degree of independence, without, however, being
entirely beyond the popular control; an authority which would be forced to
comply with the permanent determinations of the majority, but which would be
able to resist its caprices, and to refuse its most dangerous demands. To this
end they centred the whole executive power of the nation in a single arm; they
granted extensive prerogatives to the President, and they armed him with the
veto to resist the encroachments of the legislature.
But by introducing the principle of re-election they partly destroyed their
work; and they rendered the President but little inclined to exert the great
power they had vested in his hands. If ineligible a second time, the President
would be far from independent of the people, for his responsibility would not be
lessened; but the favor of the people would not be so necessary to him as to
induce him to court it by humoring its desires. If re-eligible (and this is more
especially true at the present day, when political morality is relaxed, and when
great men are rare), the President of the United States becomes an easy tool in
the hands of the majority. He adopts its likings and its animosities, he hastens
to anticipate its wishes, he forestalls its complaints, he yields to its idlest
cravings, and instead of guiding it, as the legislature intended that he should
do, he is ever ready to follow its bidding. Thus, in order not to deprive the
State of the talents of an individual, those talents have been rendered almost
useless; and to reserve an expedient for extraordinary perils, the country has
been exposed to daily dangers.
Federal Courts *b
b
[ See chap. VI, entitled "Judicial Power in the United States." This chapter
explains the general principles of the American theory of judicial institutions.
See also the Federal Constitution, Art. 3. See "The Federalists," Nos. 78-83,
inclusive; and a work entitled "Constitutional Law," being a view of the
practice and jurisdiction of the courts of the United States, by Thomas
Sergeant. See Story, pp. 134, 162, 489, 511, 581, 668; and the organic law of
September 24, 1789, in the "Collection of the Laws of the United States," by
Story, vol. i. p. 53.]
Political importance of the judiciary in the United States—Difficulty of
treating this subject—Utility of judicial power in confederations—What tribunals
could be introduced into the Union—Necessity of establishing federal courts of
justice—Organization of the national judiciary—The Supreme Court—In what it
differs from all known tribunals.
I have inquired into the legislative and executive power of the Union, and the
judicial power now remains to be examined; but in this place I cannot conceal my
fears from the reader. Their judicial institutions exercise a great influence on
the condition of the Anglo-Americans, and they occupy a prominent place amongst
what are probably called political institutions: in this respect they are
peculiarly deserving of our attention. But I am at a loss to explain the
political action of the American tribunals without entering into some technical
details of their constitution and their forms of proceeding; and I know not how
to descend to these minutiae without wearying the curiosity of the reader by the
natural aridity of the subject, or without risking to fall into obscurity
through a desire to be succinct. I can scarcely hope to escape these various
evils; for if I appear too lengthy to a man of the world, a lawyer may on the
other hand complain of my brevity. But these are the natural disadvantages of my
subject, and more especially of the point which I am about to discuss.
The great difficulty was, not to devise the Constitution to the Federal
Government, but to find out a method of enforcing its laws. Governments have in
general but two means of overcoming the opposition of the people they govern,
viz., the physical force which is at their own disposal, and the moral force
which they derive from the decisions of the courts of justice.
A government which should have no other means of exacting obedience than open
war must be very near its ruin, for one of two alternatives would then probably
occur: if its authority was small and its character temperate, it would not
resort to violence till the last extremity, and it would connive at a number of
partial acts of insubordination, in which case the State would gradually fall
into anarchy; if it was enterprising and powerful, it would perpetually have
recourse to its physical strength, and would speedily degenerate into a military
despotism. So that its activity would not be less prejudicial to the community
than its inaction.
The great end of justice is to substitute the notion of right for that of
violence, and to place a legal barrier between the power of the government and
the use of physical force. The authority which is awarded to the intervention of
a court of justice by the general opinion of mankind is so surprisingly great
that it clings to the mere formalities of justice, and gives a bodily influence
to the shadow of the law. The moral force which courts of justice possess
renders the introduction of physical force exceedingly rare, and is very
frequently substituted for it; but if the latter proves to be indispensable, its
power is doubled by the association of the idea of law.
A federal government stands in greater need of the support of judicial
institutions than any other, because it is naturally weak and exposed to
formidable opposition. *c If it were always obliged to resort to violence in the
first instance, it could not fulfil its task. The Union, therefore, required a
national judiciary to enforce the obedience of the citizens to the laws, and to
repeal the attacks which might be directed against them. The question then
remained as to what tribunals were to exercise these privileges; were they to be
entrusted to the courts of justice which were already organized in every State?
or was it necessary to create federal courts? It may easily be proved that the
Union could not adapt the judicial power of the States to its wants. The
separation of the judiciary from the administrative power of the State no doubt
affects the security of every citizen and the liberty of all. But it is no less
important to the existence of the nation that these several powers should have
the same origin, should follow the same principles, and act in the same sphere;
in a word, that they should be correlative and homogeneous. No one, I presume,
ever suggested the advantage of trying offences committed in France by a foreign
court of justice, in order to secure the impartiality of the judges. The
Americans form one people in relation to their Federal Government; but in the
bosom of this people divers political bodies have been allowed to subsist which
are dependent on the national Government in a few points, and independent in all
the rest; which have all a distinct origin, maxims peculiar to themselves, and
special means of carrying on their affairs. To entrust the execution of the laws
of the Union to tribunals instituted by these political bodies would be to allow
foreign judges to preside over the nation. Nay, more; not only is each State
foreign to the Union at large, but it is in perpetual opposition to the common
interests, since whatever authority the Union loses turns to the advantage of
the States. Thus to enforce the laws of the Union by means of the tribunals of
the States would be to allow not only foreign but partial judges to preside over
the nation.
c
[ Federal laws are those which most require courts of justice, and those at the
same time which have most rarely established them. The reason is that
confederations have usually been formed by independent States, which entertained
no real intention of obeying the central Government, and which very readily
ceded the right of command to the federal executive, and very prudently reserved
the right of non-compliance to themselves.]
But the number, still more than the mere character, of the tribunals of the
States rendered them unfit for the service of the nation. When the Federal
Constitution was formed there were already thirteen courts of justice in the
United States which decided causes without appeal. That number is now increased
to twenty-four. To suppose that a State can subsist when its fundamental laws
may be subjected to four-and-twenty different interpretations at the same time
is to advance a proposition alike contrary to reason and to experience.
The American legislators therefore agreed to create a federal judiciary power to
apply the laws of the Union, and to determine certain questions affecting
general interests, which were carefully determined beforehand. The entire
judicial power of the Union was centred in one tribunal, which was denominated
the Supreme Court of the United States. But, to facilitate the expedition of
business, inferior courts were appended to it, which were empowered to decide
causes of small importance without appeal, and with appeal causes of more
magnitude. The members of the Supreme Court are named neither by the people nor
the legislature, but by the President of the United States, acting with the
advice of the Senate. In order to render them independent of the other
authorities, their office was made inalienable; and it was determined that their
salary, when once fixed, should not be altered by the legislature. *d It was
easy to proclaim the principle of a Federal judiciary, but difficulties
multiplied when the extent of its jurisdiction was to be determined.
d
[ The Union was divided into districts, in each of which a resident Federal
judge was appointed, and the court in which he presided was termed a "District
Court." Each of the judges of the Supreme Court annually visits a certain
portion of the Republic, in order to try the most important causes upon the
spot; the court presided over by this magistrate is styled a "Circuit Court."
Lastly, all the most serious cases of litigation are brought before the Supreme
Court, which holds a solemn session once a year, at which all the judges of the
Circuit Courts must attend. The jury was introduced into the Federal Courts in
the same manner, and in the same cases, as into the courts of the States.
It will be observed that no analogy exists between the Supreme Court of the
United States and the French Cour de Cassation, since the latter only hears
appeals on questions of law. The Supreme Court decides upon the evidence of the
fact as well as upon the law of the case, whereas the Cour de Cassation does not
pronounce a decision of its own, but refers the cause to the arbitration of
another tribunal. See the law of September 24, 1789, "Laws of the United
States," by Story, vol. i. p. 53.]
Means Of Determining The Jurisdiction Of The Federal Courts Difficulty of
determining the jurisdiction of separate courts of justice in confederations—The
courts of the Union obtained the right of fixing their own jurisdiction—In what
respect this rule attacks the portion of sovereignty reserved to the several
States—The sovereignty of these States restricted by the laws, and the
interpretation of the laws—Consequently, the danger of the several States is
more apparent than real.
As the Constitution of the United States recognized two distinct powers in
presence of each other, represented in a judicial point of view by two distinct
classes of courts of justice, the utmost care which could be taken in defining
their separate jurisdictions would have been insufficient to prevent frequent
collisions between those tribunals. The question then arose to whom the right of
deciding the competency of each court was to be referred.
In nations which constitute a single body politic, when a question is debated
between two courts relating to their mutual jurisdiction, a third tribunal is
generally within reach to decide the difference; and this is effected without
difficulty, because in these nations the questions of judicial competency have
no connection with the privileges of the national supremacy. But it was
impossible to create an arbiter between a superior court of the Union and the
superior court of a separate State which would not belong to one of these two
classes. It was, therefore, necessary to allow one of these courts to judge its
own cause, and to take or to retain cognizance of the point which was contested.
To grant this privilege to the different courts of the States would have been to
destroy the sovereignty of the Union de facto after having established it de
jure; for the interpretation of the Constitution would soon have restored that
portion of independence to the States of which the terms of that act deprived
them. The object of the creation of a Federal tribunal was to prevent the courts
of the States from deciding questions affecting the national interests in their
own department, and so to form a uniform body of jurisprudene for the
interpretation of the laws of the Union. This end would not have been
accomplished if the courts of the several States had been competent to decide
upon cases in their separate capacities from which they were obliged to abstain
as Federal tribunals. The Supreme Court of the United States was therefore
invested with the right of determining all questions of jurisdiction. *e
e
[ In order to diminish the number of these suits, it was decided that in a great
many Federal causes the courts of the States should be empowered to decide
conjointly with those of the Union, the losing party having then a right of
appeal to the Supreme Court of the United States. The Supreme Court of Virginia
contested the right of the Supreme Court of the United States to judge an appeal
from its decisions, but unsuccessfully. See "Kent's Commentaries," vol. i. p.
300, pp. 370 et seq.; Story's "Commentaries," p. 646; and "The Organic Law of
the United States," vol. i. p. 35.]
This was a severe blow upon the independence of the States, which was thus
restricted not only by the laws, but by the interpretation of them; by one limit
which was known, and by another which was dubious; by a rule which was certain,
and a rule which was arbitrary. It is true the Constitution had laid down the
precise limits of the Federal supremacy, but whenever this supremacy is
contested by one of the States, a Federal tribunal decides the question.
Nevertheless, the dangers with which the independence of the States was
threatened by this mode of proceeding are less serious than they appeared to be.
We shall see hereafter that in America the real strength of the country is
vested in the provincial far more than in the Federal Government. The Federal
judges are conscious of the relative weakness of the power in whose name they
act, and they are more inclined to abandon a right of jurisdiction in cases
where it is justly their own than to assert a privilege to which they have no
legal claim.
Different Cases Of Jurisdiction
The matter and the party are the first conditions of the Federal
jurisdiction—Suits in which ambassadors are engaged—Suits of the Union—Of a
separate State—By whom tried—Causes resulting from the laws of the Union—Why
judged by the Federal tribunals—Causes relating to the performance of contracts
tried by the Federal courts—Consequence of this arrangement.
After having appointed the means of fixing the competency of the Federal courts,
the legislators of the Union defined the cases which should come within their
jurisdiction. It was established, on the one hand, that certain parties must
always be brought before the Federal courts, without any regard to the special
nature of the cause; and, on the other, that certain causes must always be
brought before the same courts, without any regard to the quality of the parties
in the suit. These distinctions were therefore admitted to be the basis of the
Federal jurisdiction.
Ambassadors are the representatives of nations in a state of amity with the
Union, and whatever concerns these personages concerns in some degree the whole
Union. When an ambassador is a party in a suit, that suit affects the welfare of
the nation, and a Federal tribunal is naturally called upon to decide it.
The Union itself may be invoked in legal proceedings, and in this case it would
be alike contrary to the customs of all nations and to common sense to appeal to
a tribunal representing any other sovereignty than its own; the Federal courts,
therefore, take cognizance of these affairs.
When two parties belonging to two different States are engaged in a suit, the
case cannot with propriety be brought before a court of either State. The surest
expedient is to select a tribunal like that of the Union, which can excite the
suspicions of neither party, and which offers the most natural as well as the
most certain remedy.
When the two parties are not private individuals, but States, an important
political consideration is added to the same motive of equity. The quality of
the parties in this case gives a national importance to all their disputes; and
the most trifling litigation of the States may be said to involve the peace of
the whole Union. *f
f
[ The Constitution also says that the Federal courts shall decide "controversies
between a State and the citizens of another State." And here a most important
question of a constitutional nature arose, which was, whether the jurisdiction
given by the Constitution in cases in which a State is a party extended to suits
brought against a State as well as by it, or was exclusively confined to the
latter. The question was most elaborately considered in the case of Chisholm v.
Georgia, and was decided by the majority of the Supreme Court in the
affirmative. The decision created general alarm among the States, and an
amendment was proposed and ratified by which the power was entirely taken away,
so far as it regards suits brought against a State. See Story's "Commentaries,"
p. 624, or in the large edition Section 1677.]
The nature of the cause frequently prescribes the rule of competency. Thus all
the questions which concern maritime commerce evidently fall under the
cognizance of the Federal tribunals. *g Almost all these questions are connected
with the interpretation of the law of nations, and in this respect they
essentially interest the Union in relation to foreign powers. Moreover, as the
sea is not included within the limits of any peculiar jurisdiction, the national
courts can only hear causes which originate in maritime affairs.
g
[ As for instance, all cases of piracy.]
The Constitution comprises under one head almost all the cases which by their
very nature come within the limits of the Federal courts. The rule which it lays
down is simple, but pregnant with an entire system of ideas, and with a vast
multitude of facts. It declares that the judicial power of the Supreme Court
shall extend to all cases in law and equity arising under the laws of the United
States.
Two examples will put the intention of the legislator in the clearest light:
The Constitution prohibits the States from making laws on the value and
circulation of money: If, notwithstanding this prohibition, a State passes a law
of this kind, with which the interested parties refuse to comply because it is
contrary to the Constitution, the case must come before a Federal court, because
it arises under the laws of the United States. Again, if difficulties arise in
the levying of import duties which have been voted by Congress, the Federal
court must decide the case, because it arises under the interpretation of a law
of the United States.
This rule is in perfect accordance with the fundamental principles of the
Federal Constitution. The Union, as it was established in 1789, possesses, it is
true, a limited supremacy; but it was intended that within its limits it should
form one and the same people. *h Within those limits the Union is sovereign.
When this point is established and admitted, the inference is easy; for if it be
acknowledged that the United States constitute one and the same people within
the bounds prescribed by their Constitution, it is impossible to refuse them the
rights which belong to other nations. But it has been allowed, from the origin
of society, that every nation has the right of deciding by its own courts those
questions which concern the execution of its own laws. To this it is answered
that the Union is in so singular a position that in relation to some matters it
constitutes a people, and that in relation to all the rest it is a nonentity.
But the inference to be drawn is, that in the laws relating to these matters the
Union possesses all the rights of absolute sovereignty. The difficulty is to
know what these matters are; and when once it is resolved (and we have shown how
it was resolved, in speaking of the means of determining the jurisdiction of the
Federal courts) no further doubt can arise; for as soon as it is established
that a suit is Federal—that is to say, that it belongs to the share of
sovereignty reserved by the Constitution of the Union—the natural consequence is
that it should come within the jurisdiction of a Federal court.
h
[ This principle was in some measure restricted by the introduction of the
several States as independent powers into the Senate, and by allowing them to
vote separately in the House of Representatives when the President is elected by
that body. But these are exceptions, and the contrary principle is the rule.]
Whenever the laws of the United States are attacked, or whenever they are
resorted to in self-defence, the Federal courts must be appealed to. Thus the
jurisdiction of the tribunals of the Union extends and narrows its limits
exactly in the same ratio as the sovereignty of the Union augments or decreases.
We have shown that the principal aim of the legislators of 1789 was to divide
the sovereign authority into two parts. In the one they placed the control of
all the general interests of the Union, in the other the control of the special
interests of its component States. Their chief solicitude was to arm the Federal
Government with sufficient power to enable it to resist, within its sphere, the
encroachments of the several States. As for these communities, the principle of
independence within certain limits of their own was adopted in their behalf; and
they were concealed from the inspection, and protected from the control, of the
central Government. In speaking of the division of authority, I observed that
this latter principle had not always been held sacred, since the States are
prevented from passing certain laws which apparently belong to their own
particular sphere of interest. When a State of the Union passes a law of this
kind, the citizens who are injured by its execution can appeal to the Federal
courts.
Thus the jurisdiction of the Federal courts extends not only to all the cases
which arise under the laws of the Union, but also to those which arise under
laws made by the several States in opposition to the Constitution. The States
are prohibited from making ex post facto laws in criminal cases, and any person
condemned by virtue of a law of this kind can appeal to the judicial power of
the Union. The States are likewise prohibited from making laws which may have a
tendency to impair the obligations of contracts. *i If a citizen thinks that an
obligation of this kind is impaired by a law passed in his State, he may refuse
to obey it, and may appeal to the Federal courts. *j
i
[ It is perfectly clear, says Mr. Story ("Commentaries," p. 503, or in the large
edition Section 1379), that any law which enlarges, abridges, or in any manner
changes the intention of the parties, resulting from the stipulations in the
contract, necessarily impairs it. He gives in the same place a very long and
careful definition of what is understood by a contract in Federal jurisprudence.
A grant made by the State to a private individual, and accepted by him, is a
contract, and cannot be revoked by any future law. A charter granted by the
State to a company is a contract, and equally binding to the State as to the
grantee. The clause of the Constitution here referred to insures, therefore, the
existence of a great part of acquired rights, but not of all. Property may
legally be held, though it may not have passed into the possessor's hands by
means of a contract; and its possession is an acquired right, not guaranteed by
the Federal Constitution.]
j
[ A remarkable instance of this is given by Mr. Story (p. 508, or in the large
edition Section 1388): "Dartmouth College in New Hampshire had been founded by a
charter granted to certain individuals before the American Revolution, and its
trustees formed a corporation under this charter. The legislature of New
Hampshire had, without the consent of this corporation, passed an act changing
the organization of the original provincial charter of the college, and
transferring all the rights, privileges, and franchises from the old charter
trustees to new trustees appointed under the act. The constitutionality of the
act was contested, and, after solemn arguments, it was deliberately held by the
Supreme Court that the provincial charter was a contract within the meaning of
the Constitution (Art. I. Section 10), and that the emendatory act was utterly
void, as impairing the obligation of that charter. The college was deemed, like
other colleges of private foundation, to be a private eleemosynary institution,
endowed by its charter with a capacity to take property unconnected with the
Government. Its funds were bestowed upon the faith of the charter, and those
funds consisted entirely of private donations. It is true that the uses were in
some sense public, that is, for the general benefit, and not for the mere
benefit of the corporators; but this did not make the corporation a public
corporation. It was a private institution for general charity. It was not
distinguishable in principle from a private donation, vested in private
trustees, for a public charity, or for a particular purpose of beneficence. And
the State itself, if it had bestowed funds upon a charity of the same nature,
could not resume those funds."]
This provision appears to me to be the most serious attack upon the independence
of the States. The rights awarded to the Federal Government for purposes of
obvious national importance are definite and easily comprehensible; but those
with which this last clause invests it are not either clearly appreciable or
accurately defined. For there are vast numbers of political laws which influence
the existence of obligations of contracts, which may thus furnish an easy
pretext for the aggressions of the central authority.
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part IV
Procedure Of The Federal Courts
Natural weakness of the judiciary power in confederations—Legislators ought to
strive as much as possible to bring private individuals, and not States, before
the Federal Courts—How the Americans have succeeded in this—Direct prosecution
of private individuals in the Federal Courts—Indirect prosecution of the States
which violate the laws of the Union—The decrees of the Supreme Court enervate
but do not destroy the provincial laws.
I have shown what the privileges of the Federal courts are, and it is no less
important to point out the manner in which they are exercised. The irresistible
authority of justice in countries in which the sovereignty in undivided is
derived from the fact that the tribunals of those countries represent the entire
nation at issue with the individual against whom their decree is directed, and
the idea of power is thus introduced to corroborate the idea of right. But this
is not always the case in countries in which the sovereignty is divided; in them
the judicial power is more frequently opposed to a fraction of the nation than
to an isolated individual, and its moral authority and physical strength are
consequently diminished. In federal States the power of the judge is naturally
decreased, and that of the justiciable parties is augmented. The aim of the
legislator in confederate States ought therefore to be to render the position of
the courts of justice analogous to that which they occupy in countries where the
sovereignty is undivided; in other words, his efforts ought constantly to tend
to maintain the judicial power of the confederation as the representative of the
nation, and the justiciable party as the representative of an individual
interest.
Every government, whatever may be its constitution, requires the means of
constraining its subjects to discharge their obligations, and of protecting its
privileges from their assaults. As far as the direct action of the Government on
the community is concerned, the Constitution of the United States contrived, by
a master-stroke of policy, that the federal courts, acting in the name of the
laws, should only take cognizance of parties in an individual capacity. For, as
it had been declared that the Union consisted of one and the same people within
the limits laid down by the Constitution, the inference was that the Government
created by this Constitution, and acting within these limits, was invested with
all the privileges of a national government, one of the principal of which is
the right of transmitting its injunctions directly to the private citizen. When,
for instance, the Union votes an impost, it does not apply to the States for the
levying of it, but to every American citizen in proportion to his assessment.
The Supreme Court, which is empowered to enforce the execution of this law of
the Union, exerts its influence not upon a refractory State, but upon the
private taxpayer; and, like the judicial power of other nations, it is opposed
to the person of an individual. It is to be observed that the Union chose its
own antagonist; and as that antagonist is feeble, he is naturally worsted.
But the difficulty increases when the proceedings are not brought forward by but
against the Union. The Constitution recognizes the legislative power of the
States; and a law so enacted may impair the privileges of the Union, in which
case a collision in unavoidable between that body and the State which has passed
the law: and it only remains to select the least dangerous remedy, which is very
clearly deducible from the general principles I have before established. *k
k
[ See Chapter VI. on "Judicial Power in America."]
It may be conceived that, in the case under consideration, the Union might have
used the State before a Federal court, which would have annulled the act, and by
this means it would have adopted a natural course of proceeding; but the
judicial power would have been placed in open hostility to the State, and it was
desirable to avoid this predicament as much as possible. The Americans hold that
it is nearly impossible that a new law should not impair the interests of some
private individual by its provisions: these private interests are assumed by the
American legislators as the ground of attack against such measures as may be
prejudicial to the Union, and it is to these cases that the protection of the
Supreme Court is extended.
Suppose a State vends a certain portion of its territory to a company, and that
a year afterwards it passes a law by which the territory is otherwise disposed
of, and that clause of the Constitution which prohibits laws impairing the
obligation of contracts violated. When the purchaser under the second act
appears to take possession, the possessor under the first act brings his action
before the tribunals of the Union, and causes the title of the claimant to be
pronounced null and void. *l Thus, in point of fact, the judicial power of the
Union is contesting the claims of the sovereignty of a State; but it only acts
indirectly and upon a special application of detail: it attacks the law in its
consequences, not in its principle, and it rather weakens than destroys it.
l
[ See Kent's "Commentaries," vol. i. p. 387.]
The last hypothesis that remained was that each State formed a corporation
enjoying a separate existence and distinct civil rights, and that it could
therefore sue or be sued before a tribunal. Thus a State could bring an action
against another State. In this instance the Union was not called upon to contest
a provincial law, but to try a suit in which a State was a party. This suit was
perfectly similar to any other cause, except that the quality of the parties was
different; and here the danger pointed out at the beginning of this chapter
exists with less chance of being avoided. The inherent disadvantage of the very
essence of Federal constitutions is that they engender parties in the bosom of
the nation which present powerful obstacles to the free course of justice.
High Rank Of The Supreme Court Amongst The Great Powers Of State No nation ever
constituted so great a judicial power as the Americans—Extent of its
prerogative—Its political influence—The tranquillity and the very existence of
the Union depend on the discretion of the seven Federal Judges.
When we have successively examined in detail the organization of the Supreme
Court, and the entire prerogatives which it exercises, we shall readily admit
that a more imposing judicial power was never constituted by any people. The
Supreme Court is placed at the head of all known tribunals, both by the nature
of its rights and the class of justiciable parties which it controls.
In all the civilized countries of Europe the Government has always shown the
greatest repugnance to allow the cases to which it was itself a party to be
decided by the ordinary course of justice. This repugnance naturally attains its
utmost height in an absolute Government; and, on the other hand, the privileges
of the courts of justice are extended with the increasing liberties of the
people: but no European nation has at present held that all judicial
controversies, without regard to their origin, can be decided by the judges of
common law.
In America this theory has been actually put in practice, and the Supreme Court
of the United States is the sole tribunal of the nation. Its power extends to
all the cases arising under laws and treaties made by the executive and
legislative authorities, to all cases of admiralty and maritime jurisdiction,
and in general to all points which affect the law of nations. It may even be
affirmed that, although its constitution is essentially judicial, its
prerogatives are almost entirely political. Its sole object is to enforce the
execution of the laws of the Union; and the Union only regulates the relations
of the Government with the citizens, and of the nation with Foreign Powers: the
relations of citizens amongst themselves are almost exclusively regulated by the
sovereignty of the States.
A second and still greater cause of the preponderance of this court may be
adduced. In the nations of Europe the courts of justice are only called upon to
try the controversies of private individuals; but the Supreme Court of the
United States summons sovereign powers to its bar. When the clerk of the court
advances on the steps of the tribunal, and simply says, "The State of New York
versus the State of Ohio," it is impossible not to feel that the Court which he
addresses is no ordinary body; and when it is recollected that one of these
parties represents one million, and the other two millions of men, one is struck
by the responsibility of the seven judges whose decision is about to satisfy or
to disappoint so large a number of their fellow-citizens.
The peace, the prosperity, and the very existence of the Union are vested in the
hands of the seven judges. Without their active co-operation the Constitution
would be a dead letter: the Executive appeals to them for assistance against the
encroachments of the legislative powers; the Legislature demands their
protection from the designs of the Executive; they defend the Union from the
disobedience of the States, the States from the exaggerated claims of the Union,
the public interest against the interests of private citizens, and the
conservative spirit of order against the fleeting innovations of democracy.
Their power is enormous, but it is clothed in the authority of public opinion.
They are the all-powerful guardians of a people which respects law, but they
would be impotent against popular neglect or popular contempt. The force of
public opinion is the most intractable of agents, because its exact limits
cannot be defined; and it is not less dangerous to exceed than to remain below
the boundary prescribed.
The Federal judges must not only be good citizens, and men possessed of that
information and integrity which are indispensable to magistrates, but they must
be statesmen—politicians, not unread in the signs of the times, not afraid to
brave the obstacles which can be subdued, nor slow to turn aside such
encroaching elements as may threaten the supremacy of the Union and the
obedience which is due to the laws.
The President, who exercises a limited power, may err without causing great
mischief in the State. Congress may decide amiss without destroying the Union,
because the electoral body in which Congress originates may cause it to retract
its decision by changing its members. But if the Supreme Court is ever composed
of imprudent men or bad citizens, the Union may be plunged into anarchy or civil
war.
The real cause of this danger, however, does not lie in the constitution of the
tribunal, but in the very nature of Federal Governments. We have observed that
in confederate peoples it is especially necessary to consolidate the judicial
authority, because in no other nations do those independent persons who are able
to cope with the social body exist in greater power or in a better condition to
resist the physical strength of the Government. But the more a power requires to
be strengthened, the more extensive and independent it must be made; and the
dangers which its abuse may create are heightened by its independence and its
strength. The source of the evil is not, therefore, in the constitution of the
power, but in the constitution of those States which render its existence
necessary.
In What Respects The Federal Constitution Is Superior To That Of The States
In what respects the Constitution of the Union can be compared to that of the
States—Superiority of the Constitution of the Union attributable to the wisdom
of the Federal legislators—Legislature of the Union less dependent on the people
than that of the States—Executive power more independent in its sphere—Judicial
power less subjected to the inclinations of the majority—Practical consequence
of these facts—The dangers inherent in a democratic government eluded by the
Federal legislators, and increased by the legislators of the States.
The Federal Constitution differs essentially from that of the States in the ends
which it is intended to accomplish, but in the means by which these ends are
promoted a greater analogy exists between them. The objects of the Governments
are different, but their forms are the same; and in this special point of view
there is some advantage in comparing them together.
I am of opinion that the Federal Constitution is superior to all the
Constitutions of the States, for several reasons.
The present Constitution of the Union was formed at a later period than those of
the majority of the States, and it may have derived some ameliorations from past
experience. But we shall be led to acknowledge that this is only a secondary
cause of its superiority, when we recollect that eleven new States *n have been
added to the American Confederation since the promulgation of the Federal
Constitution, and that these new republics have always rather exaggerated than
avoided the defects which existed in the former Constitutions.
n
[ [The number of States has now risen to 46 (1874), besides the District of
Columbia.]]
The chief cause of the superiority of the Federal Constitution lay in the
character of the legislators who composed it. At the time when it was formed the
dangers of the Confederation were imminent, and its ruin seemed inevitable. In
this extremity the people chose the men who most deserved the esteem, rather
than those who had gained the affections, of the country. I have already
observed that distinguished as almost all the legislators of the Union were for
their intelligence, they were still more so for their patriotism. They had all
been nurtured at a time when the spirit of liberty was braced by a continual
struggle against a powerful and predominant authority. When the contest was
terminated, whilst the excited passions of the populace persisted in warring
with dangers which had ceased to threaten them, these men stopped short in their
career; they cast a calmer and more penetrating look upon the country which was
now their own; they perceived that the war of independence was definitely ended,
and that the only dangers which America had to fear were those which might
result from the abuse of the freedom she had won. They had the courage to say
what they believed to be true, because they were animated by a warm and sincere
love of liberty; and they ventured to propose restrictions, because they were
resolutely opposed to destruction. *o
o
[ At this time Alexander Hamilton, who was one of the principal founders of the
Constitution, ventured to express the following sentiments in "The Federalist,"
No. 71:—
"There are some who would be inclined to regard the servile pliancy of the
Executive to a prevailing current, either in the community or in the
Legislature, as its best recommendation. But such men entertain very crude
notions, as well of the purposes for which government was instituted as of the
true means by which the public happiness may be promoted. The Republican
principle demands that the deliberative sense of the community should govern the
conduct of those to whom they entrust the management of their affairs; but it
does not require an unqualified complaisance to every sudden breeze of passion,
or to every transient impulse which the people may receive from the arts of men
who flatter their prejudices to betray their interests. It is a just
observation, that the people commonly intend the public good. This often applies
to their very errors. But their good sense would despise the adulator who should
pretend that they always reason right about the means of promoting it. They know
from experience that they sometimes err; and the wonder is that they so seldom
err as they do, beset, as they continually are, by the wiles of parasites and
sycophants; by the snares of the ambitious, the avaricious, the desperate; by
the artifices of men who possess their confidence more than they deserve it, and
of those who seek to possess rather than to deserve it. When occasions present
themselves in which the interests of the people are at variance with their
inclinations, it is the duty of persons whom they have appointed to be the
guardians of those interests to withstand the temporary delusion, in order to
give them time and opportunity for more cool and sedate reflection. Instances
might be cited in which a conduct of this kind has saved the people from very
fatal consequences of their own mistakes, and has procured lasting monuments of
their gratitude to the men who had courage and magnanimity enough to serve them
at the peril of their displeasure."]
The greater number of the Constitutions of the States assign one year for the
duration of the House of Representatives, and two years for that of the Senate;
so that members of the legislative body are constantly and narrowly tied down by
the slightest desires of their constituents. The legislators of the Union were
of opinion that this excessive dependence of the Legislature tended to alter the
nature of the main consequences of the representative system, since it vested
the source, not only of authority, but of government, in the people. They
increased the length of the time for which the representatives were returned, in
order to give them freer scope for the exercise of their own judgment.
The Federal Constitution, as well as the Constitutions of the different States,
divided the legislative body into two branches. But in the States these two
branches were composed of the same elements, and elected in the same manner. The
consequence was that the passions and inclinations of the populace were as
rapidly and as energetically represented in one chamber as in the other, and
that laws were made with all the characteristics of violence and precipitation.
By the Federal Constitution the two houses originate in like manner in the
choice of the people; but the conditions of eligibility and the mode of election
were changed, to the end that, if, as is the case in certain nations, one branch
of the Legislature represents the same interests as the other, it may at least
represent a superior degree of intelligence and discretion. A mature age was
made one of the conditions of the senatorial dignity, and the Upper House was
chosen by an elected assembly of a limited number of members.
To concentrate the whole social force in the hands of the legislative body is
the natural tendency of democracies; for as this is the power which emanates the
most directly from the people, it is made to participate most fully in the
preponderating authority of the multitude, and it is naturally led to monopolize
every species of influence. This concentration is at once prejudicial to a
well-conducted administration, and favorable to the despotism of the majority.
The legislators of the States frequently yielded to these democratic
propensities, which were invariably and courageously resisted by the founders of
the Union.
In the States the executive power is vested in the hands of a magistrate, who is
apparently placed upon a level with the Legislature, but who is in reality
nothing more than the blind agent and the passive instrument of its decisions.
He can derive no influence from the duration of his functions, which terminate
with the revolving year, or from the exercise of prerogatives which can scarcely
be said to exist. The Legislature can condemn him to inaction by intrusting the
execution of the laws to special committees of its own members, and can annul
his temporary dignity by depriving him of his salary. The Federal Constitution
vests all the privileges and all the responsibility of the executive power in a
single individual. The duration of the Presidency is fixed at four years; the
salary of the individual who fills that office cannot be altered during the term
of his functions; he is protected by a body of official dependents, and armed
with a suspensive veto. In short, every effort was made to confer a strong and
independent position upon the executive authority within the limits which had
been prescribed to it.
In the Constitutions of all the States the judicial power is that which remains
the most independent of the legislative authority; nevertheless, in all the
States the Legislature has reserved to itself the right of regulating the
emoluments of the judges, a practice which necessarily subjects these
magistrates to its immediate influence. In some States the judges are only
temporarily appointed, which deprives them of a great portion of their power and
their freedom. In others the legislative and judicial powers are entirely
confounded; thus the Senate of New York, for instance, constitutes in certain
cases the Superior Court of the State. The Federal Constitution, on the other
hand, carefully separates the judicial authority from all external influences;
and it provides for the independence of the judges, by declaring that their
salary shall not be altered, and that their functions shall be inalienable.
The practical consequences of these different systems may easily be perceived.
An attentive observer will soon remark that the business of the Union is
incomparably better conducted than that of any individual State. The conduct of
the Federal Government is more fair and more temperate than that of the States,
its designs are more fraught with wisdom, its projects are more durable and more
skilfully combined, its measures are put into execution with more vigor and
consistency.
I recapitulate the substance of this chapter in a few words: The existence of
democracies is threatened by two dangers, viz., the complete subjection of the
legislative body to the caprices of the electoral body, and the concentration of
all the powers of the Government in the legislative authority. The growth of
these evils has been encouraged by the policy of the legislators of the States,
but it has been resisted by the legislators of the Union by every means which
lay within their control.
Characteristics Which Distinguish The Federal Constitution Of The United States
Of America From All Other Federal Constitutions American Union appears to
resemble all other confederations—Nevertheless its effects are different—Reason
of this—Distinctions between the Union and all other confederations—The American
Government not a federal but an imperfect national Government.
The United States of America do not afford either the first or the only instance
of confederate States, several of which have existed in modern Europe, without
adverting to those of antiquity. Switzerland, the Germanic Empire, and the
Republic of the United Provinces either have been or still are confederations.
In studying the constitutions of these different countries, the politician is
surprised to observe that the powers with which they invested the Federal
Government are nearly identical with the privileges awarded by the American
Constitution to the Government of the United States. They confer upon the
central power the same rights of making peace and war, of raising money and
troops, and of providing for the general exigencies and the common interests of
the nation. Nevertheless the Federal Government of these different peoples has
always been as remarkable for its weakness and inefficiency as that of the Union
is for its vigorous and enterprising spirit. Again, the first American
Confederation perished through the excessive weakness of its Government; and
this weak Government was, notwithstanding, in possession of rights even more
extensive than those of the Federal Government of the present day. But the more
recent Constitution of the United States contains certain principles which
exercise a most important influence, although they do not at once strike the
observer.
This Constitution, which may at first sight be confounded with the federal
constitutions which preceded it, rests upon a novel theory, which may be
considered as a great invention in modern political science. In all the
confederations which had been formed before the American Constitution of 1789
the allied States agreed to obey the injunctions of a Federal Government; but
they reserved to themselves the right of ordaining and enforcing the execution
of the laws of the Union. The American States which combined in 1789 agreed that
the Federal Government should not only dictate the laws, but that it should
execute it own enactments. In both cases the right is the same, but the exercise
of the right is different; and this alteration produced the most momentous
consequences.
In all the confederations which had been formed before the American Union the
Federal Government demanded its supplies at the hands of the separate
Governments; and if the measure it prescribed was onerous to any one of those
bodies means were found to evade its claims: if the State was powerful, it had
recourse to arms; if it was weak, it connived at the resistance which the law of
the Union, its sovereign, met with, and resorted to inaction under the plea of
inability. Under these circumstances one of the two alternatives has invariably
occurred; either the most preponderant of the allied peoples has assumed the
privileges of the Federal authority and ruled all the States in its name, *p or
the Federal Government has been abandoned by its natural supporters, anarchy has
arisen between the confederates, and the Union has lost all powers of action. *q
p
[ This was the case in Greece, when Philip undertook to execute the decree of
the Amphictyons; in the Low Countries, where the province of Holland always gave
the law; and, in our own time, in the Germanic Confederation, in which Austria
and Prussia assume a great degree of influence over the whole country, in the
name of the Diet.]
q
[ Such has always been the situation of the Swiss Confederation, which would
have perished ages ago but for the mutual jealousies of its neighbors.]
In America the subjects of the Union are not States, but private citizens: the
national Government levies a tax, not upon the State of Massachusetts, but upon
each inhabitant of Massachusetts. All former confederate governments presided
over communities, but that of the Union rules individuals; its force is not
borrowed, but self-derived; and it is served by its own civil and military
officers, by its own army, and its own courts of justice. It cannot be doubted
that the spirit of the nation, the passions of the multitude, and the provincial
prejudices of each State tend singularly to diminish the authority of a Federal
authority thus constituted, and to facilitate the means of resistance to its
mandates; but the comparative weakness of a restricted sovereignty is an evil
inherent in the Federal system. In America, each State has fewer opportunities
of resistance and fewer temptations to non-compliance; nor can such a design be
put in execution (if indeed it be entertained) without an open violation of the
laws of the Union, a direct interruption of the ordinary course of justice, and
a bold declaration of revolt; in a word, without taking a decisive step which
men hesitate to adopt.
In all former confederations the privileges of the Union furnished more elements
of discord than of power, since they multiplied the claims of the nation without
augmenting the means of enforcing them: and in accordance with this fact it may
be remarked that the real weakness of federal governments has almost always been
in the exact ratio of their nominal power. Such is not the case in the American
Union, in which, as in ordinary governments, the Federal Government has the
means of enforcing all it is empowered to demand.
The human understanding more easily invents new things than new words, and we
are thence constrained to employ a multitude of improper and inadequate
expressions. When several nations form a permanent league and establish a
supreme authority, which, although it has not the same influence over the
members of the community as a national government, acts upon each of the
Confederate States in a body, this Government, which is so essentially different
from all others, is denominated a Federal one. Another form of society is
afterwards discovered, in which several peoples are fused into one and the same
nation with regard to certain common interests, although they remain distinct,
or at least only confederate, with regard to all their other concerns. In this
case the central power acts directly upon those whom it governs, whom it rules,
and whom it judges, in the same manner, as, but in a more limited circle than, a
national government. Here the term Federal Government is clearly no longer
applicable to a state of things which must be styled an incomplete national
Government: a form of government has been found out which is neither exactly
national nor federal; but no further progress has been made, and the new word
which will one day designate this novel invention does not yet exist.
The absence of this new species of confederation has been the cause which has
brought all Unions to Civil War, to subjection, or to a stagnant apathy, and the
peoples which formed these leagues have been either too dull to discern, or too
pusillanimous to apply this great remedy. The American Confederation perished by
the same defects.
But the Confederate States of America had been long accustomed to form a portion
of one empire before they had won their independence; they had not contracted
the habit of governing themselves, and their national prejudices had not taken
deep root in their minds. Superior to the rest of the world in political
knowledge, and sharing that knowledge equally amongst themselves, they were
little agitated by the passions which generally oppose the extension of federal
authority in a nation, and those passions were checked by the wisdom of the
chief citizens. The Americans applied the remedy with prudent firmness as soon
as they were conscious of the evil; they amended their laws, and they saved
their country.
Chapter VIII: The Federal Constitution—Part V
Advantages Of The Federal System In General, And Its Special Utility In America.
Happiness and freedom of small nations—Power of great nations—Great empires
favorable to the growth of civilization—Strength often the first element of
national prosperity—Aim of the Federal system to unite the twofold advantages
resulting from a small and from a large territory—Advantages derived by the
United States from this system—The law adapts itself to the exigencies of the
population; population does not conform to the exigencies of the law—Activity,
amelioration, love and enjoyment of freedom in the American communities—Public
spirit of the Union the abstract of provincial patriotism—Principles and things
circulate freely over the territory of the United States—The Union is happy and
free as a little nation, and respected as a great empire.
In small nations the scrutiny of society penetrates into every part, and the
spirit of improvement enters into the most trifling details; as the ambition of
the people is necessarily checked by its weakness, all the efforts and resources
of the citizens are turned to the internal benefit of the community, and are not
likely to evaporate in the fleeting breath of glory. The desires of every
individual are limited, because extraordinary faculties are rarely to be met
with. The gifts of an equal fortune render the various conditions of life
uniform, and the manners of the inhabitants are orderly and simple. Thus, if one
estimate the gradations of popular morality and enlightenment, we shall
generally find that in small nations there are more persons in easy
circumstances, a more numerous population, and a more tranquil state of society,
than in great empires.
When tyranny is established in the bosom of a small nation, it is more galling
than elsewhere, because, as it acts within a narrow circle, every point of that
circle is subject to its direct influence. It supplies the place of those great
designs which it cannot entertain by a violent or an exasperating interference
in a multitude of minute details; and it leaves the political world, to which it
properly belongs, to meddle with the arrangements of domestic life. Tastes as
well as actions are to be regulated at its pleasure; and the families of the
citizens as well as the affairs of the State are to be governed by its
decisions. This invasion of rights occurs, however, but seldom, and freedom is
in truth the natural state of small communities. The temptations which the
Government offers to ambition are too weak, and the resources of private
individuals are too slender, for the sovereign power easily to fall within the
grasp of a single citizen; and should such an event have occurred, the subjects
of the State can without difficulty overthrow the tyrant and his oppression by a
simultaneous effort.
Small nations have therefore ever been the cradle of political liberty; and the
fact that many of them have lost their immunities by extending their dominion
shows that the freedom they enjoyed was more a consequence of the inferior size
than of the character of the people.
The history of the world affords no instance of a great nation retaining the
form of republican government for a long series of years, *r and this has led to
the conclusion that such a state of things is impracticable. For my own part, I
cannot but censure the imprudence of attempting to limit the possible and to
judge the future on the part of a being who is hourly deceived by the most
palpable realities of life, and who is constantly taken by surprise in the
circumstances with which he is most familiar. But it may be advanced with
confidence that the existence of a great republic will always be exposed to far
greater perils than that of a small one.
r
[ I do not speak of a confederation of small republics, but of a great
consolidated Republic.]
All the passions which are most fatal to republican institutions spread with an
increasing territory, whilst the virtues which maintain their dignity do not
augment in the same proportion. The ambition of the citizens increases with the
power of the State; the strength of parties with the importance of the ends they
have in view; but that devotion to the common weal which is the surest check on
destructive passions is not stronger in a large than in a small republic. It
might, indeed, be proved without difficulty that it is less powerful and less
sincere. The arrogance of wealth and the dejection of wretchedness, capital
cities of unwonted extent, a lax morality, a vulgar egotism, and a great
confusion of interests, are the dangers which almost invariably arise from the
magnitude of States. But several of these evils are scarcely prejudicial to a
monarchy, and some of them contribute to maintain its existence. In monarchical
States the strength of the government is its own; it may use, but it does not
depend on, the community, and the authority of the prince is proportioned to the
prosperity of the nation; but the only security which a republican government
possesses against these evils lies in the support of the majority. This support
is not, however, proportionably greater in a large republic than it is in a
small one; and thus, whilst the means of attack perpetually increase both in
number and in influence, the power of resistance remains the same, or it may
rather be said to diminish, since the propensities and interests of the people
are diversified by the increase of the population, and the difficulty of forming
a compact majority is constantly augmented. It has been observed, moreover, that
the intensity of human passions is heightened, not only by the importance of the
end which they propose to attain, but by the multitude of individuals who are
animated by them at the same time. Every one has had occasion to remark that his
emotions in the midst of a sympathizing crowd are far greater than those which
he would have felt in solitude. In great republics the impetus of political
passion is irresistible, not only because it aims at gigantic purposes, but
because it is felt and shared by millions of men at the same time.
It may therefore be asserted as a general proposition that nothing is more
opposed to the well-being and the freedom of man than vast empires. Nevertheless
it is important to acknowledge the peculiar advantages of great States. For the
very reason which renders the desire of power more intense in these communities
than amongst ordinary men, the love of glory is also more prominent in the
hearts of a class of citizens, who regard the applause of a great people as a
reward worthy of their exertions, and an elevating encouragement to man. If we
would learn why it is that great nations contribute more powerfully to the
spread of human improvement than small States, we shall discover an adequate
cause in the rapid and energetic circulation of ideas, and in those great cities
which are the intellectual centres where all the rays of human genius are
reflected and combined. To this it may be added that most important discoveries
demand a display of national power which the Government of a small State is
unable to make; in great nations the Government entertains a greater number of
general notions, and is more completely disengaged from the routine of precedent
and the egotism of local prejudice; its designs are conceived with more talent,
and executed with more boldness.
In time of peace the well-being of small nations is undoubtedly more general and
more complete, but they are apt to suffer more acutely from the calamities of
war than those great empires whose distant frontiers may for ages avert the
presence of the danger from the mass of the people, which is therefore more
frequently afflicted than ruined by the evil.
But in this matter, as in many others, the argument derived from the necessity
of the case predominates over all others. If none but small nations existed, I
do not doubt that mankind would be more happy and more free; but the existence
of great nations is unavoidable.
This consideration introduces the element of physical strength as a condition of
national prosperity. It profits a people but little to be affluent and free if
it is perpetually exposed to be pillaged or subjugated; the number of its
manufactures and the extent of its commerce are of small advantage if another
nation has the empire of the seas and gives the law in all the markets of the
globe. Small nations are often impoverished, not because they are small, but
because they are weak; the great empires prosper less because they are great
than because they are strong. Physical strength is therefore one of the first
conditions of the happiness and even of the existence of nations. Hence it
occurs that, unless very peculiar circumstances intervene, small nations are
always united to large empires in the end, either by force or by their own
consent: yet I am unacquainted with a more deplorable spectacle than that of a
people unable either to defend or to maintain its independence.
The Federal system was created with the intention of combining the different
advantages which result from the greater and the lesser extent of nations; and a
single glance over the United States of America suffices to discover the
advantages which they have derived from its adoption.
In great centralized nations the legislator is obliged to impart a character of
uniformity to the laws which does not always suit the diversity of customs and
of districts; as he takes no cognizance of special cases, he can only proceed
upon general principles; and the population is obliged to conform to the
exigencies of the legislation, since the legislation cannot adapt itself to the
exigencies and the customs of the population, which is the cause of endless
trouble and misery. This disadvantage does not exist in confederations. Congress
regulates the principal measures of the national Government, and all the details
of the administration are reserved to the provincial legislatures. It is
impossible to imagine how much this division of sovereignty contributes to the
well-being of each of the States which compose the Union. In these small
communities, which are never agitated by the desire of aggrandizement or the
cares of self-defence, all public authority and private energy is employed in
internal amelioration. The central government of each State, which is in
immediate juxtaposition to the citizens, is daily apprised of the wants which
arise in society; and new projects are proposed every year, which are discussed
either at town meetings or by the legislature of the State, and which are
transmitted by the press to stimulate the zeal and to excite the interest of the
citizens. This spirit of amelioration is constantly alive in the American
republics, without compromising their tranquillity; the ambition of power yields
to the less refined and less dangerous love of comfort. It is generally believed
in America that the existence and the permanence of the republican form of
government in the New World depend upon the existence and the permanence of the
Federal system; and it is not unusual to attribute a large share of the
misfortunes which have befallen the new States of South America to the
injudicious erection of great republics, instead of a divided and confederate
sovereignty.
It is incontestably true that the love and the habits of republican government
in the United States were engendered in the townships and in the provincial
assemblies. In a small State, like that of Connecticut for instance, where
cutting a canal or laying down a road is a momentous political question, where
the State has no army to pay and no wars to carry on, and where much wealth and
much honor cannot be bestowed upon the chief citizens, no form of government can
be more natural or more appropriate than that of a republic. But it is this same
republican spirit, it is these manners and customs of a free people, which are
engendered and nurtured in the different States, to be afterwards applied to the
country at large. The public spirit of the Union is, so to speak, nothing more
than an abstract of the patriotic zeal of the provinces. Every citizen of the
United States transfuses his attachment to his little republic in the common
store of American patriotism. In defending the Union he defends the increasing
prosperity of his own district, the right of conducting its affairs, and the
hope of causing measures of improvement to be adopted which may be favorable to
his own interest; and these are motives which are wont to stir men more readily
than the general interests of the country and the glory of the nation.
On the other hand, if the temper and the manners of the inhabitants especially
fitted them to promote the welfare of a great republic, the Federal system
smoothed the obstacles which they might have encountered. The confederation of
all the American States presents none of the ordinary disadvantages resulting
from great agglomerations of men. The Union is a great republic in extent, but
the paucity of objects for which its Government provides assimilates it to a
small State. Its acts are important, but they are rare. As the sovereignty of
the Union is limited and incomplete, its exercise is not incompatible with
liberty; for it does not excite those insatiable desires of fame and power which
have proved so fatal to great republics. As there is no common centre to the
country, vast capital cities, colossal wealth, abject poverty, and sudden
revolutions are alike unknown; and political passion, instead of spreading over
the land like a torrent of desolation, spends its strength against the interests
and the individual passions of every State.
Nevertheless, all commodities and ideas circulate throughout the Union as freely
as in a country inhabited by one people. Nothing checks the spirit of
enterprise. Government avails itself of the assistance of all who have talents
or knowledge to serve it. Within the frontiers of the Union the profoundest
peace prevails, as within the heart of some great empire; abroad, it ranks with
the most powerful nations of the earth; two thousand miles of coast are open to
the commerce of the world; and as it possesses the keys of the globe, its flags
is respected in the most remote seas. The Union is as happy and as free as a
small people, and as glorious and as strong as a great nation.
Why The Federal System Is Not Adapted To All Peoples, And How The
Anglo-Americans Were Enabled To Adopt It.
Every Federal system contains defects which baffle the efforts of the
legislator—The Federal system is complex—It demands a daily exercise of
discretion on the part of the citizens—Practical knowledge of government common
amongst the Americans—Relative weakness of the Government of the Union, another
defect inherent in the Federal system—The Americans have diminished without
remedying it—The sovereignty of the separate States apparently weaker, but
really stronger, than that of the Union—Why?—Natural causes of union must exist
between confederate peoples besides the laws—What these causes are amongst the
Anglo-Americans—Maine and Georgia, separated by a distance of a thousand miles,
more naturally united than Normandy and Brittany—War, the main peril of
confederations—This proved even by the example of the United States—The Union
has no great wars to fear—Why?—Dangers to which Europeans would be exposed if
they adopted the Federal system of the Americans.
When a legislator succeeds, after persevering efforts, in exercising an indirect
influence upon the destiny of nations, his genius is lauded by mankind, whilst,
in point of fact, the geographical position of the country which he is unable to
change, a social condition which arose without his co-operation, manners and
opinions which he cannot trace to their source, and an origin with which he is
unacquainted, exercise so irresistible an influence over the courses of society
that he is himself borne away by the current, after an ineffectual resistance.
Like the navigator, he may direct the vessel which bears him along, but he can
neither change its structure, nor raise the winds, nor lull the waters which
swell beneath him.
I have shown the advantages which the Americans derive from their federal
system; it remains for me to point out the circumstances which rendered that
system practicable, as its benefits are not to be enjoyed by all nations. The
incidental defects of the Federal system which originate in the laws may be
corrected by the skill of the legislator, but there are further evils inherent
in the system which cannot be counteracted by the peoples which adopt it. These
nations must therefore find the strength necessary to support the natural
imperfections of their Government.
The most prominent evil of all Federal systems is the very complex nature of the
means they employ. Two sovereignties are necessarily in presence of each other.
The legislator may simplify and equalize the action of these two sovereignties,
by limiting each of them to a sphere of authority accurately defined; but he
cannot combine them into one, or prevent them from coming into collision at
certain points. The Federal system therefore rests upon a theory which is
necessarily complicated, and which demands the daily exercise of a considerable
share of discretion on the part of those it governs.
A proposition must be plain to be adopted by the understanding of a people. A
false notion which is clear and precise will always meet with a greater number
of adherents in the world than a true principle which is obscure or involved.
Hence it arises that parties, which are like small communities in the heart of
the nation, invariably adopt some principle or some name as a symbol, which very
inadequately represents the end they have in view and the means which are at
their disposal, but without which they could neither act nor subsist. The
governments which are founded upon a single principle or a single feeling which
is easily defined are perhaps not the best, but they are unquestionably the
strongest and the most durable in the world.
In examining the Constitution of the United States, which is the most perfect
federal constitution that ever existed, one is startled, on the other hand, at
the variety of information and the excellence of discretion which it presupposes
in the people whom it is meant to govern. The government of the Union depends
entirely upon legal fictions; the Union is an ideal nation which only exists in
the mind, and whose limits and extent can only be discerned by the
understanding.
When once the general theory is comprehended, numberless difficulties remain to
be solved in its application; for the sovereignty of the Union is so involved in
that of the States that it is impossible to distinguish its boundaries at the
first glance. The whole structure of the Government is artificial and
conventional; and it would be ill adapted to a people which has not been long
accustomed to conduct its own affairs, or to one in which the science of
politics has not descended to the humblest classes of society. I have never been
more struck by the good sense and the practical judgment of the Americans than
in the ingenious devices by which they elude the numberless difficulties
resulting from their Federal Constitution. I scarcely ever met with a plain
American citizen who could not distinguish, with surprising facility, the
obligations created by the laws of Congress from those created by the laws of
his own State; and who, after having discriminated between the matters which
come under the cognizance of the Union and those which the local legislature is
competent to regulate, could not point out the exact limit of the several
jurisdictions of the Federal courts and the tribunals of the State.
The Constitution of the United States is like those exquisite productions of
human industry which ensure wealth and renown to their inventors, but which are
profitless in any other hands. This truth is exemplified by the condition of
Mexico at the present time. The Mexicans were desirous of establishing a federal
system, and they took the Federal Constitution of their neighbors, the
Anglo-Americans, as their model, and copied it with considerable accuracy. *s
But although they had borrowed the letter of the law, they were unable to create
or to introduce the spirit and the sense which give it life. They were involved
in ceaseless embarrassments between the mechanism of their double government;
the sovereignty of the States and that of the Union perpetually exceeded their
respective privileges, and entered into collision; and to the present day Mexico
is alternately the victim of anarchy and the slave of military despotism.
s
[ See the Mexican Constitution of 1824.]
The second and the most fatal of all the defects I have alluded to, and that
which I believe to be inherent in the federal system, is the relative weakness
of the government of the Union. The principle upon which all confederations rest
is that of a divided sovereignty. The legislator may render this partition less
perceptible, he may even conceal it for a time from the public eye, but he
cannot prevent it from existing, and a divided sovereignty must always be less
powerful than an entire supremacy. The reader has seen in the remarks I have
made on the Constitution of the United States that the Americans have displayed
singular ingenuity in combining the restriction of the power of the Union within
the narrow limits of a federal government with the semblance and, to a certain
extent, with the force of a national government. By this means the legislators
of the Union have succeeded in diminishing, though not in counteracting the
natural danger of confederations.
It has been remarked that the American Government does not apply itself to the
States, but that it immediately transmits its injunctions to the citizens, and
compels them as isolated individuals to comply with its demands. But if the
Federal law were to clash with the interests and the prejudices of a State, it
might be feared that all the citizens of that State would conceive themselves to
be interested in the cause of a single individual who should refuse to obey. If
all the citizens of the State were aggrieved at the same time and in the same
manner by the authority of the Union, the Federal Government would vainly
attempt to subdue them individually; they would instinctively unite in a common
defence, and they would derive a ready-prepared organization from the share of
sovereignty which the institution of their State allows them to enjoy. Fiction
would give way to reality, and an organized portion of the territory might then
contest the central authority. *t The same observation holds good with regard to
the Federal jurisdiction. If the courts of the Union violated an important law
of a State in a private case, the real, if not the apparent, contest would arise
between the aggrieved State represented by a citizen and the Union represented
by its courts of justice. *u
t
[ [This is precisely what occurred in 1862, and the following paragraph
describes correctly the feelings and notions of the South. General Lee held that
his primary allegiance was due, not to the Union, but to Virginia.]]
u
[ For instance, the Union possesses by the Constitution the right of selling
unoccupied lands for its own profit. Supposing that the State of Ohio should
claim the same right in behalf of certain territories lying within its
boundaries, upon the plea that the Constitution refers to those lands alone
which do not belong to the jurisdiction of any particular State, and
consequently should choose to dispose of them itself, the litigation would be
carried on in the names of the purchasers from the State of Ohio and the
purchasers from the Union, and not in the names of Ohio and the Union. But what
would become of this legal fiction if the Federal purchaser was confirmed in his
right by the courts of the Union, whilst the other competitor was ordered to
retain possession by the tribunals of the State of Ohio?]
He would have but a partial knowledge of the world who should imagine that it is
possible, by the aid of legal fictions, to prevent men from finding out and
employing those means of gratifying their passions which have been left open to
them; and it may be doubted whether the American legislators, when they rendered
a collision between the two sovereigns less probable, destroyed the cause of
such a misfortune. But it may even be affirmed that they were unable to ensure
the preponderance of the Federal element in a case of this kind. The Union is
possessed of money and of troops, but the affections and the prejudices of the
people are in the bosom of the States. The sovereignty of the Union is an
abstract being, which is connected with but few external objects; the
sovereignty of the States is hourly perceptible, easily understood, constantly
active; and if the former is of recent creation, the latter is coeval with the
people itself. The sovereignty of the Union is factitious, that of the States is
natural, and derives its existence from its own simple influence, like the
authority of a parent. The supreme power of the nation only affects a few of the
chief interests of society; it represents an immense but remote country, and
claims a feeling of patriotism which is vague and ill defined; but the authority
of the States controls every individual citizen at every hour and in all
circumstances; it protects his property, his freedom, and his life; and when we
recollect the traditions, the customs, the prejudices of local and familiar
attachment with which it is connected, we cannot doubt of the superiority of a
power which is interwoven with every circumstance that renders the love of one's
native country instinctive in the human heart.
Since legislators are unable to obviate such dangerous collisions as occur
between the two sovereignties which coexist in the federal system, their first
object must be, not only to dissuade the confederate States from warfare, but to
encourage such institutions as may promote the maintenance of peace. Hence it
results that the Federal compact cannot be lasting unless there exists in the
communities which are leagued together a certain number of inducements to union
which render their common dependence agreeable, and the task of the Government
light, and that system cannot succeed without the presence of favorable
circumstances added to the influence of good laws. All the peoples which have
ever formed a confederation have been held together by a certain number of
common interests, which served as the intellectual ties of association.
But the sentiments and the principles of man must be taken into consideration as
well as his immediate interests. A certain uniformity of civilization is not
less necessary to the durability of a confederation than a uniformity of
interests in the States which compose it. In Switzerland the difference which
exists between the Canton of Uri and the Canton of Vaud is equal to that between
the fifteenth and the nineteenth centuries; and, properly speaking, Switzerland
has never possessed a federal government. The union between these two cantons
only subsists upon the map, and their discrepancies would soon be perceived if
an attempt were made by a central authority to prescribe the same laws to the
whole territory.
One of the circumstances which most powerfully contribute to support the Federal
Government in America is that the States have not only similar interests, a
common origin, and a common tongue, but that they are also arrived at the same
stage of civilization; which almost always renders a union feasible. I do not
know of any European nation, how small soever it may be, which does not present
less uniformity in its different provinces than the American people, which
occupies a territory as extensive as one-half of Europe. The distance from the
State of Maine to that of Georgia is reckoned at about one thousand miles; but
the difference between the civilization of Maine and that of Georgia is slighter
than the difference between the habits of Normandy and those of Brittany. Maine
and Georgia, which are placed at the opposite extremities of a great empire, are
consequently in the natural possession of more real inducements to form a
confederation than Normandy and Brittany, which are only separated by a bridge.
The geographical position of the country contributed to increase the facilities
which the American legislators derived from the manners and customs of the
inhabitants; and it is to this circumstance that the adoption and the
maintenance of the Federal system are mainly attributable.
The most important occurrence which can mark the annals of a people is the
breaking out of a war. In war a people struggles with the energy of a single man
against foreign nations in the defence of its very existence. The skill of a
government, the good sense of the community, and the natural fondness which men
entertain for their country, may suffice to maintain peace in the interior of a
district, and to favor its internal prosperity; but a nation can only carry on a
great war at the cost of more numerous and more painful sacrifices; and to
suppose that a great number of men will of their own accord comply with these
exigencies of the State is to betray an ignorance of mankind. All the peoples
which have been obliged to sustain a long and serious warfare have consequently
been led to augment the power of their government. Those which have not
succeeded in this attempt have been subjugated. A long war almost always places
nations in the wretched alternative of being abandoned to ruin by defeat or to
despotism by success. War therefore renders the symptoms of the weakness of a
government most palpable and most alarming; and I have shown that the inherent
defeat of federal governments is that of being weak.
The Federal system is not only deficient in every kind of centralized
administration, but the central government itself is imperfectly organized,
which is invariably an influential cause of inferiority when the nation is
opposed to other countries which are themselves governed by a single authority.
In the Federal Constitution of the United States, by which the central
government possesses more real force, this evil is still extremely sensible. An
example will illustrate the case to the reader.
The Constitution confers upon Congress the right of calling forth militia to
execute the laws of the Union, suppress insurrections, and repel invasions; and
another article declares that the President of the United States is the
commander-in-chief of the militia. In the war of 1812 the President ordered the
militia of the Northern States to march to the frontiers; but Connecticut and
Massachusetts, whose interests were impaired by the war, refused to obey the
command. They argued that the Constitution authorizes the Federal Government to
call forth the militia in case of insurrection or invasion, but that in the
present instance there was neither invasion nor insurrection. They added, that
the same Constitution which conferred upon the Union the right of calling forth
the militia reserved to the States that of naming the officers; and that
consequently (as they understood the clause) no officer of the Union had any
right to command the militia, even during war, except the President in person;
and in this case they were ordered to join an army commanded by another
individual. These absurd and pernicious doctrines received the sanction not only
of the governors and the legislative bodies, but also of the courts of justice
in both States; and the Federal Government was constrained to raise elsewhere
the troops which it required. *v
v
[ Kent's "Commentaries," vol. i. p. 244. I have selected an example which
relates to a time posterior to the promulgation of the present Constitution. If
I had gone back to the days of the Confederation, I might have given still more
striking instances. The whole nation was at that time in a state of enthusiastic
excitement; the Revolution was represented by a man who was the idol of the
people; but at that very period Congress had, to say the truth, no resources at
all at its disposal. Troops and supplies were perpetually wanting. The
best-devised projects failed in the execution, and the Union, which was
constantly on the verge of destruction, was saved by the weakness of its enemies
far more than by its own strength. [All doubt as to the powers of the Federal
Executive was, however, removed by its efforts in the Civil War, and those
powers were largely extended.]]
The only safeguard which the American Union, with all the relative perfection of
its laws, possesses against the dissolution which would be produced by a great
war, lies in its probable exemption from that calamity. Placed in the centre of
an immense continent, which offers a boundless field for human industry, the
Union is almost as much insulated from the world as if its frontiers were girt
by the ocean. Canada contains only a million of inhabitants, and its population
is divided into two inimical nations. The rigor of the climate limits the
extension of its territory, and shuts up its ports during the six months of
winter. From Canada to the Gulf of Mexico a few savage tribes are to be met
with, which retire, perishing in their retreat, before six thousand soldiers. To
the South, the Union has a point of contact with the empire of Mexico; and it is
thence that serious hostilities may one day be expected to arise. But for a long
while to come the uncivilized state of the Mexican community, the depravity of
its morals, and its extreme poverty, will prevent that country from ranking high
amongst nations. *w As for the Powers of Europe, they are too distant to be
formidable.
w
[ [War broke out between the United States and Mexico in 1846, and ended in the
conquest of an immense territory, including California.]]
The great advantage of the United States does not, then, consist in a Federal
Constitution which allows them to carry on great wars, but in a geographical
position which renders such enterprises extremely improbable.
No one can be more inclined than I am myself to appreciate the advantages of the
federal system, which I hold to be one of the combinations most favorable to the
prosperity and freedom of man. I envy the lot of those nations which have been
enabled to adopt it; but I cannot believe that any confederate peoples could
maintain a long or an equal contest with a nation of similar strength in which
the government should be centralized. A people which should divide its
sovereignty into fractional powers, in the presence of the great military
monarchies of Europe, would, in my opinion, by that very act, abdicate its
power, and perhaps its existence and its name. But such is the admirable
position of the New World that man has no other enemy than himself; and that, in
order to be happy and to be free, it suffices to seek the gifts of prosperity
and the knowledge of freedom.
Chapter IX: Why The People May Strictly Be Said To Govern In The United
States
I have hitherto examined the institutions of the United States; I have passed
their legislation in review, and I have depicted the present characteristics of
political society in that country. But a sovereign power exists above these
institutions and beyond these characteristic features which may destroy or
modify them at its pleasure—I mean that of the people. It remains to be shown in
what manner this power, which regulates the laws, acts: its propensities and its
passions remain to be pointed out, as well as the secret springs which retard,
accelerate, or direct its irresistible course; and the effects of its unbounded
authority, with the destiny which is probably reserved for it.
In America the people appoints the legislative and the executive power, and
furnishes the jurors who punish all offences against the laws. The American
institutions are democratic, not only in their principle but in all their
consequences; and the people elects its representatives directly, and for the
most part annually, in order to ensure their dependence. The people is therefore
the real directing power; and although the form of government is representative,
it is evident that the opinions, the prejudices, the interests, and even the
passions of the community are hindered by no durable obstacles from exercising a
perpetual influence on society. In the United States the majority governs in the
name of the people, as is the case in all the countries in which the people is
supreme. The majority is principally composed of peaceful citizens who, either
by inclination or by interest, are sincerely desirous of the welfare of their
country. But they are surrounded by the incessant agitation of parties, which
attempt to gain their co-operation and to avail themselves of their support.
Chapter X: Parties In The United States
Chapter Summary
Great distinction to be made between parties—Parties which are to each other as
rival nations—Parties properly so called—Difference between great and small
parties—Epochs which produce them—Their characteristics—America has had great
parties—They are extinct—Federalists—Republicans—Defeat of the
Federalists—Difficulty of creating parties in the United States—What is done
with this intention—Aristocratic or democratic character to be met with in all
parties—Struggle of General Jackson against the Bank.
Parties In The United States
A great distinction must be made between parties. Some countries are so large
that the different populations which inhabit them have contradictory interests,
although they are the subjects of the same Government, and they may thence be in
a perpetual state of opposition. In this case the different fractions of the
people may more properly be considered as distinct nations than as mere parties;
and if a civil war breaks out, the struggle is carried on by rival peoples
rather than by factions in the State.
But when the citizens entertain different opinions upon subjects which affect
the whole country alike, such, for instance, as the principles upon which the
government is to be conducted, then distinctions arise which may correctly be
styled parties. Parties are a necessary evil in free governments; but they have
not at all times the same character and the same propensities.
At certain periods a nation may be oppressed by such insupportable evils as to
conceive the design of effecting a total change in its political constitution;
at other times the mischief lies still deeper, and the existence of society
itself is endangered. Such are the times of great revolutions and of great
parties. But between these epochs of misery and of confusion there are periods
during which human society seems to rest, and mankind to make a pause. This
pause is, indeed, only apparent, for time does not stop its course for nations
any more than for men; they are all advancing towards a goal with which they are
unacquainted; and we only imagine them to be stationary when their progress
escapes our observation, as men who are going at a foot-pace seem to be standing
still to those who run.
But however this may be, there are certain epochs at which the changes that take
place in the social and political constitution of nations are so slow and so
insensible that men imagine their present condition to be a final state; and the
human mind, believing itself to be firmly based upon certain foundations, does
not extend its researches beyond the horizon which it descries. These are the
times of small parties and of intrigue.
The political parties which I style great are those which cling to principles
more than to their consequences; to general, and not to especial cases; to
ideas, and not to men. These parties are usually distinguished by a nobler
character, by more generous passions, more genuine convictions, and a more bold
and open conduct than the others. In them private interest, which always plays
the chief part in political passions, is more studiously veiled under the
pretext of the public good; and it may even be sometimes concealed from the eyes
of the very persons whom it excites and impels.
Minor parties are, on the other hand, generally deficient in political faith. As
they are not sustained or dignified by a lofty purpose, they ostensibly display
the egotism of their character in their actions. They glow with a factitious
zeal; their language is vehement, but their conduct is timid and irresolute. The
means they employ are as wretched as the end at which they aim. Hence it arises
that when a calm state of things succeeds a violent revolution, the leaders of
society seem suddenly to disappear, and the powers of the human mind to lie
concealed. Society is convulsed by great parties, by minor ones it is agitated;
it is torn by the former, by the latter it is degraded; and if these sometimes
save it by a salutary perturbation, those invariably disturb it to no good end.
America has already lost the great parties which once divided the nation; and if
her happiness is considerably increased, her morality has suffered by their
extinction. When the War of Independence was terminated, and the foundations of
the new Government were to be laid down, the nation was divided between two
opinions—two opinions which are as old as the world, and which are perpetually
to be met with under all the forms and all the names which have ever obtained in
free communities—the one tending to limit, the other to extend indefinitely, the
power of the people. The conflict of these two opinions never assumed that
degree of violence in America which it has frequently displayed elsewhere. Both
parties of the Americans were, in fact, agreed upon the most essential points;
and neither of them had to destroy a traditionary constitution, or to overthrow
the structure of society, in order to ensure its own triumph. In neither of
them, consequently, were a great number of private interests affected by success
or by defeat; but moral principles of a high order, such as the love of equality
and of independence, were concerned in the struggle, and they sufficed to kindle
violent passions.
The party which desired to limit the power of the people endeavored to apply its
doctrines more especially to the Constitution of the Union, whence it derived
its name of Federal. The other party, which affected to be more exclusively
attached to the cause of liberty, took that of Republican. America is a land of
democracy, and the Federalists were always in a minority; but they reckoned on
their side almost all the great men who had been called forth by the War of
Independence, and their moral influence was very considerable. Their cause was,
moreover, favored by circumstances. The ruin of the Confederation had impressed
the people with a dread of anarchy, and the Federalists did not fail to profit
by this transient disposition of the multitude. For ten or twelve years they
were at the head of affairs, and they were able to apply some, though not all,
of their principles; for the hostile current was becoming from day to day too
violent to be checked or stemmed. In 1801 the Republicans got possession of the
Government; Thomas Jefferson was named President; and he increased the influence
of their party by the weight of his celebrity, the greatness of his talents, and
the immense extent of his popularity.
The means by which the Federalists had maintained their position were
artificial, and their resources were temporary; it was by the virtues or the
talents of their leaders that they had risen to power. When the Republicans
attained to that lofty station, their opponents were overwhelmed by utter
defeat. An immense majority declared itself against the retiring party, and the
Federalists found themselves in so small a minority that they at once despaired
of their future success. From that moment the Republican or Democratic party *a
has proceeded from conquest to conquest, until it has acquired absolute
supremacy in the country. The Federalists, perceiving that they were vanquished
without resource, and isolated in the midst of the nation, fell into two
divisions, of which one joined the victorious Republicans, and the other
abandoned its rallying-point and its name. Many years have already elapsed since
they ceased to exist as a party.
a
[ [It is scarcely necessary to remark that in more recent times the
signification of these terms has changed. The Republicans are the
representatives of the old Federalists, and the Democrats of the old
Republicans.—Trans. Note (1861).]] The accession of the Federalists to power
was, in my opinion, one of the most fortunate incidents which accompanied the
formation of the great American Union; they resisted the inevitable propensities
of their age and of the country. But whether their theories were good or bad,
they had the effect of being inapplicable, as a system, to the society which
they professed to govern, and that which occurred under the auspices of
Jefferson must therefore have taken place sooner or later. But their Government
gave the new republic time to acquire a certain stability, and afterwards to
support the rapid growth of the very doctrines which they had combated. A
considerable number of their principles were in point of fact embodied in the
political creed of their opponents; and the Federal Constitution which subsists
at the present day is a lasting monument of their patriotism and their wisdom.
Great political parties are not, then, to be met with in the United States at
the present time. Parties, indeed, may be found which threaten the future
tranquillity of the Union; but there are none which seem to contest the present
form of Government or the present course of society. The parties by which the
Union is menaced do not rest upon abstract principles, but upon temporal
interests. These interests, disseminated in the provinces of so vast an empire,
may be said to constitute rival nations rather than parties. Thus, upon a recent
occasion, the North contended for the system of commercial prohibition, and the
South took up arms in favor of free trade, simply because the North is a
manufacturing and the South an agricultural district; and that the restrictive
system which was profitable to the one was prejudicial to the other. *b
b
[ [The divisions of North and South have since acquired a far greater degree of
intensity, and the South, though conquered, still presents a formidable spirit
of opposition to Northern government.—Translator's Note, 1875.]]
In the absence of great parties, the United States abound with lesser
controversies; and public opinion is divided into a thousand minute shades of
difference upon questions of very little moment. The pains which are taken to
create parties are inconceivable, and at the present day it is no easy task. In
the United States there is no religious animosity, because all religion is
respected, and no sect is predominant; there is no jealousy of rank, because the
people is everything, and none can contest its authority; lastly, there is no
public indigence to supply the means of agitation, because the physical position
of the country opens so wide a field to industry that man is able to accomplish
the most surprising undertakings with his own native resources. Nevertheless,
ambitious men are interested in the creation of parties, since it is difficult
to eject a person from authority upon the mere ground that his place is coveted
by others. The skill of the actors in the political world lies therefore in the
art of creating parties. A political aspirant in the United States begins by
discriminating his own interest, and by calculating upon those interests which
may be collected around and amalgamated with it; he then contrives to discover
some doctrine or some principle which may suit the purposes of this new
association, and which he adopts in order to bring forward his party and to
secure his popularity; just as the imprimatur of a King was in former days
incorporated with the volume which it authorized, but to which it nowise
belonged. When these preliminaries are terminated, the new party is ushered into
the political world.
All the domestic controversies of the Americans at first appear to a stranger to
be so incomprehensible and so puerile that he is at a loss whether to pity a
people which takes such arrant trifles in good earnest, or to envy the happiness
which enables it to discuss them. But when he comes to study the secret
propensities which govern the factions of America, he easily perceives that the
greater part of them are more or less connected with one or the other of those
two divisions which have always existed in free communities. The deeper we
penetrate into the working of these parties, the more do we perceive that the
object of the one is to limit, and that of the other to extend, the popular
authority. I do not assert that the ostensible end, or even that the secret aim,
of American parties is to promote the rule of aristocracy or democracy in the
country; but I affirm that aristocratic or democratic passions may easily be
detected at the bottom of all parties, and that, although they escape a
superficial observation, they are the main point and the very soul of every
faction in the United States.
To quote a recent example. When the President attacked the Bank, the country was
excited and parties were formed; the well-informed classes rallied round the
Bank, the common people round the President. But it must not be imagined that
the people had formed a rational opinion upon a question which offers so many
difficulties to the most experienced statesmen. The Bank is a great
establishment which enjoys an independent existence, and the people, accustomed
to make and unmake whatsoever it pleases, is startled to meet with this obstacle
to its authority. In the midst of the perpetual fluctuation of society the
community is irritated by so permanent an institution, and is led to attack it
in order to see whether it can be shaken and controlled, like all the other
institutions of the country.
Remains Of The Aristocratic Party In The United States
Secret opposition of wealthy individuals to democracy—Their retirement—Their
taste for exclusive pleasures and for luxury at home—Their simplicity
abroad—Their affected condescension towards the people.
It sometimes happens in a people amongst which various opinions prevail that the
balance of the several parties is lost, and one of them obtains an irresistible
preponderance, overpowers all obstacles, harasses its opponents, and
appropriates all the resources of society to its own purposes. The vanquished
citizens despair of success and they conceal their dissatisfaction in silence
and in general apathy. The nation seems to be governed by a single principle,
and the prevailing party assumes the credit of having restored peace and
unanimity to the country. But this apparent unanimity is merely a cloak to
alarming dissensions and perpetual opposition.
This is precisely what occurred in America; when the democratic party got the
upper hand, it took exclusive possession of the conduct of affairs, and from
that time the laws and the customs of society have been adapted to its caprices.
At the present day the more affluent classes of society are so entirely removed
from the direction of political affairs in the United States that wealth, far
from conferring a right to the exercise of power, is rather an obstacle than a
means of attaining to it. The wealthy members of the community abandon the
lists, through unwillingness to contend, and frequently to contend in vain,
against the poorest classes of their fellow citizens. They concentrate all their
enjoyments in the privacy of their homes, where they occupy a rank which cannot
be assumed in public; and they constitute a private society in the State, which
has its own tastes and its own pleasures. They submit to this state of things as
an irremediable evil, but they are careful not to show that they are galled by
its continuance; it is even not uncommon to hear them laud the delights of a
republican government, and the advantages of democratic institutions when they
are in public. Next to hating their enemies, men are most inclined to flatter
them.
Mark, for instance, that opulent citizen, who is as anxious as a Jew of the
Middle Ages to conceal his wealth. His dress is plain, his demeanor unassuming;
but the interior of his dwelling glitters with luxury, and none but a few chosen
guests whom he haughtily styles his equals are allowed to penetrate into this
sanctuary. No European noble is more exclusive in his pleasures, or more jealous
of the smallest advantages which his privileged station confers upon him. But
the very same individual crosses the city to reach a dark counting-house in the
centre of traffic, where every one may accost him who pleases. If he meets his
cobbler upon the way, they stop and converse; the two citizens discuss the
affairs of the State in which they have an equal interest, and they shake hands
before they part.
But beneath this artificial enthusiasm, and these obsequious attentions to the
preponderating power, it is easy to perceive that the wealthy members of the
community entertain a hearty distaste to the democratic institutions of their
country. The populace is at once the object of their scorn and of their fears.
If the maladministration of the democracy ever brings about a revolutionary
crisis, and if monarchical institutions ever become practicable in the United
States, the truth of what I advance will become obvious.
The two chief weapons which parties use in order to ensure success are the
public press and the formation of associations.
Chapter XI: Liberty Of The Press In The United States
Chapter Summary
Difficulty of restraining the liberty of the press—Particular reasons which some
nations have to cherish this liberty—The liberty of the press a necessary
consequence of the sovereignty of the people as it is understood in
America—Violent language of the periodical press in the United
States—Propensities of the periodical press—Illustrated by the United
States—Opinion of the Americans upon the repression of the abuse of the liberty
of the press by judicial prosecutions—Reasons for which the press is less
powerful in America than in France.
Liberty Of The Press In The United States
The influence of the liberty of the press does not affect political opinions
alone, but it extends to all the opinions of men, and it modifies customs as
well as laws. In another part of this work I shall attempt to determinate the
degree of influence which the liberty of the press has exercised upon civil
society in the United States, and to point out the direction which it has given
to the ideas, as well as the tone which it has imparted to the character and the
feelings, of the Anglo-Americans, but at present I purpose simply to examine the
effects produced by the liberty of the press in the political world.
I confess that I do not entertain that firm and complete attachment to the
liberty of the press which things that are supremely good in their very nature
are wont to excite in the mind; and I approve of it more from a recollection of
the evils it prevents than from a consideration of the advantages it ensures.
If any one could point out an intermediate and yet a tenable position between
the complete independence and the entire subjection of the public expression of
opinion, I should perhaps be inclined to adopt it; but the difficulty is to
discover this position. If it is your intention to correct the abuses of
unlicensed printing and to restore the use of orderly language, you may in the
first instance try the offender by a jury; but if the jury acquits him, the
opinion which was that of a single individual becomes the opinion of the country
at large. Too much and too little has therefore hitherto been done. If you
proceed, you must bring the delinquent before a court of permanent judges. But
even here the cause must be heard before it can be decided; and the very
principles which no book would have ventured to avow are blazoned forth in the
pleadings, and what was obscurely hinted at in a single composition is then
repeated in a multitude of other publications. The language in which a thought
is embodied is the mere carcass of the thought, and not the idea itself;
tribunals may condemn the form, but the sense and spirit of the work is too
subtle for their authority. Too much has still been done to recede, too little
to attain your end; you must therefore proceed. If you establish a censorship of
the press, the tongue of the public speaker will still make itself heard, and
you have only increased the mischief. The powers of thought do not rely, like
the powers of physical strength, upon the number of their mechanical agents, nor
can a host of authors be reckoned like the troops which compose an army; on the
contrary, the authority of a principle is often increased by the smallness of
the number of men by whom it is expressed. The words of a strong-minded man,
which penetrate amidst the passions of a listening assembly, have more power
than the vociferations of a thousand orators; and if it be allowed to speak
freely in any public place, the consequence is the same as if free speaking was
allowed in every village. The liberty of discourse must therefore be destroyed
as well as the liberty of the press; this is the necessary term of your efforts;
but if your object was to repress the abuses of liberty, they have brought you
to the feet of a despot. You have been led from the extreme of independence to
the extreme of subjection without meeting with a single tenable position for
shelter or repose.
There are certain nations which have peculiar reasons for cherishing the liberty
of the press, independently of the general motives which I have just pointed
out. For in certain countries which profess to enjoy the privileges of freedom
every individual agent of the Government may violate the laws with impunity,
since those whom he oppresses cannot prosecute him before the courts of justice.
In this case the liberty of the press is not merely a guarantee, but it is the
only guarantee, of their liberty and their security which the citizens possess.
If the rulers of these nations propose to abolish the independence of the press,
the people would be justified in saying: Give us the right of prosecuting your
offences before the ordinary tribunals, and perhaps we may then waive our right
of appeal to the tribunal of public opinion.
But in the countries in which the doctrine of the sovereignty of the people
ostensibly prevails, the censorship of the press is not only dangerous, but it
is absurd. When the right of every citizen to co-operate in the government of
society is acknowledged, every citizen must be presumed to possess the power of
discriminating between the different opinions of his contemporaries, and of
appreciating the different facts from which inferences may be drawn. The
sovereignty of the people and the liberty of the press may therefore be looked
upon as correlative institutions; just as the censorship of the press and
universal suffrage are two things which are irreconcilably opposed, and which
cannot long be retained among the institutions of the same people. Not a single
individual of the twelve millions who inhabit the territory of the United States
has as yet dared to propose any restrictions to the liberty of the press. The
first newspaper over which I cast my eyes, upon my arrival in America, contained
the following article:
In all this affair the language of Jackson has been that of a heartless despot,
solely occupied with the preservation of his own authority. Ambition is his
crime, and it will be his punishment too: intrigue is his native element, and
intrigue will confound his tricks, and will deprive him of his power: he governs
by means of corruption, and his immoral practices will redound to his shame and
confusion. His conduct in the political arena has been that of a shameless and
lawless gamester. He succeeded at the time, but the hour of retribution
approaches, and he will be obliged to disgorge his winnings, to throw aside his
false dice, and to end his days in some retirement, where he may curse his
madness at his leisure; for repentance is a virtue with which his heart is
likely to remain forever unacquainted.
It is not uncommonly imagined in France that the virulence of the press
originates in the uncertain social condition, in the political excitement, and
the general sense of consequent evil which prevail in that country; and it is
therefore supposed that as soon as society has resumed a certain degree of
composure the press will abandon its present vehemence. I am inclined to think
that the above causes explain the reason of the extraordinary ascendency it has
acquired over the nation, but that they do not exercise much influence upon the
tone of its language. The periodical press appears to me to be actuated by
passions and propensities independent of the circumstances in which it is
placed, and the present position of America corroborates this opinion.
America is perhaps, at this moment, the country of the whole world which
contains the fewest germs of revolution; but the press is not less destructive
in its principles than in France, and it displays the same violence without the
same reasons for indignation. In America, as in France, it constitutes a
singular power, so strangely composed of mingled good and evil that it is at the
same time indispensable to the existence of freedom, and nearly incompatible
with the maintenance of public order. Its power is certainly much greater in
France than in the United States; though nothing is more rare in the latter
country than to hear of a prosecution having been instituted against it. The
reason of this is perfectly simple: the Americans, having once admitted the
doctrine of the sovereignty of the people, apply it with perfect consistency. It
was never their intention to found a permanent state of things with elements
which undergo daily modifications; and there is consequently nothing criminal in
an attack upon the existing laws, provided it be not attended with a violent
infraction of them. They are moreover of opinion that courts of justice are
unable to check the abuses of the press; and that as the subtilty of human
language perpetually eludes the severity of judicial analysis, offences of this
nature are apt to escape the hand which attempts to apprehend them. They hold
that to act with efficacy upon the press it would be necessary to find a
tribunal, not only devoted to the existing order of things, but capable of
surmounting the influence of public opinion; a tribunal which should conduct its
proceedings without publicity, which should pronounce its decrees without
assigning its motives, and punish the intentions even more than the language of
an author. Whosoever should have the power of creating and maintaining a
tribunal of this kind would waste his time in prosecuting the liberty of the
press; for he would be the supreme master of the whole community, and he would
be as free to rid himself of the authors as of their writings. In this question,
therefore, there is no medium between servitude and extreme license; in order to
enjoy the inestimable benefits which the liberty of the press ensures, it is
necessary to submit to the inevitable evils which it engenders. To expect to
acquire the former and to escape the latter is to cherish one of those illusions
which commonly mislead nations in their times of sickness, when, tired with
faction and exhausted by effort, they attempt to combine hostile opinions and
contrary principles upon the same soil.
The small influence of the American journals is attributable to several reasons,
amongst which are the following:
The liberty of writing, like all other liberty, is most formidable when it is a
novelty; for a people which has never been accustomed to co-operate in the
conduct of State affairs places implicit confidence in the first tribune who
arouses its attention. The Anglo-Americans have enjoyed this liberty ever since
the foundation of the settlements; moreover, the press cannot create human
passions by its own power, however skillfully it may kindle them where they
exist. In America politics are discussed with animation and a varied activity,
but they rarely touch those deep passions which are excited whenever the
positive interest of a part of the community is impaired: but in the United
States the interests of the community are in a most prosperous condition. A
single glance upon a French and an American newspaper is sufficient to show the
difference which exists between the two nations on this head. In France the
space allotted to commercial advertisements is very limited, and the
intelligence is not considerable, but the most essential part of the journal is
that which contains the discussion of the politics of the day. In America
three-quarters of the enormous sheet which is set before the reader are filled
with advertisements, and the remainder is frequently occupied by political
intelligence or trivial anecdotes: it is only from time to time that one finds a
corner devoted to passionate discussions like those with which the journalists
of France are wont to indulge their readers.
It has been demonstrated by observation, and discovered by the innate sagacity
of the pettiest as well as the greatest of despots, that the influence of a
power is increased in proportion as its direction is rendered more central. In
France the press combines a twofold centralization; almost all its power is
centred in the same spot, and vested in the same hands, for its organs are far
from numerous. The influence of a public press thus constituted, upon a
sceptical nation, must be unbounded. It is an enemy with which a Government may
sign an occasional truce, but which it is difficult to resist for any length of
time.
Neither of these kinds of centralization exists in America. The United States
have no metropolis; the intelligence as well as the power of the country are
dispersed abroad, and instead of radiating from a point, they cross each other
in every direction; the Americans have established no central control over the
expression of opinion, any more than over the conduct of business. These are
circumstances which do not depend on human foresight; but it is owing to the
laws of the Union that there are no licenses to be granted to printers, no
securities demanded from editors as in France, and no stamp duty as in France
and formerly in England. The consequence of this is that nothing is easier than
to set up a newspaper, and a small number of readers suffices to defray the
expenses of the editor.
The number of periodical and occasional publications which appears in the United
States actually surpasses belief. The most enlightened Americans attribute the
subordinate influence of the press to this excessive dissemination; and it is
adopted as an axiom of political science in that country that the only way to
neutralize the effect of public journals is to multiply them indefinitely. I
cannot conceive that a truth which is so self-evident should not already have
been more generally admitted in Europe; it is comprehensible that the persons
who hope to bring about revolutions by means of the press should be desirous of
confining its action to a few powerful organs, but it is perfectly incredible
that the partisans of the existing state of things, and the natural supporters
of the law, should attempt to diminish the influence of the press by
concentrating its authority. The Governments of Europe seem to treat the press
with the courtesy of the knights of old; they are anxious to furnish it with the
same central power which they have found to be so trusty a weapon, in order to
enhance the glory of their resistance to its attacks.
In America there is scarcely a hamlet which has not its own newspaper. It may
readily be imagined that neither discipline nor unity of design can be
communicated to so multifarious a host, and each one is consequently led to
fight under his own standard. All the political journals of the United States
are indeed arrayed on the side of the administration or against it; but they
attack and defend in a thousand different ways. They cannot succeed in forming
those great currents of opinion which overwhelm the most solid obstacles. This
division of the influence of the press produces a variety of other consequences
which are scarcely less remarkable. The facility with which journals can be
established induces a multitude of individuals to take a part in them; but as
the extent of competition precludes the possibility of considerable profit, the
most distinguished classes of society are rarely led to engage in these
undertakings. But such is the number of the public prints that, even if they
were a source of wealth, writers of ability could not be found to direct them
all. The journalists of the United States are usually placed in a very humble
position, with a scanty education and a vulgar turn of mind. The will of the
majority is the most general of laws, and it establishes certain habits which
form the characteristics of each peculiar class of society; thus it dictates the
etiquette practised at courts and the etiquette of the bar. The characteristics
of the French journalist consist in a violent, but frequently an eloquent and
lofty, manner of discussing the politics of the day; and the exceptions to this
habitual practice are only occasional. The characteristics of the American
journalist consist in an open and coarse appeal to the passions of the populace;
and he habitually abandons the principles of political science to assail the
characters of individuals, to track them into private life, and disclose all
their weaknesses and errors.
Nothing can be more deplorable than this abuse of the powers of thought; I shall
have occasion to point out hereafter the influence of the newspapers upon the
taste and the morality of the American people, but my present subject
exclusively concerns the political world. It cannot be denied that the effects
of this extreme license of the press tend indirectly to the maintenance of
public order. The individuals who are already in the possession of a high
station in the esteem of their fellow-citizens are afraid to write in the
newspapers, and they are thus deprived of the most powerful instrument which
they can use to excite the passions of the multitude to their own advantage. *a
a
[ They only write in the papers when they choose to address the people in their
own name; as, for instance, when they are called upon to repel calumnious
imputations, and to correct a misstatement of facts.]
The personal opinions of the editors have no kind of weight in the eyes of the
public: the only use of a journal is, that it imparts the knowledge of certain
facts, and it is only by altering or distorting those facts that a journalist
can contribute to the support of his own views.
But although the press is limited to these resources, its influence in America
is immense. It is the power which impels the circulation of political life
through all the districts of that vast territory. Its eye is constantly open to
detect the secret springs of political designs, and to summon the leaders of all
parties to the bar of public opinion. It rallies the interests of the community
round certain principles, and it draws up the creed which factions adopt; for it
affords a means of intercourse between parties which hear, and which address
each other without ever having been in immediate contact. When a great number of
the organs of the press adopt the same line of conduct, their influence becomes
irresistible; and public opinion, when it is perpetually assailed from the same
side, eventually yields to the attack. In the United States each separate
journal exercises but little authority, but the power of the periodical press is
only second to that of the people. *b
b
[ See Appendix, P.]
The opinions established in the United States under the empire of the liberty of
the press are frequently more firmly rooted than those which are formed
elsewhere under the sanction of a censor.
In the United States the democracy perpetually raises fresh individuals to the
conduct of public affairs; and the measures of the administration are
consequently seldom regulated by the strict rules of consistency or of order.
But the general principles of the Government are more stable, and the opinions
most prevalent in society are generally more durable than in many other
countries. When once the Americans have taken up an idea, whether it be well or
ill founded, nothing is more difficult than to eradicate it from their minds.
The same tenacity of opinion has been observed in England, where, for the last
century, greater freedom of conscience and more invincible prejudices have
existed than in all the other countries of Europe. I attribute this consequence
to a cause which may at first sight appear to have a very opposite tendency,
namely, to the liberty of the press. The nations amongst which this liberty
exists are as apt to cling to their opinions from pride as from conviction. They
cherish them because they hold them to be just, and because they exercised their
own free-will in choosing them; and they maintain them not only because they are
true, but because they are their own. Several other reasons conduce to the same
end.
It was remarked by a man of genius that "ignorance lies at the two ends of
knowledge." Perhaps it would have been more correct to have said, that absolute
convictions are to be met with at the two extremities, and that doubt lies in
the middle; for the human intellect may be considered in three distinct states,
which frequently succeed one another. A man believes implicitly, because he
adopts a proposition without inquiry. He doubts as soon as he is assailed by the
objections which his inquiries may have aroused. But he frequently succeeds in
satisfying these doubts, and then he begins to believe afresh: he no longer lays
hold on a truth in its most shadowy and uncertain form, but he sees it clearly
before him, and he advances onwards by the light it gives him. *c
c
[ It may, however, be doubted whether this rational and self-guiding conviction
arouses as much fervor or enthusiastic devotedness in men as their first
dogmatical belief.]
When the liberty of the press acts upon men who are in the first of these three
states, it does not immediately disturb their habit of believing implicitly
without investigation, but it constantly modifies the objects of their intuitive
convictions. The human mind continues to discern but one point upon the whole
intellectual horizon, and that point is in continual motion. Such are the
symptoms of sudden revolutions, and of the misfortunes which are sure to befall
those generations which abruptly adopt the unconditional freedom of the press.
The circle of novel ideas is, however, soon terminated; the touch of experience
is upon them, and the doubt and mistrust which their uncertainty produces become
universal. We may rest assured that the majority of mankind will either believe
they know not wherefore, or will not know what to believe. Few are the beings
who can ever hope to attain to that state of rational and independent conviction
which true knowledge can beget in defiance of the attacks of doubt.
It has been remarked that in times of great religious fervor men sometimes
change their religious opinions; whereas in times of general scepticism everyone
clings to his own persuasion. The same thing takes place in politics under the
liberty of the press. In countries where all the theories of social science have
been contested in their turn, the citizens who have adopted one of them stick to
it, not so much because they are assured of its excellence, as because they are
not convinced of the superiority of any other. In the present age men are not
very ready to die in defence of their opinions, but they are rarely inclined to
change them; and there are fewer martyrs as well as fewer apostates.
Another still more valid reason may yet be adduced: when no abstract opinions
are looked upon as certain, men cling to the mere propensities and external
interests of their position, which are naturally more tangible and more
permanent than any opinions in the world.
It is not a question of easy solution whether aristocracy or democracy is most
fit to govern a country. But it is certain that democracy annoys one part of the
community, and that aristocracy oppresses another part. When the question is
reduced to the simple expression of the struggle between poverty and wealth, the
tendency of each side of the dispute becomes perfectly evident without further
controversy.
Chapter XII: Political Associations In The United States
Chapter Summary
Daily use which the Anglo-Americans make of the right of association—Three kinds
of political associations—In what manner the Americans apply the representative
system to associations—Dangers resulting to the State—Great Convention of 1831
relative to the Tariff—Legislative character of this Convention—Why the
unlimited exercise of the right of association is less dangerous in the United
States than elsewhere—Why it may be looked upon as necessary—Utility of
associations in a democratic people.
Political Associations In The United States
In no country in the world has the principle of association been more
successfully used, or more unsparingly applied to a multitude of different
objects, than in America. Besides the permanent associations which are
established by law under the names of townships, cities, and counties, a vast
number of others are formed and maintained by the agency of private individuals.
The citizen of the United States is taught from his earliest infancy to rely
upon his own exertions in order to resist the evils and the difficulties of
life; he looks upon social authority with an eye of mistrust and anxiety, and he
only claims its assistance when he is quite unable to shift without it. This
habit may even be traced in the schools of the rising generation, where the
children in their games are wont to submit to rules which they have themselves
established, and to punish misdemeanors which they have themselves defined. The
same spirit pervades every act of social life. If a stoppage occurs in a
thoroughfare, and the circulation of the public is hindered, the neighbors
immediately constitute a deliberative body; and this extemporaneous assembly
gives rise to an executive power which remedies the inconvenience before anybody
has thought of recurring to an authority superior to that of the persons
immediately concerned. If the public pleasures are concerned, an association is
formed to provide for the splendor and the regularity of the entertainment.
Societies are formed to resist enemies which are exclusively of a moral nature,
and to diminish the vice of intemperance: in the United States associations are
established to promote public order, commerce, industry, morality, and religion;
for there is no end which the human will, seconded by the collective exertions
of individuals, despairs of attaining.
I shall hereafter have occasion to show the effects of association upon the
course of society, and I must confine myself for the present to the political
world. When once the right of association is recognized, the citizens may employ
it in several different ways.
An association consists simply in the public assent which a number of
individuals give to certain doctrines, and in the engagement which they contract
to promote the spread of those doctrines by their exertions. The right of
association with these views is very analogous to the liberty of unlicensed
writing; but societies thus formed possess more authority than the press. When
an opinion is represented by a society, it necessarily assumes a more exact and
explicit form. It numbers its partisans, and compromises their welfare in its
cause: they, on the other hand, become acquainted with each other, and their
zeal is increased by their number. An association unites the efforts of minds
which have a tendency to diverge in one single channel, and urges them
vigorously towards one single end which it points out.
The second degree in the right of association is the power of meeting. When an
association is allowed to establish centres of action at certain important
points in the country, its activity is increased and its influence extended. Men
have the opportunity of seeing each other; means of execution are more readily
combined, and opinions are maintained with a degree of warmth and energy which
written language cannot approach.
Lastly, in the exercise of the right of political association, there is a third
degree: the partisans of an opinion may unite in electoral bodies, and choose
delegates to represent them in a central assembly. This is, properly speaking,
the application of the representative system to a party.
Thus, in the first instance, a society is formed between individuals professing
the same opinion, and the tie which keeps it together is of a purely
intellectual nature; in the second case, small assemblies are formed which only
represent a fraction of the party. Lastly, in the third case, they constitute a
separate nation in the midst of the nation, a government within the Government.
Their delegates, like the real delegates of the majority, represent the entire
collective force of their party; and they enjoy a certain degree of that
national dignity and great influence which belong to the chosen representatives
of the people. It is true that they have not the right of making the laws, but
they have the power of attacking those which are in being, and of drawing up
beforehand those which they may afterwards cause to be adopted.
If, in a people which is imperfectly accustomed to the exercise of freedom, or
which is exposed to violent political passions, a deliberating minority, which
confines itself to the contemplation of future laws, be placed in juxtaposition
to the legislative majority, I cannot but believe that public tranquillity
incurs very great risks in that nation. There is doubtless a very wide
difference between proving that one law is in itself better than another and
proving that the former ought to be substituted for the latter. But the
imagination of the populace is very apt to overlook this difference, which is so
apparent to the minds of thinking men. It sometimes happens that a nation is
divided into two nearly equal parties, each of which affects to represent the
majority. If, in immediate contiguity to the directing power, another power be
established, which exercises almost as much moral authority as the former, it is
not to be believed that it will long be content to speak without acting; or that
it will always be restrained by the abstract consideration of the nature of
associations which are meant to direct but not to enforce opinions, to suggest
but not to make the laws.
The more we consider the independence of the press in its principal
consequences, the more are we convinced that it is the chief and, so to speak,
the constitutive element of freedom in the modern world. A nation which is
determined to remain free is therefore right in demanding the unrestrained
exercise of this independence. But the unrestrained liberty of political
association cannot be entirely assimilated to the liberty of the press. The one
is at the same time less necessary and more dangerous than the other. A nation
may confine it within certain limits without forfeiting any part of its
self-control; and it may sometimes be obliged to do so in order to maintain its
own authority.
In America the liberty of association for political purposes is unbounded. An
example will show in the clearest light to what an extent this privilege is
tolerated.
The question of the tariff, or of free trade, produced a great manifestation of
party feeling in America; the tariff was not only a subject of debate as a
matter of opinion, but it exercised a favorable or a prejudicial influence upon
several very powerful interests of the States. The North attributed a great
portion of its prosperity, and the South all its sufferings, to this system;
insomuch that for a long time the tariff was the sole source of the political
animosities which agitated the Union.
In 1831, when the dispute was raging with the utmost virulence, a private
citizen of Massachusetts proposed to all the enemies of the tariff, by means of
the public prints, to send delegates to Philadelphia in order to consult
together upon the means which were most fitted to promote freedom of trade. This
proposal circulated in a few days from Maine to New Orleans by the power of the
printing-press: the opponents of the tariff adopted it with enthusiasm; meetings
were formed on all sides, and delegates were named. The majority of these
individuals were well known, and some of them had earned a considerable degree
of celebrity. South Carolina alone, which afterwards took up arms in the same
cause, sent sixty-three delegates. On October 1, 1831, this assembly, which
according to the American custom had taken the name of a Convention, met at
Philadelphia; it consisted of more than two hundred members. Its debates were
public, and they at once assumed a legislative character; the extent of the
powers of Congress, the theories of free trade, and the different clauses of the
tariff, were discussed in turn. At the end of ten days' deliberation the
Convention broke up, after having published an address to the American people,
in which it declared:
I. That Congress had not the right of making a tariff, and that the existing
tariff was unconstitutional;
II. That the prohibition of free trade was prejudicial to the interests of all
nations, and to that of the American people in particular.
It must be acknowledged that the unrestrained liberty of political association
has not hitherto produced, in the United States, those fatal consequences which
might perhaps be expected from it elsewhere. The right of association was
imported from England, and it has always existed in America; so that the
exercise of this privilege is now amalgamated with the manners and customs of
the people. At the present time the liberty of association is become a necessary
guarantee against the tyranny of the majority. In the United States, as soon as
a party is become preponderant, all public authority passes under its control;
its private supporters occupy all the places, and have all the force of the
administration at their disposal. As the most distinguished partisans of the
other side of the question are unable to surmount the obstacles which exclude
them from power, they require some means of establishing themselves upon their
own basis, and of opposing the moral authority of the minority to the physical
power which domineers over it. Thus a dangerous expedient is used to obviate a
still more formidable danger.
The omnipotence of the majority appears to me to present such extreme perils to
the American Republics that the dangerous measure which is used to repress it
seems to be more advantageous than prejudicial. And here I am about to advance a
proposition which may remind the reader of what I said before in speaking of
municipal freedom: There are no countries in which associations are more needed,
to prevent the despotism of faction or the arbitrary power of a prince, than
those which are democratically constituted. In aristocratic nations the body of
the nobles and the more opulent part of the community are in themselves natural
associations, which act as checks upon the abuses of power. In countries in
which these associations do not exist, if private individuals are unable to
create an artificial and a temporary substitute for them, I can imagine no
permanent protection against the most galling tyranny; and a great people may be
oppressed by a small faction, or by a single individual, with impunity.
The meeting of a great political Convention (for there are Conventions of all
kinds), which may frequently become a necessary measure, is always a serious
occurrence, even in America, and one which is never looked forward to, by the
judicious friends of the country, without alarm. This was very perceptible in
the Convention of 1831, at which the exertions of all the most distinguished
members of the Assembly tended to moderate its language, and to restrain the
subjects which it treated within certain limits. It is probable, in fact, that
the Convention of 1831 exercised a very great influence upon the minds of the
malcontents, and prepared them for the open revolt against the commercial laws
of the Union which took place in 1832.
It cannot be denied that the unrestrained liberty of association for political
purposes is the privilege which a people is longest in learning how to exercise.
If it does not throw the nation into anarchy, it perpetually augments the
chances of that calamity. On one point, however, this perilous liberty offers a
security against dangers of another kind; in countries where associations are
free, secret societies are unknown. In America there are numerous factions, but
no conspiracies.
Different ways in which the right of association is understood in Europe and in
the United States—Different use which is made of it.
The most natural privilege of man, next to the right of acting for himself, is
that of combining his exertions with those of his fellow-creatures, and of
acting in common with them. I am therefore led to conclude that the right of
association is almost as inalienable as the right of personal liberty. No
legislator can attack it without impairing the very foundations of society.
Nevertheless, if the liberty of association is a fruitful source of advantages
and prosperity to some nations, it may be perverted or carried to excess by
others, and the element of life may be changed into an element of destruction. A
comparison of the different methods which associations pursue in those countries
in which they are managed with discretion, as well as in those where liberty
degenerates into license, may perhaps be thought useful both to governments and
to parties.
The greater part of Europeans look upon an association as a weapon which is to
be hastily fashioned, and immediately tried in the conflict. A society is formed
for discussion, but the idea of impending action prevails in the minds of those
who constitute it: it is, in fact, an army; and the time given to parley serves
to reckon up the strength and to animate the courage of the host, after which
they direct their march against the enemy. Resources which lie within the bounds
of the law may suggest themselves to the persons who compose it as means, but
never as the only means, of success.
Such, however, is not the manner in which the right of association is understood
in the United States. In America the citizens who form the minority associate,
in order, in the first place, to show their numerical strength, and so to
diminish the moral authority of the majority; and, in the second place, to
stimulate competition, and to discover those arguments which are most fitted to
act upon the majority; for they always entertain hopes of drawing over their
opponents to their own side, and of afterwards disposing of the supreme power in
their name. Political associations in the United States are therefore peaceable
in their intentions, and strictly legal in the means which they employ; and they
assert with perfect truth that they only aim at success by lawful expedients.
The difference which exists between the Americans and ourselves depends on
several causes. In Europe there are numerous parties so diametrically opposed to
the majority that they can never hope to acquire its support, and at the same
time they think that they are sufficiently strong in themselves to struggle and
to defend their cause. When a party of this kind forms an association, its
object is, not to conquer, but to fight. In America the individuals who hold
opinions very much opposed to those of the majority are no sort of impediment to
its power, and all other parties hope to win it over to their own principles in
the end. The exercise of the right of association becomes dangerous in
proportion to the impossibility which excludes great parties from acquiring the
majority. In a country like the United States, in which the differences of
opinion are mere differences of hue, the right of association may remain
unrestrained without evil consequences. The inexperience of many of the European
nations in the enjoyment of liberty leads them only to look upon the liberty of
association as a right of attacking the Government. The first notion which
presents itself to a party, as well as to an individual, when it has acquired a
consciousness of its own strength, is that of violence: the notion of persuasion
arises at a later period and is only derived from experience. The English, who
are divided into parties which differ most essentially from each other, rarely
abuse the right of association, because they have long been accustomed to
exercise it. In France the passion for war is so intense that there is no
undertaking so mad, or so injurious to the welfare of the State, that a man does
not consider himself honored in defending it, at the risk of his life.
But perhaps the most powerful of the causes which tend to mitigate the excesses
of political association in the United States is Universal Suffrage. In
countries in which universal suffrage exists the majority is never doubtful,
because neither party can pretend to represent that portion of the community
which has not voted. The associations which are formed are aware, as well as the
nation at large, that they do not represent the majority: this is, indeed, a
condition inseparable from their existence; for if they did represent the
preponderating power, they would change the law instead of soliciting its
reform. The consequence of this is that the moral influence of the Government
which they attack is very much increased, and their own power is very much
enfeebled.
In Europe there are few associations which do not affect to represent the
majority, or which do not believe that they represent it. This conviction or
this pretension tends to augment their force amazingly, and contributes no less
to legalize their measures. Violence may seem to be excusable in defence of the
cause of oppressed right. Thus it is, in the vast labyrinth of human laws, that
extreme liberty sometimes corrects the abuses of license, and that extreme
democracy obviates the dangers of democratic government. In Europe, associations
consider themselves, in some degree, as the legislative and executive councils
of the people, which is unable to speak for itself. In America, where they only
represent a minority of the nation, they argue and they petition.
The means which the associations of Europe employ are in accordance with the end
which they propose to obtain. As the principal aim of these bodies is to act,
and not to debate, to fight rather than to persuade, they are naturally led to
adopt a form of organization which differs from the ordinary customs of civil
bodies, and which assumes the habits and the maxims of military life. They
centralize the direction of their resources as much as possible, and they
intrust the power of the whole party to a very small number of leaders.
The members of these associations respond to a watchword, like soldiers on duty;
they profess the doctrine of passive obedience; say rather, that in uniting
together they at once abjure the exercise of their own judgment and free will;
and the tyrannical control which these societies exercise is often far more
insupportable than the authority possessed over society by the Government which
they attack. Their moral force is much diminished by these excesses, and they
lose the powerful interest which is always excited by a struggle between
oppressors and the oppressed. The man who in given cases consents to obey his
fellows with servility, and who submits his activity and even his opinions to
their control, can have no claim to rank as a free citizen.
The Americans have also established certain forms of government which are
applied to their associations, but these are invariably borrowed from the forms
of the civil administration. The independence of each individual is formally
recognized; the tendency of the members of the association points, as it does in
the body of the community, towards the same end, but they are not obliged to
follow the same track. No one abjures the exercise of his reason and his free
will; but every one exerts that reason and that will for the benefit of a common
undertaking.
Chapter XIII: Government Of The Democracy In America—Part I
I am well aware of the difficulties which attend this part of my subject, but
although every expression which I am about to make use of may clash, upon some
one point, with the feelings of the different parties which divide my country, I
shall speak my opinion with the most perfect openness.
In Europe we are at a loss how to judge the true character and the more
permanent propensities of democracy, because in Europe two conflicting
principles exist, and we do not know what to attribute to the principles
themselves, and what to refer to the passions which they bring into collision.
Such, however, is not the case in America; there the people reigns without any
obstacle, and it has no perils to dread and no injuries to avenge. In America,
democracy is swayed by its own free propensities; its course is natural and its
activity is unrestrained; the United States consequently afford the most
favorable opportunity of studying its real character. And to no people can this
inquiry be more vitally interesting than to the French nation, which is blindly
driven onwards by a daily and irresistible impulse towards a state of things
which may prove either despotic or republican, but which will assuredly be
democratic.
Universal Suffrage
I have already observed that universal suffrage has been adopted in all the
States of the Union; it consequently occurs amongst different populations which
occupy very different positions in the scale of society. I have had
opportunities of observing its effects in different localities, and amongst
races of men who are nearly strangers to each other by their language, their
religion, and their manner of life; in Louisiana as well as in New England, in
Georgia and in Canada. I have remarked that Universal Suffrage is far from
producing in America either all the good or all the evil consequences which are
assigned to it in Europe, and that its effects differ very widely from those
which are usually attributed to it.
Choice Of The People, And Instinctive Preferences Of The American Democracy
In the United States the most able men are rarely placed at the head of
affairs—Reason of this peculiarity—The envy which prevails in the lower orders
of France against the higher classes is not a French, but a purely democratic
sentiment—For what reason the most distinguished men in America frequently
seclude themselves from public affairs.
Many people in Europe are apt to believe without saying it, or to say without
believing it, that one of the great advantages of universal suffrage is, that it
entrusts the direction of public affairs to men who are worthy of the public
confidence. They admit that the people is unable to govern for itself, but they
aver that it is always sincerely disposed to promote the welfare of the State,
and that it instinctively designates those persons who are animated by the same
good wishes, and who are the most fit to wield the supreme authority. I confess
that the observations I made in America by no means coincide with these
opinions. On my arrival in the United States I was surprised to find so much
distinguished talent among the subjects, and so little among the heads of the
Government. It is a well-authenticated fact, that at the present day the most
able men in the United States are very rarely placed at the head of affairs; and
it must be acknowledged that such has been the result in proportion as democracy
has outstepped all its former limits. The race of American statesmen has
evidently dwindled most remarkably in the course of the last fifty years.
Several causes may be assigned to this phenomenon. It is impossible,
notwithstanding the most strenuous exertions, to raise the intelligence of the
people above a certain level. Whatever may be the facilities of acquiring
information, whatever may be the profusion of easy methods and of cheap science,
the human mind can never be instructed and educated without devoting a
considerable space of time to those objects.
The greater or the lesser possibility of subsisting without labor is therefore
the necessary boundary of intellectual improvement. This boundary is more remote
in some countries and more restricted in others; but it must exist somewhere as
long as the people is constrained to work in order to procure the means of
physical subsistence, that is to say, as long as it retains its popular
character. It is therefore quite as difficult to imagine a State in which all
the citizens should be very well informed as a State in which they should all be
wealthy; these two difficulties may be looked upon as correlative. It may very
readily be admitted that the mass of the citizens are sincerely disposed to
promote the welfare of their country; nay more, it may even be allowed that the
lower classes are less apt to be swayed by considerations of personal interest
than the higher orders: but it is always more or less impossible for them to
discern the best means of attaining the end which they desire with sincerity.
Long and patient observation, joined to a multitude of different notions, is
required to form a just estimate of the character of a single individual; and
can it be supposed that the vulgar have the power of succeeding in an inquiry
which misleads the penetration of genius itself? The people has neither the time
nor the means which are essential to the prosecution of an investigation of this
kind: its conclusions are hastily formed from a superficial inspection of the
more prominent features of a question. Hence it often assents to the clamor of a
mountebank who knows the secret of stimulating its tastes, while its truest
friends frequently fail in their exertions.
Moreover, the democracy is not only deficient in that soundness of judgment
which is necessary to select men really deserving of its confidence, but it has
neither the desire nor the inclination to find them out. It cannot be denied
that democratic institutions have a very strong tendency to promote the feeling
of envy in the human heart; not so much because they afford to every one the
means of rising to the level of any of his fellow-citizens, as because those
means perpetually disappoint the persons who employ them. Democratic
institutions awaken and foster a passion for equality which they can never
entirely satisfy. This complete equality eludes the grasp of the people at the
very moment at which it thinks to hold it fast, and "flies," as Pascal says,
"with eternal flight"; the people is excited in the pursuit of an advantage,
which is more precious because it is not sufficiently remote to be unknown, or
sufficiently near to be enjoyed. The lower orders are agitated by the chance of
success, they are irritated by its uncertainty; and they pass from the
enthusiasm of pursuit to the exhaustion of ill-success, and lastly to the
acrimony of disappointment. Whatever transcends their own limits appears to be
an obstacle to their desires, and there is no kind of superiority, however
legitimate it may be, which is not irksome in their sight.
It has been supposed that the secret instinct which leads the lower orders to
remove their superiors as much as possible from the direction of public affairs
is peculiar to France. This, however, is an error; the propensity to which I
allude is not inherent in any particular nation, but in democratic institutions
in general; and although it may have been heightened by peculiar political
circumstances, it owes its origin to a higher cause.
In the United States the people is not disposed to hate the superior classes of
society; but it is not very favorably inclined towards them, and it carefully
excludes them from the exercise of authority. It does not entertain any dread of
distinguished talents, but it is rarely captivated by them; and it awards its
approbation very sparingly to such as have risen without the popular support.
Whilst the natural propensities of democracy induce the people to reject the
most distinguished citizens as its rulers, these individuals are no less apt to
retire from a political career in which it is almost impossible to retain their
independence, or to advance without degrading themselves. This opinion has been
very candidly set forth by Chancellor Kent, who says, in speaking with great
eulogiums of that part of the Constitution which empowers the Executive to
nominate the judges: "It is indeed probable that the men who are best fitted to
discharge the duties of this high office would have too much reserve in their
manners, and too much austerity in their principles, for them to be returned by
the majority at an election where universal suffrage is adopted." Such were the
opinions which were printed without contradiction in America in the year 1830!
I hold it to be sufficiently demonstrated that universal suffrage is by no means
a guarantee of the wisdom of the popular choice, and that, whatever its
advantages may be, this is not one of them.
Causes Which May Partly Correct These Tendencies Of The Democracy Contrary
effects produced on peoples as well as on individuals by great dangers—Why so
many distinguished men stood at the head of affairs in America fifty years
ago—Influence which the intelligence and the manners of the people exercise upon
its choice—Example of New England—States of the Southwest—Influence of certain
laws upon the choice of the people—Election by an elected body—Its effects upon
the composition of the Senate.
When a State is threatened by serious dangers, the people frequently succeeds in
selecting the citizens who are the most able to save it. It has been observed
that man rarely retains his customary level in presence of very critical
circumstances; he rises above or he sinks below his usual condition, and the
same thing occurs in nations at large. Extreme perils sometimes quench the
energy of a people instead of stimulating it; they excite without directing its
passions, and instead of clearing they confuse its powers of perception. The
Jews deluged the smoking ruins of their temple with the carnage of the remnant
of their host. But it is more common, both in the case of nations and in that of
individuals, to find extraordinary virtues arising from the very imminence of
the danger. Great characters are then thrown into relief, as edifices which are
concealed by the gloom of night are illuminated by the glare of a conflagration.
At those dangerous times genius no longer abstains from presenting itself in the
arena; and the people, alarmed by the perils of its situation, buries its
envious passions in a short oblivion. Great names may then be drawn from the
balloting-box.
I have already observed that the American statesmen of the present day are very
inferior to those who stood at the head of affairs fifty years ago. This is as
much a consequence of the circumstances as of the laws of the country. When
America was struggling in the high cause of independence to throw off the yoke
of another country, and when it was about to usher a new nation into the world,
the spirits of its inhabitants were roused to the height which their great
efforts required. In this general excitement the most distinguished men were
ready to forestall the wants of the community, and the people clung to them for
support, and placed them at its head. But events of this magnitude are rare, and
it is from an inspection of the ordinary course of affairs that our judgment
must be formed.
If passing occurrences sometimes act as checks upon the passions of democracy,
the intelligence and the manners of the community exercise an influence which is
not less powerful and far more permanent. This is extremely perceptible in the
United States.
In New England the education and the liberties of the communities were
engendered by the moral and religious principles of their founders. Where
society has acquired a sufficient degree of stability to enable it to hold
certain maxims and to retain fixed habits, the lower orders are accustomed to
respect intellectual superiority and to submit to it without complaint, although
they set at naught all those privileges which wealth and birth have introduced
among mankind. The democracy in New England consequently makes a more judicious
choice than it does elsewhere.
But as we descend towards the South, to those States in which the constitution
of society is more modern and less strong, where instruction is less general,
and where the principles of morality, of religion, and of liberty are less
happily combined, we perceive that the talents and the virtues of those who are
in authority become more and more rare.
Lastly, when we arrive at the new South-western States, in which the
constitution of society dates but from yesterday, and presents an agglomeration
of adventurers and speculators, we are amazed at the persons who are invested
with public authority, and we are led to ask by what force, independent of the
legislation and of the men who direct it, the State can be protected, and
society be made to flourish.
There are certain laws of a democratic nature which contribute, nevertheless, to
correct, in some measure, the dangerous tendencies of democracy. On entering the
House of Representatives of Washington one is struck by the vulgar demeanor of
that great assembly. The eye frequently does not discover a man of celebrity
within its walls. Its members are almost all obscure individuals whose names
present no associations to the mind: they are mostly village lawyers, men in
trade, or even persons belonging to the lower classes of society. In a country
in which education is very general, it is said that the representatives of the
people do not always know how to write correctly.
At a few yards' distance from this spot is the door of the Senate, which
contains within a small space a large proportion of the celebrated men of
America. Scarcely an individual is to be perceived in it who does not recall the
idea of an active and illustrious career: the Senate is composed of eloquent
advocates, distinguished generals, wise magistrates, and statesmen of note,
whose language would at all times do honor to the most remarkable parliamentary
debates of Europe.
What then is the cause of this strange contrast, and why are the most able
citizens to be found in one assembly rather than in the other? Why is the former
body remarkable for its vulgarity and its poverty of talent, whilst the latter
seems to enjoy a monopoly of intelligence and of sound judgment? Both of these
assemblies emanate from the people; both of them are chosen by universal
suffrage; and no voice has hitherto been heard to assert in America that the
Senate is hostile to the interests of the people. From what cause, then, does so
startling a difference arise? The only reason which appears to me adequately to
account for it is, that the House of Representatives is elected by the populace
directly, and that the Senate is elected by elected bodies. The whole body of
the citizens names the legislature of each State, and the Federal Constitution
converts these legislatures into so many electoral bodies, which return the
members of the Senate. The senators are elected by an indirect application of
universal suffrage; for the legislatures which name them are not aristocratic or
privileged bodies which exercise the electoral franchise in their own right; but
they are chosen by the totality of the citizens; they are generally elected
every year, and new members may constantly be chosen who will employ their
electoral rights in conformity with the wishes of the public. But this
transmission of the popular authority through an assembly of chosen men operates
an important change in it, by refining its discretion and improving the forms
which it adopts. Men who are chosen in this manner accurately represent the
majority of the nation which governs them; but they represent the elevated
thoughts which are current in the community, the propensities which prompt its
nobler actions, rather than the petty passions which disturb or the vices which
disgrace it.
The time may be already anticipated at which the American Republics will be
obliged to introduce the plan of election by an elected body more frequently
into their system of representation, or they will incur no small risk of
perishing miserably amongst the shoals of democracy.
And here I have no scruple in confessing that I look upon this peculiar system
of election as the only means of bringing the exercise of political power to the
level of all classes of the people. Those thinkers who regard this institution
as the exclusive weapon of a party, and those who fear, on the other hand, to
make use of it, seem to me to fall into as great an error in the one case as in
the other.
Influence Which The American Democracy Has Exercised On The Laws Relating To
Elections
When elections are rare, they expose the State to a violent crisis—When they are
frequent, they keep up a degree of feverish excitement—The Americans have
preferred the second of these two evils—Mutability of the laws—Opinions of
Hamilton and Jefferson on this subject.
When elections recur at long intervals the State is exposed to violent agitation
every time they take place. Parties exert themselves to the utmost in order to
gain a prize which is so rarely within their reach; and as the evil is almost
irremediable for the candidates who fail, the consequences of their disappointed
ambition may prove most disastrous; if, on the other hand, the legal struggle
can be repeated within a short space of time, the defeated parties take
patience. When elections occur frequently, their recurrence keeps society in a
perpetual state of feverish excitement, and imparts a continual instability to
public affairs.
Thus, on the one hand the State is exposed to the perils of a revolution, on the
other to perpetual mutability; the former system threatens the very existence of
the Government, the latter is an obstacle to all steady and consistent policy.
The Americans have preferred the second of these evils to the first; but they
were led to this conclusion by their instinct much more than by their reason;
for a taste for variety is one of the characteristic passions of democracy. An
extraordinary mutability has, by this means, been introduced into their
legislation. Many of the Americans consider the instability of their laws as a
necessary consequence of a system whose general results are beneficial. But no
one in the United States affects to deny the fact of this instability, or to
contend that it is not a great evil.
Hamilton, after having demonstrated the utility of a power which might prevent,
or which might at least impede, the promulgation of bad laws, adds: "It might
perhaps be said that the power of preventing bad laws includes that of
preventing good ones, and may be used to the one purpose as well as to the
other. But this objection will have little weight with those who can properly
estimate the mischiefs of that inconstancy and mutability in the laws which form
the greatest blemish in the character and genius of our governments."
(Federalist, No. 73.) And again in No. 62 of the same work he observes: "The
facility and excess of law-making seem to be the diseases to which our
governments are most liable. . . . The mischievous effects of the mutability in
the public councils arising from a rapid succession of new members would fill a
volume: every new election in the States is found to change one-half of the
representatives. From this change of men must proceed a change of opinions and
of measures, which forfeits the respect and confidence of other nations, poisons
the blessings of liberty itself, and diminishes the attachment and reverence of
the people toward a political system which betrays so many marks of infirmity."
Jefferson himself, the greatest Democrat whom the democracy of America has yet
produced, pointed out the same evils. "The instability of our laws," said he in
a letter to Madison, "is really a very serious inconvenience. I think that we
ought to have obviated it by deciding that a whole year should always be allowed
to elapse between the bringing in of a bill and the final passing of it. It
should afterward be discussed and put to the vote without the possibility of
making any alteration in it; and if the circumstances of the case required a
more speedy decision, the question should not be decided by a simple majority,
but by a majority of at least two-thirds of both houses."
Public Officers Under The Control Of The Democracy In America Simple exterior of
the American public officers—No official costume—All public officers are
remunerated—Political consequences of this system—No public career exists in
America—Result of this.
Public officers in the United States are commingled with the crowd of citizens;
they have neither palaces, nor guards, nor ceremonial costumes. This simple
exterior of the persons in authority is connected not only with the
peculiarities of the American character, but with the fundamental principles of
that society. In the estimation of the democracy a government is not a benefit,
but a necessary evil. A certain degree of power must be granted to public
officers, for they would be of no use without it. But the ostensible semblance
of authority is by no means indispensable to the conduct of affairs, and it is
needlessly offensive to the susceptibility of the public. The public officers
themselves are well aware that they only enjoy the superiority over their
fellow-citizens which they derive from their authority upon condition of putting
themselves on a level with the whole community by their manners. A public
officer in the United States is uniformly civil, accessible to all the world,
attentive to all requests, and obliging in his replies. I was pleased by these
characteristics of a democratic government; and I was struck by the manly
independence of the citizens, who respect the office more than the officer, and
who are less attached to the emblems of authority than to the man who bears
them.
I am inclined to believe that the influence which costumes really exercise, in
an age like that in which we live, has been a good deal exaggerated. I never
perceived that a public officer in America was the less respected whilst he was
in the discharge of his duties because his own merit was set off by no
adventitious signs. On the other hand, it is very doubtful whether a peculiar
dress contributes to the respect which public characters ought to have for their
own position, at least when they are not otherwise inclined to respect it. When
a magistrate (and in France such instances are not rare) indulges his trivial
wit at the expense of the prisoner, or derides the predicament in which a
culprit is placed, it would be well to deprive him of his robes of office, to
see whether he would recall some portion of the natural dignity of mankind when
he is reduced to the apparel of a private citizen.
A democracy may, however, allow a certain show of magisterial pomp, and clothe
its officers in silks and gold, without seriously compromising its principles.
Privileges of this kind are transitory; they belong to the place, and are
distinct from the individual: but if public officers are not uniformly
remunerated by the State, the public charges must be entrusted to men of
opulence and independence, who constitute the basis of an aristocracy; and if
the people still retains its right of election, that election can only be made
from a certain class of citizens. When a democratic republic renders offices
which had formerly been remunerated gratuitous, it may safely be believed that
the State is advancing to monarchical institutions; and when a monarchy begins
to remunerate such officers as had hitherto been unpaid, it is a sure sign that
it is approaching toward a despotic or a republican form of government. The
substitution of paid for unpaid functionaries is of itself, in my opinion,
sufficient to constitute a serious revolution.
I look upon the entire absence of gratuitous functionaries in America as one of
the most prominent signs of the absolute dominion which democracy exercises in
that country. All public services, of whatsoever nature they may be, are paid;
so that every one has not merely the right, but also the means of performing
them. Although, in democratic States, all the citizens are qualified to occupy
stations in the Government, all are not tempted to try for them. The number and
the capacities of the candidates are more apt to restrict the choice of electors
than the connections of the candidateship.
In nations in which the principle of election extends to every place in the
State no political career can, properly speaking, be said to exist. Men are
promoted as if by chance to the rank which they enjoy, and they are by no means
sure of retaining it. The consequence is that in tranquil times public functions
offer but few lures to ambition. In the United States the persons who engage in
the perplexities of political life are individuals of very moderate pretensions.
The pursuit of wealth generally diverts men of great talents and of great
passions from the pursuit of power, and it very frequently happens that a man
does not undertake to direct the fortune of the State until he has discovered
his incompetence to conduct his own affairs. The vast number of very ordinary
men who occupy public stations is quite as attributable to these causes as to
the bad choice of the democracy. In the United States, I am not sure that the
people would return the men of superior abilities who might solicit its support,
but it is certain that men of this description do not come forward.
Arbitrary Power Of Magistrates Under The Rule Of The American Democracy
For what reason the arbitrary power of Magistrates is greater in absolute
monarchies and in democratic republics than it is in limited
monarchies—Arbitrary power of the Magistrates in New England.
In two different kinds of government the magistrates *a exercise a considerable
degree of arbitrary power; namely, under the absolute government of a single
individual, and under that of a democracy. This identical result proceeds from
causes which are nearly analogous.
a
[ I here use the word magistrates in the widest sense in which it can be taken;
I apply it to all the officers to whom the execution of the laws is intrusted.]
In despotic States the fortune of no citizen is secure; and public officers are
not more safe than private individuals. The sovereign, who has under his control
the lives, the property, and sometimes the honor of the men whom he employs,
does not scruple to allow them a great latitude of action, because he is
convinced that they will not use it to his prejudice. In despotic States the
sovereign is so attached to the exercise of his power, that he dislikes the
constraint even of his own regulations; and he is well pleased that his agents
should follow a somewhat fortuitous line of conduct, provided he be certain that
their actions will never counteract his desires.
In democracies, as the majority has every year the right of depriving the
officers whom it has appointed of their power, it has no reason to fear any
abuse of their authority. As the people is always able to signify its wishes to
those who conduct the Government, it prefers leaving them to make their own
exertions to prescribing an invariable rule of conduct which would at once
fetter their activity and the popular authority.
It may even be observed, on attentive consideration, that under the rule of a
democracy the arbitrary power of the magistrate must be still greater than in
despotic States. In the latter the sovereign has the power of punishing all the
faults with which he becomes acquainted, but it would be vain for him to hope to
become acquainted with all those which are committed. In the former the
sovereign power is not only supreme, but it is universally present. The American
functionaries are, in point of fact, much more independent in the sphere of
action which the law traces out for them than any public officer in Europe. Very
frequently the object which they are to accomplish is simply pointed out to
them, and the choice of the means is left to their own discretion.
In New England, for instance, the selectmen of each township are bound to draw
up the list of persons who are to serve on the jury; the only rule which is laid
down to guide them in their choice is that they are to select citizens
possessing the elective franchise and enjoying a fair reputation. *b In France
the lives and liberties of the subjects would be thought to be in danger if a
public officer of any kind was entrusted with so formidable a right. In New
England the same magistrates are empowered to post the names of habitual
drunkards in public-houses, and to prohibit the inhabitants of a town from
supplying them with liquor. *c A censorial power of this excessive kind would be
revolting to the population of the most absolute monarchies; here, however, it
is submitted to without difficulty.
b
[ See the Act of February 27, 1813. "General Collection of the Laws of
Massachusetts," vol. ii. p. 331. It should be added that the jurors are
afterwards drawn from these lists by lot.]
c
[ See Act of February 28, 1787. "General Collection of the Laws of
Massachusetts," vol. i. p. 302.]
Nowhere has so much been left by the law to the arbitrary determination of the
magistrate as in democratic republics, because this arbitrary power is
unattended by any alarming consequences. It may even be asserted that the
freedom of the magistrate increases as the elective franchise is extended, and
as the duration of the time of office is shortened. Hence arises the great
difficulty which attends the conversion of a democratic republic into a
monarchy. The magistrate ceases to be elective, but he retains the rights and
the habits of an elected officer, which lead directly to despotism.
It is only in limited monarchies that the law, which prescribes the sphere in
which public officers are to act, superintends all their measures. The cause of
this may be easily detected. In limited monarchies the power is divided between
the King and the people, both of whom are interested in the stability of the
magistrate. The King does not venture to place the public officers under the
control of the people, lest they should be tempted to betray his interests; on
the other hand, the people fears lest the magistrates should serve to oppress
the liberties of the country, if they were entirely dependent upon the Crown;
they cannot therefore be said to depend on either one or the other. The same
cause which induces the king and the people to render public officers
independent suggests the necessity of such securities as may prevent their
independence from encroaching upon the authority of the former and the liberties
of the latter. They consequently agree as to the necessity of restricting the
functionary to a line of conduct laid down beforehand, and they are interested
in confining him by certain regulations which he cannot evade.
Chapter XIII: Government Of The Democracy In America—Part II
Instability Of The Administration In The United States
In America the public acts of a community frequently leave fewer traces than the
occurrences of a family—Newspapers the only historical remains—Instability of
the administration prejudicial to the art of government.
The authority which public men possess in America is so brief, and they are so
soon commingled with the ever-changing population of the country, that the acts
of a community frequently leave fewer traces than the occurrences of a private
family. The public administration is, so to speak, oral and traditionary. But
little is committed to writing, and that little is wafted away forever, like the
leaves of the Sibyl, by the smallest breeze.
The only historical remains in the United States are the newspapers; but if a
number be wanting, the chain of time is broken, and the present is severed from
the past. I am convinced that in fifty years it will be more difficult to
collect authentic documents concerning the social condition of the Americans at
the present day than it is to find remains of the administration of France
during the Middle Ages; and if the United States were ever invaded by
barbarians, it would be necessary to have recourse to the history of other
nations in order to learn anything of the people which now inhabits them.
The instability of the administration has penetrated into the habits of the
people: it even appears to suit the general taste, and no one cares for what
occurred before his time. No methodical system is pursued; no archives are
formed; and no documents are brought together when it would be very easy to do
so. Where they exist, little store is set upon them; and I have amongst my
papers several original public documents which were given to me in answer to
some of my inquiries. In America society seems to live from hand to mouth, like
an army in the field. Nevertheless, the art of administration may undoubtedly be
ranked as a science, and no sciences can be improved if the discoveries and
observations of successive generations are not connected together in the order
in which they occur. One man, in the short space of his life remarks a fact;
another conceives an idea; the former invents a means of execution, the latter
reduces a truth to a fixed proposition; and mankind gathers the fruits of
individual experience upon its way and gradually forms the sciences. But the
persons who conduct the administration in America can seldom afford any
instruction to each other; and when they assume the direction of society, they
simply possess those attainments which are most widely disseminated in the
community, and no experience peculiar to themselves. Democracy, carried to its
furthest limits, is therefore prejudicial to the art of government; and for this
reason it is better adapted to a people already versed in the conduct of an
administration than to a nation which is uninitiated in public affairs.
This remark, indeed, is not exclusively applicable to the science of
administration. Although a democratic government is founded upon a very simple
and natural principle, it always presupposes the existence of a high degree of
culture and enlightenment in society. *d At the first glance it may be imagined
to belong to the earliest ages of the world; but maturer observation will
convince us that it could only come last in the succession of human history.
d
[ It is needless to observe that I speak here of the democratic form of
government as applied to a people, not merely to a tribe.]
Charges Levied By The State Under The Rule Of The American Democracy
In all communities citizens divisible into three classes—Habits of each of these
classes in the direction of public finances—Why public expenditure must tend to
increase when the people governs—What renders the extravagance of a democracy
less to be feared in America—Public expenditure under a democracy.
Before we can affirm whether a democratic form of government is economical or
not, we must establish a suitable standard of comparison. The question would be
one of easy solution if we were to attempt to draw a parallel between a
democratic republic and an absolute monarchy. The public expenditure would be
found to be more considerable under the former than under the latter; such is
the case with all free States compared to those which are not so. It is certain
that despotism ruins individuals by preventing them from producing wealth, much
more than by depriving them of the wealth they have produced; it dries up the
source of riches, whilst it usually respects acquired property. Freedom, on the
contrary, engenders far more benefits than it destroys; and the nations which
are favored by free institutions invariably find that their resources increase
even more rapidly than their taxes.
My present object is to compare free nations to each other, and to point out the
influence of democracy upon the finances of a State.
Communities, as well as organic bodies, are subject to certain fixed rules in
their formation which they cannot evade. They are composed of certain elements
which are common to them at all times and under all circumstances. The people
may always be mentally divided into three distinct classes. The first of these
classes consists of the wealthy; the second, of those who are in easy
circumstances; and the third is composed of those who have little or no
property, and who subsist more especially by the work which they perform for the
two superior orders. The proportion of the individuals who are included in these
three divisions may vary according to the condition of society, but the
divisions themselves can never be obliterated.
It is evident that each of these classes will exercise an influence peculiar to
its own propensities upon the administration of the finances of the State. If
the first of the three exclusively possesses the legislative power, it is
probable that it will not be sparing of the public funds, because the taxes
which are levied on a large fortune only tend to diminish the sum of superfluous
enjoyment, and are, in point of fact, but little felt. If the second class has
the power of making the laws, it will certainly not be lavish of taxes, because
nothing is so onerous as a large impost which is levied upon a small income. The
government of the middle classes appears to me to be the most economical, though
perhaps not the most enlightened, and certainly not the most generous, of free
governments.
But let us now suppose that the legislative authority is vested in the lowest
orders: there are two striking reasons which show that the tendency of the
expenditure will be to increase, not to diminish. As the great majority of those
who create the laws are possessed of no property upon which taxes can be
imposed, all the money which is spent for the community appears to be spent to
their advantage, at no cost of their own; and those who are possessed of some
little property readily find means of regulating the taxes so that they are
burdensome to the wealthy and profitable to the poor, although the rich are
unable to take the same advantage when they are in possession of the Government.
In countries in which the poor *e should be exclusively invested with the power
of making the laws no great economy of public expenditure ought to be expected:
that expenditure will always be considerable; either because the taxes do not
weigh upon those who levy them, or because they are levied in such a manner as
not to weigh upon those classes. In other words, the government of the democracy
is the only one under which the power which lays on taxes escapes the payment of
them.
e
[ The word poor is used here, and throughout the remainder of this chapter, in a
relative, not in an absolute sense. Poor men in America would often appear rich
in comparison with the poor of Europe; but they may with propriety by styled
poor in comparison with their more affluent countrymen.]
It may be objected (but the argument has no real weight) that the true interest
of the people is indissolubly connected with that of the wealthier portion of
the community, since it cannot but suffer by the severe measures to which it
resorts. But is it not the true interest of kings to render their subjects
happy, and the true interest of nobles to admit recruits into their order on
suitable grounds? If remote advantages had power to prevail over the passions
and the exigencies of the moment, no such thing as a tyrannical sovereign or an
exclusive aristocracy could ever exist.
Again, it may be objected that the poor are never invested with the sole power
of making the laws; but I reply, that wherever universal suffrage has been
established the majority of the community unquestionably exercises the
legislative authority; and if it be proved that the poor always constitute the
majority, it may be added, with perfect truth, that in the countries in which
they possess the elective franchise they possess the sole power of making laws.
But it is certain that in all the nations of the world the greater number has
always consisted of those persons who hold no property, or of those whose
property is insufficient to exempt them from the necessity of working in order
to procure an easy subsistence. Universal suffrage does therefore, in point of
fact, invest the poor with the government of society.
The disastrous influence which popular authority may sometimes exercise upon the
finances of a State was very clearly seen in some of the democratic republics of
antiquity, in which the public treasure was exhausted in order to relieve
indigent citizens, or to supply the games and theatrical amusements of the
populace. It is true that the representative system was then very imperfectly
known, and that, at the present time, the influence of popular passion is less
felt in the conduct of public affairs; but it may be believed that the delegate
will in the end conform to the principles of his constituents, and favor their
propensities as much as their interests.
The extravagance of democracy is, however, less to be dreaded in proportion as
the people acquires a share of property, because on the one hand the
contributions of the rich are then less needed, and, on the other, it is more
difficult to lay on taxes which do not affect the interests of the lower
classes. On this account universal suffrage would be less dangerous in France
than in England, because in the latter country the property on which taxes may
be levied is vested in fewer hands. America, where the great majority of the
citizens possess some fortune, is in a still more favorable position than
France.
There are still further causes which may increase the sum of public expenditure
in democratic countries. When the aristocracy governs, the individuals who
conduct the affairs of State are exempted by their own station in society from
every kind of privation; they are contented with their position; power and
renown are the objects for which they strive; and, as they are placed far above
the obscurer throng of citizens, they do not always distinctly perceive how the
well-being of the mass of the people ought to redound to their own honor. They
are not indeed callous to the sufferings of the poor, but they cannot feel those
miseries as acutely as if they were themselves partakers of them. Provided that
the people appear to submit to its lot, the rulers are satisfied, and they
demand nothing further from the Government. An aristocracy is more intent upon
the means of maintaining its influence than upon the means of improving its
condition.
When, on the contrary, the people is invested with the supreme authority, the
perpetual sense of their own miseries impels the rulers of society to seek for
perpetual ameliorations. A thousand different objects are subjected to
improvement; the most trivial details are sought out as susceptible of
amendment; and those changes which are accompanied with considerable expense are
more especially advocated, since the object is to render the condition of the
poor more tolerable, who cannot pay for themselves.
Moreover, all democratic communities are agitated by an ill-defined excitement
and by a kind of feverish impatience, that engender a multitude of innovations,
almost all of which are attended with expense.
In monarchies and aristocracies the natural taste which the rulers have for
power and for renown is stimulated by the promptings of ambition, and they are
frequently incited by these temptations to very costly undertakings. In
democracies, where the rulers labor under privations, they can only be courted
by such means as improve their well-being, and these improvements cannot take
place without a sacrifice of money. When a people begins to reflect upon its
situation, it discovers a multitude of wants to which it had not before been
subject, and to satisfy these exigencies recourse must be had to the coffers of
the State. Hence it arises that the public charges increase in proportion as
civilization spreads, and that imposts are augmented as knowledge pervades the
community.
The last cause which frequently renders a democratic government dearer than any
other is, that a democracy does not always succeed in moderating its
expenditure, because it does not understand the art of being economical. As the
designs which it entertains are frequently changed, and the agents of those
designs are still more frequently removed, its undertakings are often ill
conducted or left unfinished: in the former case the State spends sums out of
all proportion to the end which it proposes to accomplish; in the second, the
expense itself is unprofitable. *f
f
[ The gross receipts of the Treasury of the United States in 1832 were about
$28,000,000; in 1870 they had risen to $411,000,000. The gross expenditure in
1832 was $30,000,000; in 1870, $309,000,000.]
Tendencies Of The American Democracy As Regards The Salaries Of Public Officers
In the democracies those who establish high salaries have no chance of profiting
by them—Tendency of the American democracy to increase the salaries of
subordinate officers and to lower those of the more important
functionaries—Reason of this—Comparative statement of the salaries of public
officers in the United States and in France.
There is a powerful reason which usually induces democracies to economize upon
the salaries of public officers. As the number of citizens who dispense the
remuneration is extremely large in democratic countries, so the number of
persons who can hope to be benefited by the receipt of it is comparatively
small. In aristocratic countries, on the contrary, the individuals who fix high
salaries have almost always a vague hope of profiting by them. These
appointments may be looked upon as a capital which they create for their own
use, or at least as a resource for their children.
It must, however, be allowed that a democratic State is most parsimonious
towards its principal agents. In America the secondary officers are much better
paid, and the dignitaries of the administration much worse, than they are
elsewhere.
These opposite effects result from the same cause; the people fixes the salaries
of the public officers in both cases; and the scale of remuneration is
determined by the consideration of its own wants. It is held to be fair that the
servants of the public should be placed in the same easy circumstances as the
public itself; *g but when the question turns upon the salaries of the great
officers of State, this rule fails, and chance alone can guide the popular
decision. The poor have no adequate conception of the wants which the higher
classes of society may feel. The sum which is scanty to the rich appears
enormous to the poor man whose wants do not extend beyond the necessaries of
life; and in his estimation the Governor of a State, with his twelve or fifteen
hundred dollars a year, is a very fortunate and enviable being. *h If you
undertake to convince him that the representative of a great people ought to be
able to maintain some show of splendor in the eyes of foreign nations, he will
perhaps assent to your meaning; but when he reflects on his own humble dwelling,
and on the hard-earned produce of his wearisome toil, he remembers all that he
could do with a salary which you say is insufficient, and he is startled or
almost frightened at the sight of such uncommon wealth. Besides, the secondary
public officer is almost on a level with the people, whilst the others are
raised above it. The former may therefore excite his interest, but the latter
begins to arouse his envy.
g
[ The easy circumstances in which secondary functionaries are placed in the
United States result also from another cause, which is independent of the
general tendencies of democracy; every kind of private business is very
lucrative, and the State would not be served at all if it did not pay its
servants. The country is in the position of a commercial undertaking, which is
obliged to sustain an expensive competition, notwithstanding its tastes for
economy.]
h
[ The State of Ohio, which contains a million of inhabitants, gives its Governor
a salary of only $1,200 a year.]
This is very clearly seen in the United States, where the salaries seem to
decrease as the authority of those who receive them augments *i
i
[ To render this assertion perfectly evident, it will suffice to examine the
scale of salaries of the agents of the Federal Government. I have added the
salaries attached to the corresponding officers in France under the
constitutional monarchy to complete the comparison.
United States
Treasury Department
Messenger ............................ $700
Clerk with lowest salary ............. 1,000
Clerk with highest salary ............ 1,600
Chief Clerk .......................... 2,000
Secretary of State ................... 6,000
The President ........................ 25,000
France
Ministere des Finances
Hussier ........................... 1,500 fr.
Clerk with lowest salary, 1,000 to 1,800 fr.
Clerk with highest salary 3,200 to 8,600 fr.
Secretaire-general ................20,000 fr.
The Minister ......................80,000 fr.
The King ......................12,000,000 fr.
I have perhaps done wrong in selecting France as my standard of comparison.
In France the democratic tendencies of the nation exercise an ever-increasing
influence upon the Government, and the Chambers show a disposition to raise the
low salaries and to lower the principal ones. Thus, the Minister of Finance, who
received 160,000 fr. under the Empire, receives 80,000 fr. in 1835: the
Directeurs-generaux of Finance, who then received 50,000 fr. now receive only
20,000 fr. [This comparison is based on the state of things existing in France
and the United States in 1831. It has since materially altered in both
countries, but not so much as to impugn the truth of the author's observation.]]
Under the rule of an aristocracy it frequently happens, on the contrary, that
whilst the high officers are receiving munificent salaries, the inferior ones
have not more than enough to procure the necessaries of life. The reason of this
fact is easily discoverable from causes very analogous to those to which I have
just alluded. If a democracy is unable to conceive the pleasures of the rich or
to witness them without envy, an aristocracy is slow to understand, or, to speak
more correctly, is unacquainted with, the privations of the poor. The poor man
is not (if we use the term aright) the fellow of the rich one; but he is a being
of another species. An aristocracy is therefore apt to care but little for the
fate of its subordinate agents; and their salaries are only raised when they
refuse to perform their service for too scanty a remuneration.
It is the parsimonious conduct of democracy towards its principal officers which
has countenanced a supposition of far more economical propensities than any
which it really possesses. It is true that it scarcely allows the means of
honorable subsistence to the individuals who conduct its affairs; but enormous
sums are lavished to meet the exigencies or to facilitate the enjoyments of the
people. *j The money raised by taxation may be better employed, but it is not
saved. In general, democracy gives largely to the community, and very sparingly
to those who govern it. The reverse is the case in aristocratic countries, where
the money of the State is expended to the profit of the persons who are at the
head of affairs.
j
[ See the American budgets for the cost of indigent citizens and gratuitous
instruction. In 1831 $250,000 were spent in the State of New York for the
maintenance of the poor, and at least $1,000,000 were devoted to gratuitous
instruction. (William's "New York Annual Register," 1832, pp. 205 and 243.) The
State of New York contained only 1,900,000 inhabitants in the year 1830, which
is not more than double the amount of population in the Department du Nord in
France.]
Difficulty of Distinguishing The Causes Which Contribute To The Economy Of The
American Government
We are liable to frequent errors in the research of those facts which exercise a
serious influence upon the fate of mankind, since nothing is more difficult than
to appreciate their real value. One people is naturally inconsistent and
enthusiastic; another is sober and calculating; and these characteristics
originate in their physical constitution or in remote causes with which we are
unacquainted.
These are nations which are fond of parade and the bustle of festivity, and
which do not regret the costly gaieties of an hour. Others, on the contrary, are
attached to more retiring pleasures, and seem almost ashamed of appearing to be
pleased. In some countries the highest value is set upon the beauty of public
edifices; in others the productions of art are treated with indifference, and
everything which is unproductive is looked down upon with contempt. In some
renown, in others money, is the ruling passion.
Independently of the laws, all these causes concur to exercise a very powerful
influence upon the conduct of the finances of the State. If the Americans never
spend the money of the people in galas, it is not only because the imposition of
taxes is under the control of the people, but because the people takes no
delight in public rejoicings. If they repudiate all ornament from their
architecture, and set no store on any but the more practical and homely
advantages, it is not only because they live under democratic institutions, but
because they are a commercial nation. The habits of private life are continued
in public; and we ought carefully to distinguish that economy which depends upon
their institutions from that which is the natural result of their manners and
customs.
Whether The Expenditure Of The United States Can Be Compared To That Of France
Two points to be established in order to estimate the extent of the public
charges, viz., the national wealth and the rate of taxation—The wealth and the
charges of France not accurately known—Why the wealth and charges of the Union
cannot be accurately known—Researches of the author with a view to discover the
amount of taxation of Pennsylvania—General symptoms which may serve to indicate
the amount of the public charges in a given nation—Result of this investigation
for the Union.
Many attempts have recently been made in France to compare the public
expenditure of that country with the expenditure of the United States; all these
attempts have, however, been unattended by success, and a few words will suffice
to show that they could not have had a satisfactory result.
In order to estimate the amount of the public charges of a people two
preliminaries are indispensable: it is necessary, in the first place, to know
the wealth of that people; and in the second, to learn what portion of that
wealth is devoted to the expenditure of the State. To show the amount of
taxation without showing the resources which are destined to meet the demand, is
to undertake a futile labor; for it is not the expenditure, but the relation of
the expenditure to the revenue, which it is desirable to know.
The same rate of taxation which may easily be supported by a wealthy contributor
will reduce a poor one to extreme misery. The wealth of nations is composed of
several distinct elements, of which population is the first, real property the
second, and personal property the third. The first of these three elements may
be discovered without difficulty. Amongst civilized nations it is easy to obtain
an accurate census of the inhabitants; but the two others cannot be determined
with so much facility. It is difficult to take an exact account of all the lands
in a country which are under cultivation, with their natural or their acquired
value; and it is still more impossible to estimate the entire personal property
which is at the disposal of a nation, and which eludes the strictest analysis by
the diversity and the number of shapes under which it may occur. And, indeed, we
find that the most ancient civilized nations of Europe, including even those in
which the administration is most central, have not succeeded, as yet, in
determining the exact condition of their wealth.
In America the attempt has never been made; for how would such an investigation
be possible in a country where society has not yet settled into habits of
regularity and tranquillity; where the national Government is not assisted by a
multiple of agents whose exertions it can command and direct to one sole end;
and where statistics are not studied, because no one is able to collect the
necessary documents, or to find time to peruse them? Thus the primary elements
of the calculations which have been made in France cannot be obtained in the
Union; the relative wealth of the two countries is unknown; the property of the
former is not accurately determined, and no means exist of computing that of the
latter.
I consent, therefore, for the sake of the discussion, to abandon this necessary
term of the comparison, and I confine myself to a computation of the actual
amount of taxation, without investigating the relation which subsists between
the taxation and the revenue. But the reader will perceive that my task has not
been facilitated by the limits which I here lay down for my researches.
It cannot be doubted that the central administration of France, assisted by all
the public officers who are at its disposal, might determine with exactitude the
amount of the direct and indirect taxes levied upon the citizens. But this
investigation, which no private individual can undertake, has not hitherto been
completed by the French Government, or, at least, its results have not been made
public. We are acquainted with the sum total of the charges of the State; we
know the amount of the departmental expenditure; but the expenses of the
communal divisions have not been computed, and the amount of the public expenses
of France is consequently unknown.
If we now turn to America, we shall perceive that the difficulties are
multiplied and enhanced. The Union publishes an exact return of the amount of
its expenditure; the budgets of the four and twenty States furnish similar
returns of their revenues; but the expenses incident to the affairs of the
counties and the townships are unknown. *k
k
[ The Americans, as we have seen, have four separate budgets, the Union, the
States, the Counties, and the Townships having each severally their own. During
my stay in America I made every endeavor to discover the amount of the public
expenditure in the townships and counties of the principal States of the Union,
and I readily obtained the budget of the larger townships, but I found it quite
impossible to procure that of the smaller ones. I possess, however, some
documents relating to county expenses, which, although incomplete, are still
curious. I have to thank Mr. Richards, Mayor of Philadelphia, for the budgets of
thirteen of the counties of Pennsylvania, viz., Lebanon, Centre, Franklin,
Fayette, Montgomery, Luzerne, Dauphin, Butler, Alleghany, Columbia, Northampton,
Northumberland, and Philadelphia, for the year 1830. Their population at that
time consisted of 495,207 inhabitants. On looking at the map of Pennsylvania, it
will be seen that these thirteen counties are scattered in every direction, and
so generally affected by the causes which usually influence the condition of a
country, that they may easily be supposed to furnish a correct average of the
financial state of the counties of Pennsylvania in general; and thus, upon
reckoning that the expenses of these counties amounted in the year 1830 to about
$361,650, or nearly 75 cents for each inhabitant, and calculating that each of
them contributed in the same year about $2.55 towards the Union, and about 75
cents to the State of Pennsylvania, it appears that they each contributed as
their share of all the public expenses (except those of the townships) the sum
of $4.05. This calculation is doubly incomplete, as it applies only to a single
year and to one part of the public charges; but it has at least the merit of not
being conjectural.]
The authority of the Federal government cannot oblige the provincial governments
to throw any light upon this point; and even if these governments were inclined
to afford their simultaneous co-operation, it may be doubted whether they
possess the means of procuring a satisfactory answer. Independently of the
natural difficulties of the task, the political organization of the country
would act as a hindrance to the success of their efforts. The county and town
magistrates are not appointed by the authorities of the State, and they are not
subjected to their control. It is therefore very allowable to suppose that, if
the State was desirous of obtaining the returns which we require, its design
would be counteracted by the neglect of those subordinate officers whom it would
be obliged to employ. *l It is, in point of fact, useless to inquire what the
Americans might do to forward this inquiry, since it is certain that they have
hitherto done nothing at all. There does not exist a single individual at the
present day, in America or in Europe, who can inform us what each citizen of the
Union annually contributes to the public charges of the nation. *m [Footnote l:
Those who have attempted to draw a comparison between the expenses of France and
America have at once perceived that no such comparison could be drawn between
the total expenditure of the two countries; but they have endeavored to contrast
detached portions of this expenditure. It may readily be shown that this second
system is not at all less defective than the first. If I attempt to compare the
French budget with the budget of the Union, it must be remembered that the
latter embraces much fewer objects than then central Government of the former
country, and that the expenditure must consequently be much smaller. If I
contrast the budgets of the Departments with those of the States which
constitute the Union, it must be observed that, as the power and control
exercised by the States is much greater than that which is exercised by the
Departments, their expenditure is also more considerable. As for the budgets of
the counties, nothing of the kind occurs in the French system of finances; and
it is, again, doubtful whether the corresponding expenses should be referred to
the budget of the State or to those of the municipal divisions. Municipal
expenses exist in both countries, but they are not always analogous. In America
the townships discharge a variety of offices which are reserved in France to the
Departments or to the State. It may, moreover, be asked what is to be understood
by the municipal expenses of America. The organization of the municipal bodies
or townships differs in the several States. Are we to be guided by what occurs
in New England or in Georgia, in Pennsylvania or in the State of Illinois? A
kind of analogy may very readily be perceived between certain budgets in the two
countries; but as the elements of which they are composed always differ more or
less, no fair comparison can be instituted between them. [The same difficulty
exists, perhaps to a greater degree at the present time, when the taxation of
America has largely increased.—1874.]]
m
[ Even if we knew the exact pecuniary contributions of every French and American
citizen to the coffers of the State, we should only come at a portion of the
truth. Governments do not only demand supplies of money, but they call for
personal services, which may be looked upon as equivalent to a given sum. When a
State raises an army, besides the pay of the troops, which is furnished by the
entire nation, each soldier must give up his time, the value of which depends on
the use he might make of it if he were not in the service. The same remark
applies to the militia; the citizen who is in the militia devotes a certain
portion of valuable time to the maintenance of the public peace, and he does in
reality surrender to the State those earnings which he is prevented from
gaining. Many other instances might be cited in addition to these. The
governments of France and of America both levy taxes of this kind, which weigh
upon the citizens; but who can estimate with accuracy their relative amount in
the two countries?
This, however, is not the last of the difficulties which prevent us from
comparing the expenditure of the Union with that of France. The French
Government contracts certain obligations which do not exist in America, and vice
versa. The French Government pays the clergy; in America the voluntary principle
prevails. In America there is a legal provision for the poor; in France they are
abandoned to the charity of the public. The French public officers are paid by a
fixed salary; in America they are allowed certain perquisites. In France
contributions in kind take place on very few roads; in America upon almost all
the thoroughfares: in the former country the roads are free to all travellers;
in the latter turnpikes abound. All these differences in the manner in which
contributions are levied in the two countries enhance the difficulty of
comparing their expenditure; for there are certain expenses which the citizens
would not be subject to, or which would at any rate be much less considerable,
if the State did not take upon itself to act in the name of the public.]
Hence we must conclude that it is no less difficult to compare the social
expenditure than it is to estimate the relative wealth of France and America. I
will even add that it would be dangerous to attempt this comparison; for when
statistics are not based upon computations which are strictly accurate, they
mislead instead of guiding aright. The mind is easily imposed upon by the false
affectation of exactness, which prevails even in the misstatements of science,
and it adopts with confidence errors which are dressed in the forms of
mathematical truth.
We abandon, therefore, our numerical investigation, with the hope of meeting
with data of another kind. In the absence of positive documents, we may form an
opinion as to the proportion which the taxation of a people bears to its real
prosperity, by observing whether its external appearance is flourishing;
whether, after having discharged the calls of the State, the poor man retains
the means of subsistence, and the rich the means of enjoyment; and whether both
classes are contented with their position, seeking, however, to ameliorate it by
perpetual exertions, so that industry is never in want of capital, nor capital
unemployed by industry. The observer who draws his inferences from these signs
will, undoubtedly, be led to the conclusion that the American of the United
States contributes a much smaller portion of his income to the State than the
citizen of France. Nor, indeed, can the result be otherwise.
A portion of the French debt is the consequence of two successive invasions; and
the Union has no similar calamity to fear. A nation placed upon the continent of
Europe is obliged to maintain a large standing army; the isolated position of
the Union enables it to have only 6,000 soldiers. The French have a fleet of 300
sail; the Americans have 52 vessels. *n How, then, can the inhabitants of the
Union be called upon to contribute as largely as the inhabitants of France? No
parallel can be drawn between the finances of two countries so differently
situated.
n
[ See the details in the Budget of the French Minister of Marine; and for
America, the National Calendar of 1833, p. 228. [But the public debt of the
United States in 1870, caused by the Civil War, amounted to $2,480,672,427; that
of France was more than doubled by the extravagance of the Second Empire and by
the war of 1870.]]
It is by examining what actually takes place in the Union, and not by comparing
the Union with France, that we may discover whether the American Government is
really economical. On casting my eyes over the different republics which form
the confederation, I perceive that their Governments lack perseverance in their
undertakings, and that they exercise no steady control over the men whom they
employ. Whence I naturally infer that they must often spend the money of the
people to no purpose, or consume more of it than is really necessary to their
undertakings. Great efforts are made, in accordance with the democratic origin
of society, to satisfy the exigencies of the lower orders, to open the career of
power to their endeavors, and to diffuse knowledge and comfort amongst them. The
poor are maintained, immense sums are annually devoted to public instruction,
all services whatsoever are remunerated, and the most subordinate agents are
liberally paid. If this kind of government appears to me to be useful and
rational, I am nevertheless constrained to admit that it is expensive.
Wherever the poor direct public affairs and dispose of the national resources,
it appears certain that, as they profit by the expenditure of the State, they
are apt to augment that expenditure.
I conclude, therefore, without having recourse to inaccurate computations, and
without hazarding a comparison which might prove incorrect, that the democratic
government of the Americans is not a cheap government, as is sometimes asserted;
and I have no hesitation in predicting that, if the people of the United States
is ever involved in serious difficulties, its taxation will speedily be
increased to the rate of that which prevails in the greater part of the
aristocracies and the monarchies of Europe. *o
o
[ [That is precisely what has since occurred.]]
Chapter XIII: Government Of The Democracy In America—Part III
Corruption And Vices Of The Rulers In A Democracy, And Consequent Effects Upon
Public Morality
In aristocracies rulers sometimes endeavor to corrupt the people—In democracies
rulers frequently show themselves to be corrupt—In the former their vices are
directly prejudicial to the morality of the people—In the latter their indirect
influence is still more pernicious.
A distinction must be made, when the aristocratic and the democratic principles
mutually inveigh against each other, as tending to facilitate corruption. In
aristocratic governments the individuals who are placed at the head of affairs
are rich men, who are solely desirous of power. In democracies statesmen are
poor, and they have their fortunes to make. The consequence is that in
aristocratic States the rulers are rarely accessible to corruption, and have
very little craving for money; whilst the reverse is the case in democratic
nations.
But in aristocracies, as those who are desirous of arriving at the head of
affairs are possessed of considerable wealth, and as the number of persons by
whose assistance they may rise is comparatively small, the government is, if I
may use the expression, put up to a sort of auction. In democracies, on the
contrary, those who are covetous of power are very seldom wealthy, and the
number of citizens who confer that power is extremely great. Perhaps in
democracies the number of men who might be bought is by no means smaller, but
buyers are rarely to be met with; and, besides, it would be necessary to buy so
many persons at once that the attempt is rendered nugatory.
Many of the men who have been in the administration in France during the last
forty years have been accused of making their fortunes at the expense of the
State or of its allies; a reproach which was rarely addressed to the public
characters of the ancient monarchy. But in France the practice of bribing
electors is almost unknown, whilst it is notoriously and publicly carried on in
England. In the United States I never heard a man accused of spending his wealth
in corrupting the populace; but I have often heard the probity of public
officers questioned; still more frequently have I heard their success attributed
to low intrigues and immoral practices.
If, then, the men who conduct the government of an aristocracy sometimes
endeavor to corrupt the people, the heads of a democracy are themselves corrupt.
In the former case the morality of the people is directly assailed; in the
latter an indirect influence is exercised upon the people which is still more to
be dreaded.
As the rulers of democratic nations are almost always exposed to the suspicion
of dishonorable conduct, they in some measure lend the authority of the
Government to the base practices of which they are accused. They thus afford an
example which must prove discouraging to the struggles of virtuous independence,
and must foster the secret calculations of a vicious ambition. If it be asserted
that evil passions are displayed in all ranks of society, that they ascend the
throne by hereditary right, and that despicable characters are to be met with at
the head of aristocratic nations as well as in the sphere of a democracy, this
objection has but little weight in my estimation. The corruption of men who have
casually risen to power has a coarse and vulgar infection in it which renders it
contagious to the multitude. On the contrary, there is a kind of aristocratic
refinement and an air of grandeur in the depravity of the great, which
frequently prevent it from spreading abroad.
The people can never penetrate into the perplexing labyrinth of court intrigue,
and it will always have difficulty in detecting the turpitude which lurks under
elegant manners, refined tastes, and graceful language. But to pillage the
public purse, and to vend the favors of the State, are arts which the meanest
villain may comprehend, and hope to practice in his turn.
In reality it is far less prejudicial to witness the immorality of the great
than to witness that immorality which leads to greatness. In a democracy private
citizens see a man of their own rank in life, who rises from that obscure
position, and who becomes possessed of riches and of power in a few years; the
spectacle excites their surprise and their envy, and they are led to inquire how
the person who was yesterday their equal is to-day their ruler. To attribute his
rise to his talents or his virtues is unpleasant; for it is tacitly to
acknowledge that they are themselves less virtuous and less talented than he
was. They are therefore led (and not unfrequently their conjecture is a correct
one) to impute his success mainly to some one of his defects; and an odious
mixture is thus formed of the ideas of turpitude and power, unworthiness and
success, utility and dishonor.
Efforts Of Which A Democracy Is Capable
The Union has only had one struggle hitherto for its existence—Enthusiasm at the
commencement of the war—Indifference towards its close—Difficulty of
establishing military conscription or impressment of seamen in America—Why a
democratic people is less capable of sustained effort than another.
I here warn the reader that I speak of a government which implicitly follows the
real desires of a people, and not of a government which simply commands in its
name. Nothing is so irresistible as a tyrannical power commanding in the name of
the people, because, whilst it exercises that moral influence which belongs to
the decision of the majority, it acts at the same time with the promptitude and
the tenacity of a single man.
It is difficult to say what degree of exertion a democratic government may be
capable of making a crisis in the history of the nation. But no great democratic
republic has hitherto existed in the world. To style the oligarchy which ruled
over France in 1793 by that name would be to offer an insult to the republican
form of government. The United States afford the first example of the kind.
The American Union has now subsisted for half a century, in the course of which
time its existence has only once been attacked, namely, during the War of
Independence. At the commencement of that long war, various occurrences took
place which betokened an extraordinary zeal for the service of the country. *p
But as the contest was prolonged, symptoms of private egotism began to show
themselves. No money was poured into the public treasury; few recruits could be
raised to join the army; the people wished to acquire independence, but was very
ill-disposed to undergo the privations by which alone it could be obtained. "Tax
laws," says Hamilton in the "Federalist" (No. 12), "have in vain been
multiplied; new methods to enforce the collection have in vain been tried; the
public expectation has been uniformly disappointed and the treasuries of the
States have remained empty. The popular system of administration inherent in the
nature of popular government, coinciding with the real scarcity of money
incident to a languid and mutilated state of trade, has hitherto defeated every
experiment for extensive collections, and has at length taught the different
legislatures the folly of attempting them."
p
[ One of the most singular of these occurrences was the resolution which the
Americans took of temporarily abandoning the use of tea. Those who know that men
usually cling more to their habits than to their life will doubtless admire this
great though obscure sacrifice which was made by a whole people.]
The United States have not had any serious war to carry on ever since that
period. In order, therefore, to appreciate the sacrifices which democratic
nations may impose upon themselves, we must wait until the American people is
obliged to put half its entire income at the disposal of the Government, as was
done by the English; or until it sends forth a twentieth part of its population
to the field of battle, as was done by France. *q
q
[ [The Civil War showed that when the necessity arose the American people, both
in the North and in the South, are capable of making the most enormous
sacrifices, both in money and in men.]]
In America the use of conscription is unknown, and men are induced to enlist by
bounties. The notions and habits of the people of the United States are so
opposed to compulsory enlistment that I do not imagine it can ever be sanctioned
by the laws. What is termed the conscription in France is assuredly the heaviest
tax upon the population of that country; yet how could a great continental war
be carried on without it? The Americans have not adopted the British impressment
of seamen, and they have nothing which corresponds to the French system of
maritime conscription; the navy, as well as the merchant service, is supplied by
voluntary service. But it is not easy to conceive how a people can sustain a
great maritime war without having recourse to one or the other of these two
systems. Indeed, the Union, which has fought with some honor upon the seas, has
never possessed a very numerous fleet, and the equipment of the small number of
American vessels has always been excessively expensive.
I have heard American statesmen confess that the Union will have great
difficulty in maintaining its rank on the seas without adopting the system of
impressment or of maritime conscription; but the difficulty is to induce the
people, which exercises the supreme authority, to submit to impressment or any
compulsory system.
It is incontestable that in times of danger a free people displays far more
energy than one which is not so. But I incline to believe that this is more
especially the case in those free nations in which the democratic element
preponderates. Democracy appears to me to be much better adapted for the
peaceful conduct of society, or for an occasional effort of remarkable vigor,
than for the hardy and prolonged endurance of the storms which beset the
political existence of nations. The reason is very evident; it is enthusiasm
which prompts men to expose themselves to dangers and privations, but they will
not support them long without reflection. There is more calculation, even in the
impulses of bravery, than is generally attributed to them; and although the
first efforts are suggested by passion, perseverance is maintained by a distinct
regard of the purpose in view. A portion of what we value is exposed, in order
to save the remainder.
But it is this distinct perception of the future, founded upon a sound judgment
and an enlightened experience, which is most frequently wanting in democracies.
The populace is more apt to feel than to reason; and if its present sufferings
are great, it is to be feared that the still greater sufferings attendant upon
defeat will be forgotten.
Another cause tends to render the efforts of a democratic government less
persevering than those of an aristocracy. Not only are the lower classes less
awakened than the higher orders to the good or evil chances of the future, but
they are liable to suffer far more acutely from present privations. The noble
exposes his life, indeed, but the chance of glory is equal to the chance of
harm. If he sacrifices a large portion of his income to the State, he deprives
himself for a time of the pleasures of affluence; but to the poor man death is
embellished by no pomp or renown, and the imposts which are irksome to the rich
are fatal to him.
This relative impotence of democratic republics is, perhaps, the greatest
obstacle to the foundation of a republic of this kind in Europe. In order that
such a State should subsist in one country of the Old World, it would be
necessary that similar institutions should be introduced into all the other
nations.
I am of opinion that a democratic government tends in the end to increase the
real strength of society; but it can never combine, upon a single point and at a
given time, so much power as an aristocracy or a monarchy. If a democratic
country remained during a whole century subject to a republican government, it
would probably at the end of that period be more populous and more prosperous
than the neighboring despotic States. But it would have incurred the risk of
being conquered much oftener than they would in that lapse of years.
Self-Control Of The American Democracy
The American people acquiesces slowly, or frequently does not acquiesce, in what
is beneficial to its interests—The faults of the American democracy are for the
most part reparable.
The difficulty which a democracy has in conquering the passions and in subduing
the exigencies of the moment, with a view to the future, is conspicuous in the
most trivial occurrences of the United States. The people, which is surrounded
by flatterers, has great difficulty in surmounting its inclinations, and
whenever it is solicited to undergo a privation or any kind of inconvenience,
even to attain an end which is sanctioned by its own rational conviction, it
almost always refuses to comply at first. The deference of the Americans to the
laws has been very justly applauded; but it must be added that in America the
legislation is made by the people and for the people. Consequently, in the
United States the law favors those classes which are most interested in evading
it elsewhere. It may therefore be supposed that an offensive law, which should
not be acknowledged to be one of immediate utility, would either not be enacted
or would not be obeyed.
In America there is no law against fraudulent bankruptcies; not because they are
few, but because there are a great number of bankruptcies. The dread of being
prosecuted as a bankrupt acts with more intensity upon the mind of the majority
of the people than the fear of being involved in losses or ruin by the failure
of other parties, and a sort of guilty tolerance is extended by the public
conscience to an offence which everyone condemns in his individual capacity. In
the new States of the Southwest the citizens generally take justice into their
own hands, and murders are of very frequent occurrence. This arises from the
rude manners and the ignorance of the inhabitants of those deserts, who do not
perceive the utility of investing the law with adequate force, and who prefer
duels to prosecutions.
Someone observed to me one day, in Philadelphia, that almost all crimes in
America are caused by the abuse of intoxicating liquors, which the lower classes
can procure in great abundance, from their excessive cheapness. "How comes it,"
said I, "that you do not put a duty upon brandy?" "Our legislators," rejoined my
informant, "have frequently thought of this expedient; but the task of putting
it in operation is a difficult one; a revolt might be apprehended, and the
members who should vote for a law of this kind would be sure of losing their
seats." "Whence I am to infer," replied I, "that the drinking population
constitutes the majority in your country, and that temperance is somewhat
unpopular."
When these things are pointed out to the American statesmen, they content
themselves with assuring you that time will operate the necessary change, and
that the experience of evil will teach the people its true interests. This is
frequently true, although a democracy is more liable to error than a monarch or
a body of nobles; the chances of its regaining the right path when once it has
acknowledged its mistake, are greater also; because it is rarely embarrassed by
internal interests, which conflict with those of the majority, and resist the
authority of reason. But a democracy can only obtain truth as the result of
experience, and many nations may forfeit their existence whilst they are
awaiting the consequences of their errors.
The great privilege of the Americans does not simply consist in their being more
enlightened than other nations, but in their being able to repair the faults
they may commit. To which it must be added, that a democracy cannot derive
substantial benefit from past experience, unless it be arrived at a certain
pitch of knowledge and civilization. There are tribes and peoples whose
education has been so vicious, and whose character presents so strange a mixture
of passion, of ignorance, and of erroneous notions upon all subjects, that they
are unable to discern the causes of their own wretchedness, and they fall a
sacrifice to ills with which they are unacquainted.
I have crossed vast tracts of country that were formerly inhabited by powerful
Indian nations which are now extinct; I have myself passed some time in the
midst of mutilated tribes, which witness the daily decline of their numerical
strength and of the glory of their independence; and I have heard these Indians
themselves anticipate the impending doom of their race. Every European can
perceive means which would rescue these unfortunate beings from inevitable
destruction. They alone are insensible to the expedient; they feel the woe which
year after year heaps upon their heads, but they will perish to a man without
accepting the remedy. It would be necessary to employ force to induce them to
submit to the protection and the constraint of civilization.
The incessant revolutions which have convulsed the South American provinces for
the last quarter of a century have frequently been adverted to with
astonishment, and expectations have been expressed that those nations would
speedily return to their natural state. But can it be affirmed that the turmoil
of revolution is not actually the most natural state of the South American
Spaniards at the present time? In that country society is plunged into
difficulties from which all its efforts are insufficient to rescue it. The
inhabitants of that fair portion of the Western Hemisphere seem obstinately bent
on pursuing the work of inward havoc. If they fall into a momentary repose from
the effects of exhaustion, that repose prepares them for a fresh state of
frenzy. When I consider their condition, which alternates between misery and
crime, I should be inclined to believe that despotism itself would be a benefit
to them, if it were possible that the words despotism and benefit could ever be
united in my mind.
Conduct Of Foreign Affairs By The American Democracy
Direction given to the foreign policy of the United States by Washington and
Jefferson—Almost all the defects inherent in democratic institutions are brought
to light in the conduct of foreign affairs—Their advantages are less
perceptible.
We have seen that the Federal Constitution entrusts the permanent direction of
the external interests of the nation to the President and the Senate, *r which
tends in some degree to detach the general foreign policy of the Union from the
control of the people. It cannot therefore be asserted with truth that the
external affairs of State are conducted by the democracy.
r
[ "The President," says the Constitution, Art. II, sect. 2, Section 2, "shall
have power, by and with the advice and consent of the Senate, to make treaties,
provided two-thirds of the senators present concur." The reader is reminded that
the senators are returned for a term of six years, and that they are chosen by
the legislature of each State.]
The policy of America owes its rise to Washington, and after him to Jefferson,
who established those principles which it observes at the present day.
Washington said in the admirable letter which he addressed to his
fellow-citizens, and which may be looked upon as his political bequest to the
country: "The great rule of conduct for us in regard to foreign nations is, in
extending our commercial relations, to have with them as little political
connection as possible. So far as we have already formed engagements, let them
be fulfilled with perfect good faith. Here let us stop. Europe has a set of
primary interests which to us have none, or a very remote relation. Hence, she
must be engaged in frequent controversies, the causes of which are essentially
foreign to our concerns. Hence, therefore, it must be unwise in us to implicate
ourselves, by artificial ties, in the ordinary vicissitudes of her politics, or
the ordinary combinations and collisions of her friendships or enmities. Our
detached and distant situation invites and enables us to pursue a different
course. If we remain one people, under an efficient government, the period is
not far off when we may defy material injury from external annoyance; when we
may take such an attitude as will cause the neutrality we may at any time
resolve upon to be scrupulously respected; when belligerent nations, under the
impossibility of making acquisitions upon us, will not lightly hazard the giving
us provocation; when we may choose peace or war, as our interest, guided by
justice, shall counsel. Why forego the advantages of so peculiar a situation?
Why quit our own to stand upon foreign ground? Why, by interweaving our destiny
with that of any part of Europe, entangle our peace and prosperity in the toils
of European ambition, rivalship, interest, humor, or caprice? It is our true
policy to steer clear of permanent alliances with any portion of the foreign
world; so far, I mean, as we are now at liberty to do it; for let me not be
understood as capable of patronizing infidelity to existing engagements. I hold
the maxim no less applicable to public than to private affairs, that honesty is
always the best policy. I repeat it; therefore, let those engagements be
observed in their genuine sense; but in my opinion it is unnecessary, and would
be unwise, to extend them. Taking care always to keep ourselves, by suitable
establishments, in a respectable defensive posture, we may safely trust to
temporary alliances for extraordinary emergencies." In a previous part of the
same letter Washington makes the following admirable and just remark: "The
nation which indulges towards another an habitual hatred or an habitual fondness
is in some degree a slave. It is a slave to its animosity or to its affection,
either of which is sufficient to lead it astray from its duty and its interest."
The political conduct of Washington was always guided by these maxims. He
succeeded in maintaining his country in a state of peace whilst all the other
nations of the globe were at war; and he laid it down as a fundamental doctrine,
that the true interest of the Americans consisted in a perfect neutrality with
regard to the internal dissensions of the European Powers.
Jefferson went still further, and he introduced a maxim into the policy of the
Union, which affirms that "the Americans ought never to solicit any privileges
from foreign nations, in order not to be obliged to grant similar privileges
themselves."
These two principles, which were so plain and so just as to be adapted to the
capacity of the populace, have greatly simplified the foreign policy of the
United States. As the Union takes no part in the affairs of Europe, it has,
properly speaking, no foreign interests to discuss, since it has at present no
powerful neighbors on the American continent. The country is as much removed
from the passions of the Old World by its position as by the line of policy
which it has chosen, and it is neither called upon to repudiate nor to espouse
the conflicting interests of Europe; whilst the dissensions of the New World are
still concealed within the bosom of the future.
The Union is free from all pre-existing obligations, and it is consequently
enabled to profit by the experience of the old nations of Europe, without being
obliged, as they are, to make the best of the past, and to adapt it to their
present circumstances; or to accept that immense inheritance which they derive
from their forefathers—an inheritance of glory mingled with calamities, and of
alliances conflicting with national antipathies. The foreign policy of the
United States is reduced by its very nature to await the chances of the future
history of the nation, and for the present it consists more in abstaining from
interference than in exerting its activity.
It is therefore very difficult to ascertain, at present, what degree of sagacity
the American democracy will display in the conduct of the foreign policy of the
country; and upon this point its adversaries, as well as its advocates, must
suspend their judgment. As for myself I have no hesitation in avowing my
conviction, that it is most especially in the conduct of foreign relations that
democratic governments appear to me to be decidedly inferior to governments
carried on upon different principles. Experience, instruction, and habit may
almost always succeed in creating a species of practical discretion in
democracies, and that science of the daily occurrences of life which is called
good sense. Good sense may suffice to direct the ordinary course of society; and
amongst a people whose education has been provided for, the advantages of
democratic liberty in the internal affairs of the country may more than
compensate for the evils inherent in a democratic government. But such is not
always the case in the mutual relations of foreign nations.
Foreign politics demand scarcely any of those qualities which a democracy
possesses; and they require, on the contrary, the perfect use of almost all
those faculties in which it is deficient. Democracy is favorable to the increase
of the internal resources of the State; it tends to diffuse a moderate
independence; it promotes the growth of public spirit, and fortifies the respect
which is entertained for law in all classes of society; and these are advantages
which only exercise an indirect influence over the relations which one people
bears to another. But a democracy is unable to regulate the details of an
important undertaking, to persevere in a design, and to work out its execution
in the presence of serious obstacles. It cannot combine its measures with
secrecy, and it will not await their consequences with patience. These are
qualities which more especially belong to an individual or to an aristocracy;
and they are precisely the means by which an individual people attains to a
predominant position.
If, on the contrary, we observe the natural defects of aristocracy, we shall
find that their influence is comparatively innoxious in the direction of the
external affairs of a State. The capital fault of which aristocratic bodies may
be accused is that they are more apt to contrive their own advantage than that
of the mass of the people. In foreign politics it is rare for the interest of
the aristocracy to be in any way distinct from that of the people.
The propensity which democracies have to obey the impulse of passion rather than
the suggestions of prudence, and to abandon a mature design for the
gratification of a momentary caprice, was very clearly seen in America on the
breaking out of the French Revolution. It was then as evident to the simplest
capacity as it is at the present time that the interest of the Americans forbade
them to take any part in the contest which was about to deluge Europe with
blood, but which could by no means injure the welfare of their own country.
Nevertheless the sympathies of the people declared themselves with so much
violence in behalf of France that nothing but the inflexible character of
Washington, and the immense popularity which he enjoyed, could have prevented
the Americans from declaring war against England. And even then, the exertions
which the austere reason of that great man made to repress the generous but
imprudent passions of his fellow-citizens, very nearly deprived him of the sole
recompense which he had ever claimed—that of his country's love. The majority
then reprobated the line of policy which he adopted, and which has since been
unanimously approved by the nation. *s If the Constitution and the favor of the
public had not entrusted the direction of the foreign affairs of the country to
Washington, it is certain that the American nation would at that time have taken
the very measures which it now condemns.
s
[ See the fifth volume of Marshall's "Life of Washington." In a government
constituted like that of the United States, he says, "it is impossible for the
chief magistrate, however firm he may be, to oppose for any length of time the
torrent of popular opinion; and the prevalent opinion of that day seemed to
incline to war. In fact, in the session of Congress held at the time, it was
frequently seen that Washington had lost the majority in the House of
Representatives." The violence of the language used against him in public was
extreme, and in a political meeting they did not scruple to compare him
indirectly to the treacherous Arnold. "By the opposition," says Marshall, "the
friends of the administration were declared to be an aristocratic and corrupt
faction, who, from a desire to introduce monarchy, were hostile to France and
under the influence of Britain; that they were a paper nobility, whose extreme
sensibility at every measure which threatened the funds, induced a tame
submission to injuries and insults, which the interests and honor of the nation
required them to resist."]
Almost all the nations which have ever exercised a powerful influence upon the
destinies of the world by conceiving, following up, and executing vast
designs—from the Romans to the English—have been governed by aristocratic
institutions. Nor will this be a subject of wonder when we recollect that
nothing in the world has so absolute a fixity of purpose as an aristocracy. The
mass of the people may be led astray by ignorance or passion; the mind of a king
may be biased, and his perseverance in his designs may be shaken—besides which a
king is not immortal—but an aristocratic body is too numerous to be led astray
by the blandishments of intrigue, and yet not numerous enough to yield readily
to the intoxicating influence of unreflecting passion: it has the energy of a
firm and enlightened individual, added to the power which it derives from
perpetuity.
Chapter XIV: Advantages American Society Derive From Democracy—Part I
What The Real Advantages Are Which American Society Derives From The Government
Of The Democracy
Before I enter upon the subject of the present chapter I am induced to remind
the reader of what I have more than once adverted to in the course of this book.
The political institutions of the United States appear to me to be one of the
forms of government which a democracy may adopt; but I do not regard the
American Constitution as the best, or as the only one, which a democratic people
may establish. In showing the advantages which the Americans derive from the
government of democracy, I am therefore very far from meaning, or from
believing, that similar advantages can only be obtained from the same laws.
General Tendency Of The Laws Under The Rule Of The American Democracy, And
Habits Of Those Who Apply Them
Defects of a democratic government easy to be discovered—Its advantages only to
be discerned by long observation—Democracy in America often inexpert, but the
general tendency of the laws advantageous—In the American democracy public
officers have no permanent interests distinct from those of the majority—Result
of this state of things.
The defects and the weaknesses of a democratic government may very readily be
discovered; they are demonstrated by the most flagrant instances, whilst its
beneficial influence is less perceptibly exercised. A single glance suffices to
detect its evil consequences, but its good qualities can only be discerned by
long observation. The laws of the American democracy are frequently defective or
incomplete; they sometimes attack vested rights, or give a sanction to others
which are dangerous to the community; but even if they were good, the frequent
changes which they undergo would be an evil. How comes it, then, that the
American republics prosper and maintain their position?
In the consideration of laws a distinction must be carefully observed between
the end at which they aim and the means by which they are directed to that end,
between their absolute and their relative excellence. If it be the intention of
the legislator to favor the interests of the minority at the expense of the
majority, and if the measures he takes are so combined as to accomplish the
object he has in view with the least possible expense of time and exertion, the
law may be well drawn up, although its purpose be bad; and the more efficacious
it is, the greater is the mischief which it causes.
Democratic laws generally tend to promote the welfare of the greatest possible
number; for they emanate from the majority of the citizens, who are subject to
error, but who cannot have an interest opposed to their own advantage. The laws
of an aristocracy tend, on the contrary, to concentrate wealth and power in the
hands of the minority, because an aristocracy, by its very nature, constitutes a
minority. It may therefore be asserted, as a general proposition, that the
purpose of a democracy in the conduct of its legislation is useful to a greater
number of citizens than that of an aristocracy. This is, however, the sum total
of its advantages.
Aristocracies are infinitely more expert in the science of legislation than
democracies ever can be. They are possessed of a self-control which protects
them from the errors of temporary excitement, and they form lasting designs
which they mature with the assistance of favorable opportunities. Aristocratic
government proceeds with the dexterity of art; it understands how to make the
collective force of all its laws converge at the same time to a given point.
Such is not the case with democracies, whose laws are almost always ineffective
or inopportune. The means of democracy are therefore more imperfect than those
of aristocracy, and the measures which it unwittingly adopts are frequently
opposed to its own cause; but the object it has in view is more useful.
Let us now imagine a community so organized by nature, or by its constitution,
that it can support the transitory action of bad laws, and that it can await,
without destruction, the general tendency of the legislation: we shall then be
able to conceive that a democratic government, notwithstanding its defects, will
be most fitted to conduce to the prosperity of this community. This is precisely
what has occurred in the United States; and I repeat, what I have before
remarked, that the great advantage of the Americans consists in their being able
to commit faults which they may afterward repair.
An analogous observation may be made respecting public officers. It is easy to
perceive that the American democracy frequently errs in the choice of the
individuals to whom it entrusts the power of the administration; but it is more
difficult to say why the State prospers under their rule. In the first place it
is to be remarked, that if in a democratic State the governors have less honesty
and less capacity than elsewhere, the governed, on the other hand, are more
enlightened and more attentive to their interests. As the people in democracies
is more incessantly vigilant in its affairs and more jealous of its rights, it
prevents its representatives from abandoning that general line of conduct which
its own interest prescribes. In the second place, it must be remembered that if
the democratic magistrate is more apt to misuse his power, he possesses it for a
shorter period of time. But there is yet another reason which is still more
general and conclusive. It is no doubt of importance to the welfare of nations
that they should be governed by men of talents and virtue; but it is perhaps
still more important that the interests of those men should not differ from the
interests of the community at large; for, if such were the case, virtues of a
high order might become useless, and talents might be turned to a bad account. I
say that it is important that the interests of the persons in authority should
not conflict with or oppose the interests of the community at large; but I do
not insist upon their having the same interests as the whole population, because
I am not aware that such a state of things ever existed in any country.
No political form has hitherto been discovered which is equally favorable to the
prosperity and the development of all the classes into which society is divided.
These classes continue to form, as it were, a certain number of distinct nations
in the same nation; and experience has shown that it is no less dangerous to
place the fate of these classes exclusively in the hands of any one of them than
it is to make one people the arbiter of the destiny of another. When the rich
alone govern, the interest of the poor is always endangered; and when the poor
make the laws, that of the rich incurs very serious risks. The advantage of
democracy does not consist, therefore, as has sometimes been asserted, in
favoring the prosperity of all, but simply in contributing to the well-being of
the greatest possible number.
The men who are entrusted with the direction of public affairs in the United
States are frequently inferior, both in point of capacity and of morality, to
those whom aristocratic institutions would raise to power. But their interest is
identified and confounded with that of the majority of their fellow-citizens.
They may frequently be faithless and frequently mistaken, but they will never
systematically adopt a line of conduct opposed to the will of the majority; and
it is impossible that they should give a dangerous or an exclusive tendency to
the government.
The mal-administration of a democratic magistrate is a mere isolated fact, which
only occurs during the short period for which he is elected. Corruption and
incapacity do not act as common interests, which may connect men permanently
with one another. A corrupt or an incapable magistrate will not concert his
measures with another magistrate, simply because that individual is as corrupt
and as incapable as himself; and these two men will never unite their endeavors
to promote the corruption and inaptitude of their remote posterity. The ambition
and the manoeuvres of the one will serve, on the contrary, to unmask the other.
The vices of a magistrate, in democratic states, are usually peculiar to his own
person.
But under aristocratic governments public men are swayed by the interest of
their order, which, if it is sometimes confounded with the interests of the
majority, is very frequently distinct from them. This interest is the common and
lasting bond which unites them together; it induces them to coalesce, and to
combine their efforts in order to attain an end which does not always ensure the
greatest happiness of the greatest number; and it serves not only to connect the
persons in authority, but to unite them to a considerable portion of the
community, since a numerous body of citizens belongs to the aristocracy, without
being invested with official functions. The aristocratic magistrate is therefore
constantly supported by a portion of the community, as well as by the Government
of which he is a member.
The common purpose which connects the interest of the magistrates in
aristocracies with that of a portion of their contemporaries identifies it with
that of future generations; their influence belongs to the future as much as to
the present. The aristocratic magistrate is urged at the same time toward the
same point by the passions of the community, by his own, and I may almost add by
those of his posterity. Is it, then, wonderful that he does not resist such
repeated impulses? And indeed aristocracies are often carried away by the spirit
of their order without being corrupted by it; and they unconsciously fashion
society to their own ends, and prepare it for their own descendants.
The English aristocracy is perhaps the most liberal which ever existed, and no
body of men has ever, uninterruptedly, furnished so many honorable and
enlightened individuals to the government of a country. It cannot, however,
escape observation that in the legislation of England the good of the poor has
been sacrificed to the advantage of the rich, and the rights of the majority to
the privileges of the few. The consequence is, that England, at the present day,
combines the extremes of fortune in the bosom of her society, and her perils and
calamities are almost equal to her power and her renown. *a
a
[ [The legislation of England for the forty years is certainly not fairly open
to this criticism, which was written before the Reform Bill of 1832, and
accordingly Great Britain has thus far escaped and surmounted the perils and
calamities to which she seemed to be exposed.]]
In the United States, where the public officers have no interests to promote
connected with their caste, the general and constant influence of the Government
is beneficial, although the individuals who conduct it are frequently unskilful
and sometimes contemptible. There is indeed a secret tendency in democratic
institutions to render the exertions of the citizens subservient to the
prosperity of the community, notwithstanding their private vices and mistakes;
whilst in aristocratic institutions there is a secret propensity which,
notwithstanding the talents and the virtues of those who conduct the government,
leads them to contribute to the evils which oppress their fellow-creatures. In
aristocratic governments public men may frequently do injuries which they do not
intend, and in democratic states they produce advantages which they never
thought of.
Public Spirit In The United States
Patriotism of instinct—Patriotism of reflection—Their different
characteristics—Nations ought to strive to acquire the second when the first has
disappeared—Efforts of the Americans to it—Interest of the individual intimately
connected with that of the country.
There is one sort of patriotic attachment which principally arises from that
instinctive, disinterested, and undefinable feeling which connects the
affections of man with his birthplace. This natural fondness is united to a
taste for ancient customs, and to a reverence for ancestral traditions of the
past; those who cherish it love their country as they love the mansions of their
fathers. They enjoy the tranquillity which it affords them; they cling to the
peaceful habits which they have contracted within its bosom; they are attached
to the reminiscences which it awakens, and they are even pleased by the state of
obedience in which they are placed. This patriotism is sometimes stimulated by
religious enthusiasm, and then it is capable of making the most prodigious
efforts. It is in itself a kind of religion; it does not reason, but it acts
from the impulse of faith and of sentiment. By some nations the monarch has been
regarded as a personification of the country; and the fervor of patriotism being
converted into the fervor of loyalty, they took a sympathetic pride in his
conquests, and gloried in his power. At one time, under the ancient monarchy,
the French felt a sort of satisfaction in the sense of their dependence upon the
arbitrary pleasure of their king, and they were wont to say with pride, "We are
the subjects of the most powerful king in the world."
But, like all instinctive passions, this kind of patriotism is more apt to
prompt transient exertion than to supply the motives of continuous endeavor. It
may save the State in critical circumstances, but it will not unfrequently allow
the nation to decline in the midst of peace. Whilst the manners of a people are
simple and its faith unshaken, whilst society is steadily based upon traditional
institutions whose legitimacy has never been contested, this instinctive
patriotism is wont to endure.
But there is another species of attachment to a country which is more rational
than the one we have been describing. It is perhaps less generous and less
ardent, but it is more fruitful and more lasting; it is coeval with the spread
of knowledge, it is nurtured by the laws, it grows by the exercise of civil
rights, and, in the end, it is confounded with the personal interest of the
citizen. A man comprehends the influence which the prosperity of his country has
upon his own welfare; he is aware that the laws authorize him to contribute his
assistance to that prosperity, and he labors to promote it as a portion of his
interest in the first place, and as a portion of his right in the second.
But epochs sometimes occur, in the course of the existence of a nation, at which
the ancient customs of a people are changed, public morality destroyed,
religious belief disturbed, and the spell of tradition broken, whilst the
diffusion of knowledge is yet imperfect, and the civil rights of the community
are ill secured, or confined within very narrow limits. The country then assumes
a dim and dubious shape in the eyes of the citizens; they no longer behold it in
the soil which they inhabit, for that soil is to them a dull inanimate clod; nor
in the usages of their forefathers, which they have been taught to look upon as
a debasing yoke; nor in religion, for of that they doubt; nor in the laws, which
do not originate in their own authority; nor in the legislator, whom they fear
and despise. The country is lost to their senses, they can neither discover it
under its own nor under borrowed features, and they entrench themselves within
the dull precincts of a narrow egotism. They are emancipated from prejudice
without having acknowledged the empire of reason; they are neither animated by
the instinctive patriotism of monarchical subjects nor by the thinking
patriotism of republican citizens; but they have stopped halfway between the
two, in the midst of confusion and of distress.
In this predicament, to retreat is impossible; for a people cannot restore the
vivacity of its earlier times, any more than a man can return to the innocence
and the bloom of childhood; such things may be regretted, but they cannot be
renewed. The only thing, then, which remains to be done is to proceed, and to
accelerate the union of private with public interests, since the period of
disinterested patriotism is gone by forever.
I am certainly very far from averring that, in order to obtain this result, the
exercise of political rights should be immediately granted to all the members of
the community. But I maintain that the most powerful, and perhaps the only,
means of interesting men in the welfare of their country which we still possess
is to make them partakers in the Government. At the present time civic zeal
seems to me to be inseparable from the exercise of political rights; and I hold
that the number of citizens will be found to augment or to decrease in Europe in
proportion as those rights are extended.
In the United States the inhabitants were thrown but as yesterday upon the soil
which they now occupy, and they brought neither customs nor traditions with them
there; they meet each other for the first time with no previous acquaintance; in
short, the instinctive love of their country can scarcely exist in their minds;
but everyone takes as zealous an interest in the affairs of his township, his
county, and of the whole State, as if they were his own, because everyone, in
his sphere, takes an active part in the government of society.
The lower orders in the United States are alive to the perception of the
influence exercised by the general prosperity upon their own welfare; and simple
as this observation is, it is one which is but too rarely made by the people.
But in America the people regards this prosperity as the result of its own
exertions; the citizen looks upon the fortune of the public as his private
interest, and he co-operates in its success, not so much from a sense of pride
or of duty, as from what I shall venture to term cupidity.
It is unnecessary to study the institutions and the history of the Americans in
order to discover the truth of this remark, for their manners render it
sufficiently evident. As the American participates in all that is done in his
country, he thinks himself obliged to defend whatever may be censured; for it is
not only his country which is attacked upon these occasions, but it is himself.
The consequence is, that his national pride resorts to a thousand artifices, and
to all the petty tricks of individual vanity.
Nothing is more embarrassing in the ordinary intercourse of life than this
irritable patriotism of the Americans. A stranger may be very well inclined to
praise many of the institutions of their country, but he begs permission to
blame some of the peculiarities which he observes—a permission which is,
however, inexorably refused. America is therefore a free country, in which, lest
anybody should be hurt by your remarks, you are not allowed to speak freely of
private individuals, or of the State, of the citizens or of the authorities, of
public or of private undertakings, or, in short, of anything at all, except it
be of the climate and the soil; and even then Americans will be found ready to
defend either the one or the other, as if they had been contrived by the
inhabitants of the country.
In our times option must be made between the patriotism of all and the
government of a few; for the force and activity which the first confers are
irreconcilable with the guarantees of tranquillity which the second furnishes.
Notion Of Rights In The United States
No great people without a notion of rights—How the notion of rights can be given
to people—Respect of rights in the United States—Whence it arises.
After the idea of virtue, I know no higher principle than that of right; or, to
speak more accurately, these two ideas are commingled in one. The idea of right
is simply that of virtue introduced into the political world. It is the idea of
right which enabled men to define anarchy and tyranny; and which taught them to
remain independent without arrogance, as well as to obey without servility. The
man who submits to violence is debased by his compliance; but when he obeys the
mandate of one who possesses that right of authority which he acknowledges in a
fellow-creature, he rises in some measure above the person who delivers the
command. There are no great men without virtue, and there are no great
nations—it may almost be added that there would be no society—without the notion
of rights; for what is the condition of a mass of rational and intelligent
beings who are only united together by the bond of force?
I am persuaded that the only means which we possess at the present time of
inculcating the notion of rights, and of rendering it, as it were, palpable to
the senses, is to invest all the members of the community with the peaceful
exercise of certain rights: this is very clearly seen in children, who are men
without the strength and the experience of manhood. When a child begins to move
in the midst of the objects which surround him, he is instinctively led to turn
everything which he can lay his hands upon to his own purposes; he has no notion
of the property of others; but as he gradually learns the value of things, and
begins to perceive that he may in his turn be deprived of his possessions, he
becomes more circumspect, and he observes those rights in others which he wishes
to have respected in himself. The principle which the child derives from the
possession of his toys is taught to the man by the objects which he may call his
own. In America those complaints against property in general which are so
frequent in Europe are never heard, because in America there are no paupers; and
as everyone has property of his own to defend, everyone recognizes the principle
upon which he holds it.
The same thing occurs in the political world. In America the lowest classes have
conceived a very high notion of political rights, because they exercise those
rights; and they refrain from attacking those of other people, in order to
ensure their own from attack. Whilst in Europe the same classes sometimes
recalcitrate even against the supreme power, the American submits without a
murmur to the authority of the pettiest magistrate.
This truth is exemplified by the most trivial details of national peculiarities.
In France very few pleasures are exclusively reserved for the higher classes;
the poor are admitted wherever the rich are received, and they consequently
behave with propriety, and respect whatever contributes to the enjoyments in
which they themselves participate. In England, where wealth has a monopoly of
amusement as well as of power, complaints are made that whenever the poor happen
to steal into the enclosures which are reserved for the pleasures of the rich,
they commit acts of wanton mischief: can this be wondered at, since care has
been taken that they should have nothing to lose? *b
b
[ [This, too, has been amended by much larger provisions for the amusements of
the people in public parks, gardens, museums, etc.; and the conduct of the
people in these places of amusement has improved in the same proportion.]]
The government of democracy brings the notion of political rights to the level
of the humblest citizens, just as the dissemination of wealth brings the notion
of property within the reach of all the members of the community; and I confess
that, to my mind, this is one of its greatest advantages. I do not assert that
it is easy to teach men to exercise political rights; but I maintain that, when
it is possible, the effects which result from it are highly important; and I add
that, if there ever was a time at which such an attempt ought to be made, that
time is our own. It is clear that the influence of religious belief is shaken,
and that the notion of divine rights is declining; it is evident that public
morality is vitiated, and the notion of moral rights is also disappearing: these
are general symptoms of the substitution of argument for faith, and of
calculation for the impulses of sentiment. If, in the midst of this general
disruption, you do not succeed in connecting the notion of rights with that of
personal interest, which is the only immutable point in the human heart, what
means will you have of governing the world except by fear? When I am told that,
since the laws are weak and the populace is wild, since passions are excited and
the authority of virtue is paralyzed, no measures must be taken to increase the
rights of the democracy, I reply, that it is for these very reasons that some
measures of the kind must be taken; and I am persuaded that governments are
still more interested in taking them than society at large, because governments
are liable to be destroyed and society cannot perish.
I am not, however, inclined to exaggerate the example which America furnishes.
In those States the people are invested with political rights at a time when
they could scarcely be abused, for the citizens were few in number and simple in
their manners. As they have increased, the Americans have not augmented the
power of the democracy, but they have, if I may use the expression, extended its
dominions. It cannot be doubted that the moment at which political rights are
granted to a people that had before been without them is a very critical, though
it be a necessary one. A child may kill before he is aware of the value of life;
and he may deprive another person of his property before he is aware that his
own may be taken away from him. The lower orders, when first they are invested
with political rights, stand, in relation to those rights, in the same position
as the child does to the whole of nature, and the celebrated adage may then be
applied to them, Homo puer robustus. This truth may even be perceived in
America. The States in which the citizens have enjoyed their rights longest are
those in which they make the best use of them.
It cannot be repeated too often that nothing is more fertile in prodigies than
the art of being free; but there is nothing more arduous than the apprenticeship
of liberty. Such is not the case with despotic institutions: despotism often
promises to make amends for a thousand previous ills; it supports the right, it
protects the oppressed, and it maintains public order. The nation is lulled by
the temporary prosperity which accrues to it, until it is roused to a sense of
its own misery. Liberty, on the contrary, is generally established in the midst
of agitation, it is perfected by civil discord, and its benefits cannot be
appreciated until it is already old.
Chapter XIV: Advantages American Society Derive From Democracy—Part II
Respect For The Law In The United States
Respect of the Americans for the law—Parental affection which they entertain for
it—Personal interest of everyone to increase the authority of the law.
It is not always feasible to consult the whole people, either directly or
indirectly, in the formation of the law; but it cannot be denied that, when such
a measure is possible the authority of the law is very much augmented. This
popular origin, which impairs the excellence and the wisdom of legislation,
contributes prodigiously to increase its power. There is an amazing strength in
the expression of the determination of a whole people, and when it declares
itself the imagination of those who are most inclined to contest it is overawed
by its authority. The truth of this fact is very well known by parties, and they
consequently strive to make out a majority whenever they can. If they have not
the greater number of voters on their side, they assert that the true majority
abstained from voting; and if they are foiled even there, they have recourse to
the body of those persons who had no votes to give.
In the United States, except slaves, servants, and paupers in the receipt of
relief from the townships, there is no class of persons who do not exercise the
elective franchise, and who do not indirectly contribute to make the laws. Those
who design to attack the laws must consequently either modify the opinion of the
nation or trample upon its decision.
A second reason, which is still more weighty, may be further adduced; in the
United States everyone is personally interested in enforcing the obedience of
the whole community to the law; for as the minority may shortly rally the
majority to its principles, it is interested in professing that respect for the
decrees of the legislator which it may soon have occasion to claim for its own.
However irksome an enactment may be, the citizen of the United States complies
with it, not only because it is the work of the majority, but because it
originates in his own authority, and he regards it as a contract to which he is
himself a party.
In the United States, then, that numerous and turbulent multitude does not exist
which always looks upon the law as its natural enemy, and accordingly surveys it
with fear and with fear and with distrust. It is impossible, on the other hand,
not to perceive that all classes display the utmost reliance upon the
legislation of their country, and that they are attached to it by a kind of
parental affection.
I am wrong, however, in saying all classes; for as in America the European scale
of authority is inverted, the wealthy are there placed in a position analogous
to that of the poor in the Old World, and it is the opulent classes which
frequently look upon the law with suspicion. I have already observed that the
advantage of democracy is not, as has been sometimes asserted, that it protects
the interests of the whole community, but simply that it protects those of the
majority. In the United States, where the poor rule, the rich have always some
reason to dread the abuses of their power. This natural anxiety of the rich may
produce a sullen dissatisfaction, but society is not disturbed by it; for the
same reason which induces the rich to withhold their confidence in the
legislative authority makes them obey its mandates; their wealth, which prevents
them from making the law, prevents them from withstanding it. Amongst civilized
nations revolts are rarely excited, except by such persons as have nothing to
lose by them; and if the laws of a democracy are not always worthy of respect,
at least they always obtain it; for those who usually infringe the laws have no
excuse for not complying with the enactments they have themselves made, and by
which they are themselves benefited, whilst the citizens whose interests might
be promoted by the infraction of them are induced, by their character and their
stations, to submit to the decisions of the legislature, whatever they may be.
Besides which, the people in America obeys the law not only because it emanates
from the popular authority, but because that authority may modify it in any
points which may prove vexatory; a law is observed because it is a self-imposed
evil in the first place, and an evil of transient duration in the second.
Activity Which Pervades All The Branches Of The Body Politic In The United
States; Influence Which It Exercises Upon Society
More difficult to conceive the political activity which pervades the United
States than the freedom and equality which reign there—The great activity which
perpetually agitates the legislative bodies is only an episode to the general
activity—Difficult for an American to confine himself to his own
business—Political agitation extends to all social intercourse—Commercial
activity of the Americans partly attributable to this cause—Indirect advantages
which society derives from a democratic government.
On passing from a country in which free institutions are established to one
where they do not exist, the traveller is struck by the change; in the former
all is bustle and activity, in the latter everything is calm and motionless. In
the one, amelioration and progress are the general topics of inquiry; in the
other, it seems as if the community only aspired to repose in the enjoyment of
the advantages which it has acquired. Nevertheless, the country which exerts
itself so strenuously to promote its welfare is generally more wealthy and more
prosperous than that which appears to be so contented with its lot; and when we
compare them together, we can scarcely conceive how so many new wants are daily
felt in the former, whilst so few seem to occur in the latter.
If this remark is applicable to those free countries in which monarchical and
aristocratic institutions subsist, it is still more striking with regard to
democratic republics. In these States it is not only a portion of the people
which is busied with the amelioration of its social condition, but the whole
community is engaged in the task; and it is not the exigencies and the
convenience of a single class for which a provision is to be made, but the
exigencies and the convenience of all ranks of life.
It is not impossible to conceive the surpassing liberty which the Americans
enjoy; some idea may likewise be formed of the extreme equality which subsists
amongst them, but the political activity which pervades the United States must
be seen in order to be understood. No sooner do you set foot upon the American
soil than you are stunned by a kind of tumult; a confused clamor is heard on
every side; and a thousand simultaneous voices demand the immediate satisfaction
of their social wants. Everything is in motion around you; here, the people of
one quarter of a town are met to decide upon the building of a church; there,
the election of a representative is going on; a little further the delegates of
a district are posting to the town in order to consult upon some local
improvements; or in another place the laborers of a village quit their ploughs
to deliberate upon the project of a road or a public school. Meetings are called
for the sole purpose of declaring their disapprobation of the line of conduct
pursued by the Government; whilst in other assemblies the citizens salute the
authorities of the day as the fathers of their country. Societies are formed
which regard drunkenness as the principal cause of the evils under which the
State labors, and which solemnly bind themselves to give a constant example of
temperance. *c
c
[ At the time of my stay in the United States the temperance societies already
consisted of more than 270,000 members, and their effect had been to diminish
the consumption of fermented liquors by 500,000 gallons per annum in the State
of Pennsylvania alone.]
The great political agitation of the American legislative bodies, which is the
only kind of excitement that attracts the attention of foreign countries, is a
mere episode or a sort of continuation of that universal movement which
originates in the lowest classes of the people and extends successively to all
the ranks of society. It is impossible to spend more efforts in the pursuit of
enjoyment.
The cares of political life engross a most prominent place in the occupation of
a citizen in the United States, and almost the only pleasure of which an
American has any idea is to take a part in the Government, and to discuss the
part he has taken. This feeling pervades the most trifling habits of life; even
the women frequently attend public meetings and listen to political harangues as
a recreation after their household labors. Debating clubs are to a certain
extent a substitute for theatrical entertainments: an American cannot converse,
but he can discuss; and when he attempts to talk he falls into a dissertation.
He speaks to you as if he was addressing a meeting; and if he should chance to
warm in the course of the discussion, he will infallibly say, "Gentlemen," to
the person with whom he is conversing.
In some countries the inhabitants display a certain repugnance to avail
themselves of the political privileges with which the law invests them; it would
seem that they set too high a value upon their time to spend it on the interests
of the community; and they prefer to withdraw within the exact limits of a
wholesome egotism, marked out by four sunk fences and a quickset hedge. But if
an American were condemned to confine his activity to his own affairs, he would
be robbed of one half of his existence; he would feel an immense void in the
life which he is accustomed to lead, and his wretchedness would be unbearable.
*d I am persuaded that, if ever a despotic government is established in America,
it will find it more difficult to surmount the habits which free institutions
have engendered than to conquer the attachment of the citizens to freedom.
d
[ The same remark was made at Rome under the first Caesars. Montesquieu
somewhere alludes to the excessive despondency of certain Roman citizens who,
after the excitement of political life, were all at once flung back into the
stagnation of private life.]
This ceaseless agitation which democratic government has introduced into the
political world influences all social intercourse. I am not sure that upon the
whole this is not the greatest advantage of democracy. And I am much less
inclined to applaud it for what it does than for what it causes to be done. It
is incontestable that the people frequently conducts public business very ill;
but it is impossible that the lower orders should take a part in public business
without extending the circle of their ideas, and without quitting the ordinary
routine of their mental acquirements. The humblest individual who is called upon
to co-operate in the government of society acquires a certain degree of
self-respect; and as he possesses authority, he can command the services of
minds much more enlightened than his own. He is canvassed by a multitude of
applicants, who seek to deceive him in a thousand different ways, but who
instruct him by their deceit. He takes a part in political undertakings which
did not originate in his own conception, but which give him a taste for
undertakings of the kind. New ameliorations are daily pointed out in the
property which he holds in common with others, and this gives him the desire of
improving that property which is more peculiarly his own. He is perhaps neither
happier nor better than those who came before him, but he is better informed and
more active. I have no doubt that the democratic institutions of the United
States, joined to the physical constitution of the country, are the cause (not
the direct, as is so often asserted, but the indirect cause) of the prodigious
commercial activity of the inhabitants. It is not engendered by the laws, but
the people learns how to promote it by the experience derived from legislation.
When the opponents of democracy assert that a single individual performs the
duties which he undertakes much better than the government of the community, it
appears to me that they are perfectly right. The government of an individual,
supposing an equality of instruction on either side, is more consistent, more
persevering, and more accurate than that of a multitude, and it is much better
qualified judiciously to discriminate the characters of the men it employs. If
any deny what I advance, they have certainly never seen a democratic government,
or have formed their opinion upon very partial evidence. It is true that even
when local circumstances and the disposition of the people allow democratic
institutions to subsist, they never display a regular and methodical system of
government. Democratic liberty is far from accomplishing all the projects it
undertakes, with the skill of an adroit despotism. It frequently abandons them
before they have borne their fruits, or risks them when the consequences may
prove dangerous; but in the end it produces more than any absolute government,
and if it do fewer things well, it does a greater number of things. Under its
sway the transactions of the public administration are not nearly so important
as what is done by private exertion. Democracy does not confer the most skilful
kind of government upon the people, but it produces that which the most skilful
governments are frequently unable to awaken, namely, an all-pervading and
restless activity, a superabundant force, and an energy which is inseparable
from it, and which may, under favorable circumstances, beget the most amazing
benefits. These are the true advantages of democracy.
In the present age, when the destinies of Christendom seem to be in suspense,
some hasten to assail democracy as its foe whilst it is yet in its early growth;
and others are ready with their vows of adoration for this new deity which is
springing forth from chaos: but both parties are very imperfectly acquainted
with the object of their hatred or of their desires; they strike in the dark,
and distribute their blows by mere chance.
We must first understand what the purport of society and the aim of government
is held to be. If it be your intention to confer a certain elevation upon the
human mind, and to teach it to regard the things of this world with generous
feelings, to inspire men with a scorn of mere temporal advantage, to give birth
to living convictions, and to keep alive the spirit of honorable devotedness; if
you hold it to be a good thing to refine the habits, to embellish the manners,
to cultivate the arts of a nation, and to promote the love of poetry, of beauty,
and of renown; if you would constitute a people not unfitted to act with power
upon all other nations, nor unprepared for those high enterprises which,
whatever be the result of its efforts, will leave a name forever famous in
time—if you believe such to be the principal object of society, you must avoid
the government of democracy, which would be a very uncertain guide to the end
you have in view.
But if you hold it to be expedient to divert the moral and intellectual activity
of man to the production of comfort, and to the acquirement of the necessaries
of life; if a clear understanding be more profitable to man than genius; if your
object be not to stimulate the virtues of heroism, but to create habits of
peace; if you had rather witness vices than crimes and are content to meet with
fewer noble deeds, provided offences be diminished in the same proportion; if,
instead of living in the midst of a brilliant state of society, you are
contented to have prosperity around you; if, in short, you are of opinion that
the principal object of a Government is not to confer the greatest possible
share of power and of glory upon the body of the nation, but to ensure the
greatest degree of enjoyment and the least degree of misery to each of the
individuals who compose it—if such be your desires, you can have no surer means
of satisfying them than by equalizing the conditions of men, and establishing
democratic institutions.
But if the time be passed at which such a choice was possible, and if some
superhuman power impel us towards one or the other of these two governments
without consulting our wishes, let us at least endeavor to make the best of that
which is allotted to us; and let us so inquire into its good and its evil
propensities as to be able to foster the former and repress the latter to the
utmost.
Chapter XV: Unlimited Power Of Majority, And Its Consequences—Part I
Chapter Summary
Natural strength of the majority in democracies—Most of the American
Constitutions have increased this strength by artificial means—How this has been
done—Pledged delegates—Moral power of the majority—Opinion as to its
infallibility—Respect for its rights, how augmented in the United States.
Unlimited Power Of The Majority In The United States, And Its Consequences
The very essence of democratic government consists in the absolute sovereignty
of the majority; for there is nothing in democratic States which is capable of
resisting it. Most of the American Constitutions have sought to increase this
natural strength of the majority by artificial means. *a
a
[ We observed, in examining the Federal Constitution, that the efforts of the
legislators of the Union had been diametrically opposed to the present tendency.
The consequence has been that the Federal Government is more independent in its
sphere than that of the States. But the Federal Government scarcely ever
interferes in any but external affairs; and the governments of the State are in
the governments of the States are in reality the authorities which direct
society in America.]
The legislature is, of all political institutions, the one which is most easily
swayed by the wishes of the majority. The Americans determined that the members
of the legislature should be elected by the people immediately, and for a very
brief term, in order to subject them, not only to the general convictions, but
even to the daily passion, of their constituents. The members of both houses are
taken from the same class in society, and are nominated in the same manner; so
that the modifications of the legislative bodies are almost as rapid and quite
as irresistible as those of a single assembly. It is to a legislature thus
constituted that almost all the authority of the government has been entrusted.
But whilst the law increased the strength of those authorities which of
themselves were strong, it enfeebled more and more those which were naturally
weak. It deprived the representatives of the executive of all stability and
independence, and by subjecting them completely to the caprices of the
legislature, it robbed them of the slender influence which the nature of a
democratic government might have allowed them to retain. In several States the
judicial power was also submitted to the elective discretion of the majority,
and in all of them its existence was made to depend on the pleasure of the
legislative authority, since the representatives were empowered annually to
regulate the stipend of the judges.
Custom, however, has done even more than law. A proceeding which will in the end
set all the guarantees of representative government at naught is becoming more
and more general in the United States; it frequently happens that the electors,
who choose a delegate, point out a certain line of conduct to him, and impose
upon him a certain number of positive obligations which he is pledged to fulfil.
With the exception of the tumult, this comes to the same thing as if the
majority of the populace held its deliberations in the market-place.
Several other circumstances concur in rendering the power of the majority in
America not only preponderant, but irresistible. The moral authority of the
majority is partly based upon the notion that there is more intelligence and
more wisdom in a great number of men collected together than in a single
individual, and that the quantity of legislators is more important than their
quality. The theory of equality is in fact applied to the intellect of man: and
human pride is thus assailed in its last retreat by a doctrine which the
minority hesitate to admit, and in which they very slowly concur. Like all other
powers, and perhaps more than all other powers, the authority of the many
requires the sanction of time; at first it enforces obedience by constraint, but
its laws are not respected until they have long been maintained.
The right of governing society, which the majority supposes itself to derive
from its superior intelligence, was introduced into the United States by the
first settlers, and this idea, which would be sufficient of itself to create a
free nation, has now been amalgamated with the manners of the people and the
minor incidents of social intercourse.
The French, under the old monarchy, held it for a maxim (which is still a
fundamental principle of the English Constitution) that the King could do no
wrong; and if he did do wrong, the blame was imputed to his advisers. This
notion was highly favorable to habits of obedience, and it enabled the subject
to complain of the law without ceasing to love and honor the lawgiver. The
Americans entertain the same opinion with respect to the majority.
The moral power of the majority is founded upon yet another principle, which is,
that the interests of the many are to be preferred to those of the few. It will
readily be perceived that the respect here professed for the rights of the
majority must naturally increase or diminish according to the state of parties.
When a nation is divided into several irreconcilable factions, the privilege of
the majority is often overlooked, because it is intolerable to comply with its
demands.
If there existed in America a class of citizens whom the legislating majority
sought to deprive of exclusive privileges which they had possessed for ages, and
to bring down from an elevated station to the level of the ranks of the
multitude, it is probable that the minority would be less ready to comply with
its laws. But as the United States were colonized by men holding equal rank
amongst themselves, there is as yet no natural or permanent source of dissension
between the interests of its different inhabitants.
There are certain communities in which the persons who constitute the minority
can never hope to draw over the majority to their side, because they must then
give up the very point which is at issue between them. Thus, an aristocracy can
never become a majority whilst it retains its exclusive privileges, and it
cannot cede its privileges without ceasing to be an aristocracy.
In the United States political questions cannot be taken up in so general and
absolute a manner, and all parties are willing to recognize the right of the
majority, because they all hope to turn those rights to their own advantage at
some future time. The majority therefore in that country exercises a prodigious
actual authority, and a moral influence which is scarcely less preponderant; no
obstacles exist which can impede or so much as retard its progress, or which can
induce it to heed the complaints of those whom it crushes upon its path. This
state of things is fatal in itself and dangerous for the future.
How The Unlimited Power Of The Majority Increases In America The Instability Of
Legislation And Administration Inherent In Democracy The Americans increase the
mutability of the laws which is inherent in democracy by changing the
legislature every year, and by investing it with unbounded authority—The same
effect is produced upon the administration—In America social amelioration is
conducted more energetically but less perseveringly than in Europe.
I have already spoken of the natural defects of democratic institutions, and
they all of them increase at the exact ratio of the power of the majority. To
begin with the most evident of them all; the mutability of the laws is an evil
inherent in democratic government, because it is natural to democracies to raise
men to power in very rapid succession. But this evil is more or less sensible in
proportion to the authority and the means of action which the legislature
possesses.
In America the authority exercised by the legislative bodies is supreme; nothing
prevents them from accomplishing their wishes with celerity, and with
irresistible power, whilst they are supplied by new representatives every year.
That is to say, the circumstances which contribute most powerfully to democratic
instability, and which admit of the free application of caprice to every object
in the State, are here in full operation. In conformity with this principle,
America is, at the present day, the country in the world where laws last the
shortest time. Almost all the American constitutions have been amended within
the course of thirty years: there is therefore not a single American State which
has not modified the principles of its legislation in that lapse of time. As for
the laws themselves, a single glance upon the archives of the different States
of the Union suffices to convince one that in America the activity of the
legislator never slackens. Not that the American democracy is naturally less
stable than any other, but that it is allowed to follow its capricious
propensities in the formation of the laws. *b
b
[ The legislative acts promulgated by the State of Massachusetts alone, from the
year 1780 to the present time, already fill three stout volumes; and it must not
be forgotten that the collection to which I allude was published in 1823, when
many old laws which had fallen into disuse were omitted. The State of
Massachusetts, which is not more populous than a department of France, may be
considered as the most stable, the most consistent, and the most sagacious in
its undertakings of the whole Union.]
The omnipotence of the majority, and the rapid as well as absolute manner in
which its decisions are executed in the United States, has not only the effect
of rendering the law unstable, but it exercises the same influence upon the
execution of the law and the conduct of the public administration. As the
majority is the only power which it is important to court, all its projects are
taken up with the greatest ardor, but no sooner is its attention distracted than
all this ardor ceases; whilst in the free States of Europe the administration is
at once independent and secure, so that the projects of the legislature are put
into execution, although its immediate attention may be directed to other
objects.
In America certain ameliorations are undertaken with much more zeal and activity
than elsewhere; in Europe the same ends are promoted by much less social effort,
more continuously applied.
Some years ago several pious individuals undertook to ameliorate the condition
of the prisons. The public was excited by the statements which they put forward,
and the regeneration of criminals became a very popular undertaking. New prisons
were built, and for the first time the idea of reforming as well as of punishing
the delinquent formed a part of prison discipline. But this happy alteration, in
which the public had taken so hearty an interest, and which the exertions of the
citizens had irresistibly accelerated, could not be completed in a moment.
Whilst the new penitentiaries were being erected (and it was the pleasure of the
majority that they should be terminated with all possible celerity), the old
prisons existed, which still contained a great number of offenders. These jails
became more unwholesome and more corrupt in proportion as the new establishments
were beautified and improved, forming a contrast which may readily be
understood. The majority was so eagerly employed in founding the new prisons
that those which already existed were forgotten; and as the general attention
was diverted to a novel object, the care which had hitherto been bestowed upon
the others ceased. The salutary regulations of discipline were first relaxed,
and afterwards broken; so that in the immediate neighborhood of a prison which
bore witness to the mild and enlightened spirit of our time, dungeons might be
met with which reminded the visitor of the barbarity of the Middle Ages.
Chapter XV: Unlimited Power Of Majority, And Its Consequences—Part II
Tyranny Of The Majority
How the principle of the sovereignty of the people is to be
understood—Impossibility of conceiving a mixed government—The sovereign power
must centre somewhere—Precautions to be taken to control its action—These
precautions have not been taken in the United States—Consequences.
I hold it to be an impious and an execrable maxim that, politically speaking, a
people has a right to do whatsoever it pleases, and yet I have asserted that all
authority originates in the will of the majority. Am I then, in contradiction
with myself?
A general law—which bears the name of Justice—has been made and sanctioned, not
only by a majority of this or that people, but by a majority of mankind. The
rights of every people are consequently confined within the limits of what is
just. A nation may be considered in the light of a jury which is empowered to
represent society at large, and to apply the great and general law of justice.
Ought such a jury, which represents society, to have more power than the society
in which the laws it applies originate?
When I refuse to obey an unjust law, I do not contest the right which the
majority has of commanding, but I simply appeal from the sovereignty of the
people to the sovereignty of mankind. It has been asserted that a people can
never entirely outstep the boundaries of justice and of reason in those affairs
which are more peculiarly its own, and that consequently, full power may
fearlessly be given to the majority by which it is represented. But this
language is that of a slave.
A majority taken collectively may be regarded as a being whose opinions, and
most frequently whose interests, are opposed to those of another being, which is
styled a minority. If it be admitted that a man, possessing absolute power, may
misuse that power by wronging his adversaries, why should a majority not be
liable to the same reproach? Men are not apt to change their characters by
agglomeration; nor does their patience in the presence of obstacles increase
with the consciousness of their strength. *c And for these reasons I can never
willingly invest any number of my fellow-creatures with that unlimited authority
which I should refuse to any one of them.
c
[ No one will assert that a people cannot forcibly wrong another people; but
parties may be looked upon as lesser nations within a greater one, and they are
aliens to each other: if, therefore, it be admitted that a nation can act
tyrannically towards another nation, it cannot be denied that a party may do the
same towards another party.]
I do not think that it is possible to combine several principles in the same
government, so as at the same time to maintain freedom, and really to oppose
them to one another. The form of government which is usually termed mixed has
always appeared to me to be a mere chimera. Accurately speaking there is no such
thing as a mixed government (with the meaning usually given to that word),
because in all communities some one principle of action may be discovered which
preponderates over the others. England in the last century, which has been more
especially cited as an example of this form of Government, was in point of fact
an essentially aristocratic State, although it comprised very powerful elements
of democracy; for the laws and customs of the country were such that the
aristocracy could not but preponderate in the end, and subject the direction of
public affairs to its own will. The error arose from too much attention being
paid to the actual struggle which was going on between the nobles and the
people, without considering the probable issue of the contest, which was in
reality the important point. When a community really has a mixed government,
that is to say, when it is equally divided between two adverse principles, it
must either pass through a revolution or fall into complete dissolution.
I am therefore of opinion that some one social power must always be made to
predominate over the others; but I think that liberty is endangered when this
power is checked by no obstacles which may retard its course, and force it to
moderate its own vehemence.
Unlimited power is in itself a bad and dangerous thing; human beings are not
competent to exercise it with discretion, and God alone can be omnipotent,
because His wisdom and His justice are always equal to His power. But no power
upon earth is so worthy of honor for itself, or of reverential obedience to the
rights which it represents, that I would consent to admit its uncontrolled and
all-predominant authority. When I see that the right and the means of absolute
command are conferred on a people or upon a king, upon an aristocracy or a
democracy, a monarchy or a republic, I recognize the germ of tyranny, and I
journey onward to a land of more hopeful institutions.
In my opinion the main evil of the present democratic institutions of the United
States does not arise, as is often asserted in Europe, from their weakness, but
from their overpowering strength; and I am not so much alarmed at the excessive
liberty which reigns in that country as at the very inadequate securities which
exist against tyranny.
When an individual or a party is wronged in the United States, to whom can he
apply for redress? If to public opinion, public opinion constitutes the
majority; if to the legislature, it represents the majority, and implicitly
obeys its injunctions; if to the executive power, it is appointed by the
majority, and remains a passive tool in its hands; the public troops consist of
the majority under arms; the jury is the majority invested with the right of
hearing judicial cases; and in certain States even the judges are elected by the
majority. However iniquitous or absurd the evil of which you complain may be,
you must submit to it as well as you can. *d
d
[ A striking instance of the excesses which may be occasioned by the despotism
of the majority occurred at Baltimore in the year 1812. At that time the war was
very popular in Baltimore. A journal which had taken the other side of the
question excited the indignation of the inhabitants by its opposition. The
populace assembled, broke the printing-presses, and attacked the houses of the
newspaper editors. The militia was called out, but no one obeyed the call; and
the only means of saving the poor wretches who were threatened by the frenzy of
the mob was to throw them into prison as common malefactors. But even this
precaution was ineffectual; the mob collected again during the night, the
magistrates again made a vain attempt to call out the militia, the prison was
forced, one of the newspaper editors was killed upon the spot, and the others
were left for dead; the guilty parties were acquitted by the jury when they were
brought to trial.
I said one day to an inhabitant of Pennsylvania, "Be so good as to explain to me
how it happens that in a State founded by Quakers, and celebrated for its
toleration, freed blacks are not allowed to exercise civil rights. They pay the
taxes; is it not fair that they should have a vote?"
"You insult us," replied my informant, "if you imagine that our legislators
could have committed so gross an act of injustice and intolerance."
"What! then the blacks possess the right of voting in this county?"
"Without the smallest doubt."
"How comes it, then, that at the polling-booth this morning I did not perceive a
single negro in the whole meeting?"
"This is not the fault of the law: the negroes have an undisputed right of
voting, but they voluntarily abstain from making their appearance."
"A very pretty piece of modesty on their parts!" rejoined I.
"Why, the truth is, that they are not disinclined to vote, but they are afraid
of being maltreated; in this country the law is sometimes unable to maintain its
authority without the support of the majority. But in this case the majority
entertains very strong prejudices against the blacks, and the magistrates are
unable to protect them in the exercise of their legal privileges."
"What! then the majority claims the right not only of making the laws, but of
breaking the laws it has made?"]
If, on the other hand, a legislative power could be so constituted as to
represent the majority without necessarily being the slave of its passions; an
executive, so as to retain a certain degree of uncontrolled authority; and a
judiciary, so as to remain independent of the two other powers; a government
would be formed which would still be democratic without incurring any risk of
tyrannical abuse.
I do not say that tyrannical abuses frequently occur in America at the present
day, but I maintain that no sure barrier is established against them, and that
the causes which mitigate the government are to be found in the circumstances
and the manners of the country more than in its laws.
Effects Of The Unlimited Power Of The Majority Upon The Arbitrary Authority Of
The American Public Officers
Liberty left by the American laws to public officers within a certain
sphere—Their power.
A distinction must be drawn between tyranny and arbitrary power. Tyranny may be
exercised by means of the law, and in that case it is not arbitrary; arbitrary
power may be exercised for the good of the community at large, in which case it
is not tyrannical. Tyranny usually employs arbitrary means, but, if necessary,
it can rule without them.
In the United States the unbounded power of the majority, which is favorable to
the legal despotism of the legislature, is likewise favorable to the arbitrary
authority of the magistrate. The majority has an entire control over the law
when it is made and when it is executed; and as it possesses an equal authority
over those who are in power and the community at large, it considers public
officers as its passive agents, and readily confides the task of serving its
designs to their vigilance. The details of their office and the privileges which
they are to enjoy are rarely defined beforehand; but the majority treats them as
a master does his servants when they are always at work in his sight, and he has
the power of directing or reprimanding them at every instant.
In general the American functionaries are far more independent than the French
civil officers within the sphere which is prescribed to them. Sometimes, even,
they are allowed by the popular authority to exceed those bounds; and as they
are protected by the opinion, and backed by the co-operation, of the majority,
they venture upon such manifestations of their power as astonish a European. By
this means habits are formed in the heart of a free country which may some day
prove fatal to its liberties.
Power Exercised By The Majority In America Upon Opinion
In America, when the majority has once irrevocably decided a question, all
discussion ceases—Reason of this—Moral power exercised by the majority upon
opinion—Democratic republics have deprived despotism of its physical
instruments—Their despotism sways the minds of men.
It is in the examination of the display of public opinion in the United States
that we clearly perceive how far the power of the majority surpasses all the
powers with which we are acquainted in Europe. Intellectual principles exercise
an influence which is so invisible, and often so inappreciable, that they baffle
the toils of oppression. At the present time the most absolute monarchs in
Europe are unable to prevent certain notions, which are opposed to their
authority, from circulating in secret throughout their dominions, and even in
their courts. Such is not the case in America; as long as the majority is still
undecided, discussion is carried on; but as soon as its decision is irrevocably
pronounced, a submissive silence is observed, and the friends, as well as the
opponents, of the measure unite in assenting to its propriety. The reason of
this is perfectly clear: no monarch is so absolute as to combine all the powers
of society in his own hands, and to conquer all opposition with the energy of a
majority which is invested with the right of making and of executing the laws.
The authority of a king is purely physical, and it controls the actions of the
subject without subduing his private will; but the majority possesses a power
which is physical and moral at the same time; it acts upon the will as well as
upon the actions of men, and it represses not only all contest, but all
controversy. I know no country in which there is so little true independence of
mind and freedom of discussion as in America. In any constitutional state in
Europe every sort of religious and political theory may be advocated and
propagated abroad; for there is no country in Europe so subdued by any single
authority as not to contain citizens who are ready to protect the man who raises
his voice in the cause of truth from the consequences of his hardihood. If he is
unfortunate enough to live under an absolute government, the people is upon his
side; if he inhabits a free country, he may find a shelter behind the authority
of the throne, if he require one. The aristocratic part of society supports him
in some countries, and the democracy in others. But in a nation where democratic
institutions exist, organized like those of the United States, there is but one
sole authority, one single element of strength and of success, with nothing
beyond it.
In America the majority raises very formidable barriers to the liberty of
opinion: within these barriers an author may write whatever he pleases, but he
will repent it if he ever step beyond them. Not that he is exposed to the
terrors of an auto-da-fe, but he is tormented by the slights and persecutions of
daily obloquy. His political career is closed forever, since he has offended the
only authority which is able to promote his success. Every sort of compensation,
even that of celebrity, is refused to him. Before he published his opinions he
imagined that he held them in common with many others; but no sooner has he
declared them openly than he is loudly censured by his overbearing opponents,
whilst those who think without having the courage to speak, like him, abandon
him in silence. He yields at length, oppressed by the daily efforts he has been
making, and he subsides into silence, as if he was tormented by remorse for
having spoken the truth.
Fetters and headsmen were the coarse instruments which tyranny formerly
employed; but the civilization of our age has refined the arts of despotism
which seemed, however, to have been sufficiently perfected before. The excesses
of monarchical power had devised a variety of physical means of oppression: the
democratic republics of the present day have rendered it as entirely an affair
of the mind as that will which it is intended to coerce. Under the absolute sway
of an individual despot the body was attacked in order to subdue the soul, and
the soul escaped the blows which were directed against it and rose superior to
the attempt; but such is not the course adopted by tyranny in democratic
republics; there the body is left free, and the soul is enslaved. The sovereign
can no longer say, "You shall think as I do on pain of death;" but he says, "You
are free to think differently from me, and to retain your life, your property,
and all that you possess; but if such be your determination, you are henceforth
an alien among your people. You may retain your civil rights, but they will be
useless to you, for you will never be chosen by your fellow-citizens if you
solicit their suffrages, and they will affect to scorn you if you solicit their
esteem. You will remain among men, but you will be deprived of the rights of
mankind. Your fellow-creatures will shun you like an impure being, and those who
are most persuaded of your innocence will abandon you too, lest they should be
shunned in their turn. Go in peace! I have given you your life, but it is an
existence in comparably worse than death."
Monarchical institutions have thrown an odium upon despotism; let us beware lest
democratic republics should restore oppression, and should render it less odious
and less degrading in the eyes of the many, by making it still more onerous to
the few.
Works have been published in the proudest nations of the Old World expressly
intended to censure the vices and deride the follies of the times; Labruyere
inhabited the palace of Louis XIV when he composed his chapter upon the Great,
and Moliere criticised the courtiers in the very pieces which were acted before
the Court. But the ruling power in the United States is not to be made game of;
the smallest reproach irritates its sensibility, and the slightest joke which
has any foundation in truth renders it indignant; from the style of its language
to the more solid virtues of its character, everything must be made the subject
of encomium. No writer, whatever be his eminence, can escape from this tribute
of adulation to his fellow-citizens. The majority lives in the perpetual
practice of self-applause, and there are certain truths which the Americans can
only learn from strangers or from experience.
If great writers have not at present existed in America, the reason is very
simply given in these facts; there can be no literary genius without freedom of
opinion, and freedom of opinion does not exist in America. The Inquisition has
never been able to prevent a vast number of anti-religious books from
circulating in Spain. The empire of the majority succeeds much better in the
United States, since it actually removes the wish of publishing them.
Unbelievers are to be met with in America, but, to say the truth, there is no
public organ of infidelity. Attempts have been made by some governments to
protect the morality of nations by prohibiting licentious books. In the United
States no one is punished for this sort of works, but no one is induced to write
them; not because all the citizens are immaculate in their manners, but because
the majority of the community is decent and orderly.
In these cases the advantages derived from the exercise of this power are
unquestionable, and I am simply discussing the nature of the power itself. This
irresistible authority is a constant fact, and its judicious exercise is an
accidental occurrence.
Effects Of The Tyranny Of The Majority Upon The National Character Of The
Americans
Effects of the tyranny of the majority more sensibly felt hitherto in the
manners than in the conduct of society—They check the development of leading
characters—Democratic republics organized like the United States bring the
practice of courting favor within the reach of the many—Proofs of this spirit in
the United States—Why there is more patriotism in the people than in those who
govern in its name.
The tendencies which I have just alluded to are as yet very slightly perceptible
in political society, but they already begin to exercise an unfavorable
influence upon the national character of the Americans. I am inclined to
attribute the singular paucity of distinguished political characters to the
ever-increasing activity of the despotism of the majority in the United States.
When the American Revolution broke out they arose in great numbers, for public
opinion then served, not to tyrannize over, but to direct the exertions of
individuals. Those celebrated men took a full part in the general agitation of
mind common at that period, and they attained a high degree of personal fame,
which was reflected back upon the nation, but which was by no means borrowed
from it.
In absolute governments the great nobles who are nearest to the throne flatter
the passions of the sovereign, and voluntarily truckle to his caprices. But the
mass of the nation does not degrade itself by servitude: it often submits from
weakness, from habit, or from ignorance, and sometimes from loyalty. Some
nations have been known to sacrifice their own desires to those of the sovereign
with pleasure and with pride, thus exhibiting a sort of independence in the very
act of submission. These peoples are miserable, but they are not degraded. There
is a great difference between doing what one does not approve and feigning to
approve what one does; the one is the necessary case of a weak person, the other
befits the temper of a lackey.
In free countries, where everyone is more or less called upon to give his
opinion in the affairs of state; in democratic republics, where public life is
incessantly commingled with domestic affairs, where the sovereign authority is
accessible on every side, and where its attention can almost always be attracted
by vociferation, more persons are to be met with who speculate upon its foibles
and live at the cost of its passions than in absolute monarchies. Not because
men are naturally worse in these States than elsewhere, but the temptation is
stronger, and of easier access at the same time. The result is a far more
extensive debasement of the characters of citizens.
Democratic republics extend the practice of currying favor with the many, and
they introduce it into a greater number of classes at once: this is one of the
most serious reproaches that can be addressed to them. In democratic States
organized on the principles of the American republics, this is more especially
the case, where the authority of the majority is so absolute and so irresistible
that a man must give up his rights as a citizen, and almost abjure his quality
as a human being, if te intends to stray from the track which it lays down.
In that immense crowd which throngs the avenues to power in the United States I
found very few men who displayed any of that manly candor and that masculine
independence of opinion which frequently distinguished the Americans in former
times, and which constitutes the leading feature in distinguished characters,
wheresoever they may be found. It seems, at first sight, as if all the minds of
the Americans were formed upon one model, so accurately do they correspond in
their manner of judging. A stranger does, indeed, sometimes meet with Americans
who dissent from these rigorous formularies; with men who deplore the defects of
the laws, the mutability and the ignorance of democracy; who even go so far as
to observe the evil tendencies which impair the national character, and to point
out such remedies as it might be possible to apply; but no one is there to hear
these things besides yourself, and you, to whom these secret reflections are
confided, are a stranger and a bird of passage. They are very ready to
communicate truths which are useless to you, but they continue to hold a
different language in public.
If ever these lines are read in America, I am well assured of two things: in the
first place, that all who peruse them will raise their voices to condemn me; and
in the second place, that very many of them will acquit me at the bottom of
their conscience.
I have heard of patriotism in the United States, and it is a virtue which may be
found among the people, but never among the leaders of the people. This may be
explained by analogy; despotism debases the oppressed much more than the
oppressor: in absolute monarchies the king has often great virtues, but the
courtiers are invariably servile. It is true that the American courtiers do not
say "Sire," or "Your Majesty"—a distinction without a difference. They are
forever talking of the natural intelligence of the populace they serve; they do
not debate the question as to which of the virtues of their master is
pre-eminently worthy of admiration, for they assure him that he possesses all
the virtues under heaven without having acquired them, or without caring to
acquire them; they do not give him their daughters and their wives to be raised
at his pleasure to the rank of his concubines, but, by sacrificing their
opinions, they prostitute themselves. Moralists and philosophers in America are
not obliged to conceal their opinions under the veil of allegory; but, before
they venture upon a harsh truth, they say, "We are aware that the people which
we are addressing is too superior to all the weaknesses of human nature to lose
the command of its temper for an instant; and we should not hold this language
if we were not speaking to men whom their virtues and their intelligence render
more worthy of freedom than all the rest of the world." It would have been
impossible for the sycophants of Louis XIV to flatter more dexterously. For my
part, I am persuaded that in all governments, whatever their nature may be,
servility will cower to force, and adulation will cling to power. The only means
of preventing men from degrading themselves is to invest no one with that
unlimited authority which is the surest method of debasing them.
The Greatest Dangers Of The American Republics Proceed From The Unlimited Power
Of The Majority
Democratic republics liable to perish from a misuse of their power, and not by
impotence—The Governments of the American republics are more centralized and
more energetic than those of the monarchies of Europe—Dangers resulting from
this—Opinions of Hamilton and Jefferson upon this point.
Governments usually fall a sacrifice to impotence or to tyranny. In the former
case their power escapes from them; it is wrested from their grasp in the
latter. Many observers, who have witnessed the anarchy of democratic States,
have imagined that the government of those States was naturally weak and
impotent. The truth is, that when once hostilities are begun between parties,
the government loses its control over society. But I do not think that a
democratic power is naturally without force or without resources: say, rather,
that it is almost always by the abuse of its force and the misemployment of its
resources that a democratic government fails. Anarchy is almost always produced
by its tyranny or its mistakes, but not by its want of strength.
It is important not to confound stability with force, or the greatness of a
thing with its duration. In democratic republics, the power which directs *e
society is not stable; for it often changes hands and assumes a new direction.
But whichever way it turns, its force is almost irresistible. The Governments of
the American republics appear to me to be as much centralized as those of the
absolute monarchies of Europe, and more energetic than they are. I do not,
therefore, imagine that they will perish from weakness. *f
e
[ This power may be centred in an assembly, in which case it will be strong
without being stable; or it may be centred in an individual, in which case it
will be less strong, but more stable.]
f
[ I presume that it is scarcely necessary to remind the reader here, as well as
throughout the remainder of this chapter, that I am speaking, not of the Federal
Government, but of the several governments of each State, which the majority
controls at its pleasure.]
If ever the free institutions of America are destroyed, that event may be
attributed to the unlimited authority of the majority, which may at some future
time urge the minorities to desperation, and oblige them to have recourse to
physical force. Anarchy will then be the result, but it will have been brought
about by despotism.
Mr. Hamilton expresses the same opinion in the "Federalist," No. 51. "It is of
great importance in a republic not only to guard the society against the
oppression of its rulers, but to guard one part of the society against the
injustice of the other part. Justice is the end of government. It is the end of
civil society. It ever has been, and ever will be, pursued until it be obtained,
or until liberty be lost in the pursuit. In a society, under the forms of which
the stronger faction can readily unite and oppress the weaker, anarchy may as
truly be said to reign as in a state of nature, where the weaker individual is
not secured against the violence of the stronger: and as in the latter state
even the stronger individuals are prompted by the uncertainty of their condition
to submit to a government which may protect the weak as well as themselves, so
in the former state will the more powerful factions be gradually induced by a
like motive to wish for a government which will protect all parties, the weaker
as well as the more powerful. It can be little doubted that, if the State of
Rhode Island was separated from the Confederacy and left to itself, the
insecurity of right under the popular form of government within such narrow
limits would be displayed by such reiterated oppressions of the factious
majorities, that some power altogether independent of the people would soon be
called for by the voice of the very factions whose misrule had proved the
necessity of it."
Jefferson has also thus expressed himself in a letter to Madison: *g "The
executive power in our Government is not the only, perhaps not even the
principal, object of my solicitude. The tyranny of the Legislature is really the
danger most to be feared, and will continue to be so for many years to come. The
tyranny of the executive power will come in its turn, but at a more distant
period." I am glad to cite the opinion of Jefferson upon this subject rather
than that of another, because I consider him to be the most powerful advocate
democracy has ever sent forth.
g
[ March 15, 1789.]
Chapter XVI: Causes Mitigating Tyranny In The United States—Part I
Chapter Summary
The national majority does not pretend to conduct all business—Is obliged to
employ the town and county magistrates to execute its supreme decisions.
I have already pointed out the distinction which is to be made between a
centralized government and a centralized administration. The former exists in
America, but the latter is nearly unknown there. If the directing power of the
American communities had both these instruments of government at its disposal,
and united the habit of executing its own commands to the right of commanding;
if, after having established the general principles of government, it descended
to the details of public business; and if, having regulated the great interests
of the country, it could penetrate into the privacy of individual interests,
freedom would soon be banished from the New World.
But in the United States the majority, which so frequently displays the tastes
and the propensities of a despot, is still destitute of the more perfect
instruments of tyranny. In the American republics the activity of the central
Government has never as yet been extended beyond a limited number of objects
sufficiently prominent to call forth its attention. The secondary affairs of
society have never been regulated by its authority, and nothing has hitherto
betrayed its desire of interfering in them. The majority is become more and more
absolute, but it has not increased the prerogatives of the central government;
those great prerogatives have been confined to a certain sphere; and although
the despotism of the majority may be galling upon one point, it cannot be said
to extend to all. However the predominant party in the nation may be carried
away by its passions, however ardent it may be in the pursuit of its projects,
it cannot oblige all the citizens to comply with its desires in the same manner
and at the same time throughout the country. When the central Government which
represents that majority has issued a decree, it must entrust the execution of
its will to agents, over whom it frequently has no control, and whom it cannot
perpetually direct. The townships, municipal bodies, and counties may therefore
be looked upon as concealed break-waters, which check or part the tide of
popular excitement. If an oppressive law were passed, the liberties of the
people would still be protected by the means by which that law would be put in
execution: the majority cannot descend to the details and (as I will venture to
style them) the puerilities of administrative tyranny. Nor does the people
entertain that full consciousness of its authority which would prompt it to
interfere in these matters; it knows the extent of its natural powers, but it is
unacquainted with the increased resources which the art of government might
furnish.
This point deserves attention, for if a democratic republic similar to that of
the United States were ever founded in a country where the power of a single
individual had previously subsisted, and the effects of a centralized
administration had sunk deep into the habits and the laws of the people, I do
not hesitate to assert, that in that country a more insufferable despotism would
prevail than any which now exists in the monarchical States of Europe, or indeed
than any which could be found on this side of the confines of Asia.
The Profession Of The Law In The United States Serves To Counterpoise The
Democracy
Utility of discriminating the natural propensities of the members of the legal
profession—These men called upon to act a prominent part in future society—In
what manner the peculiar pursuits of lawyers give an aristocratic turn to their
ideas—Accidental causes which may check this tendency—Ease with which the
aristocracy coalesces with legal men—Use of lawyers to a despot—The profession
of the law constitutes the only aristocratic element with which the natural
elements of democracy will combine—Peculiar causes which tend to give an
aristocratic turn of mind to the English and American lawyers—The aristocracy of
America is on the bench and at the bar—Influence of lawyers upon American
society—Their peculiar magisterial habits affect the legislature, the
administration, and even the people.
In visiting the Americans and in studying their laws we perceive that the
authority they have entrusted to members of the legal profession, and the
influence which these individuals exercise in the Government, is the most
powerful existing security against the excesses of democracy. This effect seems
to me to result from a general cause which it is useful to investigate, since it
may produce analogous consequences elsewhere.
The members of the legal profession have taken an important part in all the
vicissitudes of political society in Europe during the last five hundred years.
At one time they have been the instruments of those who were invested with
political authority, and at another they have succeeded in converting political
authorities into their instrument. In the Middle Ages they afforded a powerful
support to the Crown, and since that period they have exerted themselves to the
utmost to limit the royal prerogative. In England they have contracted a close
alliance with the aristocracy; in France they have proved to be the most
dangerous enemies of that class. It is my object to inquire whether, under all
these circumstances, the members of the legal profession have been swayed by
sudden and momentary impulses; or whether they have been impelled by principles
which are inherent in their pursuits, and which will always recur in history. I
am incited to this investigation by reflecting that this particular class of men
will most likely play a prominent part in that order of things to which the
events of our time are giving birth.
Men who have more especially devoted themselves to legal pursuits derive from
those occupations certain habits of order, a taste for formalities, and a kind
of instinctive regard for the regular connection of ideas, which naturally
render them very hostile to the revolutionary spirit and the unreflecting
passions of the multitude.
The special information which lawyers derive from their studies ensures them a
separate station in society, and they constitute a sort of privileged body in
the scale of intelligence. This notion of their superiority perpetually recurs
to them in the practice of their profession: they are the masters of a science
which is necessary, but which is not very generally known; they serve as
arbiters between the citizens; and the habit of directing the blind passions of
parties in litigation to their purpose inspires them with a certain contempt for
the judgment of the multitude. To this it may be added that they naturally
constitute a body, not by any previous understanding, or by an agreement which
directs them to a common end; but the analogy of their studies and the
uniformity of their proceedings connect their minds together, as much as a
common interest could combine their endeavors.
A portion of the tastes and of the habits of the aristocracy may consequently be
discovered in the characters of men in the profession of the law. They
participate in the same instinctive love of order and of formalities; and they
entertain the same repugnance to the actions of the multitude, and the same
secret contempt of the government of the people. I do not mean to say that the
natural propensities of lawyers are sufficiently strong to sway them
irresistibly; for they, like most other men, are governed by their private
interests and the advantages of the moment.
In a state of society in which the members of the legal profession are prevented
from holding that rank in the political world which they enjoy in private life,
we may rest assured that they will be the foremost agents of revolution. But it
must then be inquired whether the cause which induces them to innovate and to
destroy is accidental, or whether it belongs to some lasting purpose which they
entertain. It is true that lawyers mainly contributed to the overthrow of the
French monarchy in 1789; but it remains to be seen whether they acted thus
because they had studied the laws, or because they were prohibited from
co-operating in the work of legislation.
Five hundred years ago the English nobles headed the people, and spoke in its
name; at the present time the aristocracy supports the throne, and defends the
royal prerogative. But aristocracy has, notwithstanding this, its peculiar
instincts and propensities. We must be careful not to confound isolated members
of a body with the body itself. In all free governments, of whatsoever form they
may be, members of the legal profession will be found at the head of all
parties. The same remark is also applicable to the aristocracy; for almost all
the democratic convulsions which have agitated the world have been directed by
nobles.
A privileged body can never satisfy the ambition of all its members; it has
always more talents and more passions to content and to employ than it can find
places; so that a considerable number of individuals are usually to be met with
who are inclined to attack those very privileges which they find it impossible
to turn to their own account.
I do not, then, assert that all the members of the legal profession are at all
times the friends of order and the opponents of innovation, but merely that most
of them usually are so. In a community in which lawyers are allowed to occupy,
without opposition, that high station which naturally belongs to them, their
general spirit will be eminently conservative and anti-democratic. When an
aristocracy excludes the leaders of that profession from its ranks, it excites
enemies which are the more formidable to its security as they are independent of
the nobility by their industrious pursuits; and they feel themselves to be its
equal in point of intelligence, although they enjoy less opulence and less
power. But whenever an aristocracy consents to impart some of its privileges to
these same individuals, the two classes coalesce very readily, and assume, as it
were, the consistency of a single order of family interests.
I am, in like manner, inclined to believe that a monarch will always be able to
convert legal practitioners into the most serviceable instruments of his
authority. There is a far greater affinity between this class of individuals and
the executive power than there is between them and the people; just as there is
a greater natural affinity between the nobles and the monarch than between the
nobles and the people, although the higher orders of society have occasionally
resisted the prerogative of the Crown in concert with the lower classes.
Lawyers are attached to public order beyond every other consideration, and the
best security of public order is authority. It must not be forgotten that, if
they prize the free institutions of their country much, they nevertheless value
the legality of those institutions far more: they are less afraid of tyranny
than of arbitrary power; and provided that the legislature take upon itself to
deprive men of their independence, they are not dissatisfied.
I am therefore convinced that the prince who, in presence of an encroaching
democracy, should endeavor to impair the judicial authority in his dominions,
and to diminish the political influence of lawyers, would commit a great
mistake. He would let slip the substance of authority to grasp at the shadow. He
would act more wisely in introducing men connected with the law into the
government; and if he entrusted them with the conduct of a despotic power,
bearing some marks of violence, that power would most likely assume the external
features of justice and of legality in their hands.
The government of democracy is favorable to the political power of lawyers; for
when the wealthy, the noble, and the prince are excluded from the government,
they are sure to occupy the highest stations, in their own right, as it were,
since they are the only men of information and sagacity, beyond the sphere of
the people, who can be the object of the popular choice. If, then, they are led
by their tastes to combine with the aristocracy and to support the Crown, they
are naturally brought into contact with the people by their interests. They like
the government of democracy, without participating in its propensities and
without imitating its weaknesses; whence they derive a twofold authority, from
it and over it. The people in democratic states does not mistrust the members of
the legal profession, because it is well known that they are interested in
serving the popular cause; and it listens to them without irritation, because it
does not attribute to them any sinister designs. The object of lawyers is not,
indeed, to overthrow the institutions of democracy, but they constantly endeavor
to give it an impulse which diverts it from its real tendency, by means which
are foreign to its nature. Lawyers belong to the people by birth and interest,
to the aristocracy by habit and by taste, and they may be looked upon as the
natural bond and connecting link of the two great classes of society.
The profession of the law is the only aristocratic element which can be
amalgamated without violence with the natural elements of democracy, and which
can be advantageously and permanently combined with them. I am not unacquainted
with the defects which are inherent in the character of that body of men; but
without this admixture of lawyer-like sobriety with the democratic principle, I
question whether democratic institutions could long be maintained, and I cannot
believe that a republic could subsist at the present time if the influence of
lawyers in public business did not increase in proportion to the power of the
people.
This aristocratic character, which I hold to be common to the legal profession,
is much more distinctly marked in the United States and in England than in any
other country. This proceeds not only from the legal studies of the English and
American lawyers, but from the nature of the legislation, and the position which
those persons occupy in the two countries. The English and the Americans have
retained the law of precedents; that is to say, they continue to found their
legal opinions and the decisions of their courts upon the opinions and the
decisions of their forefathers. In the mind of an English or American lawyer a
taste and a reverence for what is old is almost always united to a love of
regular and lawful proceedings.
This predisposition has another effect upon the character of the legal
profession and upon the general course of society. The English and American
lawyers investigate what has been done; the French advocate inquires what should
have been done; the former produce precedents, the latter reasons. A French
observer is surprised to hear how often an English dr an American lawyer quotes
the opinions of others, and how little he alludes to his own; whilst the reverse
occurs in France. There the most trifling litigation is never conducted without
the introduction of an entire system of ideas peculiar to the counsel employed;
and the fundamental principles of law are discussed in order to obtain a perch
of land by the decision of the court. This abnegation of his own opinion, and
this implicit deference to the opinion of his forefathers, which are common to
the English and American lawyer, this subjection of thought which he is obliged
to profess, necessarily give him more timid habits and more sluggish
inclinations in England and America than in France.
The French codes are often difficult of comprehension, but they can be read by
every one; nothing, on the other hand, can be more impenetrable to the
uninitiated than a legislation founded upon precedents. The indispensable want
of legal assistance which is felt in England and in the United States, and the
high opinion which is generally entertained of the ability of the legal
profession, tend to separate it more and more from the people, and to place it
in a distinct class. The French lawyer is simply a man extensively acquainted
with the statutes of his country; but the English or American lawyer resembles
the hierophants of Egypt, for, like them, he is the sole interpreter of an
occult science.
The station which lawyers occupy in England and America exercises no less an
influence upon their habits and their opinions. The English aristocracy, which
has taken care to attract to its sphere whatever is at all analogous to itself,
has conferred a high degree of importance and of authority upon the members of
the legal profession. In English society lawyers do not occupy the first rank,
but they are contented with the station assigned to them; they constitute, as it
were, the younger branch of the English aristocracy, and they are attached to
their elder brothers, although they do not enjoy all their privileges. The
English lawyers consequently mingle the taste and the ideas of the aristocratic
circles in which they move with the aristocratic interests of their profession.
And indeed the lawyer-like character which I am endeavoring to depict is most
distinctly to be met with in England: there laws are esteemed not so much
because they are good as because they are old; and if it be necessary to modify
them in any respect, or to adapt them the changes which time operates in
society, recourse is had to the most inconceivable contrivances in order to
uphold the traditionary fabric, and to maintain that nothing has been done which
does not square with the intentions and complete the labors of former
generations. The very individuals who conduct these changes disclaim all
intention of innovation, and they had rather resort to absurd expedients than
plead guilty to so great a crime. This spirit appertains more especially to the
English lawyers; they seem indifferent to the real meaning of what they treat,
and they direct all their attention to the letter, seeming inclined to infringe
the rules of common sense and of humanity rather than to swerve one title from
the law. The English legislation may be compared to the stock of an old tree,
upon which lawyers have engrafted the most various shoots, with the hope that,
although their fruits may differ, their foliage at least will be confounded with
the venerable trunk which supports them all.
In America there are no nobles or men of letters, and the people is apt to
mistrust the wealthy; lawyers consequently form the highest political class, and
the most cultivated circle of society. They have therefore nothing to gain by
innovation, which adds a conservative interest to their natural taste for public
order. If I were asked where I place the American aristocracy, I should reply
without hesitation that it is not composed of the rich, who are united together
by no common tie, but that it occupies the judicial bench and the bar.
The more we reflect upon all that occurs in the United States the more shall we
be persuaded that the lawyers as a body form the most powerful, if not the only,
counterpoise to the democratic element. In that country we perceive how
eminently the legal profession is qualified by its powers, and even by its
defects, to neutralize the vices which are inherent in popular government. When
the American people is intoxicated by passion, or carried away by the
impetuosity of its ideas, it is checked and stopped by the almost invisible
influence of its legal counsellors, who secretly oppose their aristocratic
propensities to its democratic instincts, their superstitious attachment to what
is antique to its love of novelty, their narrow views to its immense designs,
and their habitual procrastination to its ardent impatience.
The courts of justice are the most visible organs by which the legal profession
is enabled to control the democracy. The judge is a lawyer, who, independently
of the taste for regularity and order which he has contracted in the study of
legislation, derives an additional love of stability from his own inalienable
functions. His legal attainments have already raised him to a distinguished rank
amongst his fellow-citizens; his political power completes the distinction of
his station, and gives him the inclinations natural to privileged classes.
Armed with the power of declaring the laws to be unconstitutional, *a the
American magistrate perpetually interferes in political affairs. He cannot force
the people to make laws, but at least he can oblige it not to disobey its own
enactments; or to act inconsistently with its own principles. I am aware that a
secret tendency to diminish the judicial power exists in the United States, and
by most of the constitutions of the several States the Government can, upon the
demand of the two houses of the legislature, remove the judges from their
station. By some other constitutions the members of the tribunals are elected,
and they are even subjected to frequent re-elections. I venture to predict that
these innovations will sooner or later be attended with fatal consequences, and
that it will be found out at some future period that the attack which is made
upon the judicial power has affected the democratic republic itself.
a
[ See chapter VI. on the "Judicial Power in the United States."]
It must not, however, be supposed that the legal spirit of which I have been
speaking has been confined, in the United States, to the courts of justice; it
extends far beyond them. As the lawyers constitute the only enlightened class
which the people does not mistrust, they are naturally called upon to occupy
most of the public stations. They fill the legislative assemblies, and they
conduct the administration; they consequently exercise a powerful influence upon
the formation of the law, and upon its execution. The lawyers are, however,
obliged to yield to the current of public opinion, which is too strong for them
to resist it, but it is easy to find indications of what their conduct would be
if they were free to act as they chose. The Americans, who have made such
copious innovations in their political legislation, have introduced very sparing
alterations in their civil laws, and that with great difficulty, although those
laws are frequently repugnant to their social condition. The reason of this is,
that in matters of civil law the majority is obliged to defer to the authority
of the legal profession, and that the American lawyers are disinclined to
innovate when they are left to their own choice.
It is curious for a Frenchman, accustomed to a very different state of things,
to hear the perpetual complaints which are made in the United States against the
stationary propensities of legal men, and their prejudices in favor of existing
institutions.
The influence of the legal habits which are common in America extends beyond the
limits I have just pointed out. Scarcely any question arises in the United
States which does not become, sooner or later, a subject of judicial debate;
hence all parties are obliged to borrow the ideas, and even the language, usual
in judicial proceedings in their daily controversies. As most public men are, or
have been, legal practitioners, they introduce the customs and technicalities of
their profession into the affairs of the country. The jury extends this habitude
to all classes. The language of the law thus becomes, in some measure, a vulgar
tongue; the spirit of the law, which is produced in the schools and courts of
justice, gradually penetrates beyond their walls into the bosom of society,
where it descends to the lowest classes, so that the whole people contracts the
habits and the tastes of the magistrate. The lawyers of the United States form a
party which is but little feared and scarcely perceived, which has no badge
peculiar to itself, which adapts itself with great flexibility to the exigencies
of the time, and accommodates itself to all the movements of the social body;
but this party extends over the whole community, and it penetrates into all
classes of society; it acts upon the country imperceptibly, but it finally
fashions it to suit its purposes.
Chapter XVI: Causes Mitigating Tyranny In The United States—Part II
Trial By Jury In The United States Considered As A Political Institution
Trial by jury, which is one of the instruments of the sovereignty of the people,
deserves to be compared with the other laws which establish that
sovereignty—Composition of the jury in the United States—Effect of trial by jury
upon the national character—It educates the people—It tends to establish the
authority of the magistrates and to extend a knowledge of law among the people.
Since I have been led by my subject to recur to the administration of justice in
the United States, I will not pass over this point without adverting to the
institution of the jury. Trial by jury may be considered in two separate points
of view, as a judicial and as a political institution. If it entered into my
present purpose to inquire how far trial by jury (more especially in civil
cases) contributes to insure the best administration of justice, I admit that
its utility might be contested. As the jury was first introduced at a time when
society was in an uncivilized state, and when courts of justice were merely
called upon to decide on the evidence of facts, it is not an easy task to adapt
it to the wants of a highly civilized community when the mutual relations of men
are multiplied to a surprising extent, and have assumed the enlightened and
intellectual character of the age. *b
b
[ The investigation of trial by jury as a judicial institution, and the
appreciation of its effects in the United States, together with the advantages
the Americans have derived from it, would suffice to form a book, and a book
upon a very useful and curious subject. The State of Louisiana would in
particular afford the curious phenomenon of a French and English legislation, as
well as a French and English population, which are gradually combining with each
other. See the "Digeste des Lois de la Louisiane," in two volumes; and the
"Traite sur les Regles des Actions civiles," printed in French and English at
New Orleans in 1830.]
My present object is to consider the jury as a political institution, and any
other course would divert me from my subject. Of trial by jury, considered as a
judicial institution, I shall here say but very few words. When the English
adopted trial by jury they were a semi-barbarous people; they are become, in
course of time, one of the most enlightened nations of the earth; and their
attachment to this institution seems to have increased with their increasing
cultivation. They soon spread beyond their insular boundaries to every corner of
the habitable globe; some have formed colonies, others independent states; the
mother-country has maintained its monarchical constitution; many of its
offspring have founded powerful republics; but wherever the English have been
they have boasted of the privilege of trial by jury. *c They have established
it, or hastened to re-establish it, in all their settlements. A judicial
institution which obtains the suffrages of a great people for so long a series
of ages, which is zealously renewed at every epoch of civilization, in all the
climates of the earth and under every form of human government, cannot be
contrary to the spirit of justice. *d
c
[ All the English and American jurists are unanimous upon this head. Mr. Story,
judge of the Supreme Court of the United States, speaks, in his "Treatise on the
Federal Constitution," of the advantages of trial by jury in civil cases:—"The
inestimable privilege of a trial by jury in civil cases—a privilege scarcely
inferior to that in criminal cases, which is counted by all persons to be
essential to political and civil liberty. . . ." (Story, book iii., chap.
xxxviii.)]
d
[ If it were our province to point out the utility of the jury as a judicial
institution in this place, much might be said, and the following arguments might
be brought forward amongst others:—
By introducing the jury into the business of the courts you are enabled to
diminish the number of judges, which is a very great advantage. When judges are
very numerous, death is perpetually thinning the ranks of the judicial
functionaries, and laying places vacant for newcomers. The ambition of the
magistrates is therefore continually excited, and they are naturally made
dependent upon the will of the majority, or the individual who fills up the
vacant appointments; the officers of the court then rise like the officers of an
army. This state of things is entirely contrary to the sound administration of
justice, and to the intentions of the legislator. The office of a judge is made
inalienable in order that he may remain independent: but of what advantage is it
that his independence should be protected if he be tempted to sacrifice it of
his own accord? When judges are very numerous many of them must necessarily be
incapable of performing their important duties, for a great magistrate is a man
of no common powers; and I am inclined to believe that a half-enlightened
tribunal is the worst of all instruments for attaining those objects which it is
the purpose of courts of justice to accomplish. For my own part, I had rather
submit the decision of a case to ignorant jurors directed by a skilful judge
than to judges a majority of whom are imperfectly acquainted with jurisprudence
and with the laws.]
I turn, however, from this part of the subject. To look upon the jury as a mere
judicial institution is to confine our attention to a very narrow view of it;
for however great its influence may be upon the decisions of the law courts,
that influence is very subordinate to the powerful effects which it produces on
the destinies of the community at large. The jury is above all a political
institution, and it must be regarded in this light in order to be duly
appreciated.
By the jury I mean a certain number of citizens chosen indiscriminately, and
invested with a temporary right of judging. Trial by jury, as applied to the
repression of crime, appears to me to introduce an eminently republican element
into the government upon the following grounds:—
The institution of the jury may be aristocratic or democratic, according to the
class of society from which the jurors are selected; but it always preserves its
republican character, inasmuch as it places the real direction of society in the
hands of the governed, or of a portion of the governed, instead of leaving it
under the authority of the Government. Force is never more than a transient
element of success; and after force comes the notion of right. A government
which should only be able to crush its enemies upon a field of battle would very
soon be destroyed. The true sanction of political laws is to be found in penal
legislation, and if that sanction be wanting the law will sooner or later lose
its cogency. He who punishes infractions of the law is therefore the real master
of society. Now the institution of the jury raises the people itself, or at
least a class of citizens, to the bench of judicial authority. The institution
of the jury consequently invests the people, or that class of citizens, with the
direction of society. *e
e
[ An important remark must, however, be made. Trial by jury does unquestionably
invest the people with a general control over the actions of citizens, but it
does not furnish means of exercising this control in all cases, or with an
absolute authority. When an absolute monarch has the right of trying offences by
his representatives, the fate of the prisoner is, as it were, decided
beforehand. But even if the people were predisposed to convict, the composition
and the non-responsibility of the jury would still afford some chances favorable
to the protection of innocence.]
In England the jury is returned from the aristocratic portion of the nation; *f
the aristocracy makes the laws, applies the laws, and punishes all infractions
of the laws; everything is established upon a consistent footing, and England
may with truth be said to constitute an aristocratic republic. In the United
States the same system is applied to the whole people. Every American citizen is
qualified to be an elector, a juror, and is eligible to office. *g The system of
the jury, as it is understood in America, appears to me to be as direct and as
extreme a consequence of the sovereignty of the people as universal suffrage.
These institutions are two instruments of equal power, which contribute to the
supremacy of the majority. All the sovereigns who have chosen to govern by their
own authority, and to direct society instead of obeying its directions, have
destroyed or enfeebled the institution of the jury. The monarchs of the House of
Tudor sent to prison jurors who refused to convict, and Napoleon caused them to
be returned by his agents.
f
[ [This may be true to some extent of special juries, but not of common juries.
The author seems not to have been aware that the qualifications of jurors in
England vary exceedingly.]]
g
[ See Appendix, Q.]
However clear most of these truths may seem to be, they do not command universal
assent, and in France, at least, the institution of trial by jury is still very
imperfectly understood. If the question arises as to the proper qualification of
jurors, it is confined to a discussion of the intelligence and knowledge of the
citizens who may be returned, as if the jury was merely a judicial institution.
This appears to me to be the least part of the subject. The jury is
pre-eminently a political institution; it must be regarded as one form of the
sovereignty of the people; when that sovereignty is repudiated, it must be
rejected, or it must be adapted to the laws by which that sovereignty is
established. The jury is that portion of the nation to which the execution of
the laws is entrusted, as the Houses of Parliament constitute that part of the
nation which makes the laws; and in order that society may be governed with
consistency and uniformity, the list of citizens qualified to serve on juries
must increase and diminish with the list of electors. This I hold to be the
point of view most worthy of the attention of the legislator, and all that
remains is merely accessory.
I am so entirely convinced that the jury is pre-eminently a political
institution that I still consider it in this light when it is applied in civil
causes. Laws are always unstable unless they are founded upon the manners of a
nation; manners are the only durable and resisting power in a people. When the
jury is reserved for criminal offences, the people only witnesses its occasional
action in certain particular cases; the ordinary course of life goes on without
its interference, and it is considered as an instrument, but not as the only
instrument, of obtaining justice. This is true a fortiori when the jury is only
applied to certain criminal causes.
When, on the contrary, the influence of the jury is extended to civil causes,
its application is constantly palpable; it affects all the interests of the
community; everyone co-operates in its work: it thus penetrates into all the
usages of life, it fashions the human mind to its peculiar forms, and is
gradually associated with the idea of justice itself.
The institution of the jury, if confined to criminal causes, is always in
danger, but when once it is introduced into civil proceedings it defies the
aggressions of time and of man. If it had been as easy to remove the jury from
the manners as from the laws of England, it would have perished under Henry
VIII, and Elizabeth, and the civil jury did in reality, at that period, save the
liberties of the country. In whatever manner the jury be applied, it cannot fail
to exercise a powerful influence upon the national character; but this influence
is prodigiously increased when it is introduced into civil causes. The jury, and
more especially the jury in civil cases, serves to communicate the spirit of the
judges to the minds of all the citizens; and this spirit, with the habits which
attend it, is the soundest preparation for free institutions. It imbues all
classes with a respect for the thing judged, and with the notion of right. If
these two elements be removed, the love of independence is reduced to a mere
destructive passion. It teaches men to practice equity, every man learns to
judge his neighbor as he would himself be judged; and this is especially true of
the jury in civil causes, for, whilst the number of persons who have reason to
apprehend a criminal prosecution is small, every one is liable to have a civil
action brought against him. The jury teaches every man not to recoil before the
responsibility of his own actions, and impresses him with that manly confidence
without which political virtue cannot exist. It invests each citizen with a kind
of magistracy, it makes them all feel the duties which they are bound to
discharge towards society, and the part which they take in the Government. By
obliging men to turn their attention to affairs which are not exclusively their
own, it rubs off that individual egotism which is the rust of society.
The jury contributes most powerfully to form the judgement and to increase the
natural intelligence of a people, and this is, in my opinion, its greatest
advantage. It may be regarded as a gratuitous public school ever open, in which
every juror learns to exercise his rights, enters into daily communication with
the most learned and enlightened members of the upper classes, and becomes
practically acquainted with the laws of his country, which are brought within
the reach of his capacity by the efforts of the bar, the advice of the judge,
and even by the passions of the parties. I think that the practical intelligence
and political good sense of the Americans are mainly attributable to the long
use which they have made of the jury in civil causes. I do not know whether the
jury is useful to those who are in litigation; but I am certain it is highly
beneficial to those who decide the litigation; and I look upon it as one of the
most efficacious means for the education of the people which society can employ.
What I have hitherto said applies to all nations, but the remark I am now about
to make is peculiar to the Americans and to democratic peoples. I have already
observed that in democracies the members of the legal profession and the
magistrates constitute the only aristocratic body which can check the
irregularities of the people. This aristocracy is invested with no physical
power, but it exercises its conservative influence upon the minds of men, and
the most abundant source of its authority is the institution of the civil jury.
In criminal causes, when society is armed against a single individual, the jury
is apt to look upon the judge as the passive instrument of social power, and to
mistrust his advice. Moreover, criminal causes are entirely founded upon the
evidence of facts which common sense can readily appreciate; upon this ground
the judge and the jury are equal. Such, however, is not the case in civil
causes; then the judge appears as a disinterested arbiter between the
conflicting passions of the parties. The jurors look up to him with confidence
and listen to him with respect, for in this instance their intelligence is
completely under the control of his learning. It is the judge who sums up the
various arguments with which their memory has been wearied out, and who guides
them through the devious course of the proceedings; he points their attention to
the exact question of fact which they are called upon to solve, and he puts the
answer to the question of law into their mouths. His influence upon their
verdict is almost unlimited.
If I am called upon to explain why I am but little moved by the arguments
derived from the ignorance of jurors in civil causes, I reply, that in these
proceedings, whenever the question to be solved is not a mere question of fact,
the jury has only the semblance of a judicial body. The jury sanctions the
decision of the judge, they by the authority of society which they represent,
and he by that of reason and of law. *h
h
[ See Appendix, R.]
In England and in America the judges exercise an influence upon criminal trials
which the French judges have never possessed. The reason of this difference may
easily be discovered; the English and American magistrates establish their
authority in civil causes, and only transfer it afterwards to tribunals of
another kind, where that authority was not acquired. In some cases (and they are
frequently the most important ones) the American judges have the right of
deciding causes alone. *i Upon these occasions they are accidentally placed in
the position which the French judges habitually occupy, but they are invested
with far more power than the latter; they are still surrounded by the
reminiscence of the jury, and their judgment has almost as much authority as the
voice of the community at large, represented by that institution. Their
influence extends beyond the limits of the courts; in the recreations of private
life as well as in the turmoil of public business, abroad and in the legislative
assemblies, the American judge is constantly surrounded by men who are
accustomed to regard his intelligence as superior to their own, and after having
exercised his power in the decision of causes, he continues to influence the
habits of thought and the characters of the individuals who took a part in his
judgment.
i
[ The Federal judges decide upon their own authority almost all the questions
most important to the country.]
The jury, then, which seems to restrict the rights of magistracy, does in
reality consolidate its power, and in no country are the judges so powerful as
there, where the people partakes their privileges. It is more especially by
means of the jury in civil causes that the American magistrates imbue all
classes of society with the spirit of their profession. Thus the jury, which is
the most energetic means of making the people rule, is also the most efficacious
means of teaching it to rule well.
Chapter XVII: Principal Causes Maintaining The Democratic Republic—Part I
Principal Causes Which Tend To Maintain The Democratic Republic In The United
States
A democratic republic subsists in the United States, and the principal object of
this book has been to account for the fact of its existence. Several of the
causes which contribute to maintain the institutions of America have been
involuntarily passed by or only hinted at as I was borne along by my subject.
Others I have been unable to discuss, and those on which I have dwelt most are,
as it were, buried in the details of the former parts of this work. I think,
therefore, that before I proceed to speak of the future, I cannot do better than
collect within a small compass the reasons which best explain the present. In
this retrospective chapter I shall be succinct, for I shall take care to remind
the reader very summarily of what he already knows; and I shall only select the
most prominent of those facts which I have not yet pointed out.
All the causes which contribute to the maintenance of the democratic republic in
the United States are reducible to three heads:—
I. The peculiar and accidental situation in which Providence has placed the
Americans.
II. The laws.
III. The manners and customs of the people.
Accidental Or Providential Causes Which Contribute To The Maintenance Of The
Democratic Republic In The United States The Union has no neighbors—No
metropolis—The Americans have had the chances of birth in their favor—America an
empty country—How this circumstance contributes powerfully to the maintenance of
the democratic republic in America—How the American wilds are peopled—Avidity of
the Anglo-Americans in taking possession of the solitudes of the New
World—Influence of physical prosperity upon the political opinions of the
Americans.
A thousand circumstances, independent of the will of man, concur to facilitate
the maintenance of a democratic republic in the United States. Some of these
peculiarities are known, the others may easily be pointed out; but I shall
confine myself to the most prominent amongst them.
The Americans have no neighbors, and consequently they have no great wars, or
financial crises, or inroads, or conquest to dread; they require neither great
taxes, nor great armies, nor great generals; and they have nothing to fear from
a scourge which is more formidable to republics than all these evils combined,
namely, military glory. It is impossible to deny the inconceivable influence
which military glory exercises upon the spirit of a nation. General Jackson,
whom the Americans have twice elected to the head of their Government, is a man
of a violent temper and mediocre talents; no one circumstance in the whole
course of his career ever proved that he is qualified to govern a free people,
and indeed the majority of the enlightened classes of the Union has always been
opposed to him. But he was raised to the Presidency, and has been maintained in
that lofty station, solely by the recollection of a victory which he gained
twenty years ago under the walls of New Orleans, a victory which was, however, a
very ordinary achievement, and which could only be remembered in a country where
battles are rare. Now the people which is thus carried away by the illusions of
glory is unquestionably the most cold and calculating, the most unmilitary (if I
may use the expression), and the most prosaic of all the peoples of the earth.
America has no great capital *a city, whose influence is directly or indirectly
felt over the whole extent of the country, which I hold to be one of the first
causes of the maintenance of republican institutions in the United States. In
cities men cannot be prevented from concerting together, and from awakening a
mutual excitement which prompts sudden and passionate resolutions. Cities may be
looked upon as large assemblies, of which all the inhabitants are members; their
populace exercises a prodigious influence upon the magistrates, and frequently
executes its own wishes without their intervention.
a
[ The United States have no metropolis, but they already contain several very
large cities. Philadelphia reckoned 161,000 inhabitants and New York 202,000 in
the year 1830. The lower orders which inhabit these cities constitute a rabble
even more formidable than the populace of European towns. They consist of freed
blacks in the first place, who are condemned by the laws and by public opinion
to a hereditary state of misery and degradation. They also contain a multitude
of Europeans who have been driven to the shores of the New World by their
misfortunes or their misconduct; and these men inoculate the United States with
all our vices, without bringing with them any of those interests which
counteract their baneful influence. As inhabitants of a country where they have
no civil rights, they are ready to turn all the passions which agitate the
community to their own advantage; thus, within the last few months serious riots
have broken out in Philadelphia and in New York. Disturbances of this kind are
unknown in the rest of the country, which is nowise alarmed by them, because the
population of the cities has hitherto exercised neither power nor influence over
the rural districts. Nevertheless, I look upon the size of certain American
cities, and especially on the nature of their population, as a real danger which
threatens the future security of the democratic republics of the New World; and
I venture to predict that they will perish from this circumstance unless the
government succeeds in creating an armed force, which, whilst it remains under
the control of the majority of the nation, will be independent of the town
population, and able to repress its excesses.
[The population of the city of New York had risen, in 1870, to 942,292, and that
of Philadelphia to 674,022. Brooklyn, which may be said to form part of New York
city, has a population of 396,099, in addition to that of New York. The frequent
disturbances in the great cities of America, and the excessive corruption of
their local governments—over which there is no effectual control—are amongst the
greatest evils and dangers of the country.]]
To subject the provinces to the metropolis is therefore not only to place the
destiny of the empire in the hands of a portion of the community, which may be
reprobated as unjust, but to place it in the hands of a populace acting under
its own impulses, which must be avoided as dangerous. The preponderance of
capital cities is therefore a serious blow upon the representative system, and
it exposes modern republics to the same defect as the republics of antiquity,
which all perished from not having been acquainted with that form of government.
It would be easy for me to adduce a great number of secondary causes which have
contributed to establish, and which concur to maintain, the democratic republic
of the United States. But I discern two principal circumstances amongst these
favorable elements, which I hasten to point out. I have already observed that
the origin of the American settlements may be looked upon as the first and most
efficacious cause to which the present prosperity of the United States may be
attributed. The Americans had the chances of birth in their favor, and their
forefathers imported that equality of conditions into the country whence the
democratic republic has very naturally taken its rise. Nor was this all they
did; for besides this republican condition of society, the early settler
bequeathed to their descendants those customs, manners, and opinions which
contribute most to the success of a republican form of government. When I
reflect upon the consequences of this primary circumstance, methinks I see the
destiny of America embodied in the first Puritan who landed on those shores,
just as the human race was represented by the first man.
The chief circumstance which has favored the establishment and the maintenance
of a democratic republic in the United States is the nature of the territory
which the American inhabit. Their ancestors gave them the love of equality and
of freedom, but God himself gave them the means of remaining equal and free, by
placing them upon a boundless continent, which is open to their exertions.
General prosperity is favorable to the stability of all governments, but more
particularly of a democratic constitution, which depends upon the dispositions
of the majority, and more particularly of that portion of the community which is
most exposed to feel the pressure of want. When the people rules, it must be
rendered happy, or it will overturn the State, and misery is apt to stimulate it
to those excesses to which ambition rouses kings. The physical causes,
independent of the laws, which contribute to promote general prosperity, are
more numerous in America than they have ever been in any other country in the
world, at any other period of history. In the United States not only is
legislation democratic, but nature herself favors the cause of the people.
In what part of human tradition can be found anything at all similar to that
which is occurring under our eyes in North America? The celebrated communities
of antiquity were all founded in the midst of hostile nations, which they were
obliged to subjugate before they could flourish in their place. Even the moderns
have found, in some parts of South America, vast regions inhabited by a people
of inferior civilization, but which occupied and cultivated the soil. To found
their new states it was necessary to extirpate or to subdue a numerous
population, until civilization has been made to blush for their success. But
North America was only inhabited by wandering tribes, who took no thought of the
natural riches of the soil, and that vast country was still, properly speaking,
an empty continent, a desert land awaiting its inhabitants.
Everything is extraordinary in America, the social condition of the inhabitants,
as well as the laws; but the soil upon which these institutions are founded is
more extraordinary than all the rest. When man was first placed upon the earth
by the Creator, the earth was inexhaustible in its youth, but man was weak and
ignorant; and when he had learned to explore the treasures which it contained,
hosts of his fellow creatures covered its surface, and he was obliged to earn an
asylum for repose and for freedom by the sword. At that same period North
America was discovered, as if it had been kept in reserve by the Deity, and had
just risen from beneath the waters of the deluge.
That continent still presents, as it did in the primeval time, rivers which rise
from never-failing sources, green and moist solitudes, and fields which the
ploughshare of the husbandman has never turned. In this state it is offered to
man, not in the barbarous and isolated condition of the early ages, but to a
being who is already in possession of the most potent secrets of the natural
world, who is united to his fellow-men, and instructed by the experience of
fifty centuries. At this very time thirteen millions of civilized Europeans are
peaceably spreading over those fertile plains, with whose resources and whose
extent they are not yet themselves accurately acquainted. Three or four thousand
soldiers drive the wandering races of the aborigines before them; these are
followed by the pioneers, who pierce the woods, scare off the beasts of prey,
explore the courses of the inland streams, and make ready the triumphal
procession of civilization across the waste.
The favorable influence of the temporal prosperity of America upon the
institutions of that country has been so often described by others, and adverted
to by myself, that I shall not enlarge upon it beyond the addition of a few
facts. An erroneous notion is generally entertained that the deserts of America
are peopled by European emigrants, who annually disembark upon the coasts of the
New World, whilst the American population increases and multiplies upon the soil
which its forefathers tilled. The European settler, however, usually arrives in
the United States without friends, and sometimes without resources; in order to
subsist he is obliged to work for hire, and he rarely proceeds beyond that belt
of industrious population which adjoins the ocean. The desert cannot be explored
without capital or credit; and the body must be accustomed to the rigors of a
new climate before it can be exposed to the chances of forest life. It is the
Americans themselves who daily quit the spots which gave them birth to acquire
extensive domains in a remote country. Thus the European leaves his cottage for
the trans-Atlantic shores; and the American, who is born on that very coast,
plunges in his turn into the wilds of Central America. This double emigration is
incessant; it begins in the remotest parts of Europe, it crosses the Atlantic
Ocean, and it advances over the solitudes of the New World. Millions of men are
marching at once towards the same horizon; their language, their religion, their
manners differ, their object is the same. The gifts of fortune are promised in
the West, and to the West they bend their course. *b
b
[ [The number of foreign immigrants into the United States in the last fifty
years (from 1820 to 1871) is stated to be 7,556,007. Of these, 4,104,553 spoke
English—that is, they came from Great Britain, Ireland, or the British colonies;
2,643,069 came from Germany or northern Europe; and about half a million from
the south of Europe.]]
No event can be compared with this continuous removal of the human race, except
perhaps those irruptions which preceded the fall of the Roman Empire. Then, as
well as now, generations of men were impelled forwards in the same direction to
meet and struggle on the same spot; but the designs of Providence were not the
same; then, every newcomer was the harbinger of destruction and of death; now,
every adventurer brings with him the elements of prosperity and of life. The
future still conceals from us the ulterior consequences of this emigration of
the Americans towards the West; but we can readily apprehend its more immediate
results. As a portion of the inhabitants annually leave the States in which they
were born, the population of these States increases very slowly, although they
have long been established: thus in Connecticut, which only contains fifty-nine
inhabitants to the square mile, the population has not increased by more than
one-quarter in forty years, whilst that of England has been augmented by
one-third in the lapse of the same period. The European emigrant always lands,
therefore, in a country which is but half full, and where hands are in request:
he becomes a workman in easy circumstances; his son goes to seek his fortune in
unpeopled regions, and he becomes a rich landowner. The former amasses the
capital which the latter invests, and the stranger as well as the native is
unacquainted with want.
The laws of the United States are extremely favorable to the division of
property; but a cause which is more powerful than the laws prevents property
from being divided to excess. *c This is very perceptible in the States which
are beginning to be thickly peopled; Massachusetts is the most populous part of
the Union, but it contains only eighty inhabitants to the square mile, which is
must less than in France, where 162 are reckoned to the same extent of country.
But in Massachusetts estates are very rarely divided; the eldest son takes the
land, and the others go to seek their fortune in the desert. The law has
abolished the rights of primogeniture, but circumstances have concurred to
re-establish it under a form of which none can complain, and by which no just
rights are impaired.
c
[ In New England the estates are exceedingly small, but they are rarely
subjected to further division.]
A single fact will suffice to show the prodigious number of individuals who
leave New England, in this manner, to settle themselves in the wilds. We were
assured in 1830 that thirty-six of the members of Congress were born in the
little State of Connecticut. The population of Connecticut, which constitutes
only one forty-third part of that of the United States, thus furnished
one-eighth of the whole body of representatives. The States of Connecticut,
however, only sends five delegates to Congress; and the thirty-one others sit
for the new Western States. If these thirty-one individuals had remained in
Connecticut, it is probable that instead of becoming rich landowners they would
have remained humble laborers, that they would have lived in obscurity without
being able to rise into public life, and that, far from becoming useful members
of the legislature, they might have been unruly citizens.
These reflections do not escape the observation of the Americans any more than
of ourselves. "It cannot be doubted," says Chancellor Kent in his "Treatise on
American Law," "that the division of landed estates must produce great evils
when it is carried to such excess as that each parcel of land is insufficient to
support a family; but these disadvantages have never been felt in the United
States, and many generations must elapse before they can be felt. The extent of
our inhabited territory, the abundance of adjacent land, and the continual
stream of emigration flowing from the shores of the Atlantic towards the
interior of the country, suffice as yet, and will long suffice, to prevent the
parcelling out of estates."
It is difficult to describe the rapacity with which the American rushes forward
to secure the immense booty which fortune proffers to him. In the pursuit he
fearlessly braves the arrow of the Indian and the distempers of the forest; he
is unimpressed by the silence of the woods; the approach of beasts of prey does
not disturb him; for he is goaded onwards by a passion more intense than the
love of life. Before him lies a boundless continent, and he urges onwards as if
time pressed, and he was afraid of finding no room for his exertions. I have
spoken of the emigration from the older States, but how shall I describe that
which takes place from the more recent ones? Fifty years have scarcely elapsed
since that of Ohio was founded; the greater part of its inhabitants were not
born within its confines; its capital has only been built thirty years, and its
territory is still covered by an immense extent of uncultivated fields;
nevertheless the population of Ohio is already proceeding westward, and most of
the settlers who descend to the fertile savannahs of Illinois are citizens of
Ohio. These men left their first country to improve their condition; they quit
their resting-place to ameliorate it still more; fortune awaits them everywhere,
but happiness they cannot attain. The desire of prosperity is become an ardent
and restless passion in their minds which grows by what it gains. They early
broke the ties which bound them to their natal earth, and they have contracted
no fresh ones on their way. Emigration was at first necessary to them as a means
of subsistence; and it soon becomes a sort of game of chance, which they pursue
for the emotions it excites as much as for the gain it procures.
Sometimes the progress of man is so rapid that the desert reappears behind him.
The woods stoop to give him a passage, and spring up again when he has passed.
It is not uncommon in crossing the new States of the West to meet with deserted
dwellings in the midst of the wilds; the traveller frequently discovers the
vestiges of a log house in the most solitary retreats, which bear witness to the
power, and no less to the inconstancy of man. In these abandoned fields, and
over these ruins of a day, the primeval forest soon scatters a fresh vegetation,
the beasts resume the haunts which were once their own, and Nature covers the
traces of man's path with branches and with flowers, which obliterate his
evanescent track.
I remember that, in crossing one of the woodland districts which still cover the
State of New York, I reached the shores of a lake embosomed in forests coeval
with the world. A small island, covered with woods whose thick foliage concealed
its banks, rose from the centre of the waters. Upon the shores of the lake no
object attested the presence of man except a column of smoke which might be seen
on the horizon rising from the tops of the trees to the clouds, and seeming to
hang from heaven rather than to be mounting to the sky. An Indian shallop was
hauled up on the sand, which tempted me to visit the islet that had first
attracted my attention, and in a few minutes I set foot upon its banks. The
whole island formed one of those delicious solitudes of the New World which
almost lead civilized man to regret the haunts of the savage. A luxuriant
vegetation bore witness to the incomparable fruitfulness of the soil. The deep
silence which is common to the wilds of North America was only broken by the
hoarse cooing of the wood-pigeon, and the tapping of the woodpecker upon the
bark of trees. I was far from supposing that this spot had ever been inhabited,
so completely did Nature seem to be left to her own caprices; but when I reached
the centre of the isle I thought that I discovered some traces of man. I then
proceeded to examine the surrounding objects with care, and I soon perceived
that a European had undoubtedly been led to seek a refuge in this retreat. Yet
what changes had taken place in the scene of his labors! The logs which he had
hastily hewn to build himself a shed had sprouted afresh; the very props were
intertwined with living verdure, and his cabin was transformed into a bower. In
the midst of these shrubs a few stones were to be seen, blackened with fire and
sprinkled with thin ashes; here the hearth had no doubt been, and the chimney in
falling had covered it with rubbish. I stood for some time in silent admiration
of the exuberance of Nature and the littleness of man: and when I was obliged to
leave that enchanting solitude, I exclaimed with melancholy, "Are ruins, then,
already here?"
In Europe we are wont to look upon a restless disposition, an unbounded desire
of riches, and an excessive love of independence, as propensities very
formidable to society. Yet these are the very elements which ensure a long and
peaceful duration to the republics of America. Without these unquiet passions
the population would collect in certain spots, and would soon be subject to
wants like those of the Old World, which it is difficult to satisfy; for such is
the present good fortune of the New World, that the vices of its inhabitants are
scarcely less favorable to society than their virtues. These circumstances
exercise a great influence on the estimation in which human actions are held in
the two hemispheres. The Americans frequently term what we should call cupidity
a laudable industry; and they blame as faint-heartedness what we consider to be
the virtue of moderate desires.
In France, simple tastes, orderly manners, domestic affections, and the
attachments which men feel to the place of their birth, are looked upon as great
guarantees of the tranquillity and happiness of the State. But in America
nothing seems to be more prejudicial to society than these virtues. The French
Canadians, who have faithfully preserved the traditions of their pristine
manners, are already embarrassed for room upon their small territory; and this
little community, which has so recently begun to exist, will shortly be a prey
to the calamities incident to old nations. In Canada, the most enlightened,
patriotic, and humane inhabitants make extraordinary efforts to render the
people dissatisfied with those simple enjoyments which still content it. There,
the seductions of wealth are vaunted with as much zeal as the charms of an
honest but limited income in the Old World, and more exertions are made to
excite the passions of the citizens there than to calm them elsewhere. If we
listen to their eulogies, we shall hear that nothing is more praiseworthy than
to exchange the pure and homely pleasures which even the poor man tastes in his
own country for the dull delights of prosperity under a foreign sky; to leave
the patrimonial hearth and the turf beneath which his forefathers sleep; in
short, to abandon the living and the dead in quest of fortune.
At the present time America presents a field for human effort far more extensive
than any sum of labor which can be applied to work it. In America too much
knowledge cannot be diffused; for all knowledge, whilst it may serve him who
possesses it, turns also to the advantage of those who are without it. New wants
are not to be feared, since they can be satisfied without difficulty; the growth
of human passions need not be dreaded, since all passions may find an easy and a
legitimate object; nor can men be put in possession of too much freedom, since
they are scarcely ever tempted to misuse their liberties.
The American republics of the present day are like companies of adventurers
formed to explore in common the waste lands of the New World, and busied in a
flourishing trade. The passions which agitate the Americans most deeply are not
their political but their commercial passions; or, to speak more correctly, they
introduce the habits they contract in business into their political life. They
love order, without which affairs do not prosper; and they set an especial value
upon a regular conduct, which is the foundation of a solid business; they prefer
the good sense which amasses large fortunes to that enterprising spirit which
frequently dissipates them; general ideas alarm their minds, which are
accustomed to positive calculations, and they hold practice in more honor than
theory.
It is in America that one learns to understand the influence which physical
prosperity exercises over political actions, and even over opinions which ought
to acknowledge no sway but that of reason; and it is more especially amongst
strangers that this truth is perceptible. Most of the European emigrants to the
New World carry with them that wild love of independence and of change which our
calamities are so apt to engender. I sometimes met with Europeans in the United
States who had been obliged to leave their own country on account of their
political opinions. They all astonished me by the language they held, but one of
them surprised me more than all the rest. As I was crossing one of the most
remote districts of Pennsylvania I was benighted, and obliged to beg for
hospitality at the gate of a wealthy planter, who was a Frenchman by birth. He
bade me sit down beside his fire, and we began to talk with that freedom which
befits persons who meet in the backwoods, two thousand leagues from their native
country. I was aware that my host had been a great leveller and an ardent
demagogue forty years ago, and that his name was not unknown to fame. I was,
therefore, not a little surprised to hear him discuss the rights of property as
an economist or a landowner might have done: he spoke of the necessary
gradations which fortune establishes among men, of obedience to established
laws, of the influence of good morals in commonwealths, and of the support which
religious opinions give to order and to freedom; he even went to far as to quote
an evangelical authority in corroboration of one of his political tenets.
I listened, and marvelled at the feebleness of human reason. A proposition is
true or false, but no art can prove it to be one or the other, in the midst of
the uncertainties of science and the conflicting lessons of experience, until a
new incident disperses the clouds of doubt; I was poor, I become rich, and I am
not to expect that prosperity will act upon my conduct, and leave my judgment
free; my opinions change with my fortune, and the happy circumstances which I
turn to my advantage furnish me with that decisive argument which was before
wanting. The influence of prosperity acts still more freely upon the American
than upon strangers. The American has always seen the connection of public order
and public prosperity, intimately united as they are, go on before his eyes; he
does not conceive that one can subsist without the other; he has therefore
nothing to forget; nor has he, like so many Europeans, to unlearn the lessons of
his early education.
Chapter XVII: Principal Causes Maintaining The Democratic Republic—Part II
Influence Of The Laws Upon The Maintenance Of The Democratic Republic In The
United States
Three principal causes of the maintenance of the democratic republic—Federal
Constitutions—Municipal institutions—Judicial power.
The principal aim of this book has been to make known the laws of the United
States; if this purpose has been accomplished, the reader is already enabled to
judge for himself which are the laws that really tend to maintain the democratic
republic, and which endanger its existence. If I have not succeeded in
explaining this in the whole course of my work, I cannot hope to do so within
the limits of a single chapter. It is not my intention to retrace the path I
have already pursued, and a very few lines will suffice to recapitulate what I
have previously explained.
Three circumstances seem to me to contribute most powerfully to the maintenance
of the democratic republic in the United States.
The first is that Federal form of Government which the Americans have adopted,
and which enables the Union to combine the power of a great empire with the
security of a small State.
The second consists in those municipal institutions which limit the despotism of
the majority, and at the same time impart a taste for freedom and a knowledge of
the art of being free to the people.
The third is to be met with in the constitution of the judicial power. I have
shown in what manner the courts of justice serve to repress the excesses of
democracy, and how they check and direct the impulses of the majority without
stopping its activity.
Influence Of Manners Upon The Maintenance Of The Democratic Republic In The
United States
I have previously remarked that the manners of the people may be considered as
one of the general causes to which the maintenance of a democratic republic in
the United States is attributable. I here used the word manners with the meaning
which the ancients attached to the word mores, for I apply it not only to
manners in their proper sense of what constitutes the character of social
intercourse, but I extend it to the various notions and opinions current among
men, and to the mass of those ideas which constitute their character of mind. I
comprise, therefore, under this term the whole moral and intellectual condition
of a people. My intention is not to draw a picture of American manners, but
simply to point out such features of them as are favorable to the maintenance of
political institutions.
Religion Considered As A Political Institution, Which Powerfully Contributes To
The Maintenance Of The Democratic Republic Amongst The Americans
North America peopled by men who professed a democratic and republican
Christianity—Arrival of the Catholics—For what reason the Catholics form the
most democratic and the most republican class at the present time.
Every religion is to be found in juxtaposition to a political opinion which is
connected with it by affinity. If the human mind be left to follow its own bent,
it will regulate the temporal and spiritual institutions of society upon one
uniform principle; and man will endeavor, if I may use the expression, to
harmonize the state in which he lives upon earth with the state which he
believes to await him in heaven. The greatest part of British America was
peopled by men who, after having shaken off the authority of the Pope,
acknowledged no other religious supremacy; they brought with them into the New
World a form of Christianity which I cannot better describe than by styling it a
democratic and republican religion. This sect contributed powerfully to the
establishment of a democracy and a republic, and from the earliest settlement of
the emigrants politics and religion contracted an alliance which has never been
dissolved.
About fifty years ago Ireland began to pour a Catholic population into the
United States; on the other hand, the Catholics of America made proselytes, and
at the present moment more than a million of Christians professing the truths of
the Church of Rome are to be met with in the Union. *d The Catholics are
faithful to the observances of their religion; they are fervent and zealous in
the support and belief of their doctrines. Nevertheless they constitute the most
republican and the most democratic class of citizens which exists in the United
States; and although this fact may surprise the observer at first, the causes by
which it is occasioned may easily be discovered upon reflection.
d
[ [It is difficult to ascertain with accuracy the amount of the Roman Catholic
population of the United States, but in 1868 an able writer in the "Edinburgh
Review" (vol. cxxvii. p. 521) affirmed that the whole Catholic population of the
United States was then about 4,000,000, divided into 43 dioceses, with 3,795
churches, under the care of 45 bishops and 2,317 clergymen. But this rapid
increase is mainly supported by immigration from the Catholic countries of
Europe.]]
I think that the Catholic religion has erroneously been looked upon as the
natural enemy of democracy. Amongst the various sects of Christians, Catholicism
seems to me, on the contrary, to be one of those which are most favorable to the
equality of conditions. In the Catholic Church, the religious community is
composed of only two elements, the priest and the people. The priest alone rises
above the rank of his flock, and all below him are equal.
On doctrinal points the Catholic faith places all human capacities upon the same
level; it subjects the wise and ignorant, the man of genius and the vulgar
crowd, to the details of the same creed; it imposes the same observances upon
the rich and needy, it inflicts the same austerities upon the strong and the
weak, it listens to no compromise with mortal man, but, reducing all the human
race to the same standard, it confounds all the distinctions of society at the
foot of the same altar, even as they are confounded in the sight of God. If
Catholicism predisposes the faithful to obedience, it certainly does not prepare
them for inequality; but the contrary may be said of Protestantism, which
generally tends to make men independent, more than to render them equal.
Catholicism is like an absolute monarchy; if the sovereign be removed, all the
other classes of society are more equal than they are in republics. It has not
unfrequently occurred that the Catholic priest has left the service of the altar
to mix with the governing powers of society, and to take his place amongst the
civil gradations of men. This religious influence has sometimes been used to
secure the interests of that political state of things to which he belonged. At
other times Catholics have taken the side of aristocracy from a spirit of
religion.
But no sooner is the priesthood entirely separated from the government, as is
the case in the United States, than is found that no class of men are more
naturally disposed than the Catholics to transfuse the doctrine of the equality
of conditions into the political world. If, then, the Catholic citizens of the
United States are not forcibly led by the nature of their tenets to adopt
democratic and republican principles, at least they are not necessarily opposed
to them; and their social position, as well as their limited number, obliges
them to adopt these opinions. Most of the Catholics are poor, and they have no
chance of taking a part in the government unless it be open to all the citizens.
They constitute a minority, and all rights must be respected in order to insure
to them the free exercise of their own privileges. These two causes induce them,
unconsciously, to adopt political doctrines, which they would perhaps support
with less zeal if they were rich and preponderant.
The Catholic clergy of the United States has never attempted to oppose this
political tendency, but it seeks rather to justify its results. The priests in
America have divided the intellectual world into two parts: in the one they
place the doctrines of revealed religion, which command their assent; in the
other they leave those truths which they believe to have been freely left open
to the researches of political inquiry. Thus the Catholics of the United States
are at the same time the most faithful believers and the most zealous citizens.
It may be asserted that in the United States no religious doctrine displays the
slightest hostility to democratic and republican institutions. The clergy of all
the different sects hold the same language, their opinions are consonant to the
laws, and the human intellect flows onwards in one sole current.
I happened to be staying in one of the largest towns in the Union, when I was
invited to attend a public meeting which had been called for the purpose of
assisting the Poles, and of sending them supplies of arms and money. I found two
or three thousand persons collected in a vast hall which had been prepared to
receive them. In a short time a priest in his ecclesiastical robes advanced to
the front of the hustings: the spectators rose, and stood uncovered, whilst he
spoke in the following terms:—
"Almighty God! the God of Armies! Thou who didst strengthen the hearts and guide
the arms of our fathers when they were fighting for the sacred rights of
national independence; Thou who didst make them triumph over a hateful
oppression, and hast granted to our people the benefits of liberty and peace;
Turn, O Lord, a favorable eye upon the other hemisphere; pitifully look down
upon that heroic nation which is even now struggling as we did in the former
time, and for the same rights which we defended with our blood. Thou, who didst
create Man in the likeness of the same image, let not tyranny mar Thy work, and
establish inequality upon the earth. Almighty God! do Thou watch over the
destiny of the Poles, and render them worthy to be free. May Thy wisdom direct
their councils, and may Thy strength sustain their arms! Shed forth Thy terror
over their enemies, scatter the powers which take counsel against them; and
vouchsafe that the injustice which the world has witnessed for fifty years, be
not consummated in our time. O Lord, who holdest alike the hearts of nations and
of men in Thy powerful hand; raise up allies to the sacred cause of right;
arouse the French nation from the apathy in which its rulers retain it, that it
go forth again to fight for the liberties of the world.
"Lord, turn not Thou Thy face from us, and grant that we may always be the most
religious as well as the freest people of the earth. Almighty God, hear our
supplications this day. Save the Poles, we beseech Thee, in the name of Thy
well-beloved Son, our Lord Jesus Christ, who died upon the cross for the
salvation of men. Amen."
The whole meeting responded "Amen!" with devotion.
Indirect Influence Of Religious Opinions Upon Political Society In The United
States
Christian morality common to all sects—Influence of religion upon the manners of
the Americans—Respect for the marriage tie—In what manner religion confines the
imagination of the Americans within certain limits, and checks the passion of
innovation—Opinion of the Americans on the political utility of religion—Their
exertions to extend and secure its predominance.
I have just shown what the direct influence of religion upon politics is in the
United States, but its indirect influence appears to me to be still more
considerable, and it never instructs the Americans more fully in the art of
being free than when it says nothing of freedom.
The sects which exist in the United States are innumerable. They all differ in
respect to the worship which is due from man to his Creator, but they all agree
in respect to the duties which are due from man to man. Each sect adores the
Deity in its own peculiar manner, but all the sects preach the same moral law in
the name of God. If it be of the highest importance to man, as an individual,
that his religion should be true, the case of society is not the same. Society
has no future life to hope for or to fear; and provided the citizens profess a
religion, the peculiar tenets of that religion are of very little importance to
its interests. Moreover, almost all the sects of the United States are comprised
within the great unity of Christianity, and Christian morality is everywhere the
same.
It may be believed without unfairness that a certain number of Americans pursue
a peculiar form of worship, from habit more than from conviction. In the United
States the sovereign authority is religious, and consequently hypocrisy must be
common; but there is no country in the whole world in which the Christian
religion retains a greater influence over the souls of men than in America; and
there can be no greater proof of its utility, and of its conformity to human
nature, than that its influence is most powerfully felt over the most
enlightened and free nation of the earth.
I have remarked that the members of the American clergy in general, without even
excepting those who do not admit religious liberty, are all in favor of civil
freedom; but they do not support any particular political system. They keep
aloof from parties and from public affairs. In the United States religion
exercises but little influence upon the laws and upon the details of public
opinion, but it directs the manners of the community, and by regulating domestic
life it regulates the State.
I do not question that the great austerity of manners which is observable in the
United States, arises, in the first instance, from religious faith. Religion is
often unable to restrain man from the numberless temptations of fortune; nor can
it check that passion for gain which every incident of his life contributes to
arouse, but its influence over the mind of woman is supreme, and women are the
protectors of morals. There is certainly no country in the world where the tie
of marriage is so much respected as in America, or where conjugal happiness is
more highly or worthily appreciated. In Europe almost all the disturbances of
society arise from the irregularities of domestic life. To despise the natural
bonds and legitimate pleasures of home, is to contract a taste for excesses, a
restlessness of heart, and the evil of fluctuating desires. Agitated by the
tumultuous passions which frequently disturb his dwelling, the European is
galled by the obedience which the legislative powers of the State exact. But
when the American retires from the turmoil of public life to the bosom of his
family, he finds in it the image of order and of peace. There his pleasures are
simple and natural, his joys are innocent and calm; and as he finds that an
orderly life is the surest path to happiness, he accustoms himself without
difficulty to moderate his opinions as well as his tastes. Whilst the European
endeavors to forget his domestic troubles by agitating society, the American
derives from his own home that love of order which he afterwards carries with
him into public affairs.
In the United States the influence of religion is not confined to the manners,
but it extends to the intelligence of the people. Amongst the Anglo-Americans,
there are some who profess the doctrines of Christianity from a sincere belief
in them, and others who do the same because they are afraid to be suspected of
unbelief. Christianity, therefore, reigns without any obstacle, by universal
consent; the consequence is, as I have before observed, that every principle of
the moral world is fixed and determinate, although the political world is
abandoned to the debates and the experiments of men. Thus the human mind is
never left to wander across a boundless field; and, whatever may be its
pretensions, it is checked from time to time by barriers which it cannot
surmount. Before it can perpetrate innovation, certain primal and immutable
principles are laid down, and the boldest conceptions of human device are
subjected to certain forms which retard and stop their completion.
The imagination of the Americans, even in its greatest flights, is circumspect
and undecided; its impulses are checked, and its works unfinished. These habits
of restraint recur in political society, and are singularly favorable both to
the tranquillity of the people and to the durability of the institutions it has
established. Nature and circumstances concurred to make the inhabitants of the
United States bold men, as is sufficiently attested by the enterprising spirit
with which they seek for fortune. If the mind of the Americans were free from
all trammels, they would very shortly become the most daring innovators and the
most implacable disputants in the world. But the revolutionists of America are
obliged to profess an ostensible respect for Christian morality and equity,
which does not easily permit them to violate the laws that oppose their designs;
nor would they find it easy to surmount the scruples of their partisans, even if
they were able to get over their own. Hitherto no one in the United States has
dared to advance the maxim, that everything is permissible with a view to the
interests of society; an impious adage which seems to have been invented in an
age of freedom to shelter all the tyrants of future ages. Thus whilst the law
permits the Americans to do what they please, religion prevents them from
conceiving, and forbids them to commit, what is rash or unjust.
Religion in America takes no direct part in the government of society, but it
must nevertheless be regarded as the foremost of the political institutions of
that country; for if it does not impart a taste for freedom, it facilitates the
use of free institutions. Indeed, it is in this same point of view that the
inhabitants of the United States themselves look upon religious belief. I do not
know whether all the Americans have a sincere faith in their religion, for who
can search the human heart? but I am certain that they hold it to be
indispensable to the maintenance of republican institutions. This opinion is not
peculiar to a class of citizens or to a party, but it belongs to the whole
nation, and to every rank of society.
In the United States, if a political character attacks a sect, this may not
prevent even the partisans of that very sect from supporting him; but if he
attacks all the sects together, everyone abandons him, and he remains alone.
Whilst I was in America, a witness, who happened to be called at the assizes of
the county of Chester (State of New York), declared that he did not believe in
the existence of God, or in the immortality of the soul. The judge refused to
admit his evidence, on the ground that the witness had destroyed beforehand all
the confidence of the Court in what he was about to say. *e The newspapers
related the fact without any further comment.
e
[ The New York "Spectator" of August 23, 1831, relates the fact in the following
terms:—"The Court of Common Pleas of Chester county (New York) a few days since
rejected a witness who declared his disbelief in the existence of God. The
presiding judge remarked that he had not before been aware that there was a man
living who did not believe in the existence of God; that this belief constituted
the sanction of all testimony in a court of justice, and that he knew of no
cause in a Christian country where a witness had been permitted to testify
without such belief."]
The Americans combine the notions of Christianity and of liberty so intimately
in their minds, that it is impossible to make them conceive the one without the
other; and with them this conviction does not spring from that barren
traditionary faith which seems to vegetate in the soul rather than to live.
I have known of societies formed by the Americans to send out ministers of the
Gospel into the new Western States to found schools and churches there, lest
religion should be suffered to die away in those remote settlements, and the
rising States be less fitted to enjoy free institutions than the people from
which they emanated. I met with wealthy New Englanders who abandoned the country
in which they were born in order to lay the foundations of Christianity and of
freedom on the banks of the Missouri, or in the prairies of Illinois. Thus
religious zeal is perpetually stimulated in the United States by the duties of
patriotism. These men do not act from an exclusive consideration of the promises
of a future life; eternity is only one motive of their devotion to the cause;
and if you converse with these missionaries of Christian civilization, you will
be surprised to find how much value they set upon the goods of this world, and
that you meet with a politician where you expected to find a priest. They will
tell you that "all the American republics are collectively involved with each
other; if the republics of the West were to fall into anarchy, or to be mastered
by a despot, the republican institutions which now flourish upon the shores of
the Atlantic Ocean would be in great peril. It is, therefore, our interest that
the new States should be religious, in order to maintain our liberties."
Such are the opinions of the Americans, and if any hold that the religious
spirit which I admire is the very thing most amiss in America, and that the only
element wanting to the freedom and happiness of the human race is to believe in
some blind cosmogony, or to assert with Cabanis the secretion of thought by the
brain, I can only reply that those who hold this language have never been in
America, and that they have never seen a religious or a free nation. When they
return from their expedition, we shall hear what they have to say.
There are persons in France who look upon republican institutions as a temporary
means of power, of wealth, and distinction; men who are the condottieri of
liberty, and who fight for their own advantage, whatever be the colors they
wear: it is not to these that I address myself. But there are others who look
forward to the republican form of government as a tranquil and lasting state,
towards which modern society is daily impelled by the ideas and manners of the
time, and who sincerely desire to prepare men to be free. When these men attack
religious opinions, they obey the dictates of their passions to the prejudice of
their interests. Despotism may govern without faith, but liberty cannot.
Religion is much more necessary in the republic which they set forth in glowing
colors than in the monarchy which they attack; and it is more needed in
democratic republics than in any others. How is it possible that society should
escape destruction if the moral tie be not strengthened in proportion as the
political tie is relaxed? and what can be done with a people which is its own
master, if it be not submissive to the Divinity?
Chapter XVII: Principal Causes Maintaining The Democratic Republic—Part III
Principal Causes Which Render Religion Powerful In America Care taken by the
Americans to separate the Church from the State—The laws, public opinion, and
even the exertions of the clergy concur to promote this end—Influence of
religion upon the mind in the United States attributable to this cause—Reason of
this—What is the natural state of men with regard to religion at the present
time—What are the peculiar and incidental causes which prevent men, in certain
countries, from arriving at this state.
The philosophers of the eighteenth century explained the gradual decay of
religious faith in a very simple manner. Religious zeal, said they, must
necessarily fail, the more generally liberty is established and knowledge
diffused. Unfortunately, facts are by no means in accordance with their theory.
There are certain populations in Europe whose unbelief is only equalled by their
ignorance and their debasement, whilst in America one of the freest and most
enlightened nations in the world fulfils all the outward duties of religious
fervor.
Upon my arrival in the United States, the religious aspect of the country was
the first thing that struck my attention; and the longer I stayed there the more
did I perceive the great political consequences resulting from this state of
things, to which I was unaccustomed. In France I had almost always seen the
spirit of religion and the spirit of freedom pursuing courses diametrically
opposed to each other; but in America I found that they were intimately united,
and that they reigned in common over the same country. My desire to discover the
causes of this phenomenon increased from day to day. In order to satisfy it I
questioned the members of all the different sects; and I more especially sought
the society of the clergy, who are the depositaries of the different
persuasions, and who are more especially interested in their duration. As a
member of the Roman Catholic Church I was more particularly brought into contact
with several of its priests, with whom I became intimately acquainted. To each
of these men I expressed my astonishment and I explained my doubts; I found that
they differed upon matters of detail alone; and that they mainly attributed the
peaceful dominion of religion in their country to the separation of Church and
State. I do not hesitate to affirm that during my stay in America I did not meet
with a single individual, of the clergy or of the laity, who was not of the same
opinion upon this point.
This led me to examine more attentively than I had hitherto done, the station
which the American clergy occupy in political society. I learned with surprise
that they filled no public appointments; *f not one of them is to be met with in
the administration, and they are not even represented in the legislative
assemblies. In several States *g the law excludes them from political life,
public opinion in all. And when I came to inquire into the prevailing spirit of
the clergy I found that most of its members seemed to retire of their own accord
from the exercise of power, and that they made it the pride of their profession
to abstain from politics.
f
[ Unless this term be applied to the functions which many of them fill in the
schools. Almost all education is entrusted to the clergy.]
g
[ See the Constitution of New York, art. 7, Section 4:— "And whereas the
ministers of the gospel are, by their profession, dedicated to the service of
God and the care of souls, and ought not to be diverted from the great duties of
their functions: therefore no minister of the gospel, or priest of any
denomination whatsoever, shall at any time hereafter, under any pretence or
description whatever, be eligible to, or capable of holding, any civil or
military office or place within this State."
See also the constitutions of North Carolina, art. 31; Virginia; South Carolina,
art. I, Section 23; Kentucky, art. 2, Section 26; Tennessee, art. 8, Section I;
Louisiana, art. 2, Section 22.]
I heard them inveigh against ambition and deceit, under whatever political
opinions these vices might chance to lurk; but I learned from their discourses
that men are not guilty in the eye of God for any opinions concerning political
government which they may profess with sincerity, any more than they are for
their mistakes in building a house or in driving a furrow. I perceived that
these ministers of the gospel eschewed all parties with the anxiety attendant
upon personal interest. These facts convinced me that what I had been told was
true; and it then became my object to investigate their causes, and to inquire
how it happened that the real authority of religion was increased by a state of
things which diminished its apparent force: these causes did not long escape my
researches.
The short space of threescore years can never content the imagination of man;
nor can the imperfect joys of this world satisfy his heart. Man alone, of all
created beings, displays a natural contempt of existence, and yet a boundless
desire to exist; he scorns life, but he dreads annihilation. These different
feelings incessantly urge his soul to the contemplation of a future state, and
religion directs his musings thither. Religion, then, is simply another form of
hope; and it is no less natural to the human heart than hope itself. Men cannot
abandon their religious faith without a kind of aberration of intellect, and a
sort of violent distortion of their true natures; but they are invincibly
brought back to more pious sentiments; for unbelief is an accident, and faith is
the only permanent state of mankind. If we only consider religious institutions
in a purely human point of view, they may be said to derive an inexhaustible
element of strength from man himself, since they belong to one of the
constituent principles of human nature.
I am aware that at certain times religion may strengthen this influence, which
originates in itself, by the artificial power of the laws, and by the support of
those temporal institutions which direct society. Religions, intimately united
to the governments of the earth, have been known to exercise a sovereign
authority derived from the twofold source of terror and of faith; but when a
religion contracts an alliance of this nature, I do not hesitate to affirm that
it commits the same error as a man who should sacrifice his future to his
present welfare; and in obtaining a power to which it has no claim, it risks
that authority which is rightfully its own. When a religion founds its empire
upon the desire of immortality which lives in every human heart, it may aspire
to universal dominion; but when it connects itself with a government, it must
necessarily adopt maxims which are only applicable to certain nations. Thus, in
forming an alliance with a political power, religion augments its authority over
a few, and forfeits the hope of reigning over all.
As long as a religion rests upon those sentiments which are the consolation of
all affliction, it may attract the affections of mankind. But if it be mixed up
with the bitter passions of the world, it may be constrained to defend allies
whom its interests, and not the principle of love, have given to it; or to repel
as antagonists men who are still attached to its own spirit, however opposed
they may be to the powers to which it is allied. The Church cannot share the
temporal power of the State without being the object of a portion of that
animosity which the latter excites.
The political powers which seem to be most firmly established have frequently no
better guarantee for their duration than the opinions of a generation, the
interests of the time, or the life of an individual. A law may modify the social
condition which seems to be most fixed and determinate; and with the social
condition everything else must change. The powers of society are more or less
fugitive, like the years which we spend upon the earth; they succeed each other
with rapidity, like the fleeting cares of life; and no government has ever yet
been founded upon an invariable disposition of the human heart, or upon an
imperishable interest.
As long as a religion is sustained by those feelings, propensities, and passions
which are found to occur under the same forms, at all the different periods of
history, it may defy the efforts of time; or at least it can only be destroyed
by another religion. But when religion clings to the interests of the world, it
becomes almost as fragile a thing as the powers of earth. It is the only one of
them all which can hope for immortality; but if it be connected with their
ephemeral authority, it shares their fortunes, and may fall with those transient
passions which supported them for a day. The alliance which religion contracts
with political powers must needs be onerous to itself; since it does not require
their assistance to live, and by giving them its assistance to live, and by
giving them its assistance it may be exposed to decay.
The danger which I have just pointed out always exists, but it is not always
equally visible. In some ages governments seem to be imperishable; in others,
the existence of society appears to be more precarious than the life of man.
Some constitutions plunge the citizens into a lethargic somnolence, and others
rouse them to feverish excitement. When governments appear to be so strong, and
laws so stable, men do not perceive the dangers which may accrue from a union of
Church and State. When governments display so much weakness, and laws so much
inconstancy, the danger is self-evident, but it is no longer possible to avoid
it; to be effectual, measures must be taken to discover its approach.
In proportion as a nation assumes a democratic condition of society, and as
communities display democratic propensities, it becomes more and more dangerous
to connect religion with political institutions; for the time is coming when
authority will be bandied from hand to hand, when political theories will
succeed each other, and when men, laws, and constitutions will disappear, or be
modified from day to day, and this, not for a season only, but unceasingly.
Agitation and mutability are inherent in the nature of democratic republics,
just as stagnation and inertness are the law of absolute monarchies.
If the Americans, who change the head of the Government once in four years, who
elect new legislators every two years, and renew the provincial officers every
twelvemonth; if the Americans, who have abandoned the political world to the
attempts of innovators, had not placed religion beyond their reach, where could
it abide in the ebb and flow of human opinions? where would that respect which
belongs to it be paid, amidst the struggles of faction? and what would become of
its immortality, in the midst of perpetual decay? The American clergy were the
first to perceive this truth, and to act in conformity with it. They saw that
they must renounce their religious influence, if they were to strive for
political power; and they chose to give up the support of the State, rather than
to share its vicissitudes.
In America, religion is perhaps less powerful than it has been at certain
periods in the history of certain peoples; but its influence is more lasting. It
restricts itself to its own resources, but of those none can deprive it: its
circle is limited to certain principles, but those principles are entirely its
own, and under its undisputed control.
On every side in Europe we hear voices complaining of the absence of religious
faith, and inquiring the means of restoring to religion some remnant of its
pristine authority. It seems to me that we must first attentively consider what
ought to be the natural state of men with regard to religion at the present
time; and when we know what we have to hope and to fear, we may discern the end
to which our efforts ought to be directed.
The two great dangers which threaten the existence of religions are schism and
indifference. In ages of fervent devotion, men sometimes abandon their religion,
but they only shake it off in order to adopt another. Their faith changes the
objects to which it is directed, but it suffers no decline. The old religion
then excites enthusiastic attachment or bitter enmity in either party; some
leave it with anger, others cling to it with increased devotedness, and although
persuasions differ, irreligion is unknown. Such, however, is not the case when a
religious belief is secretly undermined by doctrines which may be termed
negative, since they deny the truth of one religion without affirming that of
any other. Progidious revolutions then take place in the human mind, without the
apparent co-operation of the passions of man, and almost without his knowledge.
Men lose the objects of their fondest hopes, as if through forgetfulness. They
are carried away by an imperceptible current which they have not the courage to
stem, but which they follow with regret, since it bears them from a faith they
love, to a scepticism that plunges them into despair.
In ages which answer to this description, men desert their religious opinions
from lukewarmness rather than from dislike; they do not reject them, but the
sentiments by which they were once fostered disappear. But if the unbeliever
does not admit religion to be true, he still considers it useful. Regarding
religious institutions in a human point of view, he acknowledges their influence
upon manners and legislation. He admits that they may serve to make men live in
peace with one another, and to prepare them gently for the hour of death. He
regrets the faith which he has lost; and as he is deprived of a treasure which
he has learned to estimate at its full value, he scruples to take it from those
who still possess it.
On the other hand, those who continue to believe are not afraid openly to avow
their faith. They look upon those who do not share their persuasion as more
worthy of pity than of opposition; and they are aware that to acquire the esteem
of the unbelieving, they are not obliged to follow their example. They are
hostile to no one in the world; and as they do not consider the society in which
they live as an arena in which religion is bound to face its thousand deadly
foes, they love their contemporaries, whilst they condemn their weaknesses and
lament their errors.
As those who do not believe, conceal their incredulity; and as those who
believe, display their faith, public opinion pronounces itself in favor of
religion: love, support, and honor are bestowed upon it, and it is only by
searching the human soul that we can detect the wounds which it has received.
The mass of mankind, who are never without the feeling of religion, do not
perceive anything at variance with the established faith. The instinctive desire
of a future life brings the crowd about the altar, and opens the hearts of men
to the precepts and consolations of religion.
But this picture is not applicable to us: for there are men amongst us who have
ceased to believe in Christianity, without adopting any other religion; others
who are in the perplexities of doubt, and who already affect not to believe; and
others, again, who are afraid to avow that Christian faith which they still
cherish in secret.
Amidst these lukewarm partisans and ardent antagonists a small number of
believers exist, who are ready to brave all obstacles and to scorn all dangers
in defence of their faith. They have done violence to human weakness, in order
to rise superior to public opinion. Excited by the effort they have made, they
scarcely knew where to stop; and as they know that the first use which the
French made of independence was to attack religion, they look upon their
contemporaries with dread, and they recoil in alarm from the liberty which their
fellow-citizens are seeking to obtain. As unbelief appears to them to be a
novelty, they comprise all that is new in one indiscriminate animosity. They are
at war with their age and country, and they look upon every opinion which is put
forth there as the necessary enemy of the faith.
Such is not the natural state of men with regard to religion at the present day;
and some extraordinary or incidental cause must be at work in France to prevent
the human mind from following its original propensities and to drive it beyond
the limits at which it ought naturally to stop. I am intimately convinced that
this extraordinary and incidental cause is the close connection of politics and
religion. The unbelievers of Europe attack the Christians as their political
opponents, rather than as their religious adversaries; they hate the Christian
religion as the opinion of a party, much more than as an error of belief; and
they reject the clergy less because they are the representatives of the Divinity
than because they are the allies of authority.
In Europe, Christianity has been intimately united to the powers of the earth.
Those powers are now in decay, and it is, as it were, buried under their ruins.
The living body of religion has been bound down to the dead corpse of
superannuated polity: cut but the bonds which restrain it, and that which is
alive will rise once more. I know not what could restore the Christian Church of
Europe to the energy of its earlier days; that power belongs to God alone; but
it may be the effect of human policy to leave the faith in the full exercise of
the strength which it still retains.
How The Instruction, The Habits, And The Practical Experience Of The Americans
Promote The Success Of Their Democratic Institutions
What is to be understood by the instruction of the American people—The human
mind more superficially instructed in the United States than in Europe—No one
completely uninstructed—Reason of this—Rapidity with which opinions are diffused
even in the uncultivated States of the West—Practical experience more
serviceable to the Americans than book-learning.
I have but little to add to what I have already said concerning the influence
which the instruction and the habits of the Americans exercise upon the
maintenance of their political institutions.
America has hitherto produced very few writers of distinction; it possesses no
great historians, and not a single eminent poet. The inhabitants of that country
look upon what are properly styled literary pursuits with a kind of
disapprobation; and there are towns of very second-rate importance in Europe in
which more literary works are annually published than in the twenty-four States
of the Union put together. The spirit of the Americans is averse to general
ideas; and it does not seek theoretical discoveries. Neither politics nor
manufactures direct them to these occupations; and although new laws are
perpetually enacted in the United States, no great writers have hitherto
inquired into the general principles of their legislation. The Americans have
lawyers and commentators, but no jurists; *h and they furnish examples rather
than lessons to the world. The same observation applies to the mechanical arts.
In America, the inventions of Europe are adopted with sagacity; they are
perfected, and adapted with admirable skill to the wants of the country.
Manufactures exist, but the science of manufacture is not cultivated; and they
have good workmen, but very few inventors. Fulton was obliged to proffer his
services to foreign nations for a long time before he was able to devote them to
his own country.
h
[ [This cannot be said with truth of the country of Kent, Story, and Wheaton.]]
The observer who is desirous of forming an opinion on the state of instruction
amongst the Anglo-Americans must consider the same object from two different
points of view. If he only singles out the learned, he will be astonished to
find how rare they are; but if he counts the ignorant, the American people will
appear to be the most enlightened community in the world. The whole population,
as I observed in another place, is situated between these two extremes. In New
England, every citizen receives the elementary notions of human knowledge; he is
moreover taught the doctrines and the evidences of his religion, the history of
his country, and the leading features of its Constitution. In the States of
Connecticut and Massachusetts, it is extremely rare to find a man imperfectly
acquainted with all these things, and a person wholly ignorant of them is a sort
of phenomenon.
When I compare the Greek and Roman republics with these American States; the
manuscript libraries of the former, and their rude population, with the
innumerable journals and the enlightened people of the latter; when I remember
all the attempts which are made to judge the modern republics by the assistance
of those of antiquity, and to infer what will happen in our time from what took
place two thousand years ago, I am tempted to burn my books, in order to apply
none but novel ideas to so novel a condition of society.
What I have said of New England must not, however, be applied indistinctly to
the whole Union; as we advance towards the West or the South, the instruction of
the people diminishes. In the States which are adjacent to the Gulf of Mexico, a
certain number of individuals may be found, as in our own countries, who are
devoid of the rudiments of instruction. But there is not a single district in
the United States sunk in complete ignorance; and for a very simple reason: the
peoples of Europe started from the darkness of a barbarous condition, to advance
toward the light of civilization; their progress has been unequal; some of them
have improved apace, whilst others have loitered in their course, and some have
stopped, and are still sleeping upon the way. *i
i
[ [In the Northern States the number of persons destitute of instruction is
inconsiderable, the largest number being 241,152 in the State of New York
(according to Spaulding's "Handbook of American Statistics" for 1874); but in
the South no less than 1,516,339 whites and 2,671,396 colored persons are
returned as "illiterate."]]
Such has not been the case in the United States. The Anglo-Americans settled in
a state of civilization, upon that territory which their descendants occupy;
they had not to begin to learn, and it was sufficient for them not to forget.
Now the children of these same Americans are the persons who, year by year,
transport their dwellings into the wilds; and with their dwellings their
acquired information and their esteem for knowledge. Education has taught them
the utility of instruction, and has enabled them to transmit that instruction to
their posterity. In the United States society has no infancy, but it is born in
man's estate.
The Americans never use the word "peasant," because they have no idea of the
peculiar class which that term denotes; the ignorance of more remote ages, the
simplicity of rural life, and the rusticity of the villager have not been
preserved amongst them; and they are alike unacquainted with the virtues, the
vices, the coarse habits, and the simple graces of an early stage of
civilization. At the extreme borders of the Confederate States, upon the
confines of society and of the wilderness, a population of bold adventurers have
taken up their abode, who pierce the solitudes of the American woods, and seek a
country there, in order to escape that poverty which awaited them in their
native provinces. As soon as the pioneer arrives upon the spot which is to serve
him for a retreat, he fells a few trees and builds a loghouse. Nothing can offer
a more miserable aspect than these isolated dwellings. The traveller who
approaches one of them towards nightfall, sees the flicker of the hearth-flame
through the chinks in the walls; and at night, if the wind rises, he hears the
roof of boughs shake to and fro in the midst of the great forest trees. Who
would not suppose that this poor hut is the asylum of rudeness and ignorance?
Yet no sort of comparison can be drawn between the pioneer and the dwelling
which shelters him. Everything about him is primitive and unformed, but he is
himself the result of the labor and the experience of eighteen centuries. He
wears the dress, and he speaks the language of cities; he is acquainted with the
past, curious of the future, and ready for argument upon the present; he is, in
short, a highly civilized being, who consents, for a time, to inhabit the
backwoods, and who penetrates into the wilds of the New World with the Bible, an
axe, and a file of newspapers.
It is difficult to imagine the incredible rapidity with which public opinion
circulates in the midst of these deserts. *j I do not think that so much
intellectual intercourse takes place in the most enlightened and populous
districts of France. *k It cannot be doubted that, in the United States, the
instruction of the people powerfully contributes to the support of a democratic
republic; and such must always be the case, I believe, where instruction which
awakens the understanding is not separated from moral education which amends the
heart. But I by no means exaggerate this benefit, and I am still further from
thinking, as so many people do think in Europe, that men can be instantaneously
made citizens by teaching them to read and write. True information is mainly
derived from experience; and if the Americans had not been gradually accustomed
to govern themselves, their book-learning would not assist them much at the
present day.
j
[ I travelled along a portion of the frontier of the United States in a sort of
cart which was termed the mail. We passed, day and night, with great rapidity
along the roads which were scarcely marked out, through immense forests; when
the gloom of the woods became impenetrable the coachman lighted branches of fir,
and we journeyed along by the light they cast. From time to time we came to a
hut in the midst of the forest, which was a post-office. The mail dropped an
enormous bundle of letters at the door of this isolated dwelling, and we pursued
our way at full gallop, leaving the inhabitants of the neighboring log houses to
send for their share of the treasure.
[When the author visited America the locomotive and the railroad were scarcely
invented, and not yet introduced in the United States. It is superfluous to
point out the immense effect of those inventions in extending civilization and
developing the resources of that vast continent. In 1831 there were 51 miles of
railway in the United States; in 1872 there were 60,000 miles of railway.]]
k
[ In 1832 each inhabitant of Michigan paid a sum equivalent to 1 fr. 22 cent.
(French money) to the post-office revenue, and each inhabitant of the Floridas
paid 1 fr. 5 cent. (See "National Calendar," 1833, p. 244.) In the same year
each inhabitant of the Departement du Nord paid 1 fr. 4 cent. to the revenue of
the French post-office. (See the "Compte rendu de l'administration des
Finances," 1833, p. 623.) Now the State of Michigan only contained at that time
7 inhabitants per square league and Florida only 5: the public instruction and
the commercial activity of these districts is inferior to that of most of the
States in the Union, whilst the Departement du Nord, which contains 3,400
inhabitants per square league, is one of the most enlightened and manufacturing
parts of France.]
I have lived a great deal with the people in the United States, and I cannot
express how much I admire their experience and their good sense. An American
should never be allowed to speak of Europe; for he will then probably display a
vast deal of presumption and very foolish pride. He will take up with those
crude and vague notions which are so useful to the ignorant all over the world.
But if you question him respecting his own country, the cloud which dimmed his
intelligence will immediately disperse; his language will become as clear and as
precise as his thoughts. He will inform you what his rights are, and by what
means he exercises them; he will be able to point out the customs which obtain
in the political world. You will find that he is well acquainted with the rules
of the administration, and that he is familiar with the mechanism of the laws.
The citizen of the United States does not acquire his practical science and his
positive notions from books; the instruction he has acquired may have prepared
him for receiving those ideas, but it did not furnish them. The American learns
to know the laws by participating in the act of legislation; and he takes a
lesson in the forms of government from governing. The great work of society is
ever going on beneath his eyes, and, as it were, under his hands.
In the United States politics are the end and aim of education; in Europe its
principal object is to fit men for private life. The interference of the
citizens in public affairs is too rare an occurrence for it to be anticipated
beforehand. Upon casting a glance over society in the two hemispheres, these
differences are indicated even by its external aspect.
In Europe we frequently introduce the ideas and the habits of private life into
public affairs; and as we pass at once from the domestic circle to the
government of the State, we may frequently be heard to discuss the great
interests of society in the same manner in which we converse with our friends.
The Americans, on the other hand, transfuse the habits of public life into their
manners in private; and in their country the jury is introduced into the games
of schoolboys, and parliamentary forms are observed in the order of a feast.
Chapter XVII: Principal Causes Maintaining The Democratic Republic—Part IV
The Laws Contribute More To The Maintenance Of The Democratic Republic In The
United States Than The Physical Circumstances Of The Country, And The Manners
More Than The Laws
All the nations of America have a democratic state of society—Yet democratic
institutions only subsist amongst the Anglo-Americans—The Spaniards of South
America, equally favored by physical causes as the Anglo-Americans, unable to
maintain a democratic republic—Mexico, which has adopted the Constitution of the
United States, in the same predicament—The Anglo-Americans of the West less able
to maintain it than those of the East—Reason of these different results.
I have remarked that the maintenance of democratic institutions in the United
States is attributable to the circumstances, the laws, and the manners of that
country. *l Most Europeans are only acquainted with the first of these three
causes, and they are apt to give it a preponderating importance which it does
not really possess.
l
[ I remind the reader of the general signification which I give to the word
"manners," namely, the moral and intellectual characteristics of social man
taken collectively.]
It is true that the Anglo-Saxons settled in the New World in a state of social
equality; the low-born and the noble were not to be found amongst them; and
professional prejudices were always as entirely unknown as the prejudices of
birth. Thus, as the condition of society was democratic, the empire of democracy
was established without difficulty. But this circumstance is by no means
peculiar to the United States; almost all the trans-Atlantic colonies were
founded by men equal amongst themselves, or who became so by inhabiting them. In
no one part of the New World have Europeans been able to create an aristocracy.
Nevertheless, democratic institutions prosper nowhere but in the United States.
The American Union has no enemies to contend with; it stands in the wilds like
an island in the ocean. But the Spaniards of South America were no less isolated
by nature; yet their position has not relieved them from the charge of standing
armies. They make war upon each other when they have no foreign enemies to
oppose; and the Anglo-American democracy is the only one which has hitherto been
able to maintain itself in peace. *m
m
[ [A remark which, since the great Civil War of 1861-65, ceases to be
applicable.]]
The territory of the Union presents a boundless field to human activity, and
inexhaustible materials for industry and labor. The passion of wealth takes the
place of ambition, and the warmth of faction is mitigated by a sense of
prosperity. But in what portion of the globe shall we meet with more fertile
plains, with mightier rivers, or with more unexplored and inexhaustible riches
than in South America?
Nevertheless, South America has been unable to maintain democratic institutions.
If the welfare of nations depended on their being placed in a remote position,
with an unbounded space of habitable territory before them, the Spaniards of
South America would have no reason to complain of their fate. And although they
might enjoy less prosperity than the inhabitants of the United States, their lot
might still be such as to excite the envy of some nations in Europe. There are,
however, no nations upon the face of the earth more miserable than those of
South America.
Thus, not only are physical causes inadequate to produce results analogous to
those which occur in North America, but they are unable to raise the population
of South America above the level of European States, where they act in a
contrary direction. Physical causes do not, therefore, affect the destiny of
nations so much as has been supposed.
I have met with men in New England who were on the point of leaving a country,
where they might have remained in easy circumstances, to go to seek their
fortune in the wilds. Not far from that district I found a French population in
Canada, which was closely crowded on a narrow territory, although the same wilds
were at hand; and whilst the emigrant from the United States purchased an
extensive estate with the earnings of a short term of labor, the Canadian paid
as much for land as he would have done in France. Nature offers the solitudes of
the New World to Europeans; but they are not always acquainted with the means of
turning her gifts to account. Other peoples of America have the same physical
conditions of prosperity as the Anglo-Americans, but without their laws and
their manners; and these peoples are wretched. The laws and manners of the
Anglo-Americans are therefore that efficient cause of their greatness which is
the object of my inquiry.
I am far from supposing that the American laws are preeminently good in
themselves; I do not hold them to be applicable to all democratic peoples; and
several of them seem to be dangerous, even in the United States. Nevertheless,
it cannot be denied that the American legislation, taken collectively, is
extremely well adapted to the genius of the people and the nature of the country
which it is intended to govern. The American laws are therefore good, and to
them must be attributed a large portion of the success which attends the
government of democracy in America: but I do not believe them to be the
principal cause of that success; and if they seem to me to have more influence
upon the social happiness of the Americans than the nature of the country, on
the other hand there is reason to believe that their effect is still inferior to
that produced by the manners of the people.
The Federal laws undoubtedly constitute the most important part of the
legislation of the United States. Mexico, which is not less fortunately situated
than the Anglo-American Union, has adopted the same laws, but is unable to
accustom itself to the government of democracy. Some other cause is therefore at
work, independently of those physical circumstances and peculiar laws which
enable the democracy to rule in the United States.
Another still more striking proof may be adduced. Almost all the inhabitants of
the territory of the Union are the descendants of a common stock; they speak the
same language, they worship God in the same manner, they are affected by the
same physical causes, and they obey the same laws. Whence, then, do their
characteristic differences arise? Why, in the Eastern States of the Union, does
the republican government display vigor and regularity, and proceed with mature
deliberation? Whence does it derive the wisdom and the durability which mark its
acts, whilst in the Western States, on the contrary, society seems to be ruled
by the powers of chance? There, public business is conducted with an
irregularity and a passionate and feverish excitement, which does not announce a
long or sure duration.
I am no longer comparing the Anglo-American States to foreign nations; but I am
contrasting them with each other, and endeavoring to discover why they are so
unlike. The arguments which are derived from the nature of the country and the
difference of legislation are here all set aside. Recourse must be had to some
other cause; and what other cause can there be except the manners of the people?
It is in the Eastern States that the Anglo-Americans have been longest
accustomed to the government of democracy, and that they have adopted the habits
and conceived the notions most favorable to its maintenance. Democracy has
gradually penetrated into their customs, their opinions, and the forms of social
intercourse; it is to be found in all the details of daily life equally as in
the laws. In the Eastern States the instruction and practical education of the
people have been most perfected, and religion has been most thoroughly
amalgamated with liberty. Now these habits, opinions, customs, and convictions
are precisely the constituent elements of that which I have denominated manners.
In the Western States, on the contrary, a portion of the same advantages is
still wanting. Many of the Americans of the West were born in the woods, and
they mix the ideas and the customs of savage life with the civilization of their
parents. Their passions are more intense; their religious morality less
authoritative; and their convictions less secure. The inhabitants exercise no
sort of control over their fellow-citizens, for they are scarcely acquainted
with each other. The nations of the West display, to a certain extent, the
inexperience and the rude habits of a people in its infancy; for although they
are composed of old elements, their assemblage is of recent date.
The manners of the Americans of the United States are, then, the real cause
which renders that people the only one of the American nations that is able to
support a democratic government; and it is the influence of manners which
produces the different degrees of order and of prosperity that may be
distinguished in the several Anglo-American democracies. Thus the effect which
the geographical position of a country may have upon the duration of democratic
institutions is exaggerated in Europe. Too much importance is attributed to
legislation, too little to manners. These three great causes serve, no doubt, to
regulate and direct the American democracy; but if they were to be classed in
their proper order, I should say that the physical circumstances are less
efficient than the laws, and the laws very subordinate to the manners of the
people. I am convinced that the most advantageous situation and the best
possible laws cannot maintain a constitution in spite of the manners of a
country; whilst the latter may turn the most unfavorable positions and the worst
laws to some advantage. The importance of manners is a common truth to which
study and experience incessantly direct our attention. It may be regarded as a
central point in the range of human observation, and the common termination of
all inquiry. So seriously do I insist upon this head, that if I have hitherto
failed in making the reader feel the important influence which I attribute to
the practical experience, the habits, the opinions, in short, to the manners of
the Americans, upon the maintenance of their institutions, I have failed in the
principal object of my work.
Whether Laws And Manners Are Sufficient To Maintain Democratic Institutions In
Other Countries Besides America
The Anglo-Americans, if transported into Europe, would be obliged to modify
their laws—Distinction to be made between democratic institutions and American
institutions—Democratic laws may be conceived better than, or at least different
from, those which the American democracy has adopted—The example of America only
proves that it is possible to regulate democracy by the assistance of manners
and legislation.
I have asserted that the success of democratic institutions in the United States
is more intimately connected with the laws themselves, and the manners of the
people, than with the nature of the country. But does it follow that the same
causes would of themselves produce the same results, if they were put into
operation elsewhere; and if the country is no adequate substitute for laws and
manners, can laws and manners in their turn prove a substitute for the country?
It will readily be understood that the necessary elements of a reply to this
question are wanting: other peoples are to be found in the New World besides the
Anglo-Americans, and as these people are affected by the same physical
circumstances as the latter, they may fairly be compared together. But there are
no nations out of America which have adopted the same laws and manners, being
destitute of the physical advantages peculiar to the Anglo-Americans. No
standard of comparison therefore exists, and we can only hazard an opinion upon
this subject.
It appears to me, in the first place, that a careful distinction must be made
between the institutions of the United States and democratic institutions in
general. When I reflect upon the state of Europe, its mighty nations, its
populous cities, its formidable armies, and the complex nature of its politics,
I cannot suppose that even the Anglo-Americans, if they were transported to our
hemisphere, with their ideas, their religion, and their manners, could exist
without considerably altering their laws. But a democratic nation may be
imagined, organized differently from the American people. It is not impossible
to conceive a government really established upon the will of the majority; but
in which the majority, repressing its natural propensity to equality, should
consent, with a view to the order and the stability of the State, to invest a
family or an individual with all the prerogatives of the executive. A democratic
society might exist, in which the forces of the nation would be more centralized
than they are in the United States; the people would exercise a less direct and
less irresistible influence upon public affairs, and yet every citizen invested
with certain rights would participate, within his sphere, in the conduct of the
government. The observations I made amongst the Anglo-Americans induce me to
believe that democratic institutions of this kind, prudently introduced into
society, so as gradually to mix with the habits and to be interfused with the
opinions of the people, might subsist in other countries besides America. If the
laws of the United States were the only imaginable democratic laws, or the most
perfect which it is possible to conceive, I should admit that the success of
those institutions affords no proof of the success of democratic institutions in
general, in a country less favored by natural circumstances. But as the laws of
America appear to me to be defective in several respects, and as I can readily
imagine others of the same general nature, the peculiar advantages of that
country do not prove that democratic institutions cannot succeed in a nation
less favored by circumstances, if ruled by better laws.
If human nature were different in America from what it is elsewhere; or if the
social condition of the Americans engendered habits and opinions amongst them
different from those which originate in the same social condition in the Old
World, the American democracies would afford no means of predicting what may
occur in other democracies. If the Americans displayed the same propensities as
all other democratic nations, and if their legislators had relied upon the
nature of the country and the favor of circumstances to restrain those
propensities within due limits, the prosperity of the United States would be
exclusively attributable to physical causes, and it would afford no
encouragement to a people inclined to imitate their example, without sharing
their natural advantages. But neither of these suppositions is borne out by
facts.
In America the same passions are to be met with as in Europe; some originating
in human nature, others in the democratic condition of society. Thus in the
United States I found that restlessness of heart which is natural to men, when
all ranks are nearly equal and the chances of elevation are the same to all. I
found the democratic feeling of envy expressed under a thousand different forms.
I remarked that the people frequently displayed, in the conduct of affairs, a
consummate mixture of ignorance and presumption; and I inferred that in America,
men are liable to the same failings and the same absurdities as amongst
ourselves. But upon examining the state of society more attentively, I speedily
discovered that the Americans had made great and successful efforts to
counteract these imperfections of human nature, and to correct the natural
defects of democracy. Their divers municipal laws appeared to me to be a means
of restraining the ambition of the citizens within a narrow sphere, and of
turning those same passions which might have worked havoc in the State, to the
good of the township or the parish. The American legislators have succeeded to a
certain extent in opposing the notion of rights to the feelings of envy; the
permanence of the religious world to the continual shifting of politics; the
experience of the people to its theoretical ignorance; and its practical
knowledge of business to the impatience of its desires.
The Americans, then, have not relied upon the nature of their country to
counterpoise those dangers which originate in their Constitution and in their
political laws. To evils which are common to all democratic peoples they have
applied remedies which none but themselves had ever thought of before; and
although they were the first to make the experiment, they have succeeded in it.
The manners and laws of the Americans are not the only ones which may suit a
democratic people; but the Americans have shown that it would be wrong to
despair of regulating democracy by the aid of manners and of laws. If other
nations should borrow this general and pregnant idea from the Americans, without
however intending to imitate them in the peculiar application which they have
made of it; if they should attempt to fit themselves for that social condition,
which it seems to be the will of Providence to impose upon the generations of
this age, and so to escape from the despotism or the anarchy which threatens
them; what reason is there to suppose that their efforts would not be crowned
with success? The organization and the establishment of democracy in Christendom
is the great political problem of the time. The Americans, unquestionably, have
not resolved this problem, but they furnish useful data to those who undertake
the task.
Importance Of What Precedes With Respect To The State Of Europe
It may readily be discovered with what intention I undertook the foregoing
inquiries. The question here discussed is interesting not only to the United
States, but to the whole world; it concerns, not a nation, but all mankind. If
those nations whose social condition is democratic could only remain free as
long as they are inhabitants of the wilds, we could not but despair of the
future destiny of the human race; for democracy is rapidly acquiring a more
extended sway, and the wilds are gradually peopled with men. If it were true
that laws and manners are insufficient to maintain democratic institutions, what
refuge would remain open to the nations, except the despotism of a single
individual? I am aware that there are many worthy persons at the present time
who are not alarmed at this latter alternative, and who are so tired of liberty
as to be glad of repose, far from those storms by which it is attended. But
these individuals are ill acquainted with the haven towards which they are
bound. They are so deluded by their recollections, as to judge the tendency of
absolute power by what it was formerly, and not by what it might become at the
present time.
If absolute power were re-established amongst the democratic nations of Europe,
I am persuaded that it would assume a new form, and appear under features
unknown to our forefathers. There was a time in Europe when the laws and the
consent of the people had invested princes with almost unlimited authority; but
they scarcely ever availed themselves of it. I do not speak of the prerogatives
of the nobility, of the authority of supreme courts of justice, of corporations
and their chartered rights, or of provincial privileges, which served to break
the blows of the sovereign authority, and to maintain a spirit of resistance in
the nation. Independently of these political institutions—which, however opposed
they might be to personal liberty, served to keep alive the love of freedom in
the mind of the public, and which may be esteemed to have been useful in this
respect—the manners and opinions of the nation confined the royal authority
within barriers which were not less powerful, although they were less
conspicuous. Religion, the affections of the people, the benevolence of the
prince, the sense of honor, family pride, provincial prejudices, custom, and
public opinion limited the power of kings, and restrained their authority within
an invisible circle. The constitution of nations was despotic at that time, but
their manners were free. Princes had the right, but they had neither the means
nor the desire, of doing whatever they pleased.
But what now remains of those barriers which formerly arrested the aggressions
of tyranny? Since religion has lost its empire over the souls of men, the most
prominent boundary which divided good from evil is overthrown; the very elements
of the moral world are indeterminate; the princes and the peoples of the earth
are guided by chance, and none can define the natural limits of despotism and
the bounds of license. Long revolutions have forever destroyed the respect which
surrounded the rulers of the State; and since they have been relieved from the
burden of public esteem, princes may henceforward surrender themselves without
fear to the seductions of arbitrary power.
When kings find that the hearts of their subjects are turned towards them, they
are clement, because they are conscious of their strength, and they are chary of
the affection of their people, because the affection of their people is the
bulwark of the throne. A mutual interchange of good-will then takes place
between the prince and the people, which resembles the gracious intercourse of
domestic society. The subjects may murmur at the sovereign's decree, but they
are grieved to displease him; and the sovereign chastises his subjects with the
light hand of parental affection.
But when once the spell of royalty is broken in the tumult of revolution; when
successive monarchs have crossed the throne, so as alternately to display to the
people the weakness of their right and the harshness of their power, the
sovereign is no longer regarded by any as the Father of the State, and he is
feared by all as its master. If he be weak, he is despised; if he be strong, he
is detested. He himself is full of animosity and alarm; he finds that he is as a
stranger in his own country, and he treats his subjects like conquered enemies.
When the provinces and the towns formed so many different nations in the midst
of their common country, each of them had a will of its own, which was opposed
to the general spirit of subjection; but now that all the parts of the same
empire, after having lost their immunities, their customs, their prejudices,
their traditions, and their names, are subjected and accustomed to the same
laws, it is not more difficult to oppress them collectively than it was formerly
to oppress them singly.
Whilst the nobles enjoyed their power, and indeed long after that power was
lost, the honor of aristocracy conferred an extraordinary degree of force upon
their personal opposition. They afford instances of men who, notwithstanding
their weakness, still entertained a high opinion of their personal value, and
dared to cope single-handed with the efforts of the public authority. But at the
present day, when all ranks are more and more confounded, when the individual
disappears in the throng, and is easily lost in the midst of a common obscurity,
when the honor of monarchy has almost lost its empire without being succeeded by
public virtue, and when nothing can enable man to rise above himself, who shall
say at what point the exigencies of power and the servility of weakness will
stop?
As long as family feeling was kept alive, the antagonist of oppression was never
alone; he looked about him, and found his clients, his hereditary friends, and
his kinsfolk. If this support was wanting, he was sustained by his ancestors and
animated by his posterity. But when patrimonial estates are divided, and when a
few years suffice to confound the distinctions of a race, where can family
feeling be found? What force can there be in the customs of a country which has
changed and is still perpetually changing, its aspect; in which every act of
tyranny has a precedent, and every crime an example; in which there is nothing
so old that its antiquity can save it from destruction, and nothing so
unparalleled that its novelty can prevent it from being done? What resistance
can be offered by manners of so pliant a make that they have already often
yielded? What strength can even public opinion have retained, when no twenty
persons are connected by a common tie; when not a man, nor a family, nor
chartered corporation, nor class, nor free institution, has the power of
representing or exerting that opinion; and when every citizen—being equally
weak, equally poor, and equally dependent—has only his personal impotence to
oppose to the organized force of the government?
The annals of France furnish nothing analogous to the condition in which that
country might then be thrown. But it may more aptly be assimilated to the times
of old, and to those hideous eras of Roman oppression, when the manners of the
people were corrupted, their traditions obliterated, their habits destroyed,
their opinions shaken, and freedom, expelled from the laws, could find no refuge
in the land; when nothing protected the citizens, and the citizens no longer
protected themselves; when human nature was the sport of man, and princes
wearied out the clemency of Heaven before they exhausted the patience of their
subjects. Those who hope to revive the monarchy of Henry IV or of Louis XIV,
appear to me to be afflicted with mental blindness; and when I consider the
present condition of several European nations—a condition to which all the
others tend—I am led to believe that they will soon be left with no other
alternative than democratic liberty, or the tyranny of the Caesars. *n
n
[ [This prediction of the return of France to imperial despotism, and of the
true character of that despotic power, was written in 1832, and realized to the
letter in 1852.]]
And indeed it is deserving of consideration, whether men are to be entirely
emancipated or entirely enslaved; whether their rights are to be made equal, or
wholly taken away from them. If the rulers of society were reduced either
gradually to raise the crowd to their own level, or to sink the citizens below
that of humanity, would not the doubts of many be resolved, the consciences of
many be healed, and the community prepared to make great sacrifices with little
difficulty? In that case, the gradual growth of democratic manners and
institutions should be regarded, not as the best, but as the only means of
preserving freedom; and without liking the government of democracy, it might be
adopted as the most applicable and the fairest remedy for the present ills of
society.
It is difficult to associate a people in the work of government; but it is still
more difficult to supply it with experience, and to inspire it with the feelings
which it requires in order to govern well. I grant that the caprices of
democracy are perpetual; its instruments are rude; its laws imperfect. But if it
were true that soon no just medium would exist between the empire of democracy
and the dominion of a single arm, should we not rather incline towards the
former than submit voluntarily to the latter? And if complete equality be our
fate, is it not better to be levelled by free institutions than by despotic
power?
Those who, after having read this book, should imagine that my intention in
writing it has been to propose the laws and manners of the Anglo-Americans for
the imitation of all democratic peoples, would commit a very great mistake; they
must have paid more attention to the form than to the substance of my ideas. My
aim has been to show, by the example of America, that laws, and especially
manners, may exist which will allow a democratic people to remain free. But I am
very far from thinking that we ought to follow the example of the American
democracy, and copy the means which it has employed to attain its ends; for I am
well aware of the influence which the nature of a country and its political
precedents exercise upon a constitution; and I should regard it as a great
misfortune for mankind if liberty were to exist all over the world under the
same forms.
But I am of opinion that if we do not succeed in gradually introducing
democratic institutions into France, and if we despair of imparting to the
citizens those ideas and sentiments which first prepare them for freedom, and
afterwards allow them to enjoy it, there will be no independence at all, either
for the middling classes or the nobility, for the poor or for the rich, but an
equal tyranny over all; and I foresee that if the peaceable empire of the
majority be not founded amongst us in time, we shall sooner or later arrive at
the unlimited authority of a single despot.
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races In The United States—Part I
The Present And Probable Future Condition Of The Three Races Which Inhabit The
Territory Of The United States
The principal part of the task which I had imposed upon myself is now performed.
I have shown, as far as I was able, the laws and the manners of the American
democracy. Here I might stop; but the reader would perhaps feel that I had not
satisfied his expectations.
The absolute supremacy of democracy is not all that we meet with in America; the
inhabitants of the New World may be considered from more than one point of view.
In the course of this work my subject has often led me to speak of the Indians
and the Negroes; but I have never been able to stop in order to show what place
these two races occupy in the midst of the democratic people whom I was engaged
in describing. I have mentioned in what spirit, and according to what laws, the
Anglo-American Union was formed; but I could only glance at the dangers which
menace that confederation, whilst it was equally impossible for me to give a
detailed account of its chances of duration, independently of its laws and
manners. When speaking of the united republican States, I hazarded no
conjectures upon the permanence of republican forms in the New World, and when
making frequent allusion to the commercial activity which reigns in the Union, I
was unable to inquire into the future condition of the Americans as a commercial
people.
These topics are collaterally connected with my subject without forming a part
of it; they are American without being democratic; and to portray democracy has
been my principal aim. It was therefore necessary to postpone these questions,
which I now take up as the proper termination of my work.
The territory now occupied or claimed by the American Union spreads from the
shores of the Atlantic to those of the Pacific Ocean. On the east and west its
limits are those of the continent itself. On the south it advances nearly to the
tropic, and it extends upwards to the icy regions of the North. The human beings
who are scattered over this space do not form, as in Europe, so many branches of
the same stock. Three races, naturally distinct, and, I might almost say,
hostile to each other, are discoverable amongst them at the first glance. Almost
insurmountable barriers had been raised between them by education and by law, as
well as by their origin and outward characteristics; but fortune has brought
them together on the same soil, where, although they are mixed, they do not
amalgamate, and each race fulfils its destiny apart.
Amongst these widely differing families of men, the first which attracts
attention, the superior in intelligence, in power and in enjoyment, is the white
or European, the man pre-eminent; and in subordinate grades, the negro and the
Indian. These two unhappy races have nothing in common; neither birth, nor
features, nor language, nor habits. Their only resemblance lies in their
misfortunes. Both of them occupy an inferior rank in the country they inhabit;
both suffer from tyranny; and if their wrongs are not the same, they originate,
at any rate, with the same authors.
If we reasoned from what passes in the world, we should almost say that the
European is to the other races of mankind, what man is to the lower animals;—he
makes them subservient to his use; and when he cannot subdue, he destroys them.
Oppression has, at one stroke, deprived the descendants of the Africans of
almost all the privileges of humanity. The negro of the United States has lost
all remembrance of his country; the language which his forefathers spoke is
never heard around him; he abjured their religion and forgot their customs when
he ceased to belong to Africa, without acquiring any claim to European
privileges. But he remains half way between the two communities; sold by the
one, repulsed by the other; finding not a spot in the universe to call by the
name of country, except the faint image of a home which the shelter of his
master's roof affords.
The negro has no family; woman is merely the temporary companion of his
pleasures, and his children are upon an equality with himself from the moment of
their birth. Am I to call it a proof of God's mercy or a visitation of his
wrath, that man in certain states appears to be insensible to his extreme
wretchedness, and almost affects, with a depraved taste, the cause of his
misfortunes? The negro, who is plunged in this abyss of evils, scarcely feels
his own calamitous situation. Violence made him a slave, and the habit of
servitude gives him the thoughts and desires of a slave; he admires his tyrants
more than he hates them, and finds his joy and his pride in the servile
imitation of those who oppress him: his understanding is degraded to the level
of his soul.
The negro enters upon slavery as soon as he is born: nay, he may have been
purchased in the womb, and have begun his slavery before he began his existence.
Equally devoid of wants and of enjoyment, and useless to himself, he learns,
with his first notions of existence, that he is the property of another, who has
an interest in preserving his life, and that the care of it does not devolve
upon himself; even the power of thought appears to him a useless gift of
Providence, and he quietly enjoys the privileges of his debasement. If he
becomes free, independence is often felt by him to be a heavier burden than
slavery; for having learned, in the course of his life, to submit to everything
except reason, he is too much unacquainted with her dictates to obey them. A
thousand new desires beset him, and he is destitute of the knowledge and energy
necessary to resist them: these are masters which it is necessary to contend
with, and he has learnt only to submit and obey. In short, he sinks to such a
depth of wretchedness, that while servitude brutalizes, liberty destroys him.
Oppression has been no less fatal to the Indian than to the negro race, but its
effects are different. Before the arrival of white men in the New World, the
inhabitants of North America lived quietly in their woods, enduring the
vicissitudes and practising the virtues and vices common to savage nations. The
Europeans, having dispersed the Indian tribes and driven them into the deserts,
condemned them to a wandering life full of inexpressible sufferings.
Savage nations are only controlled by opinion and by custom. When the North
American Indians had lost the sentiment of attachment to their country; when
their families were dispersed, their traditions obscured, and the chain of their
recollections broken; when all their habits were changed, and their wants
increased beyond measure, European tyranny rendered them more disorderly and
less civilized than they were before. The moral and physical condition of these
tribes continually grew worse, and they became more barbarous as they became
more wretched. Nevertheless, the Europeans have not been able to metamorphose
the character of the Indians; and though they have had power to destroy them,
they have never been able to make them submit to the rules of civilized society.
The lot of the negro is placed on the extreme limit of servitude, while that of
the Indian lies on the uttermost verge of liberty; and slavery does not produce
more fatal effects upon the first, than independence upon the second. The negro
has lost all property in his own person, and he cannot dispose of his existence
without committing a sort of fraud: but the savage is his own master as soon as
he is able to act; parental authority is scarcely known to him; he has never
bent his will to that of any of his kind, nor learned the difference between
voluntary obedience and a shameful subjection; and the very name of law is
unknown to him. To be free, with him, signifies to escape from all the shackles
of society. As he delights in this barbarous independence, and would rather
perish than sacrifice the least part of it, civilization has little power over
him.
The negro makes a thousand fruitless efforts to insinuate himself amongst men
who repulse him; he conforms to the tastes of his oppressors, adopts their
opinions, and hopes by imitating them to form a part of their community. Having
been told from infancy that his race is naturally inferior to that of the
whites, he assents to the proposition and is ashamed of his own nature. In each
of his features he discovers a trace of slavery, and, if it were in his power,
he would willingly rid himself of everything that makes him what he is.
The Indian, on the contrary, has his imagination inflated with the pretended
nobility of his origin, and lives and dies in the midst of these dreams of
pride. Far from desiring to conform his habits to ours, he loves his savage life
as the distinguishing mark of his race, and he repels every advance to
civilization, less perhaps from the hatred which he entertains for it, than from
a dread of resembling the Europeans. *a While he has nothing to oppose to our
perfection in the arts but the resources of the desert, to our tactics nothing
but undisciplined courage; whilst our well-digested plans are met by the
spontaneous instincts of savage life, who can wonder if he fails in this unequal
contest?
a
[ The native of North America retains his opinions and the most insignificant of
his habits with a degree of tenacity which has no parallel in history. For more
than two hundred years the wandering tribes of North America have had daily
intercourse with the whites, and they have never derived from them either a
custom or an idea. Yet the Europeans have exercised a powerful influence over
the savages: they have made them more licentious, but not more European. In the
summer of 1831 I happened to be beyond Lake Michigan, at a place called Green
Bay, which serves as the extreme frontier between the United States and the
Indians on the north-western side. Here I became acquainted with an American
officer, Major H., who, after talking to me at length on the inflexibility of
the Indian character, related the following fact:—"I formerly knew a young
Indian," said he, "who had been educated at a college in New England, where he
had greatly distinguished himself, and had acquired the external appearance of a
member of civilized society. When the war broke out between ourselves and the
English in 1810, I saw this young man again; he was serving in our army, at the
head of the warriors of his tribe, for the Indians were admitted amongst the
ranks of the Americans, upon condition that they would abstain from their
horrible custom of scalping their victims. On the evening of the battle of . .
., C. came and sat himself down by the fire of our bivouac. I asked him what had
been his fortune that day: he related his exploits; and growing warm and
animated by the recollection of them, he concluded by suddenly opening the
breast of his coat, saying, 'You must not betray me—see here!' And I actually
beheld," said the Major, "between his body and his shirt, the skin and hair of
an English head, still dripping with gore."]
The negro, who earnestly desires to mingle his race with that of the European,
cannot effect if; while the Indian, who might succeed to a certain extent,
disdains to make the attempt. The servility of the one dooms him to slavery, the
pride of the other to death.
I remember that while I was travelling through the forests which still cover the
State of Alabama, I arrived one day at the log house of a pioneer. I did not
wish to penetrate into the dwelling of the American, but retired to rest myself
for a while on the margin of a spring, which was not far off, in the woods.
While I was in this place (which was in the neighborhood of the Creek
territory), an Indian woman appeared, followed by a negress, and holding by the
hand a little white girl of five or six years old, whom I took to be the
daughter of the pioneer. A sort of barbarous luxury set off the costume of the
Indian; rings of metal were hanging from her nostrils and ears; her hair, which
was adorned with glass beads, fell loosely upon her shoulders; and I saw that
she was not married, for she still wore that necklace of shells which the bride
always deposits on the nuptial couch. The negress was clad in squalid European
garments. They all three came and seated themselves upon the banks of the
fountain; and the young Indian, taking the child in her arms, lavished upon her
such fond caresses as mothers give; while the negress endeavored by various
little artifices to attract the attention of the young Creole.
The child displayed in her slightest gestures a consciousness of superiority
which formed a strange contrast with her infantine weakness; as if she received
the attentions of her companions with a sort of condescension. The negress was
seated on the ground before her mistress, watching her smallest desires, and
apparently divided between strong affection for the child and servile fear;
whilst the savage displayed, in the midst of her tenderness, an air of freedom
and of pride which was almost ferocious. I had approached the group, and I
contemplated them in silence; but my curiosity was probably displeasing to the
Indian woman, for she suddenly rose, pushed the child roughly from her, and
giving me an angry look plunged into the thicket. I had often chanced to see
individuals met together in the same place, who belonged to the three races of
men which people North America. I had perceived from many different results the
preponderance of the whites. But in the picture which I have just been
describing there was something peculiarly touching; a bond of affection here
united the oppressors with the oppressed, and the effort of nature to bring them
together rendered still more striking the immense distance placed between them
by prejudice and by law.
The Present And Probable Future Condition Of The Indian Tribes Which Inhabit The
Territory Possessed By The Union
Gradual disappearance of the native tribes—Manner in which it takes
place—Miseries accompanying the forced migrations of the Indians—The savages of
North America had only two ways of escaping destruction; war or
civilization—They are no longer able to make war—Reasons why they refused to
become civilized when it was in their power, and why they cannot become so now
that they desire it—Instance of the Creeks and Cherokees—Policy of the
particular States towards these Indians—Policy of the Federal Government.
None of the Indian tribes which formerly inhabited the territory of New
England—the Naragansetts, the Mohicans, the Pecots—have any existence but in the
recollection of man. The Lenapes, who received William Penn, a hundred and fifty
years ago, upon the banks of the Delaware, have disappeared; and I myself met
with the last of the Iroquois, who were begging alms. The nations I have
mentioned formerly covered the country to the sea-coast; but a traveller at the
present day must penetrate more than a hundred leagues into the interior of the
continent to find an Indian. Not only have these wild tribes receded, but they
are destroyed; *b and as they give way or perish, an immense and increasing
people fills their place. There is no instance upon record of so prodigious a
growth, or so rapid a destruction: the manner in which the latter change takes
place is not difficult to describe.
b
[ In the thirteen original States there are only 6,273 Indians remaining. (See
Legislative Documents, 20th Congress, No. 117, p. 90.) [The decrease in now far
greater, and is verging on extinction. See page 360 of this volume.]]
When the Indians were the sole inhabitants of the wilds from whence they have
since been expelled, their wants were few. Their arms were of their own
manufacture, their only drink was the water of the brook, and their clothes
consisted of the skins of animals, whose flesh furnished them with food.
The Europeans introduced amongst the savages of North America fire-arms, ardent
spirits, and iron: they taught them to exchange for manufactured stuffs, the
rough garments which had previously satisfied their untutored simplicity. Having
acquired new tastes, without the arts by which they could be gratified, the
Indians were obliged to have recourse to the workmanship of the whites; but in
return for their productions the savage had nothing to offer except the rich
furs which still abounded in his woods. Hence the chase became necessary, not
merely to provide for his subsistence, but in order to procure the only objects
of barter which he could furnish to Europe. *c Whilst the wants of the natives
were thus increasing, their resources continued to diminish.
c
[ Messrs. Clarke and Cass, in their Report to Congress on February 4, 1829, p.
23, expressed themselves thus:—"The time when the Indians generally could supply
themselves with food and clothing, without any of the articles of civilized
life, has long since passed away. The more remote tribes, beyond the
Mississippi, who live where immense herds of buffalo are yet to be found and who
follow those animals in their periodical migrations, could more easily than any
others recur to the habits of their ancestors, and live without the white man or
any of his manufactures. But the buffalo is constantly receding. The smaller
animals, the bear, the deer, the beaver, the otter, the muskrat, etc.,
principally minister to the comfort and support of the Indians; and these cannot
be taken without guns, ammunition, and traps. Among the Northwestern Indians
particularly, the labor of supplying a family with food is excessive. Day after
day is spent by the hunter without success, and during this interval his family
must subsist upon bark or roots, or perish. Want and misery are around them and
among them. Many die every winter from actual starvation."
The Indians will not live as Europeans live, and yet they can neither subsist
without them, nor exactly after the fashion of their fathers. This is
demonstrated by a fact which I likewise give upon official authority. Some
Indians of a tribe on the banks of Lake Superior had killed a European; the
American government interdicted all traffic with the tribe to which the guilty
parties belonged, until they were delivered up to justice. This measure had the
desired effect.]
From the moment when a European settlement is formed in the neighborhood of the
territory occupied by the Indians, the beasts of chase take the alarm. *d
Thousands of savages, wandering in the forests and destitute of any fixed
dwelling, did not disturb them; but as soon as the continuous sounds of European
labor are heard in their neighborhood, they begin to flee away, and retire to
the West, where their instinct teaches them that they will find deserts of
immeasurable extent. "The buffalo is constantly receding," say Messrs. Clarke
and Cass in their Report of the year 1829; "a few years since they approached
the base of the Alleghany; and a few years hence they may even be rare upon the
immense plains which extend to the base of the Rocky Mountains." I have been
assured that this effect of the approach of the whites is often felt at two
hundred leagues' distance from their frontier. Their influence is thus exerted
over tribes whose name is unknown to them; and who suffer the evils of
usurpation long before they are acquainted with the authors of their distress.
*e
d
[ "Five years ago," (says Volney in his "Tableau des Etats-Unis," p. 370) "in
going from Vincennes to Kaskaskia, a territory which now forms part of the State
of Illinois, but which at the time I mention was completely wild (1797), you
could not cross a prairie without seeing herds of from four to five hundred
buffaloes. There are now none remaining; they swam across the Mississippi to
escape from the hunters, and more particularly from the bells of the American
cows."]
e
[ The truth of what I here advance may be easily proved by consulting the
tabular statement of Indian tribes inhabiting the United States and their
territories. (Legislative Documents, 20th Congress, No. 117, pp. 90-105.) It is
there shown that the tribes in the centre of America are rapidly decreasing,
although the Europeans are still at a considerable distance from them.]
Bold adventurers soon penetrate into the country the Indians have deserted, and
when they have advanced about fifteen or twenty leagues from the extreme
frontiers of the whites, they begin to build habitations for civilized beings in
the midst of the wilderness. This is done without difficulty, as the territory
of a hunting-nation is ill-defined; it is the common property of the tribe, and
belongs to no one in particular, so that individual interests are not concerned
in the protection of any part of it.
A few European families, settled in different situations at a considerable
distance from each other, soon drive away the wild animals which remain between
their places of abode. The Indians, who had previously lived in a sort of
abundance, then find it difficult to subsist, and still more difficult to
procure the articles of barter which they stand in need of.
To drive away their game is to deprive them of the means of existence, as
effectually as if the fields of our agriculturists were stricken with
barrenness; and they are reduced, like famished wolves, to prowl through the
forsaken woods in quest of prey. Their instinctive love of their country
attaches them to the soil which gave them birth, *f even after it has ceased to
yield anything but misery and death. At length they are compelled to acquiesce,
and to depart: they follow the traces of the elk, the buffalo, and the beaver,
and are guided by these wild animals in the choice of their future country.
Properly speaking, therefore, it is not the Europeans who drive away the native
inhabitants of America; it is famine which compels them to recede; a happy
distinction which had escaped the casuists of former times, and for which we are
indebted to modern discovery!
f
[ "The Indians," say Messrs. Clarke and Cass in their Report to Congress, p. 15,
"are attached to their country by the same feelings which bind us to ours; and,
besides, there are certain superstitious notions connected with the alienation
of what the Great Spirit gave to their ancestors, which operate strongly upon
the tribes who have made few or no cessions, but which are gradually weakened as
our intercourse with them is extended. 'We will not sell the spot which contains
the bones of our fathers,' is almost always the first answer to a proposition
for a sale."]
It is impossible to conceive the extent of the sufferings which attend these
forced emigrations. They are undertaken by a people already exhausted and
reduced; and the countries to which the newcomers betake themselves are
inhabited by other tribes which receive them with jealous hostility. Hunger is
in the rear; war awaits them, and misery besets them on all sides. In the hope
of escaping from such a host of enemies, they separate, and each individual
endeavors to procure the means of supporting his existence in solitude and
secrecy, living in the immensity of the desert like an outcast in civilized
society. The social tie, which distress had long since weakened, is then
dissolved; they have lost their country, and their people soon desert them:
their very families are obliterated; the names they bore in common are
forgotten, their language perishes, and all traces of their origin disappear.
Their nation has ceased to exist, except in the recollection of the antiquaries
of America and a few of the learned of Europe.
I should be sorry to have my reader suppose that I am coloring the picture too
highly; I saw with my own eyes several of the cases of misery which I have been
describing; and I was the witness of sufferings which I have not the power to
portray.
At the end of the year 1831, whilst I was on the left bank of the Mississippi at
a place named by Europeans, Memphis, there arrived a numerous band of Choctaws
(or Chactas, as they are called by the French in Louisiana). These savages had
left their country, and were endeavoring to gain the right bank of the
Mississippi, where they hoped to find an asylum which had been promised them by
the American government. It was then the middle of winter, and the cold was
unusually severe; the snow had frozen hard upon the ground, and the river was
drifting huge masses of ice. The Indians had their families with them; and they
brought in their train the wounded and sick, with children newly born, and old
men upon the verge of death. They possessed neither tents nor wagons, but only
their arms and some provisions. I saw them embark to pass the mighty river, and
never will that solemn spectacle fade from my remembrance. No cry, no sob was
heard amongst the assembled crowd; all were silent. Their calamities were of
ancient date, and they knew them to be irremediable. The Indians had all stepped
into the bark which was to carry them across, but their dogs remained upon the
bank. As soon as these animals perceived that their masters were finally leaving
the shore, they set up a dismal howl, and, plunging all together into the icy
waters of the Mississippi, they swam after the boat.
The ejectment of the Indians very often takes place at the present day, in a
regular, and, as it were, a legal manner. When the European population begins to
approach the limit of the desert inhabited by a savage tribe, the government of
the United States usually dispatches envoys to them, who assemble the Indians in
a large plain, and having first eaten and drunk with them, accost them in the
following manner: "What have you to do in the land of your fathers? Before long,
you must dig up their bones in order to live. In what respect is the country you
inhabit better than another? Are there no woods, marshes, or prairies, except
where you dwell? And can you live nowhere but under your own sun? Beyond those
mountains which you see at the horizon, beyond the lake which bounds your
territory on the west, there lie vast countries where beasts of chase are found
in great abundance; sell your lands to us, and go to live happily in those
solitudes." After holding this language, they spread before the eyes of the
Indians firearms, woollen garments, kegs of brandy, glass necklaces, bracelets
of tinsel, earrings, and looking-glasses. *g If, when they have beheld all these
riches, they still hesitate, it is insinuated that they have not the means of
refusing their required consent, and that the government itself will not long
have the power of protecting them in their rights. What are they to do? Half
convinced, and half compelled, they go to inhabit new deserts, where the
importunate whites will not let them remain ten years in tranquillity. In this
manner do the Americans obtain, at a very low price, whole provinces, which the
richest sovereigns of Europe could not purchase. *h
g
[ See, in the Legislative Documents of Congress (Doc. 117), the narrative of
what takes place on these occasions. This curious passage is from the
above-mentioned report, made to Congress by Messrs. Clarke and Cass in February,
1829. Mr. Cass is now the Secretary of War.
"The Indians," says the report, "reach the treaty-ground poor and almost naked.
Large quantities of goods are taken there by the traders, and are seen and
examined by the Indians. The women and children become importunate to have their
wants supplied, and their influence is soon exerted to induce a sale. Their
improvidence is habitual and unconquerable. The gratification of his immediate
wants and desires is the ruling passion of an Indian. The expectation of future
advantages seldom produces much effect. The experience of the past is lost, and
the prospects of the future disregarded. It would be utterly hopeless to demand
a cession of land, unless the means were at hand of gratifying their immediate
wants; and when their condition and circumstances are fairly considered, it
ought not to surprise us that they are so anxious to relieve themselves."]
h
[ On May 19, 1830, Mr. Edward Everett affirmed before the House of
Representatives, that the Americans had already acquired by treaty, to the east
and west of the Mississippi, 230,000,000 of acres. In 1808 the Osages gave up
48,000,000 acres for an annual payment of $1,000. In 1818 the Quapaws yielded up
29,000,000 acres for $4,000. They reserved for themselves a territory of
1,000,000 acres for a hunting-ground. A solemn oath was taken that it should be
respected: but before long it was invaded like the rest. Mr. Bell, in his Report
of the Committee on Indian Affairs, February 24, 1830, has these words:—"To pay
an Indian tribe what their ancient hunting-grounds are worth to them, after the
game is fled or destroyed, as a mode of appropriating wild lands claimed by
Indians, has been found more convenient, and certainly it is more agreeable to
the forms of justice, as well as more merciful, than to assert the possession of
them by the sword. Thus the practice of buying Indian titles is but the
substitute which humanity and expediency have imposed, in place of the sword, in
arriving at the actual enjoyment of property claimed by the right of discovery,
and sanctioned by the natural superiority allowed to the claims of civilized
communities over those of savage tribes. Up to the present time so invariable
has been the operation of certain causes, first in diminishing the value of
forest lands to the Indians, and secondly in disposing them to sell readily,
that the plan of buying their right of occupancy has never threatened to retard,
in any perceptible degree, the prosperity of any of the States." (Legislative
Documents, 21st Congress, No. 227, p. 6.)]
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part II
These are great evils; and it must be added that they appear to me to be
irremediable. I believe that the Indian nations of North America are doomed to
perish; and that whenever the Europeans shall be established on the shores of
the Pacific Ocean, that race of men will be no more. *i The Indians had only the
two alternatives of war or civilization; in other words, they must either have
destroyed the Europeans or become their equals.
i
[ This seems, indeed, to be the opinion of almost all American statesmen.
"Judging of the future by the past," says Mr. Cass, "we cannot err in
anticipating a progressive diminution of their numbers, and their eventual
extinction, unless our border should become stationary, and they be removed
beyond it, or unless some radical change should take place in the principles of
our intercourse with them, which it is easier to hope for than to expect."]
At the first settlement of the colonies they might have found it possible, by
uniting their forces, to deliver themselves from the small bodies of strangers
who landed on their continent. *j They several times attempted to do it, and
were on the point of succeeding; but the disproportion of their resources, at
the present day, when compared with those of the whites, is too great to allow
such an enterprise to be thought of. Nevertheless, there do arise from time to
time among the Indians men of penetration, who foresee the final destiny which
awaits the native population, and who exert themselves to unite all the tribes
in common hostility to the Europeans; but their efforts are unavailing. Those
tribes which are in the neighborhood of the whites, are too much weakened to
offer an effectual resistance; whilst the others, giving way to that childish
carelessness of the morrow which characterizes savage life, wait for the near
approach of danger before they prepare to meet it; some are unable, the others
are unwilling, to exert themselves.
j
[ Amongst other warlike enterprises, there was one of the Wampanaogs, and other
confederate tribes, under Metacom in 1675, against the colonists of New England;
the English were also engaged in war in Virginia in 1622.]
It is easy to foresee that the Indians will never conform to civilization; or
that it will be too late, whenever they may be inclined to make the experiment.
Civilization is the result of a long social process which takes place in the
same spot, and is handed down from one generation to another, each one profiting
by the experience of the last. Of all nations, those submit to civilization with
the most difficulty which habitually live by the chase. Pastoral tribes, indeed,
often change their place of abode; but they follow a regular order in their
migrations, and often return again to their old stations, whilst the dwelling of
the hunter varies with that of the animals he pursues.
Several attempts have been made to diffuse knowledge amongst the Indians,
without controlling their wandering propensities; by the Jesuits in Canada, and
by the Puritans in New England; *k but none of these endeavors were crowned by
any lasting success. Civilization began in the cabin, but it soon retired to
expire in the woods. The great error of these legislators of the Indians was
their not understanding that, in order to succeed in civilizing a people, it is
first necessary to fix it; which cannot be done without inducing it to cultivate
the soil; the Indians ought in the first place to have been accustomed to
agriculture. But not only are they destitute of this indispensable preliminary
to civilization, they would even have great difficulty in acquiring it. Men who
have once abandoned themselves to the restless and adventurous life of the
hunter, feel an insurmountable disgust for the constant and regular labor which
tillage requires. We see this proved in the bosom of our own society; but it is
far more visible among peoples whose partiality for the chase is a part of their
national character.
k
[ See the "Histoire de la Nouvelle France," by Charlevoix, and the work entitled
"Lettres edifiantes."]
Independently of this general difficulty, there is another, which applies
peculiarly to the Indians; they consider labor not merely as an evil, but as a
disgrace; so that their pride prevents them from becoming civilized, as much as
their indolence. *l
l
[ "In all the tribes," says Volney, in his "Tableau des Etats-Unis," p. 423,
"there still exists a generation of old warriors, who cannot forbear, when they
see their countrymen using the hoe, from exclaiming against the degradation of
ancient manners, and asserting that the savages owe their decline to these
innovations; adding, that they have only to return to their primitive habits in
order to recover their power and their glory."]
There is no Indian so wretched as not to retain under his hut of bark a lofty
idea of his personal worth; he considers the cares of industry and labor as
degrading occupations; he compares the husbandman to the ox which traces the
furrow; and even in our most ingenious handicraft, he can see nothing but the
labor of slaves. Not that he is devoid of admiration for the power and
intellectual greatness of the whites; but although the result of our efforts
surprises him, he contemns the means by which we obtain it; and while he
acknowledges our ascendancy, he still believes in his superiority. War and
hunting are the only pursuits which appear to him worthy to be the occupations
of a man. *m The Indian, in the dreary solitude of his woods, cherishes the same
ideas, the same opinions as the noble of the Middle ages in his castle, and he
only requires to become a conqueror to complete the resemblance; thus, however
strange it may seem, it is in the forests of the New World, and not amongst the
Europeans who people its coasts, that the ancient prejudices of Europe are still
in existence.
m
[ The following description occurs in an official document: "Until a young man
has been engaged with an enemy, and has performed some acts of valor, he gains
no consideration, but is regarded nearly as a woman. In their great war-dances
all the warriors in succession strike the post, as it is called, and recount
their exploits. On these occasions their auditory consists of the kinsmen,
friends, and comrades of the narrator. The profound impression which his
discourse produces on them is manifested by the silent attention it receives,
and by the loud shouts which hail its termination. The young man who finds
himself at such a meeting without anything to recount is very unhappy; and
instances have sometimes occurred of young warriors, whose passions had been
thus inflamed, quitting the war-dance suddenly, and going off alone to seek for
trophies which they might exhibit, and adventures which they might be allowed to
relate."]
More than once, in the course of this work, I have endeavored to explain the
prodigious influence which the social condition appears to exercise upon the
laws and the manners of men; and I beg to add a few words on the same subject.
When I perceive the resemblance which exists between the political institutions
of our ancestors, the Germans, and of the wandering tribes of North America;
between the customs described by Tacitus, and those of which I have sometimes
been a witness, I cannot help thinking that the same cause has brought about the
same results in both hemispheres; and that in the midst of the apparent
diversity of human affairs, a certain number of primary facts may be discovered,
from which all the others are derived. In what we usually call the German
institutions, then, I am inclined only to perceive barbarian habits; and the
opinions of savages in what we style feudal principles.
However strongly the vices and prejudices of the North American Indians may be
opposed to their becoming agricultural and civilized, necessity sometimes
obliges them to it. Several of the Southern nations, and amongst others the
Cherokees and the Creeks, *n were surrounded by Europeans, who had landed on the
shores of the Atlantic; and who, either descending the Ohio or proceeding up the
Mississippi, arrived simultaneously upon their borders. These tribes have not
been driven from place to place, like their Northern brethren; but they have
been gradually enclosed within narrow limits, like the game within the thicket,
before the huntsmen plunge into the interior. The Indians who were thus placed
between civilization and death, found themselves obliged to live by ignominious
labor like the whites. They took to agriculture, and without entirely forsaking
their old habits or manners, sacrificed only as much as was necessary to their
existence.
n
[ These nations are now swallowed up in the States of Georgia, Tennessee,
Alabama, and Mississippi. There were formerly in the South four great nations
(remnants of which still exist), the Choctaws, the Chickasaws, the Creeks, and
the Cherokees. The remnants of these four nations amounted, in 1830, to about
75,000 individuals. It is computed that there are now remaining in the territory
occupied or claimed by the Anglo-American Union about 300,000 Indians. (See
Proceedings of the Indian Board in the City of New York.) The official documents
supplied to Congress make the number amount to 313,130. The reader who is
curious to know the names and numerical strength of all the tribes which inhabit
the Anglo-American territory should consult the documents I refer to.
(Legislative Documents, 20th Congress, No. 117, pp. 90-105.) [In the Census of
1870 it is stated that the Indian population of the United States is only
25,731, of whom 7,241 are in California.]]
The Cherokees went further; they created a written language; established a
permanent form of government; and as everything proceeds rapidly in the New
World, before they had all of them clothes, they set up a newspaper. *o
o
[ I brought back with me to France one or two copies of this singular
publication.]
The growth of European habits has been remarkably accelerated among these
Indians by the mixed race which has sprung up. *p Deriving intelligence from
their father's side, without entirely losing the savage customs of the mother,
the half-blood forms the natural link between civilization and barbarism.
Wherever this race has multiplied the savage state has become modified, and a
great change has taken place in the manners of the people. *q
p
[ See in the Report of the Committee on Indian Affairs, 21st Congress, No. 227,
p. 23, the reasons for the multiplication of Indians of mixed blood among the
Cherokees. The principal cause dates from the War of Independence. Many
Anglo-Americans of Georgia, having taken the side of England, were obliged to
retreat among the Indians, where they married.]
q
[ Unhappily the mixed race has been less numerous and less influential in North
America than in any other country. The American continent was peopled by two
great nations of Europe, the French and the English. The former were not slow in
connecting themselves with the daughters of the natives, but there was an
unfortunate affinity between the Indian character and their own: instead of
giving the tastes and habits of civilized life to the savages, the French too
often grew passionately fond of the state of wild freedom they found them in.
They became the most dangerous of the inhabitants of the desert, and won the
friendship of the Indian by exaggerating his vices and his virtues. M. de
Senonville, the governor of Canada, wrote thus to Louis XIV in 1685: "It has
long been believed that in order to civilize the savages we ought to draw them
nearer to us. But there is every reason to suppose we have been mistaken. Those
which have been brought into contact with us have not become French, and the
French who have lived among them are changed into savages, affecting to dress
and live like them." ("History of New France," by Charlevoix, vol. ii., p. 345.)
The Englishman, on the contrary, continuing obstinately attached to the customs
and the most insignificant habits of his forefathers, has remained in the midst
of the American solitudes just what he was in the bosom of European cities; he
would not allow of any communication with savages whom he despised, and avoided
with care the union of his race with theirs. Thus while the French exercised no
salutary influence over the Indians, the English have always remained alien from
them.]
The success of the Cherokees proves that the Indians are capable of
civilization, but it does not prove that they will succeed in it. This
difficulty which the Indians find in submitting to civilization proceeds from
the influence of a general cause, which it is almost impossible for them to
escape. An attentive survey of history demonstrates that, in general, barbarous
nations have raised themselves to civilization by degrees, and by their own
efforts. Whenever they derive knowledge from a foreign people, they stood
towards it in the relation of conquerors, and not of a conquered nation. When
the conquered nation is enlightened, and the conquerors are half savage, as in
the case of the invasion of Rome by the Northern nations or that of China by the
Mongols, the power which victory bestows upon the barbarian is sufficient to
keep up his importance among civilized men, and permit him to rank as their
equal, until he becomes their rival: the one has might on his side, the other
has intelligence; the former admires the knowledge and the arts of the
conquered, the latter envies the power of the conquerors. The barbarians at
length admit civilized man into their palaces, and he in turn opens his schools
to the barbarians. But when the side on which the physical force lies, also
possesses an intellectual preponderance, the conquered party seldom become
civilized; it retreats, or is destroyed. It may therefore be said, in a general
way, that savages go forth in arms to seek knowledge, but that they do not
receive it when it comes to them.
If the Indian tribes which now inhabit the heart of the continent could summon
up energy enough to attempt to civilize themselves, they might possibly succeed.
Superior already to the barbarous nations which surround them, they would
gradually gain strength and experience, and when the Europeans should appear
upon their borders, they would be in a state, if not to maintain their
independence, at least to assert their right to the soil, and to incorporate
themselves with the conquerors. But it is the misfortune of Indians to be
brought into contact with a civilized people, which is also (it must be owned)
the most avaricious nation on the globe, whilst they are still semi-barbarian:
to find despots in their instructors, and to receive knowledge from the hand of
oppression. Living in the freedom of the woods, the North American Indian was
destitute, but he had no feeling of inferiority towards anyone; as soon,
however, as he desires to penetrate into the social scale of the whites, he
takes the lowest rank in society, for he enters, ignorant and poor, within the
pale of science and wealth. After having led a life of agitation, beset with
evils and dangers, but at the same time filled with proud emotions, *r he is
obliged to submit to a wearisome, obscure, and degraded state; and to gain the
bread which nourishes him by hard and ignoble labor; such are in his eyes the
only results of which civilization can boast: and even this much he is not sure
to obtain.
r
[ There is in the adventurous life of the hunter a certain irresistible charm,
which seizes the heart of man and carries him away in spite of reason and
experience. This is plainly shown by the memoirs of Tanner. Tanner is a European
who was carried away at the age of six by the Indians, and has remained thirty
years with them in the woods. Nothing can be conceived more appalling that the
miseries which he describes. He tells us of tribes without a chief, families
without a nation to call their own, men in a state of isolation, wrecks of
powerful tribes wandering at random amid the ice and snow and desolate solitudes
of Canada. Hunger and cold pursue them; every day their life is in jeopardy.
Amongst these men, manners have lost their empire, traditions are without power.
They become more and more savage. Tanner shared in all these miseries; he was
aware of his European origin; he was not kept away from the whites by force; on
the contrary, he came every year to trade with them, entered their dwellings,
and witnessed their enjoyments; he knew that whenever he chose to return to
civilized life he was perfectly able to do so—and he remained thirty years in
the deserts. When he came into civilized society he declared that the rude
existence which he described, had a secret charm for him which he was unable to
define: he returned to it again and again: at length he abandoned it with
poignant regret; and when he was at length fixed among the whites, several of
his children refused to share his tranquil and easy situation. I saw Tanner
myself at the lower end of Lake Superior; he seemed to me to be more like a
savage than a civilized being. His book is written without either taste or
order; but he gives, even unconsciously, a lively picture of the prejudices, the
passions, the vices, and, above all, of the destitution in which he lived.]
When the Indians undertake to imitate their European neighbors, and to till the
earth like the settlers, they are immediately exposed to a very formidable
competition. The white man is skilled in the craft of agriculture; the Indian is
a rough beginner in an art with which he is unacquainted. The former reaps
abundant crops without difficulty, the latter meets with a thousand obstacles in
raising the fruits of the earth.
The European is placed amongst a population whose wants he knows and partakes.
The savage is isolated in the midst of a hostile people, with whose manners,
language, and laws he is imperfectly acquainted, but without whose assistance he
cannot live. He can only procure the materials of comfort by bartering his
commodities against the goods of the European, for the assistance of his
countrymen is wholly insufficient to supply his wants. When the Indian wishes to
sell the produce of his labor, he cannot always meet with a purchaser, whilst
the European readily finds a market; and the former can only produce at a
considerable cost that which the latter vends at a very low rate. Thus the
Indian has no sooner escaped those evils to which barbarous nations are exposed,
than he is subjected to the still greater miseries of civilized communities; and
he finds is scarcely less difficult to live in the midst of our abundance, than
in the depth of his own wilderness.
He has not yet lost the habits of his erratic life; the traditions of his
fathers and his passion for the chase are still alive within him. The wild
enjoyments which formerly animated him in the woods, painfully excite his
troubled imagination; and his former privations appear to be less keen, his
former perils less appalling. He contrasts the independence which he possessed
amongst his equals with the servile position which he occupies in civilized
society. On the other hand, the solitudes which were so long his free home are
still at hand; a few hours' march will bring him back to them once more. The
whites offer him a sum, which seems to him to be considerable, for the ground
which he has begun to clear. This money of the Europeans may possibly furnish
him with the means of a happy and peaceful subsistence in remoter regions; and
he quits the plough, resumes his native arms, and returns to the wilderness
forever. *s The condition of the Creeks and Cherokees, to which I have already
alluded, sufficiently corroborates the truth of this deplorable picture.
s
[ The destructive influence of highly civilized nations upon others which are
less so, has been exemplified by the Europeans themselves. About a century ago
the French founded the town of Vincennes up on the Wabash, in the middle of the
desert; and they lived there in great plenty until the arrival of the American
settlers, who first ruined the previous inhabitants by their competition, and
afterwards purchased their lands at a very low rate. At the time when M. de
Volney, from whom I borrow these details, passed through Vincennes, the number
of the French was reduced to a hundred individuals, most of whom were about to
pass over to Louisiana or to Canada. These French settlers were worthy people,
but idle and uninstructed: they had contracted many of the habits of savages.
The Americans, who were perhaps their inferiors, in a moral point of view, were
immeasurably superior to them in intelligence: they were industrious, well
informed, rich, and accustomed to govern their own community.
I myself saw in Canada, where the intellectual difference between the two races
is less striking, that the English are the masters of commerce and manufacture
in the Canadian country, that they spread on all sides, and confine the French
within limits which scarcely suffice to contain them. In like manner, in
Louisiana, almost all activity in commerce and manufacture centres in the hands
of the Anglo-Americans.
But the case of Texas is still more striking: the State of Texas is a part of
Mexico, and lies upon the frontier between that country and the United States.
In the course of the last few years the Anglo-Americans have penetrated into
this province, which is still thinly peopled; they purchase land, they produce
the commodities of the country, and supplant the original population. It may
easily be foreseen that if Mexico takes no steps to check this change, the
province of Texas will very shortly cease to belong to that government.
If the different degrees—comparatively so slight—which exist in European
civilization produce results of such magnitude, the consequences which must
ensue from the collision of the most perfect European civilization with Indian
savages may readily be conceived.]
The Indians, in the little which they have done, have unquestionably displayed
as much natural genius as the peoples of Europe in their most important designs;
but nations as well as men require time to learn, whatever may be their
intelligence and their zeal. Whilst the savages were engaged in the work of
civilization, the Europeans continued to surround them on every side, and to
confine them within narrower limits; the two races gradually met, and they are
now in immediate juxtaposition to each other. The Indian is already superior to
his barbarous parent, but he is still very far below his white neighbor. With
their resources and acquired knowledge, the Europeans soon appropriated to
themselves most of the advantages which the natives might have derived from the
possession of the soil; they have settled in the country, they have purchased
land at a very low rate or have occupied it by force, and the Indians have been
ruined by a competition which they had not the means of resisting. They were
isolated in their own country, and their race only constituted a colony of
troublesome aliens in the midst of a numerous and domineering people. *t
t
[ See in the Legislative Documents (21st Congress, No. 89) instances of excesses
of every kind committed by the whites upon the territory of the Indians, either
in taking possession of a part of their lands, until compelled to retire by the
troops of Congress, or carrying off their cattle, burning their houses, cutting
down their corn, and doing violence to their persons. It appears, nevertheless,
from all these documents that the claims of the natives are constantly protected
by the government from the abuse of force. The Union has a representative agent
continually employed to reside among the Indians; and the report of the Cherokee
agent, which is among the documents I have referred to, is almost always
favorable to the Indians. "The intrusion of whites," he says, "upon the lands of
the Cherokees would cause ruin to the poor, helpless, and inoffensive
inhabitants." And he further remarks upon the attempt of the State of Georgia to
establish a division line for the purpose of limiting the boundaries of the
Cherokees, that the line drawn having been made by the whites, and entirely upon
ex parte evidence of their several rights, was of no validity whatever.]
Washington said in one of his messages to Congress, "We are more enlightened and
more powerful than the Indian nations, we are therefore bound in honor to treat
them with kindness and even with generosity." But this virtuous and high-minded
policy has not been followed. The rapacity of the settlers is usually backed by
the tyranny of the government. Although the Cherokees and the Creeks are
established upon the territory which they inhabited before the settlement of the
Europeans, and although the Americans have frequently treated with them as with
foreign nations, the surrounding States have not consented to acknowledge them
as independent peoples, and attempts have been made to subject these children of
the woods to Anglo-American magistrates, laws, and customs. *u Destitution had
driven these unfortunate Indians to civilization, and oppression now drives them
back to their former condition: many of them abandon the soil which they had
begun to clear, and return to their savage course of life.
u
[ In 1829 the State of Alabama divided the Creek territory into counties, and
subjected the Indian population to the power of European magistrates.
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part III
In 1830 the State of Mississippi assimilated the Choctaws and Chickasaws to the
white population, and declared that any of them that should take the title of
chief would be punished by a fine of $1,000 and a year's imprisonment. When
these laws were enforced upon the Choctaws, who inhabited that district, the
tribe assembled, their chief communicated to them the intentions of the whites,
and read to them some of the laws to which it was intended that they should
submit; and they unanimously declared that it was better at once to retreat
again into the wilds.]
If we consider the tyrannical measures which have been adopted by the
legislatures of the Southern States, the conduct of their Governors, and the
decrees of their courts of justice, we shall be convinced that the entire
expulsion of the Indians is the final result to which the efforts of their
policy are directed. The Americans of that part of the Union look with jealousy
upon the aborigines, *v they are aware that these tribes have not yet lost the
traditions of savage life, and before civilization has permanently fixed them to
the soil, it is intended to force them to recede by reducing them to despair.
The Creeks and Cherokees, oppressed by the several States, have appealed to the
central government, which is by no means insensible to their misfortunes, and is
sincerely desirous of saving the remnant of the natives, and of maintaining them
in the free possession of that territory, which the Union is pledged to respect.
*w But the several States oppose so formidable a resistance to the execution of
this design, that the government is obliged to consent to the extirpation of a
few barbarous tribes in order not to endanger the safety of the American Union.
v
[ The Georgians, who are so much annoyed by the proximity of the Indians,
inhabit a territory which does not at present contain more than seven
inhabitants to the square mile. In France there are one hundred and sixty-two
inhabitants to the same extent of country.]
w
[ In 1818 Congress appointed commissioners to visit the Arkansas Territory,
accompanied by a deputation of Creeks, Choctaws, and Chickasaws. This expedition
was commanded by Messrs. Kennerly, M'Coy, Wash Hood, and John Bell. See the
different reports of the commissioners, and their journal, in the Documents of
Congress, No. 87, House of Representatives.]
But the federal government, which is not able to protect the Indians, would fain
mitigate the hardships of their lot; and, with this intention, proposals have
been made to transport them into more remote regions at the public cost.
Between the thirty-third and thirty-seventh degrees of north latitude, a vast
tract of country lies, which has taken the name of Arkansas, from the principal
river that waters its extent. It is bounded on the one side by the confines of
Mexico, on the other by the Mississippi. Numberless streams cross it in every
direction; the climate is mild, and the soil productive, but it is only
inhabited by a few wandering hordes of savages. The government of the Union
wishes to transport the broken remnants of the indigenous population of the
South to the portion of this country which is nearest to Mexico, and at a great
distance from the American settlements.
We were assured, towards the end of the year 1831, that 10,000 Indians had
already gone down to the shores of the Arkansas; and fresh detachments were
constantly following them; but Congress has been unable to excite a unanimous
determination in those whom it is disposed to protect. Some, indeed, are willing
to quit the seat of oppression, but the most enlightened members of the
community refuse to abandon their recent dwellings and their springing crops;
they are of opinion that the work of civilization, once interrupted, will never
be resumed; they fear that those domestic habits which have been so recently
contracted, may be irrevocably lost in the midst of a country which is still
barbarous, and where nothing is prepared for the subsistence of an agricultural
people; they know that their entrance into those wilds will be opposed by
inimical hordes, and that they have lost the energy of barbarians, without
acquiring the resources of civilization to resist their attacks. Moreover, the
Indians readily discover that the settlement which is proposed to them is merely
a temporary expedient. Who can assure them that they will at length be allowed
to dwell in peace in their new retreat? The United States pledge themselves to
the observance of the obligation; but the territory which they at present occupy
was formerly secured to them by the most solemn oaths of Anglo-American faith.
*x The American government does not indeed rob them of their lands, but it
allows perpetual incursions to be made on them. In a few years the same white
population which now flocks around them, will track them to the solitudes of the
Arkansas; they will then be exposed to the same evils without the same remedies,
and as the limits of the earth will at last fail them, their only refuge is the
grave.
x
[ The fifth article of the treaty made with the Creeks in August, 1790, is in
the following words:—"The United States solemnly guarantee to the Creek nation
all their land within the limits of the United States."
The seventh article of the treaty concluded in 1791 with the Cherokees
says:—"The United States solemnly guarantee to the Cherokee nation all their
lands not hereby ceded." The following article declared that if any citizen of
the United States or other settler not of the Indian race should establish
himself upon the territory of the Cherokees, the United States would withdraw
their protection from that individual, and give him up to be punished as the
Cherokee nation should think fit.]
The Union treats the Indians with less cupidity and rigor than the policy of the
several States, but the two governments are alike destitute of good faith. The
States extend what they are pleased to term the benefits of their laws to the
Indians, with a belief that the tribes will recede rather than submit; and the
central government, which promises a permanent refuge to these unhappy beings is
well aware of its inability to secure it to them. *y
y
[ This does not prevent them from promising in the most solemn manner to do so.
See the letter of the President addressed to the Creek Indians, March 23, 1829
(Proceedings of the Indian Board, in the city of New York, p. 5): "Beyond the
great river Mississippi, where a part of your nation has gone, your father has
provided a country large enough for all of you, and he advises you to remove to
it. There your white brothers will not trouble you; they will have no claim to
the land, and you can live upon it, you and all your children, as long as the
grass grows, or the water runs, in peace and plenty. It will be yours forever."
The Secretary of War, in a letter written to the Cherokees, April 18, 1829, (see
the same work, p. 6), declares to them that they cannot expect to retain
possession of the lands at that time occupied by them, but gives them the most
positive assurance of uninterrupted peace if they would remove beyond the
Mississippi: as if the power which could not grant them protection then, would
be able to afford it them hereafter!]
Thus the tyranny of the States obliges the savages to retire, the Union, by its
promises and resources, facilitates their retreat; and these measures tend to
precisely the same end. *z "By the will of our Father in Heaven, the Governor of
the whole world," said the Cherokees in their petition to Congress, *a "the red
man of America has become small, and the white man great and renowned. When the
ancestors of the people of these United States first came to the shores of
America they found the red man strong: though he was ignorant and savage, yet he
received them kindly, and gave them dry land to rest their weary feet. They met
in peace, and shook hands in token of friendship. Whatever the white man wanted
and asked of the Indian, the latter willingly gave. At that time the Indian was
the lord, and the white man the suppliant. But now the scene has changed. The
strength of the red man has become weakness. As his neighbors increased in
numbers his power became less and less, and now, of the many and powerful tribes
who once covered these United States, only a few are to be seen—a few whom a
sweeping pestilence has left. The northern tribes, who were once so numerous and
powerful, are now nearly extinct. Thus it has happened to the red man of
America. Shall we, who are remnants, share the same fate?"
z
[ To obtain a correct idea of the policy pursued by the several States and the
Union with respect to the Indians, it is necessary to consult, 1st, "The Laws of
the Colonial and State Governments relating to the Indian Inhabitants." (See the
Legislative Documents, 21st Congress, No. 319.) 2d, The Laws of the Union on the
same subject, and especially that of March 30, 1802. (See Story's "Laws of the
United States.") 3d, The Report of Mr. Cass, Secretary of War, relative to
Indian Affairs, November 29, 1823.]
a
[ December 18, 1829.]
"The land on which we stand we have received as an inheritance from our fathers,
who possessed it from time immemorial, as a gift from our common Father in
Heaven. They bequeathed it to us as their children, and we have sacredly kept
it, as containing the remains of our beloved men. This right of inheritance we
have never ceded nor ever forfeited. Permit us to ask what better right can the
people have to a country than the right of inheritance and immemorial peaceable
possession? We know it is said of late by the State of Georgia and by the
Executive of the United States, that we have forfeited this right; but we think
this is said gratuitously. At what time have we made the forfeit? What great
crime have we committed, whereby we must forever be divested of our country and
rights? Was it when we were hostile to the United States, and took part with the
King of Great Britain, during the struggle for independence? If so, why was not
this forfeiture declared in the first treaty of peace between the United States
and our beloved men? Why was not such an article as the following inserted in
the treaty:—'The United States give peace to the Cherokees, but, for the part
they took in the late war, declare them to be but tenants at will, to be removed
when the convenience of the States, within whose chartered limits they live,
shall require it'? That was the proper time to assume such a possession. But it
was not thought of, nor would our forefathers have agreed to any treaty whose
tendency was to deprive them of their rights and their country."
Such is the language of the Indians: their assertions are true, their
forebodings inevitable. From whichever side we consider the destinies of the
aborigines of North America, their calamities appear to be irremediable: if they
continue barbarous, they are forced to retire; if they attempt to civilize their
manners, the contact of a more civilized community subjects them to oppression
and destitution. They perish if they continue to wander from waste to waste, and
if they attempt to settle they still must perish; the assistance of Europeans is
necessary to instruct them, but the approach of Europeans corrupts and repels
them into savage life; they refuse to change their habits as long as their
solitudes are their own, and it is too late to change them when they are
constrained to submit.
The Spaniards pursued the Indians with bloodhounds, like wild beasts; they
sacked the New World with no more temper or compassion than a city taken by
storm; but destruction must cease, and frenzy be stayed; the remnant of the
Indian population which had escaped the massacre mixed with its conquerors, and
adopted in the end their religion and their manners. *b The conduct of the
Americans of the United States towards the aborigines is characterized, on the
other hand, by a singular attachment to the formalities of law. Provided that
the Indians retain their barbarous condition, the Americans take no part in
their affairs; they treat them as independent nations, and do not possess
themselves of their hunting grounds without a treaty of purchase; and if an
Indian nation happens to be so encroached upon as to be unable to subsist upon
its territory, they afford it brotherly assistance in transporting it to a grave
sufficiently remote from the land of its fathers.
b
[ The honor of this result is, however, by no means due to the Spaniards. If the
Indian tribes had not been tillers of the ground at the time of the arrival of
the Europeans, they would unquestionably have been destroyed in South as well as
in North America.]
The Spaniards were unable to exterminate the Indian race by those unparalleled
atrocities which brand them with indelible shame, nor did they even succeed in
wholly depriving it of its rights; but the Americans of the United States have
accomplished this twofold purpose with singular felicity; tranquilly, legally,
philanthropically, without shedding blood, and without violating a single great
principle of morality in the eyes of the world. *c It is impossible to destroy
men with more respect for the laws of humanity.
c
[ See, amongst other documents, the report made by Mr. Bell in the name of the
Committee on Indian Affairs, February 24, 1830, in which is most logically
established and most learnedly proved, that "the fundamental principle that the
Indians had no right by virtue of their ancient possession either of will or
sovereignty, has never been abandoned either expressly or by implication." In
perusing this report, which is evidently drawn up by an experienced hand, one is
astonished at the facility with which the author gets rid of all arguments
founded upon reason and natural right, which he designates as abstract and
theoretical principles. The more I contemplate the difference between civilized
and uncivilized man with regard to the principles of justice, the more I observe
that the former contests the justice of those rights which the latter simply
violates.]
[I leave this chapter wholly unchanged, for it has always appeared to me to be
one of the most eloquent and touching parts of this book. But it has ceased to
be prophetic; the destruction of the Indian race in the United States is already
consummated. In 1870 there remained but 25,731 Indians in the whole territory of
the Union, and of these by far the largest part exist in California, Michigan,
Wisconsin, Dakota, and New Mexico and Nevada. In New England, Pennsylvania, and
New York the race is extinct; and the predictions of M. de Tocqueville are
fulfilled. —Translator's Note.]
Situation Of The Black Population In The United States, And Dangers With Which
Its Presence Threatens The Whites
Why it is more difficult to abolish slavery, and to efface all vestiges of it
amongst the moderns than it was amongst the ancients—In the United States the
prejudices of the Whites against the Blacks seem to increase in proportion as
slavery is abolished—Situation of the Negroes in the Northern and Southern
States—Why the Americans abolish slavery—Servitude, which debases the slave,
impoverishes the master—Contrast between the left and the right bank of the
Ohio—To what attributable—The Black race, as well as slavery, recedes towards
the South—Explanation of this fact—Difficulties attendant upon the abolition of
slavery in the South—Dangers to come—General anxiety—Foundation of a Black
colony in Africa—Why the Americans of the South increase the hardships of
slavery, whilst they are distressed at its continuance.
The Indians will perish in the same isolated condition in which they have lived;
but the destiny of the negroes is in some measure interwoven with that of the
Europeans. These two races are attached to each other without intermingling, and
they are alike unable entirely to separate or to combine. The most formidable of
all the ills which threaten the future existence of the Union arises from the
presence of a black population upon its territory; and in contemplating the
cause of the present embarrassments or of the future dangers of the United
States, the observer is invariably led to consider this as a primary fact.
The permanent evils to which mankind is subjected are usually produced by the
vehement or the increasing efforts of men; but there is one calamity which
penetrated furtively into the world, and which was at first scarcely
distinguishable amidst the ordinary abuses of power; it originated with an
individual whose name history has not preserved; it was wafted like some
accursed germ upon a portion of the soil, but it afterwards nurtured itself,
grew without effort, and spreads naturally with the society to which it belongs.
I need scarcely add that this calamity is slavery. Christianity suppressed
slavery, but the Christians of the sixteenth century re-established it—as an
exception, indeed, to their social system, and restricted to one of the races of
mankind; but the wound thus inflicted upon humanity, though less extensive, was
at the same time rendered far more difficult of cure.
It is important to make an accurate distinction between slavery itself and its
consequences. The immediate evils which are produced by slavery were very nearly
the same in antiquity as they are amongst the moderns; but the consequences of
these evils were different. The slave, amongst the ancients, belonged to the
same race as his master, and he was often the superior of the two in education
*d and instruction. Freedom was the only distinction between them; and when
freedom was conferred they were easily confounded together. The ancients, then,
had a very simple means of avoiding slavery and its evil consequences, which was
that of affranchisement; and they succeeded as soon as they adopted this measure
generally. Not but, in ancient States, the vestiges of servitude subsisted for
some time after servitude itself was abolished. There is a natural prejudice
which prompts men to despise whomsoever has been their inferior long after he is
become their equal; and the real inequality which is produced by fortune or by
law is always succeeded by an imaginary inequality which is implanted in the
manners of the people. Nevertheless, this secondary consequence of slavery was
limited to a certain term amongst the ancients, for the freedman bore so entire
a resemblance to those born free, that it soon became impossible to distinguish
him from amongst them.
d
[ It is well known that several of the most distinguished authors of antiquity,
and amongst them Aesop and Terence, were, or had been slaves. Slaves were not
always taken from barbarous nations, and the chances of war reduced highly
civilized men to servitude.]
The greatest difficulty in antiquity was that of altering the law; amongst the
moderns it is that of altering the manners; and, as far as we are concerned, the
real obstacles begin where those of the ancients left off. This arises from the
circumstance that, amongst the moderns, the abstract and transient fact of
slavery is fatally united to the physical and permanent fact of color. The
tradition of slavery dishonors the race, and the peculiarity of the race
perpetuates the tradition of slavery. No African has ever voluntarily emigrated
to the shores of the New World; whence it must be inferred, that all the blacks
who are now to be found in that hemisphere are either slaves or freedmen. Thus
the negro transmits the eternal mark of his ignominy to all his descendants; and
although the law may abolish slavery, God alone can obliterate the traces of its
existence.
The modern slave differs from his master not only in his condition, but in his
origin. You may set the negro free, but you cannot make him otherwise than an
alien to the European. Nor is this all; we scarcely acknowledge the common
features of mankind in this child of debasement whom slavery has brought amongst
us. His physiognomy is to our eyes hideous, his understanding weak, his tastes
low; and we are almost inclined to look upon him as a being intermediate between
man and the brutes. *e The moderns, then, after they have abolished slavery,
have three prejudices to contend against, which are less easy to attack and far
less easy to conquer than the mere fact of servitude: the prejudice of the
master, the prejudice of the race, and the prejudice of color.
e
[ To induce the whites to abandon the opinion they have conceived of the moral
and intellectual inferiority of their former slaves, the negroes must change;
but as long as this opinion subsists, to change is impossible.]
It is difficult for us, who have had the good fortune to be born amongst men
like ourselves by nature, and equal to ourselves by law, to conceive the
irreconcilable differences which separate the negro from the European in
America. But we may derive some faint notion of them from analogy. France was
formerly a country in which numerous distinctions of rank existed, that had been
created by the legislation. Nothing can be more fictitious than a purely legal
inferiority; nothing more contrary to the instinct of mankind than these
permanent divisions which had been established between beings evidently similar.
Nevertheless these divisions subsisted for ages; they still subsist in many
places; and on all sides they have left imaginary vestiges, which time alone can
efface. If it be so difficult to root out an inequality which solely originates
in the law, how are those distinctions to be destroyed which seem to be based
upon the immutable laws of Nature herself? When I remember the extreme
difficulty with which aristocratic bodies, of whatever nature they may be, are
commingled with the mass of the people; and the exceeding care which they take
to preserve the ideal boundaries of their caste inviolate, I despair of seeing
an aristocracy disappear which is founded upon visible and indelible signs.
Those who hope that the Europeans will ever mix with the negroes, appear to me
to delude themselves; and I am not led to any such conclusion by my own reason,
or by the evidence of facts.
Hitherto, wherever the whites have been the most powerful, they have maintained
the blacks in a subordinate or a servile position; wherever the negroes have
been strongest they have destroyed the whites; such has been the only
retribution which has ever taken place between the two races.
I see that in a certain portion of the territory of the United States at the
present day, the legal barrier which separated the two races is tending to fall
away, but not that which exists in the manners of the country; slavery recedes,
but the prejudice to which it has given birth remains stationary. Whosoever has
inhabited the United States must have perceived that in those parts of the Union
in which the negroes are no longer slaves, they have in no wise drawn nearer to
the whites. On the contrary, the prejudice of the race appears to be stronger in
the States which have abolished slavery, than in those where it still exists;
and nowhere is it so intolerant as in those States where servitude has never
been known.
It is true, that in the North of the Union, marriages may be legally contracted
between negroes and whites; but public opinion would stigmatize a man who should
connect himself with a negress as infamous, and it would be difficult to meet
with a single instance of such a union. The electoral franchise has been
conferred upon the negroes in almost all the States in which slavery has been
abolished; but if they come forward to vote, their lives are in danger. If
oppressed, they may bring an action at law, but they will find none but whites
amongst their judges; and although they may legally serve as jurors, prejudice
repulses them from that office. The same schools do not receive the child of the
black and of the European. In the theatres, gold cannot procure a seat for the
servile race beside their former masters; in the hospitals they lie apart; and
although they are allowed to invoke the same Divinity as the whites, it must be
at a different altar, and in their own churches, with their own clergy. The
gates of Heaven are not closed against these unhappy beings; but their
inferiority is continued to the very confines of the other world; when the negro
is defunct, his bones are cast aside, and the distinction of condition prevails
even in the equality of death. The negro is free, but he can share neither the
rights, nor the pleasures, nor the labor, nor the afflictions, nor the tomb of
him whose equal he has been declared to be; and he cannot meet him upon fair
terms in life or in death.
In the South, where slavery still exists, the negroes are less carefully kept
apart; they sometimes share the labor and the recreations of the whites; the
whites consent to intermix with them to a certain extent, and although the
legislation treats them more harshly, the habits of the people are more tolerant
and compassionate. In the South the master is not afraid to raise his slave to
his own standing, because he knows that he can in a moment reduce him to the
dust at pleasure. In the North the white no longer distinctly perceives the
barrier which separates him from the degraded race, and he shuns the negro with
the more pertinacity, since he fears lest they should some day be confounded
together.
Amongst the Americans of the South, nature sometimes reasserts her rights, and
restores a transient equality between the blacks and the whites; but in the
North pride restrains the most imperious of human passions. The American of the
Northern States would perhaps allow the negress to share his licentious
pleasures, if the laws of his country did not declare that she may aspire to be
the legitimate partner of his bed; but he recoils with horror from her who might
become his wife.
Thus it is, in the United States, that the prejudice which repels the negroes
seems to increase in proportion as they are emancipated, and inequality is
sanctioned by the manners whilst it is effaced from the laws of the country. But
if the relative position of the two races which inhabit the United States is
such as I have described, it may be asked why the Americans have abolished
slavery in the North of the Union, why they maintain it in the South, and why
they aggravate its hardships there? The answer is easily given. It is not for
the good of the negroes, but for that of the whites, that measures are taken to
abolish slavery in the United States.
The first negroes were imported into Virginia about the year 1621. *f In
America, therefore, as well as in the rest of the globe, slavery originated in
the South. Thence it spread from one settlement to another; but the number of
slaves diminished towards the Northern States, and the negro population was
always very limited in New England. *g
f
[ See Beverley's "History of Virginia." See also in Jefferson's "Memoirs" some
curious details concerning the introduction of negroes into Virginia, and the
first Act which prohibited the importation of them in 1778.]
g
[ The number of slaves was less considerable in the North, but the advantages
resulting from slavery were not more contested there than in the South. In 1740,
the Legislature of the State of New York declared that the direct importation of
slaves ought to be encouraged as much as possible, and smuggling severely
punished in order not to discourage the fair trader. (Kent's "Commentaries,"
vol. ii. p. 206.) Curious researches, by Belknap, upon slavery in New England,
are to be found in the "Historical Collection of Massachusetts," vol. iv. p.
193. It appears that negroes were introduced there in 1630, but that the
legislation and manners of the people were opposed to slavery from the first;
see also, in the same work, the manner in which public opinion, and afterwards
the laws, finally put an end to slavery.]
A century had scarcely elapsed since the foundation of the colonies, when the
attention of the planters was struck by the extraordinary fact, that the
provinces which were comparatively destitute of slaves, increased in population,
in wealth, and in prosperity more rapidly than those which contained the
greatest number of negroes. In the former, however, the inhabitants were obliged
to cultivate the soil themselves, or by hired laborers; in the latter they were
furnished with hands for which they paid no wages; yet although labor and
expenses were on the one side, and ease with economy on the other, the former
were in possession of the most advantageous system. This consequence seemed to
be the more difficult to explain, since the settlers, who all belonged to the
same European race, had the same habits, the same civilization, the same laws,
and their shades of difference were extremely slight.
Time, however, continued to advance, and the Anglo-Americans, spreading beyond
the coasts of the Atlantic Ocean, penetrated farther and farther into the
solitudes of the West; they met with a new soil and an unwonted climate; the
obstacles which opposed them were of the most various character; their races
intermingled, the inhabitants of the South went up towards the North, those of
the North descended to the South; but in the midst of all these causes, the same
result occurred at every step, and in general, the colonies in which there were
no slaves became more populous and more rich than those in which slavery
flourished. The more progress was made, the more was it shown that slavery,
which is so cruel to the slave, is prejudicial to the master.
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part IV
But this truth was most satisfactorily demonstrated when civilization reached
the banks of the Ohio. The stream which the Indians had distinguished by the
name of Ohio, or Beautiful River, waters one of the most magnificent valleys
that has ever been made the abode of man. Undulating lands extend upon both
shores of the Ohio, whose soil affords inexhaustible treasures to the laborer;
on either bank the air is wholesome and the climate mild, and each of them forms
the extreme frontier of a vast State: That which follows the numerous windings
of the Ohio upon the left is called Kentucky, that upon the right bears the name
of the river. These two States only differ in a single respect; Kentucky has
admitted slavery, but the State of Ohio has prohibited the existence of slaves
within its borders. *h
h
[ Not only is slavery prohibited in Ohio, but no free negroes are allowed to
enter the territory of that State, or to hold property in it. See the Statutes
of Ohio.]
Thus the traveller who floats down the current of the Ohio to the spot where
that river falls into the Mississippi, may be said to sail between liberty and
servitude; and a transient inspection of the surrounding objects will convince
him as to which of the two is most favorable to mankind. Upon the left bank of
the stream the population is rare; from time to time one descries a troop of
slaves loitering in the half-desert fields; the primaeval forest recurs at every
turn; society seems to be asleep, man to be idle, and nature alone offers a
scene of activity and of life. From the right bank, on the contrary, a confused
hum is heard which proclaims the presence of industry; the fields are covered
with abundant harvests, the elegance of the dwellings announces the taste and
activity of the laborer, and man appears to be in the enjoyment of that wealth
and contentment which is the reward of labor. *i
i
[ The activity of Ohio is not confined to individuals, but the undertakings of
the State are surprisingly great; a canal has been established between Lake Erie
and the Ohio, by means of which the valley of the Mississippi communicates with
the river of the North, and the European commodities which arrive at New York
may be forwarded by water to New Orleans across five hundred leagues of
continent.]
The State of Kentucky was founded in 1775, the State of Ohio only twelve years
later; but twelve years are more in America than half a century in Europe, and,
at the present day, the population of Ohio exceeds that of Kentucky by two
hundred and fifty thousand souls. *j These opposite consequences of slavery and
freedom may readily be understood, and they suffice to explain many of the
differences which we remark between the civilization of antiquity and that of
our own time.
j
[ The exact numbers given by the census of 1830 were: Kentucky, 688,-844; Ohio,
937,679. [In 1890 the population of Ohio was 3,672,316, that of Kentucky,
1,858,635.]]
Upon the left bank of the Ohio labor is confounded with the idea of slavery,
upon the right bank it is identified with that of prosperity and improvement; on
the one side it is degraded, on the other it is honored; on the former territory
no white laborers can be found, for they would be afraid of assimilating
themselves to the negroes; on the latter no one is idle, for the white
population extends its activity and its intelligence to every kind of
employment. Thus the men whose task it is to cultivate the rich soil of Kentucky
are ignorant and lukewarm; whilst those who are active and enlightened either do
nothing or pass over into the State of Ohio, where they may work without
dishonor.
It is true that in Kentucky the planters are not obliged to pay wages to the
slaves whom they employ; but they derive small profits from their labor, whilst
the wages paid to free workmen would be returned with interest in the value of
their services. The free workman is paid, but he does his work quicker than the
slave, and rapidity of execution is one of the great elements of economy. The
white sells his services, but they are only purchased at the times at which they
may be useful; the black can claim no remuneration for his toil, but the expense
of his maintenance is perpetual; he must be supported in his old age as well as
in the prime of manhood, in his profitless infancy as well as in the productive
years of youth. Payment must equally be made in order to obtain the services of
either class of men: the free workman receives his wages in money, the slave in
education, in food, in care, and in clothing. The money which a master spends in
the maintenance of his slaves goes gradually and in detail, so that it is
scarcely perceived; the salary of the free workman is paid in a round sum, which
appears only to enrich the individual who receives it, but in the end the slave
has cost more than the free servant, and his labor is less productive. *k
k
[ Independently of these causes, which, wherever free workmen abound, render
their labor more productive and more economical than that of slaves, another
cause may be pointed out which is peculiar to the United States: the sugar-cane
has hitherto been cultivated with success only upon the banks of the
Mississippi, near the mouth of that river in the Gulf of Mexico. In Louisiana
the cultivation of the sugar-cane is exceedingly lucrative, and nowhere does a
laborer earn so much by his work, and, as there is always a certain relation
between the cost of production and the value of the produce, the price of slaves
is very high in Louisiana. But Louisiana is one of the confederated States, and
slaves may be carried thither from all parts of the Union; the price given for
slaves in New Orleans consequently raises the value of slaves in all the other
markets. The consequence of this is, that in the countries where the land is
less productive, the cost of slave labor is still very considerable, which gives
an additional advantage to the competition of free labor.]
The influence of slavery extends still further; it affects the character of the
master, and imparts a peculiar tendency to his ideas and his tastes. Upon both
banks of the Ohio, the character of the inhabitants is enterprising and
energetic; but this vigor is very differently exercised in the two States. The
white inhabitant of Ohio, who is obliged to subsist by his own exertions,
regards temporal prosperity as the principal aim of his existence; and as the
country which he occupies presents inexhaustible resources to his industry and
ever-varying lures to his activity, his acquisitive ardor surpasses the ordinary
limits of human cupidity: he is tormented by the desire of wealth, and he boldly
enters upon every path which fortune opens to him; he becomes a sailor, a
pioneer, an artisan, or a laborer with the same indifference, and he supports,
with equal constancy, the fatigues and the dangers incidental to these various
professions; the resources of his intelligence are astonishing, and his avidity
in the pursuit of gain amounts to a species of heroism.
But the Kentuckian scorns not only labor, but all the undertakings which labor
promotes; as he lives in an idle independence, his tastes are those of an idle
man; money loses a portion of its value in his eyes; he covets wealth much less
than pleasure and excitement; and the energy which his neighbor devotes to gain,
turns with him to a passionate love of field sports and military exercises; he
delights in violent bodily exertion, he is familiar with the use of arms, and is
accustomed from a very early age to expose his life in single combat. Thus
slavery not only prevents the whites from becoming opulent, but even from
desiring to become so.
As the same causes have been continually producing opposite effects for the last
two centuries in the British colonies of North America, they have established a
very striking difference between the commercial capacity of the inhabitants of
the South and those of the North. At the present day it is only the Northern
States which are in possession of shipping, manufactures, railroads, and canals.
This difference is perceptible not only in comparing the North with the South,
but in comparing the several Southern States. Almost all the individuals who
carry on commercial operations, or who endeavor to turn slave labor to account
in the most Southern districts of the Union, have emigrated from the North. The
natives of the Northern States are constantly spreading over that portion of the
American territory where they have less to fear from competition; they discover
resources there which escaped the notice of the inhabitants; and, as they comply
with a system which they do not approve, they succeed in turning it to better
advantage than those who first founded and who still maintain it.
Were I inclined to continue this parallel, I could easily prove that almost all
the differences which may be remarked between the characters of the Americans in
the Southern and in the Northern States have originated in slavery; but this
would divert me from my subject, and my present intention is not to point out
all the consequences of servitude, but those effects which it has produced upon
the prosperity of the countries which have admitted it.
The influence of slavery upon the production of wealth must have been very
imperfectly known in antiquity, as slavery then obtained throughout the
civilized world; and the nations which were unacquainted with it were barbarous.
And indeed Christianity only abolished slavery by advocating the claims of the
slave; at the present time it may be attacked in the name of the master, and,
upon this point, interest is reconciled with morality.
As these truths became apparent in the United States, slavery receded before the
progress of experience. Servitude had begun in the South, and had thence spread
towards the North; but it now retires again. Freedom, which started from the
North, now descends uninterruptedly towards the South. Amongst the great States,
Pennsylvania now constitutes the extreme limit of slavery to the North: but even
within those limits the slave system is shaken: Maryland, which is immediately
below Pennsylvania, is preparing for its abolition; and Virginia, which comes
next to Maryland, is already discussing its utility and its dangers. *l
l
[ A peculiar reason contributes to detach the two last-mentioned States from the
cause of slavery. The former wealth of this part of the Union was principally
derived from the cultivation of tobacco. This cultivation is specially carried
on by slaves; but within the last few years the market-price of tobacco has
diminished, whilst the value of the slaves remains the same. Thus the ratio
between the cost of production and the value of the produce is changed. The
natives of Maryland and Virginia are therefore more disposed than they were
thirty years ago, to give up slave labor in the cultivation of tobacco, or to
give up slavery and tobacco at the same time.]
No great change takes place in human institutions without involving amongst its
causes the law of inheritance. When the law of primogeniture obtained in the
South, each family was represented by a wealthy individual, who was neither
compelled nor induced to labor; and he was surrounded, as by parasitic plants,
by the other members of his family who were then excluded by law from sharing
the common inheritance, and who led the same kind of life as himself. The very
same thing then occurred in all the families of the South as still happens in
the wealthy families of some countries in Europe, namely, that the younger sons
remain in the same state of idleness as their elder brother, without being as
rich as he is. This identical result seems to be produced in Europe and in
America by wholly analogous causes. In the South of the United States the whole
race of whites formed an aristocratic body, which was headed by a certain number
of privileged individuals, whose wealth was permanent, and whose leisure was
hereditary. These leaders of the American nobility kept alive the traditional
prejudices of the white race in the body of which they were the representatives,
and maintained the honor of inactive life. This aristocracy contained many who
were poor, but none who would work; its members preferred want to labor,
consequently no competition was set on foot against negro laborers and slaves,
and, whatever opinion might be entertained as to the utility of their efforts,
it was indispensable to employ them, since there was no one else to work.
No sooner was the law of primogeniture abolished than fortunes began to
diminish, and all the families of the country were simultaneously reduced to a
state in which labor became necessary to procure the means of subsistence:
several of them have since entirely disappeared, and all of them learned to look
forward to the time at which it would be necessary for everyone to provide for
his own wants. Wealthy individuals are still to be met with, but they no longer
constitute a compact and hereditary body, nor have they been able to adopt a
line of conduct in which they could persevere, and which they could infuse into
all ranks of society. The prejudice which stigmatized labor was in the first
place abandoned by common consent; the number of needy men was increased, and
the needy were allowed to gain a laborious subsistence without blushing for
their exertions. Thus one of the most immediate consequences of the partible
quality of estates has been to create a class of free laborers. As soon as a
competition was set on foot between the free laborer and the slave, the
inferiority of the latter became manifest, and slavery was attacked in its
fundamental principle, which is the interest of the master.
As slavery recedes, the black population follows its retrograde course, and
returns with it towards those tropical regions from which it originally came.
However singular this fact may at first appear to be, it may readily be
explained. Although the Americans abolish the principle of slavery, they do not
set their slaves free. To illustrate this remark, I will quote the example of
the State of New York. In 1788, the State of New York prohibited the sale of
slaves within its limits, which was an indirect method of prohibiting the
importation of blacks. Thenceforward the number of negroes could only increase
according to the ratio of the natural increase of population. But eight years
later a more decisive measure was taken, and it was enacted that all children
born of slave parents after July 4, 1799, should be free. No increase could then
take place, and although slaves still existed, slavery might be said to be
abolished.
From the time at which a Northern State prohibited the importation of slaves, no
slaves were brought from the South to be sold in its markets. On the other hand,
as the sale of slaves was forbidden in that State, an owner was no longer able
to get rid of his slave (who thus became a burdensome possession) otherwise than
by transporting him to the South. But when a Northern State declared that the
son of the slave should be born free, the slave lost a large portion of his
market value, since his posterity was no longer included in the bargain, and the
owner had then a strong interest in transporting him to the South. Thus the same
law prevents the slaves of the South from coming to the Northern States, and
drives those of the North to the South.
The want of free hands is felt in a State in proportion as the number of slaves
decreases. But in proportion as labor is performed by free hands, slave labor
becomes less productive; and the slave is then a useless or onerous possession,
whom it is important to export to those Southern States where the same
competition is not to be feared. Thus the abolition of slavery does not set the
slave free, but it merely transfers him from one master to another, and from the
North to the South.
The emancipated negroes, and those born after the abolition of slavery, do not,
indeed, migrate from the North to the South; but their situation with regard to
the Europeans is not unlike that of the aborigines of America; they remain half
civilized, and deprived of their rights in the midst of a population which is
far superior to them in wealth and in knowledge; where they are exposed to the
tyranny of the laws *m and the intolerance of the people. On some accounts they
are still more to be pitied than the Indians, since they are haunted by the
reminiscence of slavery, and they cannot claim possession of a single portion of
the soil: many of them perish miserably, *n and the rest congregate in the great
towns, where they perform the meanest offices, and lead a wretched and
precarious existence.
m
[ The States in which slavery is abolished usually do what they can to render
their territory disagreeable to the negroes as a place of residence; and as a
kind of emulation exists between the different States in this respect, the
unhappy blacks can only choose the least of the evils which beset them.]
n
[ There is a very great difference between the mortality of the blacks and of
the whites in the States in which slavery is abolished; from 1820 to 1831 only
one out of forty-two individuals of the white population died in Philadelphia;
but one negro out of twenty-one individuals of the black population died in the
same space of time. The mortality is by no means so great amongst the negroes
who are still slaves. (See Emerson's "Medical Statistics," p. 28.)]
But even if the number of negroes continued to increase as rapidly as when they
were still in a state of slavery, as the number of whites augments with twofold
rapidity since the abolition of slavery, the blacks would soon be, as it were,
lost in the midst of a strange population.
A district which is cultivated by slaves is in general more scantily peopled
than a district cultivated by free labor: moreover, America is still a new
country, and a State is therefore not half peopled at the time when it abolishes
slavery. No sooner is an end put to slavery than the want of free labor is felt,
and a crowd of enterprising adventurers immediately arrive from all parts of the
country, who hasten to profit by the fresh resources which are then opened to
industry. The soil is soon divided amongst them, and a family of white settlers
takes possession of each tract of country. Besides which, European emigration is
exclusively directed to the free States; for what would be the fate of a poor
emigrant who crosses the Atlantic in search of ease and happiness if he were to
land in a country where labor is stigmatized as degrading?
Thus the white population grows by its natural increase, and at the same time by
the immense influx of emigrants; whilst the black population receives no
emigrants, and is upon its decline. The proportion which existed between the two
races is soon inverted. The negroes constitute a scanty remnant, a poor tribe of
vagrants, which is lost in the midst of an immense people in full possession of
the land; and the presence of the blacks is only marked by the injustice and the
hardships of which they are the unhappy victims.
In several of the Western States the negro race never made its appearance, and
in all the Northern States it is rapidly declining. Thus the great question of
its future condition is confined within a narrow circle, where it becomes less
formidable, though not more easy of solution.
The more we descend towards the South, the more difficult does it become to
abolish slavery with advantage: and this arises from several physical causes
which it is important to point out.
The first of these causes is the climate; it is well known that in proportion as
Europeans approach the tropics they suffer more from labor. Many of the
Americans even assert that within a certain latitude the exertions which a negro
can make without danger are fatal to them; *o but I do not think that this
opinion, which is so favorable to the indolence of the inhabitants of southern
regions, is confirmed by experience. The southern parts of the Union are not
hotter than the South of Italy and of Spain; *p and it may be asked why the
European cannot work as well there as in the two latter countries. If slavery
has been abolished in Italy and in Spain without causing the destruction of the
masters, why should not the same thing take place in the Union? I cannot believe
that nature has prohibited the Europeans in Georgia and the Floridas, under pain
of death, from raising the means of subsistence from the soil, but their labor
would unquestionably be more irksome and less productive to them than to the
inhabitants of New England. As the free workman thus loses a portion of his
superiority over the slave in the Southern States, there are fewer inducements
to abolish slavery.
o
[ This is true of the spots in which rice is cultivated; rice-grounds, which are
unwholesome in all countries, are particularly dangerous in those regions which
are exposed to the beams of a tropical sun. Europeans would not find it easy to
cultivate the soil in that part of the New World if it must be necessarily be
made to produce rice; but may they not subsist without rice-grounds?]
p
[ These States are nearer to the equator than Italy and Spain, but the
temperature of the continent of America is very much lower than that of Europe.
The Spanish Government formerly caused a certain number of peasants from the
Acores to be transported into a district of Louisiana called Attakapas, by way
of experiment. These settlers still cultivate the soil without the assistance of
slaves, but their industry is so languid as scarcely to supply their most
necessary wants.]
All the plants of Europe grow in the northern parts of the Union; the South has
special productions of its own. It has been observed that slave labor is a very
expensive method of cultivating corn. The farmer of corn land in a country where
slavery is unknown habitually retains a small number of laborers in his service,
and at seed-time and harvest he hires several additional hands, who only live at
his cost for a short period. But the agriculturist in a slave State is obliged
to keep a large number of slaves the whole year round, in order to sow his
fields and to gather in his crops, although their services are only required for
a few weeks; but slaves are unable to wait till they are hired, and to subsist
by their own labor in the mean time like free laborers; in order to have their
services they must be bought. Slavery, independently of its general
disadvantages, is therefore still more inapplicable to countries in which corn
is cultivated than to those which produce crops of a different kind. The
cultivation of tobacco, of cotton, and especially of the sugar-cane, demands, on
the other hand, unremitting attention: and women and children are employed in
it, whose services are of but little use in the cultivation of wheat. Thus
slavery is naturally more fitted to the countries from which these productions
are derived. Tobacco, cotton, and the sugar-cane are exclusively grown in the
South, and they form one of the principal sources of the wealth of those States.
If slavery were abolished, the inhabitants of the South would be constrained to
adopt one of two alternatives: they must either change their system of
cultivation, and then they would come into competition with the more active and
more experienced inhabitants of the North; or, if they continued to cultivate
the same produce without slave labor, they would have to support the competition
of the other States of the South, which might still retain their slaves. Thus,
peculiar reasons for maintaining slavery exist in the South which do not operate
in the North.
But there is yet another motive which is more cogent than all the others: the
South might indeed, rigorously speaking, abolish slavery; but how should it rid
its territory of the black population? Slaves and slavery are driven from the
North by the same law, but this twofold result cannot be hoped for in the South.
The arguments which I have adduced to show that slavery is more natural and more
advantageous in the South than in the North, sufficiently prove that the number
of slaves must be far greater in the former districts. It was to the southern
settlements that the first Africans were brought, and it is there that the
greatest number of them have always been imported. As we advance towards the
South, the prejudice which sanctions idleness increases in power. In the States
nearest to the tropics there is not a single white laborer; the negroes are
consequently much more numerous in the South than in the North. And, as I have
already observed, this disproportion increases daily, since the negroes are
transferred to one part of the Union as soon as slavery is abolished in the
other. Thus the black population augments in the South, not only by its natural
fecundity, but by the compulsory emigration of the negroes from the North; and
the African race has causes of increase in the South very analogous to those
which so powerfully accelerate the growth of the European race in the North.
In the State of Maine there is one negro in 300 inhabitants; in Massachusetts,
one in 100; in New York, two in 100; in Pennsylvania, three in the same number;
in Maryland, thirty-four; in Virginia, forty-two; and lastly, in South Carolina
*q fifty-five per cent. Such was the proportion of the black population to the
whites in the year 1830. But this proportion is perpetually changing, as it
constantly decreases in the North and augments in the South.
q
[ We find it asserted in an American work, entitled "Letters on the Colonization
Society," by Mr. Carey, 1833, "That for the last forty years the black race has
increased more rapidly than the white race in the State of South Carolina; and
that if we take the average population of the five States of the South into
which slaves were first introduced, viz., Maryland, Virginia, South Carolina,
North Carolina, and Georgia, we shall find that from 1790 to 1830 the whites
have augmented in the proportion of 80 to 100, and the blacks in that of 112 to
100."
In the United States, in 1830, the population of the two races stood as
follows:—
States where slavery is abolished, 6,565,434 whites; 120,520 blacks. Slave
States, 3,960,814 whites; 2,208,102 blacks. [In 1890 the United States contained
a population of 54,983,890 whites, and 7,638,360 negroes.]]
It is evident that the most Southern States of the Union cannot abolish slavery
without incurring very great dangers, which the North had no reason to apprehend
when it emancipated its black population. We have already shown the system by
which the Northern States secure the transition from slavery to freedom, by
keeping the present generation in chains, and setting their descendants free; by
this means the negroes are gradually introduced into society; and whilst the men
who might abuse their freedom are kept in a state of servitude, those who are
emancipated may learn the art of being free before they become their own
masters. But it would be difficult to apply this method in the South. To declare
that all the negroes born after a certain period shall be free, is to introduce
the principle and the notion of liberty into the heart of slavery; the blacks
whom the law thus maintains in a state of slavery from which their children are
delivered, are astonished at so unequal a fate, and their astonishment is only
the prelude to their impatience and irritation. Thenceforward slavery loses, in
their eyes, that kind of moral power which it derived from time and habit; it is
reduced to a mere palpable abuse of force. The Northern States had nothing to
fear from the contrast, because in them the blacks were few in number, and the
white population was very considerable. But if this faint dawn of freedom were
to show two millions of men their true position, the oppressors would have
reason to tremble. After having affranchised the children of their slaves the
Europeans of the Southern States would very shortly be obliged to extend the
same benefit to the whole black population.
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part V
In the North, as I have already remarked, a twofold migration ensues upon the
abolition of slavery, or even precedes that event when circumstances have
rendered it probable; the slaves quit the country to be transported southwards;
and the whites of the Northern States, as well as the emigrants from Europe,
hasten to fill up their place. But these two causes cannot operate in the same
manner in the Southern States. On the one hand, the mass of slaves is too great
for any expectation of their ever being removed from the country to be
entertained; and on the other hand, the Europeans and Anglo-Americans of the
North are afraid to come to inhabit a country in which labor has not yet been
reinstated in its rightful honors. Besides, they very justly look upon the
States in which the proportion of the negroes equals or exceeds that of the
whites, as exposed to very great dangers; and they refrain from turning their
activity in that direction.
Thus the inhabitants of the South would not be able, like their Northern
countrymen, to initiate the slaves gradually into a state of freedom by
abolishing slavery; they have no means of perceptibly diminishing the black
population, and they would remain unsupported to repress its excesses. So that
in the course of a few years, a great people of free negroes would exist in the
heart of a white nation of equal size.
The same abuses of power which still maintain slavery, would then become the
source of the most alarming perils which the white population of the South might
have to apprehend. At the present time the descendants of the Europeans are the
sole owners of the land; the absolute masters of all labor; and the only persons
who are possessed of wealth, knowledge, and arms. The black is destitute of all
these advantages, but he subsists without them because he is a slave. If he were
free, and obliged to provide for his own subsistence, would it be possible for
him to remain without these things and to support life? Or would not the very
instruments of the present superiority of the white, whilst slavery exists,
expose him to a thousand dangers if it were abolished?
As long as the negro remains a slave, he may be kept in a condition not very far
removed from that of the brutes; but, with his liberty, he cannot but acquire a
degree of instruction which will enable him to appreciate his misfortunes, and
to discern a remedy for them. Moreover, there exists a singular principle of
relative justice which is very firmly implanted in the human heart. Men are much
more forcibly struck by those inequalities which exist within the circle of the
same class, than with those which may be remarked between different classes. It
is more easy for them to admit slavery, than to allow several millions of
citizens to exist under a load of eternal infamy and hereditary wretchedness. In
the North the population of freed negroes feels these hardships and resents
these indignities; but its numbers and its powers are small, whilst in the South
it would be numerous and strong.
As soon as it is admitted that the whites and the emancipated blacks are placed
upon the same territory in the situation of two alien communities, it will
readily be understood that there are but two alternatives for the future; the
negroes and the whites must either wholly part or wholly mingle. I have already
expressed the conviction which I entertain as to the latter event. *r I do not
imagine that the white and black races will ever live in any country upon an
equal footing. But I believe the difficulty to be still greater in the United
States than elsewhere. An isolated individual may surmount the prejudices of
religion, of his country, or of his race, and if this individual is a king he
may effect surprising changes in society; but a whole people cannot rise, as it
were, above itself. A despot who should subject the Americans and their former
slaves to the same yoke, might perhaps succeed in commingling their races; but
as long as the American democracy remains at the head of affairs, no one will
undertake so difficult a task; and it may be foreseen that the freer the white
population of the United States becomes, the more isolated will it remain. *s
r
[ This opinion is sanctioned by authorities infinitely weightier than anything
that I can say: thus, for instance, it is stated in the "Memoirs of Jefferson"
(as collected by M. Conseil), "Nothing is more clearly written in the book of
destiny than the emancipation of the blacks; and it is equally certain that the
two races will never live in a state of equal freedom under the same government,
so insurmountable are the barriers which nature, habit, and opinions have
established between them."]
s
[ If the British West India planters had governed themselves, they would
assuredly not have passed the Slave Emancipation Bill which the mother-country
has recently imposed upon them.]
I have previously observed that the mixed race is the true bond of union between
the Europeans and the Indians; just so the mulattoes are the true means of
transition between the white and the negro; so that wherever mulattoes abound,
the intermixture of the two races is not impossible. In some parts of America,
the European and the negro races are so crossed by one another, that it is rare
to meet with a man who is entirely black, or entirely white: when they are
arrived at this point, the two races may really be said to be combined; or
rather to have been absorbed in a third race, which is connected with both
without being identical with either.
Of all the Europeans the English are those who have mixed least with the
negroes. More mulattoes are to be seen in the South of the Union than in the
North, but still they are infinitely more scarce than in any other European
colony: mulattoes are by no means numerous in the United States; they have no
force peculiar to themselves, and when quarrels originating in differences of
color take place, they generally side with the whites; just as the lackeys of
the great, in Europe, assume the contemptuous airs of nobility to the lower
orders.
The pride of origin, which is natural to the English, is singularly augmented by
the personal pride which democratic liberty fosters amongst the Americans: the
white citizen of the United States is proud of his race, and proud of himself.
But if the whites and the negroes do not intermingle in the North of the Union,
how should they mix in the South? Can it be supposed for an instant, that an
American of the Southern States, placed, as he must forever be, between the
white man with all his physical and moral superiority and the negro, will ever
think of preferring the latter? The Americans of the Southern States have two
powerful passions which will always keep them aloof; the first is the fear of
being assimilated to the negroes, their former slaves; and the second the dread
of sinking below the whites, their neighbors.
If I were called upon to predict what will probably occur at some future time, I
should say, that the abolition of slavery in the South will, in the common
course of things, increase the repugnance of the white population for the men of
color. I found this opinion upon the analogous observation which I already had
occasion to make in the North. I there remarked that the white inhabitants of
the North avoid the negroes with increasing care, in proportion as the legal
barriers of separation are removed by the legislature; and why should not the
same result take place in the South? In the North, the whites are deterred from
intermingling with the blacks by the fear of an imaginary danger; in the South,
where the danger would be real, I cannot imagine that the fear would be less
general.
If, on the one hand, it be admitted (and the fact is unquestionable) that the
colored population perpetually accumulates in the extreme South, and that it
increases more rapidly than that of the whites; and if, on the other hand, it be
allowed that it is impossible to foresee a time at which the whites and the
blacks will be so intermingled as to derive the same benefits from society; must
it not be inferred that the blacks and the whites will, sooner or later, come to
open strife in the Southern States of the Union? But if it be asked what the
issue of the struggle is likely to be, it will readily be understood that we are
here left to form a very vague surmise of the truth. The human mind may succeed
in tracing a wide circle, as it were, which includes the course of future
events; but within that circle a thousand various chances and circumstances may
direct it in as many different ways; and in every picture of the future there is
a dim spot, which the eye of the understanding cannot penetrate. It appears,
however, to be extremely probable that in the West Indian Islands the white race
is destined to be subdued, and the black population to share the same fate upon
the continent.
In the West India Islands the white planters are surrounded by an immense black
population; on the continent, the blacks are placed between the ocean and an
innumerable people, which already extends over them in a dense mass, from the
icy confines of Canada to the frontiers of Virginia, and from the banks of the
Missouri to the shores of the Atlantic. If the white citizens of North America
remain united, it cannot be supposed that the negroes will escape the
destruction with which they are menaced; they must be subdued by want or by the
sword. But the black population which is accumulated along the coast of the Gulf
of Mexico, has a chance of success if the American Union is dissolved when the
struggle between the two races begins. If the federal tie were broken, the
citizens of the South would be wrong to rely upon any lasting succor from their
Northern countrymen. The latter are well aware that the danger can never reach
them; and unless they are constrained to march to the assistance of the South by
a positive obligation, it may be foreseen that the sympathy of color will be
insufficient to stimulate their exertions.
Yet, at whatever period the strife may break out, the whites of the South, even
if they are abandoned to their own resources, will enter the lists with an
immense superiority of knowledge and of the means of warfare; but the blacks
will have numerical strength and the energy of despair upon their side, and
these are powerful resources to men who have taken up arms. The fate of the
white population of the Southern States will, perhaps, be similar to that of the
Moors in Spain. After having occupied the land for centuries, it will perhaps be
forced to retire to the country whence its ancestors came, and to abandon to the
negroes the possession of a territory, which Providence seems to have more
peculiarly destined for them, since they can subsist and labor in it more easily
that the whites.
The danger of a conflict between the white and the black inhabitants of the
Southern States of the Union—a danger which, however remote it may be, is
inevitable—perpetually haunts the imagination of the Americans. The inhabitants
of the North make it a common topic of conversation, although they have no
direct injury to fear from the struggle; but they vainly endeavor to devise some
means of obviating the misfortunes which they foresee. In the Southern States
the subject is not discussed: the planter does not allude to the future in
conversing with strangers; the citizen does not communicate his apprehensions to
his friends; he seeks to conceal them from himself; but there is something more
alarming in the tacit forebodings of the South, than in the clamorous fears of
the Northern States.
This all-pervading disquietude has given birth to an undertaking which is but
little known, but which may have the effect of changing the fate of a portion of
the human race. From apprehension of the dangers which I have just been
describing, a certain number of American citizens have formed a society for the
purpose of exporting to the coast of Guinea, at their own expense, such free
negroes as may be willing to escape from the oppression to which they are
subject. *t In 1820, the society to which I allude formed a settlement in
Africa, upon the seventh degree of north latitude, which bears the name of
Liberia. The most recent intelligence informs us that 2,500 negroes are
collected there; they have introduced the democratic institutions of America
into the country of their forefathers; and Liberia has a representative system
of government, negro jurymen, negro magistrates, and negro priests; churches
have been built, newspapers established, and, by a singular change in the
vicissitudes of the world, white men are prohibited from sojourning within the
settlement. *u
t
[ This society assumed the name of "The Society for the Colonization of the
Blacks." See its annual reports; and more particularly the fifteenth. See also
the pamphlet, to which allusion has already been made, entitled "Letters on the
Colonization Society, and on its probable Results," by Mr. Carey, Philadelphia,
1833.]
u
[ This last regulation was laid down by the founders of the settlement; they
apprehended that a state of things might arise in Africa similar to that which
exists on the frontiers of the United States, and that if the negroes, like the
Indians, were brought into collision with a people more enlightened than
themselves, they would be destroyed before they could be civilized.]
This is indeed a strange caprice of fortune. Two hundred years have now elapsed
since the inhabitants of Europe undertook to tear the negro from his family and
his home, in order to transport him to the shores of North America; at the
present day, the European settlers are engaged in sending back the descendants
of those very negroes to the Continent from which they were originally taken;
and the barbarous Africans have been brought into contact with civilization in
the midst of bondage, and have become acquainted with free political
institutions in slavery. Up to the present time Africa has been closed against
the arts and sciences of the whites; but the inventions of Europe will perhaps
penetrate into those regions, now that they are introduced by Africans
themselves. The settlement of Liberia is founded upon a lofty and a most
fruitful idea; but whatever may be its results with regard to the Continent of
Africa, it can afford no remedy to the New World.
In twelve years the Colonization Society has transported 2,500 negroes to
Africa; in the same space of time about 700,000 blacks were born in the United
States. If the colony of Liberia were so situated as to be able to receive
thousands of new inhabitants every year, and if the negroes were in a state to
be sent thither with advantage; if the Union were to supply the society with
annual subsidies, *v and to transport the negroes to Africa in the vessels of
the State, it would still be unable to counterpoise the natural increase of
population amongst the blacks; and as it could not remove as many men in a year
as are born upon its territory within the same space of time, it would fail in
suspending the growth of the evil which is daily increasing in the States. *w
The negro race will never leave those shores of the American continent, to which
it was brought by the passions and the vices of Europeans; and it will not
disappear from the New World as long as it continues to exist. The inhabitants
of the United States may retard the calamities which they apprehend, but they
cannot now destroy their efficient cause.
v
[ Nor would these be the only difficulties attendant upon the undertaking; if
the Union undertook to buy up the negroes now in America, in order to transport
them to Africa, the price of slaves, increasing with their scarcity, would soon
become enormous; and the States of the North would never consent to expend such
great sums for a purpose which would procure such small advantages to
themselves. If the Union took possession of the slaves in the Southern States by
force, or at a rate determined by law, an insurmountable resistance would arise
in that part of the country. Both alternatives are equally impossible.]
w
[ In 1830 there were in the United States 2,010,327 slaves and 319,439 free
blacks, in all 2,329,766 negroes: which formed about one-fifth of the total
population of the United States at that time.]
I am obliged to confess that I do not regard the abolition of slavery as a means
of warding off the struggle of the two races in the United States. The negroes
may long remain slaves without complaining; but if they are once raised to the
level of free men, they will soon revolt at being deprived of all their civil
rights; and as they cannot become the equals of the whites, they will speedily
declare themselves as enemies. In the North everything contributed to facilitate
the emancipation of the slaves; and slavery was abolished, without placing the
free negroes in a position which could become formidable, since their number was
too small for them ever to claim the exercise of their rights. But such is not
the case in the South. The question of slavery was a question of commerce and
manufacture for the slave-owners in the North; for those of the South, it is a
question of life and death. God forbid that I should seek to justify the
principle of negro slavery, as has been done by some American writers! But I
only observe that all the countries which formerly adopted that execrable
principle are not equally able to abandon it at the present time.
When I contemplate the condition of the South, I can only discover two
alternatives which may be adopted by the white inhabitants of those States;
viz., either to emancipate the negroes, and to intermingle with them; or,
remaining isolated from them, to keep them in a state of slavery as long as
possible. All intermediate measures seem to me likely to terminate, and that
shortly, in the most horrible of civil wars, and perhaps in the extirpation of
one or other of the two races. Such is the view which the Americans of the South
take of the question, and they act consistently with it. As they are determined
not to mingle with the negroes, they refuse to emancipate them.
Not that the inhabitants of the South regard slavery as necessary to the wealth
of the planter, for on this point many of them agree with their Northern
countrymen in freely admitting that slavery is prejudicial to their interest;
but they are convinced that, however prejudicial it may be, they hold their
lives upon no other tenure. The instruction which is now diffused in the South
has convinced the inhabitants that slavery is injurious to the slave-owner, but
it has also shown them, more clearly than before, that no means exist of getting
rid of its bad consequences. Hence arises a singular contrast; the more the
utility of slavery is contested, the more firmly is it established in the laws;
and whilst the principle of servitude is gradually abolished in the North, that
self-same principle gives rise to more and more rigorous consequences in the
South.
The legislation of the Southern States with regard to slaves, presents at the
present day such unparalleled atrocities as suffice to show how radically the
laws of humanity have been perverted, and to betray the desperate position of
the community in which that legislation has been promulgated. The Americans of
this portion of the Union have not, indeed, augmented the hardships of slavery;
they have, on the contrary, bettered the physical condition of the slaves. The
only means by which the ancients maintained slavery were fetters and death; the
Americans of the South of the Union have discovered more intellectual securities
for the duration of their power. They have employed their despotism and their
violence against the human mind. In antiquity, precautions were taken to prevent
the slave from breaking his chains; at the present day measures are adopted to
deprive him even of the desire of freedom. The ancients kept the bodies of their
slaves in bondage, but they placed no restraint upon the mind and no check upon
education; and they acted consistently with their established principle, since a
natural termination of slavery then existed, and one day or other the slave
might be set free, and become the equal of his master. But the Americans of the
South, who do not admit that the negroes can ever be commingled with themselves,
have forbidden them to be taught to read or to write, under severe penalties;
and as they will not raise them to their own level, they sink them as nearly as
possible to that of the brutes.
The hope of liberty had always been allowed to the slave to cheer the hardships
of his condition. But the Americans of the South are well aware that
emancipation cannot but be dangerous, when the freed man can never be
assimilated to his former master. To give a man his freedom, and to leave him in
wretchedness and ignominy, is nothing less than to prepare a future chief for a
revolt of the slaves. Moreover, it has long been remarked that the presence of a
free negro vaguely agitates the minds of his less fortunate brethren, and
conveys to them a dim notion of their rights. The Americans of the South have
consequently taken measures to prevent slave-owners from emancipating their
slaves in most cases; not indeed by a positive prohibition, but by subjecting
that step to various forms which it is difficult to comply with. I happened to
meet with an old man, in the South of the Union, who had lived in illicit
intercourse with one of his negresses, and had had several children by her, who
were born the slaves of their father. He had indeed frequently thought of
bequeathing to them at least their liberty; but years had elapsed without his
being able to surmount the legal obstacles to their emancipation, and in the
mean while his old age was come, and he was about to die. He pictured to himself
his sons dragged from market to market, and passing from the authority of a
parent to the rod of the stranger, until these horrid anticipations worked his
expiring imagination into frenzy. When I saw him he was a prey to all the
anguish of despair, and he made me feel how awful is the retribution of nature
upon those who have broken her laws.
These evils are unquestionably great; but they are the necessary and foreseen
consequence of the very principle of modern slavery. When the Europeans chose
their slaves from a race differing from their own, which many of them considered
as inferior to the other races of mankind, and which they all repelled with
horror from any notion of intimate connection, they must have believed that
slavery would last forever; since there is no intermediate state which can be
durable between the excessive inequality produced by servitude and the complete
equality which originates in independence. The Europeans did imperfectly feel
this truth, but without acknowledging it even to themselves. Whenever they have
had to do with negroes, their conduct has either been dictated by their interest
and their pride, or by their compassion. They first violated every right of
humanity by their treatment of the negro and they afterwards informed him that
those rights were precious and inviolable. They affected to open their ranks to
the slaves, but the negroes who attempted to penetrate into the community were
driven back with scorn; and they have incautiously and involuntarily been led to
admit of freedom instead of slavery, without having the courage to be wholly
iniquitous, or wholly just.
If it be impossible to anticipate a period at which the Americans of the South
will mingle their blood with that of the negroes, can they allow their slaves to
become free without compromising their own security? And if they are obliged to
keep that race in bondage in order to save their own families, may they not be
excused for availing themselves of the means best adapted to that end? The
events which are taking place in the Southern States of the Union appear to me
to be at once the most horrible and the most natural results of slavery. When I
see the order of nature overthrown, and when I hear the cry of humanity in its
vain struggle against the laws, my indignation does not light upon the men of
our own time who are the instruments of these outrages; but I reserve my
execration for those who, after a thousand years of freedom, brought back
slavery into the world once more.
Whatever may be the efforts of the Americans of the South to maintain slavery,
they will not always succeed. Slavery, which is now confined to a single tract
of the civilized earth, which is attacked by Christianity as unjust, and by
political economy as prejudicial; and which is now contrasted with democratic
liberties and the information of our age, cannot survive. By the choice of the
master, or by the will of the slave, it will cease; and in either case great
calamities may be expected to ensue. If liberty be refused to the negroes of the
South, they will in the end seize it for themselves by force; if it be given,
they will abuse it ere long. *x
x
[ [This chapter is no longer applicable to the condition of the negro race in
the United States, since the abolition of slavery was the result, though not the
object, of the great Civil War, and the negroes have been raised to the
condition not only of freedmen, but of citizens; and in some States they
exercise a preponderating political power by reason of their numerical majority.
Thus, in South Carolina there were in 1870, 289,667 whites and 415,814 blacks.
But the emancipation of the slaves has not solved the problem, how two races so
different and so hostile are to live together in peace in one country on equal
terms. That problem is as difficult, perhaps more difficult than ever; and to
this difficulty the author's remarks are still perfectly applicable.]]
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part VI
What Are The Chances In Favor Of The Duration Of The American Union, And What
Dangers Threaten It *y
y
[ [This chapter is one of the most curious and interesting portions of the work,
because it embraces almost all the constitutional and social questions which
were raised by the great secession of the South and decided by the results of
the Civil War. But it must be confessed that the sagacity of the author is
sometimes at fault in these speculations, and did not save him from considerable
errors, which the course of events has since made apparent. He held that "the
legislators of the Constitution of 1789 were not appointed to constitute the
government of a single people, but to regulate the association of several
States; that the Union was formed by the voluntary agreement of the States, and
in uniting together they have not forfeited their nationality, nor have they
been reduced to the condition of one and the same people." Whence he inferred
that "if one of the States chose to withdraw its name from the contract, it
would be difficult to disprove its right of doing so; and that the Federal
Government would have no means of maintaining its claims directly, either by
force or by right." This is the Southern theory of the Constitution, and the
whole case of the South in favor of secession. To many Europeans, and to some
American (Northern) jurists, this view appeared to be sound; but it was
vigorously resisted by the North, and crushed by force of arms.
The author of this book was mistaken in supposing that the "Union was a vast
body which presents no definite object to patriotic feeling." When the day of
trial came, millions of men were ready to lay down their lives for it. He was
also mistaken in supposing that the Federal Executive is so weak that it
requires the free consent of the governed to enable it to subsist, and that it
would be defeated in a struggle to maintain the Union against one or more
separate States. In 1861 nine States, with a population of 8,753,000, seceded,
and maintained for four years a resolute but unequal contest for independence,
but they were defeated.
Lastly, the author was mistaken in supposing that a community of interests would
always prevail between North and South sufficiently powerful to bind them
together. He overlooked the influence which the question of slavery must have on
the Union the moment that the majority of the people of the North declared
against it. In 1831, when the author visited America, the anti-slavery agitation
had scarcely begun; and the fact of Southern slavery was accepted by men of all
parties, even in the States where there were no slaves: and that was
unquestionably the view taken by all the States and by all American statesmen at
the time of the adoption of the Constitution, in 1789. But in the course of
thirty years a great change took place, and the North refused to perpetuate what
had become the "peculiar institution" of the South, especially as it gave the
South a species of aristocratic preponderance. The result was the ratification,
in December, 1865, of the celebrated 13th article or amendment of the
Constitution, which declared that "neither slavery nor involuntary
servitude—except as a punishment for crime—shall exist within the United
States." To which was soon afterwards added the 15th article, "The right of
citizens to vote shall not be denied or abridged by the United States, or by any
State, on account of race, color, or previous servitude." The emancipation of
several millions of negro slaves without compensation, and the transfer to them
of political preponderance in the States in which they outnumber the white
population, were acts of the North totally opposed to the interests of the
South, and which could only have been carried into effect by
conquest.—Translator's Note.]]
Reason for which the preponderating force lies in the States rather than in the
Union—The Union will only last as long as all the States choose to belong to
it—Causes which tend to keep them united—Utility of the Union to resist foreign
enemies, and to prevent the existence of foreigners in America—No natural
barriers between the several States—No conflicting interests to divide
them—Reciprocal interests of the Northern, Southern, and Western
States—Intellectual ties of union—Uniformity of opinions—Dangers of the Union
resulting from the different characters and the passions of its
citizens—Character of the citizens in the South and in the North—The rapid
growth of the Union one of its greatest dangers—Progress of the population to
the Northwest—Power gravitates in the same direction—Passions originating from
sudden turns of fortune—Whether the existing Government of the Union tends to
gain strength, or to lose it—Various signs of its decrease—Internal
improvements—Waste lands—Indians—The Bank—The Tariff—General Jackson.
The maintenance of the existing institutions of the several States depends in
some measure upon the maintenance of the Union itself. It is therefore important
in the first instance to inquire into the probable fate of the Union. One point
may indeed be assumed at once: if the present confederation were dissolved, it
appears to me to be incontestable that the States of which it is now composed
would not return to their original isolated condition, but that several unions
would then be formed in the place of one. It is not my intention to inquire into
the principles upon which these new unions would probably be established, but
merely to show what the causes are which may effect the dismemberment of the
existing confederation.
With this object I shall be obliged to retrace some of the steps which I have
already taken, and to revert to topics which I have before discussed. I am aware
that the reader may accuse me of repetition, but the importance of the matter
which still remains to be treated is my excuse; I had rather say too much, than
say too little to be thoroughly understood, and I prefer injuring the author to
slighting the subject.
The legislators who formed the Constitution of 1789 endeavored to confer a
distinct and preponderating authority upon the federal power. But they were
confined by the conditions of the task which they had undertaken to perform.
They were not appointed to constitute the government of a single people, but to
regulate the association of several States; and, whatever their inclinations
might be, they could not but divide the exercise of sovereignty in the end.
In order to understand the consequences of this division, it is necessary to
make a short distinction between the affairs of the Government. There are some
objects which are national by their very nature, that is to say, which affect
the nation as a body, and can only be intrusted to the man or the assembly of
men who most completely represent the entire nation. Amongst these may be
reckoned war and diplomacy. There are other objects which are provincial by
their very nature, that is to say, which only affect certain localities, and
which can only be properly treated in that locality. Such, for instance, is the
budget of a municipality. Lastly, there are certain objects of a mixed nature,
which are national inasmuch as they affect all the citizens who compose the
nation, and which are provincial inasmuch as it is not necessary that the nation
itself should provide for them all. Such are the rights which regulate the civil
and political condition of the citizens. No society can exist without civil and
political rights. These rights therefore interest all the citizens alike; but it
is not always necessary to the existence and the prosperity of the nation that
these rights should be uniform, nor, consequently, that they should be regulated
by the central authority.
There are, then, two distinct categories of objects which are submitted to the
direction of the sovereign power; and these categories occur in all
well-constituted communities, whatever the basis of the political constitution
may otherwise be. Between these two extremes the objects which I have termed
mixed may be considered to lie. As these objects are neither exclusively
national nor entirely provincial, they may be obtained by a national or by a
provincial government, according to the agreement of the contracting parties,
without in any way impairing the contract of association.
The sovereign power is usually formed by the union of separate individuals, who
compose a people; and individual powers or collective forces, each representing
a very small portion of the sovereign authority, are the sole elements which are
subjected to the general Government of their choice. In this case the general
Government is more naturally called upon to regulate, not only those affairs
which are of essential national importance, but those which are of a more local
interest; and the local governments are reduced to that small share of sovereign
authority which is indispensable to their prosperity.
But sometimes the sovereign authority is composed of preorganized political
bodies, by virtue of circumstances anterior to their union; and in this case the
provincial governments assume the control, not only of those affairs which more
peculiarly belong to their province, but of all, or of a part of the mixed
affairs to which allusion has been made. For the confederate nations which were
independent sovereign States before their union, and which still represent a
very considerable share of the sovereign power, have only consented to cede to
the general Government the exercise of those rights which are indispensable to
the Union.
When the national Government, independently of the prerogatives inherent in its
nature, is invested with the right of regulating the affairs which relate partly
to the general and partly to the local interests, it possesses a preponderating
influence. Not only are its own rights extensive, but all the rights which it
does not possess exist by its sufferance, and it may be apprehended that the
provincial governments may be deprived of their natural and necessary
prerogatives by its influence.
When, on the other hand, the provincial governments are invested with the power
of regulating those same affairs of mixed interest, an opposite tendency
prevails in society. The preponderating force resides in the province, not in
the nation; and it may be apprehended that the national Government may in the
end be stripped of the privileges which are necessary to its existence.
Independent nations have therefore a natural tendency to centralization, and
confederations to dismemberment.
It now only remains for us to apply these general principles to the American
Union. The several States were necessarily possessed of the right of regulating
all exclusively provincial affairs. Moreover these same States retained the
rights of determining the civil and political competency of the citizens, or
regulating the reciprocal relations of the members of the community, and of
dispensing justice; rights which are of a general nature, but which do not
necessarily appertain to the national Government. We have shown that the
Government of the Union is invested with the power of acting in the name of the
whole nation in those cases in which the nation has to appear as a single and
undivided power; as, for instance, in foreign relations, and in offering a
common resistance to a common enemy; in short, in conducting those affairs which
I have styled exclusively national.
In this division of the rights of sovereignty, the share of the Union seems at
first sight to be more considerable than that of the States; but a more
attentive investigation shows it to be less so. The undertakings of the
Government of the Union are more vast, but their influence is more rarely felt.
Those of the provincial governments are comparatively small, but they are
incessant, and they serve to keep alive the authority which they represent. The
Government of the Union watches the general interests of the country; but the
general interests of a people have a very questionable influence upon individual
happiness, whilst provincial interests produce a most immediate effect upon the
welfare of the inhabitants. The Union secures the independence and the greatness
of the nation, which do not immediately affect private citizens; but the several
States maintain the liberty, regulate the rights, protect the fortune, and
secure the life and the whole future prosperity of every citizen.
The Federal Government is very far removed from its subjects, whilst the
provincial governments are within the reach of them all, and are ready to attend
to the smallest appeal. The central Government has upon its side the passions of
a few superior men who aspire to conduct it; but upon the side of the provincial
governments are the interests of all those second-rate individuals who can only
hope to obtain power within their own State, and who nevertheless exercise the
largest share of authority over the people because they are placed nearest to
its level. The Americans have therefore much more to hope and to fear from the
States than from the Union; and, in conformity with the natural tendency of the
human mind, they are more likely to attach themselves to the former than to the
latter. In this respect their habits and feelings harmonize with their
interests.
When a compact nation divides its sovereignty, and adopts a confederate form of
government, the traditions, the customs, and the manners of the people are for a
long time at variance with their legislation; and the former tend to give a
degree of influence to the central government which the latter forbids. When a
number of confederate states unite to form a single nation, the same causes
operate in an opposite direction. I have no doubt that if France were to become
a confederate republic like that of the United States, the government would at
first display more energy than that of the Union; and if the Union were to alter
its constitution to a monarchy like that of France, I think that the American
Government would be a long time in acquiring the force which now rules the
latter nation. When the national existence of the Anglo-Americans began, their
provincial existence was already of long standing; necessary relations were
established between the townships and the individual citizens of the same
States; and they were accustomed to consider some objects as common to them all,
and to conduct other affairs as exclusively relating to their own special
interests.
The Union is a vast body which presents no definite object to patriotic feeling.
The forms and limits of the State are distinct and circumscribed; since it
represents a certain number of objects which are familiar to the citizens and
beloved by all. It is identified with the very soil, with the right of property
and the domestic affections, with the recollections of the past, the labors of
the present, and the hopes of the future. Patriotism, then, which is frequently
a mere extension of individual egotism, is still directed to the State, and is
not excited by the Union. Thus the tendency of the interests, the habits, and
the feelings of the people is to centre political activity in the States, in
preference to the Union.
It is easy to estimate the different forces of the two governments, by remarking
the manner in which they fulfil their respective functions. Whenever the
government of a State has occasion to address an individual or an assembly of
individuals, its language is clear and imperative; and such is also the tone of
the Federal Government in its intercourse with individuals, but no sooner has it
anything to do with a State than it begins to parley, to explain its motives and
to justify its conduct, to argue, to advise, and, in short, anything but to
command. If doubts are raised as to the limits of the constitutional powers of
each government, the provincial government prefers its claim with boldness, and
takes prompt and energetic steps to support it. In the mean while the Government
of the Union reasons; it appeals to the interests, to the good sense, to the
glory of the nation; it temporizes, it negotiates, and does not consent to act
until it is reduced to the last extremity. At first sight it might readily be
imagined that it is the provincial government which is armed with the authority
of the nation, and that Congress represents a single State.
The Federal Government is, therefore, notwithstanding the precautions of those
who founded it, naturally so weak that it more peculiarly requires the free
consent of the governed to enable it to subsist. It is easy to perceive that its
object is to enable the States to realize with facility their determination of
remaining united; and, as long as this preliminary condition exists, its
authority is great, temperate, and effective. The Constitution fits the
Government to control individuals, and easily to surmount such obstacles as they
may be inclined to offer; but it was by no means established with a view to the
possible separation of one or more of the States from the Union.
If the sovereignty of the Union were to engage in a struggle with that of the
States at the present day, its defeat may be confidently predicted; and it is
not probable that such a struggle would be seriously undertaken. As often as a
steady resistance is offered to the Federal Government it will be found to
yield. Experience has hitherto shown that whenever a State has demanded anything
with perseverance and resolution, it has invariably succeeded; and that if a
separate government has distinctly refused to act, it was left to do as it
thought fit. *z
z
[ See the conduct of the Northern States in the war of 1812. "During that war,"
says Jefferson in a letter to General Lafayette, "four of the Eastern States
were only attached to the Union, like so many inanimate bodies to living men."]
But even if the Government of the Union had any strength inherent in itself, the
physical situation of the country would render the exercise of that strength
very difficult. *a The United States cover an immense territory; they are
separated from each other by great distances; and the population is disseminated
over the surface of a country which is still half a wilderness. If the Union
were to undertake to enforce the allegiance of the confederate States by
military means, it would be in a position very analogous to that of England at
the time of the War of Independence.
a
[ The profound peace of the Union affords no pretext for a standing army; and
without a standing army a government is not prepared to profit by a favorable
opportunity to conquer resistance, and take the sovereign power by surprise.
[This note, and the paragraph in the text which precedes, have been shown by the
results of the Civil War to be a misconception of the writer.]]
However strong a government may be, it cannot easily escape from the
consequences of a principle which it has once admitted as the foundation of its
constitution. The Union was formed by the voluntary agreement of the States;
and, in uniting together, they have not forfeited their nationality, nor have
they been reduced to the condition of one and the same people. If one of the
States chose to withdraw its name from the contract, it would be difficult to
disprove its right of doing so; and the Federal Government would have no means
of maintaining its claims directly, either by force or by right. In order to
enable the Federal Government easily to conquer the resistance which may be
offered to it by any one of its subjects, it would be necessary that one or more
of them should be specially interested in the existence of the Union, as has
frequently been the case in the history of confederations.
If it be supposed that amongst the States which are united by the federal tie
there are some which exclusively enjoy the principal advantages of union, or
whose prosperity depends on the duration of that union, it is unquestionable
that they will always be ready to support the central Government in enforcing
the obedience of the others. But the Government would then be exerting a force
not derived from itself, but from a principle contrary to its nature. States
form confederations in order to derive equal advantages from their union; and in
the case just alluded to, the Federal Government would derive its power from the
unequal distribution of those benefits amongst the States.
If one of the confederate States have acquired a preponderance sufficiently
great to enable it to take exclusive possession of the central authority, it
will consider the other States as subject provinces, and it will cause its own
supremacy to be respected under the borrowed name of the sovereignty of the
Union. Great things may then be done in the name of the Federal Government, but
in reality that Government will have ceased to exist. *b In both these cases,
the power which acts in the name of the confederation becomes stronger the more
it abandons the natural state and the acknowledged principles of confederations.
b
[ Thus the province of Holland in the republic of the Low Countries, and the
Emperor in the Germanic Confederation, have sometimes put themselves in the
place of the union, and have employed the federal authority to their own
advantage.]
In America the existing Union is advantageous to all the States, but it is not
indispensable to any one of them. Several of them might break the federal tie
without compromising the welfare of the others, although their own prosperity
would be lessened. As the existence and the happiness of none of the States are
wholly dependent on the present Constitution, they would none of them be
disposed to make great personal sacrifices to maintain it. On the other hand,
there is no State which seems hitherto to have its ambition much interested in
the maintenance of the existing Union. They certainly do not all exercise the
same influence in the federal councils, but no one of them can hope to domineer
over the rest, or to treat them as its inferiors or as its subjects.
It appears to me unquestionable that if any portion of the Union seriously
desired to separate itself from the other States, they would not be able, nor
indeed would they attempt, to prevent it; and that the present Union will only
last as long as the States which compose it choose to continue members of the
confederation. If this point be admitted, the question becomes less difficult;
and our object is, not to inquire whether the States of the existing Union are
capable of separating, but whether they will choose to remain united.
Amongst the various reasons which tend to render the existing Union useful to
the Americans, two principal causes are peculiarly evident to the observer.
Although the Americans are, as it were, alone upon their continent, their
commerce makes them the neighbors of all the nations with which they trade.
Notwithstanding their apparent isolation, the Americans require a certain degree
of strength, which they cannot retain otherwise than by remaining united to each
other. If the States were to split, they would not only diminish the strength
which they are now able to display towards foreign nations, but they would soon
create foreign powers upon their own territory. A system of inland custom-houses
would then be established; the valleys would be divided by imaginary boundary
lines; the courses of the rivers would be confined by territorial distinctions;
and a multitude of hindrances would prevent the Americans from exploring the
whole of that vast continent which Providence has allotted to them for a
dominion. At present they have no invasion to fear, and consequently no standing
armies to maintain, no taxes to levy. If the Union were dissolved, all these
burdensome measures might ere long be required. The Americans are then very
powerfully interested in the maintenance of their Union. On the other hand, it
is almost impossible to discover any sort of material interest which might at
present tempt a portion of the Union to separate from the other States.
When we cast our eyes upon the map of the United States, we perceive the chain
of the Alleghany Mountains, running from the northeast to the southwest, and
crossing nearly one thousand miles of country; and we are led to imagine that
the design of Providence was to raise between the valley of the Mississippi and
the coast of the Atlantic Ocean one of those natural barriers which break the
mutual intercourse of men, and form the necessary limits of different States.
But the average height of the Alleghanies does not exceed 2,500 feet; their
greatest elevation is not above 4,000 feet; their rounded summits, and the
spacious valleys which they conceal within their passes, are of easy access from
several sides. Besides which, the principal rivers which fall into the Atlantic
Ocean—the Hudson, the Susquehanna, and the Potomac—take their rise beyond the
Alleghanies, in an open district, which borders upon the valley of the
Mississippi. These streams quit this tract of country, make their way through
the barrier which would seem to turn them westward, and as they wind through the
mountains they open an easy and natural passage to man. No natural barrier
exists in the regions which are now inhabited by the Anglo-Americans; the
Alleghanies are so far from serving as a boundary to separate nations, that they
do not even serve as a frontier to the States. New York, Pennsylvania, and
Virginia comprise them within their borders, and they extend as much to the west
as to the east of the line. The territory now occupied by the twenty-four States
of the Union, and the three great districts which have not yet acquired the rank
of States, although they already contain inhabitants, covers a surface of
1,002,600 square miles, *c which is about equal to five times the extent of
France. Within these limits the qualities of the soil, the temperature, and the
produce of the country, are extremely various. The vast extent of territory
occupied by the Anglo-American republics has given rise to doubts as to the
maintenance of their Union. Here a distinction must be made; contrary interests
sometimes arise in the different provinces of a vast empire, which often
terminate in open dissensions; and the extent of the country is then most
prejudicial to the power of the State. But if the inhabitants of these vast
regions are not divided by contrary interests, the extent of the territory may
be favorable to their prosperity; for the unity of the government promotes the
interchange of the different productions of the soil, and increases their value
by facilitating their consumption.
c
[ See "Darby's View of the United States," p. 435. [In 1890 the number of States
and Territories had increased to 51, the population to 62,831,900, and the area
of the States, 3,602,990 square miles. This does not include the Philippine
Islands, Hawaii, or Porto Rico. A conservative estimate of the population of the
Philippine Islands is 8,000,000; that of Hawaii, by the census of 1897, was
given at 109,020; and the present estimated population of Porto Rico is 900,000.
The area of the Philippine Islands is about 120,000 square miles, that of Hawaii
is 6,740 square miles, and the area of Porto Rico is about 3,600 square miles.]]
It is indeed easy to discover different interests in the different parts of the
Union, but I am unacquainted with any which are hostile to each other. The
Southern States are almost exclusively agricultural. The Northern States are
more peculiarly commercial and manufacturing. The States of the West are at the
same time agricultural and manufacturing. In the South the crops consist of
tobacco, of rice, of cotton, and of sugar; in the North and the West, of wheat
and maize. These are different sources of wealth; but union is the means by
which these sources are opened to all, and rendered equally advantageous to the
several districts.
The North, which ships the produce of the Anglo-Americans to all parts of the
world, and brings back the produce of the globe to the Union, is evidently
interested in maintaining the confederation in its present condition, in order
that the number of American producers and consumers may remain as large as
possible. The North is the most natural agent of communication between the South
and the West of the Union on the one hand, and the rest of the world upon the
other; the North is therefore interested in the union and prosperity of the
South and the West, in order that they may continue to furnish raw materials for
its manufactures, and cargoes for its shipping.
The South and the West, on their side, are still more directly interested in the
preservation of the Union, and the prosperity of the North. The produce of the
South is, for the most part, exported beyond seas; the South and the West
consequently stand in need of the commercial resources of the North. They are
likewise interested in the maintenance of a powerful fleet by the Union, to
protect them efficaciously. The South and the West have no vessels, but they
cannot refuse a willing subsidy to defray the expenses of the navy; for if the
fleets of Europe were to blockade the ports of the South and the delta of the
Mississippi, what would become of the rice of the Carolinas, the tobacco of
Virginia, and the sugar and cotton which grow in the valley of the Mississippi?
Every portion of the federal budget does therefore contribute to the maintenance
of material interests which are common to all the confederate States.
Independently of this commercial utility, the South and the West of the Union
derive great political advantages from their connection with the North. The
South contains an enormous slave population; a population which is already
alarming, and still more formidable for the future. The States of the West lie
in the remotest parts of a single valley; and all the rivers which intersect
their territory rise in the Rocky Mountains or in the Alleghanies, and fall into
the Mississippi, which bears them onwards to the Gulf of Mexico. The Western
States are consequently entirely cut off, by their position, from the traditions
of Europe and the civilization of the Old World. The inhabitants of the South,
then, are induced to support the Union in order to avail themselves of its
protection against the blacks; and the inhabitants of the West in order not to
be excluded from a free communication with the rest of the globe, and shut up in
the wilds of central America. The North cannot but desire the maintenance of the
Union, in order to remain, as it now is, the connecting link between that vast
body and the other parts of the world.
The temporal interests of all the several parts of the Union are, then,
intimately connected; and the same assertion holds true respecting those
opinions and sentiments which may be termed the immaterial interests of men.
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part VII
The inhabitants of the United States talk a great deal of their attachment to
their country; but I confess that I do not rely upon that calculating patriotism
which is founded upon interest, and which a change in the interests at stake may
obliterate. Nor do I attach much importance to the language of the Americans,
when they manifest, in their daily conversations, the intention of maintaining
the federal system adopted by their forefathers. A government retains its sway
over a great number of citizens, far less by the voluntary and rational consent
of the multitude, than by that instinctive, and to a certain extent involuntary
agreement, which results from similarity of feelings and resemblances of
opinion. I will never admit that men constitute a social body, simply because
they obey the same head and the same laws. Society can only exist when a great
number of men consider a great number of things in the same point of view; when
they hold the same opinions upon many subjects, and when the same occurrences
suggest the same thoughts and impressions to their minds.
The observer who examines the present condition of the United States upon this
principle, will readily discover, that although the citizens are divided into
twenty-four distinct sovereignties, they nevertheless constitute a single
people; and he may perhaps be led to think that the state of the Anglo-American
Union is more truly a state of society than that of certain nations of Europe
which live under the same legislation and the same prince.
Although the Anglo-Americans have several religious sects, they all regard
religion in the same manner. They are not always agreed upon the measures which
are most conducive to good government, and they vary upon some of the forms of
government which it is expedient to adopt; but they are unanimous upon the
general principles which ought to rule human society. From Maine to the
Floridas, and from the Missouri to the Atlantic Ocean, the people is held to be
the legitimate source of all power. The same notions are entertained respecting
liberty and equality, the liberty of the press, the right of association, the
jury, and the responsibility of the agents of Government.
If we turn from their political and religious opinions to the moral and
philosophical principles which regulate the daily actions of life and govern
their conduct, we shall still find the same uniformity. The Anglo-Americans *d
acknowledge the absolute moral authority of the reason of the community, as they
acknowledge the political authority of the mass of citizens; and they hold that
public opinion is the surest arbiter of what is lawful or forbidden, true or
false. The majority of them believe that a man will be led to do what is just
and good by following his own interest rightly understood. They hold that every
man is born in possession of the right of self-government, and that no one has
the right of constraining his fellow-creatures to be happy. They have all a
lively faith in the perfectibility of man; they are of opinion that the effects
of the diffusion of knowledge must necessarily be advantageous, and the
consequences of ignorance fatal; they all consider society as a body in a state
of improvement, humanity as a changing scene, in which nothing is, or ought to
be, permanent; and they admit that what appears to them to be good to-day may be
superseded by something better-to-morrow. I do not give all these opinions as
true, but I quote them as characteristic of the Americans.
d
[ It is scarcely necessary for me to observe that by the expression
Anglo-Americans, I only mean to designate the great majority of the nation; for
a certain number of isolated individuals are of course to be met with holding
very different opinions.]
The Anglo-Americans are not only united together by these common opinions, but
they are separated from all other nations by a common feeling of pride. For the
last fifty years no pains have been spared to convince the inhabitants of the
United States that they constitute the only religious, enlightened, and free
people. They perceive that, for the present, their own democratic institutions
succeed, whilst those of other countries fail; hence they conceive an
overweening opinion of their superiority, and they are not very remote from
believing themselves to belong to a distinct race of mankind.
The dangers which threaten the American Union do not originate in the diversity
of interests or of opinions, but in the various characters and passions of the
Americans. The men who inhabit the vast territory of the United States are
almost all the issue of a common stock; but the effects of the climate, and more
especially of slavery, have gradually introduced very striking differences
between the British settler of the Southern States and the British settler of
the North. In Europe it is generally believed that slavery has rendered the
interests of one part of the Union contrary to those of another part; but I by
no means remarked this to be the case: slavery has not created interests in the
South contrary to those of the North, but it has modified the character and
changed the habits of the natives of the South.
I have already explained the influence which slavery has exercised upon the
commercial ability of the Americans in the South; and this same influence
equally extends to their manners. The slave is a servant who never remonstrates,
and who submits to everything without complaint. He may sometimes assassinate,
but he never withstands, his master. In the South there are no families so poor
as not to have slaves. The citizen of the Southern States of the Union is
invested with a sort of domestic dictatorship, from his earliest years; the
first notion he acquires in life is that he is born to command, and the first
habit which he contracts is that of being obeyed without resistance. His
education tends, then, to give him the character of a supercilious and a hasty
man; irascible, violent, and ardent in his desires, impatient of obstacles, but
easily discouraged if he cannot succeed upon his first attempt.
The American of the Northern States is surrounded by no slaves in his childhood;
he is even unattended by free servants, and is usually obliged to provide for
his own wants. No sooner does he enter the world than the idea of necessity
assails him on every side: he soon learns to know exactly the natural limit of
his authority; he never expects to subdue those who withstand him, by force; and
he knows that the surest means of obtaining the support of his fellow-creatures,
is to win their favor. He therefore becomes patient, reflecting, tolerant, slow
to act, and persevering in his designs.
In the Southern States the more immediate wants of life are always supplied; the
inhabitants of those parts are not busied in the material cares of life, which
are always provided for by others; and their imagination is diverted to more
captivating and less definite objects. The American of the South is fond of
grandeur, luxury, and renown, of gayety, of pleasure, and above all of idleness;
nothing obliges him to exert himself in order to subsist; and as he has no
necessary occupations, he gives way to indolence, and does not even attempt what
would be useful.
But the equality of fortunes, and the absence of slavery in the North, plunge
the inhabitants in those same cares of daily life which are disdained by the
white population of the South. They are taught from infancy to combat want, and
to place comfort above all the pleasures of the intellect or the heart. The
imagination is extinguished by the trivial details of life, and the ideas become
less numerous and less general, but far more practical and more precise. As
prosperity is the sole aim of exertion, it is excellently well attained; nature
and mankind are turned to the best pecuniary advantage, and society is
dexterously made to contribute to the welfare of each of its members, whilst
individual egotism is the source of general happiness.
The citizen of the North has not only experience, but knowledge: nevertheless he
sets but little value upon the pleasures of knowledge; he esteems it as the
means of attaining a certain end, and he is only anxious to seize its more
lucrative applications. The citizen of the South is more given to act upon
impulse; he is more clever, more frank, more generous, more intellectual, and
more brilliant. The former, with a greater degree of activity, of common-sense,
of information, and of general aptitude, has the characteristic good and evil
qualities of the middle classes. The latter has the tastes, the prejudices, the
weaknesses, and the magnanimity of all aristocracies. If two men are united in
society, who have the same interests, and to a certain extent the same opinions,
but different characters, different acquirements, and a different style of
civilization, it is probable that these men will not agree. The same remark is
applicable to a society of nations. Slavery, then, does not attack the American
Union directly in its interests, but indirectly in its manners.
e
[ Census of 1790, 3,929,328; 1830, 12,856,165; 1860, 31,443,321; 1870,
38,555,983; 1890, 62,831,900.]
The States which gave their assent to the federal contract in 1790 were thirteen
in number; the Union now consists of thirty-four members. The population, which
amounted to nearly 4,000,000 in 1790, had more than tripled in the space of
forty years; and in 1830 it amounted to nearly 13,000,000. *e Changes of such
magnitude cannot take place without some danger.
A society of nations, as well as a society of individuals, derives its principal
chances of duration from the wisdom of its members, their individual weakness,
and their limited number. The Americans who quit the coasts of the Atlantic
Ocean to plunge into the western wilderness, are adventurers impatient of
restraint, greedy of wealth, and frequently men expelled from the States in
which they were born. When they arrive in the deserts they are unknown to each
other, and they have neither traditions, family feeling, nor the force of
example to check their excesses. The empire of the laws is feeble amongst them;
that of morality is still more powerless. The settlers who are constantly
peopling the valley of the Mississippi are, then, in every respect very inferior
to the Americans who inhabit the older parts of the Union. Nevertheless, they
already exercise a great influence in its councils; and they arrive at the
government of the commonwealth before they have learnt to govern themselves. *f
f
[ This indeed is only a temporary danger. I have no doubt that in time society
will assume as much stability and regularity in the West as it has already done
upon the coast of the Atlantic Ocean.]
The greater the individual weakness of each of the contracting parties, the
greater are the chances of the duration of the contract; for their safety is
then dependent upon their union. When, in 1790, the most populous of the
American republics did not contain 500,000 inhabitants, *g each of them felt its
own insignificance as an independent people, and this feeling rendered
compliance with the federal authority more easy. But when one of the confederate
States reckons, like the State of New York, 2,000,000 of inhabitants, and covers
an extent of territory equal in surface to a quarter of France, *h it feels its
own strength; and although it may continue to support the Union as advantageous
to its prosperity, it no longer regards that body as necessary to its existence,
and as it continues to belong to the federal compact, it soon aims at
preponderance in the federal assemblies. The probable unanimity of the States is
diminished as their number increases. At present the interests of the different
parts of the Union are not at variance; but who is able to foresee the
multifarious changes of the future, in a country in which towns are founded from
day to day, and States almost from year to year?
g
[ Pennsylvania contained 431,373 inhabitants in 1790 [and 5,258,014 in 1890.]]
h
[ The area of the State of New York is 49,170 square miles. [See U. S. census
report of 1890.]]
Since the first settlement of the British colonies, the number of inhabitants
has about doubled every twenty-two years. I perceive no causes which are likely
to check this progressive increase of the Anglo-American population for the next
hundred years; and before that space of time has elapsed, I believe that the
territories and dependencies of the United States will be covered by more than
100,000,000 of inhabitants, and divided into forty States. *i I admit that these
100,000,000 of men have no hostile interests. I suppose, on the contrary, that
they are all equally interested in the maintenance of the Union; but I am still
of opinion that where there are 100,000,000 of men, and forty distinct nations,
unequally strong, the continuance of the Federal Government can only be a
fortunate accident.
i
[ If the population continues to double every twenty-two years, as it has done
for the last two hundred years, the number of inhabitants in the United States
in 1852 will be twenty millions; in 1874, forty-eight millions; and in 1896,
ninety-six millions. This may still be the case even if the lands on the western
slope of the Rocky Mountains should be found to be unfit for cultivation. The
territory which is already occupied can easily contain this number of
inhabitants. One hundred millions of men disseminated over the surface of the
twenty-four States, and the three dependencies, which constitute the Union,
would only give 762 inhabitants to the square league; this would be far below
the mean population of France, which is 1,063 to the square league; or of
England, which is 1,457; and it would even be below the population of
Switzerland, for that country, notwithstanding its lakes and mountains, contains
783 inhabitants to the square league. See "Malte Brun," vol. vi. p. 92.
[The actual result has fallen somewhat short of these calculations, in spite of
the vast territorial acquisitions of the United States: but in 1899 the
population is probably about eighty-seven millions, including the population of
the Philippines, Hawaii, and Porto Rico.]]
Whatever faith I may have in the perfectibility of man, until human nature is
altered, and men wholly transformed, I shall refuse to believe in the duration
of a government which is called upon to hold together forty different peoples,
disseminated over a territory equal to one-half of Europe in extent; to avoid
all rivalry, ambition, and struggles between them, and to direct their
independent activity to the accomplishment of the same designs.
But the greatest peril to which the Union is exposed by its increase arises from
the continual changes which take place in the position of its internal strength.
The distance from Lake Superior to the Gulf of Mexico extends from the 47th to
the 30th degree of latitude, a distance of more than 1,200 miles as the bird
flies. The frontier of the United States winds along the whole of this immense
line, sometimes falling within its limits, but more frequently extending far
beyond it, into the waste. It has been calculated that the whites advance every
year a mean distance of seventeen miles along the whole of his vast boundary. *j
Obstacles, such as an unproductive district, a lake or an Indian nation
unexpectedly encountered, are sometimes met with. The advancing column then
halts for a while; its two extremities fall back upon themselves, and as soon as
they are reunited they proceed onwards. This gradual and continuous progress of
the European race towards the Rocky Mountains has the solemnity of a
providential event; it is like a deluge of men rising unabatedly, and daily
driven onwards by the hand of God.
j
[ See Legislative Documents, 20th Congress, No. 117, p. 105.]
Within this first line of conquering settlers towns are built, and vast States
founded. In 1790 there were only a few thousand pioneers sprinkled along the
valleys of the Mississippi; and at the present day these valleys contain as many
inhabitants as were to be found in the whole Union in 1790. Their population
amounts to nearly 4,000,000. *k The city of Washington was founded in 1800, in
the very centre of the Union; but such are the changes which have taken place,
that it now stands at one of the extremities; and the delegates of the most
remote Western States are already obliged to perform a journey as long as that
from Vienna to Paris. *l
k
[ 3,672,317—Census of 1830.]
l
[ The distance from Jefferson, the capital of the State of Missouri, to
Washington is 1,019 miles. ("American Almanac," 1831, p. 48.)]
All the States are borne onwards at the same time in the path of fortune, but of
course they do not all increase and prosper in the same proportion. To the North
of the Union the detached branches of the Alleghany chain, which extend as far
as the Atlantic Ocean, form spacious roads and ports, which are constantly
accessible to vessels of the greatest burden. But from the Potomac to the mouth
of the Mississippi the coast is sandy and flat. In this part of the Union the
mouths of almost all the rivers are obstructed; and the few harbors which exist
amongst these lagoons afford much shallower water to vessels, and much fewer
commercial advantages than those of the North.
This first natural cause of inferiority is united to another cause proceeding
from the laws. We have already seen that slavery, which is abolished in the
North, still exists in the South; and I have pointed out its fatal consequences
upon the prosperity of the planter himself.
The North is therefore superior to the South both in commerce *m and
manufacture; the natural consequence of which is the more rapid increase of
population and of wealth within its borders. The States situate upon the shores
of the Atlantic Ocean are already half-peopled. Most of the land is held by an
owner; and these districts cannot therefore receive so many emigrants as the
Western States, where a boundless field is still open to their exertions. The
valley of the Mississippi is far more fertile than the coast of the Atlantic
Ocean. This reason, added to all the others, contributes to drive the Europeans
westward—a fact which may be rigorously demonstrated by figures. It is found
that the sum total of the population of all the United States has about tripled
in the course of forty years. But in the recent States adjacent to the
Mississippi, the population has increased thirty-one-fold, within the same space
of time. *n
m
[ The following statements will suffice to show the difference which exists
between the commerce of the South and that of the North:—
In 1829 the tonnage of all the merchant vessels belonging to Virginia, the two
Carolinas, and Georgia (the four great Southern States), amounted to only 5,243
tons. In the same year the tonnage of the vessels of the State of Massachusetts
alone amounted to 17,322 tons. (See Legislative Documents, 21st Congress, 2d
session, No. 140, p. 244.) Thus the State of Massachusetts had three times as
much shipping as the four above-mentioned States. Nevertheless the area of the
State of Massachusetts is only 7,335 square miles, and its population amounts to
610,014 inhabitants [2,238,943 in 1890]; whilst the area of the four other
States I have quoted is 210,000 square miles, and their population 3,047,767.
Thus the area of the State of Massachusetts forms only one-thirtieth part of the
area of the four States; and its population is five times smaller than theirs.
(See "Darby's View of the United States.") Slavery is prejudicial to the
commercial prosperity of the South in several different ways; by diminishing the
spirit of enterprise amongst the whites, and by preventing them from meeting
with as numerous a class of sailors as they require. Sailors are usually taken
from the lowest ranks of the population. But in the Southern States these lowest
ranks are composed of slaves, and it is very difficult to employ them at sea.
They are unable to serve as well as a white crew, and apprehensions would always
be entertained of their mutinying in the middle of the ocean, or of their
escaping in the foreign countries at which they might touch.]
n
[ "Darby's View of the United States," p. 444.]
The relative position of the central federal power is continually displaced.
Forty years ago the majority of the citizens of the Union was established upon
the coast of the Atlantic, in the environs of the spot upon which Washington now
stands; but the great body of the people is now advancing inland and to the
north, so that in twenty years the majority will unquestionably be on the
western side of the Alleghanies. If the Union goes on to subsist, the basin of
the Mississippi is evidently marked out, by its fertility and its extent, as the
future centre of the Federal Government. In thirty or forty years, that tract of
country will have assumed the rank which naturally belongs to it. It is easy to
calculate that its population, compared to that of the coast of the Atlantic,
will be, in round numbers, as 40 to 11. In a few years the States which founded
the Union will lose the direction of its policy, and the population of the
valley of the Mississippi will preponderate in the federal assemblies.
This constant gravitation of the federal power and influence towards the
northwest is shown every ten years, when a general census of the population is
made, and the number of delegates which each State sends to Congress is settled
afresh. *o In 1790 Virginia had nineteen representatives in Congress. This
number continued to increase until the year 1813, when it reached to
twenty-three; from that time it began to decrease, and in 1833 Virginia elected
only twenty-one representatives. *p During the same period the State of New York
progressed in the contrary direction: in 1790 it had ten representatives in
Congress; in 1813, twenty-seven; in 1823, thirty-four; and in 1833, forty. The
State of Ohio had only one representative in 1803, and in 1833 it had already
nineteen.
o
[ It may be seen that in the course of the last ten years (1820-1830) the
population of one district, as, for instance, the State of Delaware, has
increased in the proportion of five per cent.; whilst that of another, as the
territory of Michigan, has increased 250 per cent. Thus the population of
Virginia had augmented thirteen per cent., and that of the border State of Ohio
sixty-one per cent., in the same space of time. The general table of these
changes, which is given in the "National Calendar," displays a striking picture
of the unequal fortunes of the different States.]
p
[ It has just been said that in the course of the last term the population of
Virginia has increased thirteen per cent.; and it is necessary to explain how
the number of representatives for a State may decrease, when the population of
that State, far from diminishing, is actually upon the increase. I take the
State of Virginia, to which I have already alluded, as my term of comparison.
The number of representatives of Virginia in 1823 was proportionate to the total
number of the representatives of the Union, and to the relation which the
population bore to that of the whole Union: in 1833 the number of
representatives of Virginia was likewise proportionate to the total number of
the representatives of the Union, and to the relation which its population,
augmented in the course of ten years, bore to the augmented population of the
Union in the same space of time. The new number of Virginian representatives
will then be to the old numver, on the one hand, as the new numver of all the
representatives is to the old number; and, on the other hand, as the
augmentation of the population of Virginia is to that of the whole population of
the country. Thus, if the increase of the population of the lesser country be to
that of the greater in an exact inverse ratio of the proportion between the new
and the old numbers of all the representatives, the number of the
representatives of Virginia will remain stationary; and if the increase of the
Virginian population be to that of the whole Union in a feeblerratio than the
new number of the representatives of the Union to the old number, the number of
the representatives of Virginia must decrease. [Thus, to the 56th Congress in
1899, Virginia and West Virginia send only fourteen representatives.]]
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part VIII
It is difficult to imagine a durable union of a people which is rich and strong
with one which is poor and weak, even if it were proved that the strength and
wealth of the one are not the causes of the weakness and poverty of the other.
But union is still more difficult to maintain at a time at which one party is
losing strength, and the other is gaining it. This rapid and disproportionate
increase of certain States threatens the independence of the others. New York
might perhaps succeed, with its 2,000,000 of inhabitants and its forty
representatives, in dictating to the other States in Congress. But even if the
more powerful States make no attempt to bear down the lesser ones, the danger
still exists; for there is almost as much in the possibility of the act as in
the act itself. The weak generally mistrust the justice and the reason of the
strong. The States which increase less rapidly than the others look upon those
which are more favored by fortune with envy and suspicion. Hence arise the
deep-seated uneasiness and ill-defined agitation which are observable in the
South, and which form so striking a contrast to the confidence and prosperity
which are common to other parts of the Union. I am inclined to think that the
hostile measures taken by the Southern provinces upon a recent occasion are
attributable to no other cause. The inhabitants of the Southern States are, of
all the Americans, those who are most interested in the maintenance of the
Union; they would assuredly suffer most from being left to themselves; and yet
they are the only citizens who threaten to break the tie of confederation. But
it is easy to perceive that the South, which has given four Presidents,
Washington, Jefferson, Madison, and Monroe, to the Union, which perceives that
it is losing its federal influence, and that the number of its representatives
in Congress is diminishing from year to year, whilst those of the Northern and
Western States are increasing; the South, which is peopled with ardent and
irascible beings, is becoming more and more irritated and alarmed. The citizens
reflect upon their present position and remember their past influence, with the
melancholy uneasiness of men who suspect oppression: if they discover a law of
the Union which is not unequivocally favorable to their interests, they protest
against it as an abuse of force; and if their ardent remonstrances are not
listened to, they threaten to quit an association which loads them with burdens
whilst it deprives them of their due profits. "The tariff," said the inhabitants
of Carolina in 1832, "enriches the North, and ruins the South; for if this were
not the case, to what can we attribute the continually increasing power and
wealth of the North, with its inclement skies and arid soil; whilst the South,
which may be styled the garden of America, is rapidly declining?" *q
q
[ See the report of its committee to the Convention which proclaimed the
nullification of the tariff in South Carolina.]
If the changes which I have described were gradual, so that each generation at
least might have time to disappear with the order of things under which it had
lived, the danger would be less; but the progress of society in America is
precipitate, and almost revolutionary. The same citizen may have lived to see
his State take the lead in the Union, and afterwards become powerless in the
federal assemblies; and an Anglo-American republic has been known to grow as
rapidly as a man passing from birth and infancy to maturity in the course of
thirty years. It must not be imagined, however, that the States which lose their
preponderance, also lose their population or their riches: no stop is put to
their prosperity, and they even go on to increase more rapidly than any kingdom
in Europe. *r But they believe themselves to be impoverished because their
wealth does not augment as rapidly as that of their neighbors; any they think
that their power is lost, because they suddenly come into collision with a power
greater than their own: *s thus they are more hurt in their feelings and their
passions than in their interests. But this is amply sufficient to endanger the
maintenance of the Union. If kings and peoples had only had their true interests
in view ever since the beginning of the world, the name of war would scarcely be
known among mankind.
r
[ The population of a country assuredly constitutes the first element of its
wealth. In the ten years (1820-1830) during which Virginia lost two of its
representatives in Congress, its population increased in the proportion of 13.7
per cent.; that of Carolina in the proportion of fifteen per cent.; and that of
Georgia, 15.5 per cent. (See the "American Almanac," 1832, p. 162) But the
population of Russia, which increases more rapidly than that of any other
European country, only augments in ten years at the rate of 9.5 per cent.; in
France, at the rate of seven per cent.; and in Europe in general, at the rate of
4.7 per cent. (See "Malte Brun," vol. vi. p. 95)]
s
[ It must be admitted, however, that the depreciation which has taken place in
the value of tobacco, during the last fifty years, has notably diminished the
opulence of the Southern planters: but this circumstance is as independent of
the will of their Northern brethren as it is of their own.]
Thus the prosperity of the United States is the source of the most serious
dangers that threaten them, since it tends to create in some of the confederate
States that over-excitement which accompanies a rapid increase of fortune; and
to awaken in others those feelings of envy, mistrust, and regret which usually
attend upon the loss of it. The Americans contemplate this extraordinary and
hasty progress with exultation; but they would be wiser to consider it with
sorrow and alarm. The Americans of the United States must inevitably become one
of the greatest nations in the world; their offset will cover almost the whole
of North America; the continent which they inhabit is their dominion, and it
cannot escape them. What urges them to take possession of it so soon? Riches,
power, and renown cannot fail to be theirs at some future time, but they rush
upon their fortune as if but a moment remained for them to make it their own.
I think that I have demonstrated that the existence of the present confederation
depends entirely on the continued assent of all the confederates; and, starting
from this principle, I have inquired into the causes which may induce the
several States to separate from the others. The Union may, however, perish in
two different ways: one of the confederate States may choose to retire from the
compact, and so forcibly to sever the federal tie; and it is to this supposition
that most of the remarks that I have made apply: or the authority of the Federal
Government may be progressively entrenched on by the simultaneous tendency of
the united republics to resume their independence. The central power,
successively stripped of all its prerogatives, and reduced to impotence by tacit
consent, would become incompetent to fulfil its purpose; and the second Union
would perish, like the first, by a sort of senile inaptitude. The gradual
weakening of the federal tie, which may finally lead to the dissolution of the
Union, is a distinct circumstance, that may produce a variety of minor
consequences before it operates so violent a change. The confederation might
still subsist, although its Government were reduced to such a degree of
inanition as to paralyze the nation, to cause internal anarchy, and to check the
general prosperity of the country.
After having investigated the causes which may induce the Anglo-Americans to
disunite, it is important to inquire whether, if the Union continues to subsist,
their Government will extend or contract its sphere of action, and whether it
will become more energetic or more weak.
The Americans are evidently disposed to look upon their future condition with
alarm. They perceive that in most of the nations of the world the exercise of
the rights of sovereignty tends to fall under the control of a few individuals,
and they are dismayed by the idea that such will also be the case in their own
country. Even the statesmen feel, or affect to feel, these fears; for, in
America, centralization is by no means popular, and there is no surer means of
courting the majority than by inveighing against the encroachments of the
central power. The Americans do not perceive that the countries in which this
alarming tendency to centralization exists are inhabited by a single people;
whilst the fact of the Union being composed of different confederate communities
is sufficient to baffle all the inferences which might be drawn from analogous
circumstances. I confess that I am inclined to consider the fears of a great
number of Americans as purely imaginary; and far from participating in their
dread of the consolidation of power in the hands of the Union, I think that the
Federal Government is visibly losing strength.
To prove this assertion I shall not have recourse to any remote occurrences, but
to circumstances which I have myself witnessed, and which belong to our own
time.
An attentive examination of what is going on in the United States will easily
convince us that two opposite tendencies exist in that country, like two
distinct currents flowing in contrary directions in the same channel. The Union
has now existed for forty-five years, and in the course of that time a vast
number of provincial prejudices, which were at first hostile to its power, have
died away. The patriotic feeling which attached each of the Americans to his own
native State is become less exclusive; and the different parts of the Union have
become more intimately connected the better they have become acquainted with
each other. The post, *t that great instrument of intellectual intercourse, now
reaches into the backwoods; and steamboats have established daily means of
communication between the different points of the coast. An inland navigation of
unexampled rapidity conveys commodities up and down the rivers of the country.
*u And to these facilities of nature and art may be added those restless
cravings, that busy-mindedness, and love of pelf, which are constantly urging
the American into active life, and bringing him into contact with his
fellow-citizens. He crosses the country in every direction; he visits all the
various populations of the land; and there is not a province in France in which
the natives are so well known to each other as the 13,000,000 of men who cover
the territory of the United States.
t
[ In 1832, the district of Michigan, which only contains 31,639 inhabitants, and
is still an almost unexplored wilderness, possessed 940 miles of mail-roads. The
territory of Arkansas, which is still more uncultivated, was already intersected
by 1,938 miles of mail-roads. (See the report of the General Post Office,
November 30, 1833.) The postage of newspapers alone in the whole Union amounted
to $254,796.]
u
[ In the course of ten years, from 1821 to 1831, 271 steamboats have been
launched upon the rivers which water the valley of the Mississippi alone. In
1829 259 steamboats existed in the United States. (See Legislative Documents,
No. 140, p. 274.)]
But whilst the Americans intermingle, they grow in resemblance of each other;
the differences resulting from their climate, their origin, and their
institutions, diminish; and they all draw nearer and nearer to the common type.
Every year, thousands of men leave the North to settle in different parts of the
Union: they bring with them their faith, their opinions, and their manners; and
as they are more enlighthned than the men amongst whom they are about to dwell,
they soon rise to the head of affairs, and they adapt society to their own
advantage. This continual emigration of the North to the South is peculiarly
favorable to the fusion of all the different provincial characters into one
national character. The civilization of the North appears to be the common
standard, to which the whole nation will one day be assimilated.
The commercial ties which unite the confederate States are strengthened by the
increasing manufactures of the Americans; and the union which began to exist in
their opinions, gradually forms a part of their habits: the course of time has
swept away the bugbear thoughts which haunted the imaginations of the citizens
in 1789. The federal power is not become oppressive; it has not destroyed the
independence of the States; it has not subjected the confederates to monarchial
institutions; and the Union has not rendered the lesser States dependent upon
the larger ones; but the confederation has continued to increase in population,
in wealth, and in power. I am therefore convinced that the natural obstacles to
the continuance of the American Union are not so powerful at the present time as
they were in 1789; and that the enemies of the Union are not so numerous.
Nevertheless, a careful examination of the history of the United States for the
last forty-five years will readily convince us that the federal power is
declining; nor is it difficult to explain the causes of this phenomenon. *v When
the Constitution of 1789 was promulgated, the nation was a prey to anarchy; the
Union, which succeeded this confusion, excited much dread and much animosity;
but it was warmly supported because it satisfied an imperious want. Thus,
although it was more attacked than it is now, the federal power soon reached the
maximum of its authority, as is usually the case with a government which
triumphs after having braced its strength by the struggle. At that time the
interpretation of the Constitution seemed to extend, rather than to repress, the
federal sovereignty; and the Union offered, in several respects, the appearance
of a single and undivided people, directed in its foreign and internal policy by
a single Government. But to attain this point the people had risen, to a certain
extent, above itself.
v
[ [Since 1861 the movement is certainly in the opposite direction, and the
federal power has largely increased, and tends to further increase.]]
The Constitution had not destroyed the distinct sovereignty of the States; and
all communities, of whatever nature they may be, are impelled by a secret
propensity to assert their independence. This propensity is still more decided
in a country like America, in which every village forms a sort of republic
accustomed to conduct its own affairs. It therefore cost the States an effort to
submit to the federal supremacy; and all efforts, however successful they may
be, necessarily subside with the causes in which they originated.
As the Federal Government consolidated its authority, America resumed its rank
amongst the nations, peace returned to its frontiers, and public credit was
restored; confusion was succeeded by a fixed state of things, which was
favorable to the full and free exercise of industrious enterprise. It was this
very prosperity which made the Americans forget the cause to which it was
attributable; and when once the danger was passed, the energy and the patriotism
which had enabled them to brave it disappeared from amongst them. No sooner were
they delivered from the cares which oppressed them, than they easily returned to
their ordinary habits, and gave themselves up without resistance to their
natural inclinations. When a powerful Government no longer appeared to be
necessary, they once more began to think it irksome. The Union encouraged a
general prosperity, and the States were not inclined to abandon the Union; but
they desired to render the action of the power which represented that body as
light as possible. The general principle of Union was adopted, but in every
minor detail there was an actual tendency to independence. The principle of
confederation was every day more easily admitted, and more rarely applied; so
that the Federal Government brought about its own decline, whilst it was
creating order and peace.
As soon as this tendency of public opinion began to be manifested externally,
the leaders of parties, who live by the passions of the people, began to work it
to their own advantage. The position of the Federal Government then became
exceedingly critical. Its enemies were in possession of the popular favor; and
they obtained the right of conducting its policy by pledging themselves to
lessen its influence. From that time forwards the Government of the Union has
invariably been obliged to recede, as often as it has attempted to enter the
lists with the governments of the States. And whenever an interpretation of the
terms of the Federal Constitution has been called for, that interpretation has
most frequently been opposed to the Union, and favorable to the States.
The Constitution invested the Federal Government with the right of providing for
the interests of the nation; and it had been held that no other authority was so
fit to superintend the "internal improvements" which affected the prosperity of
the whole Union; such, for instance, as the cutting of canals. But the States
were alarmed at a power, distinct from their own, which could thus dispose of a
portion of their territory; and they were afraid that the central Government
would, by this means, acquire a formidable extent of patronage within their own
confines, and exercise a degree of influence which they intended to reserve
exclusively to their own agents. The Democratic party, which has constantly been
opposed to the increase of the federal authority, then accused the Congress of
usurpation, and the Chief Magistrate of ambition. The central Government was
intimidated by the opposition; and it soon acknowledged its error, promising
exactly to confine its influence for the future within the circle which was
prescribed to it.
The Constitution confers upon the Union the right of treating with foreign
nations. The Indian tribes, which border upon the frontiers of the United
States, had usually been regarded in this light. As long as these savages
consented to retire before the civilized settlers, the federal right was not
contested: but as soon as an Indian tribe attempted to fix its dwelling upon a
given spot, the adjacent States claimed possession of the lands and the rights
of sovereignty over the natives. The central Government soon recognized both
these claims; and after it had concluded treaties with the Indians as
independent nations, it gave them up as subjects to the legislative tyranny of
the States. *w
w
[ See in the Legislative Documents, already quoted in speaking of the Indians,
the letter of the President of the United States to the Cherokees, his
correspondence on this subject with his agents, and his messages to Congress.]
Some of the States which had been founded upon the coast of the Atlantic,
extended indefinitely to the West, into wild regions where no European had ever
penetrated. The States whose confines were irrevocably fixed, looked with a
jealous eye upon the unbounded regions which the future would enable their
neighbors to explore. The latter then agreed, with a view to conciliate the
others, and to facilitate the act of union, to lay down their own boundaries,
and to abandon all the territory which lay beyond those limits to the
confederation at large. *x Thenceforward the Federal Government became the owner
of all the uncultivated lands which lie beyond the borders of the thirteen
States first confederated. It was invested with the right of parcelling and
selling them, and the sums derived from this source were exclusively reserved to
the public treasure of the Union, in order to furnish supplies for purchasing
tracts of country from the Indians, for opening roads to the remote settlements,
and for accelerating the increase of civilization as much as possible. New
States have, however, been formed in the course of time, in the midst of those
wilds which were formerly ceded by the inhabitants of the shores of the
Atlantic. Congress has gone on to sell, for the profit of the nation at large,
the uncultivated lands which those new States contained. But the latter at
length asserted that, as they were now fully constituted, they ought to enjoy
the exclusive right of converting the produce of these sales to their own use.
As their remonstrances became more and more threatening, Congress thought fit to
deprive the Union of a portion of the privileges which it had hitherto enjoyed;
and at the end of 1832 it passed a law by which the greatest part of the revenue
derived from the sale of lands was made over to the new western republics,
although the lands themselves were not ceded to them. *y
x
[ The first act of session was made by the State of New York in 1780; Virginia,
Massachusetts, Connecticut, South and North Carolina, followed this example at
different times, and lastly, the act of cession of Georgia was made as recently
as 1802.]
y
[ It is true that the President refused his assent to this law; but he
completely adopted it in principle. (See Message of December 8, 1833.)]
The slightest observation in the United States enables one to appreciate the
advantages which the country derives from the bank. These advantages are of
several kinds, but one of them is peculiarly striking to the stranger. The
banknotes of the United States are taken upon the borders of the desert for the
same value as at Philadelphia, where the bank conducts its operations. *z
z
[ The present Bank of the United States was established in 1816, with a capital
of $35,000,000; its charter expires in 1836. Last year Congress passed a law to
renew it, but the President put his veto upon the bill. The struggle is still
going on with great violence on either side, and the speedy fall of the bank may
easily be foreseen. [It was soon afterwards extinguished by General Jackson.]]
The Bank of the United States is nevertheless the object of great animosity. Its
directors have proclaimed their hostility to the President: and they are
accused, not without some show of probability, of having abused their influence
to thwart his election. The President therefore attacks the establishment which
they represent with all the warmth of personal enmity; and he is encouraged in
the pursuit of his revenge by the conviction that he is supported by the secret
propensities of the majority. The bank may be regarded as the great monetary tie
of the Union, just as Congress is the great legislative tie; and the same
passions which tend to render the States independent of the central power,
contribute to the overthrow of the bank.
The Bank of the United States always holds a great number of the notes issued by
the provincial banks, which it can at any time oblige them to convert into cash.
It has itself nothing to fear from a similar demand, as the extent of its
resources enables it to meet all claims. But the existence of the provincial
banks is thus threatened, and their operations are restricted, since they are
only able to issue a quantity of notes duly proportioned to their capital. They
submit with impatience to this salutary control. The newspapers which they have
bought over, and the President, whose interest renders him their instrument,
attack the bank with the greatest vehemence. They rouse the local passions and
the blind democratic instinct of the country to aid their cause; and they assert
that the bank directors form a permanent aristocratic body, whose influence must
ultimately be felt in the Government, and must affect those principles of
equality upon which society rests in America.
The contest between the bank and its opponents is only an incident in the great
struggle which is going on in America between the provinces and the central
power; between the spirit of democratic independence and the spirit of gradation
and subordination. I do not mean that the enemies of the bank are identically
the same individuals who, on other points, attack the Federal Government; but I
assert that the attacks directed against the bank of the United States originate
in the same propensities which militate against the Federal Government; and that
the very numerous opponents of the former afford a deplorable symptom of the
decreasing support of the latter.
The Union has never displayed so much weakness as in the celebrated question of
the tariff. *a The wars of the French Revolution and of 1812 had created
manufacturing establishments in the North of the Union, by cutting off all free
communication between America and Europe. When peace was concluded, and the
channel of intercourse reopened by which the produce of Europe was transmitted
to the New World, the Americans thought fit to establish a system of import
duties, for the twofold purpose of protecting their incipient manufactures and
of paying off the amount of the debt contracted during the war. The Southern
States, which have no manufactures to encourage, and which are exclusively
agricultural, soon complained of this measure. Such were the simple facts, and I
do not pretend to examine in this place whether their complaints were well
founded or unjust.
a
[ See principally for the details of this affair, the Legislative Documents, 22d
Congress, 2d Session, No. 30.]
As early as the year 1820, South Carolina declared, in a petition to Congress,
that the tariff was "unconstitutional, oppressive, and unjust." And the States
of Georgia, Virginia, North Carolina, Alabama, and Mississippi subsequently
remonstrated against it with more or less vigor. But Congress, far from lending
an ear to these complaints, raised the scale of tariff duties in the years 1824
and 1828, and recognized anew the principle on which it was founded. A doctrine
was then proclaimed, or rather revived, in the South, which took the name of
Nullification.
I have shown in the proper place that the object of the Federal Constitution was
not to form a league, but to create a national government. The Americans of the
United States form a sole and undivided people, in all the cases which are
specified by that Constitution; and upon these points the will of the nation is
expressed, as it is in all constitutional nations, by the voice of the majority.
When the majority has pronounced its decision, it is the duty of the minority to
submit. Such is the sound legal doctrine, and the only one which agrees with the
text of the Constitution, and the known intention of those who framed it.
The partisans of Nullification in the South maintain, on the contrary, that the
intention of the Americans in uniting was not to reduce themselves to the
condition of one and the same people; that they meant to constitute a league of
independent States; and that each State, consequently retains its entire
sovereignty, if not de facto, at least de jure; and has the right of putting its
own construction upon the laws of Congress, and of suspending their execution
within the limits of its own territory, if they are held to be unconstitutional
and unjust.
The entire doctrine of Nullification is comprised in a sentence uttered by
Vice-President Calhoun, the head of that party in the South, before the Senate
of the United States, in the year 1833: could: "The Constitution is a compact to
which the States were parties in their sovereign capacity; now, whenever a
compact is entered into by parties which acknowledge no tribunal above their
authority to decide in the last resort, each of them has a right to judge for
itself in relation to the nature, extent, and obligations of the instrument." It
is evident that a similar doctrine destroys the very basis of the Federal
Constitution, and brings back all the evils of the old confederation, from which
the Americans were supposed to have had a safe deliverance.
When South Carolina perceived that Congress turned a deaf ear to its
remonstrances, it threatened to apply the doctrine of nullification to the
federal tariff bill. Congress persisted in its former system; and at length the
storm broke out. In the course of 1832 the citizens of South Carolina, *b named
a national Convention, to consult upon the extraordinary measures which they
were called upon to take; and on November 24th of the same year this Convention
promulgated a law, under the form of a decree, which annulled the federal law of
the tariff, forbade the levy of the imposts which that law commands, and refused
to recognize the appeal which might be made to the federal courts of law. *c
This decree was only to be put in execution in the ensuing month of February,
and it was intimated, that if Congress modified the tariff before that period,
South Carolina might be induced to proceed no further with her menaces; and a
vague desire was afterwards expressed of submitting the question to an
extraordinary assembly of all the confederate States.
b
[ That is to say, the majority of the people; for the opposite party, called the
Union party, always formed a very strong and active minority. Carolina may
contain about 47,000 electors; 30,000 were in favor of nullification, and 17,000
opposed to it.]
c
[ This decree was preceded by a report of the committee by which it was framed,
containing the explanation of the motives and object of the law. The following
passage occurs in it, p. 34:—"When the rights reserved by the Constitution to
the different States are deliberately violated, it is the duty and the right of
those States to interfere, in order to check the progress of the evil; to resist
usurpation, and to maintain, within their respective limits, those powers and
privileges which belong to them as independent sovereign States. If they were
destitute of this right, they would not be sovereign. South Carolina declares
that she acknowledges no tribunal upon earth above her authority. She has indeed
entered into a solemn compact of union with the other States; but she demands,
and will exercise, the right of putting her own construction upon it; and when
this compact is violated by her sister States, and by the Government which they
have created, she is determined to avail herself of the unquestionable right of
judging what is the extent of the infraction, and what are the measures best
fitted to obtain justice."]
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part IX
In the meantime South Carolina armed her militia, and prepared for war. But
Congress, which had slighted its suppliant subjects, listened to their
complaints as soon as they were found to have taken up arms. *d A law was
passed, by which the tariff duties were to be progressively reduced for ten
years, until they were brought so low as not to exceed the amount of supplies
necessary to the Government. *e Thus Congress completely abandoned the principle
of the tariff; and substituted a mere fiscal impost to a system of protective
duties. *f The Government of the Union, in order to conceal its defeat, had
recourse to an expedient which is very much in vogue with feeble governments. It
yielded the point de facto, but it remained inflexible upon the principles in
question; and whilst Congress was altering the tariff law, it passed another
bill, by which the President was invested with extraordinary powers, enabling
him to overcome by force a resistance which was then no longer to be
apprehended.
d
[ Congress was finally decided to take this step by the conduct of the powerful
State of Virginia, whose legislature offered to serve as mediator between the
Union and South Carolina. Hitherto the latter State had appeared to be entirely
abandoned, even by the States which had joined in her remonstrances.]
e
[ This law was passed on March 2, 1833.]
f
[ This bill was brought in by Mr. Clay, and it passed in four days through both
Houses of Congress by an immense majority.]
But South Carolina did not consent to leave the Union in the enjoyment of these
scanty trophies of success: the same national Convention which had annulled the
tariff bill, met again, and accepted the proffered concession; but at the same
time it declared it unabated perseverance in the doctrine of Nullification: and
to prove what it said, it annulled the law investing the President with
extraordinary powers, although it was very certain that the clauses of that law
would never be carried into effect.
Almost all the controversies of which I have been speaking have taken place
under the Presidency of General Jackson; and it cannot be denied that in the
question of the tariff he has supported the claims of the Union with vigor and
with skill. I am, however, of opinion that the conduct of the individual who now
represents the Federal Government may be reckoned as one of the dangers which
threaten its continuance.
Some persons in Europe have formed an opinion of the possible influence of
General Jackson upon the affairs of his country, which appears highly
extravagant to those who have seen more of the subject. We have been told that
General Jackson has won sundry battles, that he is an energetic man, prone by
nature and by habit to the use of force, covetous of power, and a despot by
taste. All this may perhaps be true; but the inferences which have been drawn
from these truths are exceedingly erroneous. It has been imagined that General
Jackson is bent on establishing a dictatorship in America, on introducing a
military spirit, and on giving a degree of influence to the central authority
which cannot but be dangerous to provincial liberties. But in America the time
for similar undertakings, and the age for men of this kind, is not yet come: if
General Jackson had entertained a hope of exercising his authority in this
manner, he would infallibly have forfeited his political station, and
compromised his life; accordingly he has not been so imprudent as to make any
such attempt.
Far from wishing to extend the federal power, the President belongs to the party
which is desirous of limiting that power to the bare and precise letter of the
Constitution, and which never puts a construction upon that act favorable to the
Government of the Union; far from standing forth as the champion of
centralization, General Jackson is the agent of all the jealousies of the
States; and he was placed in the lofty station he occupies by the passions of
the people which are most opposed to the central Government. It is by
perpetually flattering these passions that he maintains his station and his
popularity. General Jackson is the slave of the majority: he yields to its
wishes, its propensities, and its demands; say rather, that he anticipates and
forestalls them.
Whenever the governments of the States come into collision with that of the
Union, the President is generally the first to question his own rights: he
almost always outstrips the legislature; and when the extent of the federal
power is controverted, he takes part, as it were, against himself; he conceals
his official interests, and extinguishes his own natural inclinations. Not
indeed that he is naturally weak or hostile to the Union; for when the majority
decided against the claims of the partisans of nullification, he put himself at
its head, asserted the doctrines which the nation held distinctly and
energetically, and was the first to recommend forcible measures; but General
Jackson appears to me, if I may use the American expressions, to be a Federalist
by taste, and a Republican by calculation.
General Jackson stoops to gain the favor of the majority, but when he feels that
his popularity is secure, he overthrows all obstacles in the pursuit of the
objects which the community approves, or of those which it does not look upon
with a jealous eye. He is supported by a power with which his predecessors were
unacquainted; and he tramples on his personal enemies whenever they cross his
path with a facility which no former President ever enjoyed; he takes upon
himself the responsibility of measures which no one before him would have
ventured to attempt: he even treats the national representatives with disdain
approaching to insult; he puts his veto upon the laws of Congress, and
frequently neglects to reply to that powerful body. He is a favorite who
sometimes treats his master roughly. The power of General Jackson perpetually
increases; but that of the President declines; in his hands the Federal
Government is strong, but it will pass enfeebled into the hands of his
successor.
I am strangely mistaken if the Federal Government of the United States be not
constantly losing strength, retiring gradually from public affairs, and
narrowing its circle of action more and more. It is naturally feeble, but it now
abandons even its pretensions to strength. On the other hand, I thought that I
remarked a more lively sense of independence, and a more decided attachment to
provincial government in the States. The Union is to subsist, but to subsist as
a shadow; it is to be strong in certain cases, and weak in all others; in time
of warfare, it is to be able to concentrate all the forces of the nation and all
the resources of the country in its hands; and in time of peace its existence is
to be scarcely perceptible: as if this alternate debility and vigor were natural
or possible.
I do not foresee anything for the present which may be able to check this
general impulse of public opinion; the causes in which it originated do not
cease to operate with the same effect. The change will therefore go on, and it
may be predicted that, unless some extraordinary event occurs, the Government of
the Union will grow weaker and weaker every day.
I think, however, that the period is still remote at which the federal power
will be entirely extinguished by its inability to protect itself and to maintain
peace in the country. The Union is sanctioned by the manners and desires of the
people; its results are palpable, its benefits visible. When it is perceived
that the weakness of the Federal Government compromises the existence of the
Union, I do not doubt that a reaction will take place with a view to increase
its strength.
The Government of the United States is, of all the federal governments which
have hitherto been established, the one which is most naturally destined to act.
As long as it is only indirectly assailed by the interpretation of its laws, and
as long as its substance is not seriously altered, a change of opinion, an
internal crisis, or a war, may restore all the vigor which it requires. The
point which I have been most anxious to put in a clear light is simply this:
Many people, especially in France, imagine that a change in opinion is going on
in the United States, which is favorable to a centralization of power in the
hands of the President and the Congress. I hold that a contrary tendency may
distinctly be observed. So far is the Federal Government from acquiring
strength, and from threatening the sovereignty of the States, as it grows older,
that I maintain it to be growing weaker and weaker, and that the sovereignty of
the Union alone is in danger. Such are the facts which the present time
discloses. The future conceals the final result of this tendency, and the events
which may check, retard, or accelerate the changes I have described; but I do
not affect to be able to remove the veil which hides them from our sight.
Of The Republican Institutions Of The United States, And What Their Chances Of
Duration Are
The Union is accidental—The Republican institutions have more prospect of
permanence—A republic for the present the natural state of the
Anglo-Americans—Reason of this—In order to destroy it, all the laws must be
changed at the same time, and a great alteration take place in
manners—Difficulties experienced by the Americans in creating an aristocracy.
The dismemberment of the Union, by the introduction of war into the heart of
those States which are now confederate, with standing armies, a dictatorship,
and a heavy taxation, might, eventually, compromise the fate of the republican
institutions. But we ought not to confound the future prospects of the republic
with those of the Union. The Union is an accident, which will only last as long
as circumstances are favorable to its existence; but a republican form of
government seems to me to be the natural state of the Americans; which nothing
but the continued action of hostile causes, always acting in the same direction,
could change into a monarchy. The Union exists principally in the law which
formed it; one revolution, one change in public opinion, might destroy it
forever; but the republic has a much deeper foundation to rest upon.
What is understood by a republican government in the United States is the slow
and quiet action of society upon itself. It is a regular state of things really
founded upon the enlightened will of the people. It is a conciliatory government
under which resolutions are allowed time to ripen; and in which they are
deliberately discussed, and executed with mature judgment. The republicans in
the United States set a high value upon morality, respect religious belief, and
acknowledge the existence of rights. They profess to think that a people ought
to be moral, religious, and temperate, in proportion as it is free. What is
called the republic in the United States, is the tranquil rule of the majority,
which, after having had time to examine itself, and to give proof of its
existence, is the common source of all the powers of the State. But the power of
the majority is not of itself unlimited. In the moral world humanity, justice,
and reason enjoy an undisputed supremacy; in the political world vested rights
are treated with no less deference. The majority recognizes these two barriers;
and if it now and then overstep them, it is because, like individuals, it has
passions, and, like them, it is prone to do what is wrong, whilst it discerns
what is right.
But the demagogues of Europe have made strange discoveries. A republic is not,
according to them, the rule of the majority, as has hitherto been thought, but
the rule of those who are strenuous partisans of the majority. It is not the
people who preponderates in this kind of government, but those who are best
versed in the good qualities of the people. A happy distinction, which allows
men to act in the name of nations without consulting them, and to claim their
gratitude whilst their rights are spurned. A republican government, moreover, is
the only one which claims the right of doing whatever it chooses, and despising
what men have hitherto respected, from the highest moral obligations to the
vulgar rules of common-sense. It had been supposed, until our time, that
despotism was odious, under whatever form it appeared. But it is a discovery of
modern days that there are such things as legitimate tyranny and holy injustice,
provided they are exercised in the name of the people.
The ideas which the Americans have adopted respecting the republican form of
government, render it easy for them to live under it, and insure its duration.
If, in their country, this form be often practically bad, at least it is
theoretically good; and, in the end, the people always acts in conformity to it.
It was impossible at the foundation of the States, and it would still be
difficult, to establish a central administration in America. The inhabitants are
dispersed over too great a space, and separated by too many natural obstacles,
for one man to undertake to direct the details of their existence. America is
therefore pre-eminently the country of provincial and municipal government. To
this cause, which was plainly felt by all the Europeans of the New World, the
Anglo-Americans added several others peculiar to themselves.
At the time of the settlement of the North American colonies, municipal liberty
had already penetrated into the laws as well as the manners of the English; and
the emigrants adopted it, not only as a necessary thing, but as a benefit which
they knew how to appreciate. We have already seen the manner in which the
colonies were founded: every province, and almost every district, was peopled
separately by men who were strangers to each other, or who associated with very
different purposes. The English settlers in the United States, therefore, early
perceived that they were divided into a great number of small and distinct
communities which belonged to no common centre; and that it was needful for each
of these little communities to take care of its own affairs, since there did not
appear to be any central authority which was naturally bound and easily enabled
to provide for them. Thus, the nature of the country, the manner in which the
British colonies were founded, the habits of the first emigrants, in short
everything, united to promote, in an extraordinary degree, municipal and
provincial liberties.
In the United States, therefore, the mass of the institutions of the country is
essentially republican; and in order permanently to destroy the laws which form
the basis of the republic, it would be necessary to abolish all the laws at
once. At the present day it would be even more difficult for a party to succeed
in founding a monarchy in the United States than for a set of men to proclaim
that France should henceforward be a republic. Royalty would not find a system
of legislation prepared for it beforehand; and a monarchy would then exist,
really surrounded by republican institutions. The monarchical principle would
likewise have great difficulty in penetrating into the manners of the Americans.
In the United States, the sovereignty of the people is not an isolated doctrine
bearing no relation to the prevailing manners and ideas of the people: it may,
on the contrary, be regarded as the last link of a chain of opinions which binds
the whole Anglo-American world. That Providence has given to every human being
the degree of reason necessary to direct himself in the affairs which interest
him exclusively—such is the grand maxim upon which civil and political society
rests in the United States. The father of a family applies it to his children;
the master to his servants; the township to its officers; the province to its
townships; the State to its provinces; the Union to the States; and when
extended to the nation, it becomes the doctrine of the sovereignty of the
people.
Thus, in the United States, the fundamental principle of the republic is the
same which governs the greater part of human actions; republican notions
insinuate themselves into all the ideas, opinions, and habits of the Americans,
whilst they are formerly recognized by the legislation: and before this
legislation can be altered the whole community must undergo very serious
changes. In the United States, even the religion of most of the citizens is
republican, since it submits the truths of the other world to private judgment:
as in politics the care of its temporal interests is abandoned to the good sense
of the people. Thus every man is allowed freely to take that road which he
thinks will lead him to heaven; just as the law permits every citizen to have
the right of choosing his government.
It is evident that nothing but a long series of events, all having the same
tendency, can substitute for this combination of laws, opinions, and manners, a
mass of opposite opinions, manners, and laws.
If republican principles are to perish in America, they can only yield after a
laborious social process, often interrupted, and as often resumed; they will
have many apparent revivals, and will not become totally extinct until an
entirely new people shall have succeeded to that which now exists. Now, it must
be admitted that there is no symptom or presage of the approach of such a
revolution. There is nothing more striking to a person newly arrived in the
United States, than the kind of tumultuous agitation in which he finds political
society. The laws are incessantly changing, and at first sight it seems
impossible that a people so variable in its desires should avoid adopting,
within a short space of time, a completely new form of government. Such
apprehensions are, however, premature; the instability which affects political
institutions is of two kinds, which ought not to be confounded: the first, which
modifies secondary laws, is not incompatible with a very settled state of
society; the other shakes the very foundations of the Constitution, and attacks
the fundamental principles of legislation; this species of instability is always
followed by troubles and revolutions, and the nation which suffers under it is
in a state of violent transition.
Experience shows that these two kinds of legislative instability have no
necessary connection; for they have been found united or separate, according to
times and circumstances. The first is common in the United States, but not the
second: the Americans often change their laws, but the foundation of the
Constitution is respected.
In our days the republican principle rules in America, as the monarchical
principle did in France under Louis XIV. The French of that period were not only
friends of the monarchy, but they thought it impossible to put anything in its
place; they received it as we receive the rays of the sun and the return of the
seasons. Amongst them the royal power had neither advocates nor opponents. In
like manner does the republican government exist in America, without contention
or opposition; without proofs and arguments, by a tacit agreement, a sort of
consensus universalis. It is, however, my opinion that by changing their
administrative forms as often as they do, the inhabitants of the United States
compromise the future stability of their government.
It may be apprehended that men, perpetually thwarted in their designs by the
mutability of the legislation, will learn to look upon republican institutions
as an inconvenient form of society; the evil resulting from the instability of
the secondary enactments might then raise a doubt as to the nature of the
fundamental principles of the Constitution, and indirectly bring about a
revolution; but this epoch is still very remote.
It may, however, be foreseen even now, that when the Americans lose their
republican institutions they will speedily arrive at a despotic government,
without a long interval of limited monarchy. Montesquieu remarked, that nothing
is more absolute than the authority of a prince who immediately succeeds a
republic, since the powers which had fearlessly been intrusted to an elected
magistrate are then transferred to a hereditary sovereign. This is true in
general, but it is more peculiarly applicable to a democratic republic. In the
United States, the magistrates are not elected by a particular class of
citizens, but by the majority of the nation; they are the immediate
representatives of the passions of the multitude; and as they are wholly
dependent upon its pleasure, they excite neither hatred nor fear: hence, as I
have already shown, very little care has been taken to limit their influence,
and they are left in possession of a vast deal of arbitrary power. This state of
things has engendered habits which would outlive itself; the American magistrate
would retain his power, but he would cease to be responsible for the exercise of
it; and it is impossible to say what bounds could then be set to tyranny.
Some of our European politicians expect to see an aristocracy arise in America,
and they already predict the exact period at which it will be able to assume the
reins of government. I have previously observed, and I repeat my assertion, that
the present tendency of American society appears to me to become more and more
democratic. Nevertheless, I do not assert that the Americans will not, at some
future time, restrict the circle of political rights in their country, or
confiscate those rights to the advantage of a single individual; but I cannot
imagine that they will ever bestow the exclusive exercise of them upon a
privileged class of citizens, or, in other words, that they will ever found an
aristocracy.
An aristocratic body is composed of a certain number of citizens who, without
being very far removed from the mass of the people, are, nevertheless,
permanently stationed above it: a body which it is easy to touch and difficult
to strike; with which the people are in daily contact, but with which they can
never combine. Nothing can be imagined more contrary to nature and to the secret
propensities of the human heart than a subjection of this kind; and men who are
left to follow their own bent will always prefer the arbitrary power of a king
to the regular administration of an aristocracy. Aristocratic institutions
cannot subsist without laying down the inequality of men as a fundamental
principle, as a part and parcel of the legislation, affecting the condition of
the human family as much as it affects that of society; but these are things so
repugnant to natural equity that they can only be extorted from men by
constraint.
I do not think a single people can be quoted, since human society began to
exist, which has, by its own free will and by its own exertions, created an
aristocracy within its own bosom. All the aristocracies of the Middle Ages were
founded by military conquest; the conqueror was the noble, the vanquished became
the serf. Inequality was then imposed by force; and after it had been introduced
into the manners of the country it maintained its own authority, and was
sanctioned by the legislation. Communities have existed which were aristocratic
from their earliest origin, owing to circumstances anterior to that event, and
which became more democratic in each succeeding age. Such was the destiny of the
Romans, and of the barbarians after them. But a people, having taken its rise in
civilization and democracy, which should gradually establish an inequality of
conditions, until it arrived at inviolable privileges and exclusive castes,
would be a novelty in the world; and nothing intimates that America is likely to
furnish so singular an example.
Reflection On The Causes Of The Commercial Prosperity Of The Of The United
States
The Americans destined by Nature to be a great maritime people—Extent of their
coasts—Depth of their ports—Size of their rivers—The commercial superiority of
the Anglo-Americans less attributable, however, to physical circumstances than
to moral and intellectual causes—Reason of this opinion—Future destiny of the
Anglo-Americans as a commercial nation—The dissolution of the Union would not
check the maritime vigor of the States—Reason of this—Anglo-Americans will
naturally supply the wants of the inhabitants of South America—They will become,
like the English, the factors of a great portion of the world.
The coast of the United States, from the Bay of Fundy to the Sabine River in the
Gulf of Mexico, is more than two thousand miles in extent. These shores form an
unbroken line, and they are all subject to the same government. No nation in the
world possesses vaster, deeper, or more secure ports for shipping than the
Americans.
The inhabitants of the United States constitute a great civilized people, which
fortune has placed in the midst of an uncultivated country at a distance of
three thousand miles from the central point of civilization. America
consequently stands in daily need of European trade. The Americans will, no
doubt, ultimately succeed in producing or manufacturing at home most of the
articles which they require; but the two continents can never be independent of
each other, so numerous are the natural ties which exist between their wants,
their ideas, their habits, and their manners.
The Union produces peculiar commodities which are now become necessary to us,
but which cannot be cultivated, or can only be raised at an enormous expense,
upon the soil of Europe. The Americans only consume a small portion of this
produce, and they are willing to sell us the rest. Europe is therefore the
market of America, as America is the market of Europe; and maritime commerce is
no less necessary to enable the inhabitants of the United States to transport
their raw materials to the ports of Europe, than it is to enable us to supply
them with our manufactured produce. The United States were therefore necessarily
reduced to the alternative of increasing the business of other maritime nations
to a great extent, if they had themselves declined to enter into commerce, as
the Spaniards of Mexico have hitherto done; or, in the second place, of becoming
one of the first trading powers of the globe.
The Anglo-Americans have always displayed a very decided taste for the sea. The
Declaration of Independence broke the commercial restrictions which united them
to England, and gave a fresh and powerful stimulus to their maritime genius.
Ever since that time, the shipping of the Union has increased in almost the same
rapid proportion as the number of its inhabitants. The Americans themselves now
transport to their own shores nine-tenths of the European produce which they
consume. *g And they also bring three-quarters of the exports of the New World
to the European consumer. *h The ships of the United States fill the docks of
Havre and of Liverpool; whilst the number of English and French vessels which
are to be seen at New York is comparatively small. *i
g
[ The total value of goods imported during the year which ended on September 30,
1832, was $101,129,266. The value of the cargoes of foreign vessels did not
amount to $10,731,039, or about one-tenth of the entire sum.]
h
[ The value of goods exported during the same year amounted to $87,176,943; the
value of goods exported by foreign vessels amounted to $21,036,183, or about one
quarter of the whole sum. (Williams's "Register," 1833, p. 398.)]
i
[ The tonnage of the vessels which entered all the ports of the Union in the
years 1829, 1830, and 1831, amounted to 3,307,719 tons, of which 544,571 tons
were foreign vessels; they stood, therefore, to the American vessels in a ratio
of about 16 to 100. ("National Calendar," 1833, p. 304.) The tonnage of the
English vessels which entered the ports of London, Liverpool, and Hull, in the
years 1820, 1826, and 1831, amounted to 443,800 tons. The foreign vessels which
entered the same ports during the same years amounted to 159,431 tons. The ratio
between them was, therefore, about 36 to 100. ("Companion to the Almanac," 1834,
p. 169.) In the year 1832 the ratio between the foreign and British ships which
entered the ports of Great Britain was 29 to 100. [These statements relate to a
condition of affairs which has ceased to exist; the Civil War and the heavy
taxation of the United States entirely altered the trade and navigation of the
country.]]
Thus, not only does the American merchant face the competition of his own
countrymen, but he even supports that of foreign nations in their own ports with
success. This is readily explained by the fact that the vessels of the United
States can cross the seas at a cheaper rate than any other vessels in the world.
As long as the mercantile shipping of the United States preserves this
superiority, it will not only retain what it has acquired, but it will
constantly increase in prosperity.
Chapter XVIII: Future Condition Of Three Races—Part X
It is difficult to say for what reason the Americans can trade at a lower rate
than other nations; and one is at first led to attribute this circumstance to
the physical or natural advantages which are within their reach; but this
supposition is erroneous. The American vessels cost almost as much to build as
our own; *j they are not better built, and they generally last for a shorter
time. The pay of the American sailor is more considerable than the pay on board
European ships; which is proved by the great number of Europeans who are to be
met with in the merchant vessels of the United States. But I am of opinion that
the true cause of their superiority must not be sought for in physical
advantages, but that it is wholly attributable to their moral and intellectual
qualities.
j
[ Materials are, generally speaking, less expensive in America than in Europe,
but the price of labor is much higher.]
The following comparison will illustrate my meaning. During the campaigns of the
Revolution the French introduced a new system of tactics into the art of war,
which perplexed the oldest generals, and very nearly destroyed the most ancient
monarchies in Europe. They undertook (what had never before been attempted) to
make shift without a number of things which had always been held to be
indispensable in warfare; they required novel exertions on the part of their
troops which no civilized nations had ever thought of; they achieved great
actions in an incredibly short space of time; and they risked human life without
hesitation to obtain the object in view. The French had less money and fewer men
than their enemies; their resources were infinitely inferior; nevertheless they
were constantly victorious, until their adversaries chose to imitate their
example.
The Americans have introduced a similar system into their commercial
speculations; and they do for cheapness what the French did for conquest. The
European sailor navigates with prudence; he only sets sail when the weather is
favorable; if an unforseen accident befalls him, he puts into port; at night he
furls a portion of his canvas; and when the whitening billows intimate the
vicinity of land, he checks his way, and takes an observation of the sun. But
the American neglects these precautions and braves these dangers. He weighs
anchor in the midst of tempestuous gales; by night and by day he spreads his
sheets to the wind; he repairs as he goes along such damage as his vessel may
have sustained from the storm; and when he at last approaches the term of his
voyage, he darts onward to the shore as if he already descried a port. The
Americans are often shipwrecked, but no trader crosses the seas so rapidly. And
as they perform the same distance in a shorter time, they can perform it at a
cheaper rate.
The European touches several times at different ports in the course of a long
voyage; he loses a good deal of precious time in making the harbor, or in
waiting for a favorable wind to leave it; and he pays daily dues to be allowed
to remain there. The American starts from Boston to go to purchase tea in China;
he arrives at Canton, stays there a few days, and then returns. In less than two
years he has sailed as far as the entire circumference of the globe, and he has
seen land but once. It is true that during a voyage of eight or ten months he
has drunk brackish water and lived upon salt meat; that he has been in a
continual contest with the sea, with disease, and with a tedious existence; but
upon his return he can sell a pound of his tea for a half-penny less than the
English merchant, and his purpose is accomplished.
I cannot better explain my meaning than by saying that the Americans affect a
sort of heroism in their manner of trading. But the European merchant will
always find it very difficult to imitate his American competitor, who, in
adopting the system which I have just described, follows not only a calculation
of his gain, but an impulse of his nature.
The inhabitants of the United States are subject to all the wants and all the
desires which result from an advanced stage of civilization; but as they are not
surrounded by a community admirably adapted, like that of Europe, to satisfy
their wants, they are often obliged to procure for themselves the various
articles which education and habit have rendered necessaries. In America it
sometimes happens that the same individual tills his field, builds his dwelling,
contrives his tools, makes his shoes, and weaves the coarse stuff of which his
dress is composed. This circumstance is prejudicial to the excellence of the
work; but it powerfully contributes to awaken the intelligence of the workman.
Nothing tends to materialize man, and to deprive his work of the faintest trace
of mind, more than extreme division of labor. In a country like America, where
men devoted to special occupations are rare, a long apprenticeship cannot be
required from anyone who embraces a profession. The Americans, therefore, change
their means of gaining a livelihood very readily; and they suit their
occupations to the exigencies of the moment, in the manner most profitable to
themselves. Men are to be met with who have successively been barristers,
farmers, merchants, ministers of the gospel, and physicians. If the American be
less perfect in each craft than the European, at least there is scarcely any
trade with which he is utterly unacquainted. His capacity is more general, and
the circle of his intelligence is enlarged.
The inhabitants of the United States are never fettered by the axioms of their
profession; they escape from all the prejudices of their present station; they
are not more attached to one line of operation than to another; they are not
more prone to employ an old method than a new one; they have no rooted habits,
and they easily shake off the influence which the habits of other nations might
exercise upon their minds from a conviction that their country is unlike any
other, and that its situation is without a precedent in the world. America is a
land of wonders, in which everything is in constant motion, and every movement
seems an improvement. The idea of novelty is there indissolubly connected with
the idea of amelioration. No natural boundary seems to be set to the efforts of
man; and what is not yet done is only what he has not yet attempted to do.
This perpetual change which goes on in the United States, these frequent
vicissitudes of fortune, accompanied by such unforeseen fluctuations in private
and in public wealth, serve to keep the minds of the citizens in a perpetual
state of feverish agitation, which admirably invigorates their exertions, and
keeps them in a state of excitement above the ordinary level of mankind. The
whole life of an American is passed like a game of chance, a revolutionary
crisis, or a battle. As the same causes are continually in operation throughout
the country, they ultimately impart an irresistible impulse to the national
character. The American, taken as a chance specimen of his countrymen, must then
be a man of singular warmth in his desires, enterprising, fond of adventure,
and, above all, of innovation. The same bent is manifest in all that he does; he
introduces it into his political laws, his religious doctrines, his theories of
social economy, and his domestic occupations; he bears it with him in the depths
of the backwoods, as well as in the business of the city. It is this same
passion, applied to maritime commerce, which makes him the cheapest and the
quickest trader in the world.
As long as the sailors of the United States retain these inspiriting advantages,
and the practical superiority which they derive from them, they will not only
continue to supply the wants of the producers and consumers of their own
country, but they will tend more and more to become, like the English, the
factors of all other peoples. *k This prediction has already begun to be
realized; we perceive that the American traders are introducing themselves as
intermediate agents in the commerce of several European nations; *l and America
will offer a still wider field to their enterprise.
k
[ It must not be supposed that English vessels are exclusively employed in
transporting foreign produce into England, or British produce to foreign
countries; at the present day the merchant shipping of England may be regarded
in the light of a vast system of public conveyances, ready to serve all the
producers of the world, and to open communications between all peoples. The
maritime genius of the Americans prompts them to enter into competition with the
English.]
l
[ Part of the commerce of the Mediterranean is already carried on by American
vessels.]
The great colonies which were founded in South America by the Spaniards and the
Portuguese have since become empires. Civil war and oppression now lay waste
those extensive regions. Population does not increase, and the thinly scattered
inhabitants are too much absorbed in the cares of self-defense even to attempt
any amelioration of their condition. Such, however, will not always be the case.
Europe has succeeded by her own efforts in piercing the gloom of the Middle
Ages; South America has the same Christian laws and Christian manners as we
have; she contains all the germs of civilization which have grown amidst the
nations of Europe or their offsets, added to the advantages to be derived from
our example: why then should she always remain uncivilized? It is clear that the
question is simply one of time; at some future period, which may be more or less
remote, the inhabitants of South America will constitute flourishing and
enlightened nations.
But when the Spaniards and Portuguese of South America begin to feel the wants
common to all civilized nations, they will still be unable to satisfy those
wants for themselves; as the youngest children of civilization, they must
perforce admit the superiority of their elder brethren. They will be
agriculturists long before they succeed in manufactures or commerce, and they
will require the mediation of strangers to exchange their produce beyond seas
for those articles for which a demand will begin to be felt.
It is unquestionable that the Americans of the North will one day supply the
wants of the Americans of the South. Nature has placed them in contiguity, and
has furnished the former with every means of knowing and appreciating those
demands, of establishing a permanent connection with those States, and of
gradually filling their markets. The merchants of the United States could only
forfeit these natural advantages if he were very inferior to the merchant of
Europe; to whom he is, on the contrary, superior in several respects. The
Americans of the United States already exercise a very considerable moral
influence upon all the peoples of the New World. They are the source of
intelligence, and all the nations which inhabit the same continent are already
accustomed to consider them as the most enlightened, the most powerful, and the
most wealthy members of the great American family. All eyes are therefore turned
towards the Union; and the States of which that body is composed are the models
which the other communities try to imitate to the best of their power; it is
from the United States that they borrow their political principles and their
laws.
The Americans of the United States stand in precisely the same position with
regard to the peoples of South America as their fathers, the English, occupy
with regard to the Italians, the Spaniards, the Portuguese, and all those
nations of Europe which receive their articles of daily consumption from
England, because they are less advanced in civilization and trade. England is at
this time the natural emporium of almost all the nations which are within its
reach; the American Union will perform the same part in the other hemisphere;
and every community which is founded, or which prospers in the New World, is
founded and prospers to the advantage of the Anglo-Americans.
If the Union were to be dissolved, the commerce of the States which now compose
it would undoubtedly be checked for a time; but this consequence would be less
perceptible than is generally supposed. It is evident that, whatever may happen,
the commercial States will remain united. They are all contiguous to each other;
they have identically the same opinions, interests, and manners; and they are
alone competent to form a very great maritime power. Even if the South of the
Union were to become independent of the North, it would still require the
services of those States. I have already observed that the South is not a
commercial country, and nothing intimates that it is likely to become so. The
Americans of the South of the United States will therefore be obliged, for a
long time to come, to have recourse to strangers to export their produce, and to
supply them with the commodities which are requisite to satisfy their wants. But
the Northern States are undoubtedly able to act as their intermediate agents
cheaper than any other merchants. They will therefore retain that employment,
for cheapness is the sovereign law of commerce. National claims and national
prejudices cannot resist the influence of cheapness. Nothing can be more
virulent than the hatred which exists between the Americans of the United States
and the English. But notwithstanding these inimical feelings, the Americans
derive the greater part of their manufactured commodities from England, because
England supplies them at a cheaper rate than any other nation. Thus the
increasing prosperity of America turns, notwithstanding the grudges of the
Americans, to the advantage of British manufactures.
Reason shows and experience proves that no commercial prosperity can be durable
if it cannot be united, in case of need, to naval force. This truth is as well
understood in the United States as it can be anywhere else: the Americans are
already able to make their flag respected; in a few years they will be able to
make it feared. I am convinced that the dismemberment of the Union would not
have the effect of diminishing the naval power of the Americans, but that it
would powerfully contribute to increase it. At the present time the commercial
States are connected with others which have not the same interests, and which
frequently yield an unwilling consent to the increase of a maritime power by
which they are only indirectly benefited. If, on the contrary, the commercial
States of the Union formed one independent nation, commerce would become the
foremost of their national interests; they would consequently be willing to make
very great sacrifices to protect their shipping, and nothing would prevent them
from pursuing their designs upon this point.
Nations, as well as men, almost always betray the most prominent features of
their future destiny in their earliest years. When I contemplate the ardor with
which the Anglo-Americans prosecute commercial enterprise, the advantages which
befriend them, and the success of their undertakings, I cannot refrain from
believing that they will one day become the first maritime power of the globe.
They are born to rule the seas, as the Romans were to conquer the world.
Conclusion
I have now nearly reached the close of my inquiry; hitherto, in speaking of the
future destiny of the United States, I have endeavored to divide my subject into
distinct portions, in order to study each of them with more attention. My
present object is to embrace the whole from one single point; the remarks I
shall make will be less detailed, but they will be more sure. I shall perceive
each object less distinctly, but I shall descry the principal facts with more
certainty. A traveller who has just left the walls of an immense city, climbs
the neighboring hill; as he goes father off he loses sight of the men whom he
has so recently quitted; their dwellings are confused in a dense mass; he can no
longer distinguish the public squares, and he can scarcely trace out the great
thoroughfares; but his eye has less difficulty in following the boundaries of
the city, and for the first time he sees the shape of the vast whole. Such is
the future destiny of the British race in North America to my eye; the details
of the stupendous picture are overhung with shade, but I conceive a clear idea
of the entire subject.
The territory now occupied or possessed by the United States of America forms
about one-twentieth part of the habitable earth. But extensive as these confines
are, it must not be supposed that the Anglo-American race will always remain
within them; indeed, it has already far overstepped them.
There was once a time at which we also might have created a great French nation
in the American wilds, to counterbalance the influence of the English upon the
destinies of the New World. France formerly possessed a territory in North
America, scarcely less extensive than the whole of Europe. The three greatest
rivers of that continent then flowed within her dominions. The Indian tribes
which dwelt between the mouth of the St. Lawrence and the delta of the
Mississippi were unaccustomed to any other tongue but ours; and all the European
settlements scattered over that immense region recalled the traditions of our
country. Louisbourg, Montmorency, Duquesne, St. Louis, Vincennes, New Orleans
(for such were the names they bore) are words dear to France and familiar to our
ears.
But a concourse of circumstances, which it would be tedious to enumerate, *m
have deprived us of this magnificent inheritance. Wherever the French settlers
were numerically weak and partially established, they have disappeared: those
who remain are collected on a small extent of country, and are now subject to
other laws. The 400,000 French inhabitants of Lower Canada constitute, at the
present time, the remnant of an old nation lost in the midst of a new people. A
foreign population is increasing around them unceasingly and on all sides, which
already penetrates amongst the ancient masters of the country, predominates in
their cities and corrupts their language. This population is identical with that
of the United States; it is therefore with truth that I asserted that the
British race is not confined within the frontiers of the Union, since it already
extends to the northeast.
m
[ The foremost of these circumstances is, that nations which are accustomed to
free institutions and municipal government are better able than any others to
found prosperous colonies. The habit of thinking and governing for oneself is
indispensable in a new country, where success necessarily depends, in a great
measure, upon the individual exertions of the settlers.]
To the northwest nothing is to be met with but a few insignificant Russian
settlements; but to the southwest, Mexico presents a barrier to the
Anglo-Americans. Thus, the Spaniards and the Anglo-Americans are, properly
speaking, the only two races which divide the possession of the New World. The
limits of separation between them have been settled by a treaty; but although
the conditions of that treaty are exceedingly favorable to the Anglo-Americans,
I do not doubt that they will shortly infringe this arrangement. Vast provinces,
extending beyond the frontiers of the Union towards Mexico, are still destitute
of inhabitants. The natives of the United States will forestall the rightful
occupants of these solitary regions. They will take possession of the soil, and
establish social institutions, so that when the legal owner arrives at length,
he will find the wilderness under cultivation, and strangers quietly settled in
the midst of his inheritance. *n
n
[ [This was speedily accomplished, and ere long both Texas and California formed
part of the United States. The Russian settlements were acquired by purchase.]]
The lands of the New World belong to the first occupant, and they are the
natural reward of the swiftest pioneer. Even the countries which are already
peopled will have some difficulty in securing themselves from this invasion. I
have already alluded to what is taking place in the province of Texas. The
inhabitants of the United States are perpetually migrating to Texas, where they
purchase land; and although they conform to the laws of the country, they are
gradually founding the empire of their own language and their own manners. The
province of Texas is still part of the Mexican dominions, but it will soon
contain no Mexicans; the same thing has occurred whenever the Anglo-Americans
have come into contact with populations of a different origin.
It cannot be denied that the British race has acquired an amazing preponderance
over all the other European races in the New World; and that it is very superior
to them in civilization, in industry, and in power. As long as it is only
surrounded by desert or thinly peopled countries, as long as it encounters no
dense populations upon its route, through which it cannot work its way, it will
assuredly continue to spread. The lines marked out by treaties will not stop it;
but it will everywhere transgress these imaginary barriers.
The geographical position of the British race in the New World is peculiarly
favorable to its rapid increase. Above its northern frontiers the icy regions of
the Pole extend; and a few degrees below its southern confines lies the burning
climate of the Equator. The Anglo-Americans are, therefore, placed in the most
temperate and habitable zone of the continent.
It is generally supposed that the prodigious increase of population in the
United States is posterior to their Declaration of Independence. But this is an
error: the population increased as rapidly under the colonial system as it does
at the present day; that is to say, it doubled in about twenty-two years. But
this proportion which is now applied to millions, was then applied to thousands
of inhabitants; and the same fact which was scarcely noticeable a century ago,
is now evident to every observer.
The British subjects in Canada, who are dependent on a king, augment and spread
almost as rapidly as the British settlers of the United States, who live under a
republican government. During the war of independence, which lasted eight years,
the population continued to increase without intermission in the same ratio.
Although powerful Indian nations allied with the English existed at that time
upon the western frontiers, the emigration westward was never checked. Whilst
the enemy laid waste the shores of the Atlantic, Kentucky, the western parts of
Pennsylvania, and the States of Vermont and of Maine were filling with
inhabitants. Nor did the unsettled state of the Constitution, which succeeded
the war, prevent the increase of the population, or stop its progress across the
wilds. Thus, the difference of laws, the various conditions of peace and war, of
order and of anarchy, have exercised no perceptible influence upon the gradual
development of the Anglo-Americans. This may be readily understood; for the fact
is, that no causes are sufficiently general to exercise a simultaneous influence
over the whole of so extensive a territory. One portion of the country always
offers a sure retreat from the calamities which afflict another part; and
however great may be the evil, the remedy which is at hand is greater still.
It must not, then, be imagined that the impulse of the British race in the New
World can be arrested. The dismemberment of the Union, and the hostilities which
might ensure, the abolition of republican institutions, and the tyrannical
government which might succeed it, may retard this impulse, but they cannot
prevent it from ultimately fulfilling the destinies to which that race is
reserved. No power upon earth can close upon the emigrants that fertile
wilderness which offers resources to all industry, and a refuge from all want.
Future events, of whatever nature they may be, will not deprive the Americans of
their climate or of their inland seas, of their great rivers or of their
exuberant soil. Nor will bad laws, revolutions, and anarchy be able to
obliterate that love of prosperity and that spirit of enterprise which seem to
be the distinctive characteristics of their race, or to extinguish that
knowledge which guides them on their way.
Thus, in the midst of the uncertain future, one event at least is sure. At a
period which may be said to be near (for we are speaking of the life of a
nation), the Anglo-Americans will alone cover the immense space contained
between the polar regions and the tropics, extending from the coasts of the
Atlantic to the shores of the Pacific Ocean. The territory which will probably
be occupied by the Anglo-Americans at some future time, may be computed to equal
three-quarters of Europe in extent. *o The climate of the Union is upon the
whole preferable to that of Europe, and its natural advantages are not less
great; it is therefore evident that its population will at some future time be
proportionate to our own. Europe, divided as it is between so many different
nations, and torn as it has been by incessant wars and the barbarous manners of
the Middle Ages, has notwithstanding attained a population of 410 inhabitants to
the square league. *p What cause can prevent the United States from having as
numerous a population in time?
o
[ The United States already extend over a territory equal to one-half of Europe.
The area of Europe is 500,000 square leagues, and its population 205,000,000 of
inhabitants. ("Malte Brun," liv. 114. vol. vi. p. 4.)
[This computation is given in French leagues, which were in use when the author
wrote. Twenty years later, in 1850, the superficial area of the United States
had been extended to 3,306,865 square miles of territory, which is about the
area of Europe.]]
p
[ See "Malte Brun," liv. 116, vol. vi. p. 92.]
Many ages must elapse before the divers offsets of the British race in America
cease to present the same homogeneous characteristics: and the time cannot be
foreseen at which a permanent inequality of conditions will be established in
the New World. Whatever differences may arise, from peace or from war, from
freedom or oppression, from prosperity or want, between the destinies of the
different descendants of the great Anglo-American family, they will at least
preserve an analogous social condition, and they will hold in common the customs
and the opinions to which that social condition has given birth.
In the Middle Ages, the tie of religion was sufficiently powerful to imbue all
the different populations of Europe with the same civilization. The British of
the New World have a thousand other reciprocal ties; and they live at a time
when the tendency to equality is general amongst mankind. The Middle Ages were a
period when everything was broken up; when each people, each province, each
city, and each family, had a strong tendency to maintain its distinct
individuality. At the present time an opposite tendency seems to prevail, and
the nations seem to be advancing to unity. Our means of intellectual intercourse
unite the most remote parts of the earth; and it is impossible for men to remain
strangers to each other, or to be ignorant of the events which are taking place
in any corner of the globe. The consequence is that there is less difference, at
the present day, between the Europeans and their descendants in the New World,
than there was between certain towns in the thirteenth century which were only
separated by a river. If this tendency to assimilation brings foreign nations
closer to each other, it must a fortiori prevent the descendants of the same
people from becoming aliens to each other.
The time will therefore come when one hundred and fifty millions of men will be
living in North America, *q equal in condition, the progeny of one race, owing
their origin to the same cause, and preserving the same civilization, the same
language, the same religion, the same habits, the same manners, and imbued with
the same opinions, propagated under the same forms. The rest is uncertain, but
this is certain; and it is a fact new to the world—a fact fraught with such
portentous consequences as to baffle the efforts even of the imagination.
q
[ This would be a population proportionate to that of Europe, taken at a mean
rate of 410 inhabitants to the square league.]
There are, at the present time, two great nations in the world which seem to
tend towards the same end, although they started from different points: I allude
to the Russians and the Americans. Both of them have grown up unnoticed; and
whilst the attention of mankind was directed elsewhere, they have suddenly
assumed a most prominent place amongst the nations; and the world learned their
existence and their greatness at almost the same time.
All other nations seem to have nearly reached their natural limits, and only to
be charged with the maintenance of their power; but these are still in the act
of growth; *r all the others are stopped, or continue to advance with extreme
difficulty; these are proceeding with ease and with celerity along a path to
which the human eye can assign no term. The American struggles against the
natural obstacles which oppose him; the adversaries of the Russian are men; the
former combats the wilderness and savage life; the latter, civilization with all
its weapons and its arts: the conquests of the one are therefore gained by the
ploughshare; those of the other by the sword. The Anglo-American relies upon
personal interest to accomplish his ends, and gives free scope to the unguided
exertions and common-sense of the citizens; the Russian centres all the
authority of society in a single arm: the principal instrument of the former is
freedom; of the latter servitude. Their starting-point is different, and their
courses are not the same; yet each of them seems to be marked out by the will of
Heaven to sway the destinies of half the globe.
r
[ Russia is the country in the Old World in which population increases most
rapidly in proportion.]
*** END OF EBOOK DEMOCRACY IN AMERICA, V1 ***
The Project Gutenberg EBook of Democracy In America, Volume 2 (of 2), by
Alexis de Toqueville
DEMOCRACY IN AMERICA
By Alexis De Tocqueville
Translated by Henry Reeve
Volume II.
Contents
Book Two: Influence Of Democracy On Progress Of Opinion
De Tocqueville's Preface To The Second Part
Section I: Influence of Democracy on the Action of Intellect
Chapter I: Philosophical Method Among the Americans
Chapter II: Of The Principal Source Of Belief Among Democratic Nations
Chapter III: Why The Americans Display More Readiness And More Taste
Chapter IV: Why The Americans Have Never Been So Eager As The French
Chapter V: Of The Manner In Which Religion In The United States Avails
Chapter VI: Of The Progress Of Roman Catholicism In The United States
Chapter VII: Of The Cause Of A Leaning To Pantheism
Chapter VIII: The Principle Of Equality Suggests To The Americans
Chapter IX: The Example Of The Americans Does Not Prove
Chapter X: Why The Americans Are More Addicted To Practical
Chapter XI: Of The Spirit In Which The Americans Cultivate The Arts
Chapter XII: Why The Americans Raise Some Monuments So Insignificant
Chapter XIII: Literary Characteristics Of Democratic Ages
Chapter XIV: The Trade Of Literature
Chapter XV: The Study Of Greek And Latin Literature Peculiarly Useful
Chapter XVI: The Effect Of Democracy On Language
Chapter XVII: Of Some Of The Sources Of Poetry
Chapter XVIII: Of The Inflated Style Of American Writers And Orators
Chapter XIX: Some Observations On The Drama
Chapter XX: Characteristics Of Historians In Democratic Ages
Chapter XXI: Of Parliamentary Eloquence In The United States
Section 2: Influence of Democracy on the Feelings of Americans
Chapter I: Why Democratic Nations Show A More Ardent And Enduring Love
Chapter II: Of Individualism In Democratic Countries
Chapter III: Individualism Stronger
Chapter IV: That The Americans Combat The Effects Of Individualism
Chapter V: Of The Use Which The Americans Make Of Public Associations
Chapter VI: Of The Relation Between Public Associations And Newspapers
Chapter VII: Connection Of Civil And Political Associations
Chapter VIII: The Americans Combat Individualism
Chapter IX: That The Americans Apply The Principle Of Interest Rightly
Chapter X: Of The Taste For Physical Well-Being In America
Chapter XI: Peculiar Effects Of The Love Of Physical Gratifications
Chapter XII: Causes Of Fanatical Enthusiasm In Some Americans
Chapter XIII: Causes Of The Restless Spirit Of Americans
Chapter XIV: Taste For Physical Gratifications United In America
Chapter XV: That Religious Belief Sometimes Turns The Thoughts
Chapter XVI: That Excessive Care Of Worldly Welfare
Chapter XVII: That In Times Marked By Equality Of Conditions
Chapter XVIII: That Amongst The Americans All Honest Callings
Chapter XIX: That Almost All The Americans Follow Industrial Callings
Chapter XX: That Aristocracy May Be Engendered By Manufactures
Book Three: Influence Of Democracy On Manners, Properly So Called
Chapter I: That Manners Are Softened As Social Conditions Become
Chapter II: That Democracy Renders The Habitual Intercourse
Chapter III: Why The Americans Show So Little Sensitiveness
Chapter IV: Consequences Of The Three Preceding Chapters
Chapter V: How Democracy Affects the Relation Of Masters And Servants
Chapter VI: That Democratic Institutions And Manners Tend To Raise Rents
Chapter VII: Influence Of Democracy On Wages
Chapter VIII: Influence Of Democracy On Kindred
Chapter IX: Education Of Young Women In The United States
Chapter X: The Young Woman In The Character Of A Wife
Chapter XI: That The Equality Of Conditions Contributes
Chapter XII: How The Americans Understand The Equality Of The Sexes
Chapter XIII: That The Principle Of Equality Naturally Divides
Chapter XIV: Some Reflections On American Manners
Chapter XV: Of The Gravity Of The Americans
Chapter XVI: Why The National Vanity Of The Americans Is More Restless
Chapter XVII: That The Aspect Of Society In The United States
Chapter XVIII: Of Honor In The United States And In Democratic
Chapter XIX: Why So Many Ambitious Men And So Little Lofty Ambition
Chapter XX: The Trade Of Place-Hunting In Certain Democratic Countries
Chapter XXI: Why Great Revolutions Will Become More Rare
Chapter XXII: Why Democratic Nations Are Naturally Desirous Of Peace
Chapter XXIII: Which Is The Most Warlike And Most Revolutionary Class
Chapter XXIV: Causes Which Render Democratic Armies Weaker
Chapter XXV: Of Discipline In Democratic Armies
Chapter XXVI: Some Considerations On War In Democratic Communities
Book Four: Influence Of Democratic Opinions On Political Society
Chapter I: That Equality Naturally Gives Men A Taste For Freedom
Chapter II: That The Notions Of Democratic Nations On Government
Chapter III: That The Sentiments Of Democratic Nations Accord
Chapter IV: Of Certain Peculiar And Accidental Causes
Chapter V: That Amongst The European Nations Of Our Time
Chapter VI: What Sort Of Despotism Democratic Nations Have To Fear
Chapter VII: Continuation Of The Preceding Chapters
Chapter VIII: General Survey Of The Subject
Appendix to Parts I. and II.
Part I.
Appendix A
Appendix B
Appendix C
Appendix D
Appendix E
Appendix F
Part II.
Appendix G
Appendix H
Appendix I
Appendix K
Appendix L
Appendix M
Appendix N
Appendix O
Appendix P
Appendix Q
Appendix R
Appendix S
Appendix T
Appendix U
Appendix V
Appendix W
Appendix X
Appendix Y
Appendix Z
Constitution Of The United States Of America
Article I
Section 1. All legislative Powers herein granted shall be vested
Section 2. The House of Representatives shall be composed
Section 3. The Senate of the United States shall be composed
Section 4. The Times, Places and Manner of holding Elections
Section 5. Each House shall be the Judge of the Elections
Section 6. The Senators and Representatives shall receive a Compensation
Section 7. All Bills for Raising Revenue shall originate in the House
Section 8. The Congress shall have Power to lay and collect Taxes
Section 9. The Migration or Importation of such Persons
Section 10. No State shall enter into any Treaty, Alliance
Article II
Section 1. The Executive Power shall be vested in a President
Section 2. The President shall be Commander in Chief of the Army
Section 3. He shall from time to time give to the Congress Information
Section 4. The President, Vice-President and all civil Officers
Article III
Section 1. The judicial Power of the United States shall be vested
Section 2. The judicial Power shall extend to all cases
Section 3. Treason against the United States shall consist
Article IV
Section 1. Full Faith and Credit shall be given in each State
Section 2. The Citizens of each State shall be entitled
Section 3. New States may be admitted by the Congress into this Union
Section 4. The United States shall guarantee to every State
Article V
Article VI
Article VII
Bill Of Rights
Book Two: Influence Of Democracy On Progress Of Opinion in The United States
De Tocqueville's Preface To The Second Part
The Americans live in a democratic state of society, which has naturally
suggested to them certain laws and a certain political character. This same
state of society has, moreover, engendered amongst them a multitude of feelings
and opinions which were unknown amongst the elder aristocratic communities of
Europe: it has destroyed or modified all the relations which before existed, and
established others of a novel kind. The—aspect of civil society has been no less
affected by these changes than that of the political world. The former subject
has been treated of in the work on the Democracy of America, which I published
five years ago; to examine the latter is the object of the present book; but
these two parts complete each other, and form one and the same work.
I must at once warn the reader against an error which would be extremely
prejudicial to me. When he finds that I attribute so many different consequences
to the principle of equality, he may thence infer that I consider that principle
to be the sole cause of all that takes place in the present age: but this would
be to impute to me a very narrow view. A multitude of opinions, feelings, and
propensities are now in existence, which owe their origin to circumstances
unconnected with or even contrary to the principle of equality. Thus if I were
to select the United States as an example, I could easily prove that the nature
of the country, the origin of its inhabitants, the religion of its founders,
their acquired knowledge, and their former habits, have exercised, and still
exercise, independently of democracy, a vast influence upon the thoughts and
feelings of that people. Different causes, but no less distinct from the
circumstance of the equality of conditions, might be traced in Europe, and would
explain a great portion of the occurrences taking place amongst us.
I acknowledge the existence of all these different causes, and their power, but
my subject does not lead me to treat of them. I have not undertaken to unfold
the reason of all our inclinations and all our notions: my only object is to
show in what respects the principle of equality has modified both the former and
the latter.
Some readers may perhaps be astonished that—firmly persuaded as I am that the
democratic revolution which we are witnessing is an irresistible fact against
which it would be neither desirable nor wise to struggle—I should often have had
occasion in this book to address language of such severity to those democratic
communities which this revolution has brought into being. My answer is simply,
that it is because I am not an adversary of democracy, that I have sought to
speak of democracy in all sincerity.
Men will not accept truth at the hands of their enemies, and truth is seldom
offered to them by their friends: for this reason I have spoken it. I was
persuaded that many would take upon themselves to announce the new blessings
which the principle of equality promises to mankind, but that few would dare to
point out from afar the dangers with which it threatens them. To those perils
therefore I have turned my chief attention, and believing that I had discovered
them clearly, I have not had the cowardice to leave them untold.
I trust that my readers will find in this Second Part that impartiality which
seems to have been remarked in the former work. Placed as I am in the midst of
the conflicting opinions between which we are divided, I have endeavored to
suppress within me for a time the favorable sympathies or the adverse emotions
with which each of them inspires me. If those who read this book can find a
single sentence intended to flatter any of the great parties which have agitated
my country, or any of those petty factions which now harass and weaken it, let
such readers raise their voices to accuse me.
The subject I have sought to embrace is immense, for it includes the greater
part of the feelings and opinions to which the new state of society has given
birth. Such a subject is doubtless above my strength, and in treating it I have
not succeeded in satisfying myself. But, if I have not been able to reach the
goal which I had in view, my readers will at least do me the justice to
acknowledge that I have conceived and followed up my undertaking in a spirit not
unworthy of success.
A. De T.
March, 1840
Section I: Influence of Democracy on the Action of Intellect in The United
States.
Chapter I: Philosophical Method Among the Americans
I think that in no country in the civilized world is less attention paid to
philosophy than in the United States. The Americans have no philosophical school
of their own; and they care but little for all the schools into which Europe is
divided, the very names of which are scarcely known to them. Nevertheless it is
easy to perceive that almost all the inhabitants of the United States conduct
their understanding in the same manner, and govern it by the same rules; that is
to say, that without ever having taken the trouble to define the rules of a
philosophical method, they are in possession of one, common to the whole people.
To evade the bondage of system and habit, of family maxims, class opinions, and,
in some degree, of national prejudices; to accept tradition only as a means of
information, and existing facts only as a lesson used in doing otherwise, and
doing better; to seek the reason of things for one's self, and in one's self
alone; to tend to results without being bound to means, and to aim at the
substance through the form;—such are the principal characteristics of what I
shall call the philosophical method of the Americans. But if I go further, and
if I seek amongst these characteristics that which predominates over and
includes almost all the rest, I discover that in most of the operations of the
mind, each American appeals to the individual exercise of his own understanding
alone. America is therefore one of the countries in the world where philosophy
is least studied, and where the precepts of Descartes are best applied. Nor is
this surprising. The Americans do not read the works of Descartes, because their
social condition deters them from speculative studies; but they follow his
maxims because this very social condition naturally disposes their understanding
to adopt them. In the midst of the continual movement which agitates a
democratic community, the tie which unites one generation to another is relaxed
or broken; every man readily loses the trace of the ideas of his forefathers or
takes no care about them. Nor can men living in this state of society derive
their belief from the opinions of the class to which they belong, for, so to
speak, there are no longer any classes, or those which still exist are composed
of such mobile elements, that their body can never exercise a real control over
its members. As to the influence which the intelligence of one man has on that
of another, it must necessarily be very limited in a country where the citizens,
placed on the footing of a general similitude, are all closely seen by each
other; and where, as no signs of incontestable greatness or superiority are
perceived in any one of them, they are constantly brought back to their own
reason as the most obvious and proximate source of truth. It is not only
confidence in this or that man which is then destroyed, but the taste for
trusting the ipse dixit of any man whatsoever. Everyone shuts himself up in his
own breast, and affects from that point to judge the world.
The practice which obtains amongst the Americans of fixing the standard of their
judgment in themselves alone, leads them to other habits of mind. As they
perceive that they succeed in resolving without assistance all the little
difficulties which their practical life presents, they readily conclude that
everything in the world may be explained, and that nothing in it transcends the
limits of the understanding. Thus they fall to denying what they cannot
comprehend; which leaves them but little faith for whatever is extraordinary,
and an almost insurmountable distaste for whatever is supernatural. As it is on
their own testimony that they are accustomed to rely, they like to discern the
object which engages their attention with extreme clearness; they therefore
strip off as much as possible all that covers it, they rid themselves of
whatever separates them from it, they remove whatever conceals it from sight, in
order to view it more closely and in the broad light of day. This disposition of
the mind soon leads them to contemn forms, which they regard as useless and
inconvenient veils placed between them and the truth.
The Americans then have not required to extract their philosophical method from
books; they have found it in themselves. The same thing may be remarked in what
has taken place in Europe. This same method has only been established and made
popular in Europe in proportion as the condition of society has become more
equal, and men have grown more like each other. Let us consider for a moment the
connection of the periods in which this change may be traced. In the sixteenth
century the Reformers subjected some of the dogmas of the ancient faith to the
scrutiny of private judgment; but they still withheld from it the judgment of
all the rest. In the seventeenth century, Bacon in the natural sciences, and
Descartes in the study of philosophy in the strict sense of the term, abolished
recognized formulas, destroyed the empire of tradition, and overthrew the
authority of the schools. The philosophers of the eighteenth century,
generalizing at length the same principle, undertook to submit to the private
judgment of each man all the objects of his belief.
Who does not perceive that Luther, Descartes, and Voltaire employed the same
method, and that they differed only in the greater or less use which they
professed should be made of it? Why did the Reformers confine themselves so
closely within the circle of religious ideas? Why did Descartes, choosing only
to apply his method to certain matters, though he had made it fit to be applied
to all, declare that men might judge for themselves in matters philosophical but
not in matters political? How happened it that in the eighteenth century those
general applications were all at once drawn from this same method, which
Descartes and his predecessors had either not perceived or had rejected? To
what, lastly, is the fact to be attributed, that at this period the method we
are speaking of suddenly emerged from the schools, to penetrate into society and
become the common standard of intelligence; and that, after it had become
popular among the French, it has been ostensibly adopted or secretly followed by
all the nations of Europe?
The philosophical method here designated may have been engendered in the
sixteenth century—it may have been more accurately defined and more extensively
applied in the seventeenth; but neither in the one nor in the other could it be
commonly adopted. Political laws, the condition of society, and the habits of
mind which are derived from these causes, were as yet opposed to it. It was
discovered at a time when men were beginning to equalize and assimilate their
conditions. It could only be generally followed in ages when those conditions
had at length become nearly equal, and men nearly alike.
The philosophical method of the eighteenth century is then not only French, but
it is democratic; and this explains why it was so readily admitted throughout
Europe, where it has contributed so powerfully to change the face of society. It
is not because the French have changed their former opinions, and altered their
former manners, that they have convulsed the world; but because they were the
first to generalize and bring to light a philosophical method, by the assistance
of which it became easy to attack all that was old, and to open a path to all
that was new.
If it be asked why, at the present day, this same method is more rigorously
followed and more frequently applied by the French than by the Americans,
although the principle of equality be no less complete, and of more ancient
date, amongst the latter people, the fact may be attributed to two
circumstances, which it is essential to have clearly understood in the first
instance. It must never be forgotten that religion gave birth to Anglo-American
society. In the United States religion is therefore commingled with all the
habits of the nation and all the feelings of patriotism; whence it derives a
peculiar force. To this powerful reason another of no less intensity may be
added: in American religion has, as it were, laid down its own limits. Religious
institutions have remained wholly distinct from political institutions, so that
former laws have been easily changed whilst former belief has remained unshaken.
Christianity has therefore retained a strong hold on the public mind in America;
and, I would more particularly remark, that its sway is not only that of a
philosophical doctrine which has been adopted upon inquiry, but of a religion
which is believed without discussion. In the United States Christian sects are
infinitely diversified and perpetually modified; but Christianity itself is a
fact so irresistibly established, that no one undertakes either to attack or to
defend it. The Americans, having admitted the principal doctrines of the
Christian religion without inquiry, are obliged to accept in like manner a great
number of moral truths originating in it and connected with it. Hence the
activity of individual analysis is restrained within narrow limits, and many of
the most important of human opinions are removed from the range of its
influence.
The second circumstance to which I have alluded is the following: the social
condition and the constitution of the Americans are democratic, but they have
not had a democratic revolution. They arrived upon the soil they occupy in
nearly the condition in which we see them at the present day; and this is of
very considerable importance.
There are no revolutions which do not shake existing belief, enervate authority,
and throw doubts over commonly received ideas. The effect of all revolutions is
therefore, more or less, to surrender men to their own guidance, and to open to
the mind of every man a void and almost unlimited range of speculation. When
equality of conditions succeeds a protracted conflict between the different
classes of which the elder society was composed, envy, hatred, and
uncharitableness, pride, and exaggerated self-confidence are apt to seize upon
the human heart, and plant their sway there for a time. This, independently of
equality itself, tends powerfully to divide men—to lead them to mistrust the
judgment of others, and to seek the light of truth nowhere but in their own
understandings. Everyone then attempts to be his own sufficient guide, and makes
it his boast to form his own opinions on all subjects. Men are no longer bound
together by ideas, but by interests; and it would seem as if human opinions were
reduced to a sort of intellectual dust, scattered on every side, unable to
collect, unable to cohere.
Thus, that independence of mind which equality supposes to exist, is never so
great, nor ever appears so excessive, as at the time when equality is beginning
to establish itself, and in the course of that painful labor by which it is
established. That sort of intellectual freedom which equality may give ought,
therefore, to be very carefully distinguished from the anarchy which revolution
brings. Each of these two things must be severally considered, in order not to
conceive exaggerated hopes or fears of the future.
I believe that the men who will live under the new forms of society will make
frequent use of their private judgment; but I am far from thinking that they
will often abuse it. This is attributable to a cause of more general application
to all democratic countries, and which, in the long run, must needs restrain in
them the independence of individual speculation within fixed, and sometimes
narrow, limits. I shall proceed to point out this cause in the next chapter.
Chapter II: Of The Principal Source Of Belief Among Democratic Nations
At different periods dogmatical belief is more or less abundant. It arises in
different ways, and it may change its object or its form; but under no
circumstances will dogmatical belief cease to exist, or, in other words, men
will never cease to entertain some implicit opinions without trying them by
actual discussion. If everyone undertook to form his own opinions and to seek
for truth by isolated paths struck out by himself alone, it is not to be
supposed that any considerable number of men would ever unite in any common
belief. But obviously without such common belief no society can prosper—say
rather no society can subsist; for without ideas held in common, there is no
common action, and without common action, there may still be men, but there is
no social body. In order that society should exist, and, a fortiori, that a
society should prosper, it is required that all the minds of the citizens should
be rallied and held together by certain predominant ideas; and this cannot be
the case, unless each of them sometimes draws his opinions from the common
source, and consents to accept certain matters of belief at the hands of the
community.
If I now consider man in his isolated capacity, I find that dogmatical belief is
not less indispensable to him in order to live alone, than it is to enable him
to co-operate with his fellow-creatures. If man were forced to demonstrate to
himself all the truths of which he makes daily use, his task would never end. He
would exhaust his strength in preparatory exercises, without advancing beyond
them. As, from the shortness of his life, he has not the time, nor, from the
limits of his intelligence, the capacity, to accomplish this, he is reduced to
take upon trust a number of facts and opinions which he has not had either the
time or the power to verify himself, but which men of greater ability have
sought out, or which the world adopts. On this groundwork he raises for himself
the structure of his own thoughts; nor is he led to proceed in this manner by
choice so much as he is constrained by the inflexible law of his condition.
There is no philosopher of such great parts in the world, but that he believes a
million of things on the faith of other people, and supposes a great many more
truths than he demonstrates. This is not only necessary but desirable. A man who
should undertake to inquire into everything for himself, could devote to each
thing but little time and attention. His task would keep his mind in perpetual
unrest, which would prevent him from penetrating to the depth of any truth, or
of grappling his mind indissolubly to any conviction. His intellect would be at
once independent and powerless. He must therefore make his choice from amongst
the various objects of human belief, and he must adopt many opinions without
discussion, in order to search the better into that smaller number which he sets
apart for investigation. It is true that whoever receives an opinion on the word
of another, does so far enslave his mind; but it is a salutary servitude which
allows him to make a good use of freedom.
A principle of authority must then always occur, under all circumstances, in
some part or other of the moral and intellectual world. Its place is variable,
but a place it necessarily has. The independence of individual minds may be
greater, or it may be less: unbounded it cannot be. Thus the question is, not to
know whether any intellectual authority exists in the ages of democracy, but
simply where it resides and by what standard it is to be measured.
I have shown in the preceding chapter how the equality of conditions leads men
to entertain a sort of instinctive incredulity of the supernatural, and a very
lofty and often exaggerated opinion of the human understanding. The men who live
at a period of social equality are not therefore easily led to place that
intellectual authority to which they bow either beyond or above humanity. They
commonly seek for the sources of truth in themselves, or in those who are like
themselves. This would be enough to prove that at such periods no new religion
could be established, and that all schemes for such a purpose would be not only
impious but absurd and irrational. It may be foreseen that a democratic people
will not easily give credence to divine missions; that they will turn modern
prophets to a ready jest; and they that will seek to discover the chief arbiter
of their belief within, and not beyond, the limits of their kind.
When the ranks of society are unequal, and men unlike each other in condition,
there are some individuals invested with all the power of superior intelligence,
learning, and enlightenment, whilst the multitude is sunk in ignorance and
prejudice. Men living at these aristocratic periods are therefore naturally
induced to shape their opinions by the superior standard of a person or a class
of persons, whilst they are averse to recognize the infallibility of the mass of
the people.
The contrary takes place in ages of equality. The nearer the citizens are drawn
to the common level of an equal and similar condition, the less prone does each
man become to place implicit faith in a certain man or a certain class of men.
But his readiness to believe the multitude increases, and opinion is more than
ever mistress of the world. Not only is common opinion the only guide which
private judgment retains amongst a democratic people, but amongst such a people
it possesses a power infinitely beyond what it has elsewhere. At periods of
equality men have no faith in one another, by reason of their common
resemblance; but this very resemblance gives them almost unbounded confidence in
the judgment of the public; for it would not seem probable, as they are all
endowed with equal means of judging, but that the greater truth should go with
the greater number.
When the inhabitant of a democratic country compares himself individually with
all those about him, he feels with pride that he is the equal of any one of
them; but when he comes to survey the totality of his fellows, and to place
himself in contrast to so huge a body, he is instantly overwhelmed by the sense
of his own insignificance and weakness. The same equality which renders him
independent of each of his fellow-citizens taken severally, exposes him alone
and unprotected to the influence of the greater number. The public has therefore
among a democratic people a singular power, of which aristocratic nations could
never so much as conceive an idea; for it does not persuade to certain opinions,
but it enforces them, and infuses them into the faculties by a sort of enormous
pressure of the minds of all upon the reason of each.
In the United States the majority undertakes to supply a multitude of ready-made
opinions for the use of individuals, who are thus relieved from the necessity of
forming opinions of their own. Everybody there adopts great numbers of theories,
on philosophy, morals, and politics, without inquiry, upon public trust; and if
we look to it very narrowly, it will be perceived that religion herself holds
her sway there, much less as a doctrine of revelation than as a commonly
received opinion. The fact that the political laws of the Americans are such
that the majority rules the community with sovereign sway, materially increases
the power which that majority naturally exercises over the mind. For nothing is
more customary in man than to recognize superior wisdom in the person of his
oppressor. This political omnipotence of the majority in the United States
doubtless augments the influence which public opinion would obtain without it
over the mind of each member of the community; but the foundations of that
influence do not rest upon it. They must be sought for in the principle of
equality itself, not in the more or less popular institutions which men living
under that condition may give themselves. The intellectual dominion of the
greater number would probably be less absolute amongst a democratic people
governed by a king than in the sphere of a pure democracy, but it will always be
extremely absolute; and by whatever political laws men are governed in the ages
of equality, it may be foreseen that faith in public opinion will become a
species of religion there, and the majority its ministering prophet.
Thus intellectual authority will be different, but it will not be diminished;
and far from thinking that it will disappear, I augur that it may readily
acquire too much preponderance, and confine the action of private judgment
within narrower limits than are suited either to the greatness or the happiness
of the human race. In the principle of equality I very clearly discern two
tendencies; the one leading the mind of every man to untried thoughts, the other
inclined to prohibit him from thinking at all. And I perceive how, under the
dominion of certain laws, democracy would extinguish that liberty of the mind to
which a democratic social condition is favorable; so that, after having broken
all the bondage once imposed on it by ranks or by men, the human mind would be
closely fettered to the general will of the greatest number.
If the absolute power of the majority were to be substituted by democratic
nations, for all the different powers which checked or retarded overmuch the
energy of individual minds, the evil would only have changed its symptoms. Men
would not have found the means of independent life; they would simply have
invented (no easy task) a new dress for servitude. There is—and I cannot repeat
it too often—there is in this matter for profound reflection for those who look
on freedom as a holy thing, and who hate not only the despot, but despotism. For
myself, when I feel the hand of power lie heavy on my brow, I care but little to
know who oppresses me; and I am not the more disposed to pass beneath the yoke,
because it is held out to me by the arms of a million of men.
Chapter III: Why The Americans Display More Readiness And More Taste For
General Ideas Than Their Forefathers, The English.
The Deity does not regard the human race collectively. He surveys at one glance
and severally all the beings of whom mankind is composed, and he discerns in
each man the resemblances which assimilate him to all his fellows, and the
differences which distinguish him from them. God, therefore, stands in no need
of general ideas; that is to say, he is never sensible of the necessity of
collecting a considerable number of analogous objects under the same form for
greater convenience in thinking. Such is, however, not the case with man. If the
human mind were to attempt to examine and pass a judgment on all the individual
cases before it, the immensity of detail would soon lead it astray and bewilder
its discernment: in this strait, man has recourse to an imperfect but necessary
expedient, which at once assists and demonstrates his weakness. Having
superficially considered a certain number of objects, and remarked their
resemblance, he assigns to them a common name, sets them apart, and proceeds
onwards.
General ideas are no proof of the strength, but rather of the insufficiency of
the human intellect; for there are in nature no beings exactly alike, no things
precisely identical, nor any rules indiscriminately and alike applicable to
several objects at once. The chief merit of general ideas is, that they enable
the human mind to pass a rapid judgment on a great many objects at once; but, on
the other hand, the notions they convey are never otherwise than incomplete, and
they always cause the mind to lose as much in accuracy as it gains in
comprehensiveness. As social bodies advance in civilization, they acquire the
knowledge of new facts, and they daily lay hold almost unconsciously of some
particular truths. The more truths of this kind a man apprehends, the more
general ideas is he naturally led to conceive. A multitude of particular facts
cannot be seen separately, without at last discovering the common tie which
connects them. Several individuals lead to the perception of the species;
several species to that of the genus. Hence the habit and the taste for general
ideas will always be greatest amongst a people of ancient cultivation and
extensive knowledge.
But there are other reasons which impel men to generalize their ideas, or which
restrain them from it.
The Americans are much more addicted to the use of general ideas than the
English, and entertain a much greater relish for them: this appears very
singular at first sight, when it is remembered that the two nations have the
same origin, that they lived for centuries under the same laws, and that they
still incessantly interchange their opinions and their manners. This contrast
becomes much more striking still, if we fix our eyes on our own part of the
world, and compare together the two most enlightened nations which inhabit it.
It would seem as if the mind of the English could only tear itself reluctantly
and painfully away from the observation of particular facts, to rise from them
to their causes; and that it only generalizes in spite of itself. Amongst the
French, on the contrary, the taste for general ideas would seem to have grown to
so ardent a passion, that it must be satisfied on every occasion. I am informed,
every morning when I wake, that some general and eternal law has just been
discovered, which I never heard mentioned before. There is not a mediocre
scribbler who does not try his hand at discovering truths applicable to a great
kingdom, and who is very ill pleased with himself if he does not succeed in
compressing the human race into the compass of an article. So great a
dissimilarity between two very enlightened nations surprises me. If I again turn
my attention to England, and observe the events which have occurred there in the
last half-century, I think I may affirm that a taste for general ideas increases
in that country in proportion as its ancient constitution is weakened.
The state of civilization is therefore insufficient by itself to explain what
suggests to the human mind the love of general ideas, or diverts it from them.
When the conditions of men are very unequal, and inequality itself is the
permanent state of society, individual men gradually become so dissimilar that
each class assumes the aspect of a distinct race: only one of these classes is
ever in view at the same instant; and losing sight of that general tie which
binds them all within the vast bosom of mankind, the observation invariably
rests not on man, but on certain men. Those who live in this aristocratic state
of society never, therefore, conceive very general ideas respecting themselves,
and that is enough to imbue them with an habitual distrust of such ideas, and an
instinctive aversion of them. He, on the contrary, who inhabits a democratic
country, sees around him, one very hand, men differing but little from each
other; he cannot turn his mind to any one portion of mankind, without expanding
and dilating his thought till it embrace the whole. All the truths which are
applicable to himself, appear to him equally and similarly applicable to each of
his fellow-citizens and fellow-men. Having contracted the habit of generalizing
his ideas in the study which engages him most, and interests him more than
others, he transfers the same habit to all his pursuits; and thus it is that the
craving to discover general laws in everything, to include a great number of
objects under the same formula, and to explain a mass of facts by a single
cause, becomes an ardent, and sometimes an undiscerning, passion in the human
mind.
Nothing shows the truth of this proposition more clearly than the opinions of
the ancients respecting their slaves. The most profound and capacious minds of
Rome and Greece were never able to reach the idea, at once so general and so
simple, of the common likeness of men, and of the common birthright of each to
freedom: they strove to prove that slavery was in the order of nature, and that
it would always exist. Nay, more, everything shows that those of the ancients
who had passed from the servile to the free condition, many of whom have left us
excellent writings, did themselves regard servitude in no other light.
All the great writers of antiquity belonged to the aristocracy of masters, or at
least they saw that aristocracy established and uncontested before their eyes.
Their mind, after it had expanded itself in several directions, was barred from
further progress in this one; and the advent of Jesus Christ upon earth was
required to teach that all the members of the human race are by nature equal and
alike.
In the ages of equality all men are independent of each other, isolated and
weak. The movements of the multitude are not permanently guided by the will of
any individuals; at such times humanity seems always to advance of itself. In
order, therefore, to explain what is passing in the world, man is driven to seek
for some great causes, which, acting in the same manner on all our
fellow-creatures, thus impel them all involuntarily to pursue the same track.
This again naturally leads the human mind to conceive general ideas, and
superinduces a taste for them.
I have already shown in what way the equality of conditions leads every man to
investigate truths for himself. It may readily be perceived that a method of
this kind must insensibly beget a tendency to general ideas in the human mind.
When I repudiate the traditions of rank, profession, and birth; when I escape
from the authority of example, to seek out, by the single effort of my reason,
the path to be followed, I am inclined to derive the motives of my opinions from
human nature itself; which leads me necessarily, and almost unconsciously, to
adopt a great number of very general notions.
All that I have here said explains the reasons for which the English display
much less readiness and taste or the generalization of ideas than their American
progeny, and still less again than their French neighbors; and likewise the
reason for which the English of the present day display more of these qualities
than their forefathers did. The English have long been a very enlightened and a
very aristocratic nation; their enlightened condition urged them constantly to
generalize, and their aristocratic habits confined them to particularize. Hence
arose that philosophy, at once bold and timid, broad and narrow, which has
hitherto prevailed in England, and which still obstructs and stagnates in so
many minds in that country.
Independently of the causes I have pointed out in what goes before, others may
be discerned less apparent, but no less efficacious, which engender amongst
almost every democratic people a taste, and frequently a passion, for general
ideas. An accurate distinction must be taken between ideas of this kind. Some
are the result of slow, minute, and conscientious labor of the mind, and these
extend the sphere of human knowledge; others spring up at once from the first
rapid exercise of the wits, and beget none but very superficial and very
uncertain notions. Men who live in ages of equality have a great deal of
curiosity and very little leisure; their life is so practical, so confused, so
excited, so active, that but little time remains to them for thought. Such men
are prone to general ideas because they spare them the trouble of studying
particulars; they contain, if I may so speak, a great deal in a little compass,
and give, in a little time, a great return. If then, upon a brief and
inattentive investigation, a common relation is thought to be detected between
certain obtects, inquiry is not pushed any further; and without examining in
detail how far these different objects differ or agree, they are hastily
arranged under one formulary, in order to pass to another subject.
One of the distinguishing characteristics of a democratic period is the taste
all men have at such ties for easy success and present enjoyment. This occurs in
the pursuits of the intellect as well as in all others. Most of those who live
at a time of equality are full of an ambition at once aspiring and relaxed: they
would fain succeed brilliantly and at once, but they would be dispensed from
great efforts to obtain success. These conflicting tendencies lead straight to
the research of general ideas, by aid of which they flatter themselves that they
can figure very importantly at a small expense, and draw the attention of the
public with very little trouble. And I know not whether they be wrong in
thinking thus. For their readers are as much averse to investigating anything to
the bottom as they can be themselves; and what is generally sought in the
productions of the mind is easy pleasure and information without labor.
If aristocratic nations do not make sufficient use of general ideas, and
frequently treat them with inconsiderate disdain, it is true, on the other hand,
that a democratic people is ever ready to carry ideas of this kind to excess,
and to espouse the with injudicious warmth.
Chapter IV: Why The Americans Have Never Been So Eager As The French For
General Ideas In Political Matters
I observed in the last chapter, that the Americans show a less decided taste for
general ideas than the French; this is more especially true in political
matters. Although the Americans infuse into their legislation infinitely more
general ideas than the English, and although they pay much more attention than
the latter people to the adjustment of the practice of affairs to theory, no
political bodies in the United States have ever shown so warm an attachment to
general ideas as the Constituent Assembly and the Convention in France. At no
time has the American people laid hold on ideas of this kind with the passionate
energy of the French people in the eighteenth century, or displayed the same
blind confidence in the value and absolute truth of any theory. This difference
between the Americans and the French originates in several causes, but
principally in the following one. The Americans form a democratic people, which
has always itself directed public affairs. The French are a democratic people,
who, for a long time, could only speculate on the best manner of conducting
them. The social condition of France led that people to conceive very general
ideas on the subject of government, whilst its political constitution prevented
it from correcting those ideas by experiment, and from gradually detecting their
insufficiency; whereas in America the two things constantly balance and correct
each other.
It may seem, at first sight, that this is very much opposed to what I have said
before, that democratic nations derive their love of theory from the excitement
of their active life. A more attentive examination will show that there is
nothing contradictory in the proposition. Men living in democratic countries
eagerly lay hold of general ideas because they have but little leisure, and
because these ideas spare them the trouble of studying particulars. This is
true; but it is only to be understood to apply to those matters which are not
the necessary and habitual subjects of their thoughts. Mercantile men will take
up very eagerly, and without any very close scrutiny, all the general ideas on
philosophy, politics, science, or the arts, which may be presented to them; but
for such as relate to commerce, they will not receive them without inquiry, or
adopt them without reserve. The same thing applies to statesmen with regard to
general ideas in politics. If, then, there be a subject upon which a democratic
people is peculiarly liable to abandon itself, blindly and extravagantly, to
general ideas, the best corrective that can be used will be to make that subject
a part of the daily practical occupation of that people. The people will then be
compelled to enter upon its details, and the details will teach them the weak
points of the theory. This remedy may frequently be a painful one, but its
effect is certain.
Thus it happens, that the democratic institutions which compel every citizen to
take a practical part in the government, moderate that excessive taste for
general theories in politics which the principle of equality suggests.
Chapter V: Of The Manner In Which Religion In The United States Avails Itself
Of Democratic Tendencies
I have laid it down in a preceding chapter that men cannot do without dogmatical
belief; and even that it is very much to be desired that such belief should
exist amongst them. I now add, that of all the kinds of dogmatical belief the
most desirable appears to me to be dogmatical belief in matters of religion; and
this is a very clear inference, even from no higher consideration than the
interests of this world. There is hardly any human action, however particular a
character be assigned to it, which does not originate in some very general idea
men have conceived of the Deity, of his relation to mankind, of the nature of
their own souls, and of their duties to their fellow-creatures. Nor can anything
prevent these ideas from being the common spring from which everything else
emanates. Men are therefore immeasurably interested in acquiring fixed ideas of
God, of the soul, and of their common duties to their Creator and to their
fellow-men; for doubt on these first principles would abandon all their actions
to the impulse of chance, and would condemn them to live, to a certain extent,
powerless and undisciplined.
This is then the subject on which it is most important for each of us to
entertain fixed ideas; and unhappily it is also the subject on which it is most
difficult for each of us, left to himself, to settle his opinions by the sole
force of his reason. None but minds singularly free from the ordinary anxieties
of life—minds at once penetrating, subtle, and trained by thinking—can even with
the assistance of much time and care, sound the depth of these most necessary
truths. And, indeed, we see that these philosophers are themselves almost always
enshrouded in uncertainties; that at every step the natural light which
illuminates their path grows dimmer and less secure; and that, in spite of all
their efforts, they have as yet only discovered a small number of conflicting
notions, on which the mind of man has been tossed about for thousands of years,
without either laying a firmer grasp on truth, or finding novelty even in its
errors. Studies of this nature are far above the average capacity of men; and
even if the majority of mankind were capable of such pursuits, it is evident
that leisure to cultivate them would still be wanting. Fixed ideas of God and
human nature are indispensable to the daily practice of men's lives; but the
practice of their lives prevents them from acquiring such ideas.
The difficulty appears to me to be without a parallel. Amongst the sciences
there are some which are useful to the mass of mankind, and which are within its
reach; others can only be approached by the few, and are not cultivated by the
many, who require nothing beyond their more remote applications: but the daily
practice of the science I speak of is indispensable to all, although the study
of it is inaccessible to the far greater number.
General ideas respecting God and human nature are therefore the ideas above all
others which it is most suitable to withdraw from the habitual action of private
judgment, and in which there is most to gain and least to lose by recognizing a
principle of authority. The first object and one of the principal advantages of
religions, is to furnish to each of these fundamental questions a solution which
is at once clear, precise, intelligible to the mass of mankind, and lasting.
There are religions which are very false and very absurd; but it may be
affirmed, that any religion which remains within the circle I have just traced,
without aspiring to go beyond it (as many religions have attempted to do, for
the purpose of enclosing on every side the free progress of the human mind),
imposes a salutary restraint on the intellect; and it must be admitted that, if
it do not save men in another world, such religion is at least very conducive to
their happiness and their greatness in this. This is more especially true of men
living in free countries. When the religion of a people is destroyed, doubt gets
hold of the highest portions of the intellect, and half paralyzes all the rest
of its powers. Every man accustoms himself to entertain none but confused and
changing notions on the subjects most interesting to his fellow-creatures and
himself. His opinions are ill-defended and easily abandoned: and, despairing of
ever resolving by himself the hardest problems of the destiny of man, he ignobly
submits to think no more about them. Such a condition cannot but enervate the
soul, relax the springs of the will, and prepare a people for servitude. Nor
does it only happen, in such a case, that they allow their freedom to be wrested
from them; they frequently themselves surrender it. When there is no longer any
principle of authority in religion any more than in politics, men are speedily
frightened at the aspect of this unbounded independence. The constant agitation
of all surrounding things alarms and exhausts them. As everything is at sea in
the sphere of the intellect, they determine at least that the mechanism of
society should be firm and fixed; and as they cannot resume their ancient
belief, they assume a master.
For my own part, I doubt whether man can ever support at the same time complete
religious independence and entire public freedom. And I am inclined to think,
that if faith be wanting in him, he must serve; and if he be free, he must
believe.
Perhaps, however, this great utility of religions is still more obvious amongst
nations where equality of conditions prevails than amongst others. It must be
acknowledged that equality, which brings great benefits into the world,
nevertheless suggests to men (as will be shown hereafter) some very dangerous
propensities. It tends to isolate them from each other, to concentrate every
man's attention upon himself; and it lays open the soul to an inordinate love of
material gratification. The greatest advantage of religion is to inspire
diametrically contrary principles. There is no religion which does not place the
object of man's desires above and beyond the treasures of earth, and which does
not naturally raise his soul to regions far above those of the senses. Nor is
there any which does not impose on man some sort of duties to his kind, and thus
draws him at times from the contemplation of himself. This occurs in religions
the most false and dangerous. Religious nations are therefore naturally strong
on the very point on which democratic nations are weak; which shows of what
importance it is for men to preserve their religion as their conditions become
more equal.
I have neither the right nor the intention of examining the supernatural means
which God employs to infuse religious belief into the heart of man. I am at this
moment considering religions in a purely human point of view: my object is to
inquire by what means they may most easily retain their sway in the democratic
ages upon which we are entering. It has been shown that, at times of general
cultivation and equality, the human mind does not consent to adopt dogmatical
opinions without reluctance, and feels their necessity acutely in spiritual
matters only. This proves, in the first place, that at such times religions
ought, more cautiously than at any other, to confine themselves within their own
precincts; for in seeking to extend their power beyond religious matters, they
incur a risk of not being believed at all. The circle within which they seek to
bound the human intellect ought therefore to be carefully traced, and beyond its
verge the mind should be left in entire freedom to its own guidance. Mahommed
professed to derive from Heaven, and he has inserted in the Koran, not only a
body of religious doctrines, but political maxims, civil and criminal laws, and
theories of science. The gospel, on the contrary, only speaks of the general
relations of men to God and to each other—beyond which it inculcates and imposes
no point of faith. This alone, besides a thousand other reasons, would suffice
to prove that the former of these religions will never long predominate in a
cultivated and democratic age, whilst the latter is destined to retain its sway
at these as at all other periods.
But in continuation of this branch of the subject, I find that in order for
religions to maintain their authority, humanly speaking, in democratic ages,
they must not only confine themselves strictly within the circle of spiritual
matters: their power also depends very much on the nature of the belief they
inculcate, on the external forms they assume, and on the obligations they
impose. The preceding observation, that equality leads men to very general and
very extensive notions, is principally to be understood as applied to the
question of religion. Men living in a similar and equal condition in the world
readily conceive the idea of the one God, governing every man by the same laws,
and granting to every man future happiness on the same conditions. The idea of
the unity of mankind constantly leads them back to the idea of the unity of the
Creator; whilst, on the contrary, in a state of society where men are broken up
into very unequal ranks, they are apt to devise as many deities as there are
nations, castes, classes, or families, and to trace a thousand private roads to
heaven.
It cannot be denied that Christianity itself has felt, to a certain extent, the
influence which social and political conditions exercise on religious opinions.
At the epoch at which the Christian religion appeared upon earth, Providence, by
whom the world was doubtless prepared for its coming, had gathered a large
portion of the human race, like an immense flock, under the sceptre of the
Caesars. The men of whom this multitude was composed were distinguished by
numerous differences; but they had thus much in common, that they all obeyed the
same laws, and that every subject was so weak and insignificant in relation to
the imperial potentate, that all appeared equal when their condition was
contrasted with his. This novel and peculiar state of mankind necessarily
predisposed men to listen to the general truths which Christianity teaches, and
may serve to explain the facility and rapidity with which they then penetrated
into the human mind. The counterpart of this state of things was exhibited after
the destruction of the empire. The Roman world being then as it were shattered
into a thousand fragments, each nation resumed its pristine individuality. An
infinite scale of ranks very soon grew up in the bosom of these nations; the
different races were more sharply defined, and each nation was divided by castes
into several peoples. In the midst of this common effort, which seemed to be
urging human society to the greatest conceivable amount of voluntary
subdivision, Christianity did not lose sight of the leading general ideas which
it had brought into the world. But it appeared, nevertheless, to lend itself, as
much as was possible, to those new tendencies to which the fractional
distribution of mankind had given birth. Men continued to worship an only God,
the Creator and Preserver of all things; but every people, every city, and, so
to speak, every man, thought to obtain some distinct privilege, and win the
favor of an especial patron at the foot of the Throne of Grace. Unable to
subdivide the Deity, they multiplied and improperly enhanced the importance of
the divine agents. The homage due to saints and angels became an almost
idolatrous worship amongst the majority of the Christian world; and
apprehensions might be entertained for a moment lest the religion of Christ
should retrograde towards the superstitions which it had subdued. It seems
evident, that the more the barriers are removed which separate nation from
nation amongst mankind, and citizen from citizen amongst a people, the stronger
is the bent of the human mind, as if by its own impulse, towards the idea of an
only and all-powerful Being, dispensing equal laws in the same manner to every
man. In democratic ages, then, it is more particularly important not to allow
the homage paid to secondary agents to be confounded with the worship due to the
Creator alone.
Another truth is no less clear—that religions ought to assume fewer external
observances in democratic periods than at any others. In speaking of
philosophical method among the Americans, I have shown that nothing is more
repugnant to the human mind in an age of equality than the idea of subjection to
forms. Men living at such times are impatient of figures; to their eyes symbols
appear to be the puerile artifice which is used to conceal or to set off truths,
which should more naturally be bared to the light of open day: they are unmoved
by ceremonial observances, and they are predisposed to attach a secondary
importance to the details of public worship. Those whose care it is to regulate
the external forms of religion in a democratic age should pay a close attention
to these natural propensities of the human mind, in order not unnecessarily to
run counter to them. I firmly believe in the necessity of forms, which fix the
human mind in the contemplation of abstract truths, and stimulate its ardor in
the pursuit of them, whilst they invigorate its powers of retaining them
steadfastly. Nor do I suppose that it is possible to maintain a religion without
external observances; but, on the other hand, I am persuaded that, in the ages
upon which we are entering, it would be peculiarly dangerous to multiply them
beyond measure; and that they ought rather to be limited to as much as is
absolutely necessary to perpetuate the doctrine itself, which is the substance
of religions of which the ritual is only the form. *a A religion which should
become more minute, more peremptory, and more surcharged with small observances
at a time in which men are becoming more equal, would soon find itself reduced
to a band of fanatical zealots in the midst of an infidel people.
a
[ In all religions there are some ceremonies which are inherent in the substance
of the faith itself, and in these nothing should, on any account, be changed.
This is especially the case with Roman Catholicism, in which the doctrine and
the form are frequently so closely united as to form one point of belief.]
I anticipate the objection, that as all religions have general and eternal
truths for their object, they cannot thus shape themselves to the shifting
spirit of every age without forfeiting their claim to certainty in the eyes of
mankind. To this I reply again, that the principal opinions which constitute
belief, and which theologians call articles of faith, must be very carefully
distinguished from the accessories connected with them. Religions are obliged to
hold fast to the former, whatever be the peculiar spirit of the age; but they
should take good care not to bind themselves in the same manner to the latter at
a time when everything is in transition, and when the mind, accustomed to the
moving pageant of human affairs, reluctantly endures the attempt to fix it to
any given point. The fixity of external and secondary things can only afford a
chance of duration when civil society is itself fixed; under any other
circumstances I hold it to be perilous.
We shall have occasion to see that, of all the passions which originate in, or
are fostered by, equality, there is one which it renders peculiarly intense, and
which it infuses at the same time into the heart of every man: I mean the love
of well-being. The taste for well-being is the prominent and indelible feature
of democratic ages. It may be believed that a religion which should undertake to
destroy so deep seated a passion, would meet its own destruction thence in the
end; and if it attempted to wean men entirely from the contemplation of the good
things of this world, in order to devote their faculties exclusively to the
thought of another, it may be foreseen that the soul would at length escape from
its grasp, to plunge into the exclusive enjoyment of present and material
pleasures. The chief concern of religions is to purify, to regulate, and to
restrain the excessive and exclusive taste for well-being which men feel at
periods of equality; but they would err in attempting to control it completely
or to eradicate it. They will not succeed in curing men of the love of riches:
but they may still persuade men to enrich themselves by none but honest means.
This brings me to a final consideration, which comprises, as it were, all the
others. The more the conditions of men are equalized and assimilated to each
other, the more important is it for religions, whilst they carefully abstain
from the daily turmoil of secular affairs, not needlessly to run counter to the
ideas which generally prevail, and the permanent interests which exist in the
mass of the people. For as public opinion grows to be more and more evidently
the first and most irresistible of existing powers, the religious principle has
no external support strong enough to enable it long to resist its attacks. This
is not less true of a democratic people, ruled by a despot, than in a republic.
In ages of equality, kings may often command obedience, but the majority always
commands belief: to the majority, therefore, deference is to be paid in
whatsoever is not contrary to the faith.
I showed in my former volumes how the American clergy stand aloof from secular
affairs. This is the most obvious, but it is not the only, example of their
self-restraint. In America religion is a distinct sphere, in which the priest is
sovereign, but out of which he takes care never to go. Within its limits he is
the master of the mind; beyond them, he leaves men to themselves, and surrenders
them to the independence and instability which belong to their nature and their
age. I have seen no country in which Christianity is clothed with fewer forms,
figures, and observances than in the United States; or where it presents more
distinct, more simple, or more general notions to the mind. Although the
Christians of America are divided into a multitude of sects, they all look upon
their religion in the same light. This applies to Roman Catholicism as well as
to the other forms of belief. There are no Romish priests who show less taste
for the minute individual observances for extraordinary or peculiar means of
salvation, or who cling more to the spirit, and less to the letter of the law,
than the Roman Catholic priests of the United States. Nowhere is that doctrine
of the Church, which prohibits the worship reserved to God alone from being
offered to the saints, more clearly inculcated or more generally followed. Yet
the Roman Catholics of America are very submissive and very sincere.
Another remark is applicable to the clergy of every communion. The American
ministers of the gospel do not attempt to draw or to fix all the thoughts of man
upon the life to come; they are willing to surrender a portion of his heart to
the cares of the present; seeming to consider the goods of this world as
important, although as secondary, objects. If they take no part themselves in
productive labor, they are at least interested in its progression, and ready to
applaud its results; and whilst they never cease to point to the other world as
the great object of the hopes and fears of the believer, they do not forbid him
honestly to court prosperity in this. Far from attempting to show that these
things are distinct and contrary to one another, they study rather to find out
on what point they are most nearly and closely connected.
All the American clergy know and respect the intellectual supremacy exercised by
the majority; they never sustain any but necessary conflicts with it. They take
no share in the altercations of parties, but they readily adopt the general
opinions of their country and their age; and they allow themselves to be borne
away without opposition in the current of feeling and opinion by which
everything around them is carried along. They endeavor to amend their
contemporaries, but they do not quit fellowship with them. Public opinion is
therefore never hostile to them; it rather supports and protects them; and their
belief owes its authority at the same time to the strength which is its own, and
to that which they borrow from the opinions of the majority. Thus it is that, by
respecting all democratic tendencies not absolutely contrary to herself, and by
making use of several of them for her own purposes, religion sustains an
advantageous struggle with that spirit of individual independence which is her
most dangerous antagonist.
Chapter VI: Of The Progress Of Roman Catholicism In The United States
America is the most democratic country in the world, and it is at the same time
(according to reports worthy of belief) the country in which the Roman Catholic
religion makes most progress. At first sight this is surprising. Two things must
here be accurately distinguished: equality inclines men to wish to form their
own opinions; but, on the other hand, it imbues them with the taste and the idea
of unity, simplicity, and impartiality in the power which governs society. Men
living in democratic ages are therefore very prone to shake off all religious
authority; but if they consent to subject themselves to any authority of this
kind, they choose at least that it should be single and uniform. Religious
powers not radiating from a common centre are naturally repugnant to their
minds; and they almost as readily conceive that there should be no religion, as
that there should be several. At the present time, more than in any preceding
one, Roman Catholics are seen to lapse into infidelity, and Protestants to be
converted to Roman Catholicism. If the Roman Catholic faith be considered within
the pale of the church, it would seem to be losing ground; without that pale, to
be gaining it. Nor is this circumstance difficult of explanation. The men of our
days are naturally disposed to believe; but, as soon as they have any religion,
they immediately find in themselves a latent propensity which urges them
unconsciously towards Catholicism. Many of the doctrines and the practices of
the Romish Church astonish them; but they feel a secret admiration for its
discipline, and its great unity attracts them. If Catholicism could at length
withdraw itself from the political animosities to which it has given rise, I
have hardly any doubt but that the same spirit of the age, which appears to be
so opposed to it, would become so favorable as to admit of its great and sudden
advancement. One of the most ordinary weaknesses of the human intellect is to
seek to reconcile contrary principles, and to purchase peace at the expense of
logic. Thus there have ever been, and will ever be, men who, after having
submitted some portion of their religious belief to the principle of authority,
will seek to exempt several other parts of their faith from its influence, and
to keep their minds floating at random between liberty and obedience. But I am
inclined to believe that the number of these thinkers will be less in democratic
than in other ages; and that our posterity will tend more and more to a single
division into two parts—some relinquishing Christianity entirely, and others
returning to the bosom of the Church of Rome.
Chapter VII: Of The Cause Of A Leaning To Pantheism Amongst Democratic
Nations
I shall take occasion hereafter to show under what form the preponderating taste
of a democratic people for very general ideas manifests itself in politics; but
I would point out, at the present stage of my work, its principal effect on
philosophy. It cannot be denied that pantheism has made great progress in our
age. The writings of a part of Europe bear visible marks of it: the Germans
introduce it into philosophy, and the French into literature. Most of the works
of imagination published in France contain some opinions or some tinge caught
from pantheistical doctrines, or they disclose some tendency to such doctrines
in their authors. This appears to me not only to proceed from an accidental, but
from a permanent cause.
When the conditions of society are becoming more equal, and each individual man
becomes more like all the rest, more weak and more insignificant, a habit grows
up of ceasing to notice the citizens to consider only the people, and of
overlooking individuals to think only of their kind. At such times the human
mind seeks to embrace a multitude of different objects at once; and it
constantly strives to succeed in connecting a variety of consequences with a
single cause. The idea of unity so possesses itself of man, and is sought for by
him so universally, that if he thinks he has found it, he readily yields himself
up to repose in that belief. Nor does he content himself with the discovery that
nothing is in the world but a creation and a Creator; still embarrassed by this
primary division of things, he seeks to expand and to simplify his conception by
including God and the universe in one great whole. If there be a philosophical
system which teaches that all things material and immaterial, visible and
invisible, which the world contains, are only to be considered as the several
parts of an immense Being, which alone remains unchanged amidst the continual
change and ceaseless transformation of all that constitutes it, we may readily
infer that such a system, although it destroy the individuality of man—nay,
rather because it destroys that individuality—will have secret charms for men
living in democracies. All their habits of thought prepare them to conceive it,
and predispose them to adopt it. It naturally attracts and fixes their
imagination; it fosters the pride, whilst it soothes the indolence, of their
minds. Amongst the different systems by whose aid philosophy endeavors to
explain the universe, I believe pantheism to be one of those most fitted to
seduce the human mind in democratic ages. Against it all who abide in their
attachment to the true greatness of man should struggle and combine.
Chapter VIII: The Principle Of Equality Suggests To The Americans The Idea Of
The Indefinite Perfectibility Of Man
Equality suggests to the human mind several ideas which would not have
originated from any other source, and it modifies almost all those previously
entertained. I take as an example the idea of human perfectibility, because it
is one of the principal notions that the intellect can conceive, and because it
constitutes of itself a great philosophical theory, which is every instant to be
traced by its consequences in the practice of human affairs. Although man has
many points of resemblance with the brute creation, one characteristic is
peculiar to himself—he improves: they are incapable of improvement. Mankind
could not fail to discover this difference from its earliest period. The idea of
perfectibility is therefore as old as the world; equality did not give birth to
it, although it has imparted to it a novel character.
When the citizens of a community are classed according to their rank, their
profession, or their birth, and when all men are constrained to follow the
career which happens to open before them, everyone thinks that the utmost limits
of human power are to be discerned in proximity to himself, and none seeks any
longer to resist the inevitable law of his destiny. Not indeed that an
aristocratic people absolutely contests man's faculty of self-improvement, but
they do not hold it to be indefinite; amelioration they conceive, but not
change: they imagine that the future condition of society may be better, but not
essentially different; and whilst they admit that mankind has made vast strides
in improvement, and may still have some to make, they assign to it beforehand
certain impassable limits. Thus they do not presume that they have arrived at
the supreme good or at absolute truth (what people or what man was ever wild
enough to imagine it?) but they cherish a persuasion that they have pretty
nearly reached that degree of greatness and knowledge which our imperfect nature
admits of; and as nothing moves about them they are willing to fancy that
everything is in its fit place. Then it is that the legislator affects to lay
down eternal laws; that kings and nations will raise none but imperishable
monuments; and that the present generation undertakes to spare generations to
come the care of regulating their destinies.
In proportion as castes disappear and the classes of society approximate—as
manners, customs, and laws vary, from the tumultuous intercourse of men—as new
facts arise—as new truths are brought to light—as ancient opinions are
dissipated, and others take their place—the image of an ideal perfection,
forever on the wing, presents itself to the human mind. Continual changes are
then every instant occurring under the observation of every man: the position of
some is rendered worse; and he learns but too well, that no people and no
individual, how enlightened soever they may be, can lay claim to
infallibility;—the condition of others is improved; whence he infers that man is
endowed with an indefinite faculty of improvement. His reverses teach him that
none may hope to have discovered absolute good—his success stimulates him to the
never-ending pursuit of it. Thus, forever seeking—forever falling, to rise
again—often disappointed, but not discouraged—he tends unceasingly towards that
unmeasured greatness so indistinctly visible at the end of the long track which
humanity has yet to tread. It can hardly be believed how many facts naturally
flow from the philosophical theory of the indefinite perfectibility of man, or
how strong an influence it exercises even on men who, living entirely for the
purposes of action and not of thought, seem to conform their actions to it,
without knowing anything about it. I accost an American sailor, and I inquire
why the ships of his country are built so as to last but for a short time; he
answers without hesitation that the art of navigation is every day making such
rapid progress, that the finest vessel would become almost useless if it lasted
beyond a certain number of years. In these words, which fell accidentally and on
a particular subject from a man of rude attainments, I recognize the general and
systematic idea upon which a great people directs all its concerns.
Aristocratic nations are naturally too apt to narrow the scope of human
perfectibility; democratic nations to expand it beyond compass.
Chapter IX: The Example Of The Americans Does Not Prove That A Democratic
People Can Have No Aptitude And No Taste For Science, Literature, Or Art
It must be acknowledged that amongst few of the civilized nations of our time
have the higher sciences made less progress than in the United States; and in
few have great artists, fine poets, or celebrated writers been more rare. Many
Europeans, struck by this fact, have looked upon it as a natural and inevitable
result of equality; and they have supposed that if a democratic state of society
and democratic institutions were ever to prevail over the whole earth, the human
mind would gradually find its beacon-lights grow dim, and men would relapse into
a period of darkness. To reason thus is, I think, to confound several ideas
which it is important to divide and to examine separately: it is to mingle,
unintentionally, what is democratic with what is only American.
The religion professed by the first emigrants, and bequeathed by them to their
descendants, simple in its form of worship, austere and almost harsh in its
principles, and hostile to external symbols and to ceremonial pomp, is naturally
unfavorable to the fine arts, and only yields a reluctant sufferance to the
pleasures of literature. The Americans are a very old and a very enlightened
people, who have fallen upon a new and unbounded country, where they may extend
themselves at pleasure, and which they may fertilize without difficulty. This
state of things is without a parallel in the history of the world. In America,
then, every one finds facilities, unknown elsewhere, for making or increasing
his fortune. The spirit of gain is always on the stretch, and the human mind,
constantly diverted from the pleasures of imagination and the labors of the
intellect, is there swayed by no impulse but the pursuit of wealth. Not only are
manufacturing and commercial classes to be found in the United States, as they
are in all other countries; but what never occurred elsewhere, the whole
community is simultaneously engaged in productive industry and commerce. I am
convinced that, if the Americans had been alone in the world, with the freedom
and the knowledge acquired by their forefathers, and the passions which are
their own, they would not have been slow to discover that progress cannot long
be made in the application of the sciences without cultivating the theory of
them; that all the arts are perfected by one another: and, however absorbed they
might have been by the pursuit of the principal object of their desires, they
would speedily have admitted, that it is necessary to turn aside from it
occasionally, in order the better to attain it in the end.
The taste for the pleasures of the mind is moreover so natural to the heart of
civilized man, that amongst the polite nations, which are least disposed to give
themselves up to these pursuits, a certain number of citizens are always to be
found who take part in them. This intellectual craving, when once felt, would
very soon have been satisfied. But at the very time when the Americans were
naturally inclined to require nothing of science but its special applications to
the useful arts and the means of rendering life comfortable, learned and
literary Europe was engaged in exploring the common sources of truth, and in
improving at the same time all that can minister to the pleasures or satisfy the
wants of man. At the head of the enlightened nations of the Old World the
inhabitants of the United States more particularly distinguished one, to which
they were closely united by a common origin and by kindred habits. Amongst this
people they found distinguished men of science, artists of skill, writers of
eminence, and they were enabled to enjoy the treasures of the intellect without
requiring to labor in amassing them. I cannot consent to separate America from
Europe, in spite of the ocean which intervenes. I consider the people of the
United States as that portion of the English people which is commissioned to
explore the wilds of the New World; whilst the rest of the nation, enjoying more
leisure and less harassed by the drudgery of life, may devote its energies to
thought, and enlarge in all directions the empire of the mind. The position of
the Americans is therefore quite exceptional, and it may be believed that no
democratic people will ever be placed in a similar one. Their strictly
Puritanical origin—their exclusively commercial habits—even the country they
inhabit, which seems to divert their minds from the pursuit of science,
literature, and the arts—the proximity of Europe, which allows them to neglect
these pursuits without relapsing into barbarism—a thousand special causes, of
which I have only been able to point out the most important—have singularly
concurred to fix the mind of the American upon purely practical objects. His
passions, his wants, his education, and everything about him seem to unite in
drawing the native of the United States earthward: his religion alone bids him
turn, from time to time, a transient and distracted glance to heaven. Let us
cease then to view all democratic nations under the mask of the American people,
and let us attempt to survey them at length with their own proper features.
It is possible to conceive a people not subdivided into any castes or scale of
ranks; in which the law, recognizing no privileges, should divide inherited
property into equal shares; but which, at the same time, should be without
knowledge and without freedom. Nor is this an empty hypothesis: a despot may
find that it is his interest to render his subjects equal and to leave them
ignorant, in order more easily to keep them slaves. Not only would a democratic
people of this kind show neither aptitude nor taste for science, literature, or
art, but it would probably never arrive at the possession of them. The law of
descent would of itself provide for the destruction of fortunes at each
succeeding generation; and new fortunes would be acquired by none. The poor man,
without either knowledge or freedom, would not so much as conceive the idea of
raising himself to wealth; and the rich man would allow himself to be degraded
to poverty, without a notion of self-defence. Between these two members of the
community complete and invincible equality would soon be established.
No one would then have time or taste to devote himself to the pursuits or
pleasures of the intellect; but all men would remain paralyzed by a state of
common ignorance and equal servitude. When I conceive a democratic society of
this kind, I fancy myself in one of those low, close, and gloomy abodes, where
the light which breaks in from without soon faints and fades away. A sudden
heaviness overpowers me, and I grope through the surrounding darkness, to find
the aperture which will restore me to daylight and the air.
But all this is not applicable to men already enlightened who retain their
freedom, after having abolished from amongst them those peculiar and hereditary
rights which perpetuated the tenure of property in the hands of certain
individuals or certain bodies. When men living in a democratic state of society
are enlightened, they readily discover that they are confined and fixed within
no limits which constrain them to take up with their present fortune. They all
therefore conceive the idea of increasing it; if they are free, they all attempt
it, but all do not succeed in the same manner. The legislature, it is true, no
longer grants privileges, but they are bestowed by nature. As natural inequality
is very great, fortunes become unequal as soon as every man exerts all his
faculties to get rich. The law of descent prevents the establishment of wealthy
families; but it does not prevent the existence of wealthy individuals. It
constantly brings back the members of the community to a common level, from
which they as constantly escape: and the inequality of fortunes augments in
proportion as knowledge is diffused and liberty increased.
A sect which arose in our time, and was celebrated for its talents and its
extravagance, proposed to concentrate all property into the hands of a central
power, whose function it should afterwards be to parcel it out to individuals,
according to their capacity. This would have been a method of escaping from that
complete and eternal equality which seems to threaten democratic society. But it
would be a simpler and less dangerous remedy to grant no privilege to any,
giving to all equal cultivation and equal independence, and leaving everyone to
determine his own position. Natural inequality will very soon make way for
itself, and wealth will spontaneously pass into the hands of the most capable.
Free and democratic communities, then, will always contain a considerable number
of people enjoying opulence or competency. The wealthy will not be so closely
linked to each other as the members of the former aristocratic class of society:
their propensities will be different, and they will scarcely ever enjoy leisure
as secure or as complete: but they will be far more numerous than those who
belonged to that class of society could ever be. These persons will not be
strictly confined to the cares of practical life, and they will still be able,
though in different degrees, to indulge in the pursuits and pleasures of the
intellect. In those pleasures they will indulge; for if it be true that the
human mind leans on one side to the narrow, the practical, and the useful, it
naturally rises on the other to the infinite, the spiritual, and the beautiful.
Physical wants confine it to the earth; but, as soon as the tie is loosened, it
will unbend itself again.
Not only will the number of those who can take an interest in the productions of
the mind be enlarged, but the taste for intellectual enjoyment will descend,
step by step, even to those who, in aristocratic societies, seem to have neither
time nor ability to in indulge in them. When hereditary wealth, the privileges
of rank, and the prerogatives of birth have ceased to be, and when every man
derives his strength from himself alone, it becomes evident that the chief cause
of disparity between the fortunes of men is the mind. Whatever tends to
invigorate, to extend, or to adorn the mind, instantly rises to great value. The
utility of knowledge becomes singularly conspicuous even to the eyes of the
multitude: those who have no taste for its charms set store upon its results,
and make some efforts to acquire it. In free and enlightened democratic ages,
there is nothing to separate men from each other or to retain them in their
peculiar sphere; they rise or sink with extreme rapidity. All classes live in
perpetual intercourse from their great proximity to each other. They communicate
and intermingle every day—they imitate and envy one other: this suggests to the
people many ideas, notions, and desires which it would never have entertained if
the distinctions of rank had been fixed and society at rest. In such nations the
servant never considers himself as an entire stranger to the pleasures and toils
of his master, nor the poor man to those of the rich; the rural population
assimilates itself to that of the towns, and the provinces to the capital. No
one easily allows himself to be reduced to the mere material cares of life; and
the humblest artisan casts at times an eager and a furtive glance into the
higher regions of the intellect. People do not read with the same notions or in
the same manner as they do in an aristocratic community; but the circle of
readers is unceasingly expanded, till it includes all the citizens.
As soon as the multitude begins to take an interest in the labors of the mind,
it finds out that to excel in some of them is a powerful method of acquiring
fame, power, or wealth. The restless ambition which equality begets instantly
takes this direction as it does all others. The number of those who cultivate
science, letters, and the arts, becomes immense. The intellectual world starts
into prodigious activity: everyone endeavors to open for himself a path there,
and to draw the eyes of the public after him. Something analogous occurs to what
happens in society in the United States, politically considered. What is done is
often imperfect, but the attempts are innumerable; and, although the results of
individual effort are commonly very small, the total amount is always very
large.
It is therefore not true to assert that men living in democratic ages are
naturally indifferent to science, literature, and the arts: only it must be
acknowledged that they cultivate them after their own fashion, and bring to the
task their own peculiar qualifications and deficiencies.
Chapter X: Why The Americans Are More Addicted To Practical Than To
Theoretical Science
If a democratic state of society and democratic institutions do not stop the
career of the human mind, they incontestably guide it in one direction in
preference to another. Their effects, thus circumscribed, are still exceedingly
great; and I trust I may be pardoned if I pause for a moment to survey them. We
had occasion, in speaking of the philosophical method of the American people, to
make several remarks which must here be turned to account.
Equality begets in man the desire of judging of everything for himself: it gives
him, in all things, a taste for the tangible and the real, a contempt for
tradition and for forms. These general tendencies are principally discernible in
the peculiar subject of this chapter. Those who cultivate the sciences amongst a
democratic people are always afraid of losing their way in visionary
speculation. They mistrust systems; they adhere closely to facts and the study
of facts with their own senses. As they do not easily defer to the mere name of
any fellow-man, they are never inclined to rest upon any man's authority; but,
on the contrary, they are unremitting in their efforts to point out the weaker
points of their neighbors' opinions. Scientific precedents have very little
weight with them; they are never long detained by the subtilty of the schools,
nor ready to accept big words for sterling coin; they penetrate, as far as they
can, into the principal parts of the subject which engages them, and they
expound them in the vernacular tongue. Scientific pursuits then follow a freer
and a safer course, but a less lofty one.
The mind may, as it appears to me, divide science into three parts. The first
comprises the most theoretical principles, and those more abstract notions whose
application is either unknown or very remote. The second is composed of those
general truths which still belong to pure theory, but lead, nevertheless, by a
straight and short road to practical results. Methods of application and means
of execution make up the third. Each of these different portions of science may
be separately cultivated, although reason and experience show that none of them
can prosper long, if it be absolutely cut off from the two others.
In America the purely practical part of science is admirably understood, and
careful attention is paid to the theoretical portion which is immediately
requisite to application. On this head the Americans always display a clear,
free, original, and inventive power of mind. But hardly anyone in the United
States devotes himself to the essentially theoretical and abstract portion of
human knowledge. In this respect the Americans carry to excess a tendency which
is, I think, discernible, though in a less degree, amongst all democratic
nations.
Nothing is more necessary to the culture of the higher sciences, or of the more
elevated departments of science, than meditation; and nothing is less suited to
meditation than the structure of democratic society. We do not find there, as
amongst an aristocratic people, one class which clings to a state of repose
because it is well off; and another which does not venture to stir because it
despairs of improving its condition. Everyone is actively in motion: some in
quest of power, others of gain. In the midst of this universal tumult—this
incessant conflict of jarring interests—this continual stride of men after
fortune—where is that calm to be found which is necessary for the deeper
combinations of the intellect? How can the mind dwell upon any single point,
when everything whirls around it, and man himself is swept and beaten onwards by
the heady current which rolls all things in its course? But the permanent
agitation which subsists in the bosom of a peaceable and established democracy,
must be distinguished from the tumultuous and revolutionary movements which
almost always attend the birth and growth of democratic society. When a violent
revolution occurs amongst a highly civilized people, it cannot fail to give a
sudden impulse to their feelings and their opinions. This is more particularly
true of democratic revolutions, which stir up all the classes of which a people
is composed, and beget, at the same time, inordinate ambition in the breast of
every member of the community. The French made most surprising advances in the
exact sciences at the very time at which they were finishing the destruction of
the remains of their former feudal society; yet this sudden fecundity is not to
be attributed to democracy, but to the unexampled revolution which attended its
growth. What happened at that period was a special incident, and it would be
unwise to regard it as the test of a general principle. Great revolutions are
not more common amongst democratic nations than amongst others: I am even
inclined to believe that they are less so. But there prevails amongst those
populations a small distressing motion—a sort of incessant jostling of men—which
annoys and disturbs the mind, without exciting or elevating it. Men who live in
democratic communities not only seldom indulge in meditation, but they naturally
entertain very little esteem for it. A democratic state of society and
democratic institutions plunge the greater part of men in constant active life;
and the habits of mind which are suited to an active life, are not always suited
to a contemplative one. The man of action is frequently obliged to content
himself with the best he can get, because he would never accomplish his purpose
if he chose to carry every detail to perfection. He has perpetually occasion to
rely on ideas which he has not had leisure to search to the bottom; for he is
much more frequently aided by the opportunity of an idea than by its strict
accuracy; and, in the long run, he risks less in making use of some false
principles, than in spending his time in establishing all his principles on the
basis of truth. The world is not led by long or learned demonstrations; a rapid
glance at particular incidents, the daily study of the fleeting passions of the
multitude, the accidents of the time, and the art of turning them to account,
decide all its affairs.
In the ages in which active life is the condition of almost everyone, men are
therefore generally led to attach an excessive value to the rapid bursts and
superficial conceptions of the intellect; and, on the other hand, to depreciate
below their true standard its slower and deeper labors. This opinion of the
public influences the judgment of the men who cultivate the sciences; they are
persuaded that they may succeed in those pursuits without meditation, or
deterred from such pursuits as demand it.
There are several methods of studying the sciences. Amongst a multitude of men
you will find a selfish, mercantile, and trading taste for the discoveries of
the mind, which must not be confounded with that disinterested passion which is
kindled in the heart of the few. A desire to utilize knowledge is one thing; the
pure desire to know is another. I do not doubt that in a few minds and far
between, an ardent, inexhaustible love of truth springs up, self-supported, and
living in ceaseless fruition without ever attaining the satisfaction which it
seeks. This ardent love it is—this proud, disinterested love of what is
true—which raises men to the abstract sources of truth, to draw their
mother-knowledge thence. If Pascal had had nothing in view but some large gain,
or even if he had been stimulated by the love of fame alone, I cannot conceive
that he would ever have been able to rally all the powers of his mind, as he
did, for the better discovery of the most hidden things of the Creator. When I
see him, as it were, tear his soul from the midst of all the cares of life to
devote it wholly to these researches, and, prematurely snapping the links which
bind the frame to life, die of old age before forty, I stand amazed, and I
perceive that no ordinary cause is at work to produce efforts so extra-ordinary.
The future will prove whether these passions, at once so rare and so productive,
come into being and into growth as easily in the midst of democratic as in
aristocratic communities. For myself, I confess that I am slow to believe it. In
aristocratic society, the class which gives the tone to opinion, and has the
supreme guidance of affairs, being permanently and hereditarily placed above the
multitude, naturally conceives a lofty idea of itself and of man. It loves to
invent for him noble pleasures, to carve out splendid objects for his ambition.
Aristocracies often commit very tyrannical and very inhuman actions; but they
rarely entertain grovelling thoughts; and they show a kind of haughty contempt
of little pleasures, even whilst they indulge in them. The effect is greatly to
raise the general pitch of society. In aristocratic ages vast ideas are commonly
entertained of the dignity, the power, and the greatness of man. These opinions
exert their influence on those who cultivate the sciences, as well as on the
rest of the community. They facilitate the natural impulse of the mind to the
highest regions of thought, and they naturally prepare it to conceive a
sublime—nay, almost a divine—love of truth. Men of science at such periods are
consequently carried away by theory; and it even happens that they frequently
conceive an inconsiderate contempt for the practical part of learning.
"Archimedes," says Plutarch, "was of so lofty a spirit, that he never
condescended to write any treatise on the manner of constructing all these
engines of offence and defence. And as he held this science of inventing and
putting together engines, and all arts generally speaking which tended to any
useful end in practice, to be vile, low, and mercenary, he spent his talents and
his studious hours in writing of those things only whose beauty and subtilty had
in them no admixture of necessity." Such is the aristocratic aim of science; in
democratic nations it cannot be the same.
The greater part of the men who constitute these nations are extremely eager in
the pursuit of actual and physical gratification. As they are always
dissatisfied with the position which they occupy, and are always free to leave
it, they think of nothing but the means of changing their fortune, or of
increasing it. To minds thus predisposed, every new method which leads by a
shorter road to wealth, every machine which spares labor, every instrument which
diminishes the cost of production, every discovery which facilitates pleasures
or augments them, seems to be the grandest effort of the human intellect. It is
chiefly from these motives that a democratic people addicts itself to scientific
pursuits—that it understands, and that it respects them. In aristocratic ages,
science is more particularly called upon to furnish gratification to the mind;
in democracies, to the body. You may be sure that the more a nation is
democratic, enlightened, and free, the greater will be the number of these
interested promoters of scientific genius, and the more will discoveries
immediately applicable to productive industry confer gain, fame, and even power
on their authors. For in democracies the working class takes a part in public
affairs; and public honors, as well as pecuniary remuneration, may be awarded to
those who deserve them. In a community thus organized it may easily be conceived
that the human mind may be led insensibly to the neglect of theory; and that it
is urged, on the contrary, with unparalleled vehemence to the applications of
science, or at least to that portion of theoretical science which is necessary
to those who make such applications. In vain will some innate propensity raise
the mind towards the loftier spheres of the intellect; interest draws it down to
the middle zone. There it may develop all its energy and restless activity,
there it may engender all its wonders. These very Americans, who have not
discovered one of the general laws of mechanics, have introduced into navigation
an engine which changes the aspect of the world.
Assuredly I do not content that the democratic nations of our time are destined
to witness the extinction of the transcendent luminaries of man's intelligence,
nor even that no new lights will ever start into existence. At the age at which
the world has now arrived, and amongst so many cultivated nations, perpetually
excited by the fever of productive industry, the bonds which connect the
different parts of science together cannot fail to strike the observation; and
the taste for practical science itself, if it be enlightened, ought to lead men
not to neglect theory. In the midst of such numberless attempted applications of
so many experiments, repeated every day, it is almost impossible that general
laws should not frequently be brought to light; so that great discoveries would
be frequent, though great inventors be rare. I believe, moreover, in the high
calling of scientific minds. If the democratic principle does not, on the one
hand, induce men to cultivate science for its own sake, on the other it
enormously increases the number of those who do cultivate it. Nor is it credible
that, from amongst so great a multitude no speculative genius should from time
to time arise, inflamed by the love of truth alone. Such a one, we may be sure,
would dive into the deepest mysteries of nature, whatever be the spirit of his
country or his age. He requires no assistance in his course—enough that he be
not checked in it.
All that I mean to say is this:—permanent inequality of conditions leads men to
confine themselves to the arrogant and sterile research of abstract truths;
whilst the social condition and the institutions of democracy prepare them to
seek the immediate and useful practical results of the sciences. This tendency
is natural and inevitable: it is curious to be acquainted with it, and it may be
necessary to point it out. If those who are called upon to guide the nations of
our time clearly discerned from afar off these new tendencies, which will soon
be irresistible, they would understand that, possessing education and freedom,
men living in democratic ages cannot fail to improve the industrial part of
science; and that henceforward all the efforts of the constituted authorities
ought to be directed to support the highest branches of learning, and to foster
the nobler passion for science itself. In the present age the human mind must be
coerced into theoretical studies; it runs of its own accord to practical
applications; and, instead of perpetually referring it to the minute examination
of secondary effects, it is well to divert it from them sometimes, in order to
raise it up to the contemplation of primary causes. Because the civilization of
ancient Rome perished in consequence of the invasion of the barbarians, we are
perhaps too apt to think that civilization cannot perish in any other manner. If
the light by which we are guided is ever extinguished, it will dwindle by
degrees, and expire of itself. By dint of close adherence to mere applications,
principles would be lost sight of; and when the principles were wholly
forgotten, the methods derived from them would be ill-pursued. New methods could
no longer be invented, and men would continue to apply, without intelligence,
and without art, scientific processes no longer understood.
When Europeans first arrived in China, three hundred years ago, they found that
almost all the arts had reached a certain degree of perfection there; and they
were surprised that a people which had attained this point should not have gone
beyond it. At a later period they discovered some traces of the higher branches
of science which were lost. The nation was absorbed in productive industry: the
greater part of its scientific processes had been preserved, but science itself
no longer existed there. This served to explain the strangely motionless state
in which they found the minds of this people. The Chinese, in following the
track of their forefathers, had forgotten the reasons by which the latter had
been guided. They still used the formula, without asking for its meaning: they
retained the instrument, but they no longer possessed the art of altering or
renewing it. The Chinese, then, had lost the power of change; for them to
improve was impossible. They were compelled, at all times and in all points, to
imitate their predecessors, lest they should stray into utter darkness, by
deviating for an instant from the path already laid down for them. The source of
human knowledge was all but dry; and though the stream still ran on, it could
neither swell its waters nor alter its channel. Notwithstanding this, China had
subsisted peaceably for centuries. The invaders who had conquered the country
assumed the manners of the inhabitants, and order prevailed there. A sort of
physical prosperity was everywhere discernible: revolutions were rare, and war
was, so to speak, unknown.
It is then a fallacy to flatter ourselves with the reflection that the
barbarians are still far from us; for if there be some nations which allow
civilization to be torn from their grasp, there are others who trample it
themselves under their feet.
Chapter XI: Of The Spirit In Which The Americans Cultivate The Arts
It would be to waste the time of my readers and my own if I strove to
demonstrate how the general mediocrity of fortunes, the absence of superfluous
wealth, the universal desire of comfort, and the constant efforts by which
everyone attempts to procure it, make the taste for the useful predominate over
the love of the beautiful in the heart of man. Democratic nations, amongst which
all these things exist, will therefore cultivate the arts which serve to render
life easy, in preference to those whose object is to adorn it. They will
habitually prefer the useful to the beautiful, and they will require that the
beautiful should be useful. But I propose to go further; and after having
pointed out this first feature, to sketch several others.
It commonly happens that in the ages of privilege the practice of almost all the
arts becomes a privilege; and that every profession is a separate walk, upon
which it is not allowable for everyone to enter. Even when productive industry
is free, the fixed character which belongs to aristocratic nations gradually
segregates all the persons who practise the same art, till they form a distinct
class, always composed of the same families, whose members are all known to each
other, and amongst whom a public opinion of their own and a species of corporate
pride soon spring up. In a class or guild of this kind, each artisan has not
only his fortune to make, but his reputation to preserve. He is not exclusively
swayed by his own interest, or even by that of his customer, but by that of the
body to which he belongs; and the interest of that body is, that each artisan
should produce the best possible workmanship. In aristocratic ages, the object
of the arts is therefore to manufacture as well as possible—not with the
greatest despatch, or at the lowest rate.
When, on the contrary, every profession is open to all—when a multitude of
persons are constantly embracing and abandoning it—and when its several members
are strangers to each other, indifferent, and from their numbers hardly seen
amongst themselves; the social tie is destroyed, and each workman, standing
alone, endeavors simply to gain the greatest possible quantity of money at the
least possible cost. The will of the customer is then his only limit. But at the
same time a corresponding revolution takes place in the customer also. In
countries in which riches as well as power are concentrated and retained in the
hands of the few, the use of the greater part of this world's goods belongs to a
small number of individuals, who are always the same. Necessity, public opinion,
or moderate desires exclude all others from the enjoyment of them. As this
aristocratic class remains fixed at the pinnacle of greatness on which it
stands, without diminution or increase, it is always acted upon by the same
wants and affected by them in the same manner. The men of whom it is composed
naturally derive from their superior and hereditary position a taste for what is
extremely well made and lasting. This affects the general way of thinking of the
nation in relation to the arts. It often occurs, among such a people, that even
the peasant will rather go without the object he covets, than procure it in a
state of imperfection. In aristocracies, then, the handicraftsmen work for only
a limited number of very fastidious customers: the profit they hope to make
depends principally on the perfection of their workmanship.
Such is no longer the case when, all privileges being abolished, ranks are
intermingled, and men are forever rising or sinking upon the ladder of society.
Amongst a democratic people a number of citizens always exist whose patrimony is
divided and decreasing. They have contracted, under more prosperous
circumstances, certain wants, which remain after the means of satisfying such
wants are gone; and they are anxiously looking out for some surreptitious method
of providing for them. On the other hand, there are always in democracies a
large number of men whose fortune is upon the increase, but whose desires grow
much faster than their fortunes: and who gloat upon the gifts of wealth in
anticipation, long before they have means to command them. Such men eager to
find some short cut to these gratifications, already almost within their reach.
From the combination of these causes the result is, that in democracies there
are always a multitude of individuals whose wants are above their means, and who
are very willing to take up with imperfect satisfaction rather than abandon the
object of their desires.
The artisan readily understands these passions, for he himself partakes in them:
in an aristocracy he would seek to sell his workmanship at a high price to the
few; he now conceives that the more expeditious way of getting rich is to sell
them at a low price to all. But there are only two ways of lowering the price of
commodities. The first is to discover some better, shorter, and more ingenious
method of producing them: the second is to manufacture a larger quantity of
goods, nearly similar, but of less value. Amongst a democratic population, all
the intellectual faculties of the workman are directed to these two objects: he
strives to invent methods which may enable him not only to work better, but
quicker and cheaper; or, if he cannot succeed in that, to diminish the intrinsic
qualities of the thing he makes, without rendering it wholly unfit for the use
for which it is intended. When none but the wealthy had watches, they were
almost all very good ones: few are now made which are worth much, but everybody
has one in his pocket. Thus the democratic principle not only tends to direct
the human mind to the useful arts, but it induces the artisan to produce with
greater rapidity a quantity of imperfect commodities, and the consumer to
content himself with these commodities.
Not that in democracies the arts are incapable of producing very commendable
works, if such be required. This may occasionally be the case, if customers
appear who are ready to pay for time and trouble. In this rivalry of every kind
of industry—in the midst of this immense competition and these countless
experiments, some excellent workmen are formed who reach the utmost limits of
their craft. But they have rarely an opportunity of displaying what they can do;
they are scrupulously sparing of their powers; they remain in a state of
accomplished mediocrity, which condemns itself, and, though it be very well able
to shoot beyond the mark before it, aims only at what it hits. In aristocracies,
on the contrary, workmen always do all they can; and when they stop, it is
because they have reached the limit of their attainments.
When I arrive in a country where I find some of the finest productions of the
arts, I learn from this fact nothing of the social condition or of the political
constitution of the country. But if I perceive that the productions of the arts
are generally of an inferior quality, very abundant and very cheap, I am
convinced that, amongst the people where this occurs, privilege is on the
decline, and that ranks are beginning to intermingle, and will soon be
confounded together.
The handicraftsmen of democratic ages endeavor not only to bring their useful
productions within the reach of the whole community, but they strive to give to
all their commodities attractive qualities which they do not in reality possess.
In the confusion of all ranks everyone hopes to appear what he is not, and makes
great exertions to succeed in this object. This sentiment indeed, which is but
too natural to the heart of man, does not originate in the democratic principle;
but that principle applies it to material objects. To mimic virtue is of every
age; but the hypocrisy of luxury belongs more particularly to the ages of
democracy.
To satisfy these new cravings of human vanity the arts have recourse to every
species of imposture: and these devices sometimes go so far as to defeat their
own purpose. Imitation diamonds are now made which may be easily mistaken for
real ones; as soon as the art of fabricating false diamonds shall have reached
so high a degree of perfection that they cannot be distinguished from real ones,
it is probable that both one and the other will be abandoned, and become mere
pebbles again.
This leads me to speak of those arts which are called the fine arts, by way of
distinction. I do not believe that it is a necessary effect of a democratic
social condition and of democratic institutions to diminish the number of men
who cultivate the fine arts; but these causes exert a very powerful influence on
the manner in which these arts are cultivated. Many of those who had already
contracted a taste for the fine arts are impoverished: on the other hand, many
of those who are not yet rich begin to conceive that taste, at least by
imitation; and the number of consumers increases, but opulent and fastidious
consumers become more scarce. Something analogous to what I have already pointed
out in the useful arts then takes place in the fine arts; the productions of
artists are more numerous, but the merit of each production is diminished. No
longer able to soar to what is great, they cultivate what is pretty and elegant;
and appearance is more attended to than reality. In aristocracies a few great
pictures are produced; in democratic countries, a vast number of insignificant
ones. In the former, statues are raised of bronze; in the latter, they are
modelled in plaster.
When I arrived for the first time at New York, by that part of the Atlantic
Ocean which is called the Narrows, I was surprised to perceive along the shore,
at some distance from the city, a considerable number of little palaces of white
marble, several of which were built after the models of ancient architecture.
When I went the next day to inspect more closely the building which had
particularly attracted my notice, I found that its walls were of whitewashed
brick, and its columns of painted wood. All the edifices which I had admired the
night before were of the same kind.
The social condition and the institutions of democracy impart, moreover, certain
peculiar tendencies to all the imitative arts, which it is easy to point out.
They frequently withdraw them from the delineation of the soul to fix them
exclusively on that of the body: and they substitute the representation of
motion and sensation for that of sentiment and thought: in a word, they put the
real in the place of the ideal. I doubt whether Raphael studied the minutest
intricacies of the mechanism of the human body as thoroughly as the draughtsmen
of our own time. He did not attach the same importance to rigorous accuracy on
this point as they do, because he aspired to surpass nature. He sought to make
of man something which should be superior to man, and to embellish beauty's
self. David and his scholars were, on the contrary, as good anatomists as they
were good painters. They wonderfully depicted the models which they had before
their eyes, but they rarely imagined anything beyond them: they followed nature
with fidelity: whilst Raphael sought for something better than nature. They have
left us an exact portraiture of man; but he discloses in his works a glimpse of
the Divinity. This remark as to the manner of treating a subject is no less
applicable to the choice of it. The painters of the Middle Ages generally sought
far above themselves, and away from their own time, for mighty subjects, which
left to their imagination an unbounded range. Our painters frequently employ
their talents in the exact imitation of the details of private life, which they
have always before their eyes; and they are forever copying trivial objects, the
originals of which are only too abundant in nature.
Chapter XII: Why The Americans Raise Some Monuments So Insignificant, And
Others So Important
I have just observed, that in democratic ages monuments of the arts tend to
become more numerous and less important. I now hasten to point out the exception
to this rule. In a democratic community individuals are very powerless; but the
State which represents them all, and contains them all in its grasp, is very
powerful. Nowhere do citizens appear so insignificant as in a democratic nation;
nowhere does the nation itself appear greater, or does the mind more easily take
in a wide general survey of it. In democratic communities the imagination is
compressed when men consider themselves; it expands indefinitely when they think
of the State. Hence it is that the same men who live on a small scale in narrow
dwellings, frequently aspire to gigantic splendor in the erection of their
public monuments.
The Americans traced out the circuit of an immense city on the site which they
intended to make their capital, but which, up to the present time, is hardly
more densely peopled than Pontoise, though, according to them, it will one day
contain a million of inhabitants. They have already rooted up trees for ten
miles round, lest they should interfere with the future citizens of this
imaginary metropolis. They have erected a magnificent palace for Congress in the
centre of the city, and have given it the pompous name of the Capitol. The
several States of the Union are every day planning and erecting for themselves
prodigious undertakings, which would astonish the engineers of the great
European nations. Thus democracy not only leads men to a vast number of
inconsiderable productions; it also leads them to raise some monuments on the
largest scale: but between these two extremes there is a blank. A few scattered
remains of enormous buildings can therefore teach us nothing of the social
condition and the institutions of the people by whom they were raised. I may
add, though the remark leads me to step out of my subject, that they do not make
us better acquainted with its greatness, its civilization, and its real
prosperity. Whensoever a power of any kind shall be able to make a whole people
co-operate in a single undertaking, that power, with a little knowledge and a
great deal of time, will succeed in obtaining something enormous from the
co-operation of efforts so multiplied. But this does not lead to the conclusion
that the people was very happy, very enlightened, or even very strong.
The Spaniards found the City of Mexico full of magnificent temples and vast
palaces; but that did not prevent Cortes from conquering the Mexican Empire with
600 foot soldiers and sixteen horses. If the Romans had been better acquainted
with the laws of hydraulics, they would not have constructed all the aqueducts
which surround the ruins of their cities—they would have made a better use of
their power and their wealth. If they had invented the steam-engine, perhaps
they would not have extended to the extremities of their empire those long
artificial roads which are called Roman roads. These things are at once the
splendid memorials of their ignorance and of their greatness. A people which
should leave no other vestige of its track than a few leaden pipes in the earth
and a few iron rods upon its surface, might have been more the master of nature
than the Romans.
Chapter XIII: Literary Characteristics Of Democratic Ages
When a traveller goes into a bookseller's shop in the United States, and
examines the American books upon the shelves, the number of works appears
extremely great; whilst that of known authors appears, on the contrary, to be
extremely small. He will first meet with a number of elementary treatises,
destined to teach the rudiments of human knowledge. Most of these books are
written in Europe; the Americans reprint them, adapting them to their own
country. Next comes an enormous quantity of religious works, Bibles, sermons,
edifying anecdotes, controversial divinity, and reports of charitable societies;
lastly, appears the long catalogue of political pamphlets. In America, parties
do not write books to combat each others' opinions, but pamphlets which are
circulated for a day with incredible rapidity, and then expire. In the midst of
all these obscure productions of the human brain are to be found the more
remarkable works of that small number of authors, whose names are, or ought to
be, known to Europeans.
Although America is perhaps in our days the civilized country in which
literature is least attended to, a large number of persons are nevertheless to
be found there who take an interest in the productions of the mind, and who make
them, if not the study of their lives, at least the charm of their leisure
hours. But England supplies these readers with the larger portion of the books
which they require. Almost all important English books are republished in the
United States. The literary genius of Great Britain still darts its rays into
the recesses of the forests of the New World. There is hardly a pioneer's hut
which does not contain a few odd volumes of Shakespeare. I remember that I read
the feudal play of Henry V for the first time in a loghouse.
Not only do the Americans constantly draw upon the treasures of English
literature, but it may be said with truth that they find the literature of
England growing on their own soil. The larger part of that small number of men
in the United States who are engaged in the composition of literary works are
English in substance, and still more so in form. Thus they transport into the
midst of democracy the ideas and literary fashions which are current amongst the
aristocratic nation they have taken for their model. They paint with colors
borrowed from foreign manners; and as they hardly ever represent the country
they were born in as it really is, they are seldom popular there. The citizens
of the United States are themselves so convinced that it is not for them that
books are published, that before they can make up their minds upon the merit of
one of their authors, they generally wait till his fame has been ratified in
England, just as in pictures the author of an original is held to be entitled to
judge of the merit of a copy. The inhabitants of the United States have then at
present, properly speaking, no literature. The only authors whom I acknowledge
as American are the journalists. They indeed are not great writers, but they
speak the language of their countrymen, and make themselves heard by them. Other
authors are aliens; they are to the Americans what the imitators of the Greeks
and Romans were to us at the revival of learning—an object of curiosity, not of
general sympathy. They amuse the mind, but they do not act upon the manners of
the people.
I have already said that this state of things is very far from originating in
democracy alone, and that the causes of it must be sought for in several
peculiar circumstances independent of the democratic principle. If the
Americans, retaining the same laws and social condition, had had a different
origin, and had been transported into another country, I do not question that
they would have had a literature. Even as they now are, I am convinced that they
will ultimately have one; but its character will be different from that which
marks the American literary productions of our time, and that character will be
peculiarly its own. Nor is it impossible to trace this character beforehand.
I suppose an aristocratic people amongst whom letters are cultivated; the labors
of the mind, as well as the affairs of state, are conducted by a ruling class in
society. The literary as well as the political career is almost entirely
confined to this class, or to those nearest to it in rank. These premises
suffice to give me a key to all the rest. When a small number of the same men
are engaged at the same time upon the same objects, they easily concert with one
another, and agree upon certain leading rules which are to govern them each and
all. If the object which attracts the attention of these men is literature, the
productions of the mind will soon be subjected by them to precise canons, from
which it will no longer be allowable to depart. If these men occupy a hereditary
position in the country, they will be naturally inclined, not only to adopt a
certain number of fixed rules for themselves, but to follow those which their
forefathers laid down for their own guidance; their code will be at once strict
and traditional. As they are not necessarily engrossed by the cares of daily
life—as they have never been so, any more than their fathers were before
them—they have learned to take an interest, for several generations back, in the
labors of the mind. They have learned to understand literature as an art, to
love it in the end for its own sake, and to feel a scholar-like satisfaction in
seeing men conform to its rules. Nor is this all: the men of whom I speak began
and will end their lives in easy or in affluent circumstances; hence they have
naturally conceived a taste for choice gratifications, and a love of refined and
delicate pleasures. Nay more, a kind of indolence of mind and heart, which they
frequently contract in the midst of this long and peaceful enjoyment of so much
welfare, leads them to put aside, even from their pleasures, whatever might be
too startling or too acute. They had rather be amused than intensely excited;
they wish to be interested, but not to be carried away.
Now let us fancy a great number of literary performances executed by the men, or
for the men, whom I have just described, and we shall readily conceive a style
of literature in which everything will be regular and prearranged. The slightest
work will be carefully touched in its least details; art and labor will be
conspicuous in everything; each kind of writing will have rules of its own, from
which it will not be allowed to swerve, and which distinguish it from all
others. Style will be thought of almost as much importance as thought; and the
form will be no less considered than the matter: the diction will be polished,
measured, and uniform. The tone of the mind will be always dignified, seldom
very animated; and writers will care more to perfect what they produce than to
multiply their productions. It will sometimes happen that the members of the
literary class, always living amongst themselves and writing for themselves
alone, will lose sight of the rest of the world, which will infect them with a
false and labored style; they will lay down minute literary rules for their
exclusive use, which will insensibly lead them to deviate from common-sense, and
finally to transgress the bounds of nature. By dint of striving after a mode of
parlance different from the vulgar, they will arrive at a sort of aristocratic
jargon, which is hardly less remote from pure language than is the coarse
dialect of the people. Such are the natural perils of literature amongst
aristocracies. Every aristocracy which keeps itself entirely aloof from the
people becomes impotent—a fact which is as true in literature as it is in
politics. *a
a
[ All this is especially true of the aristocratic countries which have been long
and peacefully subject to a monarchical government. When liberty prevails in an
aristocracy, the higher ranks are constantly obliged to make use of the lower
classes; and when they use, they approach them. This frequently introduces
something of a democratic spirit into an aristocratic community. There springs
up, moreover, in a privileged body, governing with energy and an habitually bold
policy, a taste for stir and excitement which must infallibly affect all
literary performances.]
Let us now turn the picture and consider the other side of it; let us transport
ourselves into the midst of a democracy, not unprepared by ancient traditions
and present culture to partake in the pleasures of the mind. Ranks are there
intermingled and confounded; knowledge and power are both infinitely subdivided,
and, if I may use the expression, scattered on every side. Here then is a motley
multitude, whose intellectual wants are to be supplied. These new votaries of
the pleasures of the mind have not all received the same education; they do not
possess the same degree of culture as their fathers, nor any resemblance to
them—nay, they perpetually differ from themselves, for they live in a state of
incessant change of place, feelings, and fortunes. The mind of each member of
the community is therefore unattached to that of his fellow-citizens by
tradition or by common habits; and they have never had the power, the
inclination, nor the time to concert together. It is, however, from the bosom of
this heterogeneous and agitated mass that authors spring; and from the same
source their profits and their fame are distributed. I can without difficulty
understand that, under these circumstances, I must expect to meet in the
literature of such a people with but few of those strict conventional rules
which are admitted by readers and by writers in aristocratic ages. If it should
happen that the men of some one period were agreed upon any such rules, that
would prove nothing for the following period; for amongst democratic nations
each new generation is a new people. Amongst such nations, then, literature will
not easily be subjected to strict rules, and it is impossible that any such
rules should ever be permanent.
In democracies it is by no means the case that all the men who cultivate
literature have received a literary education; and most of those who have some
tinge of belles-lettres are either engaged in politics, or in a profession which
only allows them to taste occasionally and by stealth the pleasures of the mind.
These pleasures, therefore, do not constitute the principal charm of their
lives; but they are considered as a transient and necessary recreation amidst
the serious labors of life. Such man can never acquire a sufficiently intimate
knowledge of the art of literature to appreciate its more delicate beauties; and
the minor shades of expression must escape them. As the time they can devote to
letters is very short, they seek to make the best use of the whole of it. They
prefer books which may be easily procured, quickly read, and which require no
learned researches to be understood. They ask for beauties, self-proffered and
easily enjoyed; above all, they must have what is unexpected and new. Accustomed
to the struggle, the crosses, and the monotony of practical life, they require
rapid emotions, startling passages—truths or errors brilliant enough to rouse
them up, and to plunge them at once, as if by violence, into the midst of a
subject.
Why should I say more? or who does not understand what is about to follow,
before I have expressed it? Taken as a whole, literature in democratic ages can
never present, as it does in the periods of aristocracy, an aspect of order,
regularity, science, and art; its form will, on the contrary, ordinarily be
slighted, sometimes despised. Style will frequently be fantastic, incorrect,
overburdened, and loose—almost always vehement and bold. Authors will aim at
rapidity of execution, more than at perfection of detail. Small productions will
be more common than bulky books; there will be more wit than erudition, more
imagination than profundity; and literary performances will bear marks of an
untutored and rude vigor of thought—frequently of great variety and singular
fecundity. The object of authors will be to astonish rather than to please, and
to stir the passions more than to charm the taste. Here and there, indeed,
writers will doubtless occur who will choose a different track, and who will, if
they are gifted with superior abilities, succeed in finding readers, in spite of
their defects or their better qualities; but these exceptions will be rare, and
even the authors who shall so depart from the received practice in the main
subject of their works, will always relapse into it in some lesser details.
I have just depicted two extreme conditions: the transition by which a nation
passes from the former to the latter is not sudden but gradual, and marked with
shades of very various intensity. In the passage which conducts a lettered
people from the one to the other, there is almost always a moment at which the
literary genius of democratic nations has its confluence with that of
aristocracies, and both seek to establish their joint sway over the human mind.
Such epochs are transient, but very brilliant: they are fertile without
exuberance, and animated without confusion. The French literature of the
eighteenth century may serve as an example.
I should say more than I mean if I were to assert that the literature of a
nation is always subordinate to its social condition and its political
constitution. I am aware that, independently of these causes, there are several
others which confer certain characteristics on literary productions; but these
appear to me to be the chief. The relations which exist between the social and
political condition of a people and the genius of its authors are always very
numerous: whoever knows the one is never completely ignorant of the other.
Chapter XIV: The Trade Of Literature
Democracy not only infuses a taste for letters among the trading classes, but
introduces a trading spirit into literature. In aristocracies, readers are
fastidious and few in number; in democracies, they are far more numerous and far
less difficult to please. The consequence is, that among aristocratic nations,
no one can hope to succeed without immense exertions, and that these exertions
may bestow a great deal of fame, but can never earn much money; whilst among
democratic nations, a writer may flatter himself that he will obtain at a cheap
rate a meagre reputation and a large fortune. For this purpose he need not be
admired; it is enough that he is liked. The ever-increasing crowd of readers,
and their continual craving for something new, insure the sale of books which
nobody much esteems.
In democratic periods the public frequently treat authors as kings do their
courtiers; they enrich, and they despise them. What more is needed by the venal
souls which are born in courts, or which are worthy to live there? Democratic
literature is always infested with a tribe of writers who look upon letters as a
mere trade: and for some few great authors who adorn it you may reckon thousands
of idea-mongers.
Chapter XV: The Study Of Greek And Latin Literature Peculiarly Useful In
Democratic Communities
What was called the People in the most democratic republics of antiquity, was
very unlike what we designate by that term. In Athens, all the citizens took
part in public affairs; but there were only 20,000 citizens to more than 350,000
inhabitants. All the rest were slaves, and discharged the greater part of those
duties which belong at the present day to the lower or even to the middle
classes. Athens, then, with her universal suffrage, was after all merely an
aristocratic republic in which all the nobles had an equal right to the
government. The struggle between the patricians and plebeians of Rome must be
considered in the same light: it was simply an intestine feud between the elder
and younger branches of the same family. All the citizens belonged, in fact, to
the aristocracy, and partook of its character.
It is moreover to be remarked, that amongst the ancients books were always
scarce and dear; and that very great difficulties impeded their publication and
circulation. These circumstances concentrated literary tastes and habits amongst
a small number of men, who formed a small literary aristocracy out of the
choicer spirits of the great political aristocracy. Accordingly nothing goes to
prove that literature was ever treated as a trade amongst the Greeks and Romans.
These peoples, which not only constituted aristocracies, but very polished and
free nations, of course imparted to their literary productions the defects and
the merits which characterize the literature of aristocratic ages. And indeed a
very superficial survey of the literary remains of the ancients will suffice to
convince us, that if those writers were sometimes deficient in variety, or
fertility in their subjects, or in boldness, vivacity, or power of
generalization in their thoughts, they always displayed exquisite care and skill
in their details. Nothing in their works seems to be done hastily or at random:
every line is written for the eye of the connoisseur, and is shaped after some
conception of ideal beauty. No literature places those fine qualities, in which
the writers of democracies are naturally deficient, in bolder relief than that
of the ancients; no literature, therefore, ought to be more studied in
democratic ages. This study is better suited than any other to combat the
literary defects inherent in those ages; as for their more praiseworthy literary
qualities, they will spring up of their own accord, without its being necessary
to learn to acquire them.
It is important that this point should be clearly understood. A particular study
may be useful to the literature of a people, without being appropriate to its
social and political wants. If men were to persist in teaching nothing but the
literature of the dead languages in a community where everyone is habitually led
to make vehement exertions to augment or to maintain his fortune, the result
would be a very polished, but a very dangerous, race of citizens. For as their
social and political condition would give them every day a sense of wants which
their education would never teach them to supply, they would perturb the State,
in the name of the Greeks and Romans, instead of enriching it by their
productive industry.
It is evident that in democratic communities the interest of individuals, as
well as the security of the commonwealth, demands that the education of the
greater number should be scientific, commercial, and industrial, rather than
literary. Greek and Latin should not be taught in all schools; but it is
important that those who by their natural disposition or their fortune are
destined to cultivate letters or prepared to relish them, should find schools
where a complete knowledge of ancient literature may be acquired, and where the
true scholar may be formed. A few excellent universities would do more towards
the attainment of this object than a vast number of bad grammar schools, where
superfluous matters, badly learned, stand in the way of sound instruction in
necessary studies.
All who aspire to literary excellence in democratic nations, ought frequently to
refresh themselves at the springs of ancient literature: there is no more
wholesome course for the mind. Not that I hold the literary productions of the
ancients to be irreproachable; but I think that they have some especial merits,
admirably calculated to counterbalance our peculiar defects. They are a prop on
the side on which we are in most danger of falling.
Chapter XVI: The Effect Of Democracy On Language
If the reader has rightly understood what I have already said on the subject of
literature in general, he will have no difficulty in comprehending that species
of influence which a democratic social condition and democratic institutions may
exercise over language itself, which is the chief instrument of thought.
American authors may truly be said to live more in England than in their own
country; since they constantly study the English writers, and take them every
day for their models. But such is not the case with the bulk of the population,
which is more immediately subjected to the peculiar causes acting upon the
United States. It is not then to the written, but to the spoken language that
attention must be paid, if we would detect the modifications which the idiom of
an aristocratic people may undergo when it becomes the language of a democracy.
Englishmen of education, and more competent judges than I can be myself of the
nicer shades of expression, have frequently assured me that the language of the
educated classes in the United States is notably different from that of the
educated classes in Great Britain. They complain not only that the Americans
have brought into use a number of new words—the difference and the distance
between the two countries might suffice to explain that much—but that these new
words are more especially taken from the jargon of parties, the mechanical arts,
or the language of trade. They assert, in addition to this, that old English
words are often used by the Americans in new acceptations; and lastly, that the
inhabitants of the United States frequently intermingle their phraseology in the
strangest manner, and sometimes place words together which are always kept apart
in the language of the mother-country. These remarks, which were made to me at
various times by persons who appeared to be worthy of credit, led me to reflect
upon the subject; and my reflections brought me, by theoretical reasoning, to
the same point at which my informants had arrived by practical observation.
In aristocracies, language must naturally partake of that state of repose in
which everything remains. Few new words are coined, because few new things are
made; and even if new things were made, they would be designated by known words,
whose meaning has been determined by tradition. If it happens that the human
mind bestirs itself at length, or is roused by light breaking in from without,
the novel expressions which are introduced are characterized by a degree of
learning, intelligence, and philosophy, which shows that they do not originate
in a democracy. After the fall of Constantinople had turned the tide of science
and literature towards the west, the French language was almost immediately
invaded by a multitude of new words, which had all Greek or Latin roots. An
erudite neologism then sprang up in France which was confined to the educated
classes, and which produced no sensible effect, or at least a very gradual one,
upon the people. All the nations of Europe successively exhibited the same
change. Milton alone introduced more than six hundred words into the English
language, almost all derived from the Latin, the Greek, or the Hebrew. The
constant agitation which prevails in a democratic community tends unceasingly,
on the contrary, to change the character of the language, as it does the aspect
of affairs. In the midst of this general stir and competition of minds, a great
number of new ideas are formed, old ideas are lost, or reappear, or are
subdivided into an infinite variety of minor shades. The consequence is, that
many words must fall into desuetude, and others must be brought into use.
Democratic nations love change for its own sake; and this is seen in their
language as much as in their politics. Even when they do not need to change
words, they sometimes feel a wish to transform them. The genius of a democratic
people is not only shown by the great number of words they bring into use, but
also by the nature of the ideas these new words represent. Amongst such a people
the majority lays down the law in language as well as in everything else; its
prevailing spirit is as manifest in that as in other respects. But the majority
is more engaged in business than in study—in political and commercial interests
than in philosophical speculation or literary pursuits. Most of the words coined
or adopted for its use will therefore bear the mark of these habits; they will
mainly serve to express the wants of business, the passions of party, or the
details of the public administration. In these departments the language will
constantly spread, whilst on the other hand it will gradually lose ground in
metaphysics and theology.
As to the source from which democratic nations are wont to derive their new
expressions, and the manner in which they go to work to coin them, both may
easily be described. Men living in democratic countries know but little of the
language which was spoken at Athens and at Rome, and they do not care to dive
into the lore of antiquity to find the expression they happen to want. If they
have sometimes recourse to learned etymologies, vanity will induce them to
search at the roots of the dead languages; but erudition does not naturally
furnish them with its resources. The most ignorant, it sometimes happens, will
use them most. The eminently democratic desire to get above their own sphere
will often lead them to seek to dignify a vulgar profession by a Greek or Latin
name. The lower the calling is, and the more remote from learning, the more
pompous and erudite is its appellation. Thus the French rope-dancers have
transformed themselves into acrobates and funambules.
In the absence of knowledge of the dead languages, democratic nations are apt to
borrow words from living tongues; for their mutual intercourse becomes
perpetual, and the inhabitants of different countries imitate each other the
more readily as they grow more like each other every day.
But it is principally upon their own languages that democratic nations attempt
to perpetrate innovations. From time to time they resume forgotten expressions
in their vocabulary, which they restore to use; or they borrow from some
particular class of the community a term peculiar to it, which they introduce
with a figurative meaning into the language of daily life. Many expressions
which originally belonged to the technical language of a profession or a party,
are thus drawn into general circulation.
The most common expedient employed by democratic nations to make an innovation
in language consists in giving some unwonted meaning to an expression already in
use. This method is very simple, prompt, and convenient; no learning is required
to use it aright, and ignorance itself rather facilitates the practice; but that
practice is most dangerous to the language. When a democratic people doubles the
meaning of a word in this way, they sometimes render the signification which it
retains as ambiguous as that which it acquires. An author begins by a slight
deflection of a known expression from its primitive meaning, and he adapts it,
thus modified, as well as he can to his subject. A second writer twists the
sense of the expression in another way; a third takes possession of it for
another purpose; and as there is no common appeal to the sentence of a permanent
tribunal which may definitely settle the signification of the word, it remains
in an ambiguous condition. The consequence is that writers hardly ever appear to
dwell upon a single thought, but they always seem to point their aim at a knot
of ideas, leaving the reader to judge which of them has been hit. This is a
deplorable consequence of democracy. I had rather that the language should be
made hideous with words imported from the Chinese, the Tartars, or the Hurons,
than that the meaning of a word in our own language should become indeterminate.
Harmony and uniformity are only secondary beauties in composition; many of these
things are conventional, and, strictly speaking, it is possible to forego them;
but without clear phraseology there is no good language.
The principle of equality necessarily introduces several other changes into
language. In aristocratic ages, when each nation tends to stand aloof from all
others and likes to have distinct characteristics of its own, it often happens
that several peoples which have a common origin become nevertheless estranged
from each other, so that, without ceasing to understand the same language, they
no longer all speak it in the same manner. In these ages each nation is divided
into a certain number of classes, which see but little of each other, and do not
intermingle. Each of these classes contracts, and invariably retains, habits of
mind peculiar to itself, and adopts by choice certain words and certain terms,
which afterwards pass from generation to generation, like their estates. The
same idiom then comprises a language of the poor and a language of the rich—a
language of the citizen and a language of the nobility—a learned language and a
vulgar one. The deeper the divisions, and the more impassable the barriers of
society become, the more must this be the case. I would lay a wager, that
amongst the castes of India there are amazing variations of language, and that
there is almost as much difference between the language of the pariah and that
of the Brahmin as there is in their dress. When, on the contrary, men, being no
longer restrained by ranks, meet on terms of constant intercourse—when castes
are destroyed, and the classes of society are recruited and intermixed with each
other, all the words of a language are mingled. Those which are unsuitable to
the greater number perish; the remainder form a common store, whence everyone
chooses pretty nearly at random. Almost all the different dialects which divided
the idioms of European nations are manifestly declining; there is no patois in
the New World, and it is disappearing every day from the old countries.
The influence of this revolution in social conditions is as much felt in style
as it is in phraseology. Not only does everyone use the same words, but a habit
springs up of using them without discrimination. The rules which style had set
up are almost abolished: the line ceases to be drawn between expressions which
seem by their very nature vulgar, and other which appear to be refined. Persons
springing from different ranks of society carry the terms and expressions they
are accustomed to use with them, into whatever circumstances they may pass; thus
the origin of words is lost like the origin of individuals, and there is as much
confusion in language as there is in society.
I am aware that in the classification of words there are rules which do not
belong to one form of society any more than to another, but which are derived
from the nature of things. Some expressions and phrases are vulgar, because the
ideas they are meant to express are low in themselves; others are of a higher
character, because the objects they are intended to designate are naturally
elevated. No intermixture of ranks will ever efface these differences. But the
principle of equality cannot fail to root out whatever is merely conventional
and arbitrary in the forms of thought. Perhaps the necessary classification
which I pointed out in the last sentence will always be less respected by a
democratic people than by any other, because amongst such a people there are no
men who are permanently disposed by education, culture, and leisure to study the
natural laws of language, and who cause those laws to be respected by their own
observance of them.
I shall not quit this topic without touching on a feature of democratic
languages, which is perhaps more characteristic of them than any other. It has
already been shown that democratic nations have a taste, and sometimes a
passion, for general ideas, and that this arises from their peculiar merits and
defects. This liking for general ideas is displayed in democratic languages by
the continual use of generic terms or abstract expressions, and by the manner in
which they are employed. This is the great merit and the great imperfection of
these languages. Democratic nations are passionately addicted to generic terms
or abstract expressions, because these modes of speech enlarge thought, and
assist the operations of the mind by enabling it to include several objects in a
small compass. A French democratic writer will be apt to say capacites in the
abstract for men of capacity, and without particularizing the objects to which
their capacity is applied: he will talk about actualities to designate in one
word the things passing before his eyes at the instant; and he will comprehend
under the term eventualities whatever may happen in the universe, dating from
the moment at which he speaks. Democratic writers are perpetually coining words
of this kind, in which they sublimate into further abstraction the abstract
terms of the language. Nay, more, to render their mode of speech more succinct,
they personify the subject of these abstract terms, and make it act like a real
entity. Thus they would say in French, "La force des choses veut que les
capacites gouvernent."
I cannot better illustrate what I mean than by my own example. I have frequently
used the word "equality" in an absolute sense—nay, I have personified equality
in several places; thus I have said that equality does such and such things, or
refrains from doing others. It may be affirmed that the writers of the age of
Louis XIV would not have used these expressions: they would never have thought
of using the word "equality" without applying it to some particular object; and
they would rather have renounced the term altogether than have consented to make
a living personage of it.
These abstract terms which abound in democratic languages, and which are used on
every occasion without attaching them to any particular fact, enlarge and
obscure the thoughts they are intended to convey; they render the mode of speech
more succinct, and the idea contained in it less clear. But with regard to
language, democratic nations prefer obscurity to labor. I know not indeed
whether this loose style has not some secret charm for those who speak and write
amongst these nations. As the men who live there are frequently left to the
efforts of their individual powers of mind, they are almost always a prey to
doubt; and as their situation in life is forever changing, they are never held
fast to any of their opinions by the certain tenure of their fortunes. Men
living in democratic countries are, then, apt to entertain unsettled ideas, and
they require loose expressions to convey them. As they never know whether the
idea they express to-day will be appropriate to the new position they may occupy
to-morrow, they naturally acquire a liking for abstract terms. An abstract term
is like a box with a false bottom: you may put in it what ideas you please, and
take them out again without being observed.
Amongst all nations, generic and abstract terms form the basis of language. I do
not, therefore, affect to expel these terms from democratic languages; I simply
remark that men have an especial tendency, in the ages of democracy, to multiply
words of this kind—to take them always by themselves in their most abstract
acceptation, and to use them on all occasions, even when the nature of the
discourse does not require them.
Chapter XVII: Of Some Of The Sources Of Poetry Amongst Democratic Nations
Various different significations have been given to the word "poetry." It would
weary my readers if I were to lead them into a discussion as to which of these
definitions ought to be selected: I prefer telling them at once that which I
have chosen. In my opinion, poetry is the search and the delineation of the
ideal. The poet is he who, by suppressing a part of what exists, by adding some
imaginary touches to the picture, and by combining certain real circumstances,
but which do not in fact concurrently happen, completes and extends the work of
nature. Thus the object of poetry is not to represent what is true, but to adorn
it, and to present to the mind some loftier imagery. Verse, regarded as the
ideal beauty of language, may be eminently poetical; but verse does not, of
itself, constitute poetry.
I now proceed to inquire whether, amongst the actions, the sentiments, and the
opinions of democratic nations, there are any which lead to a conception of
ideal beauty, and which may for this reason be considered as natural sources of
poetry. It must in the first place, be acknowledged that the taste for ideal
beauty, and the pleasure derived from the expression of it, are never so intense
or so diffused amongst a democratic as amongst an aristocratic people. In
aristocratic nations it sometimes happens that the body goes on to act as it
were spontaneously, whilst the higher faculties are bound and burdened by
repose. Amongst these nations the people will very often display poetic tastes,
and sometimes allow their fancy to range beyond and above what surrounds them.
But in democracies the love of physical gratification, the notion of bettering
one's condition, the excitement of competition, the charm of anticipated
success, are so many spurs to urge men onwards in the active professions they
have embraced, without allowing them to deviate for an instant from the track.
The main stress of the faculties is to this point. The imagination is not
extinct; but its chief function is to devise what may be useful, and to
represent what is real.
The principle of equality not only diverts men from the description of ideal
beauty—it also diminishes the number of objects to be described. Aristocracy, by
maintaining society in a fixed position, is favorable to the solidity and
duration of positive religions, as well as to the stability of political
institutions. It not only keeps the human mind within a certain sphere of
belief, but it predisposes the mind to adopt one faith rather than another. An
aristocratic people will always be prone to place intermediate powers between
God and man. In this respect it may be said that the aristocratic element is
favorable to poetry. When the universe is peopled with supernatural creatures,
not palpable to the senses but discovered by the mind, the imagination ranges
freely, and poets, finding a thousand subjects to delineate, also find a
countless audience to take an interest in their productions. In democratic ages
it sometimes happens, on the contrary, that men are as much afloat in matters of
belief as they are in their laws. Scepticism then draws the imagination of poets
back to earth, and confines them to the real and visible world. Even when the
principle of equality does not disturb religious belief, it tends to simplify
it, and to divert attention from secondary agents, to fix it principally on the
Supreme Power. Aristocracy naturally leads the human mind to the contemplation
of the past, and fixes it there. Democracy, on the contrary, gives men a sort of
instinctive distaste for what is ancient. In this respect aristocracy is far
more favorable to poetry; for things commonly grow larger and more obscure as
they are more remote; and for this twofold reason they are better suited to the
delineation of the ideal.
After having deprived poetry of the past, the principle of equality robs it in
part of the present. Amongst aristocratic nations there are a certain number of
privileged personages, whose situation is, as it were, without and above the
condition of man; to these, power, wealth, fame, wit, refinement, and
distinction in all things appear peculiarly to belong. The crowd never sees them
very closely, or does not watch them in minute details; and little is needed to
make the description of such men poetical. On the other hand, amongst the same
people, you will meet with classes so ignorant, low, and enslaved, that they are
no less fit objects for poetry from the excess of their rudeness and
wretchedness, than the former are from their greatness and refinement. Besides,
as the different classes of which an aristocratic community is composed are
widely separated, and imperfectly acquainted with each other, the imagination
may always represent them with some addition to, or some subtraction from, what
they really are. In democratic communities, where men are all insignificant and
very much alike, each man instantly sees all his fellows when he surveys
himself. The poets of democratic ages can never, therefore, take any man in
particular as the subject of a piece; for an object of slender importance, which
is distinctly seen on all sides, will never lend itself to an ideal conception.
Thus the principle of equality; in proportion as it has established itself in
the world, has dried up most of the old springs of poetry. Let us now attempt to
show what new ones it may disclose.
When scepticism had depopulated heaven, and the progress of equality had reduced
each individual to smaller and better known proportions, the poets, not yet
aware of what they could substitute for the great themes which were departing
together with the aristocracy, turned their eyes to inanimate nature. As they
lost sight of gods and heroes, they set themselves to describe streams and
mountains. Thence originated in the last century, that kind of poetry which has
been called, by way of distinction, the descriptive. Some have thought that this
sort of delineation, embellished with all the physical and inanimate objects
which cover the earth, was the kind of poetry peculiar to democratic ages; but I
believe this to be an error, and that it only belongs to a period of transition.
I am persuaded that in the end democracy diverts the imagination from all that
is external to man, and fixes it on man alone. Democratic nations may amuse
themselves for a while with considering the productions of nature; but they are
only excited in reality by a survey of themselves. Here, and here alone, the
true sources of poetry amongst such nations are to be found; and it may be
believed that the poets who shall neglect to draw their inspirations hence, will
lose all sway over the minds which they would enchant, and will be left in the
end with none but unimpassioned spectators of their transports. I have shown how
the ideas of progression and of the indefinite perfectibility of the human race
belong to democratic ages. Democratic nations care but little for what has been,
but they are haunted by visions of what will be; in this direction their
unbounded imagination grows and dilates beyond all measure. Here then is the
wildest range open to the genius of poets, which allows them to remove their
performances to a sufficient distance from the eye. Democracy shuts the past
against the poet, but opens the future before him. As all the citizens who
compose a democratic community are nearly equal and alike, the poet cannot dwell
upon any one of them; but the nation itself invites the exercise of his powers.
The general similitude of individuals, which renders any one of them taken
separately an improper subject of poetry, allows poets to include them all in
the same imagery, and to take a general survey of the people itself. Democractic
nations have a clearer perception than any others of their own aspect; and an
aspect so imposing is admirably fitted to the delineation of the ideal.
I readily admit that the Americans have no poets; I cannot allow that they have
no poetic ideas. In Europe people talk a great deal of the wilds of America, but
the Americans themselves never think about them: they are insensible to the
wonders of inanimate nature, and they may be said not to perceive the mighty
forests which surround them till they fall beneath the hatchet. Their eyes are
fixed upon another sight: the American people views its own march across these
wilds—drying swamps, turning the course of rivers, peopling solitudes, and
subduing nature. This magnificent image of themselves does not meet the gaze of
the Americans at intervals only; it may be said to haunt every one of them in
his least as well as in his most important actions, and to be always flitting
before his mind. Nothing conceivable is so petty, so insipid, so crowded with
paltry interests, in one word so anti-poetic, as the life of a man in the United
States. But amongst the thoughts which it suggests there is always one which is
full of poetry, and that is the hidden nerve which gives vigor to the frame.
In aristocratic ages each people, as well as each individual, is prone to stand
separate and aloof from all others. In democratic ages, the extreme fluctuations
of men and the impatience of their desires keep them perpetually on the move; so
that the inhabitants of different countries intermingle, see, listen to, and
borrow from each other's stores. It is not only then the members of the same
community who grow more alike; communities are themselves assimilated to one
another, and the whole assemblage presents to the eye of the spectator one vast
democracy, each citizen of which is a people. This displays the aspect of
mankind for the first time in the broadest light. All that belongs to the
existence of the human race taken as a whole, to its vicissitudes and to its
future, becomes an abundant mine of poetry. The poets who lived in aristocratic
ages have been eminently successful in their delineations of certain incidents
in the life of a people or a man; but none of them ever ventured to include
within his performances the destinies of mankind—a task which poets writing in
democratic ages may attempt. At that same time at which every man, raising his
eyes above his country, begins at length to discern mankind at large, the
Divinity is more and more manifest to the human mind in full and entire majesty.
If in democratic ages faith in positive religions be often shaken, and the
belief in intermediate agents, by whatever name they are called, be overcast; on
the other hand men are disposed to conceive a far broader idea of Providence
itself, and its interference in human affairs assumes a new and more imposing
appearance to their eyes. Looking at the human race as one great whole, they
easily conceive that its destinies are regulated by the same design; and in the
actions of every individual they are led to acknowledge a trace of that
universal and eternal plan on which God rules our race. This consideration may
be taken as another prolific source of poetry which is opened in democratic
ages. Democratic poets will always appear trivial and frigid if they seek to
invest gods, demons, or angels, with corporeal forms, and if they attempt to
draw them down from heaven to dispute the supremacy of earth. But if they strive
to connect the great events they commemorate with the general providential
designs which govern the universe, and, without showing the finger of the
Supreme Governor, reveal the thoughts of the Supreme Mind, their works will be
admired and understood, for the imagination of their contemporaries takes this
direction of its own accord.
It may be foreseen in the like manner that poets living in democratic ages will
prefer the delineation of passions and ideas to that of persons and
achievements. The language, the dress, and the daily actions of men in
democracies are repugnant to ideal conceptions. These things are not poetical in
themselves; and, if it were otherwise, they would cease to be so, because they
are too familiar to all those to whom the poet would speak of them. This forces
the poet constantly to search below the external surface which is palpable to
the senses, in order to read the inner soul: and nothing lends itself more to
the delineation of the ideal than the scrutiny of the hidden depths in the
immaterial nature of man. I need not to ramble over earth and sky to discover a
wondrous object woven of contrasts, of greatness and littleness infinite, of
intense gloom and of amazing brightness—capable at once of exciting pity,
admiration, terror, contempt. I find that object in myself. Man springs out of
nothing, crosses time, and disappears forever in the bosom of God; he is seen
but for a moment, staggering on the verge of the two abysses, and there he is
lost. If man were wholly ignorant of himself, he would have no poetry in him;
for it is impossible to describe what the mind does not conceive. If man clearly
discerned his own nature, his imagination would remain idle, and would have
nothing to add to the picture. But the nature of man is sufficiently disclosed
for him to apprehend something of himself; and sufficiently obscure for all the
rest to be plunged in thick darkness, in which he gropes forever—and forever in
vain—to lay hold on some completer notion of his being.
Amongst a democratic people poetry will not be fed with legendary lays or the
memorials of old traditions. The poet will not attempt to people the universe
with supernatural beings in whom his readers and his own fancy have ceased to
believe; nor will he present virtues and vices in the mask of frigid
personification, which are better received under their own features. All these
resources fail him; but Man remains, and the poet needs no more. The destinies
of mankind—man himself, taken aloof from his age and his country, and standing
in the presence of Nature and of God, with his passions, his doubts, his rare
prosperities, and inconceivable wretchedness—will become the chief, if not the
sole theme of poetry amongst these nations. Experience may confirm this
assertion, if we consider the productions of the greatest poets who have
appeared since the world has been turned to democracy. The authors of our age
who have so admirably delineated the features of Faust, Childe Harold, Rene, and
Jocelyn, did not seek to record the actions of an individual, but to enlarge and
to throw light on some of the obscurer recesses of the human heart. Such are the
poems of democracy. The principle of equality does not then destroy all the
subjects of poetry: it renders them less numerous, but more vast.
Chapter XVIII: Of The Inflated Style Of American Writers And Orators
I have frequently remarked that the Americans, who generally treat of business
in clear, plain language, devoid of all ornament, and so extremely simple as to
be often coarse, are apt to become inflated as soon as they attempt a more
poetical diction. They then vent their pomposity from one end of a harangue to
the other; and to hear them lavish imagery on every occasion, one might fancy
that they never spoke of anything with simplicity. The English are more rarely
given to a similar failing. The cause of this may be pointed out without much
difficulty. In democratic communities each citizen is habitually engaged in the
contemplation of a very puny object, namely himself. If he ever raises his looks
higher, he then perceives nothing but the immense form of society at large, or
the still more imposing aspect of mankind. His ideas are all either extremely
minute and clear, or extremely general and vague: what lies between is an open
void. When he has been drawn out of his own sphere, therefore, he always expects
that some amazing object will be offered to his attention; and it is on these
terms alone that he consents to tear himself for an instant from the petty
complicated cares which form the charm and the excitement of his life. This
appears to me sufficiently to explain why men in democracies, whose concerns are
in general so paltry, call upon their poets for conceptions so vast and
descriptions so unlimited.
The authors, on their part, do not fail to obey a propensity of which they
themselves partake; they perpetually inflate their imaginations, and expanding
them beyond all bounds, they not unfrequently abandon the great in order to
reach the gigantic. By these means they hope to attract the observation of the
multitude, and to fix it easily upon themselves: nor are their hopes
disappointed; for as the multitude seeks for nothing in poetry but subjects of
very vast dimensions, it has neither the time to measure with accuracy the
proportions of all the subjects set before it, nor a taste sufficiently correct
to perceive at once in what respect they are out of proportion. The author and
the public at once vitiate one another.
We have just seen that amongst democratic nations, the sources of poetry are
grand, but not abundant. They are soon exhausted: and poets, not finding the
elements of the ideal in what is real and true, abandon them entirely and create
monsters. I do not fear that the poetry of democratic nations will prove too
insipid, or that it will fly too near the ground; I rather apprehend that it
will be forever losing itself in the clouds, and that it will range at last to
purely imaginary regions. I fear that the productions of democratic poets may
often be surcharged with immense and incoherent imagery, with exaggerated
descriptions and strange creations; and that the fantastic beings of their brain
may sometimes make us regret the world of reality.
Chapter XIX: Some Observations On The Drama Amongst Democratic Nations
When the revolution which subverts the social and political state of an
aristocratic people begins to penetrate into literature, it generally first
manifests itself in the drama, and it always remains conspicuous there. The
spectator of a dramatic piece is, to a certain extent, taken by surprise by the
impression it conveys. He has no time to refer to his memory, or to consult
those more able to judge than himself. It does not occur to him to resist the
new literary tendencies which begin to be felt by him; he yields to them before
he knows what they are. Authors are very prompt in discovering which way the
taste of the public is thus secretly inclined. They shape their productions
accordingly; and the literature of the stage, after having served to indicate
the approaching literary revolution, speedily completes its accomplishment. If
you would judge beforehand of the literature of a people which is lapsing into
democracy, study its dramatic productions.
The literature of the stage, moreover, even amongst aristocratic nations,
constitutes the most democratic part of their literature. No kind of literary
gratification is so much within the reach of the multitude as that which is
derived from theatrical representations. Neither preparation nor study is
required to enjoy them: they lay hold on you in the midst of your prejudices and
your ignorance. When the yet untutored love of the pleasures of the mind begins
to affect a class of the community, it instantly draws them to the stage. The
theatres of aristocratic nations have always been filled with spectators not
belonging to the aristocracy. At the theatre alone the higher ranks mix with the
middle and the lower classes; there alone do the former consent to listen to the
opinion of the latter, or at least to allow them to give an opinion at all. At
the theatre, men of cultivation and of literary attainments have always had more
difficulty than elsewhere in making their taste prevail over that of the people,
and in preventing themselves from being carried away by the latter. The pit has
frequently made laws for the boxes.
If it be difficult for an aristocracy to prevent the people from getting the
upper hand in the theatre, it will readily be understood that the people will be
supreme there when democratic principles have crept into the laws and
manners—when ranks are intermixed—when minds, as well as fortunes, are brought
more nearly together—and when the upper class has lost, with its hereditary
wealth, its power, its precedents, and its leisure. The tastes and propensities
natural to democratic nations, in respect to literature, will therefore first be
discernible in the drama, and it may be foreseen that they will break out there
with vehemence. In written productions, the literary canons of aristocracy will
be gently, gradually, and, so to speak, legally modified; at the theatre they
will be riotously overthrown. The drama brings out most of the good qualities,
and almost all the defects, inherent in democratic literature. Democratic
peoples hold erudition very cheap, and care but little for what occurred at Rome
and Athens; they want to hear something which concerns themselves, and the
delineation of the present age is what they demand.
When the heroes and the manners of antiquity are frequently brought upon the
stage, and dramatic authors faithfully observe the rules of antiquated
precedent, that is enough to warrant a conclusion that the democratic classes
have not yet got the upper hand of the theatres. Racine makes a very humble
apology in the preface to the "Britannicus" for having disposed of Junia amongst
the Vestals, who, according to Aulus Gellius, he says, "admitted no one below
six years of age nor above ten." We may be sure that he would neither have
accused himself of the offence, nor defended himself from censure, if he had
written for our contemporaries. A fact of this kind not only illustrates the
state of literature at the time when it occurred, but also that of society
itself. A democratic stage does not prove that the nation is in a state of
democracy, for, as we have just seen, even in aristocracies it may happen that
democratic tastes affect the drama; but when the spirit of aristocracy reigns
exclusively on the stage, the fact irrefragably demonstrates that the whole of
society is aristocratic; and it may be boldly inferred that the same lettered
and learned class which sways the dramatic writers commands the people and
governs the country.
The refined tastes and the arrogant bearing of an aristocracy will rarely fail
to lead it, when it manages the stage, to make a kind of selection in human
nature. Some of the conditions of society claim its chief interest; and the
scenes which delineate their manners are preferred upon the stage. Certain
virtues, and even certain vices, are thought more particularly to deserve to
figure there; and they are applauded whilst all others are excluded. Upon the
stage, as well as elsewhere, an aristocratic audience will only meet personages
of quality, and share the emotions of kings. The same thing applies to style: an
aristocracy is apt to impose upon dramatic authors certain modes of expression
which give the key in which everything is to be delivered. By these means the
stage frequently comes to delineate only one side of man, or sometimes even to
represent what is not to be met with in human nature at all—to rise above nature
and to go beyond it.
In democratic communities the spectators have no such partialities, and they
rarely display any such antipathies: they like to see upon the stage that medley
of conditions, of feelings, and of opinions, which occurs before their eyes. The
drama becomes more striking, more common, and more true. Sometimes, however,
those who write for the stage in democracies also transgress the bounds of human
nature—but it is on a different side from their predecessors. By seeking to
represent in minute detail the little singularities of the moment and the
peculiar characteristics of certain personages, they forget to portray the
general features of the race.
When the democratic classes rule the stage, they introduce as much license in
the manner of treating subjects as in the choice of them. As the love of the
drama is, of all literary tastes, that which is most natural to democratic
nations, the number of authors and of spectators, as well as of theatrical
representations, is constantly increasing amongst these communities. A multitude
composed of elements so different, and scattered in so many different places,
cannot acknowledge the same rules or submit to the same laws. No concurrence is
possible amongst judges so numerous, who know not when they may meet again; and
therefore each pronounces his own sentence on the piece. If the effect of
democracy is generally to question the authority of all literary rules and
conventions, on the stage it abolishes them altogether, and puts in their place
nothing but the whim of each author and of each public.
The drama also displays in an especial manner the truth of what I have said
before in speaking more generally of style and art in democratic literature. In
reading the criticisms which were occasioned by the dramatic productions of the
age of Louis XIV, one is surprised to remark the great stress which the public
laid on the probability of the plot, and the importance which was attached to
the perfect consistency of the characters, and to their doing nothing which
could not be easily explained and understood. The value which was set upon the
forms of language at that period, and the paltry strife about words with which
dramatic authors were assailed, are no less surprising. It would seem that the
men of the age of Louis XIV attached very exaggerated importance to those
details, which may be perceived in the study, but which escape attention on the
stage. For, after all, the principal object of a dramatic piece is to be
performed, and its chief merit is to affect the audience. But the audience and
the readers in that age were the same: on quitting the theatre they called up
the author for judgment to their own firesides. In democracies, dramatic pieces
are listened to, but not read. Most of those who frequent the amusements of the
stage do not go there to seek the pleasures of the mind, but the keen emotions
of the heart. They do not expect to hear a fine literary work, but to see a
play; and provided the author writes the language of his country correctly
enough to be understood, and that his characters excite curiosity and awaken
sympathy, the audience are satisfied. They ask no more of fiction, and
immediately return to real life. Accuracy of style is therefore less required,
because the attentive observance of its rules is less perceptible on the stage.
As for the probability of the plot, it is incompatible with perpetual novelty,
surprise, and rapidity of invention. It is therefore neglected, and the public
excuses the neglect. You may be sure that if you succeed in bringing your
audience into the presence of something that affects them, they will not care by
what road you brought them there; and they will never reproach you for having
excited their emotions in spite of dramatic rules.
The Americans very broadly display all the different propensities which I have
here described when they go to the theatres; but it must be acknowledged that as
yet a very small number of them go to theatres at all. Although playgoers and
plays have prodigiously increased in the United States in the last forty years,
the population indulges in this kind of amusement with the greatest reserve.
This is attributable to peculiar causes, which the reader is already acquainted
with, and of which a few words will suffice to remind him. The Puritans who
founded the American republics were not only enemies to amusements, but they
professed an especial abhorrence for the stage. They considered it as an
abominable pastime; and as long as their principles prevailed with undivided
sway, scenic performances were wholly unknown amongst them. These opinions of
the first fathers of the colony have left very deep marks on the minds of their
descendants. The extreme regularity of habits and the great strictness of
manners which are observable in the United States, have as yet opposed
additional obstacles to the growth of dramatic art. There are no dramatic
subjects in a country which has witnessed no great political catastrophes, and
in which love invariably leads by a straight and easy road to matrimony. People
who spend every day in the week in making money, and the Sunday in going to
church, have nothing to invite the muse of Comedy.
A single fact suffices to show that the stage is not very popular in the United
States. The Americans, whose laws allow of the utmost freedom and even license
of language in all other respects, have nevertheless subjected their dramatic
authors to a sort of censorship. Theatrical performances can only take place by
permission of the municipal authorities. This may serve to show how much
communities are like individuals; they surrender themselves unscrupulously to
their ruling passions, and afterwards take the greatest care not to yield too
much to the vehemence of tastes which they do not possess.
No portion of literature is connected by closer or more numerous ties with the
present condition of society than the drama. The drama of one period can never
be suited to the following age, if in the interval an important revolution has
changed the manners and the laws of the nation. The great authors of a preceding
age may be read; but pieces written for a different public will not be followed.
The dramatic authors of the past live only in books. The traditional taste of
certain individuals, vanity, fashion, or the genius of an actor may sustain or
resuscitate for a time the aristocratic drama amongst a democracy; but it will
speedily fall away of itself—not overthrown, but abandoned.
Chapter XX: Characteristics Of Historians In Democratic Ages
Historians who write in aristocratic ages are wont to refer all occurrences to
the particular will or temper of certain individuals; and they are apt to
attribute the most important revolutions to very slight accidents. They trace
out the smallest causes with sagacity, and frequently leave the greatest
unperceived. Historians who live in democratic ages exhibit precisely opposite
characteristics. Most of them attribute hardly any influence to the individual
over the destiny of the race, nor to citizens over the fate of a people; but, on
the other hand, they assign great general causes to all petty incidents. These
contrary tendencies explain each other.
When the historian of aristocratic ages surveys the theatre of the world, he at
once perceives a very small number of prominent actors, who manage the whole
piece. These great personages, who occupy the front of the stage, arrest the
observation, and fix it on themselves; and whilst the historian is bent on
penetrating the secret motives which make them speak and act, the rest escape
his memory. The importance of the things which some men are seen to do, gives
him an exaggerated estimate of the influence which one man may possess; and
naturally leads him to think, that in order to explain the impulses of the
multitude, it is necessary to refer them to the particular influence of some one
individual.
When, on the contrary, all the citizens are independent of one another, and each
of them is individually weak, no one is seen to exert a great, or still less a
lasting power, over the community. At first sight, individuals appear to be
absolutely devoid of any influence over it; and society would seem to advance
alone by the free and voluntary concurrence of all the men who compose it. This
naturally prompts the mind to search for that general reason which operates upon
so many men's faculties at the same time, and turns them simultaneously in the
same direction.
I am very well convinced that even amongst democratic nations, the genius, the
vices, or the virtues of certain individuals retard or accelerate the natural
current of a people's history: but causes of this secondary and fortuitous
nature are infinitely more various, more concealed, more complex, less powerful,
and consequently less easy to trace in periods of equality than in ages of
aristocracy, when the task of the historian is simply to detach from the mass of
general events the particular influences of one man or of a few men. In the
former case the historian is soon wearied by the toil; his mind loses itself in
this labyrinth; and, in his inability clearly to discern or conspicuously to
point out the influence of individuals, he denies their existence. He prefers
talking about the characteristics of race, the physical conformation of the
country, or the genius of civilization, which abridges his own labors, and
satisfies his reader far better at less cost.
M. de Lafayette says somewhere in his "Memoirs" that the exaggerated system of
general causes affords surprising consolations to second-rate statesmen. I will
add, that its effects are not less consolatory to second-rate historians; it can
always furnish a few mighty reasons to extricate them from the most difficult
part of their work, and it indulges the indolence or incapacity of their minds,
whilst it confers upon them the honors of deep thinking.
For myself, I am of opinion that at all times one great portion of the events of
this world are attributable to general facts, and another to special influences.
These two kinds of cause are always in operation: their proportion only varies.
General facts serve to explain more things in democratic than in aristocratic
ages, and fewer things are then assignable to special influences. At periods of
aristocracy the reverse takes place: special influences are stronger, general
causes weaker—unless indeed we consider as a general cause the fact itself of
the inequality of conditions, which allows some individuals to baffle the
natural tendencies of all the rest. The historians who seek to describe what
occurs in democratic societies are right, therefore, in assigning much to
general causes, and in devoting their chief attention to discover them; but they
are wrong in wholly denying the special influence of individuals, because they
cannot easily trace or follow it.
The historians who live in democratic ages are not only prone to assign a great
cause to every incident, but they are also given to connect incidents together,
so as to deduce a system from them. In aristocratic ages, as the attention of
historians is constantly drawn to individuals, the connection of events escapes
them; or rather, they do not believe in any such connection. To them the clew of
history seems every instant crossed and broken by the step of man. In democratic
ages, on the contrary, as the historian sees much more of actions than of
actors, he may easily establish some kind of sequency and methodical order
amongst the former. Ancient literature, which is so rich in fine historical
compositions, does not contain a single great historical system, whilst the
poorest of modern literatures abound with them. It would appear that the ancient
historians did not make sufficient use of those general theories which our
historical writers are ever ready to carry to excess.
Those who write in democratic ages have another more dangerous tendency. When
the traces of individual action upon nations are lost, it often happens that the
world goes on to move, though the moving agent is no longer discoverable. As it
becomes extremely difficult to discern and to analyze the reasons which, acting
separately on the volition of each member of the community, concur in the end to
produce movement in the old mass, men are led to believe that this movement is
involuntary, and that societies unconsciously obey some superior force ruling
over them. But even when the general fact which governs the private volition of
all individuals is supposed to be discovered upon the earth, the principle of
human free-will is not secure. A cause sufficiently extensive to affect millions
of men at once, and sufficiently strong to bend them all together in the same
direction, may well seem irresistible: having seen that mankind do yield to it,
the mind is close upon the inference that mankind cannot resist it.
Historians who live in democratic ages, then, not only deny that the few have
any power of acting upon the destiny of a people, but they deprive the people
themselves of the power of modifying their own condition, and they subject them
either to an inflexible Providence, or to some blind necessity. According to
them, each nation is indissolubly bound by its position, its origin, its
precedents, and its character, to a certain lot which no efforts can ever
change. They involve generation in generation, and thus, going back from age to
age, and from necessity to necessity, up to the origin of the world, they forge
a close and enormous chain, which girds and binds the human race. To their minds
it is not enough to show what events have occurred: they would fain show that
events could not have occurred otherwise. They take a nation arrived at a
certain stage of its history, and they affirm that it could not but follow the
track which brought it thither. It is easier to make such an assertion than to
show by what means the nation might have adopted a better course.
In reading the historians of aristocratic ages, and especially those of
antiquity, it would seem that, to be master of his lot, and to govern his
fellow-creatures, man requires only to be master of himself. In perusing the
historical volumes which our age has produced, it would seem that man is utterly
powerless over himself and over all around him. The historians of antiquity
taught how to command: those of our time teach only how to obey; in their
writings the author often appears great, but humanity is always diminutive. If
this doctrine of necessity, which is so attractive to those who write history in
democratic ages, passes from authors to their readers, till it infects the whole
mass of the community and gets possession of the public mind, it will soon
paralyze the activity of modern society, and reduce Christians to the level of
the Turks. I would moreover observe, that such principles are peculiarly
dangerous at the period at which we are arrived. Our contemporaries are but too
prone to doubt of the human free-will, because each of them feels himself
confined on every side by his own weakness; but they are still willing to
acknowledge the strength and independence of men united in society. Let not this
principle be lost sight of; for the great object in our time is to raise the
faculties of men, not to complete their prostration.
Chapter XXI: Of Parliamentary Eloquence In The United States
Amongst aristocratic nations all the members of the community are connected with
and dependent upon each other; the graduated scale of different ranks acts as a
tie, which keeps everyone in his proper place and the whole body in
subordination. Something of the same kind always occurs in the political
assemblies of these nations. Parties naturally range themselves under certain
leaders, whom they obey by a sort of instinct, which is only the result of
habits contracted elsewhere. They carry the manners of general society into the
lesser assemblage.
In democratic countries it often happens that a great number of citizens are
tending to the same point; but each one only moves thither, or at least flatters
himself that he moves, of his own accord. Accustomed to regulate his doings by
personal impulse alone, he does not willingly submit to dictation from without.
This taste and habit of independence accompany him into the councils of the
nation. If he consents to connect himself with other men in the prosecution of
the same purpose, at least he chooses to remain free to contribute to the common
success after his own fashion. Hence it is that in democratic countries parties
are so impatient of control, and are never manageable except in moments of great
public danger. Even then, the authority of leaders, which under such
circumstances may be able to make men act or speak, hardly ever reaches the
extent of making them keep silence.
Amongst aristocratic nations the members of political assemblies are at the same
time members of the aristocracy. Each of them enjoys high established rank in
his own right, and the position which he occupies in the assembly is often less
important in his eyes than that which he fills in the country. This consoles him
for playing no part in the discussion of public affairs, and restrains him from
too eagerly attempting to play an insignificant one.
In America, it generally happens that a Representative only becomes somebody
from his position in the Assembly. He is therefore perpetually haunted by a
craving to acquire importance there, and he feels a petulant desire to be
constantly obtruding his opinions upon the House. His own vanity is not the only
stimulant which urges him on in this course, but that of his constituents, and
the continual necessity of propitiating them. Amongst aristocratic nations a
member of the legislature is rarely in strict dependence upon his constituents:
he is frequently to them a sort of unavoidable representative; sometimes they
are themselves strictly dependent upon him; and if at length they reject him, he
may easily get elected elsewhere, or, retiring from public life, he may still
enjoy the pleasures of splendid idleness. In a democratic country like the
United States a Representative has hardly ever a lasting hold on the minds of
his constituents. However small an electoral body may be, the fluctuations of
democracy are constantly changing its aspect; it must, therefore, be courted
unceasingly. He is never sure of his supporters, and, if they forsake him, he is
left without a resource; for his natural position is not sufficiently elevated
for him to be easily known to those not close to him; and, with the complete
state of independence prevailing among the people, he cannot hope that his
friends or the government will send him down to be returned by an electoral body
unacquainted with him. The seeds of his fortune are, therefore, sown in his own
neighborhood; from that nook of earth he must start, to raise himself to the
command of a people and to influence the destinies of the world. Thus it is
natural that in democratic countries the members of political assemblies think
more of their constituents than of their party, whilst in aristocracies they
think more of their party than of their constituents.
But what ought to be said to gratify constituents is not always what ought to be
said in order to serve the party to which Representatives profess to belong. The
general interest of a party frequently demands that members belonging to it
should not speak on great questions which they understand imperfectly; that they
should speak but little on those minor questions which impede the great ones;
lastly, and for the most part, that they should not speak at all. To keep
silence is the most useful service that an indifferent spokesman can render to
the commonwealth. Constituents, however, do not think so. The population of a
district sends a representative to take a part in the government of a country,
because they entertain a very lofty notion of his merits. As men appear greater
in proportion to the littleness of the objects by which they are surrounded, it
may be assumed that the opinion entertained of the delegate will be so much the
higher as talents are more rare among his constituents. It will therefore
frequently happen that the less constituents have to expect from their
representative, the more they will anticipate from him; and, however incompetent
he may be, they will not fail to call upon him for signal exertions,
corresponding to the rank they have conferred upon him.
Independently of his position as a legislator of the State, electors also regard
their Representative as the natural patron of the constituency in the
Legislature; they almost consider him as the proxy of each of his supporters,
and they flatter themselves that he will not be less zealous in defense of their
private interests than of those of the country. Thus electors are well assured
beforehand that the Representative of their choice will be an orator; that he
will speak often if he can, and that in case he is forced to refrain, he will
strive at any rate to compress into his less frequent orations an inquiry into
all the great questions of state, combined with a statement of all the petty
grievances they have themselves to complain to; so that, though he be not able
to come forward frequently, he should on each occasion prove what he is capable
of doing; and that, instead of perpetually lavishing his powers, he should
occasionally condense them in a small compass, so as to furnish a sort of
complete and brilliant epitome of his constituents and of himself. On these
terms they will vote for him at the next election. These conditions drive worthy
men of humble abilities to despair, who, knowing their own powers, would never
voluntarily have come forward. But thus urged on, the Representative begins to
speak, to the great alarm of his friends; and rushing imprudently into the midst
of the most celebrated orators, he perplexes the debate and wearies the House.
All laws which tend to make the Representative more dependent on the elector,
not only affect the conduct of the legislators, as I have remarked elsewhere,
but also their language. They exercise a simultaneous influence on affairs
themselves, and on the manner in which affairs are discussed.
There is hardly a member of Congress who can make up his mind to go home without
having despatched at least one speech to his constituents; nor who will endure
any interruption until he has introduced into his harangue whatever useful
suggestions may be made touching the four-and-twenty States of which the Union
is composed, and especially the district which he represents. He therefore
presents to the mind of his auditors a succession of great general truths (which
he himself only comprehends, and expresses, confusedly), and of petty minutia,
which he is but too able to discover and to point out. The consequence is that
the debates of that great assembly are frequently vague and perplexed, and that
they seem rather to drag their slow length along than to advance towards a
distinct object. Some such state of things will, I believe, always arise in the
public assemblies of democracies.
Propitious circumstances and good laws might succeed in drawing to the
legislature of a democratic people men very superior to those who are returned
by the Americans to Congress; but nothing will ever prevent the men of slender
abilities who sit there from obtruding themselves with complacency, and in all
ways, upon the public. The evil does not appear to me to be susceptible of
entire cure, because it not only originates in the tactics of that assembly, but
in its constitution and in that of the country. The inhabitants of the United
States seem themselves to consider the matter in this light; and they show their
long experience of parliamentary life not by abstaining from making bad
speeches, but by courageously submitting to hear them made. They are resigned to
it, as to an evil which they know to be inevitable.
We have shown the petty side of political debates in democratic assemblies—let
us now exhibit the more imposing one. The proceedings within the Parliament of
England for the last one hundred and fifty years have never occasioned any great
sensation out of that country; the opinions and feelings expressed by the
speakers have never awakened much sympathy, even amongst the nations placed
nearest to the great arena of British liberty; whereas Europe was excited by the
very first debates which took place in the small colonial assemblies of America
at the time of the Revolution. This was attributable not only to particular and
fortuitous circumstances, but to general and lasting causes. I can conceive
nothing more admirable or more powerful than a great orator debating on great
questions of state in a democratic assembly. As no particular class is ever
represented there by men commissioned to defend its own interests, it is always
to the whole nation, and in the name of the whole nation, that the orator
speaks. This expands his thoughts, and heightens his power of language. As
precedents have there but little weight-as there are no longer any privileges
attached to certain property, nor any rights inherent in certain bodies or in
certain individuals, the mind must have recourse to general truths derived from
human nature to resolve the particular question under discussion. Hence the
political debates of a democratic people, however small it may be, have a degree
of breadth which frequently renders them attractive to mankind. All men are
interested by them, because they treat of man, who is everywhere the same.
Amongst the greatest aristocratic nations, on the contrary, the most general
questions are almost always argued on some special grounds derived from the
practice of a particular time, or the rights of a particular class; which
interest that class alone, or at most the people amongst whom that class happens
to exist. It is owing to this, as much as to the greatness of the French people,
and the favorable disposition of the nations who listen to them, that the great
effect which the French political debates sometimes produce in the world, must
be attributed. The orators of France frequently speak to mankind, even when they
are addressing their countrymen only.
Section 2: Influence of Democracy on the Feelings of Americans
Chapter I: Why Democratic Nations Show A More Ardent And Enduring Love Of
Equality Than Of Liberty
The first and most intense passion which is engendered by the equality of
conditions is, I need hardly say, the love of that same equality. My readers
will therefore not be surprised that I speak of its before all others. Everybody
has remarked that in our time, and especially in France, this passion for
equality is every day gaining ground in the human heart. It has been said a
hundred times that our contemporaries are far more ardently and tenaciously
attached to equality than to freedom; but as I do not find that the causes of
the fact have been sufficiently analyzed, I shall endeavor to point them out.
It is possible to imagine an extreme point at which freedom and equality would
meet and be confounded together. Let us suppose that all the members of the
community take a part in the government, and that each of them has an equal
right to take a part in it. As none is different from his fellows, none can
exercise a tyrannical power: men will be perfectly free, because they will all
be entirely equal; and they will all be perfectly equal, because they will be
entirely free. To this ideal state democratic nations tend. Such is the
completest form that equality can assume upon earth; but there are a thousand
others which, without being equally perfect, are not less cherished by those
nations.
The principle of equality may be established in civil society, without
prevailing in the political world. Equal rights may exist of indulging in the
same pleasures, of entering the same professions, of frequenting the same
places—in a word, of living in the same manner and seeking wealth by the same
means, although all men do not take an equal share in the government. A kind of
equality may even be established in the political world, though there should be
no political freedom there. A man may be the equal of all his countrymen save
one, who is the master of all without distinction, and who selects equally from
among them all the agents of his power. Several other combinations might be
easily imagined, by which very great equality would be united to institutions
more or less free, or even to institutions wholly without freedom. Although men
cannot become absolutely equal unless they be entirely free, and consequently
equality, pushed to its furthest extent, may be confounded with freedom, yet
there is good reason for distinguishing the one from the other. The taste which
men have for liberty, and that which they feel for equality, are, in fact, two
different things; and I am not afraid to add that, amongst democratic nations,
they are two unequal things.
Upon close inspection, it will be seen that there is in every age some peculiar
and preponderating fact with which all others are connected; this fact almost
always gives birth to some pregnant idea or some ruling passion, which attracts
to itself, and bears away in its course, all the feelings and opinions of the
time: it is like a great stream, towards which each of the surrounding rivulets
seems to flow. Freedom has appeared in the world at different times and under
various forms; it has not been exclusively bound to any social condition, and it
is not confined to democracies. Freedom cannot, therefore, form the
distinguishing characteristic of democratic ages. The peculiar and
preponderating fact which marks those ages as its own is the equality of
conditions; the ruling passion of men in those periods is the love of this
equality. Ask not what singular charm the men of democratic ages find in being
equal, or what special reasons they may have for clinging so tenaciously to
equality rather than to the other advantages which society holds out to them:
equality is the distinguishing characteristic of the age they live in; that, of
itself, is enough to explain that they prefer it to all the rest.
But independently of this reason there are several others, which will at all
times habitually lead men to prefer equality to freedom. If a people could ever
succeed in destroying, or even in diminishing, the equality which prevails in
its own body, this could only be accomplished by long and laborious efforts. Its
social condition must be modified, its laws abolished, its opinions superseded,
its habits changed, its manners corrupted. But political liberty is more easily
lost; to neglect to hold it fast is to allow it to escape. Men therefore not
only cling to equality because it is dear to them; they also adhere to it
because they think it will last forever.
That political freedom may compromise in its excesses the tranquillity, the
property, the lives of individuals, is obvious to the narrowest and most
unthinking minds. But, on the contrary, none but attentive and clear-sighted men
perceive the perils with which equality threatens us, and they commonly avoid
pointing them out. They know that the calamities they apprehend are remote, and
flatter themselves that they will only fall upon future generations, for which
the present generation takes but little thought. The evils which freedom
sometimes brings with it are immediate; they are apparent to all, and all are
more or less affected by them. The evils which extreme equality may produce are
slowly disclosed; they creep gradually into the social frame; they are only seen
at intervals, and at the moment at which they become most violent habit already
causes them to be no longer felt. The advantages which freedom brings are only
shown by length of time; and it is always easy to mistake the cause in which
they originate. The advantages of equality are instantaneous, and they may
constantly be traced from their source. Political liberty bestows exalted
pleasures, from time to time, upon a certain number of citizens. Equality every
day confers a number of small enjoyments on every man. The charms of equality
are every instant felt, and are within the reach of all; the noblest hearts are
not insensible to them, and the most vulgar souls exult in them. The passion
which equality engenders must therefore be at once strong and general. Men
cannot enjoy political liberty unpurchased by some sacrifices, and they never
obtain it without great exertions. But the pleasures of equality are
self-proffered: each of the petty incidents of life seems to occasion them, and
in order to taste them nothing is required but to live.
Democratic nations are at all times fond of equality, but there are certain
epochs at which the passion they entertain for it swells to the height of fury.
This occurs at the moment when the old social system, long menaced, completes
its own destruction after a last intestine struggle, and when the barriers of
rank are at length thrown down. At such times men pounce upon equality as their
booty, and they cling to it as to some precious treasure which they fear to
lose. The passion for equality penetrates on every side into men's hearts,
expands there, and fills them entirely. Tell them not that by this blind
surrender of themselves to an exclusive passion they risk their dearest
interests: they are deaf. Show them not freedom escaping from their grasp,
whilst they are looking another way: they are blind—or rather, they can discern
but one sole object to be desired in the universe.
What I have said is applicable to all democratic nations: what I am about to say
concerns the French alone. Amongst most modern nations, and especially amongst
all those of the Continent of Europe, the taste and the idea of freedom only
began to exist and to extend themselves at the time when social conditions were
tending to equality, and as a consequence of that very equality. Absolute kings
were the most efficient levellers of ranks amongst their subjects. Amongst these
nations equality preceded freedom: equality was therefore a fact of some
standing when freedom was still a novelty: the one had already created customs,
opinions, and laws belonging to it, when the other, alone and for the first
time, came into actual existence. Thus the latter was still only an affair of
opinion and of taste, whilst the former had already crept into the habits of the
people, possessed itself of their manners, and given a particular turn to the
smallest actions of their lives. Can it be wondered that the men of our own time
prefer the one to the other?
I think that democratic communities have a natural taste for freedom: left to
themselves, they will seek it, cherish it, and view any privation of it with
regret. But for equality, their passion is ardent, insatiable, incessant,
invincible: they call for equality in freedom; and if they cannot obtain that,
they still call for equality in slavery. They will endure poverty, servitude,
barbarism—but they will not endure aristocracy. This is true at all times, and
especially true in our own. All men and all powers seeking to cope with this
irresistible passion, will be overthrown and destroyed by it. In our age,
freedom cannot be established without it, and despotism itself cannot reign
without its support.
Chapter II: Of Individualism In Democratic Countries
I have shown how it is that in ages of equality every man seeks for his opinions
within himself: I am now about to show how it is that, in the same ages, all his
feelings are turned towards himself alone. Individualism *a is a novel
expression, to which a novel idea has given birth. Our fathers were only
acquainted with egotism. Egotism is a passionate and exaggerated love of self,
which leads a man to connect everything with his own person, and to prefer
himself to everything in the world. Individualism is a mature and calm feeling,
which disposes each member of the community to sever himself from the mass of
his fellow-creatures; and to draw apart with his family and his friends; so
that, after he has thus formed a little circle of his own, he willingly leaves
society at large to itself. Egotism originates in blind instinct: individualism
proceeds from erroneous judgment more than from depraved feelings; it originates
as much in the deficiencies of the mind as in the perversity of the heart.
Egotism blights the germ of all virtue; individualism, at first, only saps the
virtues of public life; but, in the long run, it attacks and destroys all
others, and is at length absorbed in downright egotism. Egotism is a vice as old
as the world, which does not belong to one form of society more than to another:
individualism is of democratic origin, and it threatens to spread in the same
ratio as the equality of conditions.
a
[ [I adopt the expression of the original, however strange it may seem to the
English ear, partly because it illustrates the remark on the introduction of
general terms into democratic language which was made in a preceding chapter,
and partly because I know of no English word exactly equivalent to the
expression. The chapter itself defines the meaning attached to it by the
author.—Translator's Note.]]
Amongst aristocratic nations, as families remain for centuries in the same
condition, often on the same spot, all generations become as it were
contemporaneous. A man almost always knows his forefathers, and respects them:
he thinks he already sees his remote descendants, and he loves them. He
willingly imposes duties on himself towards the former and the latter; and he
will frequently sacrifice his personal gratifications to those who went before
and to those who will come after him. Aristocratic institutions have, moreover,
the effect of closely binding every man to several of his fellow-citizens. As
the classes of an aristocratic people are strongly marked and permanent, each of
them is regarded by its own members as a sort of lesser country, more tangible
and more cherished than the country at large. As in aristocratic communities all
the citizens occupy fixed positions, one above the other, the result is that
each of them always sees a man above himself whose patronage is necessary to
him, and below himself another man whose co-operation he may claim. Men living
in aristocratic ages are therefore almost always closely attached to something
placed out of their own sphere, and they are often disposed to forget
themselves. It is true that in those ages the notion of human fellowship is
faint, and that men seldom think of sacrificing themselves for mankind; but they
often sacrifice themselves for other men. In democratic ages, on the contrary,
when the duties of each individual to the race are much more clear, devoted
service to any one man becomes more rare; the bond of human affection is
extended, but it is relaxed.
Amongst democratic nations new families are constantly springing up, others are
constantly falling away, and all that remain change their condition; the woof of
time is every instant broken, and the track of generations effaced. Those who
went before are soon forgotten; of those who will come after no one has any
idea: the interest of man is confined to those in close propinquity to himself.
As each class approximates to other classes, and intermingles with them, its
members become indifferent and as strangers to one another. Aristocracy had made
a chain of all the members of the community, from the peasant to the king:
democracy breaks that chain, and severs every link of it. As social conditions
become more equal, the number of persons increases who, although they are
neither rich enough nor powerful enough to exercise any great influence over
their fellow-creatures, have nevertheless acquired or retained sufficient
education and fortune to satisfy their own wants. They owe nothing to any man,
they expect nothing from any man; they acquire the habit of always considering
themselves as standing alone, and they are apt to imagine that their whole
destiny is in their own hands. Thus not only does democracy make every man
forget his ancestors, but it hides his descendants, and separates his
contemporaries from him; it throws him back forever upon himself alone, and
threatens in the end to confine him entirely within the solitude of his own
heart.
Chapter III: Individualism Stronger At The Close Of A Democratic Revolution
Than At Other Periods
The period when the construction of democratic society upon the ruins of an
aristocracy has just been completed, is especially that at which this separation
of men from one another, and the egotism resulting from it, most forcibly strike
the observation. Democratic communities not only contain a large number of
independent citizens, but they are constantly filled with men who, having
entered but yesterday upon their independent condition, are intoxicated with
their new power. They entertain a presumptuous confidence in their strength, and
as they do not suppose that they can henceforward ever have occasion to claim
the assistance of their fellow-creatures, they do not scruple to show that they
care for nobody but themselves.
An aristocracy seldom yields without a protracted struggle, in the course of
which implacable animosities are kindled between the different classes of
society. These passions survive the victory, and traces of them may be observed
in the midst of the democratic confusion which ensues. Those members of the
community who were at the top of the late gradations of rank cannot immediately
forget their former greatness; they will long regard themselves as aliens in the
midst of the newly composed society. They look upon all those whom this state of
society has made their equals as oppressors, whose destiny can excite no
sympathy; they have lost sight of their former equals, and feel no longer bound
by a common interest to their fate: each of them, standing aloof, thinks that he
is reduced to care for himself alone. Those, on the contrary, who were formerly
at the foot of the social scale, and who have been brought up to the common
level by a sudden revolution, cannot enjoy their newly acquired independence
without secret uneasiness; and if they meet with some of their former superiors
on the same footing as themselves, they stand aloof from them with an expression
of triumph and of fear. It is, then, commonly at the outset of democratic
society that citizens are most disposed to live apart. Democracy leads men not
to draw near to their fellow-creatures; but democratic revolutions lead them to
shun each other, and perpetuate in a state of equality the animosities which the
state of inequality engendered. The great advantage of the Americans is that
they have arrived at a state of democracy without having to endure a democratic
revolution; and that they are born equal, instead of becoming so.
Chapter IV: That The Americans Combat The Effects Of Individualism By Free
Institutions
Despotism, which is of a very timorous nature, is never more secure of
continuance than when it can keep men asunder; and all is influence is commonly
exerted for that purpose. No vice of the human heart is so acceptable to it as
egotism: a despot easily forgives his subjects for not loving him, provided they
do not love each other. He does not ask them to assist him in governing the
State; it is enough that they do not aspire to govern it themselves. He
stigmatizes as turbulent and unruly spirits those who would combine their
exertions to promote the prosperity of the community, and, perverting the
natural meaning of words, he applauds as good citizens those who have no
sympathy for any but themselves. Thus the vices which despotism engenders are
precisely those which equality fosters. These two things mutually and
perniciously complete and assist each other. Equality places men side by side,
unconnected by any common tie; despotism raises barriers to keep them asunder;
the former predisposes them not to consider their fellow-creatures, the latter
makes general indifference a sort of public virtue.
Despotism then, which is at all times dangerous, is more particularly to be
feared in democratic ages. It is easy to see that in those same ages men stand
most in need of freedom. When the members of a community are forced to attend to
public affairs, they are necessarily drawn from the circle of their own
interests, and snatched at times from self-observation. As soon as a man begins
to treat of public affairs in public, he begins to perceive that he is not so
independent of his fellow-men as he had at first imagined, and that, in order to
obtain their support, he must often lend them his co-operation.
When the public is supreme, there is no man who does not feel the value of
public goodwill, or who does not endeavor to court it by drawing to himself the
esteem and affection of those amongst whom he is to live. Many of the passions
which congeal and keep asunder human hearts, are then obliged to retire and hide
below the surface. Pride must be dissembled; disdain dares not break out;
egotism fears its own self. Under a free government, as most public offices are
elective, the men whose elevated minds or aspiring hopes are too closely
circumscribed in private life, constantly feel that they cannot do without the
population which surrounds them. Men learn at such times to think of their
fellow-men from ambitious motives; and they frequently find it, in a manner,
their interest to forget themselves.
I may here be met by an objection derived from electioneering intrigues, the
meannesses of candidates, and the calumnies of their opponents. These are
opportunities for animosity which occur the oftener the more frequent elections
become. Such evils are doubtless great, but they are transient; whereas the
benefits which attend them remain. The desire of being elected may lead some men
for a time to violent hostility; but this same desire leads all men in the long
run mutually to support each other; and if it happens that an election
accidentally severs two friends, the electoral system brings a multitude of
citizens permanently together, who would always have remained unknown to each
other. Freedom engenders private animosities, but despotism gives birth to
general indifference.
The Americans have combated by free institutions the tendency of equality to
keep men asunder, and they have subdued it. The legislators of America did not
suppose that a general representation of the whole nation would suffice to ward
off a disorder at once so natural to the frame of democratic society, and so
fatal: they also thought that it would be well to infuse political life into
each portion of the territory, in order to multiply to an infinite extent
opportunities of acting in concert for all the members of the community, and to
make them constantly feel their mutual dependence on each other. The plan was a
wise one. The general affairs of a country only engage the attention of leading
politicians, who assemble from time to time in the same places; and as they
often lose sight of each other afterwards, no lasting ties are established
between them. But if the object be to have the local affairs of a district
conducted by the men who reside there, the same persons are always in contact,
and they are, in a manner, forced to be acquainted, and to adapt themselves to
one another.
It is difficult to draw a man out of his own circle to interest him in the
destiny of the State, because he does not clearly understand what influence the
destiny of the State can have upon his own lot. But if it be proposed to make a
road cross the end of his estate, he will see at a glance that there is a
connection between this small public affair and his greatest private affairs;
and he will discover, without its being shown to him, the close tie which unites
private to general interest. Thus, far more may be done by intrusting to the
citizens the administration of minor affairs than by surrendering to them the
control of important ones, towards interesting them in the public welfare, and
convincing them that they constantly stand in need one of the other in order to
provide for it. A brilliant achievement may win for you the favor of a people at
one stroke; but to earn the love and respect of the population which surrounds
you, a long succession of little services rendered and of obscure good deeds—a
constant habit of kindness, and an established reputation for
disinterestedness—will be required. Local freedom, then, which leads a great
number of citizens to value the affection of their neighbors and of their
kindred, perpetually brings men together, and forces them to help one another,
in spite of the propensities which sever them.
In the United States the more opulent citizens take great care not to stand
aloof from the people; on the contrary, they constantly keep on easy terms with
the lower classes: they listen to them, they speak to them every day. They know
that the rich in democracies always stand in need of the poor; and that in
democratic ages you attach a poor man to you more by your manner than by
benefits conferred. The magnitude of such benefits, which sets off the
difference of conditions, causes a secret irritation to those who reap advantage
from them; but the charm of simplicity of manners is almost irresistible: their
affability carries men away, and even their want of polish is not always
displeasing. This truth does not take root at once in the minds of the rich.
They generally resist it as long as the democratic revolution lasts, and they do
not acknowledge it immediately after that revolution is accomplished. They are
very ready to do good to the people, but they still choose to keep them at arm's
length; they think that is sufficient, but they are mistaken. They might spend
fortunes thus without warming the hearts of the population around them;—that
population does not ask them for the sacrifice of their money, but of their
pride.
It would seem as if every imagination in the United States were upon the stretch
to invent means of increasing the wealth and satisfying the wants of the public.
The best-informed inhabitants of each district constantly use their information
to discover new truths which may augment the general prosperity; and if they
have made any such discoveries, they eagerly surrender them to the mass of the
people.
When the vices and weaknesses, frequently exhibited by those who govern in
America, are closely examined, the prosperity of the people occasions—but
improperly occasions—surprise. Elected magistrates do not make the American
democracy flourish; it flourishes because the magistrates are elective.
It would be unjust to suppose that the patriotism and the zeal which every
American displays for the welfare of his fellow-citizens are wholly insincere.
Although private interest directs the greater part of human actions in the
United States as well as elsewhere, it does not regulate them all. I must say
that I have often seen Americans make great and real sacrifices to the public
welfare; and I have remarked a hundred instances in which they hardly ever
failed to lend faithful support to each other. The free institutions which the
inhabitants of the United States possess, and the political rights of which they
make so much use, remind every citizen, and in a thousand ways, that he lives in
society. They every instant impress upon his mind the notion that it is the
duty, as well as the interest of men, to make themselves useful to their
fellow-creatures; and as he sees no particular ground of animosity to them,
since he is never either their master or their slave, his heart readily leans to
the side of kindness. Men attend to the interests of the public, first by
necessity, afterwards by choice: what was intentional becomes an instinct; and
by dint of working for the good of one's fellow citizens, the habit and the
taste for serving them is at length acquired.
Many people in France consider equality of conditions as one evil, and political
freedom as a second. When they are obliged to yield to the former, they strive
at least to escape from the latter. But I contend that in order to combat the
evils which equality may produce, there is only one effectual remedy—namely,
political freedom.
Chapter V: Of The Use Which The Americans Make Of Public Associations In
Civil Life
I do not propose to speak of those political associations—by the aid of which
men endeavor to defend themselves against the despotic influence of a
majority—or against the aggressions of regal power. That subject I have already
treated. If each citizen did not learn, in proportion as he individually becomes
more feeble, and consequently more incapable of preserving his freedom
single-handed, to combine with his fellow-citizens for the purpose of defending
it, it is clear that tyranny would unavoidably increase together with equality.
Those associations only which are formed in civil life, without reference to
political objects, are here adverted to. The political associations which exist
in the United States are only a single feature in the midst of the immense
assemblage of associations in that country. Americans of all ages, all
conditions, and all dispositions, constantly form associations. They have not
only commercial and manufacturing companies, in which all take part, but
associations of a thousand other kinds—religious, moral, serious, futile,
extensive, or restricted, enormous or diminutive. The Americans make
associations to give entertainments, to found establishments for education, to
build inns, to construct churches, to diffuse books, to send missionaries to the
antipodes; and in this manner they found hospitals, prisons, and schools. If it
be proposed to advance some truth, or to foster some feeling by the
encouragement of a great example, they form a society. Wherever, at the head of
some new undertaking, you see the government in France, or a man of rank in
England, in the United States you will be sure to find an association. I met
with several kinds of associations in America, of which I confess I had no
previous notion; and I have often admired the extreme skill with which the
inhabitants of the United States succeed in proposing a common object to the
exertions of a great many men, and in getting them voluntarily to pursue it. I
have since travelled over England, whence the Americans have taken some of their
laws and many of their customs; and it seemed to me that the principle of
association was by no means so constantly or so adroitly used in that country.
The English often perform great things singly; whereas the Americans form
associations for the smallest undertakings. It is evident that the former people
consider association as a powerful means of action, but the latter seem to
regard it as the only means they have of acting.
Thus the most democratic country on the face of the earth is that in which men
have in our time carried to the highest perfection the art of pursuing in common
the object of their common desires, and have applied this new science to the
greatest number of purposes. Is this the result of accident? or is there in
reality any necessary connection between the principle of association and that
of equality? Aristocratic communities always contain, amongst a multitude of
persons who by themselves are powerless, a small number of powerful and wealthy
citizens, each of whom can achieve great undertakings single-handed. In
aristocratic societies men do not need to combine in order to act, because they
are strongly held together. Every wealthy and powerful citizen constitutes the
head of a permanent and compulsory association, composed of all those who are
dependent upon him, or whom he makes subservient to the execution of his
designs. Amongst democratic nations, on the contrary, all the citizens are
independent and feeble; they can do hardly anything by themselves, and none of
them can oblige his fellow-men to lend him their assistance. They all,
therefore, fall into a state of incapacity, if they do not learn voluntarily to
help each other. If men living in democratic countries had no right and no
inclination to associate for political purposes, their independence would be in
great jeopardy; but they might long preserve their wealth and their cultivation:
whereas if they never acquired the habit of forming associations in ordinary
life, civilization itself would be endangered. A people amongst which
individuals should lose the power of achieving great things single-handed,
without acquiring the means of producing them by united exertions, would soon
relapse into barbarism.
Unhappily, the same social condition which renders associations so necessary to
democratic nations, renders their formation more difficult amongst those nations
than amongst all others. When several members of an aristocracy agree to
combine, they easily succeed in doing so; as each of them brings great strength
to the partnership, the number of its members may be very limited; and when the
members of an association are limited in number, they may easily become mutually
acquainted, understand each other, and establish fixed regulations. The same
opportunities do not occur amongst democratic nations, where the associated
members must always be very numerous for their association to have any power.
I am aware that many of my countrymen are not in the least embarrassed by this
difficulty. They contend that the more enfeebled and incompetent the citizens
become, the more able and active the government ought to be rendered, in order
that society at large may execute what individuals can no longer accomplish.
They believe this answers the whole difficulty, but I think they are mistaken. A
government might perform the part of some of the largest American companies; and
several States, members of the Union, have already attempted it; but what
political power could ever carry on the vast multitude of lesser undertakings
which the American citizens perform every day, with the assistance of the
principle of association? It is easy to foresee that the time is drawing near
when man will be less and less able to produce, of himself alone, the commonest
necessaries of life. The task of the governing power will therefore perpetually
increase, and its very efforts will extend it every day. The more it stands in
the place of associations, the more will individuals, losing the notion of
combining together, require its assistance: these are causes and effects which
unceasingly engender each other. Will the administration of the country
ultimately assume the management of all the manufacturers, which no single
citizen is able to carry on? And if a time at length arrives, when, in
consequence of the extreme subdivision of landed property, the soil is split
into an infinite number of parcels, so that it can only be cultivated by
companies of husbandmen, will it be necessary that the head of the government
should leave the helm of state to follow the plough? The morals and the
intelligence of a democratic people would be as much endangered as its business
and manufactures, if the government ever wholly usurped the place of private
companies.
Feelings and opinions are recruited, the heart is enlarged, and the human mind
is developed by no other means than by the reciprocal influence of men upon each
other. I have shown that these influences are almost null in democratic
countries; they must therefore be artificially created, and this can only be
accomplished by associations.
When the members of an aristocratic community adopt a new opinion, or conceive a
new sentiment, they give it a station, as it were, beside themselves, upon the
lofty platform where they stand; and opinions or sentiments so conspicuous to
the eyes of the multitude are easily introduced into the minds or hearts of all
around. In democratic countries the governing power alone is naturally in a
condition to act in this manner; but it is easy to see that its action is always
inadequate, and often dangerous. A government can no more be competent to keep
alive and to renew the circulation of opinions and feelings amongst a great
people, than to manage all the speculations of productive industry. No sooner
does a government attempt to go beyond its political sphere and to enter upon
this new track, than it exercises, even unintentionally, an insupportable
tyranny; for a government can only dictate strict rules, the opinions which it
favors are rigidly enforced, and it is never easy to discriminate between its
advice and its commands. Worse still will be the case if the government really
believes itself interested in preventing all circulation of ideas; it will then
stand motionless, and oppressed by the heaviness of voluntary torpor.
Governments therefore should not be the only active powers: associations ought,
in democratic nations, to stand in lieu of those powerful private individuals
whom the equality of conditions has swept away.
As soon as several of the inhabitants of the United States have taken up an
opinion or a feeling which they wish to promote in the world, they look out for
mutual assistance; and as soon as they have found each other out, they combine.
From that moment they are no longer isolated men, but a power seen from afar,
whose actions serve for an example, and whose language is listened to. The first
time I heard in the United States that 100,000 men had bound themselves publicly
to abstain from spirituous liquors, it appeared to me more like a joke than a
serious engagement; and I did not at once perceive why these temperate citizens
could not content themselves with drinking water by their own firesides. I at
last understood that 300,000 Americans, alarmed by the progress of drunkenness
around them, had made up their minds to patronize temperance. They acted just in
the same way as a man of high rank who should dress very plainly, in order to
inspire the humbler orders with a contempt of luxury. It is probable that if
these 100,000 men had lived in France, each of them would singly have
memorialized the government to watch the public-houses all over the kingdom.
Nothing, in my opinion, is more deserving of our attention than the intellectual
and moral associations of America. The political and industrial associations of
that country strike us forcibly; but the others elude our observation, or if we
discover them, we understand them imperfectly, because we have hardly ever seen
anything of the kind. It must, however, be acknowledged that they are as
necessary to the American people as the former, and perhaps more so. In
democratic countries the science of association is the mother of science; the
progress of all the rest depends upon the progress it has made. Amongst the laws
which rule human societies there is one which seems to be more precise and clear
than all others. If men are to remain civilized, or to become so, the art of
associating together must grow and improve in the same ratio in which the
equality of conditions is increased.
Chapter VI: Of The Relation Between Public Associations And Newspapers
When men are no longer united amongst themselves by firm and lasting ties, it is
impossible to obtain the cooperation of any great number of them, unless you can
persuade every man whose concurrence you require that this private interest
obliges him voluntarily to unite his exertions to the exertions of all the rest.
This can only be habitually and conveniently effected by means of a newspaper;
nothing but a newspaper can drop the same thought into a thousand minds at the
same moment. A newspaper is an adviser who does not require to be sought, but
who comes of his own accord, and talks to you briefly every day of the common
weal, without distracting you from your private affairs.
Newspapers therefore become more necessary in proportion as men become more
equal, and individualism more to be feared. To suppose that they only serve to
protect freedom would be to diminish their importance: they maintain
civilization. I shall not deny that in democratic countries newspapers
frequently lead the citizens to launch together in very ill-digested schemes;
but if there were no newspapers there would be no common activity. The evil
which they produce is therefore much less than that which they cure.
The effect of a newspaper is not only to suggest the same purpose to a great
number of persons, but also to furnish means for executing in common the designs
which they may have singly conceived. The principal citizens who inhabit an
aristocratic country discern each other from afar; and if they wish to unite
their forces, they move towards each other, drawing a multitude of men after
them. It frequently happens, on the contrary, in democratic countries, that a
great number of men who wish or who want to combine cannot accomplish it,
because as they are very insignificant and lost amidst the crowd, they cannot
see, and know not where to find, one another. A newspaper then takes up the
notion or the feeling which had occurred simultaneously, but singly, to each of
them. All are then immediately guided towards this beacon; and these wandering
minds, which had long sought each other in darkness, at length meet and unite.
The newspaper brought them together, and the newspaper is still necessary to
keep them united. In order that an association amongst a democratic people
should have any power, it must be a numerous body. The persons of whom it is
composed are therefore scattered over a wide extent, and each of them is
detained in the place of his domicile by the narrowness of his income, or by the
small unremitting exertions by which he earns it. Means then must be found to
converse every day without seeing each other, and to take steps in common
without having met. Thus hardly any democratic association can do without
newspapers. There is consequently a necessary connection between public
associations and newspapers: newspapers make associations, and associations make
newspapers; and if it has been correctly advanced that associations will
increase in number as the conditions of men become more equal, it is not less
certain that the number of newspapers increases in proportion to that of
associations. Thus it is in America that we find at the same time the greatest
number of associations and of newspapers.
This connection between the number of newspapers and that of associations leads
us to the discovery of a further connection between the state of the periodical
press and the form of the administration in a country; and shows that the number
of newspapers must diminish or increase amongst a democratic people, in
proportion as its administration is more or less centralized. For amongst
democratic nations the exercise of local powers cannot be intrusted to the
principal members of the community as in aristocracies. Those powers must either
be abolished, or placed in the hands of very large numbers of men, who then in
fact constitute an association permanently established by law for the purpose of
administering the affairs of a certain extent of territory; and they require a
journal, to bring to them every day, in the midst of their own minor concerns,
some intelligence of the state of their public weal. The more numerous local
powers are, the greater is the number of men in whom they are vested by law; and
as this want is hourly felt, the more profusely do newspapers abound.
The extraordinary subdivision of administrative power has much more to do with
the enormous number of American newspapers than the great political freedom of
the country and the absolute liberty of the press. If all the inhabitants of the
Union had the suffrage—but a suffrage which should only extend to the choice of
their legislators in Congress—they would require but few newspapers, because
they would only have to act together on a few very important but very rare
occasions. But within the pale of the great association of the nation, lesser
associations have been established by law in every country, every city, and
indeed in every village, for the purposes of local administration. The laws of
the country thus compel every American to co-operate every day of his life with
some of his fellow-citizens for a common purpose, and each one of them requires
a newspaper to inform him what all the others are doing.
I am of opinion that a democratic people, *a without any national representative
assemblies, but with a great number of small local powers, would have in the end
more newspapers than another people governed by a centralized administration and
an elective legislation. What best explains to me the enormous circulation of
the daily press in the United States, is that amongst the Americans I find the
utmost national freedom combined with local freedom of every kind. There is a
prevailing opinion in France and England that the circulation of newspapers
would be indefinitely increased by removing the taxes which have been laid upon
the press. This is a very exaggerated estimate of the effects of such a reform.
Newspapers increase in numbers, not according to their cheapness, but according
to the more or less frequent want which a great number of men may feel for
intercommunication and combination.
a
[ I say a democratic people: the administration of an aristocratic people may be
the reverse of centralized, and yet the want of newspapers be little felt,
because local powers are then vested in the hands of a very small number of men,
who either act apart, or who know each other and can easily meet and come to an
understanding.]
In like manner I should attribute the increasing influence of the daily press to
causes more general than those by which it is commonly explained. A newspaper
can only subsist on the condition of publishing sentiments or principles common
to a large number of men. A newspaper therefore always represents an association
which is composed of its habitual readers. This association may be more or less
defined, more or less restricted, more or less numerous; but the fact that the
newspaper keeps alive, is a proof that at least the germ of such an association
exists in the minds of its readers.
This leads me to a last reflection, with which I shall conclude this chapter.
The more equal the conditions of men become, and the less strong men
individually are, the more easily do they give way to the current of the
multitude, and the more difficult is it for them to adhere by themselves to an
opinion which the multitude discard. A newspaper represents an association; it
may be said to address each of its readers in the name of all the others, and to
exert its influence over them in proportion to their individual weakness. The
power of the newspaper press must therefore increase as the social conditions of
men become more equal.
Chapter VII: Connection Of Civil And Political Associations
There is only one country on the face of the earth where the citizens enjoy
unlimited freedom of association for political purposes. This same country is
the only one in the world where the continual exercise of the right of
association has been introduced into civil life, and where all the advantages
which civilization can confer are procured by means of it. In all the countries
where political associations are prohibited, civil associations are rare. It is
hardly probable that this is the result of accident; but the inference should
rather be, that there is a natural, and perhaps a necessary, connection between
these two kinds of associations. Certain men happen to have a common interest in
some concern—either a commercial undertaking is to be managed, or some
speculation in manufactures to be tried; they meet, they combine, and thus by
degrees they become familiar with the principle of association. The greater is
the multiplicity of small affairs, the more do men, even without knowing it,
acquire facility in prosecuting great undertakings in common. Civil
associations, therefore, facilitate political association: but, on the other
hand, political association singularly strengthens and improves associations for
civil purposes. In civil life every man may, strictly speaking, fancy that he
can provide for his own wants; in politics, he can fancy no such thing. When a
people, then, have any knowledge of public life, the notion of association, and
the wish to coalesce, present themselves every day to the minds of the whole
community: whatever natural repugnance may restrain men from acting in concert,
they will always be ready to combine for the sake of a party. Thus political
life makes the love and practice of association more general; it imparts a
desire of union, and teaches the means of combination to numbers of men who
would have always lived apart.
Politics not only give birth to numerous associations, but to associations of
great extent. In civil life it seldom happens that any one interest draws a very
large number of men to act in concert; much skill is required to bring such an
interest into existence: but in politics opportunities present themselves every
day. Now it is solely in great associations that the general value of the
principle of association is displayed. Citizens who are individually powerless,
do not very clearly anticipate the strength which they may acquire by uniting
together; it must be shown to them in order to be understood. Hence it is often
easier to collect a multitude for a public purpose than a few persons; a
thousand citizens do not see what interest they have in combining together—ten
thousand will be perfectly aware of it. In politics men combine for great
undertakings; and the use they make of the principle of association in important
affairs practically teaches them that it is their interest to help each other in
those of less moment. A political association draws a number of individuals at
the same time out of their own circle: however they may be naturally kept
asunder by age, mind, and fortune, it places them nearer together and brings
them into contact. Once met, they can always meet again.
Men can embark in few civil partnerships without risking a portion of their
possessions; this is the case with all manufacturing and trading companies. When
men are as yet but little versed in the art of association, and are unacquainted
with its principal rules, they are afraid, when first they combine in this
manner, of buying their experience dear. They therefore prefer depriving
themselves of a powerful instrument of success to running the risks which attend
the use of it. They are, however, less reluctant to join political associations,
which appear to them to be without danger, because they adventure no money in
them. But they cannot belong to these associations for any length of time
without finding out how order is maintained amongst a large number of men, and
by what contrivance they are made to advance, harmoniously and methodically, to
the same object. Thus they learn to surrender their own will to that of all the
rest, and to make their own exertions subordinate to the common impulse—things
which it is not less necessary to know in civil than in political associations.
Political associations may therefore be considered as large free schools, where
all the members of the community go to learn the general theory of association.
But even if political association did not directly contribute to the progress of
civil association, to destroy the former would be to impair the latter. When
citizens can only meet in public for certain purposes, they regard such meetings
as a strange proceeding of rare occurrence, and they rarely think at all about
it. When they are allowed to meet freely for all purposes, they ultimately look
upon public association as the universal, or in a manner the sole means, which
men can employ to accomplish the different purposes they may have in view. Every
new want instantly revives the notion. The art of association then becomes, as I
have said before, the mother of action, studied and applied by all.
When some kinds of associations are prohibited and others allowed, it is
difficult to distinguish the former from the latter, beforehand. In this state
of doubt men abstain from them altogether, and a sort of public opinion passes
current which tends to cause any association whatsoever to be regarded as a bold
and almost an illicit enterprise. *a
a
[ This is more especially true when the executive government has a discretionary
power of allowing or prohibiting associations. When certain associations are
simply prohibited by law, and the courts of justice have to punish infringements
of that law, the evil is far less considerable. Then every citizen knows
beforehand pretty nearly what he has to expect. He judges himself before he is
judged by the law, and, abstaining from prohibited associations, he embarks in
those which are legally sanctioned. It is by these restrictions that all free
nations have always admitted that the right of association might be limited. But
if the legislature should invest a man with a power of ascertaining beforehand
which associations are dangerous and which are useful, and should authorize him
to destroy all associations in the bud or allow them to be formed, as nobody
would be able to foresee in what cases associations might be established and in
what cases they would be put down, the spirit of association would be entirely
paralyzed. The former of these laws would only assail certain associations; the
latter would apply to society itself, and inflict an injury upon it. I can
conceive that a regular government may have recourse to the former, but I do not
concede that any government has the right of enacting the latter.]
It is therefore chimerical to suppose that the spirit of association, when it is
repressed on some one point, will nevertheless display the same vigor on all
others; and that if men be allowed to prosecute certain undertakings in common,
that is quite enough for them eagerly to set about them. When the members of a
community are allowed and accustomed to combine for all purposes, they will
combine as readily for the lesser as for the more important ones; but if they
are only allowed to combine for small affairs, they will be neither inclined nor
able to effect it. It is in vain that you will leave them entirely free to
prosecute their business on joint-stock account: they will hardly care to avail
themselves of the rights you have granted to them; and, after having exhausted
your strength in vain efforts to put down prohibited associations, you will be
surprised that you cannot persuade men to form the associations you encourage.
I do not say that there can be no civil associations in a country where
political association is prohibited; for men can never live in society without
embarking in some common undertakings: but I maintain that in such a country
civil associations will always be few in number, feebly planned, unskillfully
managed, that they will never form any vast designs, or that they will fail in
the execution of them.
This naturally leads me to think that freedom of association in political
matters is not so dangerous to public tranquillity as is supposed; and that
possibly, after having agitated society for some time, it may strengthen the
State in the end. In democratic countries political associations are, so to
speak, the only powerful persons who aspire to rule the State. Accordingly, the
governments of our time look upon associations of this kind just as sovereigns
in the Middle Ages regarded the great vassals of the Crown: they entertain a
sort of instinctive abhorrence of them, and they combat them on all occasions.
They bear, on the contrary, a natural goodwill to civil associations, because
they readily discover that, instead of directing the minds of the community to
public affairs, these institutions serve to divert them from such reflections;
and that, by engaging them more and more in the pursuit of objects which cannot
be attained without public tranquillity, they deter them from revolutions. But
these governments do not attend to the fact that political associations tend
amazingly to multiply and facilitate those of a civil character, and that in
avoiding a dangerous evil they deprive themselves of an efficacious remedy.
When you see the Americans freely and constantly forming associations for the
purpose of promoting some political principle, of raising one man to the head of
affairs, or of wresting power from another, you have some difficulty in
understanding that men so independent do not constantly fall into the abuse of
freedom. If, on the other hand, you survey the infinite number of trading
companies which are in operation in the United States, and perceive that the
Americans are on every side unceasingly engaged in the execution of important
and difficult plans, which the slightest revolution would throw into confusion,
you will readily comprehend why people so well employed are by no means tempted
to perturb the State, nor to destroy that public tranquillity by which they all
profit.
Is it enough to observe these things separately, or should we not discover the
hidden tie which connects them? In their political associations, the Americans
of all conditions, minds, and ages, daily acquire a general taste for
association, and grow accustomed to the use of it. There they meet together in
large numbers, they converse, they listen to each other, and they are mutually
stimulated to all sorts of undertakings. They afterwards transfer to civil life
the notions they have thus acquired, and make them subservient to a thousand
purposes. Thus it is by the enjoyment of a dangerous freedom that the Americans
learn the art of rendering the dangers of freedom less formidable.
If a certain moment in the existence of a nation be selected, it is easy to
prove that political associations perturb the State, and paralyze productive
industry; but take the whole life of a people, and it may perhaps be easy to
demonstrate that freedom of association in political matters is favorable to the
prosperity and even to the tranquillity of the community.
I said in the former part of this work, "The unrestrained liberty of political
association cannot be entirely assimilated to the liberty of the press. The one
is at the same time less necessary and more dangerous than the other. A nation
may confine it within certain limits without ceasing to be mistress of itself;
and it may sometimes be obliged to do so in order to maintain its own
authority." And further on I added: "It cannot be denied that the unrestrained
liberty of association for political purposes is the last degree of liberty
which a people is fit for. If it does not throw them into anarchy, it
perpetually brings them, as it were, to the verge of it." Thus I do not think
that a nation is always at liberty to invest its citizens with an absolute right
of association for political purposes; and I doubt whether, in any country or in
any age, it be wise to set no limits to freedom of association. A certain
nation, it is said, could not maintain tranquillity in the community, cause the
laws to be respected, or establish a lasting government, if the right of
association were not confined within narrow limits. These blessings are
doubtless invaluable, and I can imagine that, to acquire or to preserve them, a
nation may impose upon itself severe temporary restrictions: but still it is
well that the nation should know at what price these blessings are purchased. I
can understand that it may be advisable to cut off a man's arm in order to save
his life; but it would be ridiculous to assert that he will be as dexterous as
he was before he lost it.
Chapter VIII: The Americans Combat Individualism By The Principle Of Interest
Rightly Understood
When the world was managed by a few rich and powerful individuals, these persons
loved to entertain a lofty idea of the duties of man. They were fond of
professing that it is praiseworthy to forget one's self, and that good should be
done without hope of reward, as it is by the Deity himself. Such were the
standard opinions of that time in morals. I doubt whether men were more virtuous
in aristocratic ages than in others; but they were incessantly talking of the
beauties of virtue, and its utility was only studied in secret. But since the
imagination takes less lofty flights and every man's thoughts are centred in
himself, moralists are alarmed by this idea of self-sacrifice, and they no
longer venture to present it to the human mind. They therefore content
themselves with inquiring whether the personal advantage of each member of the
community does not consist in working for the good of all; and when they have
hit upon some point on which private interest and public interest meet and
amalgamate, they are eager to bring it into notice. Observations of this kind
are gradually multiplied: what was only a single remark becomes a general
principle; and it is held as a truth that man serves himself in serving his
fellow-creatures, and that his private interest is to do good.
I have already shown, in several parts of this work, by what means the
inhabitants of the United States almost always manage to combine their own
advantage with that of their fellow-citizens: my present purpose is to point out
the general rule which enables them to do so. In the United States hardly
anybody talks of the beauty of virtue; but they maintain that virtue is useful,
and prove it every day. The American moralists do not profess that men ought to
sacrifice themselves for their fellow-creatures because it is noble to make such
sacrifices; but they boldly aver that such sacrifices are as necessary to him
who imposes them upon himself as to him for whose sake they are made. They have
found out that in their country and their age man is brought home to himself by
an irresistible force; and losing all hope of stopping that force, they turn all
their thoughts to the direction of it. They therefore do not deny that every man
may follow his own interest; but they endeavor to prove that it is the interest
of every man to be virtuous. I shall not here enter into the reasons they
allege, which would divert me from my subject: suffice it to say that they have
convinced their fellow-countrymen.
Montaigne said long ago: "Were I not to follow the straight road for its
straightness, I should follow it for having found by experience that in the end
it is commonly the happiest and most useful track." The doctrine of interest
rightly understood is not, then, new, but amongst the Americans of our time it
finds universal acceptance: it has become popular there; you may trace it at the
bottom of all their actions, you will remark it in all they say. It is as often
to be met with on the lips of the poor man as of the rich. In Europe the
principle of interest is much grosser than it is in America, but at the same
time it is less common, and especially it is less avowed; amongst us, men still
constantly feign great abnegation which they no longer feel. The Americans, on
the contrary, are fond of explaining almost all the actions of their lives by
the principle of interest rightly understood; they show with complacency how an
enlightened regard for themselves constantly prompts them to assist each other,
and inclines them willingly to sacrifice a portion of their time and property to
the welfare of the State. In this respect I think they frequently fail to do
themselves justice; for in the United States, as well as elsewhere, people are
sometimes seen to give way to those disinterested and spontaneous impulses which
are natural to man; but the Americans seldom allow that they yield to emotions
of this kind; they are more anxious to do honor to their philosophy than to
themselves.
I might here pause, without attempting to pass a judgment on what I have
described. The extreme difficulty of the subject would be my excuse, but I shall
not avail myself of it; and I had rather that my readers, clearly perceiving my
object, should refuse to follow me than that I should leave them in suspense.
The principle of interest rightly understood is not a lofty one, but it is clear
and sure. It does not aim at mighty objects, but it attains without excessive
exertion all those at which it aims. As it lies within the reach of all
capacities, everyone can without difficulty apprehend and retain it. By its
admirable conformity to human weaknesses, it easily obtains great dominion; nor
is that dominion precarious, since the principle checks one personal interest by
another, and uses, to direct the passions, the very same instrument which
excites them. The principle of interest rightly understood produces no great
acts of self-sacrifice, but it suggests daily small acts of self-denial. By
itself it cannot suffice to make a man virtuous, but it disciplines a number of
citizens in habits of regularity, temperance, moderation, foresight,
self-command; and, if it does not lead men straight to virtue by the will, it
gradually draws them in that direction by their habits. If the principle of
interest rightly understood were to sway the whole moral world, extraordinary
virtues would doubtless be more rare; but I think that gross depravity would
then also be less common. The principle of interest rightly understood perhaps
prevents some men from rising far above the level of mankind; but a great number
of other men, who were falling far below it, are caught and restrained by it.
Observe some few individuals, they are lowered by it; survey mankind, it is
raised. I am not afraid to say that the principle of interest, rightly
understood, appears to me the best suited of all philosophical theories to the
wants of the men of our time, and that I regard it as their chief remaining
security against themselves. Towards it, therefore, the minds of the moralists
of our age should turn; even should they judge it to be incomplete, it must
nevertheless be adopted as necessary.
I do not think upon the whole that there is more egotism amongst us than in
America; the only difference is, that there it is enlightened—here it is not.
Every American will sacrifice a portion of his private interests to preserve the
rest; we would fain preserve the whole, and oftentimes the whole is lost.
Everybody I see about me seems bent on teaching his contemporaries, by precept
and example, that what is useful is never wrong. Will nobody undertake to make
them understand how what is right may be useful? No power upon earth can prevent
the increasing equality of conditions from inclining the human mind to seek out
what is useful, or from leading every member of the community to be wrapped up
in himself. It must therefore be expected that personal interest will become
more than ever the principal, if not the sole, spring of men's actions; but it
remains to be seen how each man will understand his personal interest. If the
members of a community, as they become more equal, become more ignorant and
coarse, it is difficult to foresee to what pitch of stupid excesses their
egotism may lead them; and no one can foretell into what disgrace and
wretchedness they would plunge themselves, lest they should have to sacrifice
something of their own well-being to the prosperity of their fellow-creatures. I
do not think that the system of interest, as it is professed in America, is, in
all its parts, self-evident; but it contains a great number of truths so evident
that men, if they are but educated, cannot fail to see them. Educate, then, at
any rate; for the age of implicit self-sacrifice and instinctive virtues is
already flitting far away from us, and the time is fast approaching when
freedom, public peace, and social order itself will not be able to exist without
education.
Chapter IX: That The Americans Apply The Principle Of Interest Rightly
Understood To Religious Matters
If the principle of interest rightly understood had nothing but the present
world in view, it would be very insufficient; for there are many sacrifices
which can only find their recompense in another; and whatever ingenuity may be
put forth to demonstrate the utility of virtue, it will never be an easy task to
make that man live aright who has no thoughts of dying. It is therefore
necessary to ascertain whether the principle of interest rightly understood is
easily compatible with religious belief. The philosophers who inculcate this
system of morals tell men, that to be happy in this life they must watch their
own passions and steadily control their excess; that lasting happiness can only
be secured by renouncing a thousand transient gratifications; and that a man
must perpetually triumph over himself, in order to secure his own advantage. The
founders of almost all religions have held the same language. The track they
point out to man is the same, only that the goal is more remote; instead of
placing in this world the reward of the sacrifices they impose, they transport
it to another. Nevertheless I cannot believe that all those who practise virtue
from religious motives are only actuated by the hope of a recompense. I have
known zealous Christians who constantly forgot themselves, to work with greater
ardor for the happiness of their fellow-men; and I have heard them declare that
all they did was only to earn the blessings of a future state. I cannot but
think that they deceive themselves; I respect them too much to believe them.
Christianity indeed teaches that a man must prefer his neighbor to himself, in
order to gain eternal life; but Christianity also teaches that men ought to
benefit their fellow-creatures for the love of God. A sublime expression! Man,
searching by his intellect into the divine conception, and seeing that order is
the purpose of God, freely combines to prosecute the great design; and whilst he
sacrifices his personal interests to this consummate order of all created
things, expects no other recompense than the pleasure of contemplating it. I do
not believe that interest is the sole motive of religious men: but I believe
that interest is the principal means which religions themselves employ to govern
men, and I do not question that this way they strike into the multitude and
become popular. It is not easy clearly to perceive why the principle of interest
rightly understood should keep aloof from religious opinions; and it seems to me
more easy to show why it should draw men to them. Let it be supposed that, in
order to obtain happiness in this world, a man combats his instinct on all
occasions and deliberately calculates every action of his life; that, instead of
yielding blindly to the impetuosity of first desires, he has learned the art of
resisting them, and that he has accustomed himself to sacrifice without an
effort the pleasure of a moment to the lasting interest of his whole life. If
such a man believes in the religion which he professes, it will cost him but
little to submit to the restrictions it may impose. Reason herself counsels him
to obey, and habit has prepared him to endure them. If he should have conceived
any doubts as to the object of his hopes, still he will not easily allow himself
to be stopped by them; and he will decide that it is wise to risk some of the
advantages of this world, in order to preserve his rights to the great
inheritance promised him in another. "To be mistaken in believing that the
Christian religion is true," says Pascal, "is no great loss to anyone; but how
dreadful to be mistaken in believing it to be false!"
The Americans do not affect a brutal indifference to a future state; they affect
no puerile pride in despising perils which they hope to escape from. They
therefore profess their religion without shame and without weakness; but there
generally is, even in their zeal, something so indescribably tranquil,
methodical, and deliberate, that it would seem as if the head, far more than the
heart, brought them to the foot of the altar. The Americans not only follow
their religion from interest, but they often place in this world the interest
which makes them follow it. In the Middle Ages the clergy spoke of nothing but a
future state; they hardly cared to prove that a sincere Christian may be a happy
man here below. But the American preachers are constantly referring to the
earth; and it is only with great difficulty that they can divert their attention
from it. To touch their congregations, they always show them how favorable
religious opinions are to freedom and public tranquillity; and it is often
difficult to ascertain from their discourses whether the principal object of
religion is to procure eternal felicity in the other world, or prosperity in
this.
Chapter X: Of The Taste For Physical Well-Being In America
In America the passion for physical well-being is not always exclusive, but it
is general; and if all do not feel it in the same manner, yet it is felt by all.
Carefully to satisfy all, even the least wants of the body, and to provide the
little conveniences of life, is uppermost in every mind. Something of an
analogous character is more and more apparent in Europe. Amongst the causes
which produce these similar consequences in both hemispheres, several are so
connected with my subject as to deserve notice.
When riches are hereditarily fixed in families, there are a great number of men
who enjoy the comforts of life without feeling an exclusive taste for those
comforts. The heart of man is not so much caught by the undisturbed possession
of anything valuable as by the desire, as yet imperfectly satisfied, of
possessing it, and by the incessant dread of losing it. In aristocratic
communities, the wealthy, never having experienced a condition different from
their own, entertain no fear of changing it; the existence of such conditions
hardly occurs to them. The comforts of life are not to them the end of life, but
simply a way of living; they regard them as existence itself—enjoyed, but
scarcely thought of. As the natural and instinctive taste which all men feel for
being well off is thus satisfied without trouble and without apprehension, their
faculties are turned elsewhere, and cling to more arduous and more lofty
undertakings, which excite and engross their minds. Hence it is that, in the
midst of physical gratifications, the members of an aristocracy often display a
haughty contempt of these very enjoyments, and exhibit singular powers of
endurance under the privation of them. All the revolutions which have ever
shaken or destroyed aristocracies, have shown how easily men accustomed to
superfluous luxuries can do without the necessaries of life; whereas men who
have toiled to acquire a competency can hardly live after they have lost it.
If I turn my observation from the upper to the lower classes, I find analogous
effects produced by opposite causes. Amongst a nation where aristocracy
predominates in society, and keeps it stationary, the people in the end get as
much accustomed to poverty as the rich to their opulence. The latter bestow no
anxiety on their physical comforts, because they enjoy them without an effort;
the former do not think of things which they despair of obtaining, and which
they hardly know enough of to desire them. In communities of this kind, the
imagination of the poor is driven to seek another world; the miseries of real
life inclose it around, but it escapes from their control, and flies to seek its
pleasures far beyond. When, on the contrary, the distinctions of ranks are
confounded together and privileges are destroyed—when hereditary property is
subdivided, and education and freedom widely diffused, the desire of acquiring
the comforts of the world haunts the imagination of the poor, and the dread of
losing them that of the rich. Many scanty fortunes spring up; those who possess
them have a sufficient share of physical gratifications to conceive a taste for
these pleasures—not enough to satisfy it. They never procure them without
exertion, and they never indulge in them without apprehension. They are
therefore always straining to pursue or to retain gratifications so delightful,
so imperfect, so fugitive.
If I were to inquire what passion is most natural to men who are stimulated and
circumscribed by the obscurity of their birth or the mediocrity of their
fortune, I could discover none more peculiarly appropriate to their condition
than this love of physical prosperity. The passion for physical comforts is
essentially a passion of the middle classes: with those classes it grows and
spreads, with them it preponderates. From them it mounts into the higher orders
of society, and descends into the mass of the people. I never met in America
with any citizen so poor as not to cast a glance of hope and envy on the
enjoyments of the rich, or whose imagination did not possess itself by
anticipation of those good things which fate still obstinately withheld from
him. On the other hand, I never perceived amongst the wealthier inhabitants of
the United States that proud contempt of physical gratifications which is
sometimes to be met with even in the most opulent and dissolute aristocracies.
Most of these wealthy persons were once poor; they have felt the sting of want;
they were long a prey to adverse fortunes; and now that the victory is won, the
passions which accompanied the contest have survived it: their minds are, as it
were, intoxicated by the small enjoyments which they have pursued for forty
years. Not but that in the United States, as elsewhere, there are a certain
number of wealthy persons who, having come into their property by inheritance,
possess, without exertion, an opulence they have not earned. But even these men
are not less devotedly attached to the pleasures of material life. The love of
well-being is now become the predominant taste of the nation; the great current
of man's passions runs in that channel, and sweeps everything along in its
course.
Chapter XI: Peculiar Effects Of The Love Of Physical Gratifications In
Democratic Ages
It may be supposed, from what has just been said, that the love of physical
gratifications must constantly urge the Americans to irregularities in morals,
disturb the peace of families, and threaten the security of society at large.
Such is not the case: the passion for physical gratifications produces in
democracies effects very different from those which it occasions in aristocratic
nations. It sometimes happens that, wearied with public affairs and sated with
opulence, amidst the ruin of religious belief and the decline of the State, the
heart of an aristocracy may by degrees be seduced to the pursuit of sensual
enjoyments only. At other times the power of the monarch or the weakness of the
people, without stripping the nobility of their fortune, compels them to stand
aloof from the administration of affairs, and whilst the road to mighty
enterprise is closed, abandons them to the inquietude of their own desires; they
then fall back heavily upon themselves, and seek in the pleasures of the body
oblivion of their former greatness. When the members of an aristocratic body are
thus exclusively devoted to the pursuit of physical gratifications, they
commonly concentrate in that direction all the energy which they derive from
their long experience of power. Such men are not satisfied with the pursuit of
comfort; they require sumptuous depravity and splendid corruption. The worship
they pay the senses is a gorgeous one; and they seem to vie with each other in
the art of degrading their own natures. The stronger, the more famous, and the
more free an aristocracy has been, the more depraved will it then become; and
however brilliant may have been the lustre of its virtues, I dare predict that
they will always be surpassed by the splendor of its vices.
The taste for physical gratifications leads a democratic people into no such
excesses. The love of well-being is there displayed as a tenacious, exclusive,
universal passion; but its range is confined. To build enormous palaces, to
conquer or to mimic nature, to ransack the world in order to gratify the
passions of a man, is not thought of: but to add a few roods of land to your
field, to plant an orchard, to enlarge a dwelling, to be always making life more
comfortable and convenient, to avoid trouble, and to satisfy the smallest wants
without effort and almost without cost. These are small objects, but the soul
clings to them; it dwells upon them closely and day by day, till they at last
shut out the rest of the world, and sometimes intervene between itself and
heaven.
This, it may be said, can only be applicable to those members of the community
who are in humble circumstances; wealthier individuals will display tastes akin
to those which belonged to them in aristocratic ages. I contest the proposition:
in point of physical gratifications, the most opulent members of a democracy
will not display tastes very different from those of the people; whether it be
that, springing from the people, they really share those tastes, or that they
esteem it a duty to submit to them. In democratic society the sensuality of the
public has taken a moderate and tranquil course, to which all are bound to
conform: it is as difficult to depart from the common rule by one's vices as by
one's virtues. Rich men who live amidst democratic nations are therefore more
intent on providing for their smallest wants than for their extraordinary
enjoyments; they gratify a number of petty desires, without indulging in any
great irregularities of passion: thus they are more apt to become enervated than
debauched. The especial taste which the men of democratic ages entertain for
physical enjoyments is not naturally opposed to the principles of public order;
nay, it often stands in need of order that it may be gratified. Nor is it
adverse to regularity of morals, for good morals contribute to public
tranquillity and are favorable to industry. It may even be frequently combined
with a species of religious morality: men wish to be as well off as they can in
this world, without foregoing their chance of another. Some physical
gratifications cannot be indulged in without crime; from such they strictly
abstain. The enjoyment of others is sanctioned by religion and morality; to
these the heart, the imagination, and life itself are unreservedly given up;
till, in snatching at these lesser gifts, men lose sight of those more precious
possessions which constitute the glory and the greatness of mankind. The
reproach I address to the principle of equality, is not that it leads men away
in the pursuit of forbidden enjoyments, but that it absorbs them wholly in quest
of those which are allowed. By these means, a kind of virtuous materialism may
ultimately be established in the world, which would not corrupt, but enervate
the soul, and noiselessly unbend its springs of action.
Chapter XII: Causes Of Fanatical Enthusiasm In Some Americans
Although the desire of acquiring the good things of this world is the prevailing
passion of the American people, certain momentary outbreaks occur, when their
souls seem suddenly to burst the bonds of matter by which they are restrained,
and to soar impetuously towards heaven. In all the States of the Union, but
especially in the half-peopled country of the Far West, wandering preachers may
be met with who hawk about the word of God from place to place. Whole
families—old men, women, and children—cross rough passes and untrodden wilds,
coming from a great distance, to join a camp-meeting, where they totally forget
for several days and nights, in listening to these discourses, the cares of
business and even the most urgent wants of the body. Here and there, in the
midst of American society, you meet with men, full of a fanatical and almost
wild enthusiasm, which hardly exists in Europe. From time to time strange sects
arise, which endeavor to strike out extraordinary paths to eternal happiness.
Religious insanity is very common in the United States.
Nor ought these facts to surprise us. It was not man who implanted in himself
the taste for what is infinite and the love of what is immortal: those lofty
instincts are not the offspring of his capricious will; their steadfast
foundation is fixed in human nature, and they exist in spite of his efforts. He
may cross and distort them—destroy them he cannot. The soul has wants which must
be satisfied; and whatever pains be taken to divert it from itself, it soon
grows weary, restless, and disquieted amidst the enjoyments of sense. If ever
the faculties of the great majority of mankind were exclusively bent upon the
pursuit of material objects, it might be anticipated that an amazing reaction
would take place in the souls of some men. They would drift at large in the
world of spirits, for fear of remaining shackled by the close bondage of the
body.
It is not then wonderful if, in the midst of a community whose thoughts tend
earthward, a small number of individuals are to be found who turn their looks to
heaven. I should be surprised if mysticism did not soon make some advance
amongst a people solely engaged in promoting its own worldly welfare. It is said
that the deserts of the Thebaid were peopled by the persecutions of the emperors
and the massacres of the Circus; I should rather say that it was by the luxuries
of Rome and the Epicurean philosophy of Greece. If their social condition, their
present circumstances, and their laws did not confine the minds of the Americans
so closely to the pursuit of worldly welfare, it is probable that they would
display more reserve and more experience whenever their attention is turned to
things immaterial, and that they would check themselves without difficulty. But
they feel imprisoned within bounds which they will apparently never be allowed
to pass. As soon as they have passed these bounds, their minds know not where to
fix themselves, and they often rush unrestrained beyond the range of
common-sense.
Chapter XIII: Causes Of The Restless Spirit Of Americans In The Midst Of
Their Prosperity
In certain remote corners of the Old World you may still sometimes stumble upon
a small district which seems to have been forgotten amidst the general tumult,
and to have remained stationary whilst everything around it was in motion. The
inhabitants are for the most part extremely ignorant and poor; they take no part
in the business of the country, and they are frequently oppressed by the
government; yet their countenances are generally placid, and their spirits
light. In America I saw the freest and most enlightened men, placed in the
happiest circumstances which the world affords: it seemed to me as if a cloud
habitually hung upon their brow, and I thought them serious and almost sad even
in their pleasures. The chief reason of this contrast is that the former do not
think of the ills they endure—the latter are forever brooding over advantages
they do not possess. It is strange to see with what feverish ardor the Americans
pursue their own welfare; and to watch the vague dread that constantly torments
them lest they should not have chosen the shortest path which may lead to it. A
native of the United States clings to this world's goods as if he were certain
never to die; and he is so hasty in grasping at all within his reach, that one
would suppose he was constantly afraid of not living long enough to enjoy them.
He clutches everything, he holds nothing fast, but soon loosens his grasp to
pursue fresh gratifications.
In the United States a man builds a house to spend his latter years in it, and
he sells it before the roof is on: he plants a garden, and lets it just as the
trees are coming into bearing: he brings a field into tillage, and leaves other
men to gather the crops: he embraces a profession, and gives it up: he settles
in a place, which he soon afterwards leaves, to carry his changeable longings
elsewhere. If his private affairs leave him any leisure, he instantly plunges
into the vortex of politics; and if at the end of a year of unremitting labor he
finds he has a few days' vacation, his eager curiosity whirls him over the vast
extent of the United States, and he will travel fifteen hundred miles in a few
days, to shake off his happiness. Death at length overtakes him, but it is
before he is weary of his bootless chase of that complete felicity which is
forever on the wing.
At first sight there is something surprising in this strange unrest of so many
happy men, restless in the midst of abundance. The spectacle itself is however
as old as the world; the novelty is to see a whole people furnish an
exemplification of it. Their taste for physical gratifications must be regarded
as the original source of that secret inquietude which the actions of the
Americans betray, and of that inconstancy of which they afford fresh examples
every day. He who has set his heart exclusively upon the pursuit of worldly
welfare is always in a hurry, for he has but a limited time at his disposal to
reach it, to grasp it, and to enjoy it. The recollection of the brevity of life
is a constant spur to him. Besides the good things which he possesses, he every
instant fancies a thousand others which death will prevent him from trying if he
does not try them soon. This thought fills him with anxiety, fear, and regret,
and keeps his mind in ceaseless trepidation, which leads him perpetually to
change his plans and his abode. If in addition to the taste for physical
well-being a social condition be superadded, in which the laws and customs make
no condition permanent, here is a great additional stimulant to this
restlessness of temper. Men will then be seen continually to change their track,
for fear of missing the shortest cut to happiness. It may readily be conceived
that if men, passionately bent upon physical gratifications, desire eagerly,
they are also easily discouraged: as their ultimate object is to enjoy, the
means to reach that object must be prompt and easy, or the trouble of acquiring
the gratification would be greater than the gratification itself. Their
prevailing frame of mind then is at once ardent and relaxed, violent and
enervated. Death is often less dreaded than perseverance in continuous efforts
to one end.
The equality of conditions leads by a still straighter road to several of the
effects which I have here described. When all the privileges of birth and
fortune are abolished, when all professions are accessible to all, and a man's
own energies may place him at the top of any one of them, an easy and unbounded
career seems open to his ambition, and he will readily persuade himself that he
is born to no vulgar destinies. But this is an erroneous notion, which is
corrected by daily experience. The same equality which allows every citizen to
conceive these lofty hopes, renders all the citizens less able to realize them:
it circumscribes their powers on every side, whilst it gives freer scope to
their desires. Not only are they themselves powerless, but they are met at every
step by immense obstacles, which they did not at first perceive. They have swept
away the privileges of some of their fellow-creatures which stood in their way,
but they have opened the door to universal competition: the barrier has changed
its shape rather than its position. When men are nearly alike, and all follow
the same track, it is very difficult for any one individual to walk quick and
cleave a way through the dense throng which surrounds and presses him. This
constant strife between the propensities springing from the equality of
conditions and the means it supplies to satisfy them, harasses and wearies the
mind.
It is possible to conceive men arrived at a degree of freedom which should
completely content them; they would then enjoy their independence without
anxiety and without impatience. But men will never establish any equality with
which they can be contented. Whatever efforts a people may make, they will never
succeed in reducing all the conditions of society to a perfect level; and even
if they unhappily attained that absolute and complete depression, the inequality
of minds would still remain, which, coming directly from the hand of God, will
forever escape the laws of man. However democratic then the social state and the
political constitution of a people may be, it is certain that every member of
the community will always find out several points about him which command his
own position; and we may foresee that his looks will be doggedly fixed in that
direction. When inequality of conditions is the common law of society, the most
marked inequalities do not strike the eye: when everything is nearly on the same
level, the slightest are marked enough to hurt it. Hence the desire of equality
always becomes more insatiable in proportion as equality is more complete.
Amongst democratic nations men easily attain a certain equality of conditions:
they can never attain the equality they desire. It perpetually retires from
before them, yet without hiding itself from their sight, and in retiring draws
them on. At every moment they think they are about to grasp it; it escapes at
every moment from their hold. They are near enough to see its charms, but too
far off to enjoy them; and before they have fully tasted its delights they die.
To these causes must be attributed that strange melancholy which oftentimes will
haunt the inhabitants of democratic countries in the midst of their abundance,
and that disgust at life which sometimes seizes upon them in the midst of calm
and easy circumstances. Complaints are made in France that the number of
suicides increases; in America suicide is rare, but insanity is said to be more
common than anywhere else. These are all different symptoms of the same disease.
The Americans do not put an end to their lives, however disquieted they may be,
because their religion forbids it; and amongst them materialism may be said
hardly to exist, notwithstanding the general passion for physical gratification.
The will resists—reason frequently gives way. In democratic ages enjoyments are
more intense than in the ages of aristocracy, and especially the number of those
who partake in them is larger: but, on the other hand, it must be admitted that
man's hopes and his desires are oftener blasted, the soul is more stricken and
perturbed, and care itself more keen.
Chapter XIV: Taste For Physical Gratifications United In America To Love Of
Freedom And Attention To Public Affairs
When a democratic state turns to absolute monarchy, the activity which was
before directed to public and to private affairs is all at once centred upon the
latter: the immediate consequence is, for some time, great physical prosperity;
but this impulse soon slackens, and the amount of productive industry is
checked. I know not if a single trading or manufacturing people can be cited,
from the Tyrians down to the Florentines and the English, who were not a free
people also. There is therefore a close bond and necessary relation between
these two elements—freedom and productive industry. This proposition is
generally true of all nations, but especially of democratic nations. I have
already shown that men who live in ages of equality continually require to form
associations in order to procure the things they covet; and, on the other hand,
I have shown how great political freedom improves and diffuses the art of
association. Freedom, in these ages, is therefore especially favorable to the
production of wealth; nor is it difficult to perceive that despotism is
especially adverse to the same result. The nature of despotic power in
democratic ages is not to be fierce or cruel, but minute and meddling. Despotism
of this kind, though it does not trample on humanity, is directly opposed to the
genius of commerce and the pursuits of industry.
Thus the men of democratic ages require to be free in order more readily to
procure those physical enjoyments for which they are always longing. It
sometimes happens, however, that the excessive taste they conceive for these
same enjoyments abandons them to the first master who appears. The passion for
worldly welfare then defeats itself, and, without perceiving it, throws the
object of their desires to a greater distance.
There is, indeed, a most dangerous passage in the history of a democratic
people. When the taste for physical gratifications amongst such a people has
grown more rapidly than their education and their experience of free
institutions, the time will come when men are carried away, and lose all
self-restraint, at the sight of the new possessions they are about to lay hold
upon. In their intense and exclusive anxiety to make a fortune, they lose sight
of the close connection which exists between the private fortune of each of them
and the prosperity of all. It is not necessary to do violence to such a people
in order to strip them of the rights they enjoy; they themselves willingly
loosen their hold. The discharge of political duties appears to them to be a
troublesome annoyance, which diverts them from their occupations and business.
If they be required to elect representatives, to support the Government by
personal service, to meet on public business, they have no time—they cannot
waste their precious time in useless engagements: such idle amusements are
unsuited to serious men who are engaged with the more important interests of
life. These people think they are following the principle of self-interest, but
the idea they entertain of that principle is a very rude one; and the better to
look after what they call their business, they neglect their chief business,
which is to remain their own masters.
As the citizens who work do not care to attend to public business, and as the
class which might devote its leisure to these duties has ceased to exist, the
place of the Government is, as it were, unfilled. If at that critical moment
some able and ambitious man grasps the supreme power, he will find the road to
every kind of usurpation open before him. If he does but attend for some time to
the material prosperity of the country, no more will be demanded of him. Above
all he must insure public tranquillity: men who are possessed by the passion of
physical gratification generally find out that the turmoil of freedom disturbs
their welfare, before they discover how freedom itself serves to promote it. If
the slightest rumor of public commotion intrudes into the petty pleasures of
private life, they are aroused and alarmed by it. The fear of anarchy
perpetually haunts them, and they are always ready to fling away their freedom
at the first disturbance.
I readily admit that public tranquillity is a great good; but at the same time I
cannot forget that all nations have been enslaved by being kept in good order.
Certainly it is not to be inferred that nations ought to despise public
tranquillity; but that state ought not to content them. A nation which asks
nothing of its government but the maintenance of order is already a slave at
heart—the slave of its own well-being, awaiting but the hand that will bind it.
By such a nation the despotism of faction is not less to be dreaded than the
despotism of an individual. When the bulk of the community is engrossed by
private concerns, the smallest parties need not despair of getting the upper
hand in public affairs. At such times it is not rare to see upon the great stage
of the world, as we see at our theatres, a multitude represented by a few
players, who alone speak in the name of an absent or inattentive crowd: they
alone are in action whilst all are stationary; they regulate everything by their
own caprice; they change the laws, and tyrannize at will over the manners of the
country; and then men wonder to see into how small a number of weak and
worthless hands a great people may fall.
Hitherto the Americans have fortunately escaped all the perils which I have just
pointed out; and in this respect they are really deserving of admiration.
Perhaps there is no country in the world where fewer idle men are to be met with
than in America, or where all who work are more eager to promote their own
welfare. But if the passion of the Americans for physical gratifications is
vehement, at least it is not indiscriminating; and reason, though unable to
restrain it, still directs its course. An American attends to his private
concerns as if he were alone in the world, and the next minute he gives himself
up to the common weal as if he had forgotten them. At one time he seems animated
by the most selfish cupidity, at another by the most lively patriotism. The
human heart cannot be thus divided. The inhabitants of the United States
alternately display so strong and so similar a passion for their own welfare and
for their freedom, that it may be supposed that these passions are united and
mingled in some part of their character. And indeed the Americans believe their
freedom to be the best instrument and surest safeguard of their welfare: they
are attached to the one by the other. They by no means think that they are not
called upon to take a part in the public weal; they believe, on the contrary,
that their chief business is to secure for themselves a government which will
allow them to acquire the things they covet, and which will not debar them from
the peaceful enjoyment of those possessions which they have acquired.
Chapter XV: That Religious Belief Sometimes Turns The Thoughts Of The
Americans To Immaterial Pleasures
In the United States, on the seventh day of every week, the trading and working
life of the nation seems suspended; all noises cease; a deep tranquillity, say
rather the solemn calm of meditation, succeeds the turmoil of the week, and the
soul resumes possession and contemplation of itself. Upon this day the marts of
traffic are deserted; every member of the community, accompanied by his
children, goes to church, where he listens to strange language which would seem
unsuited to his ear. He is told of the countless evils caused by pride and
covetousness: he is reminded of the necessity of checking his desires, of the
finer pleasures which belong to virtue alone, and of the true happiness which
attends it. On his return home, he does not turn to the ledgers of his calling,
but he opens the book of Holy Scripture; there he meets with sublime or
affecting descriptions of the greatness and goodness of the Creator, of the
infinite magnificence of the handiwork of God, of the lofty destinies of man, of
his duties, and of his immortal privileges. Thus it is that the American at
times steals an hour from himself; and laying aside for a while the petty
passions which agitate his life, and the ephemeral interests which engross it,
he strays at once into an ideal world, where all is great, eternal, and pure.
I have endeavored to point out in another part of this work the causes to which
the maintenance of the political institutions of the Americans is attributable;
and religion appeared to be one of the most prominent amongst them. I am now
treating of the Americans in an individual capacity, and I again observe that
religion is not less useful to each citizen than to the whole State. The
Americans show, by their practice, that they feel the high necessity of
imparting morality to democratic communities by means of religion. What they
think of themselves in this respect is a truth of which every democratic nation
ought to be thoroughly persuaded.
I do not doubt that the social and political constitution of a people
predisposes them to adopt a certain belief and certain tastes, which afterwards
flourish without difficulty amongst them; whilst the same causes may divert a
people from certain opinions and propensities, without any voluntary effort,
and, as it were, without any distinct consciousness, on their part. The whole
art of the legislator is correctly to discern beforehand these natural
inclinations of communities of men, in order to know whether they should be
assisted, or whether it may not be necessary to check them. For the duties
incumbent on the legislator differ at different times; the goal towards which
the human race ought ever to be tending is alone stationary; the means of
reaching it are perpetually to be varied.
If I had been born in an aristocratic age, in the midst of a nation where the
hereditary wealth of some, and the irremediable penury of others, should equally
divert men from the idea of bettering their condition, and hold the soul as it
were in a state of torpor fixed on the contemplation of another world, I should
then wish that it were possible for me to rouse that people to a sense of their
wants; I should seek to discover more rapid and more easy means for satisfying
the fresh desires which I might have awakened; and, directing the most strenuous
efforts of the human mind to physical pursuits, I should endeavor to stimulate
it to promote the well-being of man. If it happened that some men were
immoderately incited to the pursuit of riches, and displayed an excessive liking
for physical gratifications, I should not be alarmed; these peculiar symptoms
would soon be absorbed in the general aspect of the people.
The attention of the legislators of democracies is called to other cares. Give
democratic nations education and freedom, and leave them alone. They will soon
learn to draw from this world all the benefits which it can afford; they will
improve each of the useful arts, and will day by day render life more
comfortable, more convenient, and more easy. Their social condition naturally
urges them in this direction; I do not fear that they will slacken their course.
But whilst man takes delight in this honest and lawful pursuit of his wellbeing,
it is to be apprehended that he may in the end lose the use of his sublimest
faculties; and that whilst he is busied in improving all around him, he may at
length degrade himself. Here, and here only, does the peril lie. It should
therefore be the unceasing object of the legislators of democracies, and of all
the virtuous and enlightened men who live there, to raise the souls of their
fellow-citizens, and keep them lifted up towards heaven. It is necessary that
all who feel an interest in the future destinies of democratic society should
unite, and that all should make joint and continual efforts to diffuse the love
of the infinite, a sense of greatness, and a love of pleasures not of earth. If
amongst the opinions of a democratic people any of those pernicious theories
exist which tend to inculcate that all perishes with the body, let men by whom
such theories are professed be marked as the natural foes of such a people.
The materialists are offensive to me in many respects; their doctrines I hold to
be pernicious, and I am disgusted at their arrogance. If their system could be
of any utility to man, it would seem to be by giving him a modest opinion of
himself. But these reasoners show that it is not so; and when they think they
have said enough to establish that they are brutes, they show themselves as
proud as if they had demonstrated that they are gods. Materialism is, amongst
all nations, a dangerous disease of the human mind; but it is more especially to
be dreaded amongst a democratic people, because it readily amalgamates with that
vice which is most familiar to the heart under such circumstances. Democracy
encourages a taste for physical gratification: this taste, if it become
excessive, soon disposes men to believe that all is matter only; and
materialism, in turn, hurries them back with mad impatience to these same
delights: such is the fatal circle within which democratic nations are driven
round. It were well that they should see the danger and hold back.
Most religions are only general, simple, and practical means of teaching men the
doctrine of the immortality of the soul. That is the greatest benefit which a
democratic people derives, from its belief, and hence belief is more necessary
to such a people than to all others. When therefore any religion has struck its
roots deep into a democracy, beware lest you disturb them; but rather watch it
carefully, as the most precious bequest of aristocratic ages. Seek not to
supersede the old religious opinions of men by new ones; lest in the passage
from one faith to another, the soul being left for a while stripped of all
belief, the love of physical gratifications should grow upon it and fill it
wholly.
The doctrine of metempsychosis is assuredly not more rational than that of
materialism; nevertheless if it were absolutely necessary that a democracy
should choose one of the two, I should not hesitate to decide that the community
would run less risk of being brutalized by believing that the soul of man will
pass into the carcass of a hog, than by believing that the soul of man is
nothing at all. The belief in a supersensual and immortal principle, united for
a time to matter, is so indispensable to man's greatness, that its effects are
striking even when it is not united to the doctrine of future reward and
punishment; and when it holds no more than that after death the divine principle
contained in man is absorbed in the Deity, or transferred to animate the frame
of some other creature. Men holding so imperfect a belief will still consider
the body as the secondary and inferior portion of their nature, and they will
despise it even whilst they yield to its influence; whereas they have a natural
esteem and secret admiration for the immaterial part of man, even though they
sometimes refuse to submit to its dominion. That is enough to give a lofty cast
to their opinions and their tastes, and to bid them tend with no interested
motive, and as it were by impulse, to pure feelings and elevated thoughts.
It is not certain that Socrates and his followers had very fixed opinions as to
what would befall man hereafter; but the sole point of belief on which they were
determined—that the soul has nothing in common with the body, and survives
it—was enough to give the Platonic philosophy that sublime aspiration by which
it is distinguished. It is clear from the works of Plato, that many
philosophical writers, his predecessors or contemporaries, professed
materialism. These writers have not reached us, or have reached us in mere
fragments. The same thing has happened in almost all ages; the greater part of
the most famous minds in literature adhere to the doctrines of a supersensual
philosophy. The instinct and the taste of the human race maintain those
doctrines; they save them oftentimes in spite of men themselves, and raise the
names of their defenders above the tide of time. It must not then be supposed
that at any period or under any political condition, the passion for physical
gratifications, and the opinions which are superinduced by that passion, can
ever content a whole people. The heart of man is of a larger mould: it can at
once comprise a taste for the possessions of earth and the love of those of
heaven: at times it may seem to cling devotedly to the one, but it will never be
long without thinking of the other.
If it be easy to see that it is more particularly important in democratic ages
that spiritual opinions should prevail, it is not easy to say by what means
those who govern democratic nations may make them predominate. I am no believer
in the prosperity, any more than in the durability, of official philosophies;
and as to state religions, I have always held, that if they be sometimes of
momentary service to the interests of political power, they always, sooner or
later, become fatal to the Church. Nor do I think with those who assert, that to
raise religion in the eyes of the people, and to make them do honor to her
spiritual doctrines, it is desirable indirectly to give her ministers a
political influence which the laws deny them. I am so much alive to the almost
inevitable dangers which beset religious belief whenever the clergy take part in
public affairs, and I am so convinced that Christianity must be maintained at
any cost in the bosom of modern democracies, that I had rather shut up the
priesthood within the sanctuary than allow them to step beyond it.
What means then remain in the hands of constituted authorities to bring men back
to spiritual opinions, or to hold them fast to the religion by which those
opinions are suggested? My answer will do me harm in the eyes of politicians. I
believe that the sole effectual means which governments can employ in order to
have the doctrine of the immortality of the soul duly respected, is ever to act
as if they believed in it themselves; and I think that it is only by scrupulous
conformity to religious morality in great affairs that they can hope to teach
the community at large to know, to love, and to observe it in the lesser
concerns of life.
Chapter XVI: That Excessive Care Of Worldly Welfare May Impair That Welfare
There is a closer tie than is commonly supposed between the improvement of the
soul and the amelioration of what belongs to the body. Man may leave these two
things apart, and consider each of them alternately; but he cannot sever them
entirely without at last losing sight of one and of the other. The beasts have
the same senses as ourselves, and very nearly the same appetites. We have no
sensual passions which are not common to our race and theirs, and which are not
to be found, at least in the germ, in a dog as well as in a man. Whence is it
then that the animals can only provide for their first and lowest wants, whereas
we can infinitely vary and endlessly increase our enjoyments?
We are superior to the beasts in this, that we use our souls to find out those
material benefits to which they are only led by instinct. In man, the angel
teaches the brute the art of contenting its desires. It is because man is
capable of rising above the things of the body, and of contemning life itself,
of which the beasts have not the least notion, that he can multiply these same
things of the body to a degree which inferior races are equally unable to
conceive. Whatever elevates, enlarges, and expands the soul, renders it more
capable of succeeding in those very undertakings which concern it not. Whatever,
on the other hand, enervates or lowers it, weakens it for all purposes, the
chiefest, as well as the least, and threatens to render it almost equally
impotent for the one and for the other. Hence the soul must remain great and
strong, though it were only to devote its strength and greatness from time to
time to the service of the body. If men were ever to content themselves with
material objects, it is probable that they would lose by degrees the art of
producing them; and they would enjoy them in the end, like the brutes, without
discernment and without improvement.
Chapter XVII: That In Times Marked By Equality Of Conditions And Sceptical
Opinions, It Is Important To Remove To A Distance The Objects Of Human Actions
In the ages of faith the final end of life is placed beyond life. The men of
those ages therefore naturally, and in a manner involuntarily, accustom
themselves to fix their gaze for a long course of years on some immovable
object, towards which they are constantly tending; and they learn by insensible
degrees to repress a multitude of petty passing desires, in order to be the
better able to content that great and lasting desire which possesses them. When
these same men engage in the affairs of this world, the same habits may be
traced in their conduct. They are apt to set up some general and certain aim and
end to their actions here below, towards which all their efforts are directed:
they do not turn from day to day to chase some novel object of desire, but they
have settled designs which they are never weary of pursuing. This explains why
religious nations have so often achieved such lasting results: for whilst they
were thinking only of the other world, they had found out the great secret of
success in this. Religions give men a general habit of conducting themselves
with a view to futurity: in this respect they are not less useful to happiness
in this life than to felicity hereafter; and this is one of their chief
political characteristics.
But in proportion as the light of faith grows dim, the range of man's sight is
circumscribed, as if the end and aim of human actions appeared every day to be
more within his reach. When men have once allowed themselves to think no more of
what is to befall them after life, they readily lapse into that complete and
brutal indifference to futurity, which is but too conformable to some
propensities of mankind. As soon as they have lost the habit of placing their
chief hopes upon remote events, they naturally seek to gratify without delay
their smallest desires; and no sooner do they despair of living forever, than
they are disposed to act as if they were to exist but for a single day. In
sceptical ages it is always therefore to be feared that men may perpetually give
way to their daily casual desires; and that, wholly renouncing whatever cannot
be acquired without protracted effort, they may establish nothing great,
permanent, and calm.
If the social condition of a people, under these circumstances, becomes
democratic, the danger which I here point out is thereby increased. When
everyone is constantly striving to change his position—when an immense field for
competition is thrown open to all—when wealth is amassed or dissipated in the
shortest possible space of time amidst the turmoil of democracy, visions of
sudden and easy fortunes—of great possessions easily won and lost—of chance,
under all its forms—haunt the mind. The instability of society itself fosters
the natural instability of man's desires. In the midst of these perpetual
fluctuations of his lot, the present grows upon his mind, until it conceals
futurity from his sight, and his looks go no further than the morrow.
In those countries in which unhappily irreligion and democracy coexist, the most
important duty of philosophers and of those in power is to be always striving to
place the objects of human actions far beyond man's immediate range.
Circumscribed by the character of his country and his age, the moralist must
learn to vindicate his principles in that position. He must constantly endeavor
to show his contemporaries, that, even in the midst of the perpetual commotion
around them, it is easier than they think to conceive and to execute protracted
undertakings. He must teach them that, although the aspect of mankind may have
changed, the methods by which men may provide for their prosperity in this world
are still the same; and that amongst democratic nations, as well as elsewhere,
it is only by resisting a thousand petty selfish passions of the hour that the
general and unquenchable passion for happiness can be satisfied.
The task of those in power is not less clearly marked out. At all times it is
important that those who govern nations should act with a view to the future:
but this is even more necessary in democratic and sceptical ages than in any
others. By acting thus, the leading men of democracies not only make public
affairs prosperous, but they also teach private individuals, by their example,
the art of managing private concerns. Above all they must strive as much as
possible to banish chance from the sphere of politics. The sudden and undeserved
promotion of a courtier produces only a transient impression in an aristocratic
country, because the aggregate institutions and opinions of the nation
habitually compel men to advance slowly in tracks which they cannot get out of.
But nothing is more pernicious than similar instances of favor exhibited to the
eyes of a democratic people: they give the last impulse to the public mind in a
direction where everything hurries it onwards. At times of scepticism and
equality more especially, the favor of the people or of the prince, which chance
may confer or chance withhold, ought never to stand in lieu of attainments or
services. It is desirable that every advancement should there appear to be the
result of some effort; so that no greatness should be of too easy acquirement,
and that ambition should be obliged to fix its gaze long upon an object before
it is gratified. Governments must apply themselves to restore to men that love
of the future with which religion and the state of society no longer inspire
them; and, without saying so, they must practically teach the community day by
day that wealth, fame, and power are the rewards of labor—that great success
stands at the utmost range of long desires, and that nothing lasting is obtained
but what is obtained by toil. When men have accustomed themselves to foresee
from afar what is likely to befall in the world and to feed upon hopes, they can
hardly confine their minds within the precise circumference of life, and they
are ready to break the boundary and cast their looks beyond. I do not doubt
that, by training the members of a community to think of their future condition
in this world, they would be gradually and unconsciously brought nearer to
religious convictions. Thus the means which allow men, up to a certain point, to
go without religion, are perhaps after all the only means we still possess for
bringing mankind back by a long and roundabout path to a state of faith.
Chapter XVIII: That Amongst The Americans All Honest Callings Are Honorable
Amongst a democratic people, where there is no hereditary wealth, every man
works to earn a living, or has worked, or is born of parents who have worked.
The notion of labor is therefore presented to the mind on every side as the
necessary, natural, and honest condition of human existence. Not only is labor
not dishonorable amongst such a people, but it is held in honor: the prejudice
is not against it, but in its favor. In the United States a wealthy man thinks
that he owes it to public opinion to devote his leisure to some kind of
industrial or commercial pursuit, or to public business. He would think himself
in bad repute if he employed his life solely in living. It is for the purpose of
escaping this obligation to work, that so many rich Americans come to Europe,
where they find some scattered remains of aristocratic society, amongst which
idleness is still held in honor.
Equality of conditions not only ennobles the notion of labor in men's
estimation, but it raises the notion of labor as a source of profit. In
aristocracies it is not exactly labor that is despised, but labor with a view to
profit. Labor is honorific in itself, when it is undertaken at the sole bidding
of ambition or of virtue. Yet in aristocratic society it constantly happens that
he who works for honor is not insensible to the attractions of profit. But these
two desires only intermingle in the innermost depths of his soul: he carefully
hides from every eye the point at which they join; he would fain conceal it from
himself. In aristocratic countries there are few public officers who do not
affect to serve their country without interested motives. Their salary is an
incident of which they think but little, and of which they always affect not to
think at all. Thus the notion of profit is kept distinct from that of labor;
however they may be united in point of fact, they are not thought of together.
In democratic communities these two notions are, on the contrary, always
palpably united. As the desire of well-being is universal—as fortunes are
slender or fluctuating—as everyone wants either to increase his own resources,
or to provide fresh ones for his progeny, men clearly see that it is profit
which, if not wholly, at least partially, leads them to work. Even those who are
principally actuated by the love of fame are necessarily made familiar with the
thought that they are not exclusively actuated by that motive; and they discover
that the desire of getting a living is mingled in their minds with the desire of
making life illustrious.
As soon as, on the one hand, labor is held by the whole community to be an
honorable necessity of man's condition, and, on the other, as soon as labor is
always ostensibly performed, wholly or in part, for the purpose of earning
remuneration, the immense interval which separated different callings in
aristocratic societies disappears. If all are not alike, all at least have one
feature in common. No profession exists in which men do not work for money; and
the remuneration which is common to them all gives them all an air of
resemblance. This serves to explain the opinions which the Americans entertain
with respect to different callings. In America no one is degraded because he
works, for everyone about him works also; nor is anyone humiliated by the notion
of receiving pay, for the President of the United States also works for pay. He
is paid for commanding, other men for obeying orders. In the United States
professions are more or less laborious, more or less profitable; but they are
never either high or low: every honest calling is honorable.
Chapter XIX: That Almost All The Americans Follow Industrial Callings
Agriculture is, perhaps, of all the useful arts that which improves most slowly
amongst democratic nations. Frequently, indeed, it would seem to be stationary,
because other arts are making rapid strides towards perfection. On the other
hand, almost all the tastes and habits which the equality of condition engenders
naturally lead men to commercial and industrial occupations.
Suppose an active, enlightened, and free man, enjoying a competency, but full of
desires: he is too poor to live in idleness; he is rich enough to feel himself
protected from the immediate fear of want, and he thinks how he can better his
condition. This man has conceived a taste for physical gratifications, which
thousands of his fellow-men indulge in around him; he has himself begun to enjoy
these pleasures, and he is eager to increase his means of satisfying these
tastes more completely. But life is slipping away, time is urgent—to what is he
to turn? The cultivation of the ground promises an almost certain result to his
exertions, but a slow one; men are not enriched by it without patience and toil.
Agriculture is therefore only suited to those who have already large,
superfluous wealth, or to those whose penury bids them only seek a bare
subsistence. The choice of such a man as we have supposed is soon made; he sells
his plot of ground, leaves his dwelling, and embarks in some hazardous but
lucrative calling. Democratic communities abound in men of this kind; and in
proportion as the equality of conditions becomes greater, their multitude
increases. Thus democracy not only swells the number of workingmen, but it leads
men to prefer one kind of labor to another; and whilst it diverts them from
agriculture, it encourages their taste for commerce and manufactures. *a
a
[ It has often been remarked that manufacturers and mercantile men are
inordinately addicted to physical gratifications, and this has been attributed
to commerce and manufactures; but that is, I apprehend, to take the effect for
the cause. The taste for physical gratifications is not imparted to men by
commerce or manufactures, but it is rather this taste which leads men to embark
in commerce and manufactures, as a means by which they hope to satisfy
themselves more promptly and more completely. If commerce and manufactures
increase the desire of well-being, it is because every passion gathers strength
in proportion as it is cultivated, and is increased by all the efforts made to
satiate it. All the causes which make the love of worldly welfare predominate in
the heart of man are favorable to the growth of commerce and manufactures.
Equality of conditions is one of those causes; it encourages trade, not directly
by giving men a taste for business, but indirectly by strengthening and
expanding in their minds a taste for prosperity.]
This spirit may be observed even amongst the richest members of the community.
In democratic countries, however opulent a man is supposed to be, he is almost
always discontented with his fortune, because he finds that he is less rich than
his father was, and he fears that his sons will be less rich than himself. Most
rich men in democracies are therefore constantly haunted by the desire of
obtaining wealth, and they naturally turn their attention to trade and
manufactures, which appear to offer the readiest and most powerful means of
success. In this respect they share the instincts of the poor, without feeling
the same necessities; say rather, they feel the most imperious of all
necessities, that of not sinking in the world.
In aristocracies the rich are at the same time those who govern. The attention
which they unceasingly devote to important public affairs diverts them from the
lesser cares which trade and manufactures demand. If the will of an individual
happens, nevertheless, to turn his attention to business, the will of the body
to which he belongs will immediately debar him from pursuing it; for however men
may declaim against the rule of numbers, they cannot wholly escape their sway;
and even amongst those aristocratic bodies which most obstinately refuse to
acknowledge the rights of the majority of the nation, a private majority is
formed which governs the rest. *b
b
[ Some aristocracies, however, have devoted themselves eagerly to commerce, and
have cultivated manufactures with success. The history of the world might
furnish several conspicuous examples. But, generally speaking, it may be
affirmed that the aristocratic principle is not favorable to the growth of trade
and manufactures. Moneyed aristocracies are the only exception to the rule.
Amongst such aristocracies there are hardly any desires which do not require
wealth to satisfy them; the love of riches becomes, so to speak, the high road
of human passions, which is crossed by or connected with all lesser tracks. The
love of money and the thirst for that distinction which attaches to power, are
then so closely intermixed in the same souls, that it becomes difficult to
discover whether men grow covetous from ambition, or whether they are ambitious
from covetousness. This is the case in England, where men seek to get rich in
order to arrive at distinction, and seek distinctions as a manifestation of
their wealth. The mind is then seized by both ends, and hurried into trade and
manufactures, which are the shortest roads that lead to opulence.
This, however, strikes me as an exceptional and transitory circumstance. When
wealth is become the only symbol of aristocracy, it is very difficult for the
wealthy to maintain sole possession of political power, to the exclusion of all
other men. The aristocracy of birth and pure democracy are at the two extremes
of the social and political state of nations: between them moneyed aristocracy
finds its place. The latter approximates to the aristocracy of birth by
conferring great privileges on a small number of persons; it so far belongs to
the democratic element, that these privileges may be successively acquired by
all. It frequently forms a natural transition between these two conditions of
society, and it is difficult to say whether it closes the reign of aristocratic
institutions, or whether it already opens the new era of democracy.]
In democratic countries, where money does not lead those who possess it to
political power, but often removes them from it, the rich do not know how to
spend their leisure. They are driven into active life by the inquietude and the
greatness of their desires, by the extent of their resources, and by the taste
for what is extraordinary, which is almost always felt by those who rise, by
whatsoever means, above the crowd. Trade is the only road open to them. In
democracies nothing is more great or more brilliant than commerce: it attracts
the attention of the public, and fills the imagination of the multitude; all
energetic passions are directed towards it. Neither their own prejudices, nor
those of anybody else, can prevent the rich from devoting themselves to it. The
wealthy members of democracies never form a body which has manners and
regulations of its own; the opinions peculiar to their class do not restrain
them, and the common opinions of their country urge them on. Moreover, as all
the large fortunes which are to be met with in a democratic community are of
commercial growth, many generations must succeed each other before their
possessors can have entirely laid aside their habits of business.
Circumscribed within the narrow space which politics leave them, rich men in
democracies eagerly embark in commercial enterprise: there they can extend and
employ their natural advantages; and indeed it is even by the boldness and the
magnitude of their industrial speculations that we may measure the slight esteem
in which productive industry would have been held by them, if they had been born
amidst an aristocracy.
A similar observation is likewise applicable to all men living in democracies,
whether they be poor or rich. Those who live in the midst of democratic
fluctuations have always before their eyes the phantom of chance; and they end
by liking all undertakings in which chance plays a part. They are therefore all
led to engage in commerce, not only for the sake of the profit it holds out to
them, but for the love of the constant excitement occasioned by that pursuit.
The United States of America have only been emancipated for half a century [in
1840] from the state of colonial dependence in which they stood to Great
Britain; the number of large fortunes there is small, and capital is still
scarce. Yet no people in the world has made such rapid progress in trade and
manufactures as the Americans: they constitute at the present day the second
maritime nation in the world; and although their manufactures have to struggle
with almost insurmountable natural impediments, they are not prevented from
making great and daily advances. In the United States the greatest undertakings
and speculations are executed without difficulty, because the whole population
is engaged in productive industry, and because the poorest as well as the most
opulent members of the commonwealth are ready to combine their efforts for these
purposes. The consequence is, that a stranger is constantly amazed by the
immense public works executed by a nation which contains, so to speak, no rich
men. The Americans arrived but as yesterday on the territory which they inhabit,
and they have already changed the whole order of nature for their own advantage.
They have joined the Hudson to the Mississippi, and made the Atlantic Ocean
communicate with the Gulf of Mexico, across a continent of more than five
hundred leagues in extent which separates the two seas. The longest railroads
which have been constructed up to the present time are in America. But what most
astonishes me in the United States, is not so much the marvellous grandeur of
some undertakings, as the innumerable multitude of small ones. Almost all the
farmers of the United States combine some trade with agriculture; most of them
make agriculture itself a trade. It seldom happens that an American farmer
settles for good upon the land which he occupies: especially in the districts of
the Far West he brings land into tillage in order to sell it again, and not to
farm it: he builds a farmhouse on the speculation that, as the state of the
country will soon be changed by the increase of population, a good price will be
gotten for it. Every year a swarm of the inhabitants of the North arrive in the
Southern States, and settle in the parts where the cotton plant and the
sugar-cane grow. These men cultivate the soil in order to make it produce in a
few years enough to enrich them; and they already look forward to the time when
they may return home to enjoy the competency thus acquired. Thus the Americans
carry their business-like qualities into agriculture; and their trading passions
are displayed in that as in their other pursuits.
The Americans make immense progress in productive industry, because they all
devote themselves to it at once; and for this same reason they are exposed to
very unexpected and formidable embarrassments. As they are all engaged in
commerce, their commercial affairs are affected by such various and complex
causes that it is impossible to foresee what difficulties may arise. As they are
all more or less engaged in productive industry, at the least shock given to
business all private fortunes are put in jeopardy at the same time, and the
State is shaken. I believe that the return of these commercial panics is an
endemic disease of the democratic nations of our age. It may be rendered less
dangerous, but it cannot be cured; because it does not originate in accidental
circumstances, but in the temperament of these nations.
Chapter XX: That Aristocracy May Be Engendered By Manufactures
I have shown that democracy is favorable to the growth of manufactures, and that
it increases without limit the numbers of the manufacturing classes: we shall
now see by what side road manufacturers may possibly in their turn bring men
back to aristocracy. It is acknowledged that when a workman is engaged every day
upon the same detail, the whole commodity is produced with greater ease,
promptitude, and economy. It is likewise acknowledged that the cost of the
production of manufactured goods is diminished by the extent of the
establishment in which they are made, and by the amount of capital employed or
of credit. These truths had long been imperfectly discerned, but in our time
they have been demonstrated. They have been already applied to many very
important kinds of manufactures, and the humblest will gradually be governed by
them. I know of nothing in politics which deserves to fix the attention of the
legislator more closely than these two new axioms of the science of
manufactures.
When a workman is unceasingly and exclusively engaged in the fabrication of one
thing, he ultimately does his work with singular dexterity; but at the same time
he loses the general faculty of applying his mind to the direction of the work.
He every day becomes more adroit and less industrious; so that it may be said of
him, that in proportion as the workman improves the man is degraded. What can be
expected of a man who has spent twenty years of his life in making heads for
pins? and to what can that mighty human intelligence, which has so often stirred
the world, be applied in him, except it be to investigate the best method of
making pins' heads? When a workman has spent a considerable portion of his
existence in this manner, his thoughts are forever set upon the object of his
daily toil; his body has contracted certain fixed habits, which it can never
shake off: in a word, he no longer belongs to himself, but to the calling which
he has chosen. It is in vain that laws and manners have been at the pains to
level all barriers round such a man, and to open to him on every side a thousand
different paths to fortune; a theory of manufactures more powerful than manners
and laws binds him to a craft, and frequently to a spot, which he cannot leave:
it assigns to him a certain place in society, beyond which he cannot go: in the
midst of universal movement it has rendered him stationary.
In proportion as the principle of the division of labor is more extensively
applied, the workman becomes more weak, more narrow-minded, and more dependent.
The art advances, the artisan recedes. On the other hand, in proportion as it
becomes more manifest that the productions of manufactures are by so much the
cheaper and better as the manufacture is larger and the amount of capital
employed more considerable, wealthy and educated men come forward to embark in
manufactures which were heretofore abandoned to poor or ignorant handicraftsmen.
The magnitude of the efforts required, and the importance of the results to be
obtained, attract them. Thus at the very time at which the science of
manufactures lowers the class of workmen, it raises the class of masters.
Whereas the workman concentrates his faculties more and more upon the study of a
single detail, the master surveys a more extensive whole, and the mind of the
latter is enlarged in proportion as that of the former is narrowed. In a short
time the one will require nothing but physical strength without intelligence;
the other stands in need of science, and almost of genius, to insure success.
This man resembles more and more the administrator of a vast empire—that man, a
brute. The master and the workman have then here no similarity, and their
differences increase every day. They are only connected as the two rings at the
extremities of a long chain. Each of them fills the station which is made for
him, and out of which he does not get: the one is continually, closely, and
necessarily dependent upon the other, and seems as much born to obey as that
other is to command. What is this but aristocracy?
As the conditions of men constituting the nation become more and more equal, the
demand for manufactured commodities becomes more general and more extensive; and
the cheapness which places these objects within the reach of slender fortunes
becomes a great element of success. Hence there are every day more men of great
opulence and education who devote their wealth and knowledge to manufactures;
and who seek, by opening large establishments, and by a strict division of
labor, to meet the fresh demands which are made on all sides. Thus, in
proportion as the mass of the nation turns to democracy, that particular class
which is engaged in manufactures becomes more aristocratic. Men grow more alike
in the one—more different in the other; and inequality increases in the less
numerous class in the same ratio in which it decreases in the community. Hence
it would appear, on searching to the bottom, that aristocracy should naturally
spring out of the bosom of democracy.
But this kind of aristocracy by no means resembles those kinds which preceded
it. It will be observed at once, that as it applies exclusively to manufactures
and to some manufacturing callings, it is a monstrous exception in the general
aspect of society. The small aristocratic societies which are formed by some
manufacturers in the midst of the immense democracy of our age, contain, like
the great aristocratic societies of former ages, some men who are very opulent,
and a multitude who are wretchedly poor. The poor have few means of escaping
from their condition and becoming rich; but the rich are constantly becoming
poor, or they give up business when they have realized a fortune. Thus the
elements of which the class of the poor is composed are fixed; but the elements
of which the class of the rich is composed are not so. To say the truth, though
there are rich men, the class of rich men does not exist; for these rich
individuals have no feelings or purposes in common, no mutual traditions or
mutual hopes; there are therefore members, but no body.
Not only are the rich not compactly united amongst themselves, but there is no
real bond between them and the poor. Their relative position is not a permanent
one; they are constantly drawn together or separated by their interests. The
workman is generally dependent on the master, but not on any particular master;
these two men meet in the factory, but know not each other elsewhere; and whilst
they come into contact on one point, they stand very wide apart on all others.
The manufacturer asks nothing of the workman but his labor; the workman expects
nothing from him but his wages. The one contracts no obligation to protect, nor
the other to defend; and they are not permanently connected either by habit or
by duty. The aristocracy created by business rarely settles in the midst of the
manufacturing population which it directs; the object is not to govern that
population, but to use it. An aristocracy thus constituted can have no great
hold upon those whom it employs; and even if it succeed in retaining them at one
moment, they escape the next; it knows not how to will, and it cannot act. The
territorial aristocracy of former ages was either bound by law, or thought
itself bound by usage, to come to the relief of its serving-men, and to succor
their distresses. But the manufacturing aristocracy of our age first
impoverishes and debases the men who serve it, and then abandons them to be
supported by the charity of the public. This is a natural consequence of what
has been said before. Between the workmen and the master there are frequent
relations, but no real partnership.
I am of opinion, upon the whole, that the manufacturing aristocracy which is
growing up under our eyes is one of the harshest which ever existed in the
world; but at the same time it is one of the most confined and least dangerous.
Nevertheless the friends of democracy should keep their eyes anxiously fixed in
this direction; for if ever a permanent inequality of conditions and aristocracy
again penetrate into the world, it may be predicted that this is the channel by
which they will enter.
Book Three: Influence Of Democracy On Manners, Properly So Called
Chapter I: That Manners Are Softened As Social Conditions Become More Equal
We perceive that for several ages social conditions have tended to equality, and
we discover that in the course of the same period the manners of society have
been softened. Are these two things merely contemporaneous, or does any secret
link exist between them, so that the one cannot go on without making the other
advance? Several causes may concur to render the manners of a people less rude;
but, of all these causes, the most powerful appears to me to be the equality of
conditions. Equality of conditions and growing civility in manners are, then, in
my eyes, not only contemporaneous occurrences, but correlative facts. When the
fabulists seek to interest us in the actions of beasts, they invest them with
human notions and passions; the poets who sing of spirits and angels do the
same; there is no wretchedness so deep, nor any happiness so pure, as to fill
the human mind and touch the heart, unless we are ourselves held up to our own
eyes under other features.
This is strictly applicable to the subject upon which we are at present engaged.
When all men are irrevocably marshalled in an aristocratic community, according
to their professions, their property, and their birth, the members of each
class, considering themselves as children of the same family, cherish a constant
and lively sympathy towards each other, which can never be felt in an equal
degree by the citizens of a democracy. But the same feeling does not exist
between the several classes towards each other. Amongst an aristocratic people
each caste has its own opinions, feelings, rights, manners, and modes of living.
Thus the men of whom each caste is composed do not resemble the mass of their
fellow-citizens; they do not think or feel in the same manner, and they scarcely
believe that they belong to the same human race. They cannot, therefore,
thoroughly understand what others feel, nor judge of others by themselves. Yet
they are sometimes eager to lend each other mutual aid; but this is not contrary
to my previous observation. These aristocratic institutions, which made the
beings of one and the same race so different, nevertheless bound them to each
other by close political ties. Although the serf had no natural interest in the
fate of nobles, he did not the less think himself obliged to devote his person
to the service of that noble who happened to be his lord; and although the noble
held himself to be of a different nature from that of his serfs, he nevertheless
held that his duty and his honor constrained him to defend, at the risk of his
own life, those who dwelt upon his domains.
It is evident that these mutual obligations did not originate in the law of
nature, but in the law of society; and that the claim of social duty was more
stringent than that of mere humanity. These services were not supposed to be due
from man to man, but to the vassal or to the lord. Feudal institutions awakened
a lively sympathy for the sufferings of certain men, but none at all for the
miseries of mankind. They infused generosity rather than mildness into the
manners of the time, and although they prompted men to great acts of
self-devotion, they engendered no real sympathies; for real sympathies can only
exist between those who are alike; and in aristocratic ages men acknowledge none
but the members of their own caste to be like themselves.
When the chroniclers of the Middle Ages, who all belonged to the aristocracy by
birth or education, relate the tragical end of a noble, their grief flows apace;
whereas they tell you at a breath, and without wincing, of massacres and
tortures inflicted on the common sort of people. Not that these writers felt
habitual hatred or systematic disdain for the people; war between the several
classes of the community was not yet declared. They were impelled by an instinct
rather than by a passion; as they had formed no clear notion of a poor man's
sufferings, they cared but little for his fate. The same feelings animated the
lower orders whenever the feudal tie was broken. The same ages which witnessed
so many heroic acts of self-devotion on the part of vassals for their lords,
were stained with atrocious barbarities, exercised from time to time by the
lower classes on the higher. It must not be supposed that this mutual
insensibility arose solely from the absence of public order and education; for
traces of it are to be found in the following centuries, which became tranquil
and enlightened whilst they remained aristocratic. In 1675 the lower classes in
Brittany revolted at the imposition of a new tax. These disturbances were put
down with unexampled atrocity. Observe the language in which Madame de Sevigne,
a witness of these horrors, relates them to her daughter:—
"Aux Rochers, 30 Octobre, 1675.
"Mon Dieu, ma fille, que votre lettre d'Aix est plaisante! Au moins relisez vos
lettres avant que de les envoyer; laissez-vous surpendre a leur agrement, et
consolez-vous par ce plaisir de la peine que vous avez d'en tant ecrire. Vous
avez donc baise toute la Provence? il n'y aurait pas satisfaction a baiser toute
la Bretagne, a moins qu'on n'aimat a sentir le vin. . . . Voulez-vous savoir des
nouvelles de Rennes? On a fait une taxe de cent mille ecus sur le bourgeois; et
si on ne trouve point cette somme dans vingt-quatre heures, elle sera doublee et
exigible par les soldats. On a chasse et banni toute une grand rue, et defendu
de les recueillir sous peine de la vie; de sorte qu'on voyait tous ces
miserables, veillards, femmes accouchees, enfans, errer en pleurs au sortir de
cette ville sans savoir ou aller. On roua avant-hier un violon, qui avait
commence la danse et la pillerie du papier timbre; il a ete ecartele apres sa
mort, et ses quatre quartiers exposes aux quatre coins de la ville. On a pris
soixante bourgeois, et on commence demain les punitions. Cette province est un
bel exemple pour les autres, et surtout de respecter les gouverneurs et les
gouvernantes, et de ne point jeter de pierres dans leur jardin." *a
a
[ To feel the point of this joke the reader should recollect that Madame de
Grignan was Gouvernante de Provence.] "Madame de Tarente etait hier dans ces
bois par un temps enchante: il n'est question ni de chambre ni de collation;
elle entre par la barriere et s'en retourne de meme. . . ."
In another letter she adds:—
"Vous me parlez bien plaisamment de nos miseres; nous ne sommes plus si roues;
un en huit jours, pour entretenir la justice. Il est vrai que la penderie me
parait maintenant un refraichissement. J'ai une tout autre idee de la justice,
depuis que je suis en ce pays. Vos galeriens me paraissent une societe
d'honnetes gens qui se sont retires du monde pour mener une vie douce."
It would be a mistake to suppose that Madame de Sevigne, who wrote these lines,
was a selfish or cruel person; she was passionately attached to her children,
and very ready to sympathize in the sorrows of her friends; nay, her letters
show that she treated her vassals and servants with kindness and indulgence. But
Madame de Sevigne had no clear notion of suffering in anyone who was not a
person of quality.
In our time the harshest man writing to the most insensible person of his
acquaintance would not venture wantonly to indulge in the cruel jocularity which
I have quoted; and even if his own manners allowed him to do so, the manners of
society at large would forbid it. Whence does this arise? Have we more
sensibility than our forefathers? I know not that we have; but I am sure that
our insensibility is extended to a far greater range of objects. When all the
ranks of a community are nearly equal, as all men think and feel in nearly the
same manner, each of them may judge in a moment of the sensations of all the
others; he casts a rapid glance upon himself, and that is enough. There is no
wretchedness into which he cannot readily enter, and a secret instinct reveals
to him its extent. It signifies not that strangers or foes be the sufferers;
imagination puts him in their place; something like a personal feeling is
mingled with his pity, and makes himself suffer whilst the body of his
fellow-creature is in torture. In democratic ages men rarely sacrifice
themselves for one another; but they display general compassion for the members
of the human race. They inflict no useless ills; and they are happy to relieve
the griefs of others, when they can do so without much hurting themselves; they
are not disinterested, but they are humane.
Although the Americans have, in a manner, reduced egotism to a social and
philosophical theory, they are nevertheless extremely open to compassion. In no
country is criminal justice administered with more mildness than in the United
States. Whilst the English seem disposed carefully to retain the bloody traces
of the dark ages in their penal legislation, the Americans have almost expunged
capital punishment from their codes. North America is, I think, the only one
country upon earth in which the life of no one citizen has been taken for a
political offence in the course of the last fifty years. The circumstance which
conclusively shows that this singular mildness of the Americans arises chiefly
from their social condition, is the manner in which they treat their slaves.
Perhaps there is not, upon the whole, a single European colony in the New World
in which the physical condition of the blacks is less severe than in the United
States; yet the slaves still endure horrid sufferings there, and are constantly
exposed to barbarous punishments. It is easy to perceive that the lot of these
unhappy beings inspires their masters with but little compassion, and that they
look upon slavery, not only as an institution which is profitable to them, but
as an evil which does not affect them. Thus the same man who is full of humanity
towards his fellow-creatures when they are at the same time his equals, becomes
insensible to their afflictions as soon as that equality ceases. His mildness
should therefore be attributed to the equality of conditions, rather than to
civilization and education.
What I have here remarked of individuals is, to a certain extent, applicable to
nations. When each nation has its distinct opinions, belief, laws, and customs,
it looks upon itself as the whole of mankind, and is moved by no sorrows but its
own. Should war break out between two nations animated by this feeling, it is
sure to be waged with great cruelty. At the time of their highest culture, the
Romans slaughtered the generals of their enemies, after having dragged them in
triumph behind a car; and they flung their prisoners to the beasts of the Circus
for the amusement of the people. Cicero, who declaimed so vehemently at the
notion of crucifying a Roman citizen, had not a word to say against these
horrible abuses of victory. It is evident that in his eyes a barbarian did not
belong to the same human race as a Roman. On the contrary, in proportion as
nations become more like each other, they become reciprocally more
compassionate, and the law of nations is mitigated.
Chapter II: That Democracy Renders The Habitual Intercourse Of The Americans
Simple And Easy
Democracy does not attach men strongly to each other; but it places their
habitual intercourse upon an easier footing. If two Englishmen chance to meet at
the Antipodes, where they are surrounded by strangers whose language and manners
are almost unknown to them, they will first stare at each other with much
curiosity and a kind of secret uneasiness; they will then turn away, or, if one
accosts the other, they will take care only to converse with a constrained and
absent air upon very unimportant subjects. Yet there is no enmity between these
men; they have never seen each other before, and each believes the other to be a
respectable person. Why then should they stand so cautiously apart? We must go
back to England to learn the reason.
When it is birth alone, independent of wealth, which classes men in society,
everyone knows exactly what his own position is upon the social scale; he does
not seek to rise, he does not fear to sink. In a community thus organized, men
of different castes communicate very little with each other; but if accident
brings them together, they are ready to converse without hoping or fearing to
lose their own position. Their intercourse is not upon a footing of equality,
but it is not constrained. When moneyed aristocracy succeeds to aristocracy of
birth, the case is altered. The privileges of some are still extremely great,
but the possibility of acquiring those privileges is open to all: whence it
follows that those who possess them are constantly haunted by the apprehension
of losing them, or of other men's sharing them; those who do not yet enjoy them
long to possess them at any cost, or, if they fail to appear at least to possess
them—which is not impossible. As the social importance of men is no longer
ostensibly and permanently fixed by blood, and is infinitely varied by wealth,
ranks still exist, but it is not easy clearly to distinguish at a glance those
who respectively belong to them. Secret hostilities then arise in the community;
one set of men endeavor by innumerable artifices to penetrate, or to appear to
penetrate, amongst those who are above them; another set are constantly in arms
against these usurpers of their rights; or rather the same individual does both
at once, and whilst he seeks to raise himself into a higher circle, he is always
on the defensive against the intrusion of those below him.
Such is the condition of England at the present time; and I am of opinion that
the peculiarity before adverted to is principally to be attributed to this
cause. As aristocratic pride is still extremely great amongst the English, and
as the limits of aristocracy are ill-defined, everybody lives in constant dread
lest advantage should be taken of his familiarity. Unable to judge at once of
the social position of those he meets, an Englishman prudently avoids all
contact with them. Men are afraid lest some slight service rendered should draw
them into an unsuitable acquaintance; they dread civilities, and they avoid the
obtrusive gratitude of a stranger quite as much as his hatred. Many people
attribute these singular anti-social propensities, and the reserved and taciturn
bearing of the English, to purely physical causes. I may admit that there is
something of it in their race, but much more of it is attributable to their
social condition, as is proved by the contrast of the Americans.
In America, where the privileges of birth never existed, and where riches confer
no peculiar rights on their possessors, men unacquainted with each other are
very ready to frequent the same places, and find neither peril nor advantage in
the free interchange of their thoughts. If they meet by accident, they neither
seek nor avoid intercourse; their manner is therefore natural, frank, and open:
it is easy to see that they hardly expect or apprehend anything from each other,
and that they do not care to display, any more than to conceal, their position
in the world. If their demeanor is often cold and serious, it is never haughty
or constrained; and if they do not converse, it is because they are not in a
humor to talk, not because they think it their interest to be silent. In a
foreign country two Americans are at once friends, simply because they are
Americans. They are repulsed by no prejudice; they are attracted by their common
country. For two Englishmen the same blood is not enough; they must be brought
together by the same rank. The Americans remark this unsociable mood of the
English as much as the French do, and they are not less astonished by it. Yet
the Americans are connected with England by their origin, their religion, their
language, and partially by their manners; they only differ in their social
condition. It may therefore be inferred that the reserve of the English proceeds
from the constitution of their country much more than from that of its
inhabitants.
Chapter III: Why The Americans Show So Little Sensitiveness In Their Own
Country, And Are So Sensitive In Europe
The temper of the Americans is vindictive, like that of all serious and
reflecting nations. They hardly ever forget an offence, but it is not easy to
offend them; and their resentment is as slow to kindle as it is to abate. In
aristocratic communities where a small number of persons manage everything, the
outward intercourse of men is subject to settled conventional rules. Everyone
then thinks he knows exactly what marks of respect or of condescension he ought
to display, and none are presumed to be ignorant of the science of etiquette.
These usages of the first class in society afterwards serve as a model to all
the others; besides which each of the latter lays down a code of its own, to
which all its members are bound to conform. Thus the rules of politeness form a
complex system of legislation, which it is difficult to be perfectly master of,
but from which it is dangerous for anyone to deviate; so that men are constantly
exposed involuntarily to inflict or to receive bitter affronts. But as the
distinctions of rank are obliterated, as men differing in education and in birth
meet and mingle in the same places of resort, it is almost impossible to agree
upon the rules of good breeding. As its laws are uncertain, to disobey them is
not a crime, even in the eyes of those who know what they are; men attach more
importance to intentions than to forms, and they grow less civil, but at the
same time less quarrelsome. There are many little attentions which an American
does not care about; he thinks they are not due to him, or he presumes that they
are not known to be due: he therefore either does not perceive a rudeness or he
forgives it; his manners become less courteous, and his character more plain and
masculine.
The mutual indulgence which the Americans display, and the manly confidence with
which they treat each other, also result from another deeper and more general
cause, which I have already adverted to in the preceding chapter. In the United
States the distinctions of rank in civil society are slight, in political
society they are null; an American, therefore, does not think himself bound to
pay particular attentions to any of his fellow-citizens, nor does he require
such attentions from them towards himself. As he does not see that it is his
interest eagerly to seek the company of any of his countrymen, he is slow to
fancy that his own company is declined: despising no one on account of his
station, he does not imagine that anyone can despise him for that cause; and
until he has clearly perceived an insult, he does not suppose that an affront
was intended. The social condition of the Americans naturally accustoms them not
to take offence in small matters; and, on the other hand, the democratic freedom
which they enjoy transfuses this same mildness of temper into the character of
the nation. The political institutions of the United States constantly bring
citizens of all ranks into contact, and compel them to pursue great undertakings
in concert. People thus engaged have scarcely time to attend to the details of
etiquette, and they are besides too strongly interested in living harmoniously
for them to stick at such things. They therefore soon acquire a habit of
considering the feelings and opinions of those whom they meet more than their
manners, and they do not allow themselves to be annoyed by trifles.
I have often remarked in the United States that it is not easy to make a man
understand that his presence may be dispensed with; hints will not always
suffice to shake him off. I contradict an American at every word he says, to
show him that his conversation bores me; he instantly labors with fresh
pertinacity to convince me; I preserve a dogged silence, and he thinks I am
meditating deeply on the truths which he is uttering; at last I rush from his
company, and he supposes that some urgent business hurries me elsewhere. This
man will never understand that he wearies me to extinction unless I tell him so:
and the only way to get rid of him is to make him my enemy for life.
It appears surprising at first sight that the same man transported to Europe
suddenly becomes so sensitive and captious, that I often find it as difficult to
avoid offending him here as it was to put him out of countenance. These two
opposite effects proceed from the same cause. Democratic institutions generally
give men a lofty notion of their country and of themselves. An American leaves
his country with a heart swollen with pride; on arriving in Europe he at once
finds out that we are not so engrossed by the United States and the great people
which inhabits them as he had supposed, and this begins to annoy him. He has
been informed that the conditions of society are not equal in our part of the
globe, and he observes that among the nations of Europe the traces of rank are
not wholly obliterated; that wealth and birth still retain some indeterminate
privileges, which force themselves upon his notice whilst they elude definition.
He is therefore profoundly ignorant of the place which he ought to occupy in
this half-ruined scale of classes, which are sufficiently distinct to hate and
despise each other, yet sufficiently alike for him to be always confounding
them. He is afraid of ranging himself too high—still more is he afraid of being
ranged too low; this twofold peril keeps his mind constantly on the stretch, and
embarrasses all he says and does. He learns from tradition that in Europe
ceremonial observances were infinitely varied according to different ranks; this
recollection of former times completes his perplexity, and he is the more afraid
of not obtaining those marks of respect which are due to him, as he does not
exactly know in what they consist. He is like a man surrounded by traps: society
is not a recreation for him, but a serious toil: he weighs your least actions,
interrogates your looks, and scrutinizes all you say, lest there should be some
hidden allusion to affront him. I doubt whether there was ever a provincial man
of quality so punctilious in breeding as he is: he endeavors to attend to the
slightest rules of etiquette, and does not allow one of them to be waived
towards himself: he is full of scruples and at the same time of pretensions; he
wishes to do enough, but fears to do too much; and as he does not very well know
the limits of the one or of the other, he keeps up a haughty and embarrassed air
of reserve.
But this is not all: here is yet another double of the human heart. An American
is forever talking of the admirable equality which prevails in the United
States; aloud he makes it the boast of his country, but in secret he deplores it
for himself; and he aspires to show that, for his part, he is an exception to
the general state of things which he vaunts. There is hardly an American to be
met with who does not claim some remote kindred with the first founders of the
colonies; and as for the scions of the noble families of England, America seemed
to me to be covered with them. When an opulent American arrives in Europe, his
first care is to surround himself with all the luxuries of wealth: he is so
afraid of being taken for the plain citizen of a democracy, that he adopts a
hundred distorted ways of bringing some new instance of his wealth before you
every day. His house will be in the most fashionable part of the town: he will
always be surrounded by a host of servants. I have heard an American complain,
that in the best houses of Paris the society was rather mixed; the taste which
prevails there was not pure enough for him; and he ventured to hint that, in his
opinion, there was a want of elegance of manner; he could not accustom himself
to see wit concealed under such unpretending forms.
These contrasts ought not to surprise us. If the vestiges of former aristocratic
distinctions were not so completely effaced in the United States, the Americans
would be less simple and less tolerant in their own country—they would require
less, and be less fond of borrowed manners in ours.
Chapter IV: Consequences Of The Three Preceding Chapters
When men feel a natural compassion for their mutual sufferings—when they are
brought together by easy and frequent intercourse, and no sensitive feelings
keep them asunder—it may readily be supposed that they will lend assistance to
one another whenever it is needed. When an American asks for the co-operation of
his fellow-citizens it is seldom refused, and I have often seen it afforded
spontaneously and with great goodwill. If an accident happens on the highway,
everybody hastens to help the sufferer; if some great and sudden calamity
befalls a family, the purses of a thousand strangers are at once willingly
opened, and small but numerous donations pour in to relieve their distress. It
often happens amongst the most civilized nations of the globe, that a poor
wretch is as friendless in the midst of a crowd as the savage in his wilds: this
is hardly ever the case in the United States. The Americans, who are always cold
and often coarse in their manners, seldom show insensibility; and if they do not
proffer services eagerly, yet they do not refuse to render them.
All this is not in contradiction to what I have said before on the subject of
individualism. The two things are so far from combating each other, that I can
see how they agree. Equality of conditions, whilst it makes men feel their
independence, shows them their own weakness: they are free, but exposed to a
thousand accidents; and experience soon teaches them that, although they do not
habitually require the assistance of others, a time almost always comes when
they cannot do without it. We constantly see in Europe that men of the same
profession are ever ready to assist each other; they are all exposed to the same
ills, and that is enough to teach them to seek mutual preservatives, however
hard-hearted and selfish they may otherwise be. When one of them falls into
danger, from which the others may save him by a slight transient sacrifice or a
sudden effort, they do not fail to make the attempt. Not that they are deeply
interested in his fate; for if, by chance, their exertions are unavailing, they
immediately forget the object of them, and return to their own business; but a
sort of tacit and almost involuntary agreement has been passed between them, by
which each one owes to the others a temporary support which he may claim for
himself in turn. Extend to a people the remark here applied to a class, and you
will understand my meaning. A similar covenant exists in fact between all the
citizens of a democracy: they all feel themselves subject to the same weakness
and the same dangers; and their interest, as well as their sympathy, makes it a
rule with them to lend each other mutual assistance when required. The more
equal social conditions become, the more do men display this reciprocal
disposition to oblige each other. In democracies no great benefits are
conferred, but good offices are constantly rendered: a man seldom displays
self-devotion, but all men are ready to be of service to one another.
Chapter V: How Democracy Affects the Relation Of Masters And Servants
An American who had travelled for a long time in Europe once said to me, "The
English treat their servants with a stiffness and imperiousness of manner which
surprise us; but on the other hand the French sometimes treat their attendants
with a degree of familiarity or of politeness which we cannot conceive. It looks
as if they were afraid to give orders: the posture of the superior and the
inferior is ill-maintained." The remark was a just one, and I have often made it
myself. I have always considered England as the country in the world where, in
our time, the bond of domestic service is drawn most tightly, and France as the
country where it is most relaxed. Nowhere have I seen masters stand so high or
so low as in these two countries. Between these two extremes the Americans are
to be placed. Such is the fact as it appears upon the surface of things: to
discover the causes of that fact, it is necessary to search the matter
thoroughly.
No communities have ever yet existed in which social conditions have been so
equal that there were neither rich nor poor, and consequently neither masters
nor servants. Democracy does not prevent the existence of these two classes, but
it changes their dispositions and modifies their mutual relations. Amongst
aristocratic nations servants form a distinct class, not more variously composed
than that of masters. A settled order is soon established; in the former as well
as in the latter class a scale is formed, with numerous distinctions or marked
gradations of rank, and generations succeed each other thus without any change
of position. These two communities are superposed one above the other, always
distinct, but regulated by analogous principles. This aristocratic constitution
does not exert a less powerful influence on the notions and manners of servants
than on those of masters; and, although the effects are different, the same
cause may easily be traced. Both classes constitute small communities in the
heart of the nation, and certain permanent notions of right and wrong are
ultimately engendered amongst them. The different acts of human life are viewed
by one particular and unchanging light. In the society of servants, as in that
of masters, men exercise a great influence over each other: they acknowledge
settled rules, and in the absence of law they are guided by a sort of public
opinion: their habits are settled, and their conduct is placed under a certain
control.
These men, whose destiny is to obey, certainly do not understand fame, virtue,
honesty, and honor in the same manner as their masters; but they have a pride, a
virtue, and an honesty pertaining to their condition; and they have a notion, if
I may use the expression, of a sort of servile honor. *a Because a class is
mean, it must not be supposed that all who belong to it are mean-hearted; to
think so would be a great mistake. However lowly it may be, he who is foremost
there, and who has no notion of quitting it, occupies an aristocratic position
which inspires him with lofty feelings, pride, and self-respect, that fit him
for the higher virtues and actions above the common. Amongst aristocratic
nations it was by no means rare to find men of noble and vigorous minds in the
service of the great, who felt not the servitude they bore, and who submitted to
the will of their masters without any fear of their displeasure. But this was
hardly ever the case amongst the inferior ranks of domestic servants. It may be
imagined that he who occupies the lowest stage of the order of menials stands
very low indeed. The French created a word on purpose to designate the servants
of the aristocracy—they called them lackeys. This word "lackey" served as the
strongest expression, when all others were exhausted, to designate human
meanness. Under the old French monarchy, to denote by a single expression a
low-spirited contemptible fellow, it was usual to say that he had the "soul of a
lackey"; the term was enough to convey all that was intended. [Footnote a: If
the principal opinions by which men are guided are examined closely and in
detail, the analogy appears still more striking, and one is surprised to find
amongst them, just as much as amongst the haughtiest scions of a feudal race,
pride of birth, respect for their ancestry and their descendants, disdain of
their inferiors, a dread of contact, a taste for etiquette, precedents, and
antiquity.]
The permanent inequality of conditions not only gives servants certain peculiar
virtues and vices, but it places them in a peculiar relation with respect to
their masters. Amongst aristocratic nations the poor man is familiarized from
his childhood with the notion of being commanded: to whichever side he turns his
eyes the graduated structure of society and the aspect of obedience meet his
view. Hence in those countries the master readily obtains prompt, complete,
respectful, and easy obedience from his servants, because they revere in him not
only their master but the class of masters. He weighs down their will by the
whole weight of the aristocracy. He orders their actions—to a certain extent he
even directs their thoughts. In aristocracies the master often exercises, even
without being aware of it, an amazing sway over the opinions, the habits, and
the manners of those who obey him, and his influence extends even further than
his authority.
In aristocratic communities there are not only hereditary families of servants
as well as of masters, but the same families of servants adhere for several
generations to the same families of masters (like two parallel lines which
neither meet nor separate); and this considerably modifies the mutual relations
of these two classes of persons. Thus, although in aristocratic society the
master and servant have no natural resemblance—although, on the contrary, they
are placed at an immense distance on the scale of human beings by their fortune,
education, and opinions—yet time ultimately binds them together. They are
connected by a long series of common reminiscences, and however different they
may be, they grow alike; whilst in democracies, where they are naturally almost
alike, they always remain strangers to each other. Amongst an aristocratic
people the master gets to look upon his servants as an inferior and secondary
part of himself, and he often takes an interest in their lot by a last stretch
of egotism.
Servants, on their part, are not averse to regard themselves in the same light;
and they sometimes identify themselves with the person of the master, so that
they become an appendage to him in their own eyes as well as in his. In
aristocracies a servant fills a subordinate position which he cannot get out of;
above him is another man, holding a superior rank which he cannot lose. On one
side are obscurity, poverty, obedience for life; on the other, and also for
life, fame, wealth, and command. The two conditions are always distinct and
always in propinquity; the tie that connects them is as lasting as they are
themselves. In this predicament the servant ultimately detaches his notion of
interest from his own person; he deserts himself, as it were, or rather he
transports himself into the character of his master, and thus assumes an
imaginary personality. He complacently invests himself with the wealth of those
who command him; he shares their fame, exalts himself by their rank, and feeds
his mind with borrowed greatness, to which he attaches more importance than
those who fully and really possess it. There is something touching, and at the
same time ridiculous, in this strange confusion of two different states of
being. These passions of masters, when they pass into the souls of menials,
assume the natural dimensions of the place they occupy—they are contracted and
lowered. What was pride in the former becomes puerile vanity and paltry
ostentation in the latter. The servants of a great man are commonly most
punctilious as to the marks of respect due to him, and they attach more
importance to his slightest privileges than he does himself. In France a few of
these old servants of the aristocracy are still to be met with here and there;
they have survived their race, which will soon disappear with them altogether.
In the United States I never saw anyone at all like them. The Americans are not
only unacquainted with the kind of man, but it is hardly possible to make them
understand that such ever existed. It is scarcely less difficult for them to
conceive it, than for us to form a correct notion of what a slave was amongst
the Romans, or a serf in the Middle Ages. All these men were in fact, though in
different degrees, results of the same cause: they are all retiring from our
sight, and disappearing in the obscurity of the past, together with the social
condition to which they owed their origin.
Equality of conditions turns servants and masters into new beings, and places
them in new relative positions. When social conditions are nearly equal, men are
constantly changing their situations in life: there is still a class of menials
and a class of masters, but these classes are not always composed of the same
individuals, still less of the same families; and those who command are not more
secure of perpetuity than those who obey. As servants do not form a separate
people, they have no habits, prejudices, or manners peculiar to themselves; they
are not remarkable for any particular turn of mind or moods of feeling. They
know no vices or virtues of their condition, but they partake of the education,
the opinions, the feelings, the virtues, and the vices of their contemporaries;
and they are honest men or scoundrels in the same way as their masters are. The
conditions of servants are not less equal than those of masters. As no marked
ranks or fixed subordination are to be found amongst them, they will not display
either the meanness or the greatness which characterizes the aristocracy of
menials as well as all other aristocracies. I never saw a man in the United
States who reminded me of that class of confidential servants of which we still
retain a reminiscence in Europe, neither did I ever meet with such a thing as a
lackey: all traces of the one and of the other have disappeared.
In democracies servants are not only equal amongst themselves, but it may be
said that they are in some sort the equals of their masters. This requires
explanation in order to be rightly understood. At any moment a servant may
become a master, and he aspires to rise to that condition: the servant is
therefore not a different man from the master. Why then has the former a right
to command, and what compels the latter to obey?—the free and temporary consent
of both their wills. Neither of them is by nature inferior to the other; they
only become so for a time by covenant. Within the terms of this covenant, the
one is a servant, the other a master; beyond it they are two citizens of the
commonwealth—two men. I beg the reader particularly to observe that this is not
only the notion which servants themselves entertain of their own condition;
domestic service is looked upon by masters in the same light; and the precise
limits of authority and obedience are as clearly settled in the mind of the one
as in that of the other.
When the greater part of the community have long attained a condition nearly
alike, and when equality is an old and acknowledged fact, the public mind, which
is never affected by exceptions, assigns certain general limits to the value of
man, above or below which no man can long remain placed. It is in vain that
wealth and poverty, authority and obedience, accidentally interpose great
distances between two men; public opinion, founded upon the usual order of
things, draws them to a common level, and creates a species of imaginary
equality between them, in spite of the real inequality of their conditions. This
all-powerful opinion penetrates at length even into the hearts of those whose
interest might arm them to resist it; it affects their judgment whilst it
subdues their will. In their inmost convictions the master and the servant no
longer perceive any deep-seated difference between them, and they neither hope
nor fear to meet with any such at any time. They are therefore neither subject
to disdain nor to anger, and they discern in each other neither humility nor
pride. The master holds the contract of service to be the only source of his
power, and the servant regards it as the only cause of his obedience. They do
not quarrel about their reciprocal situations, but each knows his own and keeps
it.
In the French army the common soldier is taken from nearly the same classes as
the officer, and may hold the same commissions; out of the ranks he considers
himself entirely equal to his military superiors, and in point of fact he is so;
but when under arms he does not hesitate to obey, and his obedience is not the
less prompt, precise, and ready, for being voluntary and defined. This example
may give a notion of what takes place between masters and servants in democratic
communities.
It would be preposterous to suppose that those warm and deep-seated affections,
which are sometimes kindled in the domestic service of aristocracy, will ever
spring up between these two men, or that they will exhibit strong instances of
self-sacrifice. In aristocracies masters and servants live apart, and frequently
their only intercourse is through a third person; yet they commonly stand firmly
by one another. In democratic countries the master and the servant are close
together; they are in daily personal contact, but their minds do not
intermingle; they have common occupations, hardly ever common interests. Amongst
such a people the servant always considers himself as a sojourner in the
dwelling of his masters. He knew nothing of their forefathers—he will see
nothing of their descendants—he has nothing lasting to expect from their hand.
Why then should he confound his life with theirs, and whence should so strange a
surrender of himself proceed? The reciprocal position of the two men is
changed—their mutual relations must be so too.
I would fain illustrate all these reflections by the example of the Americans;
but for this purpose the distinctions of persons and places must be accurately
traced. In the South of the Union, slavery exists; all that I have just said is
consequently inapplicable there. In the North, the majority of servants are
either freedmen or the children of freedmen; these persons occupy a contested
position in the public estimation; by the laws they are brought up to the level
of their masters—by the manners of the country they are obstinately detruded
from it. They do not themselves clearly know their proper place, and they are
almost always either insolent or craven. But in the Northern States, especially
in New England, there are a certain number of whites, who agree, for wages, to
yield a temporary obedience to the will of their fellow-citizens. I have heard
that these servants commonly perform the duties of their situation with
punctuality and intelligence; and that without thinking themselves naturally
inferior to the person who orders them, they submit without reluctance to obey
him. They appear to me to carry into service some of those manly habits which
independence and equality engender. Having once selected a hard way of life,
they do not seek to escape from it by indirect means; and they have sufficient
respect for themselves, not to refuse to their master that obedience which they
have freely promised. On their part, masters require nothing of their servants
but the faithful and rigorous performance of the covenant: they do not ask for
marks of respect, they do not claim their love or devoted attachment; it is
enough that, as servants, they are exact and honest. It would not then be true
to assert that, in democratic society, the relation of servants and masters is
disorganized: it is organized on another footing; the rule is different, but
there is a rule.
It is not my purpose to inquire whether the new state of things which I have
just described is inferior to that which preceded it, or simply different.
Enough for me that it is fixed and determined: for what is most important to
meet with among men is not any given ordering, but order. But what shall I say
of those sad and troubled times at which equality is established in the midst of
the tumult of revolution—when democracy, after having been introduced into the
state of society, still struggles with difficulty against the prejudices and
manners of the country? The laws, and partially public opinion, already declare
that no natural or permanent inferiority exists between the servant and the
master. But this new belief has not yet reached the innermost convictions of the
latter, or rather his heart rejects it; in the secret persuasion of his mind the
master thinks that he belongs to a peculiar and superior race; he dares not say
so, but he shudders whilst he allows himself to be dragged to the same level.
His authority over his servants becomes timid and at the same time harsh: he has
already ceased to entertain for them the feelings of patronizing kindness which
long uncontested power always engenders, and he is surprised that, being changed
himself, his servant changes also. He wants his attendants to form regular and
permanent habits, in a condition of domestic service which is only temporary: he
requires that they should appear contented with and proud of a servile
condition, which they will one day shake off—that they should sacrifice
themselves to a man who can neither protect nor ruin them—and in short that they
should contract an indissoluble engagement to a being like themselves, and one
who will last no longer than they will.
Amongst aristocratic nations it often happens that the condition of domestic
service does not degrade the character of those who enter upon it, because they
neither know nor imagine any other; and the amazing inequality which is manifest
between them and their master appears to be the necessary and unavoidable
consequence of some hidden law of Providence. In democracies the condition of
domestic service does not degrade the character of those who enter upon it,
because it is freely chosen, and adopted for a time only; because it is not
stigmatized by public opinion, and creates no permanent inequality between the
servant and the master. But whilst the transition from one social condition to
another is going on, there is almost always a time when men's minds fluctuate
between the aristocratic notion of subjection and the democratic notion of
obedience. Obedience then loses its moral importance in the eyes of him who
obeys; he no longer considers it as a species of divine obligation, and he does
not yet view it under its purely human aspect; it has to him no character of
sanctity or of justice, and he submits to it as to a degrading but profitable
condition. At that moment a confused and imperfect phantom of equality haunts
the minds of servants; they do not at once perceive whether the equality to
which they are entitled is to be found within or without the pale of domestic
service; and they rebel in their hearts against a subordination to which they
have subjected themselves, and from which they derive actual profit. They
consent to serve, and they blush to obey; they like the advantages of service,
but not the master; or rather, they are not sure that they ought not themselves
to be masters, and they are inclined to consider him who orders them as an
unjust usurper of their own rights. Then it is that the dwelling of every
citizen offers a spectacle somewhat analogous to the gloomy aspect of political
society. A secret and intestine warfare is going on there between powers, ever
rivals and suspicious of one another: the master is ill-natured and weak, the
servant ill-natured and intractable; the one constantly attempts to evade by
unfair restrictions his obligation to protect and to remunerate—the other his
obligation to obey. The reins of domestic government dangle between them, to be
snatched at by one or the other. The lines which divide authority from
oppression, liberty from license, and right from might, are to their eyes so
jumbled together and confused, that no one knows exactly what he is, or what he
may be, or what he ought to be. Such a condition is not democracy, but
revolution.
Chapter VI: That Democratic Institutions And Manners Tend To Raise Rents And
Shorten The Terms Of Leases
What has been said of servants and masters is applicable, to a certain extent,
to landowners and farming tenants; but this subject deserves to be considered by
itself. In America there are, properly speaking, no tenant farmers; every man
owns the ground he tills. It must be admitted that democratic laws tend greatly
to increase the number of landowners, and to diminish that of farming tenants.
Yet what takes place in the United States is much less attributable to the
institutions of the country than to the country itself. In America land is
cheap, and anyone may easily become a landowner; its returns are small, and its
produce cannot well be divided between a landowner and a farmer. America
therefore stands alone in this as well as in many other respects, and it would
be a mistake to take it as an example.
I believe that in democratic as well as in aristocratic countries there will be
landowners and tenants, but the connection existing between them will be of a
different kind. In aristocracies the hire of a farm is paid to the landlord, not
only in rent, but in respect, regard, and duty; in democracies the whole is paid
in cash. When estates are divided and passed from hand to hand, and the
permanent connection which existed between families and the soil is dissolved,
the landowner and the tenant are only casually brought into contact. They meet
for a moment to settle the conditions of the agreement, and then lose sight of
each other; they are two strangers brought together by a common interest, and
who keenly talk over a matter of business, the sole object of which is to make
money.
In proportion as property is subdivided and wealth distributed over the country,
the community is filled with people whose former opulence is declining, and with
others whose fortunes are of recent growth and whose wants increase more rapidly
than their resources. For all such persons the smallest pecuniary profit is a
matter of importance, and none of them feel disposed to waive any of their
claims, or to lose any portion of their income. As ranks are intermingled, and
as very large as well as very scanty fortunes become more rare, every day brings
the social condition of the landowner nearer to that of the farmer; the one has
not naturally any uncontested superiority over the other; between two men who
are equal, and not at ease in their circumstances, the contract of hire is
exclusively an affair of money. A man whose estate extends over a whole
district, and who owns a hundred farms, is well aware of the importance of
gaining at the same time the affections of some thousands of men; this object
appears to call for his exertions, and to attain it he will readily make
considerable sacrifices. But he who owns a hundred acres is insensible to
similar considerations, and he cares but little to win the private regard of his
tenant.
An aristocracy does not expire like a man in a single day; the aristocratic
principle is slowly undermined in men's opinion, before it is attacked in their
laws. Long before open war is declared against it, the tie which had hitherto
united the higher classes to the lower may be seen to be gradually relaxed.
Indifference and contempt are betrayed by one class, jealousy and hatred by the
others; the intercourse between rich and poor becomes less frequent and less
kind, and rents are raised. This is not the consequence of a democratic
revolution, but its certain harbinger; for an aristocracy which has lost the
affections of the people, once and forever, is like a tree dead at the root,
which is the more easily torn up by the winds the higher its branches have
spread.
In the course of the last fifty years the rents of farms have amazingly
increased, not only in France but throughout the greater part of Europe. The
remarkable improvements which have taken place in agriculture and manufactures
within the same period do not suffice in my opinion to explain this fact;
recourse must be had to another cause more powerful and more concealed. I
believe that cause is to be found in the democratic institutions which several
European nations have adopted, and in the democratic passions which more or less
agitate all the rest. I have frequently heard great English landowners
congratulate themselves that, at the present day, they derive a much larger
income from their estates than their fathers did. They have perhaps good reasons
to be glad; but most assuredly they know not what they are glad of. They think
they are making a clear gain, when it is in reality only an exchange; their
influence is what they are parting with for cash; and what they gain in money
will ere long be lost in power.
There is yet another sign by which it is easy to know that a great democratic
revolution is going on or approaching. In the Middle Ages almost all lands were
leased for lives, or for very long terms; the domestic economy of that period
shows that leases for ninety-nine years were more frequent then than leases for
twelve years are now. Men then believed that families were immortal; men's
conditions seemed settled forever, and the whole of society appeared to be so
fixed, that it was not supposed that anything would ever be stirred or shaken in
its structure. In ages of equality, the human mind takes a different bent; the
prevailing notion is that nothing abides, and man is haunted by the thought of
mutability. Under this impression the landowner and the tenant himself are
instinctively averse to protracted terms of obligation; they are afraid of being
tied up to-morrow by the contract which benefits them today. They have vague
anticipations of some sudden and unforeseen change in their conditions; they
mistrust themselves; they fear lest their taste should change, and lest they
should lament that they cannot rid themselves of what they coveted; nor are such
fears unfounded, for in democratic ages that which is most fluctuating amidst
the fluctuation of all around is the heart of man.
Chapter VII: Influence Of Democracy On Wages
Most of the remarks which I have already made in speaking of servants and
masters, may be applied to masters and workmen. As the gradations of the social
scale come to be less observed, whilst the great sink the humble rise, and as
poverty as well as opulence ceases to be hereditary, the distance both in
reality and in opinion, which heretofore separated the workman from the master,
is lessened every day. The workman conceives a more lofty opinion of his rights,
of his future, of himself; he is filled with new ambition and with new desires,
he is harassed by new wants. Every instant he views with longing eyes the
profits of his employer; and in order to share them, he strives to dispose of
his labor at a higher rate, and he generally succeeds at length in the attempt.
In democratic countries, as well as elsewhere, most of the branches of
productive industry are carried on at a small cost, by men little removed by
their wealth or education above the level of those whom they employ. These
manufacturing speculators are extremely numerous; their interests differ; they
cannot therefore easily concert or combine their exertions. On the other hand
the workmen have almost always some sure resources, which enable them to refuse
to work when they cannot get what they conceive to be the fair price of their
labor. In the constant struggle for wages which is going on between these two
classes, their strength is divided, and success alternates from one to the
other. It is even probable that in the end the interest of the working class
must prevail; for the high wages which they have already obtained make them
every day less dependent on their masters; and as they grow more independent,
they have greater facilities for obtaining a further increase of wages.
I shall take for example that branch of productive industry which is still at
the present day the most generally followed in France, and in almost all the
countries of the world—I mean the cultivation of the soil. In France most of
those who labor for hire in agriculture, are themselves owners of certain plots
of ground, which just enable them to subsist without working for anyone else.
When these laborers come to offer their services to a neighboring landowner or
farmer, if he refuses them a certain rate of wages, they retire to their own
small property and await another opportunity.
I think that, upon the whole, it may be asserted that a slow and gradual rise of
wages is one of the general laws of democratic communities. In proportion as
social conditions become more equal, wages rise; and as wages are higher, social
conditions become more equal. But a great and gloomy exception occurs in our own
time. I have shown in a preceding chapter that aristocracy, expelled from
political society, has taken refuge in certain departments of productive
industry, and has established its sway there under another form; this powerfully
affects the rate of wages. As a large capital is required to embark in the great
manufacturing speculations to which I allude, the number of persons who enter
upon them is exceedingly limited: as their number is small, they can easily
concert together, and fix the rate of wages as they please. Their workmen on the
contrary are exceedingly numerous, and the number of them is always increasing;
for, from time to time, an extraordinary run of business takes place, during
which wages are inordinately high, and they attract the surrounding population
to the factories. But, when once men have embraced that line of life, we have
already seen that they cannot quit it again, because they soon contract habits
of body and mind which unfit them for any other sort of toil. These men have
generally but little education and industry, with but few resources; they stand
therefore almost at the mercy of the master. When competition, or other
fortuitous circumstances, lessen his profits, he can reduce the wages of his
workmen almost at pleasure, and make from them what he loses by the chances of
business. Should the workmen strike, the master, who is a rich man, can very
well wait without being ruined until necessity brings them back to him; but they
must work day by day or they die, for their only property is in their hands.
They have long been impoverished by oppression, and the poorer they become the
more easily may they be oppressed: they can never escape from this fatal circle
of cause and consequence. It is not then surprising that wages, after having
sometimes suddenly risen, are permanently lowered in this branch of industry;
whereas in other callings the price of labor, which generally increases but
little, is nevertheless constantly augmented.
This state of dependence and wretchedness, in which a part of the manufacturing
population of our time lives, forms an exception to the general rule, contrary
to the state of all the rest of the community; but, for this very reason, no
circumstance is more important or more deserving of the especial consideration
of the legislator; for when the whole of society is in motion, it is difficult
to keep any one class stationary; and when the greater number of men are opening
new paths to fortune, it is no less difficult to make the few support in peace
their wants and their desires.
Chapter VIII: Influence Of Democracy On Kindred
I have just examined the changes which the equality of conditions produces in
the mutual relations of the several members of the community amongst democratic
nations, and amongst the Americans in particular. I would now go deeper, and
inquire into the closer ties of kindred: my object here is not to seek for new
truths, but to show in what manner facts already known are connected with my
subject.
It has been universally remarked, that in our time the several members of a
family stand upon an entirely new footing towards each other; that the distance
which formerly separated a father from his sons has been lessened; and that
paternal authority, if not destroyed, is at least impaired. Something analogous
to this, but even more striking, may be observed in the United States. In
America the family, in the Roman and aristocratic signification of the word,
does not exist. All that remains of it are a few vestiges in the first years of
childhood, when the father exercises, without opposition, that absolute domestic
authority, which the feebleness of his children renders necessary, and which
their interest, as well as his own incontestable superiority, warrants. But as
soon as the young American approaches manhood, the ties of filial obedience are
relaxed day by day: master of his thoughts, he is soon master of his conduct. In
America there is, strictly speaking, no adolescence: at the close of boyhood the
man appears, and begins to trace out his own path. It would be an error to
suppose that this is preceded by a domestic struggle, in which the son has
obtained by a sort of moral violence the liberty that his father refused him.
The same habits, the same principles which impel the one to assert his
independence, predispose the other to consider the use of that independence as
an incontestable right. The former does not exhibit any of those rancorous or
irregular passions which disturb men long after they have shaken off an
established authority; the latter feels none of that bitter and angry regret
which is apt to survive a bygone power. The father foresees the limits of his
authority long beforehand, and when the time arrives he surrenders it without a
struggle: the son looks forward to the exact period at which he will be his own
master; and he enters upon his freedom without precipitation and without effort,
as a possession which is his own and which no one seeks to wrest from him. *a
a
[ The Americans, however, have not yet thought fit to strip the parent, as has
been done in France, of one of the chief elements of parental authority, by
depriving him of the power of disposing of his property at his death. In the
United States there are no restrictions on the powers of a testator. In this
respect, as in almost all others, it is easy to perceive, that if the political
legislation of the Americans is much more democratic than that of the French,
the civil legislation of the latter is infinitely more democratic than that of
the former. This may easily be accounted for. The civil legislation of France
was the work of a man who saw that it was his interest to satisfy the democratic
passions of his contemporaries in all that was not directly and immediately
hostile to his own power. He was willing to allow some popular principles to
regulate the distribution of property and the government of families, provided
they were not to be introduced into the administration of public affairs. Whilst
the torrent of democracy overwhelmed the civil laws of the country, he hoped to
find an easy shelter behind its political institutions. This policy was at once
both adroit and selfish; but a compromise of this kind could not last; for in
the end political institutions never fail to become the image and expression of
civil society; and in this sense it may be said that nothing is more political
in a nation than its civil legislation.]
It may perhaps not be without utility to show how these changes which take place
in family relations, are closely connected with the social and political
revolution which is approaching its consummation under our own observation.
There are certain great social principles, which a people either introduces
everywhere, or tolerates nowhere. In countries which are aristocratically
constituted with all the gradations of rank, the government never makes a direct
appeal to the mass of the governed: as men are united together, it is enough to
lead the foremost, the rest will follow. This is equally applicable to the
family, as to all aristocracies which have a head. Amongst aristocratic nations,
social institutions recognize, in truth, no one in the family but the father;
children are received by society at his hands; society governs him, he governs
them. Thus the parent has not only a natural right, but he acquires a political
right, to command them: he is the author and the support of his family; but he
is also its constituted ruler. In democracies, where the government picks out
every individual singly from the mass, to make him subservient to the general
laws of the community, no such intermediate person is required: a father is
there, in the eye of the law, only a member of the community, older and richer
than his sons.
When most of the conditions of life are extremely unequal, and the inequality of
these conditions is permanent, the notion of a superior grows upon the
imaginations of men: if the law invested him with no privileges, custom and
public opinion would concede them. When, on the contrary, men differ but little
from each other, and do not always remain in dissimilar conditions of life, the
general notion of a superior becomes weaker and less distinct: it is vain for
legislation to strive to place him who obeys very much beneath him who commands;
the manners of the time bring the two men nearer to one another, and draw them
daily towards the same level. Although the legislation of an aristocratic people
should grant no peculiar privileges to the heads of families; I shall not be the
less convinced that their power is more respected and more extensive than in a
democracy; for I know that, whatsoever the laws may be, superiors always appear
higher and inferiors lower in aristocracies than amongst democratic nations.
When men live more for the remembrance of what has been than for the care of
what is, and when they are more given to attend to what their ancestors thought
than to think themselves, the father is the natural and necessary tie between
the past and the present—the link by which the ends of these two chains are
connected. In aristocracies, then, the father is not only the civil head of the
family, but the oracle of its traditions, the expounder of its customs, the
arbiter of its manners. He is listened to with deference, he is addressed with
respect, and the love which is felt for him is always tempered with fear. When
the condition of society becomes democratic, and men adopt as their general
principle that it is good and lawful to judge of all things for one's self,
using former points of belief not as a rule of faith but simply as a means of
information, the power which the opinions of a father exercise over those of his
sons diminishes as well as his legal power.
Perhaps the subdivision of estates which democracy brings with it contributes
more than anything else to change the relations existing between a father and
his children. When the property of the father of a family is scanty, his son and
himself constantly live in the same place, and share the same occupations: habit
and necessity bring them together, and force them to hold constant
communication: the inevitable consequence is a sort of familiar intimacy, which
renders authority less absolute, and which can ill be reconciled with the
external forms of respect. Now in democratic countries the class of those who
are possessed of small fortunes is precisely that which gives strength to the
notions, and a particular direction to the manners, of the community. That class
makes its opinions preponderate as universally as its will, and even those who
are most inclined to resist its commands are carried away in the end by its
example. I have known eager opponents of democracy who allowed their children to
address them with perfect colloquial equality.
Thus, at the same time that the power of aristocracy is declining, the austere,
the conventional, and the legal part of parental authority vanishes, and a
species of equality prevails around the domestic hearth. I know not, upon the
whole, whether society loses by the change, but I am inclined to believe that
man individually is a gainer by it. I think that, in proportion as manners and
laws become more democratic, the relation of father and son becomes more
intimate and more affectionate; rules and authority are less talked of;
confidence and tenderness are oftentimes increased, and it would seem that the
natural bond is drawn closer in proportion as the social bond is loosened. In a
democratic family the father exercises no other power than that with which men
love to invest the affection and the experience of age; his orders would perhaps
be disobeyed, but his advice is for the most part authoritative. Though he be
not hedged in with ceremonial respect, his sons at least accost him with
confidence; no settled form of speech is appropriated to the mode of addressing
him, but they speak to him constantly, and are ready to consult him day by day;
the master and the constituted ruler have vanished—the father remains. Nothing
more is needed, in order to judge of the difference between the two states of
society in this respect, than to peruse the family correspondence of
aristocratic ages. The style is always correct, ceremonious, stiff, and so cold
that the natural warmth of the heart can hardly be felt in the language. The
language, on the contrary, addressed by a son to his father in democratic
countries is always marked by mingled freedom, familiarity and affection, which
at once show that new relations have sprung up in the bosom of the family.
A similar revolution takes place in the mutual relations of children. In
aristocratic families, as well as in aristocratic society, every place is marked
out beforehand. Not only does the father occupy a separate rank, in which he
enjoys extensive privileges, but even the children are not equal amongst
themselves. The age and sex of each irrevocably determine his rank, and secure
to him certain privileges: most of these distinctions are abolished or
diminished by democracy. In aristocratic families the eldest son, inheriting the
greater part of the property, and almost all the rights of the family, becomes
the chief, and, to a certain extent, the master, of his brothers. Greatness and
power are for him—for them, mediocrity and dependence. Nevertheless it would be
wrong to suppose that, amongst aristocratic nations, the privileges of the
eldest son are advantageous to himself alone, or that they excite nothing but
envy and hatred in those around him. The eldest son commonly endeavors to
procure wealth and power for his brothers, because the general splendor of the
house is reflected back on him who represents it; the younger sons seek to back
the elder brother in all his undertakings, because the greatness and power of
the head of the family better enable him to provide for all its branches. The
different members of an aristocratic family are therefore very closely bound
together; their interests are connected, their minds agree, but their hearts are
seldom in harmony.
Democracy also binds brothers to each other, but by very different means. Under
democratic laws all the children are perfectly equal, and consequently
independent; nothing brings them forcibly together, but nothing keeps them
apart; and as they have the same origin, as they are trained under the same
roof, as they are treated with the same care, and as no peculiar privilege
distinguishes or divides them, the affectionate and youthful intimacy of early
years easily springs up between them. Scarcely any opportunities occur to break
the tie thus formed at the outset of life; for their brotherhood brings them
daily together, without embarrassing them. It is not, then, by interest, but by
common associations and by the free sympathy of opinion and of taste, that
democracy unites brothers to each other. It divides their inheritance, but it
allows their hearts and minds to mingle together. Such is the charm of these
democratic manners, that even the partisans of aristocracy are caught by it; and
after having experienced it for some time, they are by no means tempted to
revert to the respectful and frigid observance of aristocratic families. They
would be glad to retain the domestic habits of democracy, if they might throw
off its social conditions and its laws; but these elements are indissolubly
united, and it is impossible to enjoy the former without enduring the latter.
The remarks I have made on filial love and fraternal affection are applicable to
all the passions which emanate spontaneously from human nature itself. If a
certain mode of thought or feeling is the result of some peculiar condition of
life, when that condition is altered nothing whatever remains of the thought or
feeling. Thus a law may bind two members of the community very closely to one
another; but that law being abolished, they stand asunder. Nothing was more
strict than the tie which united the vassal to the lord under the feudal system;
at the present day the two men know not each other; the fear, the gratitude, and
the affection which formerly connected them have vanished, and not a vestige of
the tie remains. Such, however, is not the case with those feelings which are
natural to mankind. Whenever a law attempts to tutor these feelings in any
particular manner, it seldom fails to weaken them; by attempting to add to their
intensity, it robs them of some of their elements, for they are never stronger
than when left to themselves.
Democracy, which destroys or obscures almost all the old conventional rules of
society, and which prevents men from readily assenting to new ones, entirely
effaces most of the feelings to which these conventional rules have given rise;
but it only modifies some others, and frequently imparts to them a degree of
energy and sweetness unknown before. Perhaps it is not impossible to condense
into a single proposition the whole meaning of this chapter, and of several
others that preceded it. Democracy loosens social ties, but it draws the ties of
nature more tight; it brings kindred more closely together, whilst it places the
various members of the community more widely apart.
Chapter IX: Education Of Young Women In The United States
No free communities ever existed without morals; and, as I observed in the
former part of this work, morals are the work of woman. Consequently, whatever
affects the condition of women, their habits and their opinions, has great
political importance in my eyes. Amongst almost all Protestant nations young
women are far more the mistresses of their own actions than they are in Catholic
countries. This independence is still greater in Protestant countries, like
England, which have retained or acquired the right of self-government; the
spirit of freedom is then infused into the domestic circle by political habits
and by religious opinions. In the United States the doctrines of Protestantism
are combined with great political freedom and a most democratic state of
society; and nowhere are young women surrendered so early or so completely to
their own guidance. Long before an American girl arrives at the age of marriage,
her emancipation from maternal control begins; she has scarcely ceased to be a
child when she already thinks for herself, speaks with freedom, and acts on her
own impulse. The great scene of the world is constantly open to her view; far
from seeking concealment, it is every day disclosed to her more completely, and
she is taught to survey it with a firm and calm gaze. Thus the vices and dangers
of society are early revealed to her; as she sees them clearly, she views them
without illusions, and braves them without fear; for she is full of reliance on
her own strength, and her reliance seems to be shared by all who are about her.
An American girl scarcely ever displays that virginal bloom in the midst of
young desires, or that innocent and ingenuous grace which usually attends the
European woman in the transition from girlhood to youth. It is rarely that an
American woman at any age displays childish timidity or ignorance. Like the
young women of Europe, she seeks to please, but she knows precisely the cost of
pleasing. If she does not abandon herself to evil, at least she knows that it
exists; and she is remarkable rather for purity of manners than for chastity of
mind. I have been frequently surprised, and almost frightened, at the singular
address and happy boldness with which young women in America contrive to manage
their thoughts and their language amidst all the difficulties of stimulating
conversation; a philosopher would have stumbled at every step along the narrow
path which they trod without accidents and without effort. It is easy indeed to
perceive that, even amidst the independence of early youth, an American woman is
always mistress of herself; she indulges in all permitted pleasures, without
yielding herself up to any of them; and her reason never allows the reins of
self-guidance to drop, though it often seems to hold them loosely.
In France, where remnants of every age are still so strangely mingled in the
opinions and tastes of the people, women commonly receive a reserved, retired,
and almost cloistral education, as they did in aristocratic times; and then they
are suddenly abandoned, without a guide and without assistance, in the midst of
all the irregularities inseparable from democratic society. The Americans are
more consistent. They have found out that in a democracy the independence of
individuals cannot fail to be very great, youth premature, tastes
ill-restrained, customs fleeting, public opinion often unsettled and powerless,
paternal authority weak, and marital authority contested. Under these
circumstances, believing that they had little chance of repressing in woman the
most vehement passions of the human heart, they held that the surer way was to
teach her the art of combating those passions for herself. As they could not
prevent her virtue from being exposed to frequent danger, they determined that
she should know how best to defend it; and more reliance was placed on the free
vigor of her will than on safeguards which have been shaken or overthrown.
Instead, then, of inculcating mistrust of herself, they constantly seek to
enhance their confidence in her own strength of character. As it is neither
possible nor desirable to keep a young woman in perpetual or complete ignorance,
they hasten to give her a precocious knowledge on all subjects. Far from hiding
the corruptions of the world from her, they prefer that she should see them at
once and train herself to shun them; and they hold it of more importance to
protect her conduct than to be over-scrupulous of her innocence.
Although the Americans are a very religious people, they do not rely on religion
alone to defend the virtue of woman; they seek to arm her reason also. In this
they have followed the same method as in several other respects; they first make
the most vigorous efforts to bring individual independence to exercise a proper
control over itself, and they do not call in the aid of religion until they have
reached the utmost limits of human strength. I am aware that an education of
this kind is not without danger; I am sensible that it tends to invigorate the
judgment at the expense of the imagination, and to make cold and virtuous women
instead of affectionate wives and agreeable companions to man. Society may be
more tranquil and better regulated, but domestic life has often fewer charms.
These, however, are secondary evils, which may be braved for the sake of higher
interests. At the stage at which we are now arrived the time for choosing is no
longer within our control; a democratic education is indispensable to protect
women from the dangers with which democratic institutions and manners surround
them.
Chapter X: The Young Woman In The Character Of A Wife
In America the independence of woman is irrevocably lost in the bonds of
matrimony: if an unmarried woman is less constrained there than elsewhere, a
wife is subjected to stricter obligations. The former makes her father's house
an abode of freedom and of pleasure; the latter lives in the home of her husband
as if it were a cloister. Yet these two different conditions of life are perhaps
not so contrary as may be supposed, and it is natural that the American women
should pass through the one to arrive at the other.
Religious peoples and trading nations entertain peculiarly serious notions of
marriage: the former consider the regularity of woman's life as the best pledge
and most certain sign of the purity of her morals; the latter regard it as the
highest security for the order and prosperity of the household. The Americans
are at the same time a puritanical people and a commercial nation: their
religious opinions, as well as their trading habits, consequently lead them to
require much abnegation on the part of woman, and a constant sacrifice of her
pleasures to her duties which is seldom demanded of her in Europe. Thus in the
United States the inexorable opinion of the public carefully circumscribes woman
within the narrow circle of domestic interest and duties, and forbids her to
step beyond it.
Upon her entrance into the world a young American woman finds these notions
firmly established; she sees the rules which are derived from them; she is not
slow to perceive that she cannot depart for an instant from the established
usages of her contemporaries, without putting in jeopardy her peace of mind, her
honor, nay even her social existence; and she finds the energy required for such
an act of submission in the firmness of her understanding and in the virile
habits which her education has given her. It may be said that she has learned by
the use of her independence to surrender it without a struggle and without a
murmur when the time comes for making the sacrifice. But no American woman falls
into the toils of matrimony as into a snare held out to her simplicity and
ignorance. She has been taught beforehand what is expected of her, and
voluntarily and freely does she enter upon this engagement. She supports her new
condition with courage, because she chose it. As in America paternal discipline
is very relaxed and the conjugal tie very strict, a young woman does not
contract the latter without considerable circumspection and apprehension.
Precocious marriages are rare. Thus American women do not marry until their
understandings are exercised and ripened; whereas in other countries most women
generally only begin to exercise and to ripen their understandings after
marriage.
I by no means suppose, however, that the great change which takes place in all
the habits of women in the United States, as soon as they are married, ought
solely to be attributed to the constraint of public opinion: it is frequently
imposed upon themselves by the sole effort of their own will. When the time for
choosing a husband is arrived, that cold and stern reasoning power which has
been educated and invigorated by the free observation of the world, teaches an
American woman that a spirit of levity and independence in the bonds of marriage
is a constant subject of annoyance, not of pleasure; it tells her that the
amusements of the girl cannot become the recreations of the wife, and that the
sources of a married woman's happiness are in the home of her husband. As she
clearly discerns beforehand the only road which can lead to domestic happiness,
she enters upon it at once, and follows it to the end without seeking to turn
back.
The same strength of purpose which the young wives of America display, in
bending themselves at once and without repining to the austere duties of their
new condition, is no less manifest in all the great trials of their lives. In no
country in the world are private fortunes more precarious than in the United
States. It is not uncommon for the same man, in the course of his life, to rise
and sink again through all the grades which lead from opulence to poverty.
American women support these vicissitudes with calm and unquenchable energy: it
would seem that their desires contract, as easily as they expand, with their
fortunes. *a
a
[ See Appendix S.]
The greater part of the adventurers who migrate every year to people the western
wilds, belong, as I observed in the former part of this work, to the old
Anglo-American race of the Northern States. Many of these men, who rush so
boldly onwards in pursuit of wealth, were already in the enjoyment of a
competency in their own part of the country. They take their wives along with
them, and make them share the countless perils and privations which always
attend the commencement of these expeditions. I have often met, even on the
verge of the wilderness, with young women, who after having been brought up
amidst all the comforts of the large towns of New England, had passed, almost
without any intermediate stage, from the wealthy abode of their parents to a
comfortless hovel in a forest. Fever, solitude, and a tedious life had not
broken the springs of their courage. Their features were impaired and faded, but
their looks were firm: they appeared to be at once sad and resolute. I do not
doubt that these young American women had amassed, in the education of their
early years, that inward strength which they displayed under these
circumstances. The early culture of the girl may still therefore be traced, in
the United States, under the aspect of marriage: her part is changed, her habits
are different, but her character is the same.
Chapter XI: That The Equality Of Conditions Contributes To The Maintenance Of
Good Morals In America
Some philosophers and historians have said, or have hinted, that the strictness
of female morality was increased or diminished simply by the distance of a
country from the equator. This solution of the difficulty was an easy one; and
nothing was required but a globe and a pair of compasses to settle in an instant
one of the most difficult problems in the condition of mankind. But I am not
aware that this principle of the materialists is supported by facts. The same
nations have been chaste or dissolute at different periods of their history; the
strictness or the laxity of their morals depended therefore on some variable
cause, not only on the natural qualities of their country, which were
invariable. I do not deny that in certain climates the passions which are
occasioned by the mutual attraction of the sexes are peculiarly intense; but I
am of opinion that this natural intensity may always be excited or restrained by
the condition of society and by political institutions.
Although the travellers who have visited North America differ on a great number
of points, they all agree in remarking that morals are far more strict there
than elsewhere. It is evident that on this point the Americans are very superior
to their progenitors the English. A superficial glance at the two nations will
establish the fact. In England, as in all other countries of Europe, public
malice is constantly attacking the frailties of women. Philosophers and
statesmen are heard to deplore that morals are not sufficiently strict, and the
literary productions of the country constantly lead one to suppose so. In
America all books, novels not excepted, suppose women to be chaste, and no one
thinks of relating affairs of gallantry. No doubt this great regularity of
American morals originates partly in the country, in the race of the people, and
in their religion: but all these causes, which operate elsewhere, do not suffice
to account for it; recourse must be had to some special reason. This reason
appears to me to be the principle of equality and the institutions derived from
it. Equality of conditions does not of itself engender regularity of morals, but
it unquestionably facilitates and increases it. *a [Footnote a: See Appendix T.]
Amongst aristocratic nations birth and fortune frequently make two such
different beings of man and woman, that they can never be united to each other.
Their passions draw them together, but the condition of society, and the notions
suggested by it, prevent them from contracting a permanent and ostensible tie.
The necessary consequence is a great number of transient and clandestine
connections. Nature secretly avenges herself for the constraint imposed upon her
by the laws of man. This is not so much the case when the equality of conditions
has swept away all the imaginary, or the real, barriers which separated man from
woman. No girl then believes that she cannot become the wife of the man who
loves her; and this renders all breaches of morality before marriage very
uncommon: for, whatever be the credulity of the passions, a woman will hardly be
able to persuade herself that she is beloved, when her lover is perfectly free
to marry her and does not.
The same cause operates, though more indirectly, on married life. Nothing better
serves to justify an illicit passion, either to the minds of those who have
conceived it or to the world which looks on, than compulsory or accidental
marriages. *b In a country in which a woman is always free to exercise her power
of choosing, and in which education has prepared her to choose rightly, public
opinion is inexorable to her faults. The rigor of the Americans arises in part
from this cause. They consider marriages as a covenant which is often onerous,
but every condition of which the parties are strictly bound to fulfil, because
they knew all those conditions beforehand, and were perfectly free not to have
contracted them.
b
[ The literature of Europe sufficiently corroborates this remark. When a
European author wishes to depict in a work of imagination any of these great
catastrophes in matrimony which so frequently occur amongst us, he takes care to
bespeak the compassion of the reader by bringing before him ill-assorted or
compulsory marriages. Although habitual tolerance has long since relaxed our
morals, an author could hardly succeed in interesting us in the misfortunes of
his characters, if he did not first palliate their faults. This artifice seldom
fails: the daily scenes we witness prepare us long beforehand to be indulgent.
But American writers could never render these palliations probable to their
readers; their customs and laws are opposed to it; and as they despair of
rendering levity of conduct pleasing, they cease to depict it. This is one of
the causes to which must be attributed the small number of novels published in
the United States.]
The very circumstances which render matrimonial fidelity more obligatory also
render it more easy. In aristocratic countries the object of marriage is rather
to unite property than persons; hence the husband is sometimes at school and the
wife at nurse when they are betrothed. It cannot be wondered at if the conjugal
tie which holds the fortunes of the pair united allows their hearts to rove;
this is the natural result of the nature of the contract. When, on the contrary,
a man always chooses a wife for himself, without any external coercion or even
guidance, it is generally a conformity of tastes and opinions which brings a man
and a woman together, and this same conformity keeps and fixes them in close
habits of intimacy.
Our forefathers had conceived a very strange notion on the subject of marriage:
as they had remarked that the small number of love-matches which occurred in
their time almost always turned out ill, they resolutely inferred that it was
exceedingly dangerous to listen to the dictates of the heart on the subject.
Accident appeared to them to be a better guide than choice. Yet it was not very
difficult to perceive that the examples which they witnessed did in fact prove
nothing at all. For in the first place, if democratic nations leave a woman at
liberty to choose her husband, they take care to give her mind sufficient
knowledge, and her will sufficient strength, to make so important a choice:
whereas the young women who, amongst aristocratic nations, furtively elope from
the authority of their parents to throw themselves of their own accord into the
arms of men whom they have had neither time to know, nor ability to judge of,
are totally without those securities. It is not surprising that they make a bad
use of their freedom of action the first time they avail themselves of it; nor
that they fall into such cruel mistakes, when, not having received a democratic
education, they choose to marry in conformity to democratic customs. But this is
not all. When a man and woman are bent upon marriage in spite of the differences
of an aristocratic state of society, the difficulties to be overcome are
enormous. Having broken or relaxed the bonds of filial obedience, they have then
to emancipate themselves by a final effort from the sway of custom and the
tyranny of opinion; and when at length they have succeeded in this arduous task,
they stand estranged from their natural friends and kinsmen: the prejudice they
have crossed separates them from all, and places them in a situation which soon
breaks their courage and sours their hearts. If, then, a couple married in this
manner are first unhappy and afterwards criminal, it ought not to be attributed
to the freedom of their choice, but rather to their living in a community in
which this freedom of choice is not admitted.
Moreover it should not be forgotten that the same effort which makes a man
violently shake off a prevailing error, commonly impels him beyond the bounds of
reason; that, to dare to declare war, in however just a cause, against the
opinion of one's age and country, a violent and adventurous spirit is required,
and that men of this character seldom arrive at happiness or virtue, whatever be
the path they follow. And this, it may be observed by the way, is the reason why
in the most necessary and righteous revolutions, it is so rare to meet with
virtuous or moderate revolutionary characters. There is then no just ground for
surprise if a man, who in an age of aristocracy chooses to consult nothing but
his own opinion and his own taste in the choice of a wife, soon finds that
infractions of morality and domestic wretchedness invade his household: but when
this same line of action is in the natural and ordinary course of things, when
it is sanctioned by parental authority and backed by public opinion, it cannot
be doubted that the internal peace of families will be increased by it, and
conjugal fidelity more rigidly observed.
Almost all men in democracies are engaged in public or professional life; and on
the other hand the limited extent of common incomes obliges a wife to confine
herself to the house, in order to watch in person and very closely over the
details of domestic economy. All these distinct and compulsory occupations are
so many natural barriers, which, by keeping the two sexes asunder, render the
solicitations of the one less frequent and less ardent—the resistance of the
other more easy.
Not indeed that the equality of conditions can ever succeed in making men
chaste, but it may impart a less dangerous character to their breaches of
morality. As no one has then either sufficient time or opportunity to assail a
virtue armed in self-defence, there will be at the same time a great number of
courtesans and a great number of virtuous women. This state of things causes
lamentable cases of individual hardship, but it does not prevent the body of
society from being strong and alert: it does not destroy family ties, or
enervate the morals of the nation. Society is endangered not by the great
profligacy of a few, but by laxity of morals amongst all. In the eyes of a
legislator, prostitution is less to be dreaded than intrigue.
The tumultuous and constantly harassed life which equality makes men lead, not
only distracts them from the passion of love, by denying them time to indulge in
it, but it diverts them from it by another more secret but more certain road.
All men who live in democratic ages more or less contract the ways of thinking
of the manufacturing and trading classes; their minds take a serious,
deliberate, and positive turn; they are apt to relinquish the ideal, in order to
pursue some visible and proximate object, which appears to be the natural and
necessary aim of their desires. Thus the principle of equality does not destroy
the imagination, but lowers its flight to the level of the earth. No men are
less addicted to reverie than the citizens of a democracy; and few of them are
ever known to give way to those idle and solitary meditations which commonly
precede and produce the great emotions of the heart. It is true they attach
great importance to procuring for themselves that sort of deep, regular, and
quiet affection which constitutes the charm and safeguard of life, but they are
not apt to run after those violent and capricious sources of excitement which
disturb and abridge it.
I am aware that all this is only applicable in its full extent to America, and
cannot at present be extended to Europe. In the course of the last half-century,
whilst laws and customs have impelled several European nations with unexampled
force towards democracy, we have not had occasion to observe that the relations
of man and woman have become more orderly or more chaste. In some places the
very reverse may be detected: some classes are more strict—the general morality
of the people appears to be more lax. I do not hesitate to make the remark, for
I am as little disposed to flatter my contemporaries as to malign them. This
fact must distress, but it ought not to surprise us. The propitious influence
which a democratic state of society may exercise upon orderly habits, is one of
those tendencies which can only be discovered after a time. If the equality of
conditions is favorable to purity of morals, the social commotion by which
conditions are rendered equal is adverse to it. In the last fifty years, during
which France has been undergoing this transformation, that country has rarely
had freedom, always disturbance. Amidst this universal confusion of notions and
this general stir of opinions—amidst this incoherent mixture of the just and
unjust, of truth and falsehood, of right and might—public virtue has become
doubtful, and private morality wavering. But all revolutions, whatever may have
been their object or their agents, have at first produced similar consequences;
even those which have in the end drawn the bonds of morality more tightly began
by loosening them. The violations of morality which the French frequently
witness do not appear to me to have a permanent character; and this is already
betokened by some curious signs of the times.
Nothing is more wretchedly corrupt than an aristocracy which retains its wealth
when it has lost its power, and which still enjoys a vast deal of leisure after
it is reduced to mere vulgar pastimes. The energetic passions and great
conceptions which animated it heretofore, leave it then; and nothing remains to
it but a host of petty consuming vices, which cling about it like worms upon a
carcass. No one denies that the French aristocracy of the last century was
extremely dissolute; whereas established habits and ancient belief still
preserved some respect for morality amongst the other classes of society. Nor
will it be contested that at the present day the remnants of that same
aristocracy exhibit a certain severity of morals; whilst laxity of morals
appears to have spread amongst the middle and lower ranks. So that the same
families which were most profligate fifty years ago are nowadays the most
exemplary, and democracy seems only to have strengthened the morality of the
aristocratic classes. The French Revolution, by dividing the fortunes of the
nobility, by forcing them to attend assiduously to their affairs and to their
families, by making them live under the same roof with their children, and in
short by giving a more rational and serious turn to their minds, has imparted to
them, almost without their being aware of it, a reverence for religious belief,
a love of order, of tranquil pleasures, of domestic endearments, and of comfort;
whereas the rest of the nation, which had naturally these same tastes, was
carried away into excesses by the effort which was required to overthrow the
laws and political habits of the country. The old French aristocracy has
undergone the consequences of the Revolution, but it neither felt the
revolutionary passions nor shared in the anarchical excitement which produced
that crisis; it may easily be conceived that this aristocracy feels the salutary
influence of the Revolution in its manners, before those who achieve it. It may
therefore be said, though at first it seems paradoxical, that, at the present
day, the most anti-democratic classes of the nation principally exhibit the kind
of morality which may reasonably be anticipated from democracy. I cannot but
think that when we shall have obtained all the effects of this democratic
Revolution, after having got rid of the tumult it has caused, the observations
which are now only applicable to the few will gradually become true of the whole
community.
Chapter XII: How The Americans Understand The Equality Of The Sexes
I Have shown how democracy destroys or modifies the different inequalities which
originate in society; but is this all? or does it not ultimately affect that
great inequality of man and woman which has seemed, up to the present day, to be
eternally based in human nature? I believe that the social changes which bring
nearer to the same level the father and son, the master and servant, and
superiors and inferiors generally speaking, will raise woman and make her more
and more the equal of man. But here, more than ever, I feel the necessity of
making myself clearly understood; for there is no subject on which the coarse
and lawless fancies of our age have taken a freer range.
There are people in Europe who, confounding together the different
characteristics of the sexes, would make of man and woman beings not only equal
but alike. They would give to both the same functions, impose on both the same
duties, and grant to both the same rights; they would mix them in all
things—their occupations, their pleasures, their business. It may readily be
conceived, that by thus attempting to make one sex equal to the other, both are
degraded; and from so preposterous a medley of the works of nature nothing could
ever result but weak men and disorderly women. It is not thus that the Americans
understand that species of democratic equality which may be established between
the sexes. They admit, that as nature has appointed such wide differences
between the physical and moral constitution of man and woman, her manifest
design was to give a distinct employment to their various faculties; and they
hold that improvement does not consist in making beings so dissimilar do pretty
nearly the same things, but in getting each of them to fulfil their respective
tasks in the best possible manner. The Americans have applied to the sexes the
great principle of political economy which governs the manufactures of our age,
by carefully dividing the duties of man from those of woman, in order that the
great work of society may be the better carried on.
In no country has such constant care been taken as in America to trace two
clearly distinct lines of action for the two sexes, and to make them keep pace
one with the other, but in two pathways which are always different. American
women never manage the outward concerns of the family, or conduct a business, or
take a part in political life; nor are they, on the other hand, ever compelled
to perform the rough labor of the fields, or to make any of those laborious
exertions which demand the exertion of physical strength. No families are so
poor as to form an exception to this rule. If on the one hand an American woman
cannot escape from the quiet circle of domestic employments, on the other hand
she is never forced to go beyond it. Hence it is that the women of America, who
often exhibit a masculine strength of understanding and a manly energy,
generally preserve great delicacy of personal appearance and always retain the
manners of women, although they sometimes show that they have the hearts and
minds of men.
Nor have the Americans ever supposed that one consequence of democratic
principles is the subversion of marital power, of the confusion of the natural
authorities in families. They hold that every association must have a head in
order to accomplish its object, and that the natural head of the conjugal
association is man. They do not therefore deny him the right of directing his
partner; and they maintain, that in the smaller association of husband and wife,
as well as in the great social community, the object of democracy is to regulate
and legalize the powers which are necessary, not to subvert all power. This
opinion is not peculiar to one sex, and contested by the other: I never observed
that the women of America consider conjugal authority as a fortunate usurpation
of their rights, nor that they thought themselves degraded by submitting to it.
It appeared to me, on the contrary, that they attach a sort of pride to the
voluntary surrender of their own will, and make it their boast to bend
themselves to the yoke, not to shake it off. Such at least is the feeling
expressed by the most virtuous of their sex; the others are silent; and in the
United States it is not the practice for a guilty wife to clamor for the rights
of women, whilst she is trampling on her holiest duties.
It has often been remarked that in Europe a certain degree of contempt lurks
even in the flattery which men lavish upon women: although a European frequently
affects to be the slave of woman, it may be seen that he never sincerely thinks
her his equal. In the United States men seldom compliment women, but they daily
show how much they esteem them. They constantly display an entire confidence in
the understanding of a wife, and a profound respect for her freedom; they have
decided that her mind is just as fitted as that of a man to discover the plain
truth, and her heart as firm to embrace it; and they have never sought to place
her virtue, any more than his, under the shelter of prejudice, ignorance, and
fear. It would seem that in Europe, where man so easily submits to the despotic
sway of women, they are nevertheless curtailed of some of the greatest qualities
of the human species, and considered as seductive but imperfect beings; and
(what may well provoke astonishment) women ultimately look upon themselves in
the same light, and almost consider it as a privilege that they are entitled to
show themselves futile, feeble, and timid. The women of America claim no such
privileges.
Again, it may be said that in our morals we have reserved strange immunities to
man; so that there is, as it were, one virtue for his use, and another for the
guidance of his partner; and that, according to the opinion of the public, the
very same act may be punished alternately as a crime or only as a fault. The
Americans know not this iniquitous division of duties and rights; amongst them
the seducer is as much dishonored as his victim. It is true that the Americans
rarely lavish upon women those eager attentions which are commonly paid them in
Europe; but their conduct to women always implies that they suppose them to be
virtuous and refined; and such is the respect entertained for the moral freedom
of the sex, that in the presence of a woman the most guarded language is used,
lest her ear should be offended by an expression. In America a young unmarried
woman may, alone and without fear, undertake a long journey.
The legislators of the United States, who have mitigated almost all the
penalties of criminal law, still make rape a capital offence, and no crime is
visited with more inexorable severity by public opinion. This may be accounted
for; as the Americans can conceive nothing more precious than a woman's honor,
and nothing which ought so much to be respected as her independence, they hold
that no punishment is too severe for the man who deprives her of them against
her will. In France, where the same offence is visited with far milder
penalties, it is frequently difficult to get a verdict from a jury against the
prisoner. Is this a consequence of contempt of decency or contempt of women? I
cannot but believe that it is a contempt of one and of the other.
Thus the Americans do not think that man and woman have either the duty or the
right to perform the same offices, but they show an equal regard for both their
respective parts; and though their lot is different, they consider both of them
as beings of equal value. They do not give to the courage of woman the same form
or the same direction as to that of man; but they never doubt her courage: and
if they hold that man and his partner ought not always to exercise their
intellect and understanding in the same manner, they at least believe the
understanding of the one to be as sound as that of the other, and her intellect
to be as clear. Thus, then, whilst they have allowed the social inferiority of
woman to subsist, they have done all they could to raise her morally and
intellectually to the level of man; and in this respect they appear to me to
have excellently understood the true principle of democratic improvement. As for
myself, I do not hesitate to avow that, although the women of the United States
are confined within the narrow circle of domestic life, and their situation is
in some respects one of extreme dependence, I have nowhere seen woman occupying
a loftier position; and if I were asked, now that I am drawing to the close of
this work, in which I have spoken of so many important things done by the
Americans, to what the singular prosperity and growing strength of that people
ought mainly to be attributed, I should reply—to the superiority of their women.
Chapter XIII: That The Principle Of Equality Naturally Divides The Americans
Into A Number Of Small Private Circles
It may probably be supposed that the final consequence and necessary effect of
democratic institutions is to confound together all the members of the community
in private as well as in public life, and to compel them all to live in common;
but this would be to ascribe a very coarse and oppressive form to the equality
which originates in democracy. No state of society or laws can render men so
much alike, but that education, fortune, and tastes will interpose some
differences between them; and, though different men may sometimes find it their
interest to combine for the same purposes, they will never make it their
pleasure. They will therefore always tend to evade the provisions of
legislation, whatever they may be; and departing in some one respect from the
circle within which they were to be bounded, they will set up, close by the
great political community, small private circles, united together by the
similitude of their conditions, habits, and manners.
In the United States the citizens have no sort of pre-eminence over each other;
they owe each other no mutual obedience or respect; they all meet for the
administration of justice, for the government of the State, and in general to
treat of the affairs which concern their common welfare; but I never heard that
attempts have been made to bring them all to follow the same diversions, or to
amuse themselves promiscuously in the same places of recreation. The Americans,
who mingle so readily in their political assemblies and courts of justice, are
wont on the contrary carefully to separate into small distinct circles, in order
to indulge by themselves in the enjoyments of private life. Each of them is
willing to acknowledge all his fellow-citizens as his equals, but he will only
receive a very limited number of them amongst his friends or his guests. This
appears to me to be very natural. In proportion as the circle of public society
is extended, it may be anticipated that the sphere of private intercourse will
be contracted; far from supposing that the members of modern society will
ultimately live in common, I am afraid that they may end by forming nothing but
small coteries.
Amongst aristocratic nations the different classes are like vast chambers, out
of which it is impossible to get, into which it is impossible to enter. These
classes have no communication with each other, but within their pale men
necessarily live in daily contact; even though they would not naturally suit,
the general conformity of a similar condition brings them nearer together. But
when neither law nor custom professes to establish frequent and habitual
relations between certain men, their intercourse originates in the accidental
analogy of opinions and tastes; hence private society is infinitely varied. In
democracies, where the members of the community never differ much from each
other, and naturally stand in such propinquity that they may all at any time be
confounded in one general mass, numerous artificial and arbitrary distinctions
spring up, by means of which every man hopes to keep himself aloof, lest he
should be carried away in the crowd against his will. This can never fail to be
the case; for human institutions may be changed, but not man: whatever may be
the general endeavor of a community to render its members equal and alike, the
personal pride of individuals will always seek to rise above the line, and to
form somewhere an inequality to their own advantage.
In aristocracies men are separated from each other by lofty stationary barriers;
in democracies they are divided by a number of small and almost invisible
threads, which are constantly broken or moved from place to place. Thus,
whatever may be the progress of equality, in democratic nations a great number
of small private communities will always be formed within the general pale of
political society; but none of them will bear any resemblance in its manners to
the highest class in aristocracies.
Chapter XIV: Some Reflections On American Manners
Nothing seems at first sight less important than the outward form of human
actions, yet there is nothing upon which men set more store: they grow used to
everything except to living in a society which has not their own manners. The
influence of the social and political state of a country upon manners is
therefore deserving of serious examination. Manners are, generally, the product
of the very basis of the character of a people, but they are also sometimes the
result of an arbitrary convention between certain men; thus they are at once
natural and acquired. When certain men perceive that they are the foremost
persons in society, without contestation and without effort—when they are
constantly engaged on large objects, leaving the more minute details to
others—and when they live in the enjoyment of wealth which they did not amass
and which they do not fear to lose, it may be supposed that they feel a kind of
haughty disdain of the petty interests and practical cares of life, and that
their thoughts assume a natural greatness, which their language and their
manners denote. In democratic countries manners are generally devoid of dignity,
because private life is there extremely petty in its character; and they are
frequently low, because the mind has few opportunities of rising above the
engrossing cares of domestic interests. True dignity in manners consists in
always taking one's proper station, neither too high nor too low; and this is as
much within the reach of a peasant as of a prince. In democracies all stations
appear doubtful; hence it is that the manners of democracies, though often full
of arrogance, are commonly wanting in dignity, and, moreover, they are never
either well disciplined or accomplished.
The men who live in democracies are too fluctuating for a certain number of them
ever to succeed in laying down a code of good breeding, and in forcing people to
follow it. Every man therefore behaves after his own fashion, and there is
always a certain incoherence in the manners of such times, because they are
moulded upon the feelings and notions of each individual, rather than upon an
ideal model proposed for general imitation. This, however, is much more
perceptible at the time when an aristocracy has just been overthrown than after
it has long been destroyed. New political institutions and new social elements
then bring to the same places of resort, and frequently compel to live in
common, men whose education and habits are still amazingly dissimilar, and this
renders the motley composition of society peculiarly visible. The existence of a
former strict code of good breeding is still remembered, but what it contained
or where it is to be found is already forgotten. Men have lost the common law of
manners, and they have not yet made up their minds to do without it; but
everyone endeavors to make to himself some sort of arbitrary and variable rule,
from the remnant of former usages; so that manners have neither the regularity
and the dignity which they often display amongst aristocratic nations, nor the
simplicity and freedom which they sometimes assume in democracies; they are at
once constrained and without constraint.
This, however, is not the normal state of things. When the equality of
conditions is long established and complete, as all men entertain nearly the
same notions and do nearly the same things, they do not require to agree or to
copy from one another in order to speak or act in the same manner: their manners
are constantly characterized by a number of lesser diversities, but not by any
great differences. They are never perfectly alike, because they do not copy from
the same pattern; they are never very unlike, because their social condition is
the same. At first sight a traveller would observe that the manners of all the
Americans are exactly similar; it is only upon close examination that the
peculiarities in which they differ may be detected.
The English make game of the manners of the Americans; but it is singular that
most of the writers who have drawn these ludicrous delineations belonged
themselves to the middle classes in England, to whom the same delineations are
exceedingly applicable: so that these pitiless censors for the most part furnish
an example of the very thing they blame in the United States; they do not
perceive that they are deriding themselves, to the great amusement of the
aristocracy of their own country.
Nothing is more prejudicial to democracy than its outward forms of behavior:
many men would willingly endure its vices, who cannot support its manners. I
cannot, however, admit that there is nothing commendable in the manners of a
democratic people. Amongst aristocratic nations, all who live within reach of
the first class in society commonly strain to be like it, which gives rise to
ridiculous and insipid imitations. As a democratic people does not possess any
models of high breeding, at least it escapes the daily necessity of seeing
wretched copies of them. In democracies manners are never so refined as amongst
aristocratic nations, but on the other hand they are never so coarse. Neither
the coarse oaths of the populace, nor the elegant and choice expressions of the
nobility are to be heard there: the manners of such a people are often vulgar,
but they are neither brutal nor mean. I have already observed that in
democracies no such thing as a regular code of good breeding can be laid down;
this has some inconveniences and some advantages. In aristocracies the rules of
propriety impose the same demeanor on everyone; they make all the members of the
same class appear alike, in spite of their private inclinations; they adorn and
they conceal the natural man. Amongst a democratic people manners are neither so
tutored nor so uniform, but they are frequently more sincere. They form, as it
were, a light and loosely woven veil, through which the real feelings and
private opinions of each individual are easily discernible. The form and the
substance of human actions often, therefore, stand in closer relation; and if
the great picture of human life be less embellished, it is more true. Thus it
may be said, in one sense, that the effect of democracy is not exactly to give
men any particular manners, but to prevent them from having manners at all.
The feelings, the passions, the virtues, and the vices of an aristocracy may
sometimes reappear in a democracy, but not its manners; they are lost, and
vanish forever, as soon as the democratic revolution is completed. It would seem
that nothing is more lasting than the manners of an aristocratic class, for they
are preserved by that class for some time after it has lost its wealth and its
power—nor so fleeting, for no sooner have they disappeared than not a trace of
them is to be found; and it is scarcely possible to say what they have been as
soon as they have ceased to be. A change in the state of society works this
miracle, and a few generations suffice to consummate it. The principal
characteristics of aristocracy are handed down by history after an aristocracy
is destroyed, but the light and exquisite touches of manners are effaced from
men's memories almost immediately after its fall. Men can no longer conceive
what these manners were when they have ceased to witness them; they are gone,
and their departure was unseen, unfelt; for in order to feel that refined
enjoyment which is derived from choice and distinguished manners, habit and
education must have prepared the heart, and the taste for them is lost almost as
easily as the practice of them. Thus not only a democratic people cannot have
aristocratic manners, but they neither comprehend nor desire them; and as they
never have thought of them, it is to their minds as if such things had never
been. Too much importance should not be attached to this loss, but it may well
be regretted.
I am aware that it has not unfrequently happened that the same men have had very
high-bred manners and very low-born feelings: the interior of courts has
sufficiently shown what imposing externals may conceal the meanest hearts. But
though the manners of aristocracy did not constitute virtue, they sometimes
embellish virtue itself. It was no ordinary sight to see a numerous and powerful
class of men, whose every outward action seemed constantly to be dictated by a
natural elevation of thought and feeling, by delicacy and regularity of taste,
and by urbanity of manners. Those manners threw a pleasing illusory charm over
human nature; and though the picture was often a false one, it could not be
viewed without a noble satisfaction.
Chapter XV: Of The Gravity Of The Americans, And Why It Does Not Prevent Them
From Often Committing Inconsiderate Actions
Men who live in democratic countries do not value the simple, turbulent, or
coarse diversions in which the people indulge in aristocratic communities: such
diversions are thought by them to be puerile or insipid. Nor have they a greater
inclination for the intellectual and refined amusements of the aristocratic
classes. They want something productive and substantial in their pleasures; they
want to mix actual fruition with their joy. In aristocratic communities the
people readily give themselves up to bursts of tumultuous and boisterous gayety,
which shake off at once the recollection of their privations: the natives of
democracies are not fond of being thus violently broken in upon, and they never
lose sight of their own selves without regret. They prefer to these frivolous
delights those more serious and silent amusements which are like business, and
which do not drive business wholly from their minds. An American, instead of
going in a leisure hour to dance merrily at some place of public resort, as the
fellows of his calling continue to do throughout the greater part of Europe,
shuts himself up at home to drink. He thus enjoys two pleasures; he can go on
thinking of his business, and he can get drunk decently by his own fireside.
I thought that the English constituted the most serious nation on the face of
the earth, but I have since seen the Americans and have changed my opinion. I do
not mean to say that temperament has not a great deal to do with the character
of the inhabitants of the United States, but I think that their political
institutions are a still more influential cause. I believe the seriousness of
the Americans arises partly from their pride. In democratic countries even poor
men entertain a lofty notion of their personal importance: they look upon
themselves with complacency, and are apt to suppose that others are looking at
them, too. With this disposition they watch their language and their actions
with care, and do not lay themselves open so as to betray their deficiencies; to
preserve their dignity they think it necessary to retain their gravity.
But I detect another more deep-seated and powerful cause which instinctively
produces amongst the Americans this astonishing gravity. Under a despotism
communities give way at times to bursts of vehement joy; but they are generally
gloomy and moody, because they are afraid. Under absolute monarchies tempered by
the customs and manners of the country, their spirits are often cheerful and
even, because as they have some freedom and a good deal of security, they are
exempted from the most important cares of life; but all free peoples are
serious, because their minds are habitually absorbed by the contemplation of
some dangerous or difficult purpose. This is more especially the case amongst
those free nations which form democratic communities. Then there are in all
classes a very large number of men constantly occupied with the serious affairs
of the government; and those whose thoughts are not engaged in the direction of
the commonwealth are wholly engrossed by the acquisition of a private fortune.
Amongst such a people a serious demeanor ceases to be peculiar to certain men,
and becomes a habit of the nation.
We are told of small democracies in the days of antiquity, in which the citizens
met upon the public places with garlands of roses, and spent almost all their
time in dancing and theatrical amusements. I do not believe in such republics
any more than in that of Plato; or, if the things we read of really happened, I
do not hesitate to affirm that these supposed democracies were composed of very
different elements from ours, and that they had nothing in common with the
latter except their name. But it must not be supposed that, in the midst of all
their toils, the people who live in democracies think themselves to be pitied;
the contrary is remarked to be the case. No men are fonder of their own
condition. Life would have no relish for them if they were delivered from the
anxieties which harass them, and they show more attachment to their cares than
aristocratic nations to their pleasures.
I am next led to inquire how it is that these same democratic nations, which are
so serious, sometimes act in so inconsiderate a manner. The Americans, who
almost always preserve a staid demeanor and a frigid air, nevertheless
frequently allow themselves to be borne away, far beyond the bound of reason, by
a sudden passion or a hasty opinion, and they sometimes gravely commit strange
absurdities. This contrast ought not to surprise us. There is one sort of
ignorance which originates in extreme publicity. In despotic States men know not
how to act, because they are told nothing; in democratic nations they often act
at random, because nothing is to be left untold. The former do not know—the
latter forget; and the chief features of each picture are lost to them in a
bewilderment of details.
It is astonishing what imprudent language a public man may sometimes use in free
countries, and especially in democratic States, without being compromised;
whereas in absolute monarchies a few words dropped by accident are enough to
unmask him forever, and ruin him without hope of redemption. This is explained
by what goes before. When a man speaks in the midst of a great crowd, many of
his words are not heard, or are forthwith obliterated from the memories of those
who hear them; but amidst the silence of a mute and motionless throng the
slightest whisper strikes the ear.
In democracies men are never stationary; a thousand chances waft them to and
fro, and their life is always the sport of unforeseen or (so to speak)
extemporaneous circumstances. Thus they are often obliged to do things which
they have imperfectly learned, to say things they imperfectly understand, and to
devote themselves to work for which they are unprepared by long apprenticeship.
In aristocracies every man has one sole object which he unceasingly pursues, but
amongst democratic nations the existence of man is more complex; the same mind
will almost always embrace several objects at the same time, and these objects
are frequently wholly foreign to each other: as it cannot know them all well,
the mind is readily satisfied with imperfect notions of each.
When the inhabitant of democracies is not urged by his wants, he is so at least
by his desires; for of all the possessions which he sees around him, none are
wholly beyond his reach. He therefore does everything in a hurry, he is always
satisfied with "pretty well," and never pauses more than an instant to consider
what he has been doing. His curiosity is at once insatiable and cheaply
satisfied; for he cares more to know a great deal quickly than to know anything
well: he has no time and but little taste to search things to the bottom. Thus
then democratic peoples are grave, because their social and political condition
constantly leads them to engage in serious occupations; and they act
inconsiderately, because they give but little time and attention to each of
these occupations. The habit of inattention must be considered as the greatest
bane of the democratic character.
Chapter XVI: Why The National Vanity Of The Americans Is More Restless And
Captious Than That Of The English
All free nations are vainglorious, but national pride is not displayed by all in
the same manner. The Americans in their intercourse with strangers appear
impatient of the smallest censure and insatiable of praise. The most slender
eulogium is acceptable to them; the most exalted seldom contents them; they
unceasingly harass you to extort praise, and if you resist their entreaties they
fall to praising themselves. It would seem as if, doubting their own merit, they
wished to have it constantly exhibited before their eyes. Their vanity is not
only greedy, but restless and jealous; it will grant nothing, whilst it demands
everything, but is ready to beg and to quarrel at the same time. If I say to an
American that the country he lives in is a fine one, "Ay," he replies, "there is
not its fellow in the world." If I applaud the freedom which its inhabitants
enjoy, he answers, "Freedom is a fine thing, but few nations are worthy to enjoy
it." If I remark the purity of morals which distinguishes the United States, "I
can imagine," says he, "that a stranger, who has been struck by the corruption
of all other nations, is astonished at the difference." At length I leave him to
the contemplation of himself; but he returns to the charge, and does not desist
till he has got me to repeat all I had just been saying. It is impossible to
conceive a more troublesome or more garrulous patriotism; it wearies even those
who are disposed to respect it. *a
a
[ See Appendix U.]
Such is not the case with the English. An Englishman calmly enjoys the real or
imaginary advantages which in his opinion his country possesses. If he grants
nothing to other nations, neither does he solicit anything for his own. The
censure of foreigners does not affect him, and their praise hardly flatters him;
his position with regard to the rest of the world is one of disdainful and
ignorant reserve: his pride requires no sustenance, it nourishes itself. It is
remarkable that two nations, so recently sprung from the same stock, should be
so opposite to one another in their manner of feeling and conversing.
In aristocratic countries the great possess immense privileges, upon which their
pride rests, without seeking to rely upon the lesser advantages which accrue to
them. As these privileges came to them by inheritance, they regard them in some
sort as a portion of themselves, or at least as a natural right inherent in
their own persons. They therefore entertain a calm sense of their superiority;
they do not dream of vaunting privileges which everyone perceives and no one
contests, and these things are not sufficiently new to them to be made topics of
conversation. They stand unmoved in their solitary greatness, well assured that
they are seen of all the world without any effort to show themselves off, and
that no one will attempt to drive them from that position. When an aristocracy
carries on the public affairs, its national pride naturally assumes this
reserved, indifferent, and haughty form, which is imitated by all the other
classes of the nation.
When, on the contrary, social conditions differ but little, the slightest
privileges are of some importance; as every man sees around himself a million of
people enjoying precisely similar or analogous advantages, his pride becomes
craving and jealous, he clings to mere trifles, and doggedly defends them. In
democracies, as the conditions of life are very fluctuating, men have almost
always recently acquired the advantages which they possess; the consequence is
that they feel extreme pleasure in exhibiting them, to show others and convince
themselves that they really enjoy them. As at any instant these same advantages
may be lost, their possessors are constantly on the alert, and make a point of
showing that they still retain them. Men living in democracies love their
country just as they love themselves, and they transfer the habits of their
private vanity to their vanity as a nation. The restless and insatiable vanity
of a democratic people originates so entirely in the equality and precariousness
of social conditions, that the members of the haughtiest nobility display the
very same passion in those lesser portions of their existence in which there is
anything fluctuating or contested. An aristocratic class always differs greatly
from the other classes of the nation, by the extent and perpetuity of its
privileges; but it often happens that the only differences between the members
who belong to it consist in small transient advantages, which may any day be
lost or acquired. The members of a powerful aristocracy, collected in a capital
or a court, have been known to contest with virulence those frivolous privileges
which depend on the caprice of fashion or the will of their master. These
persons then displayed towards each other precisely the same puerile jealousies
which animate the men of democracies, the same eagerness to snatch the smallest
advantages which their equals contested, and the same desire to parade
ostentatiously those of which they were in possession. If national pride ever
entered into the minds of courtiers, I do not question that they would display
it in the same manner as the members of a democratic community.
Chapter XVII: That The Aspect Of Society In The United States Is At Once
Excited And Monotonous
It would seem that nothing can be more adapted to stimulate and to feed
curiosity than the aspect of the United States. Fortunes, opinions, and laws are
there in ceaseless variation: it is as if immutable nature herself were mutable,
such are the changes worked upon her by the hand of man. Yet in the end the
sight of this excited community becomes monotonous, and after having watched the
moving pageant for a time the spectator is tired of it. Amongst aristocratic
nations every man is pretty nearly stationary in his own sphere; but men are
astonishingly unlike each other—their passions, their notions, their habits, and
their tastes are essentially different: nothing changey, but everything differs.
In democracies, on the contrary, all men are alike and do things pretty nearly
alike. It is true that they are subject to great and frequent vicissitudes; but
as the same events of good or adverse fortune are continually recurring, the
name of the actors only is changed, the piece is always the same. The aspect of
American society is animated, because men and things are always changing; but it
is monotonous, because all these changes are alike.
Men living in democratic ages have many passions, but most of their passions
either end in the love of riches or proceed from it. The cause of this is, not
that their souls are narrower, but that the importance of money is really
greater at such times. When all the members of a community are independent of or
indifferent to each other, the co-operation of each of them can only be obtained
by paying for it: this infinitely multiplies the purposes to which wealth may be
applied, and increases its value. When the reverence which belonged to what is
old has vanished, birth, condition, and profession no longer distinguish men, or
scarcely distinguish them at all: hardly anything but money remains to create
strongly marked differences between them, and to raise some of them above the
common level. The distinction originating in wealth is increased by the
disappearance and diminution of all other distinctions. Amongst aristocratic
nations money only reaches to a few points on the vast circle of man's
desires—in democracies it seems to lead to all. The love of wealth is therefore
to be traced, either as a principal or an accessory motive, at the bottom of all
that the Americans do: this gives to all their passions a sort of family
likeness, and soon renders the survey of them exceedingly wearisome. This
perpetual recurrence of the same passion is monotonous; the peculiar methods by
which this passion seeks its own gratification are no less so.
In an orderly and constituted democracy like the United States, where men cannot
enrich themselves by war, by public office, or by political confiscation, the
love of wealth mainly drives them into business and manufactures. Although these
pursuits often bring about great commotions and disasters, they cannot prosper
without strictly regular habits and a long routine of petty uniform acts. The
stronger the passion is, the more regular are these habits, and the more uniform
are these acts. It may be said that it is the vehemence of their desires which
makes the Americans so methodical; it perturbs their minds, but it disciplines
their lives.
The remark I here apply to America may indeed be addressed to almost all our
contemporaries. Variety is disappearing from the human race; the same ways of
acting, thinking, and feeling are to be met with all over the world. This is not
only because nations work more upon each other, and are more faithful in their
mutual imitation; but as the men of each country relinquish more and more the
peculiar opinions and feelings of a caste, a profession, or a family, they
simultaneously arrive at something nearer to the constitution of man, which is
everywhere the same. Thus they become more alike, even without having imitated
each other. Like travellers scattered about some large wood, which is
intersected by paths converging to one point, if all of them keep, their eyes
fixed upon that point and advance towards it, they insensibly draw nearer
together—though they seek not, though they see not, though they know not each
other; and they will be surprised at length to find themselves all collected on
the same spot. All the nations which take, not any particular man, but man
himself, as the object of their researches and their imitations, are tending in
the end to a similar state of society, like these travellers converging to the
central plot of the forest.
Chapter XVIII: Of Honor In The United States And In Democratic Communities
It would seem that men employ two very distinct methods in the public estimation
*a of the actions of their fellowmen; at one time they judge them by those
simple notions of right and wrong which are diffused all over the world; at
another they refer their decision to a few very special notions which belong
exclusively to some particular age and country. It often happens that these two
rules differ; they sometimes conflict: but they are never either entirely
identified or entirely annulled by one another. Honor, at the periods of its
greatest power, sways the will more than the belief of men; and even whilst they
yield without hesitation and without a murmur to its dictates, they feel
notwithstanding, by a dim but mighty instinct, the existence of a more general,
more ancient, and more holy law, which they sometimes disobey although they
cease not to acknowledge it. Some actions have been held to be at the same time
virtuous and dishonorable—a refusal to fight a duel is a case in point.
a
[ The word "honor" is not always used in the same sense either in French or
English. I. It first signifies the dignity, glory, or reverence which a man
receives from his kind; and in this sense a man is said to acquire honor. 2.
Honor signifies the aggregate of those rules by the assistance of which this
dignity, glory, or reverence is obtained. Thus we say that a man has always
strictly obeyed the laws of honor; or a man has violated his honor. In this
chapter the word is always used in the latter sense.]
I think these peculiarities may be otherwise explained than by the mere caprices
of certain individuals and nations, as has hitherto been the customary mode of
reasoning on the subject. Mankind is subject to general and lasting wants that
have engendered moral laws, to the neglect of which men have ever and in all
places attached the notion of censure and shame: to infringe them was "to do
ill"—"to do well" was to conform to them. Within the bosom of this vast
association of the human race, lesser associations have been formed which are
called nations; and amidst these nations further subdivisions have assumed the
names of classes or castes. Each of these associations forms, as it were, a
separate species of the human race; and though it has no essential difference
from the mass of mankind, to a certain extent it stands apart and has certain
wants peculiar to itself. To these special wants must be attributed the
modifications which affect in various degrees and in different countries the
mode of considering human actions, and the estimate which ought to be formed of
them. It is the general and permanent interest of mankind that men should not
kill each other: but it may happen to be the peculiar and temporary interest of
a people or a class to justify, or even to honor, homicide.
Honor is simply that peculiar rule, founded upon a peculiar state of society, by
the application of which a people or a class allot praise or blame. Nothing is
more unproductive to the mind than an abstract idea; I therefore hasten to call
in the aid of facts and examples to illustrate my meaning.
I select the most extraordinary kind of honor which was ever known in the world,
and that which we are best acquainted with, viz., aristocratic honor springing
out of feudal society. I shall explain it by means of the principle already laid
down, and I shall explain the principle by means of the illustration. I am not
here led to inquire when and how the aristocracy of the Middle Ages came into
existence, why it was so deeply severed from the remainder of the nation, or
what founded and consolidated its power. I take its existence as an established
fact, and I am endeavoring to account for the peculiar view which it took of the
greater part of human actions. The first thing that strikes me is, that in the
feudal world actions were not always praised or blamed with reference to their
intrinsic worth, but that they were sometimes appreciated exclusively with
reference to the person who was the actor or the object of them, which is
repugnant to the general conscience of mankind. Thus some of the actions which
were indifferent on the part of a man in humble life, dishonored a noble; others
changed their whole character according as the person aggrieved by them belonged
or did not belong to the aristocracy. When these different notions first arose,
the nobility formed a distinct body amidst the people, which it commanded from
the inaccessible heights where it was ensconced. To maintain this peculiar
position, which constituted its strength, it not only required political
privileges, but it required a standard of right and wrong for its own especial
use. That some particular virtue or vice belonged to the nobility rather than to
the humble classes—that certain actions were guiltless when they affected the
villain, which were criminal when they touched the noble—these were often
arbitrary matters; but that honor or shame should be attached to a man's actions
according to his condition, was a result of the internal constitution of an
aristocratic community. This has been actually the case in all the countries
which have had an aristocracy; as long as a trace of the principle remains,
these peculiarities will still exist; to debauch a woman of color scarcely
injures the reputation of an American—to marry her dishonors him.
In some cases feudal honor enjoined revenge, and stigmatized the forgiveness of
insults; in others it imperiously commanded men to conquer their own passions,
and imposed forgetfulness of self. It did not make humanity or kindness its law,
but it extolled generosity; it set more store on liberality than on benevolence;
it allowed men to enrich themselves by gambling or by war, but not by labor; it
preferred great crimes to small earnings; cupidity was less distasteful to it
than avarice; violence it often sanctioned, but cunning and treachery it
invariably reprobated as contemptible. These fantastical notions did not proceed
exclusively from the caprices of those who entertained them. A class which has
succeeded in placing itself at the head of and above all others, and which makes
perpetual exertions to maintain this lofty position, must especially honor those
virtues which are conspicuous for their dignity and splendor, and which may be
easily combined with pride and the love of power. Such men would not hesitate to
invert the natural order of the conscience in order to give those virtues
precedence before all others. It may even be conceived that some of the more
bold and brilliant vices would readily be set above the quiet, unpretending
virtues. The very existence of such a class in society renders these things
unavoidable.
The nobles of the Middle Ages placed military courage foremost amongst virtues,
and in lieu of many of them. This was again a peculiar opinion which arose
necessarily from the peculiarity of the state of society. Feudal aristocracy
existed by war and for war; its power had been founded by arms, and by arms that
power was maintained; it therefore required nothing more than military courage,
and that quality was naturally exalted above all others; whatever denoted it,
even at the expense of reason and humanity, was therefore approved and
frequently enjoined by the manners of the time. Such was the main principle; the
caprice of man was only to be traced in minuter details. That a man should
regard a tap on the cheek as an unbearable insult, and should be obliged to kill
in single combat the person who struck him thus lightly, is an arbitrary rule;
but that a noble could not tranquilly receive an insult, and was dishonored if
he allowed himself to take a blow without fighting, were direct consequences of
the fundamental principles and the wants of military aristocracy.
Thus it was true to a certain extent to assert that the laws of honor were
capricious; but these caprices of honor were always confined within certain
necessary limits. The peculiar rule, which was called honor by our forefathers,
is so far from being an arbitrary law in my eyes, that I would readily engage to
ascribe its most incoherent and fantastical injunctions to a small number of
fixed and invariable wants inherent in feudal society.
If I were to trace the notion of feudal honor into the domain of politics, I
should not find it more difficult to explain its dictates. The state of society
and the political institutions of the Middle Ages were such, that the supreme
power of the nation never governed the community directly. That power did not
exist in the eyes of the people: every man looked up to a certain individual
whom he was bound to obey; by that intermediate personage he was connected with
all the others. Thus in feudal society the whole system of the commonwealth
rested upon the sentiment of fidelity to the person of the lord: to destroy that
sentiment was to open the sluices of anarchy. Fidelity to a political superior
was, moreover, a sentiment of which all the members of the aristocracy had
constant opportunities of estimating the importance; for every one of them was a
vassal as well as a lord, and had to command as well as to obey. To remain
faithful to the lord, to sacrifice one's self for him if called upon, to share
his good or evil fortunes, to stand by him in his undertakings whatever they
might be—such were the first injunctions of feudal honor in relation to the
political institutions of those times. The treachery of a vassal was branded
with extraordinary severity by public opinion, and a name of peculiar infamy was
invented for the offence which was called "felony."
On the contrary, few traces are to be found in the Middle Ages of the passion
which constituted the life of the nations of antiquity—I mean patriotism; the
word itself is not of very ancient date in the language. *b Feudal institutions
concealed the country at large from men's sight, and rendered the love of it
less necessary. The nation was forgotten in the passions which attached men to
persons. Hence it was no part of the strict law of feudal honor to remain
faithful to one's country. Not indeed that the love of their country did not
exist in the hearts of our forefathers; but it constituted a dim and feeble
instinct, which has grown more clear and strong in proportion as aristocratic
classes have been abolished, and the supreme power of the nation centralized.
This may be clearly seen from the contrary judgments which European nations have
passed upon the various events of their histories, according to the generations
by which such judgments have been formed. The circumstance which most dishonored
the Constable de Bourbon in the eyes of his contemporaries was that he bore arms
against his king: that which most dishonors him in our eyes, is that he made war
against his country; we brand him as deeply as our forefathers did, but for
different reasons.
b
[ Even the word "patrie" was not used by the French writers until the sixteenth
century.]
I have chosen the honor of feudal times by way of illustration of my meaning,
because its characteristics are more distinctly marked and more familiar to us
than those of any other period; but I might have taken an example elsewhere, and
I should have reached the same conclusion by a different road. Although we are
less perfectly acquainted with the Romans than with our own ancestors, yet we
know that certain peculiar notions of glory and disgrace obtained amongst them,
which were not solely derived from the general principles of right and wrong.
Many human actions were judged differently, according as they affected a Roman
citizen or a stranger, a freeman or a slave; certain vices were blazoned abroad,
certain virtues were extolled above all others. "In that age," says Plutarch in
the life of Coriolanus, "martial prowess was more honored and prized in Rome
than all the other virtues, insomuch that it was called virtus, the name of
virtue itself, by applying the name of the kind to this particular species; so
that virtue in Latin was as much as to say valor." Can anyone fail to recognize
the peculiar want of that singular community which was formed for the conquest
of the world?
Any nation would furnish us with similar grounds of observation; for, as I have
already remarked, whenever men collect together as a distinct community, the
notion of honor instantly grows up amongst them; that is to say, a system of
opinions peculiar to themselves as to what is blamable or commendable; and these
peculiar rules always originate in the special habits and special interests of
the community. This is applicable to a certain extent to democratic communities
as well as to others, as we shall now proceed to prove by the example of the
Americans. *c Some loose notions of the old aristocratic honor of Europe are
still to be found scattered amongst the opinions of the Americans; but these
traditional opinions are few in number, they have but little root in the
country, and but little power. They are like a religion which has still some
temples left standing, though men have ceased to believe in it. But amidst these
half-obliterated notions of exotic honor, some new opinions have sprung up,
which constitute what may be termed in our days American honor. I have shown how
the Americans are constantly driven to engage in commerce and industry. Their
origin, their social condition, their political institutions, and even the spot
they inhabit, urge them irresistibly in this direction. Their present condition
is then that of an almost exclusively manufacturing and commercial association,
placed in the midst of a new and boundless country, which their principal object
is to explore for purposes of profit. This is the characteristic which most
peculiarly distinguishes the American people from all others at the present
time. All those quiet virtues which tend to give a regular movement to the
community, and to encourage business, will therefore be held in peculiar honor
by that people, and to neglect those virtues will be to incur public contempt.
All the more turbulent virtues, which often dazzle, but more frequently disturb
society, will on the contrary occupy a subordinate rank in the estimation of
this same people: they may be neglected without forfeiting the esteem of the
community—to acquire them would perhaps be to run a risk of losing it.
c
[ I speak here of the Americans inhabiting those States where slavery does not
exist; they alone can be said to present a complete picture of democratic
society.]
The Americans make a no less arbitrary classification of men's vices. There are
certain propensities which appear censurable to the general reason and the
universal conscience of mankind, but which happen to agree with the peculiar and
temporary wants of the American community: these propensities are lightly
reproved, sometimes even encouraged; for instance, the love of wealth and the
secondary propensities connected with it may be more particularly cited. To
clear, to till, and to transform the vast uninhabited continent which is his
domain, the American requires the daily support of an energetic passion; that
passion can only be the love of wealth; the passion for wealth is therefore not
reprobated in America, and provided it does not go beyond the bounds assigned to
it for public security, it is held in honor. The American lauds as a noble and
praiseworthy ambition what our own forefathers in the Middle Ages stigmatized as
servile cupidity, just as he treats as a blind and barbarous frenzy that ardor
of conquest and martial temper which bore them to battle. In the United States
fortunes are lost and regained without difficulty; the country is boundless, and
its resources inexhaustible. The people have all the wants and cravings of a
growing creature; and whatever be their efforts, they are always surrounded by
more than they can appropriate. It is not the ruin of a few individuals which
may be soon repaired, but the inactivity and sloth of the community at large
which would be fatal to such a people. Boldness of enterprise is the foremost
cause of its rapid progress, its strength, and its greatness. Commercial
business is there like a vast lottery, by which a small number of men
continually lose, but the State is always a gainer; such a people ought
therefore to encourage and do honor to boldness in commercial speculations. But
any bold speculation risks the fortune of the speculator and of all those who
put their trust in him. The Americans, who make a virtue of commercial temerity,
have no right in any case to brand with disgrace those who practise it. Hence
arises the strange indulgence which is shown to bankrupts in the United States;
their honor does not suffer by such an accident. In this respect the Americans
differ, not only from the nations of Europe, but from all the commercial nations
of our time, and accordingly they resemble none of them in their position or
their wants.
In America all those vices which tend to impair the purity of morals, and to
destroy the conjugal tie, are treated with a degree of severity which is unknown
in the rest of the world. At first sight this seems strangely at variance with
the tolerance shown there on other subjects, and one is surprised to meet with a
morality so relaxed and so austere amongst the selfsame people. But these things
are less incoherent than they seem to be. Public opinion in the United States
very gently represses that love of wealth which promotes the commercial
greatness and the prosperity of the nation, and it especially condemns that
laxity of morals which diverts the human mind from the pursuit of well-being,
and disturbs the internal order of domestic life which is so necessary to
success in business. To earn the esteem of their countrymen, the Americans are
therefore constrained to adapt themselves to orderly habits—and it may be said
in this sense that they make it a matter of honor to live chastely.
On one point American honor accords with the notions of honor acknowledged in
Europe; it places courage as the highest virtue, and treats it as the greatest
of the moral necessities of man; but the notion of courage itself assumes a
different aspect. In the United States martial valor is but little prized; the
courage which is best known and most esteemed is that which emboldens men to
brave the dangers of the ocean, in order to arrive earlier in port—to support
the privations of the wilderness without complaint, and solitude more cruel than
privations—the courage which renders them almost insensible to the loss of a
fortune laboriously acquired, and instantly prompts to fresh exertions to make
another. Courage of this kind is peculiarly necessary to the maintenance and
prosperity of the American communities, and it is held by them in peculiar honor
and estimation; to betray a want of it is to incur certain disgrace.
I have yet another characteristic point which may serve to place the idea of
this chapter in stronger relief. In a democratic society like that of the United
States, where fortunes are scanty and insecure, everybody works, and work opens
a way to everything: this has changed the point of honor quite round, and has
turned it against idleness. I have sometimes met in America with young men of
wealth, personally disinclined to all laborious exertion, but who had been
compelled to embrace a profession. Their disposition and their fortune allowed
them to remain without employment; public opinion forbade it, too imperiously to
be disobeyed. In the European countries, on the contrary, where aristocracy is
still struggling with the flood which overwhelms it, I have often seen men,
constantly spurred on by their wants and desires, remain in idleness, in order
not to lose the esteem of their equals; and I have known them submit to ennui
and privations rather than to work. No one can fail to perceive that these
opposite obligations are two different rules of conduct, both nevertheless
originating in the notion of honor.
What our forefathers designated as honor absolutely was in reality only one of
its forms; they gave a generic name to what was only a species. Honor therefore
is to be found in democratic as well as in aristocratic ages, but it will not be
difficult to show that it assumes a different aspect in the former. Not only are
its injunctions different, but we shall shortly see that they are less numerous,
less precise, and that its dictates are less rigorously obeyed. The position of
a caste is always much more peculiar than that of a people. Nothing is so much
out of the way of the world as a small community invariably composed of the same
families (as was for instance the aristocracy of the Middle Ages), whose object
is to concentrate and to retain, exclusively and hereditarily, education,
wealth, and power amongst its own members. But the more out of the way the
position of a community happens to be, the more numerous are its special wants,
and the more extensive are its notions of honor corresponding to those wants.
The rules of honor will therefore always be less numerous amongst a people not
divided into castes than amongst any other. If ever any nations are constituted
in which it may even be difficult to find any peculiar classes of society, the
notion of honor will be confined to a small number of precepts, which will be
more and more in accordance with the moral laws adopted by the mass of mankind.
Thus the laws of honor will be less peculiar and less multifarious amongst a
democratic people than in an aristocracy. They will also be more obscure; and
this is a necessary consequence of what goes before; for as the distinguishing
marks of honor are less numerous and less peculiar, it must often be difficult
to distinguish them. To this, other reasons may be added. Amongst the
aristocratic nations of the Middle Ages, generation succeeded generation in
vain; each family was like a never-dying, ever-stationary man, and the state of
opinions was hardly more changeable than that of conditions. Everyone then had
always the same objects before his eyes, which he contemplated from the same
point; his eyes gradually detected the smallest details, and his discernment
could not fail to become in the end clear and accurate. Thus not only had the
men of feudal times very extraordinary opinions in matters of honor, but each of
those opinions was present to their minds under a clear and precise form.
This can never be the case in America, where all men are in constant motion; and
where society, transformed daily by its own operations, changes its opinions
together with its wants. In such a country men have glimpses of the rules of
honor, but they have seldom time to fix attention upon them.
But even if society were motionless, it would still be difficult to determine
the meaning which ought to be attached to the word "honor." In the Middle Ages,
as each class had its own honor, the same opinion was never received at the same
time by a large number of men; and this rendered it possible to give it a
determined and accurate form, which was the more easy, as all those by whom it
was received, having a perfectly identical and most peculiar position, were
naturally disposed to agree upon the points of a law which was made for
themselves alone. Thus the code of honor became a complete and detailed system,
in which everything was anticipated and provided for beforehand, and a fixed and
always palpable standard was applied to human actions. Amongst a democratic
nation, like the Americans, in which ranks are identified, and the whole of
society forms one single mass, composed of elements which are all analogous
though not entirely similar, it is impossible ever to agree beforehand on what
shall or shall not be allowed by the laws of honor. Amongst that people, indeed,
some national wants do exist which give rise to opinions common to the whole
nation on points of honor; but these opinions never occur at the same time, in
the same manner, or with the same intensity to the minds of the whole community;
the law of honor exists, but it has no organs to promulgate it.
The confusion is far greater still in a democratic country like France, where
the different classes of which the former fabric of society was composed, being
brought together but not yet mingled, import day by day into each other's
circles various and sometimes conflicting notions of honor—where every man, at
his own will and pleasure, forsakes one portion of his forefathers' creed, and
retains another; so that, amidst so many arbitrary measures, no common rule can
ever be established, and it is almost impossible to predict which actions will
be held in honor and which will be thought disgraceful. Such times are wretched,
but they are of short duration.
As honor, amongst democratic nations, is imperfectly defined, its influence is
of course less powerful; for it is difficult to apply with certainty and
firmness a law which is not distinctly known. Public opinion, the natural and
supreme interpreter of the laws of honor, not clearly discerning to which side
censure or approval ought to lean, can only pronounce a hesitating judgment.
Sometimes the opinion of the public may contradict itself; more frequently it
does not act, and lets things pass.
The weakness of the sense of honor in democracies also arises from several other
causes. In aristocratic countries, the same notions of honor are always
entertained by only a few persons, always limited in number, often separated
from the rest of their fellow-citizens. Honor is easily mingled and identified
in their minds with the idea of all that distinguishes their own position; it
appears to them as the chief characteristic of their own rank; they apply its
different rules with all the warmth of personal interest, and they feel (if I
may use the expression) a passion for complying with its dictates. This truth is
extremely obvious in the old black-letter lawbooks on the subject of "trial by
battel." The nobles, in their disputes, were bound to use the lance and sword;
whereas the villains used only sticks amongst themselves, "inasmuch as," to use
the words of the old books, "villains have no honor." This did not mean, as it
may be imagined at the present day, that these people were contemptible; but
simply that their actions were not to be judged by the same rules which were
applied to the actions of the aristocracy.
It is surprising, at first sight, that when the sense of honor is most
predominant, its injunctions are usually most strange; so that the further it is
removed from common reason the better it is obeyed; whence it has sometimes been
inferred that the laws of honor were strengthened by their own extravagance. The
two things indeed originate from the same source, but the one is not derived
from the other. Honor becomes fantastical in proportion to the peculiarity of
the wants which it denotes, and the paucity of the men by whom those wants are
felt; and it is because it denotes wants of this kind that its influence is
great. Thus the notion of honor is not the stronger for being fantastical, but
it is fantastical and strong from the selfsame cause.
Further, amongst aristocratic nations each rank is different, but all ranks are
fixed; every man occupies a place in his own sphere which he cannot relinquish,
and he lives there amidst other men who are bound by the same ties. Amongst
these nations no man can either hope or fear to escape being seen; no man is
placed so low but that he has a stage of his own, and none can avoid censure or
applause by his obscurity. In democratic States on the contrary, where all the
members of the community are mingled in the same crowd and in constant
agitation, public opinion has no hold on men; they disappear at every instant,
and elude its power. Consequently the dictates of honor will be there less
imperious and less stringent; for honor acts solely for the public eye—differing
in this respect from mere virtue, which lives upon itself contented with its own
approval.
If the reader has distinctly apprehended all that goes before, he will
understand that there is a close and necessary relation between the inequality
of social conditions and what has here been styled honor—a relation which, if I
am not mistaken, had not before been clearly pointed out. I shall therefore make
one more attempt to illustrate it satisfactorily. Suppose a nation stands apart
from the rest of mankind: independently of certain general wants inherent in the
human race, it will also have wants and interests peculiar to itself: certain
opinions of censure or approbation forthwith arise in the community, which are
peculiar to itself, and which are styled honor by the members of that community.
Now suppose that in this same nation a caste arises, which, in its turn, stands
apart from all the other classes, and contracts certain peculiar wants, which
give rise in their turn to special opinions. The honor of this caste, composed
of a medley of the peculiar notions of the nation, and the still more peculiar
notions of the caste, will be as remote as it is possible to conceive from the
simple and general opinions of men.
Having reached this extreme point of the argument, I now return. When ranks are
commingled and privileges abolished, the men of whom a nation is composed being
once more equal and alike, their interests and wants become identical, and all
the peculiar notions which each caste styled honor successively disappear: the
notion of honor no longer proceeds from any other source than the wants peculiar
to the nation at large, and it denotes the individual character of that nation
to the world. Lastly, if it be allowable to suppose that all the races of
mankind should be commingled, and that all the peoples of earth should
ultimately come to have the same interests, the same wants, undistinguished from
each other by any characteristic peculiarities, no conventional value whatever
would then be attached to men's actions; they would all be regarded by all in
the same light; the general necessities of mankind, revealed by conscience to
every man, would become the common standard. The simple and general notions of
right and wrong only would then be recognized in the world, to which, by a
natural and necessary tie, the idea of censure or approbation would be attached.
Thus, to comprise all my meaning in a single proposition, the dissimilarities
and inequalities of men gave rise to the notion of honor; that notion is
weakened in proportion as these differences are obliterated, and with them it
would disappear.
Chapter XIX: Why So Many Ambitious Men And So Little Lofty Ambition Are To Be
Found In The United States
The first thing which strikes a traveller in the United States is the
innumerable multitude of those who seek to throw off their original condition;
and the second is the rarity of lofty ambition to be observed in the midst of
the universally ambitious stir of society. No Americans are devoid of a yearning
desire to rise; but hardly any appear to entertain hopes of great magnitude, or
to drive at very lofty aims. All are constantly seeking to acquire property,
power, and reputation—few contemplate these things upon a great scale; and this
is the more surprising, as nothing is to be discerned in the manners or laws of
America to limit desire, or to prevent it from spreading its impulses in every
direction. It seems difficult to attribute this singular state of things to the
equality of social conditions; for at the instant when that same equality was
established in France, the flight of ambition became unbounded. Nevertheless, I
think that the principal cause which may be assigned to this fact is to be found
in the social condition and democratic manners of the Americans.
All revolutions enlarge the ambition of men: this proposition is more peculiarly
true of those revolutions which overthrow an aristocracy. When the former
barriers which kept back the multitude from fame and power are suddenly thrown
down, a violent and universal rise takes place towards that eminence so long
coveted and at length to be enjoyed. In this first burst of triumph nothing
seems impossible to anyone: not only are desires boundless, but the power of
satisfying them seems almost boundless, too. Amidst the general and sudden
renewal of laws and customs, in this vast confusion of all men and all
ordinances, the various members of the community rise and sink again with
excessive rapidity; and power passes so quickly from hand to hand that none need
despair of catching it in turn. It must be recollected, moreover, that the
people who destroy an aristocracy have lived under its laws; they have witnessed
its splendor, and they have unconsciously imbibed the feelings and notions which
it entertained. Thus at the moment when an aristocracy is dissolved, its spirit
still pervades the mass of the community, and its tendencies are retained long
after it has been defeated. Ambition is therefore always extremely great as long
as a democratic revolution lasts, and it will remain so for some time after the
revolution is consummated. The reminiscence of the extraordinary events which
men have witnessed is not obliterated from their memory in a day. The passions
which a revolution has roused do not disappear at its close. A sense of
instability remains in the midst of re-established order: a notion of easy
success survives the strange vicissitudes which gave it birth; desires still
remain extremely enlarged, when the means of satisfying them are diminished day
by day. The taste for large fortunes subsists, though large fortunes are rare:
and on every side we trace the ravages of inordinate and hapless ambition
kindled in hearts which they consume in secret and in vain.
At length, however, the last vestiges of the struggle are effaced; the remains
of aristocracy completely disappear; the great events by which its fall was
attended are forgotten; peace succeeds to war, and the sway of order is restored
in the new realm; desires are again adapted to the means by which they may be
fulfilled; the wants, the opinions, and the feelings of men cohere once more;
the level of the community is permanently determined, and democratic society
established. A democratic nation, arrived at this permanent and regular state of
things, will present a very different spectacle from that which we have just
described; and we may readily conclude that, if ambition becomes great whilst
the conditions of society are growing equal, it loses that quality when they
have grown so. As wealth is subdivided and knowledge diffused, no one is
entirely destitute of education or of property; the privileges and
disqualifications of caste being abolished, and men having shattered the bonds
which held them fixed, the notion of advancement suggests itself to every mind,
the desire to rise swells in every heart, and all men want to mount above their
station: ambition is the universal feeling.
But if the equality of conditions gives some resources to all the members of the
community, it also prevents any of them from having resources of great extent,
which necessarily circumscribes their desires within somewhat narrow limits.
Thus amongst democratic nations ambition is ardent and continual, but its aim is
not habitually lofty; and life is generally spent in eagerly coveting small
objects which are within reach. What chiefly diverts the men of democracies from
lofty ambition is not the scantiness of their fortunes, but the vehemence of the
exertions they daily make to improve them. They strain their faculties to the
utmost to achieve paltry results, and this cannot fail speedily to limit their
discernment and to circumscribe their powers. They might be much poorer and
still be greater. The small number of opulent citizens who are to be found
amidst a democracy do not constitute an exception to this rule. A man who raises
himself by degrees to wealth and power, contracts, in the course of this
protracted labor, habits of prudence and restraint which he cannot afterwards
shake off. A man cannot enlarge his mind as he would his house. The same
observation is applicable to the sons of such a man; they are born, it is true,
in a lofty position, but their parents were humble; they have grown up amidst
feelings and notions which they cannot afterwards easily get rid of; and it may
be presumed that they will inherit the propensities of their father as well as
his wealth. It may happen, on the contrary, that the poorest scion of a powerful
aristocracy may display vast ambition, because the traditional opinions of his
race and the general spirit of his order still buoy him up for some time above
his fortune. Another thing which prevents the men of democratic periods from
easily indulging in the pursuit of lofty objects, is the lapse of time which
they foresee must take place before they can be ready to approach them. "It is a
great advantage," says Pascal, "to be a man of quality, since it brings one man
as forward at eighteen or twenty as another man would be at fifty, which is a
clear gain of thirty years." Those thirty years are commonly wanting to the
ambitious characters of democracies. The principle of equality, which allows
every man to arrive at everything, prevents all men from rapid advancement.
In a democratic society, as well as elsewhere, there are only a certain number
of great fortunes to be made; and as the paths which lead to them are
indiscriminately open to all, the progress of all must necessarily be slackened.
As the candidates appear to be nearly alike, and as it is difficult to make a
selection without infringing the principle of equality, which is the supreme law
of democratic societies, the first idea which suggests itself is to make them
all advance at the same rate and submit to the same probation. Thus in
proportion as men become more alike, and the principle of equality is more
peaceably and deeply infused into the institutions and manners of the country,
the rules of advancement become more inflexible, advancement itself slower, the
difficulty of arriving quickly at a certain height far greater. From hatred of
privilege and from the embarrassment of choosing, all men are at last
constrained, whatever may be their standard, to pass the same ordeal; all are
indiscriminately subjected to a multitude of petty preliminary exercises, in
which their youth is wasted and their imagination quenched, so that they despair
of ever fully attaining what is held out to them; and when at length they are in
a condition to perform any extraordinary acts, the taste for such things has
forsaken them.
In China, where the equality of conditions is exceedingly great and very
ancient, no man passes from one public office to another without undergoing a
probationary trial. This probation occurs afresh at every stage of his career;
and the notion is now so rooted in the manners of the people that I remember to
have read a Chinese novel, in which the hero, after numberless crosses, succeeds
at length in touching the heart of his mistress by taking honors. A lofty
ambition breathes with difficulty in such an atmosphere.
The remark I apply to politics extends to everything; equality everywhere
produces the same effects; where the laws of a country do not regulate and
retard the advancement of men by positive enactment, competition attains the
same end. In a well-established democratic community great and rapid elevation
is therefore rare; it forms an exception to the common rule; and it is the
singularity of such occurrences that makes men forget how rarely they happen.
Men living in democracies ultimately discover these things; they find out at
last that the laws of their country open a boundless field of action before
them, but that no one can hope to hasten across it. Between them and the final
object of their desires, they perceive a multitude of small intermediate
impediments, which must be slowly surmounted: this prospect wearies and
discourages their ambition at once. They therefore give up hopes so doubtful and
remote, to search nearer to themselves for less lofty and more easy enjoyments.
Their horizon is not bounded by the laws but narrowed by themselves.
I have remarked that lofty ambitions are more rare in the ages of democracy than
in times of aristocracy: I may add that when, in spite of these natural
obstacles, they do spring into existence, their character is different. In
aristocracies the career of ambition is often wide, but its boundaries are
determined. In democracies ambition commonly ranges in a narrower field, but if
once it gets beyond that, hardly any limits can be assigned to it. As men are
individually weak—as they live asunder, and in constant motion—as precedents are
of little authority and laws but of short duration, resistance to novelty is
languid, and the fabric of society never appears perfectly erect or firmly
consolidated. So that, when once an ambitious man has the power in his grasp,
there is nothing he may noted are; and when it is gone from him, he meditates
the overthrow of the State to regain it. This gives to great political ambition
a character of revolutionary violence, which it seldom exhibits to an equal
degree in aristocratic communities. The common aspect of democratic nations will
present a great number of small and very rational objects of ambition, from
amongst which a few ill-controlled desires of a larger growth will at intervals
break out: but no such a thing as ambition conceived and contrived on a vast
scale is to be met with there.
I have shown elsewhere by what secret influence the principle of equality makes
the passion for physical gratifications and the exclusive love of the present
predominate in the human heart: these different propensities mingle with the
sentiment of ambition, and tinge it, as it were, with their hues. I believe that
ambitious men in democracies are less engrossed than any others with the
interests and the judgment of posterity; the present moment alone engages and
absorbs them. They are more apt to complete a number of undertakings with
rapidity than to raise lasting monuments of their achievements; and they care
much more for success than for fame. What they most ask of men is obedience—what
they most covet is empire. Their manners have in almost all cases remained below
the height of their station; the consequence is that they frequently carry very
low tastes into their extraordinary fortunes, and that they seem to have
acquired the supreme power only to minister to their coarse or paltry pleasures.
I think that in our time it is very necessary to cleanse, to regulate, and to
adapt the feeling of ambition, but that it would be extremely dangerous to seek
to impoverish and to repress it over-much. We should attempt to lay down certain
extreme limits, which it should never be allowed to outstep; but its range
within those established limits should not be too much checked. I confess that I
apprehend much less for democratic society from the boldness than from the
mediocrity of desires. What appears to me most to be dreaded is that, in the
midst of the small incessant occupations of private life, ambition should lose
its vigor and its greatness—that the passions of man should abate, but at the
same time be lowered, so that the march of society should every day become more
tranquil and less aspiring. I think then that the leaders of modern society
would be wrong to seek to lull the community by a state of too uniform and too
peaceful happiness; and that it is well to expose it from time to time to
matters of difficulty and danger, in order to raise ambition and to give it a
field of action. Moralists are constantly complaining that the ruling vice of
the present time is pride. This is true in one sense, for indeed no one thinks
that he is not better than his neighbor, or consents to obey his superior: but
it is extremely false in another; for the same man who cannot endure
subordination or equality, has so contemptible an opinion of himself that he
thinks he is only born to indulge in vulgar pleasures. He willingly takes up
with low desires, without daring to embark in lofty enterprises, of which he
scarcely dreams. Thus, far from thinking that humility ought to be preached to
our contemporaries, I would have endeavors made to give them a more enlarged
idea of themselves and of their kind. Humility is unwholesome to them; what they
most want is, in my opinion, pride. I would willingly exchange several of our
small virtues for this one vice.
Chapter XX: The Trade Of Place-Hunting In Certain Democratic Countries
In the United States as soon as a man has acquired some education and pecuniary
resources, he either endeavors to get rich by commerce or industry, or he buys
land in the bush and turns pioneer. All that he asks of the State is not to be
disturbed in his toil, and to be secure of his earnings. Amongst the greater
part of European nations, when a man begins to feel his strength and to extend
his desires, the first thing that occurs to him is to get some public
employment. These opposite effects, originating in the same cause, deserve our
passing notice.
When public employments are few in number, ill-paid and precarious, whilst the
different lines of business are numerous and lucrative, it is to business, and
not to official duties, that the new and eager desires engendered by the
principle of equality turn from every side. But if, whilst the ranks of society
are becoming more equal, the education of the people remains incomplete, or
their spirit the reverse of bold—if commerce and industry, checked in their
growth, afford only slow and arduous means of making a fortune—the various
members of the community, despairing of ameliorating their own condition, rush
to the head of the State and demand its assistance. To relieve their own
necessities at the cost of the public treasury, appears to them to be the
easiest and most open, if not the only, way they have to rise above a condition
which no longer contents them; place-hunting becomes the most generally followed
of all trades. This must especially be the case, in those great centralized
monarchies in which the number of paid offices is immense, and the tenure of
them tolerably secure, so that no one despairs of obtaining a place, and of
enjoying it as undisturbedly as a hereditary fortune.
I shall not remark that the universal and inordinate desire for place is a great
social evil; that it destroys the spirit of independence in the citizen, and
diffuses a venal and servile humor throughout the frame of society; that it
stifles the manlier virtues: nor shall I be at the pains to demonstrate that
this kind of traffic only creates an unproductive activity, which agitates the
country without adding to its resources: all these things are obvious. But I
would observe, that a government which encourages this tendency risks its own
tranquillity, and places its very existence in great jeopardy. I am aware that
at a time like our own, when the love and respect which formerly clung to
authority are seen gradually to decline, it may appear necessary to those in
power to lay a closer hold on every man by his own interest, and it may seem
convenient to use his own passions to keep him in order and in silence; but this
cannot be so long, and what may appear to be a source of strength for a certain
time will assuredly become in the end a great cause of embarrassment and
weakness.
Amongst democratic nations, as well as elsewhere, the number of official
appointments has in the end some limits; but amongst those nations, the number
of aspirants is unlimited; it perpetually increases, with a gradual and
irresistible rise in proportion as social conditions become more equal, and is
only checked by the limits of the population. Thus, when public employments
afford the only outlet for ambition, the government necessarily meets with a
permanent opposition at last; for it is tasked to satisfy with limited means
unlimited desires. It is very certain that of all people in the world the most
difficult to restrain and to manage are a people of solicitants. Whatever
endeavors are made by rulers, such a people can never be contented; and it is
always to be apprehended that they will ultimately overturn the constitution of
the country, and change the aspect of the State, for the sole purpose of making
a clearance of places. The sovereigns of the present age, who strive to fix upon
themselves alone all those novel desires which are aroused by equality, and to
satisfy them, will repent in the end, if I am not mistaken, that they ever
embarked in this policy: they will one day discover that they have hazarded
their own power, by making it so necessary; and that the more safe and honest
course would have been to teach their subjects the art of providing for
themselves. *a
a
[ As a matter of fact, more recent experience has shown that place-hunting is
quite as intense in the United States as in any country in Europe. It is
regarded by the Americans themselves as one of the great evils of their social
condition, and it powerfully affects their political institutions. But the
American who seeks a place seeks not so much a means of subsistence as the
distinction which office and public employment confer. In the absence of any
true aristocracy, the public service creates a spurious one, which is as much an
object of ambition as the distinctions of rank in aristocratic
countries.—Translator's Note.]
Chapter XXI: Why Great Revolutions Will Become More Rare
A people which has existed for centuries under a system of castes and classes
can only arrive at a democratic state of society by passing through a long
series of more or less critical transformations, accomplished by violent
efforts, and after numerous vicissitudes; in the course of which, property,
opinions, and power are rapidly transferred from one hand to another. Even after
this great revolution is consummated, the revolutionary habits engendered by it
may long be traced, and it will be followed by deep commotion. As all this takes
place at the very time at which social conditions are becoming more equal, it is
inferred that some concealed relation and secret tie exist between the principle
of equality itself and revolution, insomuch that the one cannot exist without
giving rise to the other.
On this point reasoning may seem to lead to the same result as experience.
Amongst a people whose ranks are nearly equal, no ostensible bond connects men
together, or keeps them settled in their station. None of them have either a
permanent right or power to command—none are forced by their condition to obey;
but every man, finding himself possessed of some education and some resources,
may choose his won path and proceed apart from all his fellow-men. The same
causes which make the members of the community independent of each other,
continually impel them to new and restless desires, and constantly spur them
onwards. It therefore seems natural that, in a democratic community, men,
things, and opinions should be forever changing their form and place, and that
democratic ages should be times of rapid and incessant transformation.
But is this really the case? does the equality of social conditions habitually
and permanently lead men to revolution? does that state of society contain some
perturbing principle which prevents the community from ever subsiding into calm,
and disposes the citizens to alter incessantly their laws, their principles, and
their manners? I do not believe it; and as the subject is important, I beg for
the reader's close attention. Almost all the revolutions which have changed the
aspect of nations have been made to consolidate or to destroy social inequality.
Remove the secondary causes which have produced the great convulsions of the
world, and you will almost always find the principle of inequality at the
bottom. Either the poor have attempted to plunder the rich, or the rich to
enslave the poor. If then a state of society can ever be founded in which every
man shall have something to keep, and little to take from others, much will have
been done for the peace of the world. I am aware that amongst a great democratic
people there will always be some members of the community in great poverty, and
others in great opulence; but the poor, instead of forming the immense majority
of the nation, as is always the case in aristocratic communities, are
comparatively few in number, and the laws do not bind them together by the ties
of irremediable and hereditary penury. The wealthy, on their side, are scarce
and powerless; they have no privileges which attract public observation; even
their wealth, as it is no longer incorporated and bound up with the soil, is
impalpable, and as it were invisible. As there is no longer a race of poor men,
so there is no longer a race of rich men; the latter spring up daily from the
multitude, and relapse into it again. Hence they do not form a distinct class,
which may be easily marked out and plundered; and, moreover, as they are
connected with the mass of their fellow-citizens by a thousand secret ties, the
people cannot assail them without inflicting an injury upon itself. Between
these two extremes of democratic communities stand an innumerable multitude of
men almost alike, who, without being exactly either rich or poor, are possessed
of sufficient property to desire the maintenance of order, yet not enough to
excite envy. Such men are the natural enemies of violent commotions: their
stillness keeps all beneath them and above them still, and secures the balance
of the fabric of society. Not indeed that even these men are contented with what
they have gotten, or that they feel a natural abhorrence for a revolution in
which they might share the spoil without sharing the calamity; on the contrary,
they desire, with unexampled ardor, to get rich, but the difficulty is to know
from whom riches can be taken. The same state of society which constantly
prompts desires, restrains these desires within necessary limits: it gives men
more liberty of changing and less interest in change.
Not only are the men of democracies not naturally desirous of revolutions, but
they are afraid of them. All revolutions more or less threaten the tenure of
property: but most of those who live in democratic countries are possessed of
property—not only are they possessed of property, but they live in the condition
of men who set the greatest store upon their property. If we attentively
consider each of the classes of which society is composed, it is easy to see
that the passions engendered by property are keenest and most tenacious amongst
the middle classes. The poor often care but little for what they possess,
because they suffer much more from the want of what they have not, than they
enjoy the little they have. The rich have many other passions besides that of
riches to satisfy; and, besides, the long and arduous enjoyment of a great
fortune sometimes makes them in the end insensible to its charms. But the men
who have a competency, alike removed from opulence and from penury, attach an
enormous value to their possessions. As they are still almost within the reach
of poverty, they see its privations near at hand, and dread them; between
poverty and themselves there is nothing but a scanty fortune, upon which they
immediately fix their apprehensions and their hopes. Every day increases the
interest they take in it, by the constant cares which it occasions; and they are
the more attached to it by their continual exertions to increase the amount. The
notion of surrendering the smallest part of it is insupportable to them, and
they consider its total loss as the worst of misfortunes. Now these eager and
apprehensive men of small property constitute the class which is constantly
increased by the equality of conditions. Hence, in democratic communities, the
majority of the people do not clearly see what they have to gain by a
revolution, but they continually and in a thousand ways feel that they might
lose by one.
I have shown in another part of this work that the equality of conditions
naturally urges men to embark in commercial and industrial pursuits, and that it
tends to increase and to distribute real property: I have also pointed out the
means by which it inspires every man with an eager and constant desire to
increase his welfare. Nothing is more opposed to revolutionary passions than
these things. It may happen that the final result of a revolution is favorable
to commerce and manufactures; but its first consequence will almost always be
the ruin of manufactures and mercantile men, because it must always change at
once the general principles of consumption, and temporarily upset the existing
proportion between supply and demand. I know of nothing more opposite to
revolutionary manners than commercial manners. Commerce is naturally adverse to
all the violent passions; it loves to temporize, takes delight in compromise,
and studiously avoids irritation. It is patient, insinuating, flexible, and
never has recourse to extreme measures until obliged by the most absolute
necessity. Commerce renders men independent of each other, gives them a lofty
notion of their personal importance, leads them to seek to conduct their own
affairs, and teaches how to conduct them well; it therefore prepares men for
freedom, but preserves them from revolutions. In a revolution the owners of
personal property have more to fear than all others; for on the one hand their
property is often easy to seize, and on the other it may totally disappear at
any moment—a subject of alarm to which the owners of real property are less
exposed, since, although they may lose the income of their estates, they may
hope to preserve the land itself through the greatest vicissitudes. Hence the
former are much more alarmed at the symptoms of revolutionary commotion than the
latter. Thus nations are less disposed to make revolutions in proportion as
personal property is augmented and distributed amongst them, and as the number
of those possessing it increases. Moreover, whatever profession men may embrace,
and whatever species of property they may possess, one characteristic is common
to them all. No one is fully contented with his present fortune—all are
perpetually striving in a thousand ways to improve it. Consider any one of them
at any period of his life, and he will be found engaged with some new project
for the purpose of increasing what he has; talk not to him of the interests and
the rights of mankind: this small domestic concern absorbs for the time all his
thoughts, and inclines him to defer political excitement to some other season.
This not only prevents men from making revolutions, but deters men from desiring
them. Violent political passions have but little hold on those who have devoted
all their faculties to the pursuit of their well-being. The ardor which they
display in small matters calms their zeal for momentous undertakings.
From time to time indeed, enterprising and ambitious men will arise in
democratic communities, whose unbounded aspirations cannot be contented by
following the beaten track. Such men like revolutions and hail their approach;
but they have great difficulty in bringing them about, unless unwonted events
come to their assistance. No man can struggle with advantage against the spirit
of his age and country; and, however powerful he may be supposed to be, he will
find it difficult to make his contemporaries share in feelings and opinions
which are repugnant to t all their feelings and desires.
It is a mistake to believe that, when once the equality of conditions has become
the old and uncontested state of society, and has imparted its characteristics
to the manners of a nation, men will easily allow themselves to be thrust into
perilous risks by an imprudent leader or a bold innovator. Not indeed that they
will resist him openly, by well-contrived schemes, or even by a premeditated
plan of resistance. They will not struggle energetically against him, sometimes
they will even applaud him—but they do not follow him. To his vehemence they
secretly oppose their inertia; to his revolutionary tendencies their
conservative interests; their homely tastes to his adventurous passions; their
good sense to the flights of his genius; to his poetry their prose. With immense
exertion he raises them for an instant, but they speedily escape from him, and
fall back, as it were, by their own weight. He strains himself to rouse the
indifferent and distracted multitude, and finds at last that he is reduced to
impotence, not because he is conquered, but because he is alone.
I do not assert that men living in democratic communities are naturally
stationary; I think, on the contrary, that a perpetual stir prevails in the
bosom of those societies, and that rest is unknown there; but I think that men
bestir themselves within certain limits beyond which they hardly ever go. They
are forever varying, altering, and restoring secondary matters; but they
carefully abstain from touching what is fundamental. They love change, but they
dread revolutions. Although the Americans are constantly modifying or abrogating
some of their laws, they by no means display revolutionary passions. It may be
easily seen, from the promptitude with which they check and calm themselves when
public excitement begins to grow alarming, and at the very moment when passions
seem most roused, that they dread a revolution as the worst of misfortunes, and
that every one of them is inwardly resolved to make great sacrifices to avoid
such a catastrophe. In no country in the world is the love of property more
active and more anxious than in the United States; nowhere does the majority
display less inclination for those principles which threaten to alter, in
whatever manner, the laws of property. I have often remarked that theories which
are of a revolutionary nature, since they cannot be put in practice without a
complete and sometimes a sudden change in the state of property and persons, are
much less favorably viewed in the United States than in the great monarchical
countries of Europe: if some men profess them, the bulk of the people reject
them with instinctive abhorrence. I do not hesitate to say that most of the
maxims commonly called democratic in France would be proscribed by the democracy
of the United States. This may easily be understood: in America men have the
opinions and passions of democracy, in Europe we have still the passions and
opinions of revolution. If ever America undergoes great revolutions, they will
be brought about by the presence of the black race on the soil of the United
States—that is to say, they will owe their origin, not to the equality, but to
the inequality, of conditions.
When social conditions are equal, every man is apt to live apart, centred in
himself and forgetful of the public. If the rulers of democratic nations were
either to neglect to correct this fatal tendency, or to encourage it from a
notion that it weans men from political passions and thus wards off revolutions,
they might eventually produce the evil they seek to avoid, and a time might come
when the inordinate passions of a few men, aided by the unintelligent
selfishness or the pusillanimity of the greater number, would ultimately compel
society to pass through strange vicissitudes. In democratic communities
revolutions are seldom desired except by a minority; but a minority may
sometimes effect them. I do not assert that democratic nations are secure from
revolutions; I merely say that the state of society in those nations does not
lead to revolutions, but rather wards them off. A democratic people left to
itself will not easily embark in great hazards; it is only led to revolutions
unawares; it may sometimes undergo them, but it does not make them; and I will
add that, when such a people has been allowed to acquire sufficient knowledge
and experience, it will not suffer them to be made. I am well aware that it this
respect public institutions may themselves do much; they may encourage or
repress the tendencies which originate in the state of society. I therefore do
not maintain, I repeat, that a people is secure from revolutions simply because
conditions are equal in the community; but I think that, whatever the
institutions of such a people may be, great revolutions will always be far less
violent and less frequent than is supposed; and I can easily discern a state of
polity, which, when combined with the principle of equality, would render
society more stationary than it has ever been in our western apart of the world.
The observations I have here made on events may also be applied in part to
opinions. Two things are surprising in the United States—the mutability of the
greater part of human actions, and the singular stability of certain principles.
Men are in constant motion; the mind of man appears almost unmoved. When once an
opinion has spread over the country and struck root there, it would seem that no
power on earth is strong enough to eradicate it. In the United States, general
principles in religion, philosophy, morality, and even politics, do not vary, or
at least are only modified by a hidden and often an imperceptible process: even
the grossest prejudices are obliterated with incredible slowness, amidst the
continual friction of men and things. I hear it said that it is in the nature
and the habits of democracies to be constantly changing their opinions and
feelings. This may be true of small democratic nations, like those of the
ancient world, in which the whole community could be assembled in a public place
and then excited at will by an orator. But I saw nothing of the kind amongst the
great democratic people which dwells upon the opposite shores of the Atlantic
Ocean. What struck me in the United States was the difficulty in shaking the
majority in an opinion once conceived, or of drawing it off from a leader once
adopted. Neither speaking nor writing can accomplish it; nothing but experience
will avail, and even experience must be repeated. This is surprising at first
sight, but a more attentive investigation explains the fact. I do not think that
it is as easy as is supposed to uproot the prejudices of a democratic people—to
change its belief—to supersede principles once established, by new principles in
religion, politics, and morals—in a word, to make great and frequent changes in
men's minds. Not that the human mind is there at rest—it is in constant
agitation; but it is engaged in infinitely varying the consequences of known
principles, and in seeking for new consequences, rather than in seeking for new
principles. Its motion is one of rapid circumvolution, rather than of
straightforward impulse by rapid and direct effort; it extends its orbit by
small continual and hasty movements, but it does not suddenly alter its
position.
Men who are equal in rights, in education, in fortune, or, to comprise all in
one word, in their social condition, have necessarily wants, habits, and tastes
which are hardly dissimilar. As they look at objects under the same aspect,
their minds naturally tend to analogous conclusions; and, though each of them
may deviate from his contemporaries and from opinions of his own, they will
involuntarily and unconsciously concur in a certain number of received opinions.
The more attentively I consider the effects of equality upon the mind, the more
am I persuaded that the intellectual anarchy which we witness about us is not,
as many men suppose, the natural state of democratic nations. I think it is
rather to be regarded as an accident peculiar to their youth, and that it only
breaks out at that period of transition when men have already snapped the former
ties which bound them together, but are still amazingly different in origin,
education, and manners; so that, having retained opinions, propensities and
tastes of great diversity, nothing any longer prevents men from avowing them
openly. The leading opinions of men become similar in proportion as their
conditions assimilate; such appears to me to be the general and permanent
law—the rest is casual and transient.
I believe that it will rarely happen to any man amongst a democratic community,
suddenly to frame a system of notions very remote from that which his
contemporaries have adopted; and if some such innovator appeared, I apprehend
that he would have great difficulty in finding listeners, still more in finding
believers. When the conditions of men are almost equal, they do not easily allow
themselves to be persuaded by each other. As they all live in close intercourse,
as they have learned the same things together, and as they lead the same life,
they are not naturally disposed to take one of themselves for a guide, and to
follow him implicitly. Men seldom take the opinion of their equal, or of a man
like themselves, upon trust. Not only is confidence in the superior attainments
of certain individuals weakened amongst democratic nations, as I have elsewhere
remarked, but the general notion of the intellectual superiority which any man
whatsoever may acquire in relation to the rest of the community is soon
overshadowed. As men grow more like each other, the doctrine of the equality of
the intellect gradually infuses itself into their opinions; and it becomes more
difficult for any innovator to acquire or to exert much influence over the minds
of a people. In such communities sudden intellectual revolutions will therefore
be rare; for, if we read aright the history of the world, we shall find that
great and rapid changes in human opinions have been produced far less by the
force of reasoning than by the authority of a name. Observe, too, that as the
men who live in democratic societies are not connected with each other by any
tie, each of them must be convinced individually; whilst in aristocratic society
it is enough to convince a few—the rest follow. If Luther had lived in an age of
equality, and had not had princes and potentates for his audience, he would
perhaps have found it more difficult to change the aspect of Europe. Not indeed
that the men of democracies are naturally strongly persuaded of the certainty of
their opinions, or are unwavering in belief; they frequently entertain doubts
which no one, in their eyes, can remove. It sometimes happens at such times that
the human mind would willingly change its position; but as nothing urges or
guides it forwards, it oscillates to and fro without progressive motion. *a
a
[ If I inquire what state of society is most favorable to the great revolutions
of the mind, I find that it occurs somewhere between the complete equality of
the whole community and the absolute separation of ranks. Under a system of
castes generations succeed each other without altering men's positions; some
have nothing more, others nothing better, to hope for. The imagination slumbers
amidst this universal silence and stillness, and the very idea of change fades
from the human mind. When ranks have been abolished and social conditions are
almost equalized, all men are in ceaseless excitement, but each of them stands
alone, independent and weak. This latter state of things is excessively
different from the former one; yet it has one point of analogy—great revolutions
of the human mind seldom occur in it. But between these two extremes of the
history of nations is an intermediate period—a period as glorious as it is
agitated—when the conditions of men are not sufficiently settled for the mind to
be lulled in torpor, when they are sufficiently unequal for men to exercise a
vast power on the minds of one another, and when some few may modify the
convictions of all. It is at such times that great reformers start up, and new
opinions suddenly change the face of the world.]
Even when the reliance of a democratic people has been won, it is still no easy
matter to gain their attention. It is extremely difficult to obtain a hearing
from men living in democracies, unless it be to speak to them of themselves.
They do not attend to the things said to them, because they are always fully
engrossed with the things they are doing. For indeed few men are idle in
democratic nations; life is passed in the midst of noise and excitement, and men
are so engaged in acting that little remains to them for thinking. I would
especially remark that they are not only employed, but that they are
passionately devoted to their employments. They are always in action, and each
of their actions absorbs their faculties: the zeal which they display in
business puts out the enthusiasm they might otherwise entertain for idea. I
think that it is extremely difficult to excite the enthusiasm of a democratic
people for any theory which has not a palpable, direct, and immediate connection
with the daily occupations of life: therefore they will not easily forsake their
old opinions; for it is enthusiasm which flings the minds of men out of the
beaten track, and effects the great revolutions of the intellect as well as the
great revolutions of the political world. Thus democratic nations have neither
time nor taste to go in search of novel opinions. Even when those they possess
become doubtful, they still retain them, because it would take too much time and
inquiry to change them—they retain them, not as certain, but as established.
There are yet other and more cogent reasons which prevent any great change from
being easily effected in the principles of a democratic people. I have already
adverted to them at the commencement of this part of my work. If the influence
of individuals is weak and hardly perceptible amongst such a people, the power
exercised by the mass upon the mind of each individual is extremely great—I have
already shown for what reasons. I would now observe that it is wrong to suppose
that this depends solely upon the form of government, and that the majority
would lose its intellectual supremacy if it were to lose its political power. In
aristocracies men have often much greatness and strength of their own: when they
find themselves at variance with the greater number of their fellow-countrymen,
they withdraw to their own circle, where they support and console themselves.
Such is not the case in a democratic country; there public favor seems as
necessary as the air we breathe, and to live at variance with the multitude is,
as it were, not to live. The multitude requires no laws to coerce those who
think not like itself: public disapprobation is enough; a sense of their
loneliness and impotence overtakes them and drives them to despair.
Whenever social conditions are equal, public opinion presses with enormous
weight upon the mind of each individual; it surrounds, directs, and oppresses
him; and this arises from the very constitution of society, much more than from
its political laws. As men grow more alike, each man feels himself weaker in
regard to all the rest; as he discerns nothing by which he is considerably
raised above them, or distinguished from them, he mistrusts himself as soon as
they assail him. Not only does he mistrust his strength, but he even doubts of
his right; and he is very near acknowledging that he is in the wrong, when the
greater number of his countrymen assert that he is so. The majority do not need
to constrain him—they convince him. In whatever way then the powers of a
democratic community may be organized and balanced, it will always be extremely
difficult to believe what the bulk of the people reject, or to profess what they
condemn.
This circumstance is extraordinarily favorable to the stability of opinions.
When an opinion has taken root amongst a democratic people, and established
itself in the minds of the bulk of the community, it afterwards subsists by
itself and is maintained without effort, because no one attacks it. Those who at
first rejected it as false, ultimately receive it as the general impression; and
those who still dispute it in their hearts, conceal their dissent; they are
careful not to engage in a dangerous and useless conflict. It is true, that when
the majority of a democratic people change their opinions, they may suddenly and
arbitrarily effect strange revolutions in men's minds; but their opinions do not
change without much difficulty, and it is almost as difficult to show that they
are changed.
Time, events, or the unaided individual action of the mind, will sometimes
undermine or destroy an opinion, without any outward sign of the change. It has
not been openly assailed, no conspiracy has been formed to make war on it, but
its followers one by one noiselessly secede—day by day a few of them abandon it,
until last it is only professed by a minority. In this state it will still
continue to prevail. As its enemies remain mute, or only interchange their
thoughts by stealth, they are themselves unaware for a long period that a great
revolution has actually been effected; and in this state of uncertainly they
take no steps—they observe each other and are silent. The majority have ceased
to believe what they believed before; but they still affect to believe, and this
empty phantom of public opinion in strong enough to chill innovators, and to
keep them silent and at respectful distance. We live at a time which has
witnessed the most rapid changes of opinion in the minds of men; nevertheless it
may be that the leading opinions of society will ere long be more settled than
they have been for several centuries in our history: that time is not yet come,
but it may perhaps be approaching. As I examine more closely the natural wants
and tendencies of democratic nations, I grow persuaded that if ever social
equality is generally and permanently established in the world, great
intellectual and political revolutions will become more difficult and less
frequent than is supposed. Because the men of democracies appear always excited,
uncertain, eager, changeable in their wills and in their positions, it is
imagined that they are suddenly to abrogate their laws, to adopt new opinions,
and to assume new manners. But if the principle of equality predisposes men to
change, it also suggests to them certain interests and tastes which cannot be
satisfied without a settled order of things; equality urges them on, but at the
same time it holds them back; it spurs them, but fastens them to earth;—it
kindles their desires, but limits their powers. This, however, is not perceived
at first; the passions which tend to sever the citizens of a democracy are
obvious enough; but the hidden force which restrains and unites them is not
discernible at a glance.
Amidst the ruins which surround me, shall I dare to say that revolutions are not
what I most fear coming generations? If men continue to shut themselves more
closely within the narrow circle of domestic interests and to live upon that
kind of excitement, it is to be apprehended that they may ultimately become
inaccessible to those great and powerful public emotions which perturb
nations—but which enlarge them and recruit them. When property becomes so
fluctuating, and the love of property so restless and so ardent, I cannot but
fear that men may arrive at such a state as to regard every new theory as a
peril, every innovation as an irksome toil, every social improvement as a
stepping-stone to revolution, and so refuse to move altogether for fear of being
moved too far. I dread, and I confess it, lest they should at last so entirely
give way to a cowardly love of present enjoyment, as to lose sight of the
interests of their future selves and of those of their descendants; and to
prefer to glide along the easy current of life, rather than to make, when it is
necessary, a strong and sudden effort to a higher purpose. It is believed by
some that modern society will be ever changing its aspect; for myself, I fear
that it will ultimately be too invariably fixed in the same institutions, the
same prejudices, the same manners, so that mankind will be stopped and
circumscribed; that the mind will swing backwards and forwards forever, without
begetting fresh ideas; that man will waste his strength in bootless and solitary
trifling; and, though in continual motion, that humanity will cease to advance.
Chapter XXII: Why Democratic Nations Are Naturally Desirous Of Peace, And
Democratic Armies Of War
The same interests, the same fears, the same passions which deter democratic
nations from revolutions, deter them also from war; the spirit of military glory
and the spirit of revolution are weakened at the same time and by the same
causes. The ever-increasing numbers of men of property—lovers of peace, the
growth of personal wealth which war so rapidly consumes, the mildness of
manners, the gentleness of heart, those tendencies to pity which are engendered
by the equality of conditions, that coolness of understanding which renders men
comparatively insensible to the violent and poetical excitement of arms—all
these causes concur to quench the military spirit. I think it may be admitted as
a general and constant rule, that, amongst civilized nations, the warlike
passions will become more rare and less intense in proportion as social
conditions shall be more equal. War is nevertheless an occurrence to which all
nations are subject, democratic nations as well as others. Whatever taste they
may have for peace, they must hold themselves in readiness to repel aggression,
or in other words they must have an army.
Fortune, which has conferred so many peculiar benefits upon the inhabitants of
the United States, has placed them in the midst of a wilderness, where they
have, so to speak, no neighbors: a few thousand soldiers are sufficient for
their wants; but this is peculiar to America, not to democracy. The equality of
conditions, and the manners as well as the institutions resulting from it, do
not exempt a democratic people from the necessity of standing armies, and their
armies always exercise a powerful influence over their fate. It is therefore of
singular importance to inquire what are the natural propensities of the men of
whom these armies are composed.
Amongst aristocratic nations, especially amongst those in which birth is the
only source of rank, the same inequality exists in the army as in the nation;
the officer is noble, the soldier is a serf; the one is naturally called upon to
command, the other to obey. In aristocratic armies, the private soldier's
ambition is therefore circumscribed within very narrow limits. Nor has the
ambition of the officer an unlimited range. An aristocratic body not only forms
a part of the scale of ranks in the nation, but it contains a scale of ranks
within itself: the members of whom it is composed are placed one above another,
in a particular and unvarying manner. Thus one man is born to the command of a
regiment, another to that of a company; when once they have reached the utmost
object of their hopes, they stop of their own accord, and remain contented with
their lot. There is, besides, a strong cause, which, in aristocracies, weakens
the officer's desire of promotion. Amongst aristocratic nations, an officer,
independently of his rank in the army, also occupies an elevated rank in
society; the former is almost always in his eyes only an appendage to the
latter. A nobleman who embraces the profession of arms follows it less from
motives of ambition than from a sense of the duties imposed on him by his birth.
He enters the army in order to find an honorable employment for the idle years
of his youth, and to be able to bring back to his home and his peers some
honorable recollections of military life; but his principal object is not to
obtain by that profession either property, distinction, or power, for he
possesses these advantages in his own right, and enjoys them without leaving his
home.
In democratic armies all the soldiers may become officers, which makes the
desire of promotion general, and immeasurably extends the bounds of military
ambition. The officer, on his part, sees nothing which naturally and necessarily
stops him at one grade more than at another; and each grade has immense
importance in his eyes, because his rank in society almost always depends on his
rank in the army. Amongst democratic nations it often happens that an officer
has no property but his pay, and no distinction but that of military honors:
consequently as often as his duties change, his fortune changes, and he becomes,
as it were, a new man. What was only an appendage to his position in
aristocratic armies, has thus become the main point, the basis of his whole
condition. Under the old French monarchy officers were always called by their
titles of nobility; they are now always called by the title of their military
rank. This little change in the forms of language suffices to show that a great
revolution has taken place in the constitution of society and in that of the
army. In democratic armies the desire of advancement is almost universal: it is
ardent, tenacious, perpetual; it is strengthened by all other desires, and only
extinguished with life itself. But it is easy to see, that of all armies in the
world, those in which advancement must be slowest in time of peace are the
armies of democratic countries. As the number of commissions is naturally
limited, whilst the number of competitors is almost unlimited, and as the strict
law of equality is over all alike, none can make rapid progress—many can make no
progress at all. Thus the desire of advancement is greater, and the
opportunities of advancement fewer, there than elsewhere. All the ambitious
spirits of a democratic army are consequently ardently desirous of war, because
war makes vacancies, and warrants the violation of that law of seniority which
is the sole privilege natural to democracy.
We thus arrive at this singular consequence, that of all armies those most
ardently desirous of war are democratic armies, and of all nations those most
fond of peace are democratic nations: and, what makes these facts still more
extraordinary, is that these contrary effects are produced at the same time by
the principle of equality.
All the members of the community, being alike, constantly harbor the wish, and
discover the possibility, of changing their condition and improving their
welfare: this makes them fond of peace, which is favorable to industry, and
allows every man to pursue his own little undertakings to their completion. On
the other hand, this same equality makes soldiers dream of fields of battle, by
increasing the value of military honors in the eyes of those who follow the
profession of arms, and by rendering those honors accessible to all. In either
case the inquietude of the heart is the same, the taste for enjoyment as
insatiable, the ambition of success as great—the means of gratifying it are
alone different.
These opposite tendencies of the nation and the army expose democratic
communities to great dangers. When a military spirit forsakes a people, the
profession of arms immediately ceases to be held in honor, and military men fall
to the lowest rank of the public servants: they are little esteemed, and no
longer understood. The reverse of what takes place in aristocratic ages then
occurs; the men who enter the army are no longer those of the highest, but of
the lowest rank. Military ambition is only indulged in when no other is
possible. Hence arises a circle of cause and consequence from which it is
difficult to escape: the best part of the nation shuns the military profession
because that profession is not honored, and the profession is not honored
because the best part of the nation has ceased to follow it. It is then no
matter of surprise that democratic armies are often restless, ill-tempered, and
dissatisfied with their lot, although their physical condition is commonly far
better, and their discipline less strict than in other countries. The soldier
feels that he occupies an inferior position, and his wounded pride either
stimulates his taste for hostilities which would render his services necessary,
or gives him a turn for revolutions, during which he may hope to win by force of
arms the political influence and personal importance now denied him. The
composition of democratic armies makes this last-mentioned danger much to be
feared. In democratic communities almost every man has some property to
preserve; but democratic armies are generally led by men without property, most
of whom have little to lose in civil broils. The bulk of the nation is naturally
much more afraid of revolutions than in the ages of aristocracy, but the leaders
of the army much less so.
Moreover, as amongst democratic nations (to repeat what I have just remarked)
the wealthiest, the best educated, and the most able men seldom adopt the
military profession, the army, taken collectively, eventually forms a small
nation by itself, where the mind is less enlarged, and habits are more rude than
in the nation at large. Now, this small uncivilized nation has arms in its
possession, and alone knows how to use them: for, indeed, the pacific temper of
the community increases the danger to which a democratic people is exposed from
the military and turbulent spirit of the army. Nothing is so dangerous as an
army amidst an unwarlike nation; the excessive love of the whole community for
quiet continually puts its constitution at the mercy of the soldiery. It may
therefore be asserted, generally speaking, that if democratic nations are
naturally prone to peace from their interests and their propensities, they are
constantly drawn to war and revolutions by their armies. Military revolutions,
which are scarcely ever to be apprehended in aristocracies, are always to be
dreaded amongst democratic nations. These perils must be reckoned amongst the
most formidable which beset their future fate, and the attention of statesmen
should be sedulously applied to find a remedy for the evil.
When a nation perceives that it is inwardly affected by the restless ambition of
its army, the first thought which occurs is to give this inconvenient ambition
an object by going to war. I speak no ill of war: war almost always enlarges the
mind of a people, and raises their character. In some cases it is the only check
to the excessive growth of certain propensities which naturally spring out of
the equality of conditions, and it must be considered as a necessary corrective
to certain inveterate diseases to which democratic communities are liable. War
has great advantages, but we must not flatter ourselves that it can diminish the
danger I have just pointed out. That peril is only suspended by it, to return
more fiercely when the war is over; for armies are much more impatient of peace
after having tasted military exploits. War could only be a remedy for a people
which should always be athirst for military glory. I foresee that all the
military rulers who may rise up in great democratic nations, will find it easier
to conquer with their armies, than to make their armies live at peace after
conquest. There are two things which a democratic people will always find very
difficult—to begin a war, and to end it.
Again, if war has some peculiar advantages for democratic nations, on the other
hand it exposes them to certain dangers which aristocracies have no cause to
dread to an equal extent. I shall only point out two of these. Although war
gratifies the army, it embarrasses and often exasperates that countless
multitude of men whose minor passions every day require peace in order to be
satisfied. Thus there is some risk of its causing, under another form, the
disturbance it is intended to prevent. No protracted war can fail to endanger
the freedom of a democratic country. Not indeed that after every victory it is
to be apprehended that the victorious generals will possess themselves by force
of the supreme power, after the manner of Sylla and Caesar: the danger is of
another kind. War does not always give over democratic communities to military
government, but it must invariably and immeasurably increase the powers of civil
government; it must almost compulsorily concentrate the direction of all men and
the management of all things in the hands of the administration. If it lead not
to despotism by sudden violence, it prepares men for it more gently by their
habits. All those who seek to destroy the liberties of a democratic nation ought
to know that war is the surest and the shortest means to accomplish it. This is
the first axiom of the science.
One remedy, which appears to be obvious when the ambition of soldiers and
officers becomes the subject of alarm, is to augment the number of commissions
to be distributed by increasing the army. This affords temporary relief, but it
plunges the country into deeper difficulties at some future period. To increase
the army may produce a lasting effect in an aristocratic community, because
military ambition is there confined to one class of men, and the ambition of
each individual stops, as it were, at a certain limit; so that it may be
possible to satisfy all who feel its influence. But nothing is gained by
increasing the army amongst a democratic people, because the number of aspirants
always rises in exactly the same ratio as the army itself. Those whose claims
have been satisfied by the creation of new commissions are instantly succeeded
by a fresh multitude beyond all power of satisfaction; and even those who were
but now satisfied soon begin to crave more advancement; for the same excitement
prevails in the ranks of the army as in the civil classes of democratic society,
and what men want is not to reach a certain grade, but to have constant
promotion. Though these wants may not be very vast, they are perpetually
recurring. Thus a democratic nation, by augmenting its army, only allays for a
time the ambition of the military profession, which soon becomes even more
formidable, because the number of those who feel it is increased. I am of
opinion that a restless and turbulent spirit is an evil inherent in the very
constitution of democratic armies, and beyond hope of cure. The legislators of
democracies must not expect to devise any military organization capable by its
influence of calming and restraining the military profession: their efforts
would exhaust their powers, before the object is attained.
The remedy for the vices of the army is not to be found in the army itself, but
in the country. Democratic nations are naturally afraid of disturbance and of
despotism; the object is to turn these natural instincts into well-digested,
deliberate, and lasting tastes. When men have at last learned to make a peaceful
and profitable use of freedom, and have felt its blessings—when they have
conceived a manly love of order, and have freely submitted themselves to
discipline—these same men, if they follow the profession of arms, bring into it,
unconsciously and almost against their will, these same habits and manners. The
general spirit of the nation being infused into the spirit peculiar to the army,
tempers the opinions and desires engendered by military life, or represses them
by the mighty force of public opinion. Teach but the citizens to be educated,
orderly, firm, and free, the soldiers will be disciplined and obedient. Any law
which, in repressing the turbulent spirit of the army, should tend to diminish
the spirit of freedom in the nation, and to overshadow the notion of law and
right, would defeat its object: it would do much more to favor, than to defeat,
the establishment of military tyranny.
After all, and in spite of all precautions, a large army amidst a democratic
people will always be a source of great danger; the most effectual means of
diminishing that danger would be to reduce the army, but this is a remedy which
all nations have it not in their power to use.
Chapter XXIII: Which Is The Most Warlike And Most Revolutionary Class In
Democratic Armies?
It is a part of the essence of a democratic army to be very numerous in
proportion to the people to which it belongs, as I shall hereafter show. On the
other hand, men living in democratic times seldom choose a military life.
Democratic nations are therefore soon led to give up the system of voluntary
recruiting for that of compulsory enlistment. The necessity of their social
condition compels them to resort to the latter means, and it may easily be
foreseen that they will all eventually adopt it. When military service is
compulsory, the burden is indiscriminately and equally borne by the whole
community. This is another necessary consequence of the social condition of
these nations, and of their notions. The government may do almost whatever it
pleases, provided it appeals to the whole community at once: it is the unequal
distribution of the weight, not the weight itself, which commonly occasions
resistance. But as military service is common to all the citizens, the evident
consequence is that each of them remains but for a few years on active duty.
Thus it is in the nature of things that the soldier in democracies only passes
through the army, whilst among most aristocratic nations the military profession
is one which the soldier adopts, or which is imposed upon him, for life.
This has important consequences. Amongst the soldiers of a democratic army, some
acquire a taste for military life, but the majority, being enlisted against
their will, and ever ready to go back to their homes, do not consider themselves
as seriously engaged in the military profession, and are always thinking of
quitting it. Such men do not contract the wants, and only half partake in the
passions, which that mode of life engenders. They adapt themselves to their
military duties, but their minds are still attached to the interests and the
duties which engaged them in civil life. They do not therefore imbibe the spirit
of the army—or rather, they infuse the spirit of the community at large into the
army, and retain it there. Amongst democratic nations the private soldiers
remain most like civilians: upon them the habits of the nation have the firmest
hold, and public opinion most influence. It is by the instrumentality of the
private soldiers especially that it may be possible to infuse into a democratic
army the love of freedom and the respect of rights, if these principles have
once been successfully inculcated on the people at large. The reverse happens
amongst aristocratic nations, where the soldiery have eventually nothing in
common with their fellow-citizens, and where they live amongst them as
strangers, and often as enemies. In aristocratic armies the officers are the
conservative element, because the officers alone have retained a strict
connection with civil society, and never forego their purpose of resuming their
place in it sooner or later: in democratic armies the private soldiers stand in
this position, and from the same cause.
It often happens, on the contrary, that in these same democratic armies the
officers contract tastes and wants wholly distinct from those of the nation—a
fact which may be thus accounted for. Amongst democratic nations, the man who
becomes an officer severs all the ties which bound him to civil life; he leaves
it forever; he has no interest to resume it. His true country is the army, since
he owes all he has to the rank he has attained in it; he therefore follows the
fortunes of the army, rises or sinks with it, and henceforward directs all his
hopes to that quarter only. As the wants of an officer are distinct from those
of the country, he may perhaps ardently desire war, or labor to bring about a
revolution at the very moment when the nation is most desirous of stability and
peace. There are, nevertheless, some causes which allay this restless and
warlike spirit. Though ambition is universal and continual amongst democratic
nations, we have seen that it is seldom great. A man who, being born in the
lower classes of the community, has risen from the ranks to be an officer, has
already taken a prodigious step. He has gained a footing in a sphere above that
which he filled in civil life, and he has acquired rights which most democratic
nations will ever consider as inalienable. *a He is willing to pause after so
great an effort, and to enjoy what he has won. The fear of risking what he has
already obtained damps the desire of acquiring what he has not got. Having
conquered the first and greatest impediment which opposed his advancement, he
resigns himself with less impatience to the slowness of his progress. His
ambition will be more and more cooled in proportion as the increasing
distinction of his rank teaches him that he has more to put in jeopardy. If I am
not mistaken, the least warlike, and also the least revolutionary part, of a
democratic army, will always be its chief commanders. [Footnote a: The position
of officers is indeed much more secure amongst democratic nations than
elsewhere; the lower the personal standing of the man, the greater is the
comparative importance of his military grade, and the more just and necessary is
it that the enjoyment of that rank should be secured by the laws.]
But the remarks I have just made on officers and soldiers are not applicable to
a numerous class which in all armies fills the intermediate space between them—I
mean the class of non-commissioned officers. This class of non-commissioned
officers which have never acted a part in history until the present century, is
henceforward destined, I think, to play one of some importance. Like the
officers, non-commissioned officers have broken, in their minds, all the ties
which bound them to civil life; like the former, they devote themselves
permanently to the service, and perhaps make it even more exclusively the object
of all their desires: but non-commissioned officers are men who have not yet
reached a firm and lofty post at which they may pause and breathe more freely,
ere they can attain further promotion. By the very nature of his duties, which
is invariable, a non-commissioned officer is doomed to lead an obscure,
confined, comfortless, and precarious existence; as yet he sees nothing of
military life but its dangers; he knows nothing but its privations and its
discipline—more difficult to support than dangers: he suffers the more from his
present miseries, from knowing that the constitution of society and of the army
allow him to rise above them; he may, indeed, at any time obtain his commission,
and enter at once upon command, honors, independence, rights, and enjoyments.
Not only does this object of his hopes appear to him of immense importance, but
he is never sure of reaching it till it is actually his own; the grade he fills
is by no means irrevocable; he is always entirely abandoned to the arbitrary
pleasure of his commanding officer, for this is imperiously required by the
necessity of discipline: a slight fault, a whim, may always deprive him in an
instant of the fruits of many years of toil and endeavor; until he has reached
the grade to which he aspires he has accomplished nothing; not till he reaches
that grade does his career seem to begin. A desperate ambition cannot fail to be
kindled in a man thus incessantly goaded on by his youth, his wants, his
passions, the spirit of his age, his hopes, and his age, his hopes, and his
fears. Non-commissioned officers are therefore bent on war—on war always, and at
any cost; but if war be denied them, then they desire revolutions to suspend the
authority of established regulations, and to enable them, aided by the general
confusion and the political passions of the time, to get rid of their superior
officers and to take their places. Nor is it impossible for them to bring about
such a crisis, because their common origin and habits give them much influence
over the soldiers, however different may be their passions and their desires.
It would be an error to suppose that these various characteristics of officers,
non-commissioned officers, and men, belong to any particular time or country;
they will always occur at all times, and amongst all democratic nations. In
every democratic army the non-commissioned officers will be the worst
representatives of the pacific and orderly spirit of the country, and the
private soldiers will be the best. The latter will carry with them into military
life the strength or weakness of the manners of the nation; they will display a
faithful reflection of the community: if that community is ignorant and weak,
they will allow themselves to be drawn by their leaders into disturbances,
either unconsciously or against their will; if it is enlightened and energetic,
the community will itself keep them within the bounds of order.
Chapter XXIV: Causes Which Render Democratic Armies Weaker Than Other Armies
At The Outset Of A Campaign, And More Formidable In Protracted Warfare
Any army is in danger of being conquered at the outset of a campaign, after a
long peace; any army which has long been engaged in warfare has strong chances
of victory: this truth is peculiarly applicable to democratic armies. In
aristocracies the military profession, being a privileged career, is held in
honor even in time of peace. Men of great talents, great attainments, and great
ambition embrace it; the army is in all respects on a level with the nation, and
frequently above it. We have seen, on the contrary, that amongst a democratic
people the choicer minds of the nation are gradually drawn away from the
military profession, to seek by other paths, distinction, power, and especially
wealth. After a long peace—and in democratic ages the periods of peace are
long—the army is always inferior to the country itself. In this state it is
called into active service; and until war has altered it, there is danger for
the country as well as for the army.
I have shown that in democratic armies, and in time of peace, the rule of
seniority is the supreme and inflexible law of advancement. This is not only a
consequence, as I have before observed, of the constitution of these armies, but
of the constitution of the people, and it will always occur. Again, as amongst
these nations the officer derives his position in the country solely from his
position in the army, and as he draws all the distinction and the competency he
enjoys from the same source, he does not retire from his profession, or is not
super-annuated, till towards the extreme close of life. The consequence of these
two causes is, that when a democratic people goes to war after a long interval
of peace all the leading officers of the army are old men. I speak not only of
the generals, but of the non-commissioned officers, who have most of them been
stationary, or have only advanced step by step. It may be remarked with
surprise, that in a democratic army after a long peace all the soldiers are mere
boys, and all the superior officers in declining years; so that the former are
wanting in experience, the latter in vigor. This is a strong element of defeat,
for the first condition of successful generalship is youth: I should not have
ventured to say so if the greatest captain of modern times had not made the
observation. These two causes do not act in the same manner upon aristocratic
armies: as men are promoted in them by right of birth much more than by right of
seniority, there are in all ranks a certain number of young men, who bring to
their profession all the early vigor of body and mind. Again, as the men who
seek for military honors amongst an aristocratic people, enjoy a settled
position in civil society, they seldom continue in the army until old age
overtakes them. After having devoted the most vigorous years of youth to the
career of arms, they voluntarily retire, and spend at home the remainder of
their maturer years.
A long peace not only fills democratic armies with elderly officers, but it also
gives to all the officers habits both of body and mind which render them unfit
for actual service. The man who has long lived amidst the calm and lukewarm
atmosphere of democratic manners can at first ill adapt himself to the harder
toils and sterner duties of warfare; and if he has not absolutely lost the taste
for arms, at least he has assumed a mode of life which unfits him for conquest.
Amongst aristocratic nations, the ease of civil life exercises less influence on
the manners of the army, because amongst those nations the aristocracy commands
the army: and an aristocracy, however plunged in luxurious pleasures, has always
many other passions besides that of its own well-being, and to satisfy those
passions more thoroughly its well-being will be readily sacrificed. *a
a
[ See Appendix V.]
I have shown that in democratic armies, in time of peace, promotion is extremely
slow. The officers at first support this state of things with impatience, they
grow excited, restless, exasperated, but in the end most of them make up their
minds to it. Those who have the largest share of ambition and of resources quit
the army; others, adapting their tastes and their desires to their scanty
fortunes, ultimately look upon the military profession in a civil point of view.
The quality they value most in it is the competency and security which attend
it: their whole notion of the future rests upon the certainty of this little
provision, and all they require is peaceably to enjoy it. Thus not only does a
long peace fill an army with old men, but it is frequently imparts the views of
old men to those who are still in the prime of life.
I have also shown that amongst democratic nations in time of peace the military
profession is held in little honor and indifferently followed. This want of
public favor is a heavy discouragement to the army; it weighs down the minds of
the troops, and when war breaks out at last, they cannot immediately resume
their spring and vigor. No similar cause of moral weakness occurs in
aristocratic armies: there the officers are never lowered either in their own
eyes or in those of their countrymen, because, independently of their military
greatness, they are personally great. But even if the influence of peace
operated on the two kinds of armies in the same manner, the results would still
be different. When the officers of an aristocratic army have lost their warlike
spirit and the desire of raising themselves by service, they still retain a
certain respect for the honor of their class, and an old habit of being foremost
to set an example. But when the officers of a democratic army have no longer the
love of war and the ambition of arms, nothing whatever remains to them.
I am therefore of opinion that, when a democratic people engages in a war after
a long peace, it incurs much more risk of defeat than any other nation; but it
ought not easily to be cast down by its reverses, for the chances of success for
such an army are increased by the duration of the war. When a war has at length,
by its long continuance, roused the whole community from their peaceful
occupations and ruined their minor undertakings, the same passions which made
them attach so much importance to the maintenance of peace will be turned to
arms. War, after it has destroyed all modes of speculation, becomes itself the
great and sole speculation, to which all the ardent and ambitious desires which
equality engenders are exclusively directed. Hence it is that the selfsame
democratic nations which are so reluctant to engage in hostilities, sometimes
perform prodigious achievements when once they have taken the field. As the war
attracts more and more of public attention, and is seen to create high
reputations and great fortunes in a short space of time, the choicest spirits of
the nation enter the military profession: all the enterprising, proud, and
martial minds, no longer of the aristocracy solely, but of the whole country,
are drawn in this direction. As the number of competitors for military honors is
immense, and war drives every man to his proper level, great generals are always
sure to spring up. A long war produces upon a democratic army the same effects
that a revolution produces upon a people; it breaks through regulations, and
allows extraordinary men to rise above the common level. Those officers whose
bodies and minds have grown old in peace, are removed, or superannuated, or they
die. In their stead a host of young men are pressing on, whose frames are
already hardened, whose desires are extended and inflamed by active service.
They are bent on advancement at all hazards, and perpetual advancement; they are
followed by others with the same passions and desires, and after these are
others yet unlimited by aught but the size of the army. The principle of
equality opens the door of ambition to all, and death provides chances for
ambition. Death is constantly thinning the ranks, making vacancies, closing and
opening the career of arms.
There is moreover a secret connection between the military character and the
character of democracies, which war brings to light. The men of democracies are
naturally passionately eager to acquire what they covet, and to enjoy it on easy
conditions. They for the most part worship chance, and are much less afraid of
death than of difficulty. This is the spirit which they bring to commerce and
manufactures; and this same spirit, carried with them to the field of battle,
induces them willingly to expose their lives in order to secure in a moment the
rewards of victory. No kind of greatness is more pleasing to the imagination of
a democratic people than military greatness—a greatness of vivid and sudden
lustre, obtained without toil, by nothing but the risk of life. Thus, whilst the
interests and the tastes of the members of a democratic community divert them
from war, their habits of mind fit them for carrying on war well; they soon make
good soldiers, when they are roused from their business and their enjoyments. If
peace is peculiarly hurtful to democratic armies, war secures to them advantages
which no other armies ever possess; and these advantages, however little felt at
first, cannot fail in the end to give them the victory. An aristocratic nation,
which in a contest with a democratic people does not succeed in ruining the
latter at the outset of the war, always runs a great risk of being conquered by
it.
Chapter XXV: Of Discipline In Democratic Armies
It is a very general opinion, especially in aristocratic countries, that the
great social equality which prevails in democracies ultimately renders the
private soldier independent of the officer, and thus destroys the bond of
discipline. This is a mistake, for there are two kinds of discipline, which it
is important not to confound. When the officer is noble and the soldier a
serf—one rich, the other poor—the former educated and strong, the latter
ignorant and weak—the strictest bond of obedience may easily be established
between the two men. The soldier is broken in to military discipline, as it
were, before he enters the army; or rather, military discipline is nothing but
an enhancement of social servitude. In aristocratic armies the soldier will soon
become insensible to everything but the orders of his superior officers; he acts
without reflection, triumphs without enthusiasm, and dies without complaint: in
this state he is no longer a man, but he is still a most formidable animal
trained for war.
A democratic people must despair of ever obtaining from soldiers that blind,
minute, submissive, and invariable obedience which an aristocratic people may
impose on them without difficulty. The state of society does not prepare them
for it, and the nation might be in danger of losing its natural advantages if it
sought artificially to acquire advantages of this particular kind. Amongst
democratic communities, military discipline ought not to attempt to annihilate
the free spring of the faculties; all that can be done by discipline is to
direct it; the obedience thus inculcated is less exact, but it is more eager and
more intelligent. It has its root in the will of him who obeys: it rests not
only on his instinct, but on his reason; and consequently it will often
spontaneously become more strict as danger requires it. The discipline of an
aristocratic army is apt to be relaxed in war, because that discipline is
founded upon habits, and war disturbs those habits. The discipline of a
democratic army on the contrary is strengthened in sight of the enemy, because
every soldier then clearly perceives that he must be silent and obedient in
order to conquer.
The nations which have performed the greatest warlike achievements knew no other
discipline than that which I speak of. Amongst the ancients none were admitted
into the armies but freemen and citizens, who differed but little from one
another, and were accustomed to treat each other as equals. In this respect it
may be said that the armies of antiquity were democratic, although they came out
of the bosom of aristocracy; the consequence was that in those armies a sort of
fraternal familiarity prevailed between the officers and the men. Plutarch's
lives of great commanders furnish convincing instances of the fact: the soldiers
were in the constant habit of freely addressing their general, and the general
listened to and answered whatever the soldiers had to say: they were kept in
order by language and by example, far more than by constraint or punishment; the
general was as much their companion as their chief. I know not whether the
soldiers of Greece and Rome ever carried the minutiae of military discipline to
the same degree of perfection as the Russians have done; but this did not
prevent Alexander from conquering Asia—and Rome, the world.
Chapter XXVI: Some Considerations On War In Democratic Communities
When the principle of equality is in growth, not only amongst a single nation,
but amongst several neighboring nations at the same time, as is now the case in
Europe, the inhabitants of these different countries, notwithstanding the
dissimilarity of language, of customs, and of laws, nevertheless resemble each
other in their equal dread of war and their common love of peace. *a It is in
vain that ambition or anger puts arms in the hands of princes; they are appeased
in spite of themselves by a species of general apathy and goodwill, which makes
the sword drop from their grasp, and wars become more rare. As the spread of
equality, taking place in several countries at once, simultaneously impels their
various inhabitants to follow manufactures and commerce, not only do their
tastes grow alike, but their interests are so mixed and entangled with one
another that no nation can inflict evils on other nations without those evils
falling back upon itself; and all nations ultimately regard war as a calamity,
almost as severe to the conqueror as to the conquered. Thus, on the one hand, it
is extremely difficult in democratic ages to draw nations into hostilities; but
on the other hand, it is almost impossible that any two of them should go to war
without embroiling the rest. The interests of all are so interlaced, their
opinions and their wants so much alike, that none can remain quiet when the
others stir. Wars therefore become more rare, but when they break out they
spread over a larger field. Neighboring democratic nations not only become alike
in some respects, but they eventually grow to resemble each other in almost all.
*b This similitude of nations has consequences of great importance in relation
to war.
a
[ It is scarcely necessary for me to observe that the dread of war displayed by
the nations of Europe is not solely attributable to the progress made by the
principle of equality amongst them; independently of this permanent cause
several other accidental causes of great weight might be pointed out, and I may
mention before all the rest the extreme lassitude which the wars of the
Revolution and the Empire have left behind them.]
b
[ This is not only because these nations have the same social condition, but it
arises from the very nature of that social condition which leads men to imitate
and identify themselves with each other. When the members of a community are
divided into castes and classes, they not only differ from one another, but they
have no taste and no desire to be alike; on the contrary, everyone endeavors,
more and more, to keep his own opinions undisturbed, to retain his own peculiar
habits, and to remain himself. The characteristics of individuals are very
strongly marked. When the state of society amongst a people is democratic—that
is to say, when there are no longer any castes or classes in the community, and
all its members are nearly equal in education and in property—the human mind
follows the opposite direction. Men are much alike, and they are annoyed, as it
were, by any deviation from that likeness: far from seeking to preserve their
own distinguishing singularities, they endeavor to shake them off, in order to
identify themselves with the general mass of the people, which is the sole
representative of right and of might to their eyes. The characteristics of
individuals are nearly obliterated. In the ages of aristocracy even those who
are naturally alike strive to create imaginary differences between themselves:
in the ages of democracy even those who are not alike seek only to become so,
and to copy each other—so strongly is the mind of every man always carried away
by the general impulse of mankind. Something of the same kind may be observed
between nations: two nations having the same aristocratic social condition,
might remain thoroughly distinct and extremely different, because the spirit of
aristocracy is to retain strong individual characteristics; but if two
neighboring nations have the same democratic social condition, they cannot fail
to adopt similar opinions and manners, because the spirit of democracy tends to
assimilate men to each other.]
If I inquire why it is that the Helvetic Confederacy made the greatest and most
powerful nations of Europe tremble in the fifteenth century, whilst at the
present day the power of that country is exactly proportioned to its population,
I perceive that the Swiss are become like all the surrounding communities, and
those surrounding communities like the Swiss: so that as numerical strength now
forms the only difference between them, victory necessarily attends the largest
army. Thus one of the consequences of the democratic revolution which is going
on in Europe is to make numerical strength preponderate on all fields of battle,
and to constrain all small nations to incorporate themselves with large States,
or at least to adopt the policy of the latter. As numbers are the determining
cause of victory, each people ought of course to strive by all the means in its
power to bring the greatest possible number of men into the field. When it was
possible to enlist a kind of troops superior to all others, such as the Swiss
infantry or the French horse of the sixteenth century, it was not thought
necessary to raise very large armies; but the case is altered when one soldier
is as efficient as another.
The same cause which begets this new want also supplies means of satisfying it;
for, as I have already observed, when men are all alike, they are all weak, and
the supreme power of the State is naturally much stronger amongst democratic
nations than elsewhere. Hence, whilst these nations are desirous of enrolling
the whole male population in the ranks of the army, they have the power of
effecting this object: the consequence is, that in democratic ages armies seem
to grow larger in proportion as the love of war declines. In the same ages, too,
the manner of carrying on war is likewise altered by the same causes.
Machiavelli observes in "The Prince," "that it is much more difficult to subdue
a people which has a prince and his barons for its leaders, than a nation which
is commanded by a prince and his slaves." To avoid offence, let us read public
functionaries for slaves, and this important truth will be strictly applicable
to our own time.
A great aristocratic people cannot either conquer its neighbors, or be conquered
by them, without great difficulty. It cannot conquer them, because all its
forces can never be collected and held together for a considerable period: it
cannot be conquered, because an enemy meets at every step small centres of
resistance by which invasion is arrested. War against an aristocracy may be
compared to war in a mountainous country; the defeated party has constant
opportunities of rallying its forces to make a stand in a new position. Exactly
the reverse occurs amongst democratic nations: they easily bring their whole
disposable force into the field, and when the nation is wealthy and populous it
soon becomes victorious; but if ever it is conquered, and its territory invaded,
it has few resources at command; and if the enemy takes the capital, the nation
is lost. This may very well be explained: as each member of the community is
individually isolated and extremely powerless, no one of the whole body can
either defend himself or present a rallying point to others. Nothing is strong
in a democratic country except the State; as the military strength of the State
is destroyed by the destruction of the army, and its civil power paralyzed by
the capture of the chief city, all that remains is only a multitude without
strength or government, unable to resist the organized power by which it is
assailed. I am aware that this danger may be lessened by the creation of
provincial liberties, and consequently of provincial powers, but this remedy
will always be insufficient. For after such a catastrophe, not only is the
population unable to carry on hostilities, but it may be apprehended that they
will not be inclined to attempt it. In accordance with the law of nations
adopted in civilized countries, the object of wars is not to seize the property
of private individuals, but simply to get possession of political power. The
destruction of private property is only occasionally resorted to for the purpose
of attaining the latter object. When an aristocratic country is invaded after
the defeat of its army, the nobles, although they are at the same time the
wealthiest members of the community, will continue to defend themselves
individually rather than submit; for if the conqueror remained master of the
country, he would deprive them of their political power, to which they cling
even more closely than to their property. They therefore prefer fighting to
subjection, which is to them the greatest of all misfortunes; and they readily
carry the people along with them because the people has long been used to follow
and obey them, and besides has but little to risk in the war. Amongst a nation
in which equality of conditions prevails, each citizen, on the contrary, has but
slender share of political power, and often has no share at all; on the other
hand, all are independent, and all have something to lose; so that they are much
less afraid of being conquered, and much more afraid of war, than an
aristocratic people. It will always be extremely difficult to decide a
democratic population to take up arms, when hostilities have reached its own
territory. Hence the necessity of giving to such a people the rights and the
political character which may impart to every citizen some of those interests
that cause the nobles to act for the public welfare in aristocratic countries.
It should never be forgotten by the princes and other leaders of democratic
nations, that nothing but the passion and the habit of freedom can maintain an
advantageous contest with the passion and the habit of physical well-being. I
can conceive nothing better prepared for subjection, in case of defeat, than a
democratic people without free institutions.
Formerly it was customary to take the field with a small body of troops, to
fight in small engagements, and to make long, regular sieges: modern tactics
consist in fighting decisive battles, and, as soon as a line of march is open
before the army, in rushing upon the capital city, in order to terminate the war
at a single blow. Napoleon, it is said, was the inventor of this new system; but
the invention of such a system did not depend on any individual man, whoever he
might be. The mode in which Napoleon carried on war was suggested to him by the
state of society in his time; that mode was successful, because it was eminently
adapted to that state of society, and because he was the first to employ it.
Napoleon was the first commander who marched at the head of an army from capital
to capital, but the road was opened for him by the ruin of feudal society. It
may fairly be believed that, if that extraordinary man had been born three
hundred years ago, he would not have derived the same results from his method of
warfare, or, rather, that he would have had a different method.
I shall add but a few words on civil wars, for fear of exhausting the patience
of the reader. Most of the remarks which I have made respecting foreign wars are
applicable a fortiori to civil wars. Men living in democracies are not naturally
prone to the military character; they sometimes assume it, when they have been
dragged by compulsion to the field; but to rise in a body and voluntarily to
expose themselves to the horrors of war, and especially of civil war, is a
course which the men of democracies are not apt to adopt. None but the most
adventurous members of the community consent to run into such risks; the bulk of
the population remains motionless. But even if the population were inclined to
act, considerable obstacles would stand in their way; for they can resort to no
old and well-established influence which they are willing to obey—no well-known
leaders to rally the discontented, as well as to discipline and to lead them—no
political powers subordinate to the supreme power of the nation, which afford an
effectual support to the resistance directed against the government. In
democratic countries the moral power of the majority is immense, and the
physical resources which it has at its command are out of all proportion to the
physical resources which may be combined against it. Therefore the party which
occupies the seat of the majority, which speaks in its name and wields its
power, triumphs instantaneously and irresistibly over all private resistance; it
does not even give such opposition time to exist, but nips it in the bud. Those
who in such nations seek to effect a revolution by force of arms have no other
resource than suddenly to seize upon the whole engine of government as it
stands, which can better be done by a single blow than by a war; for as soon as
there is a regular war, the party which represents the State is always certain
to conquer. The only case in which a civil war could arise is, if the army
should divide itself into two factions, the one raising the standard of
rebellion, the other remaining true to its allegiance. An army constitutes a
small community, very closely united together, endowed with great powers of
vitality, and able to supply its own wants for some time. Such a war might be
bloody, but it could not be long; for either the rebellious army would gain over
the government by the sole display of its resources, or by its first victory,
and then the war would be over; or the struggle would take place, and then that
portion of the army which should not be supported by the organized powers of the
State would speedily either disband itself or be destroyed. It may therefore be
admitted as a general truth, that in ages of equality civil wars will become
much less frequent and less protracted. *c
c
[ It should be borne in mind that I speak here of sovereign and independent
democratic nations, not of confederate democracies; in confederacies, as the
preponderating power always resides, in spite of all political fictions, in the
state governments, and not in the federal government, civil wars are in fact
nothing but foreign wars in disguise.]
Book Four: Influence Of Democratic Opinions On Political Society
Chapter I: That Equality Naturally Gives Men A Taste For Free Institutions
I should imperfectly fulfil the purpose of this book, if, after having shown
what opinions and sentiments are suggested by the principle of equality, I did
not point out, ere I conclude, the general influence which these same opinions
and sentiments may exercise upon the government of human societies. To succeed
in this object I shall frequently have to retrace my steps; but I trust the
reader will not refuse to follow me through paths already known to him, which
may lead to some new truth.
The principle of equality, which makes men independent of each other, gives them
a habit and a taste for following, in their private actions, no other guide but
their own will. This complete independence, which they constantly enjoy towards
their equals and in the intercourse of private life, tends to make them look
upon all authority with a jealous eye, and speedily suggests to them the notion
and the love of political freedom. Men living at such times have a natural bias
to free institutions. Take any one of them at a venture, and search if you can
his most deep-seated instincts; you will find that of all governments he will
soonest conceive and most highly value that government, whose head he has
himself elected, and whose administration he may control. Of all the political
effects produced by the equality of conditions, this love of independence is the
first to strike the observing, and to alarm the timid; nor can it be said that
their alarm is wholly misplaced, for anarchy has a more formidable aspect in
democratic countries than elsewhere. As the citizens have no direct influence on
each other, as soon as the supreme power of the nation fails, which kept them
all in their several stations, it would seem that disorder must instantly reach
its utmost pitch, and that, every man drawing aside in a different direction,
the fabric of society must at once crumble away.
I am, however, persuaded that anarchy is not the principal evil which democratic
ages have to fear, but the least. For the principle of equality begets two
tendencies; the one leads men straight to independence, and may suddenly drive
them into anarchy; the other conducts them by a longer, more secret, but more
certain road, to servitude. Nations readily discern the former tendency, and are
prepared to resist it; they are led away by the latter, without perceiving its
drift; hence it is peculiarly important to point it out. For myself, I am so far
from urging as a reproach to the principle of equality that it renders men
untractable, that this very circumstance principally calls forth my approbation.
I admire to see how it deposits in the mind and heart of man the dim conception
and instinctive love of political independence, thus preparing the remedy for
the evil which it engenders; it is on this very account that I am attached to
it.
Chapter II: That The Notions Of Democratic Nations On Government Are
Naturally Favorable To The Concentration Of Power
The notion of secondary powers, placed between the sovereign and his subjects,
occurred naturally to the imagination of aristocratic nations, because those
communities contained individuals or families raised above the common level, and
apparently destined to command by their birth, their education, and their
wealth. This same notion is naturally wanting in the minds of men in democratic
ages, for converse reasons: it can only be introduced artificially, it can only
be kept there with difficulty; whereas they conceive, as it were, without
thinking upon the subject, the notion of a sole and central power which governs
the whole community by its direct influence. Moreover in politics, as well as in
philosophy and in religion, the intellect of democratic nations is peculiarly
open to simple and general notions. Complicated systems are repugnant to it, and
its favorite conception is that of a great nation composed of citizens all
resembling the same pattern, and all governed by a single power.
The very next notion to that of a sole and central power, which presents itself
to the minds of men in the ages of equality, is the notion of uniformity of
legislation. As every man sees that he differs but little from those about him,
he cannot understand why a rule which is applicable to one man should not be
equally applicable to all others. Hence the slightest privileges are repugnant
to his reason; the faintest dissimilarities in the political institutions of the
same people offend him, and uniformity of legislation appears to him to be the
first condition of good government. I find, on the contrary, that this same
notion of a uniform rule, equally binding on all the members of the community,
was almost unknown to the human mind in aristocratic ages; it was either never
entertained, or it was rejected. These contrary tendencies of opinion ultimately
turn on either side to such blind instincts and such ungovernable habits that
they still direct the actions of men, in spite of particular exceptions.
Notwithstanding the immense variety of conditions in the Middle Ages, a certain
number of persons existed at that period in precisely similar circumstances; but
this did not prevent the laws then in force from assigning to each of them
distinct duties and different rights. On the contrary, at the present time all
the powers of government are exerted to impose the same customs and the same
laws on populations which have as yet but few points of resemblance. As the
conditions of men become equal amongst a people, individuals seem of less
importance, and society of greater dimensions; or rather, every citizen, being
assimilated to all the rest, is lost in the crowd, and nothing stands
conspicuous but the great and imposing image of the people at large. This
naturally gives the men of democratic periods a lofty opinion of the privileges
of society, and a very humble notion of the rights of individuals; they are
ready to admit that the interests of the former are everything, and those of the
latter nothing. They are willing to acknowledge that the power which represents
the community has far more information and wisdom than any of the members of
that community; and that it is the duty, as well as the right, of that power to
guide as well as govern each private citizen.
If we closely scrutinize our contemporaries, and penetrate to the root of their
political opinions, we shall detect some of the notions which I have just
pointed out, and we shall perhaps be surprised to find so much accordance
between men who are so often at variance. The Americans hold, that in every
State the supreme power ought to emanate from the people; but when once that
power is constituted, they can conceive, as it were, no limits to it, and they
are ready to admit that it has the right to do whatever it pleases. They have
not the slightest notion of peculiar privileges granted to cities, families, or
persons: their minds appear never to have foreseen that it might be possible not
to apply with strict uniformity the same laws to every part, and to all the
inhabitants. These same opinions are more and more diffused in Europe; they even
insinuate themselves amongst those nations which most vehemently reject the
principle of the sovereignty of the people. Such nations assign a different
origin to the supreme power, but they ascribe to that power the same
characteristics. Amongst them all, the idea of intermediate powers is weakened
and obliterated: the idea of rights inherent in certain individuals is rapidly
disappearing from the minds of men; the idea of the omnipotence and sole
authority of society at large rises to fill its place. These ideas take root and
spread in proportion as social conditions become more equal, and men more alike;
they are engendered by equality, and in turn they hasten the progress of
equality.
In France, where the revolution of which I am speaking has gone further than in
any other European country, these opinions have got complete hold of the public
mind. If we listen attentively to the language of the various parties in France,
we shall find that there is not one which has not adopted them. Most of these
parties censure the conduct of the government, but they all hold that the
government ought perpetually to act and interfere in everything that is done.
Even those which are most at variance are nevertheless agreed upon this head.
The unity, the ubiquity, the omnipotence of the supreme power, and the
uniformity of its rules, constitute the principal characteristics of all the
political systems which have been put forward in our age. They recur even in the
wildest visions of political regeneration: the human mind pursues them in its
dreams. If these notions spontaneously arise in the minds of private
individuals, they suggest themselves still more forcibly to the minds of
princes. Whilst the ancient fabric of European society is altered and dissolved,
sovereigns acquire new conceptions of their opportunities and their duties; they
learn for the first time that the central power which they represent may and
ought to administer by its own agency, and on a uniform plan, all the concerns
of the whole community. This opinion, which, I will venture to say, was never
conceived before our time by the monarchs of Europe, now sinks deeply into the
minds of kings, and abides there amidst all the agitation of more unsettled
thoughts.
Our contemporaries are therefore much less divided than is commonly supposed;
they are constantly disputing as to the hands in which supremacy is to be
vested, but they readily agree upon the duties and the rights of that supremacy.
The notion they all form of government is that of a sole, simple, providential,
and creative power. All secondary opinions in politics are unsettled; this one
remains fixed, invariable, and consistent. It is adopted by statesmen and
political philosophers; it is eagerly laid hold of by the multitude; those who
govern and those who are governed agree to pursue it with equal ardor: it is the
foremost notion of their minds, it seems inborn. It originates therefore in no
caprice of the human intellect, but it is a necessary condition of the present
state of mankind.
Chapter III: That The Sentiments Of Democratic Nations Accord With Their
Opinions In Leading Them To Concentrate Political Power
If it be true that, in ages of equality, men readily adopt the notion of a great
central power, it cannot be doubted on the other hand that their habits and
sentiments predispose them to recognize such a power and to give it their
support. This may be demonstrated in a few words, as the greater part of the
reasons, to which the fact may be attributed, have been previously stated. *a As
the men who inhabit democratic countries have no superiors, no inferiors, and no
habitual or necessary partners in their undertakings, they readily fall back
upon themselves and consider themselves as beings apart. I had occasion to point
this out at considerable length in treating of individualism. Hence such men can
never, without an effort, tear themselves from their private affairs to engage
in public business; their natural bias leads them to abandon the latter to the
sole visible and permanent representative of the interests of the community,
that is to say, to the State. Not only are they naturally wanting in a taste for
public business, but they have frequently no time to attend to it. Private life
is so busy in democratic periods, so excited, so full of wishes and of work,
that hardly any energy or leisure remains to each individual for public life. I
am the last man to contend that these propensities are unconquerable, since my
chief object in writing this book has been to combat them. I only maintain that
at the present day a secret power is fostering them in the human heart, and that
if they are not checked they will wholly overgrow it.
a
[ See Appendix W.]
I have also had occasion to show how the increasing love of well-being, and the
fluctuating character of property, cause democratic nations to dread all violent
disturbance. The love of public tranquillity is frequently the only passion
which these nations retain, and it becomes more active and powerful amongst them
in proportion as all other passions droop and die. This naturally disposes the
members of the community constantly to give or to surrender additional rights to
the central power, which alone seems to be interested in defending them by the
same means that it uses to defend itself. As in ages of equality no man is
compelled to lend his assistance to his fellow-men, and none has any right to
expect much support from them, everyone is at once independent and powerless.
These two conditions, which must never be either separately considered or
confounded together, inspire the citizen of a democratic country with very
contrary propensities. His independence fills him with self-reliance and pride
amongst his equals; his debility makes him feel from time to time the want of
some outward assistance, which he cannot expect from any of them, because they
are all impotent and unsympathizing. In this predicament he naturally turns his
eyes to that imposing power which alone rises above the level of universal
depression. Of that power his wants and especially his desires continually
remind him, until he ultimately views it as the sole and necessary support of
his own weakness. *b This may more completely explain what frequently takes
place in democratic countries, where the very men who are so impatient of
superiors patiently submit to a master, exhibiting at once their pride and their
servility.
b
[ In democratic communities nothing but the central power has any stability in
its position or any permanence in its undertakings. All the members of society
are in ceaseless stir and transformation. Now it is in the nature of all
governments to seek constantly to enlarge their sphere of action; hence it is
almost impossible that such a government should not ultimately succeed, because
it acts with a fixed principle and a constant will, upon men, whose position,
whose notions, and whose desires are in continual vacillation. It frequently
happens that the members of the community promote the influence of the central
power without intending it. Democratic ages are periods of experiment,
innovation, and adventure. At such times there are always a multitude of men
engaged in difficult or novel undertakings, which they follow alone, without
caring for their fellowmen. Such persons may be ready to admit, as a general
principle, that the public authority ought not to interfere in private concerns;
but, by an exception to that rule, each of them craves for its assistance in the
particular concern on which he is engaged, and seeks to draw upon the influence
of the government for his own benefit, though he would restrict it on all other
occasions. If a large number of men apply this particular exception to a great
variety of different purposes, the sphere of the central power extends
insensibly in all directions, although each of them wishes it to be
circumscribed. Thus a democratic government increases its power simply by the
fact of its permanence. Time is on its side; every incident befriends it; the
passions of individuals unconsciously promote it; and it may be asserted, that
the older a democratic community is, the more centralized will its government
become.]
The hatred which men bear to privilege increases in proportion as privileges
become more scarce and less considerable, so that democratic passions would seem
to burn most fiercely at the very time when they have least fuel. I have already
given the reason of this phenomenon. When all conditions are unequal, no
inequality is so great as to offend the eye; whereas the slightest dissimilarity
is odious in the midst of general uniformity: the more complete is this
uniformity, the more insupportable does the sight of such a difference become.
Hence it is natural that the love of equality should constantly increase
together with equality itself, and that it should grow by what it feeds upon.
This never-dying, ever-kindling hatred, which sets a democratic people against
the smallest privileges, is peculiarly favorable to the gradual concentration of
all political rights in the hands of the representative of the State alone. The
sovereign, being necessarily and incontestably above all the citizens, excites
not their envy, and each of them thinks that he strips his equals of the
prerogative which he concedes to the crown. The man of a democratic age is
extremely reluctant to obey his neighbor who is his equal; he refuses to
acknowledge in such a person ability superior to his own; he mistrusts his
justice, and is jealous of his power; he fears and he contemns him; and he loves
continually to remind him of the common dependence in which both of them stand
to the same master. Every central power which follows its natural tendencies
courts and encourages the principle of equality; for equality singularly
facilitates, extends, and secures the influence of a central power.
In like manner it may be said that every central government worships uniformity:
uniformity relieves it from inquiry into an infinite number of small details
which must be attended to if rules were to be adapted to men, instead of
indiscriminately subjecting men to rules: thus the government likes what the
citizens like, and naturally hates what they hate. These common sentiments,
which, in democratic nations, constantly unite the sovereign and every member of
the community in one and the same conviction, establish a secret and lasting
sympathy between them. The faults of the government are pardoned for the sake of
its tastes; public confidence is only reluctantly withdrawn in the midst even of
its excesses and its errors, and it is restored at the first call. Democratic
nations often hate those in whose hands the central power is vested; but they
always love that power itself.
Thus, by two separate paths, I have reached the same conclusion. I have shown
that the principle of equality suggests to men the notion of a sole, uniform,
and strong government: I have now shown that the principle of equality imparts
to them a taste for it. To governments of this kind the nations of our age are
therefore tending. They are drawn thither by the natural inclination of mind and
heart; and in order to reach that result, it is enough that they do not check
themselves in their course. I am of opinion, that, in the democratic ages which
are opening upon us, individual independence and local liberties will ever be
the produce of artificial contrivance; that centralization will be the natural
form of government. *c
c
[ See Appendix X.]
Chapter IV: Of Certain Peculiar And Accidental Causes Which Either Lead A
People To Complete Centralization Of Government, Or Which Divert Them From It
If all democratic nations are instinctively led to the centralization of
government, they tend to this result in an unequal manner. This depends on the
particular circumstances which may promote or prevent the natural consequences
of that state of society—circumstances which are exceedingly numerous; but I
shall only advert to a few of them. Amongst men who have lived free long before
they became equal, the tendencies derived from free institutions combat, to a
certain extent, the propensities superinduced by the principle of equality; and
although the central power may increase its privileges amongst such a people,
the private members of such a community will never entirely forfeit their
independence. But when the equality of conditions grows up amongst a people
which has never known, or has long ceased to know, what freedom is (and such is
the case upon the Continent of Europe), as the former habits of the nation are
suddenly combined, by some sort of natural attraction, with the novel habits and
principles engendered by the state of society, all powers seem spontaneously to
rush to the centre. These powers accumulate there with astonishing rapidity, and
the State instantly attains the utmost limits of its strength, whilst private
persons allow themselves to sink as suddenly to the lowest degree of weakness.
The English who emigrated three hundred years ago to found a democratic
commonwealth on the shores of the New World, had all learned to take a part in
public affairs in their mother-country; they were conversant with trial by jury;
they were accustomed to liberty of speech and of the press—to personal freedom,
to the notion of rights and the practice of asserting them. They carried with
them to America these free institutions and manly customs, and these
institutions preserved them against the encroachments of the State. Thus amongst
the Americans it is freedom which is old—equality is of comparatively modern
date. The reverse is occurring in Europe, where equality, introduced by absolute
power and under the rule of kings, was already infused into the habits of
nations long before freedom had entered into their conceptions.
I have said that amongst democratic nations the notion of government naturally
presents itself to the mind under the form of a sole and central power, and that
the notion of intermediate powers is not familiar to them. This is peculiarly
applicable to the democratic nations which have witnessed the triumph of the
principle of equality by means of a violent revolution. As the classes which
managed local affairs have been suddenly swept away by the storm, and as the
confused mass which remains has as yet neither the organization nor the habits
which fit it to assume the administration of these same affairs, the State alone
seems capable of taking upon itself all the details of government, and
centralization becomes, as it were, the unavoidable state of the country.
Napoleon deserves neither praise nor censure for having centred in his own hands
almost all the administrative power of France; for, after the abrupt
disappearance of the nobility and the higher rank of the middle classes, these
powers devolved on him of course: it would have been almost as difficult for him
to reject as to assume them. But no necessity of this kind has ever been felt by
the Americans, who, having passed through no revolution, and having governed
themselves from the first, never had to call upon the State to act for a time as
their guardian. Thus the progress of centralization amongst a democratic people
depends not only on the progress of equality, but on the manner in which this
equality has been established.
At the commencement of a great democratic revolution, when hostilities have but
just broken out between the different classes of society, the people endeavors
to centralize the public administration in the hands of the government, in order
to wrest the management of local affairs from the aristocracy. Towards the close
of such a revolution, on the contrary, it is usually the conquered aristocracy
that endeavors to make over the management of all affairs to the State, because
such an aristocracy dreads the tyranny of a people which has become its equal,
and not unfrequently its master. Thus it is not always the same class of the
community which strives to increase the prerogative of the government; but as
long as the democratic revolution lasts there is always one class in the nation,
powerful in numbers or in wealth, which is induced, by peculiar passions or
interests, to centralize the public administration, independently of that hatred
of being governed by one's neighbor, which is a general and permanent feeling
amongst democratic nations. It may be remarked, that at the present day the
lower orders in England are striving with all their might to destroy local
independence, and to transfer the administration from all points of the
circumference to the centre; whereas the higher classes are endeavoring to
retain this administration within its ancient boundaries. I venture to predict
that a time will come when the very reverse will happen.
These observations explain why the supreme power is always stronger, and private
individuals weaker, amongst a democratic people which has passed through a long
and arduous struggle to reach a state of equality than amongst a democratic
community in which the citizens have been equal from the first. The example of
the Americans completely demonstrates the fact. The inhabitants of the United
States were never divided by any privileges; they have never known the mutual
relation of master and inferior, and as they neither dread nor hate each other,
they have never known the necessity of calling in the supreme power to manage
their affairs. The lot of the Americans is singular: they have derived from the
aristocracy of England the notion of private rights and the taste for local
freedom; and they have been able to retain both the one and the other, because
they have had no aristocracy to combat.
If at all times education enables men to defend their independence, this is most
especially true in democratic ages. When all men are alike, it is easy to found
a sole and all-powerful government, by the aid of mere instinct. But men require
much intelligence, knowledge, and art to organize and to maintain secondary
powers under similar circumstances, and to create amidst the independence and
individual weakness of the citizens such free associations as may be in a
condition to struggle against tyranny without destroying public order.
Hence the concentration of power and the subjection of individuals will increase
amongst democratic nations, not only in the same proportion as their equality,
but in the same proportion as their ignorance. It is true, that in ages of
imperfect civilization the government is frequently as wanting in the knowledge
required to impose a despotism upon the people as the people are wanting in the
knowledge required to shake it off; but the effect is not the same on both
sides. However rude a democratic people may be, the central power which rules it
is never completely devoid of cultivation, because it readily draws to its own
uses what little cultivation is to be found in the country, and, if necessary,
may seek assistance elsewhere. Hence, amongst a nation which is ignorant as well
as democratic, an amazing difference cannot fail speedily to arise between the
intellectual capacity of the ruler and that of each of his subjects. This
completes the easy concentration of all power in his hands: the administrative
function of the State is perpetually extended, because the State alone is
competent to administer the affairs of the country. Aristocratic nations,
however unenlightened they may be, never afford the same spectacle, because in
them instruction is nearly equally diffused between the monarch and the leading
members of the community.
The pacha who now rules in Egypt found the population of that country composed
of men exceedingly ignorant and equal, and he has borrowed the science and
ability of Europe to govern that people. As the personal attainments of the
sovereign are thus combined with the ignorance and democratic weakness of his
subjects, the utmost centralization has been established without impediment, and
the pacha has made the country his manufactory, and the inhabitants his workmen.
I think that extreme centralization of government ultimately enervates society,
and thus after a length of time weakens the government itself; but I do not deny
that a centralized social power may be able to execute great undertakings with
facility in a given time and on a particular point. This is more especially true
of war, in which success depends much more on the means of transferring all the
resources of a nation to one single point, than on the extent of those
resources. Hence it is chiefly in war that nations desire and frequently require
to increase the powers of the central government. All men of military genius are
fond of centralization, which increases their strength; and all men of
centralizing genius are fond of war, which compels nations to combine all their
powers in the hands of the government. Thus the democratic tendency which leads
men unceasingly to multiply the privileges of the State, and to circumscribe the
rights of private persons, is much more rapid and constant amongst those
democratic nations which are exposed by their position to great and frequent
wars, than amongst all others.
I have shown how the dread of disturbance and the love of well-being insensibly
lead democratic nations to increase the functions of central government, as the
only power which appears to be intrinsically sufficiently strong, enlightened,
and secure, to protect them from anarchy. I would now add, that all the
particular circumstances which tend to make the state of a democratic community
agitated and precarious, enhance this general propensity, and lead private
persons more and more to sacrifice their rights to their tranquility. A people
is therefore never so disposed to increase the functions of central government
as at the close of a long and bloody revolution, which, after having wrested
property from the hands of its former possessors, has shaken all belief, and
filled the nation with fierce hatreds, conflicting interests, and contending
factions. The love of public tranquillity becomes at such times an
indiscriminating passion, and the members of the community are apt to conceive a
most inordinate devotion to order.
I have already examined several of the incidents which may concur to promote the
centralization of power, but the principal cause still remains to be noticed.
The foremost of the incidental causes which may draw the management of all
affairs into the hands of the ruler in democratic countries, is the origin of
that ruler himself, and his own propensities. Men who live in the ages of
equality are naturally fond of central power, and are willing to extend its
privileges; but if it happens that this same power faithfully represents their
own interests, and exactly copies their own inclinations, the confidence they
place in it knows no bounds, and they think that whatever they bestow upon it is
bestowed upon themselves.
The attraction of administrative powers to the centre will always be less easy
and less rapid under the reign of kings who are still in some way connected with
the old aristocratic order, than under new princes, the children of their own
achievements, whose birth, prejudices, propensities, and habits appear to bind
them indissolubly to the cause of equality. I do not mean that princes of
aristocratic origin who live in democratic ages do not attempt to centralize; I
believe they apply themselves to that object as diligently as any others. For
them, the sole advantages of equality lie in that direction; but their
opportunities are less great, because the community, instead of volunteering
compliance with their desires, frequently obeys them with reluctance. In
democratic communities the rule is that centralization must increase in
proportion as the sovereign is less aristocratic. When an ancient race of kings
stands at the head of an aristocracy, as the natural prejudices of the sovereign
perfectly accord with the natural prejudices of the nobility, the vices inherent
in aristocratic communities have a free course, and meet with no corrective. The
reverse is the case when the scion of a feudal stock is placed at the head of a
democratic people. The sovereign is constantly led, by his education, his
habits, and his associations, to adopt sentiments suggested by the inequality of
conditions, and the people tend as constantly, by their social condition, to
those manners which are engendered by equality. At such times it often happens
that the citizens seek to control the central power far less as a tyrannical
than as an aristocratical power, and that they persist in the firm defence of
their independence, not only because they would remain free, but especially
because they are determined to remain equal. A revolution which overthrows an
ancient regal family, in order to place men of more recent growth at the head of
a democratic people, may temporarily weaken the central power; but however
anarchical such a revolution may appear at first, we need not hesitate to
predict that its final and certain consequence will be to extend and to secure
the prerogatives of that power. The foremost or indeed the sole condition which
is required in order to succeed in centralizing the supreme power in a
democratic community, is to love equality, or to get men to believe you love it.
Thus the science of despotism, which was once so complex, is simplified, and
reduced as it were to a single principle.
Chapter V: That Amongst The European Nations Of Our Time The Power Of
Governments Is Increasing, Although The Persons Who Govern Are Less Stable
On reflecting upon what has already been said, the reader will be startled and
alarmed to find that in Europe everything seems to conduce to the indefinite
extension of the prerogatives of government, and to render all that enjoyed the
rights of private independence more weak, more subordinate, and more precarious.
The democratic nations of Europe have all the general and permanent tendencies
which urge the Americans to the centralization of government, and they are
moreover exposed to a number of secondary and incidental causes with which the
Americans are unacquainted. It would seem as if every step they make towards
equality brings them nearer to despotism. And indeed if we do but cast our looks
around, we shall be convinced that such is the fact. During the aristocratic
ages which preceded the present time, the sovereigns of Europe had been deprived
of, or had relinquished, many of the rights inherent in their power. Not a
hundred years ago, amongst the greater part of European nations, numerous
private persons and corporations were sufficiently independent to administer
justice, to raise and maintain troops, to levy taxes, and frequently even to
make or interpret the law. The State has everywhere resumed to itself alone
these natural attributes of sovereign power; in all matters of government the
State tolerates no intermediate agent between itself and the people, and in
general business it directs the people by its own immediate influence. I am far
from blaming this concentration of power, I simply point it out.
At the same period a great number of secondary powers existed in Europe, which
represented local interests and administered local affairs. Most of these local
authorities have already disappeared; all are speedily tending to disappear, or
to fall into the most complete dependence. From one end of Europe to the other
the privileges of the nobility, the liberties of cities, and the powers of
provincial bodies, are either destroyed or upon the verge of destruction. Europe
has endured, in the course of the last half-century, many revolutions and
counter-revolutions which have agitated it in opposite directions: but all these
perturbations resemble each other in one respect—they have all shaken or
destroyed the secondary powers of government. The local privileges which the
French did not abolish in the countries they conquered, have finally succumbed
to the policy of the princes who conquered the French. Those princes rejected
all the innovations of the French Revolution except centralization: that is the
only principle they consented to receive from such a source. My object is to
remark, that all these various rights, which have been successively wrested, in
our time, from classes, corporations, and individuals, have not served to raise
new secondary powers on a more democratic basis, but have uniformly been
concentrated in the hands of the sovereign. Everywhere the State acquires more
and more direct control over the humblest members of the community, and a more
exclusive power of governing each of them in his smallest concerns. *a Almost
all the charitable establishments of Europe were formerly in the hands of
private persons or of corporations; they are now almost all dependent on the
supreme government, and in many countries are actually administered by that
power. The State almost exclusively undertakes to supply bread to the hungry,
assistance and shelter to the sick, work to the idle, and to act as the sole
reliever of all kinds of misery. Education, as well as charity, is become in
most countries at the present day a national concern. The State receives, and
often takes, the child from the arms of the mother, to hand it over to official
agents: the State undertakes to train the heart and to instruct the mind of each
generation. Uniformity prevails in the courses of public instruction as in
everything else; diversity, as well as freedom, is disappearing day by day. Nor
do I hesitate to affirm, that amongst almost all the Christian nations of our
days, Catholic as well as Protestant, religion is in danger of falling into the
hands of the government. Not that rulers are over-jealous of the right of
settling points of doctrine, but they get more and more hold upon the will of
those by whom doctrines are expounded; they deprive the clergy of their
property, and pay them by salaries; they divert to their own use the influence
of the priesthood, they make them their own ministers—often their own
servants—and by this alliance with religion they reach the inner depths of the
soul of man. *b
a
[ This gradual weakening of individuals in relation to society at large may be
traced in a thousand ways. I shall select from amongst these examples one
derived from the law of wills. In aristocracies it is common to profess the
greatest reverence for the last testamentary dispositions of a man; this feeling
sometimes even became superstitious amongst the older nations of Europe: the
power of the State, far from interfering with the caprices of a dying man, gave
full force to the very least of them, and insured to him a perpetual power. When
all living men are enfeebled, the will of the dead is less respected: it is
circumscribed within a narrow range, beyond which it is annulled or checked by
the supreme power of the laws. In the Middle Ages, testamentary power had, so to
speak, no limits: amongst the French at the present day, a man cannot distribute
his fortune amongst his children without the interference of the State; after
having domineered over a whole life, the law insists upon regulating the very
last act of it.]
b
[ In proportion as the duties of the central power are augmented, the number of
public officers by whom that power is represented must increase also. They form
a nation in each nation; and as they share the stability of the government, they
more and more fill up the place of an aristocracy.
In almost every part of Europe the government rules in two ways; it rules one
portion of the community by the fear which they entertain of its agents, and the
other by the hope they have of becoming its agents.]
But this is as yet only one side of the picture. The authority of government has
not only spread, as we have just seen, throughout the sphere of all existing
powers, till that sphere can no longer contain it, but it goes further, and
invades the domain heretofore reserved to private independence. A multitude of
actions, which were formerly entirely beyond the control of the public
administration, have been subjected to that control in our time, and the number
of them is constantly increasing. Amongst aristocratic nations the supreme
government usually contented itself with managing and superintending the
community in whatever directly and ostensibly concerned the national honor; but
in all other respects the people were left to work out their own free will.
Amongst these nations the government often seemed to forget that there is a
point at which the faults and the sufferings of private persons involve the
general prosperity, and that to prevent the ruin of a private individual must
sometimes be a matter of public importance. The democratic nations of our time
lean to the opposite extreme. It is evident that most of our rulers will not
content themselves with governing the people collectively: it would seem as if
they thought themselves responsible for the actions and private condition of
their subjects—as if they had undertaken to guide and to instruct each of them
in the various incidents of life, and to secure their happiness quite
independently of their own consent. On the other hand private individuals grow
more and more apt to look upon the supreme power in the same light; they invoke
its assistance in all their necessities, and they fix their eyes upon the
administration as their mentor or their guide.
I assert that there is no country in Europe in which the public administration
has not become, not only more centralized, but more inquisitive and more minute
it everywhere interferes in private concerns more than it did; it regulates more
undertakings, and undertakings of a lesser kind; and it gains a firmer footing
every day about, above, and around all private persons, to assist, to advise,
and to coerce them. Formerly a sovereign lived upon the income of his lands, or
the revenue of his taxes; this is no longer the case now that his wants have
increased as well as his power. Under the same circumstances which formerly
compelled a prince to put on a new tax, he now has recourse to a loan. Thus the
State gradually becomes the debtor of most of the wealthier members of the
community, and centralizes the largest amounts of capital in its own hands.
Small capital is drawn into its keeping by another method. As men are
intermingled and conditions become more equal, the poor have more resources,
more education, and more desires; they conceive the notion of bettering their
condition, and this teaches them to save. These savings are daily producing an
infinite number of small capitals, the slow and gradual produce of labor, which
are always increasing. But the greater part of this money would be unproductive
if it remained scattered in the hands of its owners. This circumstance has given
rise to a philanthropic institution, which will soon become, if I am not
mistaken, one of our most important political institutions. Some charitable
persons conceived the notion of collecting the savings of the poor and placing
them out at interest. In some countries these benevolent associations are still
completely distinct from the State; but in almost all they manifestly tend to
identify themselves with the government; and in some of them the government has
superseded them, taking upon itself the enormous task of centralizing in one
place, and putting out at interest on its own responsibility, the daily savings
of many millions of the working classes. Thus the State draws to itself the
wealth of the rich by loans, and has the poor man's mite at its disposal in the
savings banks. The wealth of the country is perpetually flowing around the
government and passing through its hands; the accumulation increases in the same
proportion as the equality of conditions; for in a democratic country the State
alone inspires private individuals with confidence, because the State alone
appears to be endowed with strength and durability. *c Thus the sovereign does
not confine himself to the management of the public treasury; he interferes in
private money matters; he is the superior, and often the master, of all the
members of the community; and, in addition to this, he assumes the part of their
steward and paymaster.
c
[ On the one hand the taste for worldly welfare is perpetually increasing, and
on the other the government gets more and more complete possession of the
sources of that welfare. Thus men are following two separate roads to servitude:
the taste for their own welfare withholds them from taking a part in the
government, and their love of that welfare places them in closer dependence upon
those who govern.]
The central power not only fulfils of itself the whole of the duties formerly
discharged by various authorities—extending those duties, and surpassing those
authorities—but it performs them with more alertness, strength, and independence
than it displayed before. All the governments of Europe have in our time
singularly improved the science of administration: they do more things, and they
do everything with more order, more celerity, and at less expense; they seem to
be constantly enriched by all the experience of which they have stripped private
persons. From day to day the princes of Europe hold their subordinate officers
under stricter control, and they invent new methods for guiding them more
closely, and inspecting them with less trouble. Not content with managing
everything by their agents, they undertake to manage the conduct of their agents
in everything; so that the public administration not only depends upon one and
the same power, but it is more and more confined to one spot and concentrated in
the same hands. The government centralizes its agency whilst it increases its
prerogative—hence a twofold increase of strength.
In examining the ancient constitution of the judicial power, amongst most
European nations, two things strike the mind—the independence of that power, and
the extent of its functions. Not only did the courts of justice decide almost
all differences between private persons, but in very many cases they acted as
arbiters between private persons and the State. I do not here allude to the
political and administrative offices which courts of judicature had in some
countries usurped, but the judicial office common to them all. In most of the
countries of Europe, there were, and there still are, many private rights,
connected for the most part with the general right of property, which stood
under the protection of the courts of justice, and which the State could not
violate without their sanction. It was this semi-political power which mainly
distinguished the European courts of judicature from all others; for all nations
have had judges, but all have not invested their judges with the same
privileges. Upon examining what is now occurring amongst the democratic nations
of Europe which are called free, as well as amongst the others, it will be
observed that new and more dependent courts are everywhere springing up by the
side of the old ones, for the express purpose of deciding, by an extraordinary
jurisdiction, such litigated matters as may arise between the government and
private persons. The elder judicial power retains its independence, but its
jurisdiction is narrowed; and there is a growing tendency to reduce it to be
exclusively the arbiter between private interests. The number of these special
courts of justice is continually increasing, and their functions increase
likewise. Thus the government is more and more absolved from the necessity of
subjecting its policy and its rights to the sanction of another power. As judges
cannot be dispensed with, at least the State is to select them, and always to
hold them under its control; so that, between the government and private
individuals, they place the effigy of justice rather than justice itself. The
State is not satisfied with drawing all concerns to itself, but it acquires an
ever-increasing power of deciding on them all without restriction and without
appeal. *d
d
[ A strange sophism has been made on this head in France. When a suit arises
between the government and a private person, it is not to be tried before an
ordinary judge—in order, they say, not to mix the administrative and the
judicial powers; as if it were not to mix those powers, and to mix them in the
most dangerous and oppressive manner, to invest the government with the office
of judging and administering at the same time.]
There exists amongst the modern nations of Europe one great cause, independent
of all those which have already been pointed out, which perpetually contributes
to extend the agency or to strengthen the prerogative of the supreme power,
though it has not been sufficiently attended to: I mean the growth of
manufactures, which is fostered by the progress of social equality. Manufactures
generally collect a multitude of men of the same spot, amongst whom new and
complex relations spring up. These men are exposed by their calling to great and
sudden alternations of plenty and want, during which public tranquillity is
endangered. It may also happen that these employments sacrifice the health, and
even the life, of those who gain by them, or of those who live by them. Thus the
manufacturing classes require more regulation, superintendence, and restraint
than the other classes of society, and it is natural that the powers of
government should increase in the same proportion as those classes.
This is a truth of general application; what follows more especially concerns
the nations of Europe. In the centuries which preceded that in which we live,
the aristocracy was in possession of the soil, and was competent to defend it:
landed property was therefore surrounded by ample securities, and its possessors
enjoyed great independence. This gave rise to laws and customs which have been
perpetuated, notwithstanding the subdivision of lands and the ruin of the
nobility; and, at the present time, landowners and agriculturists are still
those amongst the community who must easily escape from the control of the
supreme power. In these same aristocratic ages, in which all the sources of our
history are to be traced, personal property was of small importance, and those
who possessed it were despised and weak: the manufacturing class formed an
exception in the midst of those aristocratic communities; as it had no certain
patronage, it was not outwardly protected, and was often unable to protect
itself.
Hence a habit sprung up of considering manufacturing property as something of a
peculiar nature, not entitled to the same deference, and not worthy of the same
securities as property in general; and manufacturers were looked upon as a small
class in the bulk of the people, whose independence was of small importance, and
who might with propriety be abandoned to the disciplinary passions of princes.
On glancing over the codes of the middle ages, one is surprised to see, in those
periods of personal independence, with what incessant royal regulations
manufactures were hampered, even in their smallest details: on this point
centralization was as active and as minute as it can ever be. Since that time a
great revolution has taken place in the world; manufacturing property, which was
then only in the germ, has spread till it covers Europe: the manufacturing class
has been multiplied and enriched by the remnants of all other ranks; it has
grown and is still perpetually growing in number, in importance, in wealth.
Almost all those who do not belong to it are connected with it at least on some
one point; after having been an exception in society, it threatens to become the
chief, if not the only, class; nevertheless the notions and political precedents
engendered by it of old still cling about it. These notions and these precedents
remain unchanged, because they are old, and also because they happen to be in
perfect accordance with the new notions and general habits of our
contemporaries. Manufacturing property then does not extend its rights in the
same ratio as its importance. The manufacturing classes do not become less
dependent, whilst they become more numerous; but, on the contrary, it would seem
as if despotism lurked within them, and naturally grew with their growth. *e As
a nation becomes more engaged in manufactures, the want of roads, canals,
harbors, and other works of a semi-public nature, which facilitate the
acquisition of wealth, is more strongly felt; and as a nation becomes more
democratic, private individuals are less able, and the State more able, to
execute works of such magnitude. I do not hesitate to assert that the manifest
tendency of all governments at the present time is to take upon themselves alone
the execution of these undertakings; by which means they daily hold in closer
dependence the population which they govern.
e
[ I shall quote a few facts in corroboration of this remark. Mines are the
natural sources of manufacturing wealth: as manufactures have grown up in
Europe, as the produce of mines has become of more general importance, and good
mining more difficult from the subdivision of property which is a consequence of
the equality of conditions, most governments have asserted a right of owning the
soil in which the mines lie, and of inspecting the works; which has never been
the case with any other kind of property. Thus mines, which were private
property, liable to the same obligations and sheltered by the same guarantees as
all other landed property, have fallen under the control of the State. The State
either works them or farms them; the owners of them are mere tenants, deriving
their rights from the State; and, moreover, the State almost everywhere claims
the power of directing their operations: it lays down rules, enforces the
adoption of particular methods, subjects the mining adventurers to constant
superintendence, and, if refractory, they are ousted by a government court of
justice, and the government transfers their contract to other hands; so that the
government not only possesses the mines, but has all the adventurers in its
power. Nevertheless, as manufactures increase, the working of old mines
increases also; new ones are opened, the mining population extends and grows up;
day by day governments augment their subterranean dominions, and people them
with their agents.]
On the other hand, in proportion as the power of a State increases, and its
necessities are augmented, the State consumption of manufactured produce is
always growing larger, and these commodities are generally made in the arsenals
or establishments of the government. Thus, in every kingdom, the ruler becomes
the principal manufacturer; he collects and retains in his service a vast number
of engineers, architects, mechanics, and handicraftsmen. Not only is he the
principal manufacturer, but he tends more and more to become the chief, or
rather the master of all other manufacturers. As private persons become more
powerless by becoming more equal, they can effect nothing in manufactures
without combination; but the government naturally seeks to place these
combinations under its own control.
It must be admitted that these collective beings, which are called combinations,
are stronger and more formidable than a private individual can ever be, and that
they have less of the responsibility of their own actions; whence it seems
reasonable that they should not be allowed to retain so great an independence of
the supreme government as might be conceded to a private individual.
Rulers are the more apt to follow this line of policy, as their own inclinations
invite them to it. Amongst democratic nations it is only by association that the
resistance of the people to the government can ever display itself: hence the
latter always looks with ill-favor on those associations which are not in its
own power; and it is well worthy of remark, that amongst democratic nations, the
people themselves often entertain a secret feeling of fear and jealousy against
these very associations, which prevents the citizens from defending the
institutions of which they stand so much in need. The power and the duration of
these small private bodies, in the midst of the weakness and instability of the
whole community, astonish and alarm the people; and the free use which each
association makes of its natural powers is almost regarded as a dangerous
privilege. All the associations which spring up in our age are, moreover, new
corporate powers, whose rights have not been sanctioned by time; they come into
existence at a time when the notion of private rights is weak, and when the
power of government is unbounded; hence it is not surprising that they lose
their freedom at their birth. Amongst all European nations there are some kinds
of associations which cannot be formed until the State has examined their
by-laws, and authorized their existence. In several others, attempts are made to
extend this rule to all associations; the consequences of such a policy, if it
were successful, may easily be foreseen. If once the sovereign had a general
right of authorizing associations of all kinds upon certain conditions, he would
not be long without claiming the right of superintending and managing them, in
order to prevent them from departing from the rules laid down by himself. In
this manner, the State, after having reduced all who are desirous of forming
associations into dependence, would proceed to reduce into the same condition
all who belong to associations already formed—that is to say, almost all the men
who are now in existence. Governments thus appropriate to themselves, and
convert to their own purposes, the greater part of this new power which
manufacturing interests have in our time brought into the world. Manufacturers
govern us—they govern manufactures.
I attach so much importance to all that I have just been saying, that I am
tormented by the fear of having impaired my meaning in seeking to render it more
clear. If the reader thinks that the examples I have adduced to support my
observations are insufficient or ill-chosen—if he imagines that I have anywhere
exaggerated the encroachments of the supreme power, and, on the other hand, that
I have underrated the extent of the sphere which still remains open to the
exertions of individual independence, I entreat him to lay down the book for a
moment, and to turn his mind to reflect for himself upon the subjects I have
attempted to explain. Let him attentively examine what is taking place in France
and in other countries—let him inquire of those about him—let him search
himself, and I am much mistaken if he does not arrive, without my guidance, and
by other paths, at the point to which I have sought to lead him. He will
perceive that for the last half-century, centralization has everywhere been
growing up in a thousand different ways. Wars, revolutions, conquests, have
served to promote it: all men have labored to increase it. In the course of the
same period, during which men have succeeded each other with singular rapidity
at the head of affairs, their notions, interests, and passions have been
infinitely diversified; but all have by some means or other sought to
centralize. This instinctive centralization has been the only settled point
amidst the extreme mutability of their lives and of their thoughts.
If the reader, after having investigated these details of human affairs, will
seek to survey the wide prospect as a whole, he will be struck by the result. On
the one hand the most settled dynasties shaken or overthrown—the people
everywhere escaping by violence from the sway of their laws—abolishing or
limiting the authority of their rulers or their princes—the nations, which are
not in open revolution, restless at least, and excited—all of them animated by
the same spirit of revolt: and on the other hand, at this very period of
anarchy, and amongst these untractable nations, the incessant increase of the
prerogative of the supreme government, becoming more centralized, more
adventurous, more absolute, more extensive—the people perpetually falling under
the control of the public administration—led insensibly to surrender to it some
further portion of their individual independence, till the very men, who from
time to time upset a throne and trample on a race of kings, bend more and more
obsequiously to the slightest dictate of a clerk. Thus two contrary revolutions
appear in our days to be going on; the one continually weakening the supreme
power, the other as continually strengthening it: at no other period in our
history has it appeared so weak or so strong. But upon a more attentive
examination of the state of the world, it appears that these two revolutions are
intimately connected together, that they originate in the same source, and that
after having followed a separate course, they lead men at last to the same
result. I may venture once more to repeat what I have already said or implied in
several parts of this book: great care must be taken not to confound the
principle of equality itself with the revolution which finally establishes that
principle in the social condition and the laws of a nation: here lies the reason
of almost all the phenomena which occasion our astonishment. All the old
political powers of Europe, the greatest as well as the least, were founded in
ages of aristocracy, and they more or less represented or defended the
principles of inequality and of privilege. To make the novel wants and
interests, which the growing principle of equality introduced, preponderate in
government, our contemporaries had to overturn or to coerce the established
powers. This led them to make revolutions, and breathed into many of them, that
fierce love of disturbance and independence, which all revolutions, whatever be
their object, always engender. I do not believe that there is a single country
in Europe in which the progress of equality has not been preceded or followed by
some violent changes in the state of property and persons; and almost all these
changes have been attended with much anarchy and license, because they have been
made by the least civilized portion of the nation against that which is most
civilized. Hence proceeded the two-fold contrary tendencies which I have just
pointed out. As long as the democratic revolution was glowing with heat, the men
who were bent upon the destruction of old aristocratic powers hostile to that
revolution, displayed a strong spirit of independence; but as the victory or the
principle of equality became more complete, they gradually surrendered
themselves to the propensities natural to that condition of equality, and they
strengthened and centralized their governments. They had sought to be free in
order to make themselves equal; but in proportion as equality was more
established by the aid of freedom, freedom itself was thereby rendered of more
difficult attainment.
These two states of a nation have sometimes been contemporaneous: the last
generation in France showed how a people might organize a stupendous tyranny in
the community, at the very time when they were baffling the authority of the
nobility and braving the power of all kings—at once teaching the world the way
to win freedom, and the way to lose it. In our days men see that constituted
powers are dilapidated on every side—they see all ancient authority gasping
away, all ancient barriers tottering to their fall, and the judgment of the
wisest is troubled at the sight: they attend only to the amazing revolution
which is taking place before their eyes, and they imagine that mankind is about
to fall into perpetual anarchy: if they looked to the final consequences of this
revolution, their fears would perhaps assume a different shape. For myself, I
confess that I put no trust in the spirit of freedom which appears to animate my
contemporaries. I see well enough that the nations of this age are turbulent,
but I do not clearly perceive that they are liberal; and I fear lest, at the
close of those perturbations which rock the base of thrones, the domination of
sovereigns may prove more powerful than it ever was before.
Chapter VI: What Sort Of Despotism Democratic Nations Have To Fear
I had remarked during my stay in the United States, that a democratic state of
society, similar to that of the Americans, might offer singular facilities for
the establishment of despotism; and I perceived, upon my return to Europe, how
much use had already been made by most of our rulers, of the notions, the
sentiments, and the wants engendered by this same social condition, for the
purpose of extending the circle of their power. This led me to think that the
nations of Christendom would perhaps eventually undergo some sort of oppression
like that which hung over several of the nations of the ancient world. A more
accurate examination of the subject, and five years of further meditations, have
not diminished my apprehensions, but they have changed the object of them. No
sovereign ever lived in former ages so absolute or so powerful as to undertake
to administer by his own agency, and without the assistance of intermediate
powers, all the parts of a great empire: none ever attempted to subject all his
subjects indiscriminately to strict uniformity of regulation, and personally to
tutor and direct every member of the community. The notion of such an
undertaking never occurred to the human mind; and if any man had conceived it,
the want of information, the imperfection of the administrative system, and
above all, the natural obstacles caused by the inequality of conditions, would
speedily have checked the execution of so vast a design. When the Roman emperors
were at the height of their power, the different nations of the empire still
preserved manners and customs of great diversity; although they were subject to
the same monarch, most of the provinces were separately administered; they
abounded in powerful and active municipalities; and although the whole
government of the empire was centred in the hands of the emperor alone, and he
always remained, upon occasions, the supreme arbiter in all matters, yet the
details of social life and private occupations lay for the most part beyond his
control. The emperors possessed, it is true, an immense and unchecked power,
which allowed them to gratify all their whimsical tastes, and to employ for that
purpose the whole strength of the State. They frequently abused that power
arbitrarily to deprive their subjects of property or of life: their tyranny was
extremely onerous to the few, but it did not reach the greater number; it was
fixed to some few main objects, and neglected the rest; it was violent, but its
range was limited.
But it would seem that if despotism were to be established amongst the
democratic nations of our days, it might assume a different character; it would
be more extensive and more mild; it would degrade men without tormenting them. I
do not question, that in an age of instruction and equality like our own,
sovereigns might more easily succeed in collecting all political power into
their own hands, and might interfere more habitually and decidedly within the
circle of private interests, than any sovereign of antiquity could ever do. But
this same principle of equality which facilitates despotism, tempers its rigor.
We have seen how the manners of society become more humane and gentle in
proportion as men become more equal and alike. When no member of the community
has much power or much wealth, tyranny is, as it were, without opportunities and
a field of action. As all fortunes are scanty, the passions of men are naturally
circumscribed—their imagination limited, their pleasures simple. This universal
moderation moderates the sovereign himself, and checks within certain limits the
inordinate extent of his desires.
Independently of these reasons drawn from the nature of the state of society
itself, I might add many others arising from causes beyond my subject; but I
shall keep within the limits I have laid down to myself. Democratic governments
may become violent and even cruel at certain periods of extreme effervescence or
of great danger: but these crises will be rare and brief. When I consider the
petty passions of our contemporaries, the mildness of their manners, the extent
of their education, the purity of their religion, the gentleness of their
morality, their regular and industrious habits, and the restraint which they
almost all observe in their vices no less than in their virtues, I have no fear
that they will meet with tyrants in their rulers, but rather guardians. *a I
think then that the species of oppression by which democratic nations are
menaced is unlike anything which ever before existed in the world: our
contemporaries will find no prototype of it in their memories. I am trying
myself to choose an expression which will accurately convey the whole of the
idea I have formed of it, but in vain; the old words "despotism" and "tyranny"
are inappropriate: the thing itself is new; and since I cannot name it, I must
attempt to define it.
a
[ See Appendix Y.]
I seek to trace the novel features under which despotism may appear in the
world. The first thing that strikes the observation is an innumerable multitude
of men all equal and alike, incessantly endeavoring to procure the petty and
paltry pleasures with which they glut their lives. Each of them, living apart,
is as a stranger to the fate of all the rest—his children and his private
friends constitute to him the whole of mankind; as for the rest of his
fellow-citizens, he is close to them, but he sees them not—he touches them, but
he feels them not; he exists but in himself and for himself alone; and if his
kindred still remain to him, he may be said at any rate to have lost his
country. Above this race of men stands an immense and tutelary power, which
takes upon itself alone to secure their gratifications, and to watch over their
fate. That power is absolute, minute, regular, provident, and mild. It would be
like the authority of a parent, if, like that authority, its object was to
prepare men for manhood; but it seeks on the contrary to keep them in perpetual
childhood: it is well content that the people should rejoice, provided they
think of nothing but rejoicing. For their happiness such a government willingly
labors, but it chooses to be the sole agent and the only arbiter of that
happiness: it provides for their security, foresees and supplies their
necessities, facilitates their pleasures, manages their principal concerns,
directs their industry, regulates the descent of property, and subdivides their
inheritances—what remains, but to spare them all the care of thinking and all
the trouble of living? Thus it every day renders the exercise of the free agency
of man less useful and less frequent; it circumscribes the will within a
narrower range, and gradually robs a man of all the uses of himself. The
principle of equality has prepared men for these things: it has predisposed men
to endure them, and oftentimes to look on them as benefits.
After having thus successively taken each member of the community in its
powerful grasp, and fashioned them at will, the supreme power then extends its
arm over the whole community. It covers the surface of society with a net-work
of small complicated rules, minute and uniform, through which the most original
minds and the most energetic characters cannot penetrate, to rise above the
crowd. The will of man is not shattered, but softened, bent, and guided: men are
seldom forced by it to act, but they are constantly restrained from acting: such
a power does not destroy, but it prevents existence; it does not tyrannize, but
it compresses, enervates, extinguishes, and stupefies a people, till each nation
is reduced to be nothing better than a flock of timid and industrious animals,
of which the government is the shepherd. I have always thought that servitude of
the regular, quiet, and gentle kind which I have just described, might be
combined more easily than is commonly believed with some of the outward forms of
freedom; and that it might even establish itself under the wing of the
sovereignty of the people. Our contemporaries are constantly excited by two
conflicting passions; they want to be led, and they wish to remain free: as they
cannot destroy either one or the other of these contrary propensities, they
strive to satisfy them both at once. They devise a sole, tutelary, and
all-powerful form of government, but elected by the people. They combine the
principle of centralization and that of popular sovereignty; this gives them a
respite; they console themselves for being in tutelage by the reflection that
they have chosen their own guardians. Every man allows himself to be put in
leading-strings, because he sees that it is not a person or a class of persons,
but the people at large that holds the end of his chain. By this system the
people shake off their state of dependence just long enough to select their
master, and then relapse into it again. A great many persons at the present day
are quite contented with this sort of compromise between administrative
despotism and the sovereignty of the people; and they think they have done
enough for the protection of individual freedom when they have surrendered it to
the power of the nation at large. This does not satisfy me: the nature of him I
am to obey signifies less to me than the fact of extorted obedience.
I do not however deny that a constitution of this kind appears to me to be
infinitely preferable to one, which, after having concentrated all the powers of
government, should vest them in the hands of an irresponsible person or body of
persons. Of all the forms which democratic despotism could assume, the latter
would assuredly be the worst. When the sovereign is elective, or narrowly
watched by a legislature which is really elective and independent, the
oppression which he exercises over individuals is sometimes greater, but it is
always less degrading; because every man, when he is oppressed and disarmed, may
still imagine, that whilst he yields obedience it is to himself he yields it,
and that it is to one of his own inclinations that all the rest give way. In
like manner I can understand that when the sovereign represents the nation, and
is dependent upon the people, the rights and the power of which every citizen is
deprived, not only serve the head of the State, but the State itself; and that
private persons derive some return from the sacrifice of their independence
which they have made to the public. To create a representation of the people in
every centralized country, is therefore, to diminish the evil which extreme
centralization may produce, but not to get rid of it. I admit that by this means
room is left for the intervention of individuals in the more important affairs;
but it is not the less suppressed in the smaller and more private ones. It must
not be forgotten that it is especially dangerous to enslave men in the minor
details of life. For my own part, I should be inclined to think freedom less
necessary in great things than in little ones, if it were possible to be secure
of the one without possessing the other. Subjection in minor affairs breaks out
every day, and is felt by the whole community indiscriminately. It does not
drive men to resistance, but it crosses them at every turn, till they are led to
surrender the exercise of their will. Thus their spirit is gradually broken and
their character enervated; whereas that obedience, which is exacted on a few
important but rare occasions, only exhibits servitude at certain intervals, and
throws the burden of it upon a small number of men. It is in vain to summon a
people, which has been rendered so dependent on the central power, to choose
from time to time the representatives of that power; this rare and brief
exercise of their free choice, however important it may be, will not prevent
them from gradually losing the faculties of thinking, feeling, and acting for
themselves, and thus gradually falling below the level of humanity. *b I add
that they will soon become incapable of exercising the great and only privilege
which remains to them. The democratic nations which have introduced freedom into
their political constitution, at the very time when they were augmenting the
despotism of their administrative constitution, have been led into strange
paradoxes. To manage those minor affairs in which good sense is all that is
wanted—the people are held to be unequal to the task, but when the government of
the country is at stake, the people are invested with immense powers; they are
alternately made the playthings of their ruler, and his masters—more than kings,
and less than men. After having exhausted all the different modes of election,
without finding one to suit their purpose, they are still amazed, and still bent
on seeking further; as if the evil they remark did not originate in the
constitution of the country far more than in that of the electoral body. It is,
indeed, difficult to conceive how men who have entirely given up the habit of
self-government should succeed in making a proper choice of those by whom they
are to be governed; and no one will ever believe that a liberal, wise, and
energetic government can spring from the suffrages of a subservient people. A
constitution, which should be republican in its head and ultra-monarchical in
all its other parts, has ever appeared to me to be a short-lived monster. The
vices of rulers and the ineptitude of the people would speedily bring about its
ruin; and the nation, weary of its representatives and of itself, would create
freer institutions, or soon return to stretch itself at the feet of a single
master.
b
[ See Appendix Z.]
Chapter VII: Continuation Of The Preceding Chapters
I believe that it is easier to establish an absolute and despotic government
amongst a people in which the conditions of society are equal, than amongst any
other; and I think that if such a government were once established amongst such
a people, it would not only oppress men, but would eventually strip each of them
of several of the highest qualities of humanity. Despotism therefore appears to
me peculiarly to be dreaded in democratic ages. I should have loved freedom, I
believe, at all times, but in the time in which we live I am ready to worship
it. On the other hand, I am persuaded that all who shall attempt, in the ages
upon which we are entering, to base freedom upon aristocratic privilege, will
fail—that all who shall attempt to draw and to retain authority within a single
class, will fail. At the present day no ruler is skilful or strong enough to
found a despotism, by re-establishing permanent distinctions of rank amongst his
subjects: no legislator is wise or powerful enough to preserve free
institutions, if he does not take equality for his first principle and his
watchword. All those of our contemporaries who would establish or secure the
independence and the dignity of their fellow-men, must show themselves the
friends of equality; and the only worthy means of showing themselves as such, is
to be so: upon this depends the success of their holy enterprise. Thus the
question is not how to reconstruct aristocratic society, but how to make liberty
proceed out of that democratic state of society in which God has placed us.
These two truths appear to me simple, clear, and fertile in consequences; and
they naturally lead me to consider what kind of free government can be
established amongst a people in which social conditions are equal. It results
from the very constitution of democratic nations and from their necessities,
that the power of government amongst them must be more uniform, more
centralized, more extensive, more searching, and more efficient than in other
countries. Society at large is naturally stronger and more active, individuals
more subordinate and weak; the former does more, the latter less; and this is
inevitably the case. It is not therefore to be expected that the range of
private independence will ever be as extensive in democratic as in aristocratic
countries—nor is this to be desired; for, amongst aristocratic nations, the mass
is often sacrificed to the individual, and the prosperity of the greater number
to the greatness of the few. It is both necessary and desirable that the
government of a democratic people should be active and powerful: and our object
should not be to render it weak or indolent, but solely to prevent it from
abusing its aptitude and its strength.
The circumstance which most contributed to secure the independence of private
persons in aristocratic ages, was, that the supreme power did not affect to take
upon itself alone the government and administration of the community; those
functions were necessarily partially left to the members of the aristocracy: so
that as the supreme power was always divided, it never weighed with its whole
weight and in the same manner on each individual. Not only did the government
not perform everything by its immediate agency; but as most of the agents who
discharged its duties derived their power not from the State, but from the
circumstance of their birth, they were not perpetually under its control. The
government could not make or unmake them in an instant, at pleasure, nor bend
them in strict uniformity to its slightest caprice—this was an additional
guarantee of private independence. I readily admit that recourse cannot be had
to the same means at the present time: but I discover certain democratic
expedients which may be substituted for them. Instead of vesting in the
government alone all the administrative powers of which corporations and nobles
have been deprived, a portion of them may be entrusted to secondary public
bodies, temporarily composed of private citizens: thus the liberty of private
persons will be more secure, and their equality will not be diminished.
The Americans, who care less for words than the French, still designate by the
name of "county" the largest of their administrative districts: but the duties
of the count or lord-lieutenant are in part performed by a provincial assembly.
At a period of equality like our own it would be unjust and unreasonable to
institute hereditary officers; but there is nothing to prevent us from
substituting elective public officers to a certain extent. Election is a
democratic expedient which insures the independence of the public officer in
relation to the government, as much and even more than hereditary rank can
insure it amongst aristocratic nations. Aristocratic countries abound in wealthy
and influential persons who are competent to provide for themselves, and who
cannot be easily or secretly oppressed: such persons restrain a government
within general habits of moderation and reserve. I am very well aware that
democratic countries contain no such persons naturally; but something analogous
to them may be created by artificial means. I firmly believe that an aristocracy
cannot again be founded in the world; but I think that private citizens, by
combining together, may constitute bodies of great wealth, influence, and
strength, corresponding to the persons of an aristocracy. By this means many of
the greatest political advantages of aristocracy would be obtained without its
injustice or its dangers. An association for political, commercial, or
manufacturing purposes, or even for those of science and literature, is a
powerful and enlightened member of the community, which cannot be disposed of at
pleasure, or oppressed without remonstrance; and which, by defending its own
rights against the encroachments of the government, saves the common liberties
of the country.
In periods of aristocracy every man is always bound so closely to many of his
fellow-citizens, that he cannot be assailed without their coming to his
assistance. In ages of equality every man naturally stands alone; he has no
hereditary friends whose co-operation he may demand—no class upon whose sympathy
he may rely: he is easily got rid of, and he is trampled on with impunity. At
the present time, an oppressed member of the community has therefore only one
method of self-defence—he may appeal to the whole nation; and if the whole
nation is deaf to his complaint, he may appeal to mankind: the only means he has
of making this appeal is by the press. Thus the liberty of the press is
infinitely more valuable amongst democratic nations than amongst all others; it
is the only cure for the evils which equality may produce. Equality sets men
apart and weakens them; but the press places a powerful weapon within every
man's reach, which the weakest and loneliest of them all may use. Equality
deprives a man of the support of his connections; but the press enables him to
summon all his fellow-countrymen and all his fellow-men to his assistance.
Printing has accelerated the progress of equality, and it is also one of its
best correctives.
I think that men living in aristocracies may, strictly speaking, do without the
liberty of the press: but such is not the case with those who live in democratic
countries. To protect their personal independence I trust not to great political
assemblies, to parliamentary privilege, or to the assertion of popular
sovereignty. All these things may, to a certain extent, be reconciled with
personal servitude—but that servitude cannot be complete if the press is free:
the press is the chiefest democratic instrument of freedom.
Something analogous may be said of the judicial power. It is a part of the
essence of judicial power to attend to private interests, and to fix itself with
predilection on minute objects submitted to its observation; another essential
quality of judicial power is never to volunteer its assistance to the oppressed,
but always to be at the disposal of the humblest of those who solicit it; their
complaint, however feeble they may themselves be, will force itself upon the ear
of justice and claim redress, for this is inherent in the very constitution of
the courts of justice. A power of this kind is therefore peculiarly adapted to
the wants of freedom, at a time when the eye and finger of the government are
constantly intruding into the minutest details of human actions, and when
private persons are at once too weak to protect themselves, and too much
isolated for them to reckon upon the assistance of their fellows. The strength
of the courts of law has ever been the greatest security which can be offered to
personal independence; but this is more especially the case in democratic ages:
private rights and interests are in constant danger, if the judicial power does
not grow more extensive and more strong to keep pace with the growing equality
of conditions.
Equality awakens in men several propensities extremely dangerous to freedom, to
which the attention of the legislator ought constantly to be directed. I shall
only remind the reader of the most important amongst them. Men living in
democratic ages do not readily comprehend the utility of forms: they feel an
instinctive contempt for them—I have elsewhere shown for what reasons. Forms
excite their contempt and often their hatred; as they commonly aspire to none
but easy and present gratifications, they rush onwards to the object of their
desires, and the slightest delay exasperates them. This same temper, carried
with them into political life, renders them hostile to forms, which perpetually
retard or arrest them in some of their projects. Yet this objection which the
men of democracies make to forms is the very thing which renders forms so useful
to freedom; for their chief merit is to serve as a barrier between the strong
and the weak, the ruler and the people, to retard the one, and give the other
time to look about him. Forms become more necessary in proportion as the
government becomes more active and more powerful, whilst private persons are
becoming more indolent and more feeble. Thus democratic nations naturally stand
more in need of forms than other nations, and they naturally respect them less.
This deserves most serious attention. Nothing is more pitiful than the arrogant
disdain of most of our contemporaries for questions of form; for the smallest
questions of form have acquired in our time an importance which they never had
before: many of the greatest interests of mankind depend upon them. I think that
if the statesmen of aristocratic ages could sometimes contemn forms with
impunity, and frequently rise above them, the statesmen to whom the government
of nations is now confided ought to treat the very least among them with
respect, and not neglect them without imperious necessity. In aristocracies the
observance of forms was superstitious; amongst us they ought to be kept with a
deliberate and enlightened deference.
Another tendency, which is extremely natural to democratic nations and extremely
dangerous, is that which leads them ta despise and undervalue the rights of
private persons. The attachment which men feel to a right, and the respect which
they display for it, is generally proportioned to its importance, or to the
length of time during which they have enjoyed it. The rights of private persons
amongst democratic nations are commonly of small importance, of recent growth,
and extremely precarious—the consequence is that they are often sacrificed
without regret, and almost always violated without remorse. But it happens that
at the same period and amongst the same nations in which men conceive a natural
contempt for the rights of private persons, the rights of society at large are
naturally extended and consolidated: in other words, men become less attached to
private rights at the very time at which it would be most necessary to retain
and to defend what little remains of them. It is therefore most especially in
the present democratic ages, that the true friends of the liberty and the
greatness of man ought constantly to be on the alert to prevent the power of
government from lightly sacrificing the private rights of individuals to the
general execution of its designs. At such times no citizen is so obscure that it
is not very dangerous to allow him to be oppressed—no private rights are so
unimportant that they can be surrendered with impunity to the caprices of a
government. The reason is plain:—if the private right of an individual is
violated at a time when the human mind is fully impressed with the importance
and the sanctity of such rights, the injury done is confined to the individual
whose right is infringed; but to violate such a right, at the present day, is
deeply to corrupt the manners of the nation and to put the whole community in
jeopardy, because the very notion of this kind of right constantly tends amongst
us to be impaired and lost.
There are certain habits, certain notions, and certain vices which are peculiar
to a state of revolution, and which a protracted revolution cannot fail to
engender and to propagate, whatever be, in other respects, its character, its
purpose, and the scene on which it takes place. When any nation has, within a
short space of time, repeatedly varied its rulers, its opinions, and its laws,
the men of whom it is composed eventually contract a taste for change, and grow
accustomed to see all changes effected by sudden violence. Thus they naturally
conceive a contempt for forms which daily prove ineffectual; and they do not
support without impatience the dominion of rules which they have so often seen
infringed. As the ordinary notions of equity and morality no longer suffice to
explain and justify all the innovations daily begotten by a revolution, the
principle of public utility is called in, the doctrine of political necessity is
conjured up, and men accustom themselves to sacrifice private interests without
scruple, and to trample on the rights of individuals in order more speedily to
accomplish any public purpose.
These habits and notions, which I shall call revolutionary, because all
revolutions produce them, occur in aristocracies just as much as amongst
democratic nations; but amongst the former they are often less powerful and
always less lasting, because there they meet with habits, notions, defects, and
impediments, which counteract them: they consequently disappear as soon as the
revolution is terminated, and the nation reverts to its former political
courses. This is not always the case in democratic countries, in which it is
ever to be feared that revolutionary tendencies, becoming more gentle and more
regular, without entirely disappearing from society, will be gradually
transformed into habits of subjection to the administrative authority of the
government. I know of no countries in which revolutions re more dangerous than
in democratic countries; because, independently of the accidental and transient
evils which must always attend them, they may always create some evils which are
permanent and unending. I believe that there are such things as justifiable
resistance and legitimate rebellion: I do not therefore assert, as an absolute
proposition, that the men of democratic ages ought never to make revolutions;
but I think that they have especial reason to hesitate before they embark in
them, and that it is far better to endure many grievances in their present
condition than to have recourse to so perilous a remedy.
I shall conclude by one general idea, which comprises not only all the
particular ideas which have been expressed in the present chapter, but also most
of those which it is the object of this book to treat of. In the ages of
aristocracy which preceded our own, there were private persons of great power,
and a social authority of extreme weakness. The outline of society itself was
not easily discernible, and constantly confounded with the different powers by
which the community was ruled. The principal efforts of the men of those times
were required to strengthen, aggrandize, and secure the supreme power; and on
the other hand, to circumscribe individual independence within narrower limits,
and to subject private interests to the interests of the public. Other perils
and other cares await the men of our age. Amongst the greater part of modern
nations, the government, whatever may be its origin, its constitution, or its
name, has become almost omnipotent, and private persons are falling, more and
more, into the lowest stage of weakness and dependence. In olden society
everything was different; unity and uniformity were nowhere to be met with. In
modern society everything threatens to become so much alike, that the peculiar
characteristics of each individual will soon be entirely lost in the general
aspect of the world. Our forefathers were ever prone to make an improper use of
the notion, that private rights ought to be respected; and we are naturally
prone on the other hand to exaggerate the idea that the interest of a private
individual ought always to bend to the interest of the many. The political world
is metamorphosed: new remedies must henceforth be sought for new disorders. To
lay down extensive, but distinct and settled limits, to the action of the
government; to confer certain rights on private persons, and to secure to them
the undisputed enjoyment of those rights; to enable individual man to maintain
whatever independence, strength, and original power he still possesses; to raise
him by the side of society at large, and uphold him in that position—these
appear to me the main objects of legislators in the ages upon which we are now
entering. It would seem as if the rulers of our time sought only to use men in
order to make things great; I wish that they would try a little more to make
great men; that they would set less value on the work, and more upon the
workman; that they would never forget that a nation cannot long remain strong
when every man belonging to it is individually weak, and that no form or
combination of social polity has yet been devised, to make an energetic people
out of a community of pusillanimous and enfeebled citizens.
I trace amongst our contemporaries two contrary notions which are equally
injurious. One set of men can perceive nothing in the principle of equality but
the anarchical tendencies which it engenders: they dread their own free
agency—they fear themselves. Other thinkers, less numerous but more enlightened,
take a different view: besides that track which starts from the principle of
equality to terminate in anarchy, they have at last discovered the road which
seems to lead men to inevitable servitude. They shape their souls beforehand to
this necessary condition; and, despairing of remaining free, they already do
obeisance in their hearts to the master who is soon to appear. The former
abandon freedom, because they think it dangerous; the latter, because they hold
it to be impossible. If I had entertained the latter conviction, I should not
have written this book, but I should have confined myself to deploring in secret
the destiny of mankind. I have sought to point out the dangers to which the
principle of equality exposes the independence of man, because I firmly believe
that these dangers are the most formidable, as well as the least foreseen, of
all those which futurity holds in store: but I do not think that they are
insurmountable. The men who live in the democratic ages upon which we are
entering have naturally a taste for independence: they are naturally impatient
of regulation, and they are wearied by the permanence even of the condition they
themselves prefer. They are fond of power; but they are prone to despise and
hate those who wield it, and they easily elude its grasp by their own mobility
and insignificance. These propensities will always manifest themselves, because
they originate in the groundwork of society, which will undergo no change: for a
long time they will prevent the establishment of any despotism, and they will
furnish fresh weapons to each succeeding generation which shall struggle in
favor of the liberty of mankind. Let us then look forward to the future with
that salutary fear which makes men keep watch and ward for freedom, not with
that faint and idle terror which depresses and enervates the heart.
Chapter VIII: General Survey Of The Subject
Before I close forever the theme that has detained me so long, I would fain take
a parting survey of all the various characteristics of modern society, and
appreciate at last the general influence to be exercised by the principle of
equality upon the fate of mankind; but I am stopped by the difficulty of the
task, and in presence of so great an object my sight is troubled, and my reason
fails. The society of the modern world which I have sought to delineate, and
which I seek to judge, has but just come into existence. Time has not yet shaped
it into perfect form: the great revolution by which it has been created is not
yet over: and amidst the occurrences of our time, it is almost impossible to
discern what will pass away with the revolution itself, and what will survive
its close. The world which is rising into existence is still half encumbered by
the remains of the world which is waning into decay; and amidst the vast
perplexity of human affairs, none can say how much of ancient institutions and
former manners will remain, or how much will completely disappear. Although the
revolution which is taking place in the social condition, the laws, the
opinions, and the feelings of men, is still very far from being terminated, yet
its results already admit of no comparison with anything that the world has ever
before witnessed. I go back from age to age up to the remotest antiquity; but I
find no parallel to what is occurring before my eyes: as the past has ceased to
throw its light upon the future, the mind of man wanders in obscurity.
Nevertheless, in the midst of a prospect so wide, so novel and so confused, some
of the more prominent characteristics may already be discerned and pointed out.
The good things and the evils of life are more equally distributed in the world:
great wealth tends to disappear, the number of small fortunes to increase;
desires and gratifications are multiplied, but extraordinary prosperity and
irremediable penury are alike unknown. The sentiment of ambition is universal,
but the scope of ambition is seldom vast. Each individual stands apart in
solitary weakness; but society at large is active, provident, and powerful: the
performances of private persons are insignificant, those of the State immense.
There is little energy of character; but manners are mild, and laws humane. If
there be few instances of exalted heroism or of virtues of the highest,
brightest, and purest temper, men's habits are regular, violence is rare, and
cruelty almost unknown. Human existence becomes longer, and property more
secure: life is not adorned with brilliant trophies, but it is extremely easy
and tranquil. Few pleasures are either very refined or very coarse; and highly
polished manners are as uncommon as great brutality of tastes. Neither men of
great learning, nor extremely ignorant communities, are to be met with; genius
becomes more rare, information more diffused. The human mind is impelled by the
small efforts of all mankind combined together, not by the strenuous activity of
certain men. There is less perfection, but more abundance, in all the
productions of the arts. The ties of race, of rank, and of country are relaxed;
the great bond of humanity is strengthened. If I endeavor to find out the most
general and the most prominent of all these different characteristics, I shall
have occasion to perceive, that what is taking place in men's fortunes manifests
itself under a thousand other forms. Almost all extremes are softened or
blunted: all that was most prominent is superseded by some mean term, at once
less lofty and less low, less brilliant and less obscure, than what before
existed in the world.
When I survey this countless multitude of beings, shaped in each other's
likeness, amidst whom nothing rises and nothing falls, the sight of such
universal uniformity saddens and chills me, and I am tempted to regret that
state of society which has ceased to be. When the world was full of men of great
importance and extreme insignificance, of great wealth and extreme poverty, of
great learning and extreme ignorance, I turned aside from the latter to fix my
observation on the former alone, who gratified my sympathies. But I admit that
this gratification arose from my own weakness: it is because I am unable to see
at once all that is around me, that I am allowed thus to select and separate the
objects of my predilection from among so many others. Such is not the case with
that almighty and eternal Being whose gaze necessarily includes the whole of
created things, and who surveys distinctly, though at once, mankind and man. We
may naturally believe that it is not the singular prosperity of the few, but the
greater well-being of all, which is most pleasing in the sight of the Creator
and Preserver of men. What appears to me to be man's decline, is to His eye
advancement; what afflicts me is acceptable to Him. A state of equality is
perhaps less elevated, but it is more just; and its justice constitutes its
greatness and its beauty. I would strive then to raise myself to this point of
the divine contemplation, and thence to view and to judge the concerns of men.
No man, upon the earth, can as yet affirm absolutely and generally, that the new
state of the world is better than its former one; but it is already easy to
perceive that this state is different. Some vices and some virtues were so
inherent in the constitution of an aristocratic nation, and are so opposite to
the character of a modern people, that they can never be infused into it; some
good tendencies and some bad propensities which were unknown to the former, are
natural to the latter; some ideas suggest themselves spontaneously to the
imagination of the one, which are utterly repugnant to the mind of the other.
They are like two distinct orders of human beings, each of which has its own
merits and defects, its own advantages and its own evils. Care must therefore be
taken not to judge the state of society, which is now coming into existence, by
notions derived from a state of society which no longer exists; for as these
states of society are exceedingly different in their structure, they cannot be
submitted to a just or fair comparison. It would be scarcely more reasonable to
require of our own contemporaries the peculiar virtues which originated in the
social condition of their forefathers, since that social condition is itself
fallen, and has drawn into one promiscuous ruin the good and evil which belonged
to it.
But as yet these things are imperfectly understood. I find that a great number
of my contemporaries undertake to make a certain selection from amongst the
institutions, the opinions, and the ideas which originated in the aristocratic
constitution of society as it was: a portion of these elements they would
willingly relinquish, but they would keep the remainder and transplant them into
their new world. I apprehend that such men are wasting their time and their
strength in virtuous but unprofitable efforts. The object is not to retain the
peculiar advantages which the inequality of conditions bestows upon mankind, but
to secure the new benefits which equality may supply. We have not to seek to
make ourselves like our progenitors, but to strive to work out that species of
greatness and happiness which is our own. For myself, who now look back from
this extreme limit of my task, and discover from afar, but at once, the various
objects which have attracted my more attentive investigation upon my way, I am
full of apprehensions and of hopes. I perceive mighty dangers which it is
possible to ward off—mighty evils which may be avoided or alleviated; and I
cling with a firmer hold to the belief, that for democratic nations to be
virtuous and prosperous they require but to will it. I am aware that many of my
contemporaries maintain that nations are never their own masters here below, and
that they necessarily obey some insurmountable and unintelligent power, arising
from anterior events, from their race, or from the soil and climate of their
country. Such principles are false and cowardly; such principles can never
produce aught but feeble men and pusillanimous nations. Providence has not
created mankind entirely independent or entirely free. It is true that around
every man a fatal circle is traced, beyond which he cannot pass; but within the
wide verge of that circle he is powerful and free: as it is with man, so with
communities. The nations of our time cannot prevent the conditions of men from
becoming equal; but it depends upon themselves whether the principle of equality
is to lead them to servitude or freedom, to knowledge or barbarism, to
prosperity or to wretchedness.
APPENDIX TO PARTS I. AND II.
Part I.
Appendix A
For information concerning all the countries of the West which have not been
visited by Europeans, consult the account of two expeditions undertaken at the
expense of Congress by Major Long. This traveller particularly mentions, on the
subject of the great American desert, that a line may be drawn nearly parallel
to the 20th degree of longitude *a (meridian of Washington), beginning from the
Red River and ending at the River Platte. From this imaginary line to the Rocky
Mountains, which bound the valley of the Mississippi on the west, lie immense
plains, which are almost entirely covered with sand, incapable of cultivation,
or scattered over with masses of granite. In summer, these plains are quite
destitute of water, and nothing is to be seen on them but herds of buffaloes and
wild horses. Some hordes of Indians are also found there, but in no great
numbers. Major Long was told that in travelling northwards from the River Platte
you find the same desert lying constantly on the left; but he was unable to
ascertain the truth of this report. However worthy of confidence may be the
narrative of Major Long, it must be remembered that he only passed through the
country of which he speaks, without deviating widely from the line which he had
traced out for his journey.
a
[ The 20th degree of longitude, according to the meridian of Washington, agrees
very nearly with the 97th degree on the meridian of Greenwich.]
Appendix B
South America, in the region between the tropics, produces an incredible
profusion of climbing plants, of which the flora of the Antilles alone presents
us with forty different species. Among the most graceful of these shrubs is the
passion-flower, which, according to Descourtiz, grows with such luxuriance in
the Antilles, as to climb trees by means of the tendrils with which it is
provided, and form moving bowers of rich and elegant festoons, decorated with
blue and purple flowers, and fragrant with perfume. The Mimosa scandens (Acacia
a grandes gousses) is a creeper of enormous and rapid growth, which climbs from
tree to tree, and sometimes covers more than half a league.
Appendix C
The languages which are spoken by the Indians of America, from the Pole to Cape
Horn, are said to be all formed upon the same model, and subject to the same
grammatical rules; whence it may fairly be concluded that all the Indian nations
sprang from the same stock. Each tribe of the American continent speaks a
different dialect; but the number of languages, properly so called, is very
small, a fact which tends to prove that the nations of the New World had not a
very remote origin. Moreover, the languages of America have a great degree of
regularity, from which it seems probable that the tribes which employ them had
not undergone any great revolutions, or been incorporated voluntarily or by
constraint, with foreign nations. For it is generally the union of several
languages into one which produces grammatical irregularities. It is not long
since the American languages, especially those of the North, first attracted the
serious attention of philologists, when the discovery was made that this idiom
of a barbarous people was the product of a complicated system of ideas and very
learned combinations. These languages were found to be very rich, and great
pains had been taken at their formation to render them agreeable to the ear. The
grammatical system of the Americans differs from all others in several points,
but especially in the following:—Some nations of Europe, amongst others the
Germans, have the power of combining at pleasure different expressions, and thus
giving a complex sense to certain words. The Indians have given a most
surprising extension to this power, so as to arrive at the means of connecting a
great number of ideas with a single term. This will be easily understood with
the help of an example quoted by Mr. Duponceau, in the "Memoirs of the
Philosophical Society of America": A Delaware woman playing with a cat or a
young dog, says this writer, is heard to pronounce the word kuligatschis, which
is thus composed: k is the sign of the second person, and signifies "thou" or
"thy"; uli is a part of the word wulit, which signifies "beautiful," "pretty";
gat is another fragment, of the word wichgat, which means "paw"; and, lastly,
schis is a diminutive giving the idea of smallness. Thus in one word the Indian
woman has expressed "Thy pretty little paw." Take another example of the
felicity with which the savages of America have composed their words. A young
man of Delaware is called pilape. This word is formed from pilsit, "chaste,"
"innocent"; and lenape, "man"; viz., "man in his purity and innocence." This
facility of combining words is most remarkable in the strange formation of their
verbs. The most complex action is often expressed by a single verb, which serves
to convey all the shades of an idea by the modification of its construction.
Those who may wish to examine more in detail this subject, which I have only
glanced at superficially, should read:—
1. The correspondence of Mr. Duponceau and the Rev. Mr. Hecwelder relative to
the Indian languages, which is to be found in the first volume of the "Memoirs
of the Philosophical Society of America," published at Philadelphia, 1819, by
Abraham Small; vol. i. p. 356-464.
2. The "Grammar of the Delaware or the Lenape Language," by Geiberger, and the
preface of Mr. Duponceau. All these are in the same collection, vol. iii.
3. An excellent account of these works, which is at the end of the sixth volume
of the American Encyclopaedia.
Appendix D
See in Charlevoix, vol. i. p. 235, the history of the first war which the French
inhabitants of Canada carried on, in 1610, against the Iroquois. The latter,
armed with bows and arrows, offered a desperate resistance to the French and
their allies. Charlevoix is not a great painter, yet he exhibits clearly enough,
in this narrative, the contrast between the European manners and those of
savages, as well as the different way in which the two races of men understood
the sense of honor. When the French, says he, seized upon the beaver-skins which
covered the Indians who had fallen, the Hurons, their allies, were greatly
offended at this proceeding; but without hesitation they set to work in their
usual manner, inflicting horrid cruelties upon the prisoners, and devouring one
of those who had been killed, which made the Frenchmen shudder. The barbarians
prided themselves upon a scrupulousness which they were surprised at not finding
in our nation, and could not understand that there was less to reprehend in the
stripping of dead bodies than in the devouring of their flesh like wild beasts.
Charlevoix, in another place (vol. i. p. 230), thus describes the first torture
of which Champlain was an eyewitness, and the return of the Hurons into their
own village. Having proceeded about eight leagues, says he, our allies halted;
and having singled out one of their captives, they reproached him with all the
cruelties which he had practised upon the warriors of their nation who had
fallen into his hands, and told him that he might expect to be treated in like
manner; adding, that if he had any spirit he would prove it by singing. He
immediately chanted forth his death-song, and then his war-song, and all the
songs he knew, "but in a very mournful strain," says Champlain, who was not then
aware that all savage music has a melancholy character. The tortures which
succeeded, accompanied by all the horrors which we shall mention hereafter,
terrified the French, who made every effort to put a stop to them, but in vain.
The following night, one of the Hurons having dreamt that they were pursued, the
retreat was changed to a real flight, and the savages never stopped until they
were out of the reach of danger. The moment they perceived the cabins of their
own village, they cut themselves long sticks, to which they fastened the scalps
which had fallen to their share, and carried them in triumph. At this sight, the
women swam to the canoes, where they received the bloody scalps from the hands
of their husbands, and tied them round their necks. The warriors offered one of
these horrible trophies to Champlain; they also presented him with some bows and
arrows—the only spoils of the Iroquois which they had ventured to
seize—entreating him to show them to the King of France. Champlain lived a whole
winter quite alone among these barbarians, without being under any alarm for his
person or property.
Appendix E
Although the Puritanical strictness which presided over the establishment of the
English colonies in America is now much relaxed, remarkable traces of it are
still found in their habits and their laws. In 1792, at the very time when the
anti-Christian republic of France began its ephemeral existence, the legislative
body of Massachusetts promulgated the following law, to compel the citizens to
observe the Sabbath. We give the preamble and the principal articles of this
law, which is worthy of the reader's attention: "Whereas," says the legislator,
"the observation of the Sunday is an affair of public interest; inasmuch as it
produces a necessary suspension of labor, leads men to reflect upon the duties
of life, and the errors to which human nature is liable, and provides for the
public and private worship of God, the creator and governor of the universe, and
for the performance of such acts of charity as are the ornament and comfort of
Christian societies:—Whereas irreligious or light-minded persons, forgetting the
duties which the Sabbath imposes, and the benefits which these duties confer on
society, are known to profane its sanctity, by following their pleasures or
their affairs; this way of acting being contrary to their own interest as
Christians, and calculated to annoy those who do not follow their example; being
also of great injury to society at large, by spreading a taste for dissipation
and dissolute manners; Be it enacted and ordained by the Governor, Council, and
Representatives convened in General Court of Assembly, that all and every person
and persons shall on that day carefully apply themselves to the duties of
religion and piety, that no tradesman or labourer shall exercise his ordinary
calling, and that no game or recreation shall be used on the Lord's Day, upon
pain of forfeiting ten shillings.
"That no one shall travel on that day, or any part thereof, under pain of
forfeiting twenty shillings; that no vessel shall leave a harbour of the colony;
that no persons shall keep outside the meeting-house during the time of public
worship, or profane the time by playing or talking, on penalty of five
shillings.
"Public-houses shall not entertain any other than strangers or lodgers, under
penalty of five shillings for every person found drinking and abiding therein.
"Any person in health, who, without sufficient reason, shall omit to worship God
in public during three months, shall be condemned to a fine of ten shillings.
"Any person guilty of misbehaviour in a place of public worship, shall be fined
from five to forty shillings.
"These laws are to be enforced by the tything-men of each township, who have
authority to visit public-houses on the Sunday. The innkeeper who shall refuse
them admittance, shall be fined forty shillings for such offence.
"The tything-men are to stop travellers, and require of them their reason for
being on the road on Sunday; anyone refusing to answer, shall be sentenced to
pay a fine not exceeding five pounds sterling. If the reason given by the
traveller be not deemed by the tything-man sufficient, he may bring the
traveller before the justice of the peace of the district." (Law of March 8,
1792; General Laws of Massachusetts, vol. i. p. 410.)
On March 11, 1797, a new law increased the amount of fines, half of which was to
be given to the informer. (Same collection, vol. ii. p. 525.) On February 16,
1816, a new law confirmed these same measures. (Same collection, vol. ii. p.
405.) Similar enactments exist in the laws of the State of New York, revised in
1827 and 1828. (See Revised Statutes, Part I. chapter 20, p. 675.) In these it
is declared that no one is allowed on the Sabbath to sport, to fish, to play at
games, or to frequent houses where liquor is sold. No one can travel, except in
case of necessity. And this is not the only trace which the religious strictness
and austere manners of the first emigrants have left behind them in the American
laws. In the Revised Statutes of the State of New York, vol. i. p. 662, is the
following clause:—
"Whoever shall win or lose in the space of twenty-four hours, by gaming or
betting, the sum of twenty-five dollars, shall be found guilty of a
misdemeanour, and upon conviction shall be condemned to pay a fine equal to at
least five times the value of the sum lost or won; which shall be paid to the
inspector of the poor of the township. He that loses twenty-five dollars or more
may bring an action to recover them; and if he neglects to do so the inspector
of the poor may prosecute the winner, and oblige him to pay into the poor's box
both the sum he has gained and three times as much besides."
The laws we quote from are of recent date; but they are unintelligible without
going back to the very origin of the colonies. I have no doubt that in our days
the penal part of these laws is very rarely applied. Laws preserve their
inflexibility, long after the manners of a nation have yielded to the influence
of time. It is still true, however, that nothing strikes a foreigner on his
arrival in America more forcibly than the regard paid to the Sabbath. There is
one, in particular, of the large American cities, in which all social movements
begin to be suspended even on Saturday evening. You traverse its streets at the
hour at which you expect men in the middle of life to be engaged in business,
and young people in pleasure; and you meet with solitude and silence. Not only
have all ceased to work, but they appear to have ceased to exist. Neither the
movements of industry are heard, nor the accents of joy, nor even the confused
murmur which arises from the midst of a great city. Chains are hung across the
streets in the neighborhood of the churches; the half-closed shutters of the
houses scarcely admit a ray of sun into the dwellings of the citizens. Now and
then you perceive a solitary individual who glides silently along the deserted
streets and lanes. Next day, at early dawn, the rolling of carriages, the noise
of hammers, the cries of the population, begin to make themselves heard again.
The city is awake. An eager crowd hastens towards the resort of commerce and
industry; everything around you bespeaks motion, bustle, hurry. A feverish
activity succeeds to the lethargic stupor of yesterday; you might almost suppose
that they had but one day to acquire wealth and to enjoy it.
Appendix F
It is unnecessary for me to say, that in the chapter which has just been read, I
have not had the intention of giving a history of America. My only object was to
enable the reader to appreciate the influence which the opinions and manners of
the first emigrants had exercised upon the fate of the different colonies, and
of the Union in general. I have therefore confined myself to the quotation of a
few detached fragments. I do not know whether I am deceived, but it appears to
me that, by pursuing the path which I have merely pointed out, it would be easy
to present such pictures of the American republics as would not be unworthy the
attention of the public, and could not fail to suggest to the statesman matter
for reflection. Not being able to devote myself to this labor, I am anxious to
render it easy to others; and, for this purpose, I subjoin a short catalogue and
analysis of the works which seem to me the most important to consult.
At the head of the general documents which it would be advantageous to examine I
place the work entitled "An Historical Collection of State Papers, and other
authentic Documents, intended as Materials for a History of the United States of
America," by Ebenezer Hasard. The first volume of this compilation, which was
printed at Philadelphia in 1792, contains a literal copy of all the charters
granted by the Crown of England to the emigrants, as well as the principal acts
of the colonial governments, during the commencement of their existence. Amongst
other authentic documents, we here find a great many relating to the affairs of
New England and Virginia during this period. The second volume is almost
entirely devoted to the acts of the Confederation of 1643. This federal compact,
which was entered into by the colonies of New England with the view of resisting
the Indians, was the first instance of union afforded by the Anglo-Americans.
There were besides many other confederations of the same nature, before the
famous one of 1776, which brought about the independence of the colonies.
Each colony has, besides, its own historic monuments, some of which are
extremely curious; beginning with Virginia, the State which was first peopled.
The earliest historian of Virginia was its founder, Captain John Smith. Captain
Smith has left us an octavo volume, entitled "The generall Historie of Virginia
and New England, by Captain John Smith, sometymes Governor in those Countryes,
and Admirall of New England"; printed at London in 1627. The work is adorned
with curious maps and engravings of the time when it appeared; the narrative
extends from the year 1584 to 1626. Smith's work is highly and deservedly
esteemed. The author was one of the most celebrated adventurers of a period of
remarkable adventure; his book breathes that ardor for discovery, that spirit of
enterprise, which characterized the men of his time, when the manners of
chivalry were united to zeal for commerce, and made subservient to the
acquisition of wealth. But Captain Smith is most remarkable for uniting to the
virtues which characterized his contemporaries several qualities to which they
were generally strangers; his style is simple and concise, his narratives bear
the stamp of truth, and his descriptions are free from false ornament. This
author throws most valuable light upon the state and condition of the Indians at
the time when North America was first discovered.
The second historian to consult is Beverley, who commences his narrative with
the year 1585, and ends it with 1700. The first part of his book contains
historical documents, properly so called, relative to the infancy of the colony.
The second affords a most curious picture of the state of the Indians at this
remote period. The third conveys very clear ideas concerning the manners, social
conditions, laws, and political customs of the Virginians in the author's
lifetime. Beverley was a native of Virginia, which occasions him to say at the
beginning of his book, that he entreats his readers not to exercise their
critical severity upon it, since, having been born in the Indies, he does not
aspire to purity of language. Notwithstanding this colonial modesty, the author
shows throughout his book the impatience with which he endures the supremacy of
the mother-country. In this work of Beverley are also found numerous traces of
that spirit of civil liberty which animated the English colonies of America at
the time when he wrote. He also shows the dissensions which existed among them,
and retarded their independence. Beverley detests his Catholic neighbors of
Maryland even more than he hates the English government: his style is simple,
his narrative interesting, and apparently trustworthy.
I saw in America another work which ought to be consulted, entitled "The History
of Virginia," by William Stith. This book affords some curious details, but I
thought it long and diffuse. The most ancient as well as the best document to be
consulted on the history of Carolina, is a work in small quarto, entitled "The
History of Carolina," by John Lawson, printed at London in 1718. This work
contains, in the first part, a journey of discovery in the west of Carolina; the
account of which, given in the form of a journal, is in general confused and
superficial; but it contains a very striking description of the mortality caused
among the savages of that time both by the smallpox and the immoderate use of
brandy; with a curious picture of the corruption of manners prevalent amongst
them, which was increased by the presence of Europeans. The second part of
Lawson's book is taken up with a description of the physical condition of
Carolina, and its productions. In the third part, the author gives an
interesting account of the manners, customs, and government of the Indians at
that period. There is a good deal of talent and originality in this part of the
work. Lawson concludes his history with a copy of the charter granted to the
Carolinas in the reign of Charles II. The general tone of this work is light,
and often licentious, forming a perfect contrast to the solemn style of the
works published at the same period in New England. Lawson's history is extremely
scarce in America, and cannot be procured in Europe. There is, however, a copy
of it in the Royal Library at Paris.
From the southern extremity of the United States, I pass at once to the northern
limit; as the intermediate space was not peopled till a later period. I must
first point out a very curious compilation, entitled "Collection of the
Massachusetts Historical Society," printed for the first time at Boston in 1792,
and reprinted in 1806. The collection of which I speak, and which is continued
to the present day, contains a great number of very valuable documents relating
to the history of the different States in New England. Among them are letters
which have never been published, and authentic pieces which had been buried in
provincial archives. The whole work of Gookin, concerning the Indians, is
inserted there.
I have mentioned several times in the chapter to which this note relates, the
work of Nathaniel Norton entitled "New England's Memorial"; sufficiently,
perhaps, to prove that it deserves the attention of those who would be
conversant with the history of New England. This book is in octavo, and was
reprinted at Boston in 1826.
The most valuable and important authority which exists upon the history of New
England, is the work of the Rev. Cotton Mather, entitled "Magnalia Christi
Americana, or the Ecclesiastical History of New England, 1620-1698, 2 vols. 8vo,
reprinted at Hartford, United States, in 1820." *b The author divided his work
into seven books. The first presents the history of the events which prepared
and brought about the establishment of New England. The second contains the
lives of the first governors and chief magistrates who presided over the
country. The third is devoted to the lives and labors of the evangelical
ministers who, during the same period, had the care of souls. In the fourth the
author relates the institution and progress of the University of Cambridge
(Massachusetts). In the fifth he describes the principles and the discipline of
the Church of New England. The sixth is taken up in retracing certain facts,
which, in the opinion of Mather, prove the merciful interposition of Providence
in behalf of the inhabitants of New England. Lastly, in the seventh, the author
gives an account of the heresies and the troubles to which the Church of New
England was exposed. Cotton Mather was an evangelical minister who was born at
Boston, and passed his life there. His narratives are distinguished by the same
ardor and religious zeal which led to the foundation of the colonies of New
England. Traces of bad taste sometimes occur in his manner of writing; but he
interests, because he is full of enthusiasm. He is often intolerant, still
oftener credulous, but he never betrays an intention to deceive. Sometimes his
book contains fine passages, and true and profound reflections, such as the
following:—
"Before the arrival of the Puritans," says he (vol. i. chap. iv.), "there were
more than a few attempts of the English to people and improve the parts of New
England which were to the northward of New Plymouth; but the designs of those
attempts being aimed no higher than the advancement of some worldly interests, a
constant series of disasters has confounded them, until there was a plantation
erected upon the nobler designs of Christianity: and that plantation though it
has had more adversaries than perhaps any one upon earth, yet, having obtained
help from God, it continues to this day." Mather occasionally relieves the
austerity of his descriptions with images full of tender feeling: after having
spoken of an English lady whose religious ardor had brought her to America with
her husband, and who soon after sank under the fatigues and privations of exile,
he adds, "As for her virtuous husband, Isaac Johnson,
He tryed
To live without her, liked it not, and dyed."
b
[ A folio edition of this work was published in London in 1702.]
Mather's work gives an admirable picture of the time and country which he
describes. In his account of the motives which led the Puritans to seek an
asylum beyond seas, he says:—"The God of Heaven served, as it were, a summons
upon the spirits of his people in the English nation, stirring up the spirits of
thousands which never saw the faces of each other, with a most unanimous
inclination to leave all the pleasant accommodations of their native country,
and go over a terrible ocean, into a more terrible desert, for the pure
enjoyment of all his ordinances. It is now reasonable that, before we pass any
further, the reasons of his undertaking should be more exactly made known unto
posterity, especially unto the posterity of those that were the undertakers,
lest they come at length to forget and neglect the true interest of New England.
Wherefore I shall now transcribe some of them from a manuscript, wherein they
were then tendered unto consideration:
"General Considerations for the Plantation of New England
"First, It will be a service unto the Church of great consequence, to carry the
Gospel unto those parts of the world, and raise a bulwark against the kingdom of
Antichrist, which the Jesuits labour to rear up in all parts of the world.
"Secondly, All other Churches of Europe have been brought under desolations; and
it may be feared that the like judgments are coming upon us; and who knows but
God hath provided this place to be a refuge for many whom he means to save out
of the general destruction?
"Thirdly, The land grows weary of her inhabitants, insomuch that man, which is
the most precious of all creatures, is here more vile and base than the earth he
treads upon; children, neighbours, and friends, especially the poor, are counted
the greatest burdens, which, if things were right, would be the chiefest of
earthly blessings.
"Fourthly, We are grown to that intemperance in all excess of riot, as no mean
estate almost will suffice a man to keep sail with his equals, and he that fails
in it must live in scorn and contempt: hence it comes to pass, that all arts and
trades are carried in that deceitful manner and unrighteous course, as it is
almost impossible for a good upright man to maintain his constant charge and
live comfortably in them.
"Fifthly, The schools of learning and religion are so corrupted, as (besides the
unsupportable charge of education) most children, even the best, wittiest, and
of the fairest hopes, are perverted, corrupted, and utterly overthrown by the
multitude of evil examples and licentious behaviours in these seminaries.
"Sixthly, The whole earth is the Lord's garden, and he hath given it to the sons
of Adam, to be tilled and improved by them: why, then, should we stand starving
here for places of habitation, and in the meantime suffer whole countries, as
profitable for the use of man, to lie waste without any improvement?
"Seventhly, What can be a better or nobler work, and more worthy of a Christian,
than to erect and support a reformed particular Church in its infancy, and unite
our forces with such a company of faithful people, as by timely assistance may
grow stronger and prosper; but for want of it, may be put to great hazards, if
not be wholly ruined?
"Eighthly, If any such as are known to be godly, and live in wealth and
prosperity here, shall forsake all this to join with this reformed Church, and
with it run the hazard of an hard and mean condition, it will be an example of
great use, both for the removing of scandal and to give more life unto the faith
of God's people in their prayers for the plantation, and also to encourage
others to join the more willingly in it."
Further on, when he declares the principles of the Church of New England with
respect to morals, Mather inveighs with violence against the custom of drinking
healths at table, which he denounces as a pagan and abominable practice. He
proscribes with the same rigor all ornaments for the hair used by the female
sex, as well as their custom of having the arms and neck uncovered. In another
part of his work he relates several instances of witchcraft which had alarmed
New England. It is plain that the visible action of the devil in the affairs of
this world appeared to him an incontestable and evident fact.
This work of Cotton Mather displays, in many places, the spirit of civil liberty
and political independence which characterized the times in which he lived.
Their principles respecting government are discoverable at every page. Thus, for
instance, the inhabitants of Massachusetts, in the year 1630, ten years after
the foundation of Plymouth, are found to have devoted Pound 400 sterling to the
establishment of the University of Cambridge. In passing from the general
documents relative to the history of New England to those which describe the
several States comprised within its limits, I ought first to notice "The History
of the Colony of Massachusetts," by Hutchinson, Lieutenant-Governor of the
Massachusetts Province, 2 vols. 8vo. The history of Hutchinson, which I have
several times quoted in the chapter to which this note relates, commences in the
year 1628, and ends in 1750. Throughout the work there is a striking air of
truth and the greatest simplicity of style: it is full of minute details. The
best history to consult concerning Connecticut is that of Benjamin Trumbull,
entitled "A Complete History of Connecticut, Civil and Ecclesiastical,"
1630-1764, 2 vols. 8vo, printed in 1818 at New Haven. This history contains a
clear and calm account of all the events which happened in Connecticut during
the period given in the title. The author drew from the best sources, and his
narrative bears the stamp of truth. All that he says of the early days of
Connecticut is extremely curious. See especially the Constitution of 1639, vol.
i. ch. vi. p. 100; and also the Penal Laws of Connecticut, vol. i. ch. vii. p.
123.
"The History of New Hampshire," by Jeremy Belknap, is a work held in merited
estimation. It was printed at Boston in 1792, in 2 vols. 8vo. The third chapter
of the first volume is particularly worthy of attention for the valuable details
it affords on the political and religious principles of the Puritans, on the
causes of their emigration, and on their laws. The following curious quotation
is given from a sermon delivered in 1663:—"It concerneth New England always to
remember that they are a plantation religious, not a plantation of trade. The
profession of the purity of doctrine, worship, and discipline, is written upon
her forehead. Let merchants, and such as are increasing cent. per cent.,
remember this, that worldly gain was not the end and design of the people of New
England, but religion. And if any man among us make religion as twelve, and the
world as thirteen, such an one hath not the spirit of a true New Englishman."
The reader of Belknap will find in his work more general ideas, and more
strength of thought, than are to be met with in the American historians even to
the present day.
Among the Central States which deserve our attention for their remote origin,
New York and Pennsylvania are the foremost. The best history we have of the
former is entitled "A History of New York," by William Smith, printed at London
in 1757. Smith gives us important details of the wars between the French and
English in America. His is the best account of the famous confederation of the
Iroquois.
With respect to Pennsylvania, I cannot do better than point out the work of
Proud, entitled "The History of Pennsylvania, from the original Institution and
Settlement of that Province, under the first Proprietor and Governor, William
Penn, in 1681, till after the year 1742," by Robert Proud, 2 vols. 8vo, printed
at Philadelphia in 1797. This work is deserving of the especial attention of the
reader; it contains a mass of curious documents concerning Penn, the doctrine of
the Quakers, and the character, manners, and customs of the first inhabitants of
Pennsylvania. I need not add that among the most important documents relating to
this State are the works of Penn himself, and those of Franklin.
Part II.
Appendix G
We read in Jefferson's "Memoirs" as follows:—
"At the time of the first settlement of the English in Virginia, when land was
to be had for little or nothing, some provident persons having obtained large
grants of it, and being desirous of maintaining the splendor of their families,
entailed their property upon their descendants. The transmission of these
estates from generation to generation, to men who bore the same name, had the
effect of raising up a distinct class of families, who, possessing by law the
privilege of perpetuating their wealth, formed by these means a sort of
patrician order, distinguished by the grandeur and luxury of their
establishments. From this order it was that the King usually chose his
councillors of state." *c
c
[ This passage is extracted and translated from M. Conseil's work upon the life
of Jefferson, entitled "Melanges Politiques et Philosophiques de Jefferson."]
In the United States, the principal clauses of the English law respecting
descent have been universally rejected. The first rule that we follow, says Mr.
Kent, touching inheritance, is the following:—If a man dies intestate, his
property goes to his heirs in a direct line. If he has but one heir or heiress,
he or she succeeds to the whole. If there are several heirs of the same degree,
they divide the inheritance equally amongst them, without distinction of sex.
This rule was prescribed for the first time in the State of New York by a
statute of February 23, 1786. (See Revised Statutes, vol. iii. Appendix, p. 48.)
It has since then been adopted in the Revised Statutes of the same State. At the
present day this law holds good throughout the whole of the United States, with
the exception of the State of Vermont, where the male heir inherits a double
portion. (Kent's "Commentaries," vol. iv. p. 370.) Mr. Kent, in the same work,
vol. iv. p. 1-22, gives a historical account of American legislation on the
subject of entail: by this we learn that, previous to the Revolution, the
colonies followed the English law of entail. Estates tail were abolished in
Virginia in 1776, on a motion of Mr. Jefferson. They were suppressed in New York
in 1786, and have since been abolished in North Carolina, Kentucky, Tennessee,
Georgia, and Missouri. In Vermont, Indiana, Illinois, South Carolina, and
Louisiana, entail was never introduced. Those States which thought proper to
preserve the English law of entail, modified it in such a way as to deprive it
of its most aristocratic tendencies. "Our general principles on the subject of
government," says Mr. Kent, "tend to favor the free circulation of property."
It cannot fail to strike the French reader who studies the law of inheritance,
that on these questions the French legislation is infinitely more democratic
even than the American. The American law makes an equal division of the father's
property, but only in the case of his will not being known; "for every man,"
says the law, "in the State of New York (Revised Statutes, vol. iii. Appendix,
p. 51), has entire liberty, power, and authority, to dispose of his property by
will, to leave it entire, or divided in favor of any persons he chooses as his
heirs, provided he do not leave it to a political body or any corporation." The
French law obliges the testator to divide his property equally, or nearly so,
among his heirs. Most of the American republics still admit of entails, under
certain restrictions; but the French law prohibits entail in all cases. If the
social condition of the Americans is more democratic than that of the French,
the laws of the latter are the most democratic of the two. This may be explained
more easily than at first appears to be the case. In France, democracy is still
occupied in the work of destruction; in America, it reigns quietly over the
ruins it has made.
Appendix H
Summary Of The Qualifications Of Voters In The United States As They Existed In
1832
All the States agree in granting the right of voting at the age of twenty-one.
In all of them it is necessary to have resided for a certain time in the
district where the vote is given. This period varies from three months to two
years.
As to the qualification: in the State of Massachusetts it is necessary to have
an income of Pound 3 or a capital of Pound 60. In Rhode Island, a man must
possess landed property to the amount of $133.
In Connecticut, he must have a property which gives an income of $17. A year of
service in the militia also gives the elective privilege.
In New Jersey, an elector must have a property of Pound 50 a year.
In South Carolina and Maryland, the elector must possess fifty acres of land.
In Tennessee, he must possess some property.
In the States of Mississippi, Ohio, Georgia, Virginia, Pennsylvania, Delaware,
New York, the only necessary qualification for voting is that of paying the
taxes; and in most of the States, to serve in the militia is equivalent to the
payment of taxes. In Maine and New Hampshire any man can vote who is not on the
pauper list.
Lastly, in the States of Missouri, Alabama, Illinois, Louisiana, Indiana,
Kentucky, and Vermont, the conditions of voting have no reference to the
property of the elector.
I believe there is no other State besides that of North Carolina in which
different conditions are applied to the voting for the Senate and the electing
the House of Representatives. The electors of the former, in this case, should
possess in property fifty acres of land; to vote for the latter, nothing more is
required than to pay taxes.
Appendix I
The small number of custom-house officers employed in the United States,
compared with the extent of the coast, renders smuggling very easy;
notwithstanding which, it is less practised than elsewhere, because everybody
endeavors to repress it. In America there is no police for the prevention of
fires, and such accidents are more frequent than in Europe; but in general they
are more speedily extinguished, because the surrounding population is prompt in
lending assistance.
Appendix K
It is incorrect to assert that centralization was produced by the French
Revolution; the revolution brought it to perfection, but did not create it. The
mania for centralization and government regulations dates from the time when
jurists began to take a share in the government, in the time of Philippele-Bel;
ever since which period they have been on the increase. In the year 1775, M. de
Malesherbes, speaking in the name of the Cour des Aides, said to Louis XIV:— *d
d
[ See "Memoires pour servir a l'Histoire du Droit Public de la France en matiere
d'impots," p. 654, printed at Brussels in 1779.]
". . . Every corporation and every community of citizens retained the right of
administering its own affairs; a right which not only forms part of the
primitive constitution of the kingdom, but has a still higher origin; for it is
the right of nature, and of reason. Nevertheless, your subjects, Sire, have been
deprived of it; and we cannot refrain from saying that in this respect your
government has fallen into puerile extremes. From the time when powerful
ministers made it a political principle to prevent the convocation of a national
assembly, one consequence has succeeded another, until the deliberations of the
inhabitants of a village are declared null when they have not been authorized by
the Intendant. Of course, if the community has an expensive undertaking to carry
through, it must remain under the control of the sub-delegate of the Intendant,
and, consequently, follow the plan he proposes, employ his favorite workmen, pay
them according to his pleasure; and if an action at law is deemed necessary, the
Intendant's permission must be obtained. The cause must be pleaded before this
first tribunal, previous to its being carried into a public court; and if the
opinion of the Intendant is opposed to that of the inhabitants, or if their
adversary enjoys his favor, the community is deprived of the power of defending
its rights. Such are the means, Sire, which have been exerted to extinguish the
municipal spirit in France; and to stifle, if possible, the opinions of the
citizens. The nation may be said to lie under an interdict, and to be in
wardship under guardians." What could be said more to the purpose at the present
day, when the Revolution has achieved what are called its victories in
centralization?
In 1789, Jefferson wrote from Paris to one of his friends:—"There is no country
where the mania for over-governing has taken deeper root than in France, or been
the source of greater mischief." (Letter to Madison, August 28, 1789.) The fact
is, that for several centuries past the central power of France has done
everything it could to extend central administration; it has acknowledged no
other limits than its own strength. The central power to which the Revolution
gave birth made more rapid advances than any of its predecessors, because it was
stronger and wiser than they had been; Louis XIV committed the welfare of such
communities to the caprice of an intendant; Napoleon left them to that of the
Minister. The same principle governed both, though its consequences were more or
less remote.
Appendix L
The immutability of the constitution of France is a necessary consequence of the
laws of that country. To begin with the most important of all the laws, that
which decides the order of succession to the throne; what can be more immutable
in its principle than a political order founded upon the natural succession of
father to son? In 1814, Louis XVIII had established the perpetual law of
hereditary succession in favor of his own family. The individuals who regulated
the consequences of the Revolution of 1830 followed his example; they merely
established the perpetuity of the law in favor of another family. In this
respect they imitated the Chancellor Meaupou, who, when he erected the new
Parliament upon the ruins of the old, took care to declare in the same ordinance
that the rights of the new magistrates should be as inalienable as those of
their predecessors had been. The laws of 1830, like those of 1814, point out no
way of changing the constitution: and it is evident that the ordinary means of
legislation are insufficient for this purpose. As the King, the Peers, and the
Deputies, all derive their authority from the constitution, these three powers
united cannot alter a law by virtue of which alone they govern. Out of the pale
of the constitution they are nothing: where, when, could they take their stand
to effect a change in its provisions? The alternative is clear: either their
efforts are powerless against the charter, which continues to exist in spite of
them, in which case they only reign in the name of the charter; or they succeed
in changing the charter, and then, the law by which they existed being annulled,
they themselves cease to exist. By destroying the charter, they destroy
themselves. This is much more evident in the laws of 1830 than in those of 1814.
In 1814, the royal prerogative took its stand above and beyond the constitution;
but in 1830, it was avowedly created by, and dependent on, the constitution. A
part, therefore, of the French constitution is immutable, because it is united
to the destiny of a family; and the body of the constitution is equally
immutable, because there appear to be no legal means of changing it. These
remarks are not applicable to England. That country having no written
constitution, who can assert when its constitution is changed?
Appendix M
The most esteemed authors who have written upon the English Constitution agree
with each other in establishing the omnipotence of the Parliament. Delolme says:
"It is a fundamental principle with the English lawyers, that Parliament can do
everything except making a woman a man, or a man a woman." Blackstone expresses
himself more in detail, if not more energetically, than Delolme, in the
following terms:—"The power and jurisdiction of Parliament, says Sir Edward Coke
(4 Inst. 36), 'is so transcendent and absolute that it cannot be confined,
either for causes or persons, within any bounds.' And of this High Court, he
adds, may be truly said, 'Si antiquitatem spectes, est vetustissima; si
dignitatem, est honoratissima; si jurisdictionem, est capacissima.' It hath
sovereign and uncontrollable authority in the making, confirming, enlarging,
restraining, abrogating, repealing, reviving, and expounding of laws, concerning
matters of all possible denominations; ecclesiastical or temporal; civil,
military, maritime, or criminal; this being the place where that absolute
despotic power which must, in all governments, reside somewhere, is intrusted by
the constitution of these kingdoms. All mischiefs and grievances, operations and
remedies, that transcend the ordinary course of the laws, are within the reach
of this extraordinary tribunal. It can regulate or new-model the succession to
the Crown; as was done in the reign of Henry VIII and William III. It can alter
the established religion of the land; as was done in a variety of instances in
the reigns of King Henry VIII and his three children. It can change and create
afresh even the constitution of the kingdom, and of parliaments themselves; as
was done by the Act of Union and the several statutes for triennial and
septennial elections. It can, in short, do everything that is not naturally
impossible to be done; and, therefore some have not scrupled to call its power,
by a figure rather too bold, the omnipotence of Parliament."
Appendix N
There is no question upon which the American constitutions agree more fully than
upon that of political jurisdiction. All the constitutions which take cognizance
of this matter, give to the House of Delegates the exclusive right of
impeachment; excepting only the constitution of North Carolina, which grants the
same privilege to grand juries. (Article 23.) Almost all the constitutions give
the exclusive right of pronouncing sentence to the Senate, or to the Assembly
which occupies its place.
The only punishments which the political tribunals can inflict are removal, or
the interdiction of public functions for the future. There is no other
constitution but that of Virginia (p. 152), which enables them to inflict every
kind of punishment. The crimes which are subject to political jurisdiction are,
in the federal constitution (Section 4, Art. 1); in that of Indiana (Art. 3,
paragraphs 23 and 24); of New York (Art. 5); of Delaware (Art. 5), high treason,
bribery, and other high crimes or offences. In the Constitution of Massachusetts
(Chap. I, Section 2); that of North Carolina (Art. 23); of Virginia (p. 252),
misconduct and maladministration. In the constitution of New Hampshire (p. 105),
corruption, intrigue, and maladministration. In Vermont (Chap. 2, Art. 24),
maladministration. In South Carolina (Art. 5); Kentucky (Art. 5); Tennessee
(Art. 4); Ohio (Art. 1, 23, 24); Louisiana (Art. 5); Mississippi (Art. 5);
Alabama (Art. 6); Pennsylvania (Art. 4), crimes committed in the non-performance
of official duties. In the States of Illinois, Georgia, Maine, and Connecticut,
no particular offences are specified.
Appendix O
It is true that the powers of Europe may carry on maritime wars with the Union;
but there is always greater facility and less danger in supporting a maritime
than a continental war. Maritime warfare only requires one species of effort. A
commercial people which consents to furnish its government with the necessary
funds, is sure to possess a fleet. And it is far easier to induce a nation to
part with its money, almost unconsciously, than to reconcile it to sacrifices of
men and personal efforts. Moreover, defeat by sea rarely compromises the
existence or independence of the people which endures it. As for continental
wars, it is evident that the nations of Europe cannot be formidable in this way
to the American Union. It would be very difficult to transport and maintain in
America more than 25,000 soldiers; an army which may be considered to represent
a nation of about 2,000,000 of men. The most populous nation of Europe
contending in this way against the Union, is in the position of a nation of
2,000,000 of inhabitants at war with one of 12,000,000. Add to this, that
America has all its resources within reach, whilst the European is at 4,000
miles distance from his; and that the immensity of the American continent would
of itself present an insurmountable obstacle to its conquest.
Appendix P
The first American journal appeared in April, 1704, and was published at Boston.
See "Collection of the Historical Society of Massachusetts," vol. vi. p. 66. It
would be a mistake to suppose that the periodical press has always been entirely
free in the American colonies: an attempt was made to establish something
analogous to a censorship and preliminary security. Consult the Legislative
Documents of Massachusetts of January 14, 1722. The Committee appointed by the
General Assembly (the legislative body of the province) for the purpose of
examining into circumstances connected with a paper entitled "The New England
Courier," expresses its opinion that "the tendency of the said journal is to
turn religion into derision and bring it into contempt; that it mentions the
sacred writers in a profane and irreligious manner; that it puts malicious
interpretations upon the conduct of the ministers of the Gospel; and that the
Government of his Majesty is insulted, and the peace and tranquillity of the
province disturbed by the said journal. The Committee is consequently of opinion
that the printer and publisher, James Franklin, should be forbidden to print and
publish the said journal or any other work in future, without having previously
submitted it to the Secretary of the province; and that the justices of the
peace for the county of Suffolk should be commissioned to require bail of the
said James Franklin for his good conduct during the ensuing year." The
suggestion of the Committee was adopted and passed into a law, but the effect of
it was null, for the journal eluded the prohibition by putting the name of
Benjamin Franklin instead of James Franklin at the bottom of its columns, and
this manoeuvre was supported by public opinion.
Appendix Q
The Federal Constitution has introduced the jury into the tribunals of the Union
in the same way as the States had introduced it into their own several courts;
but as it has not established any fixed rules for the choice of jurors, the
federal courts select them from the ordinary jury list which each State makes
for itself. The laws of the States must therefore be examined for the theory of
the formation of juries. See Story's "Commentaries on the Constitution," B. iii.
chap. 38, p. 654-659; Sergeant's "Constitutional Law," p. 165. See also the
Federal Laws of the years 1789, 1800, and 1802, upon the subject. For the
purpose of thoroughly understanding the American principles with respect to the
formation of juries, I examined the laws of States at a distance from one
another, and the following observations were the result of my inquiries. In
America, all the citizens who exercise the elective franchise have the right of
serving upon a jury. The great State of New York, however, has made a slight
difference between the two privileges, but in a spirit quite contrary to that of
the laws of France; for in the State of New York there are fewer persons
eligible as jurymen than there are electors. It may be said in general that the
right of forming part of a jury, like the right of electing representatives, is
open to all the citizens: the exercise of this right, however, is not put
indiscriminately into any hands. Every year a body of municipal or county
magistrates—called "selectmen" in New England, "supervisors" in New York,
"trustees" in Ohio, and "sheriffs of the parish" in Louisiana—choose for each
county a certain number of citizens who have the right of serving as jurymen,
and who are supposed to be capable of exercising their functions. These
magistrates, being themselves elective, excite no distrust; their powers, like
those of most republican magistrates, are very extensive and very arbitrary, and
they frequently make use of them to remove unworthy or incompetent jurymen. The
names of the jurymen thus chosen are transmitted to the County Court; and the
jury who have to decide any affair are drawn by lot from the whole list of
names. The Americans have contrived in every way to make the common people
eligible to the jury, and to render the service as little onerous as possible.
The sessions are held in the chief town of every county, and the jury are
indemnified for their attendance either by the State or the parties concerned.
They receive in general a dollar per day, besides their travelling expenses. In
America, the being placed upon the jury is looked upon as a burden, but it is a
burden which is very supportable. See Brevard's "Digest of the Public Statute
Law of South Carolina," vol. i. pp. 446 and 454, vol. ii. pp. 218 and 338; "The
General Laws of Massachusetts, revised and published by authority of the
Legislature," vol. ii. pp. 187 and 331; "The Revised Statutes of the State of
New York," vol. ii. pp. 411, 643, 717, 720; "The Statute Law of the State of
Tennessee," vol. i. p. 209; "Acts of the State of Ohio," pp. 95 and 210; and
"Digeste general des Actes de la Legislature de la Louisiane."
Appendix R
If we attentively examine the constitution of the jury as introduced into civil
proceedings in England, we shall readily perceive that the jurors are under the
immediate control of the judge. It is true that the verdict of the jury, in
civil as well as in criminal cases, comprises the question of fact and the
question of right in the same reply; thus—a house is claimed by Peter as having
been purchased by him: this is the fact to be decided. The defendant puts in a
plea of incompetency on the part of the vendor: this is the legal question to be
resolved. But the jury do not enjoy the same character of infallibility in civil
cases, according to the practice of the English courts, as they do in criminal
cases. The judge may refuse to receive the verdict; and even after the first
trial has taken place, a second or new trial may be awarded by the Court. See
Blackstone's "Commentaries," book iii. ch. 24.
Appendix S
I find in my travelling journal a passage which may serve to convey a more
complete notion of the trials to which the women of America, who consent to
follow their husbands into the wilds, are often subjected. This description has
nothing to recommend it to the reader but its strict accuracy:
". . . From time to time we come to fresh clearings; all these places are alike;
I shall describe the one at which we have halted to-night, for it will serve to
remind me of all the others.
"The bell which the pioneers hang round the necks of their cattle, in order to
find them again in the woods, announced our approach to a clearing, when we were
yet a long way off; and we soon afterwards heard the stroke of the hatchet,
hewing down the trees of the forest. As we came nearer, traces of destruction
marked the presence of civilized man; the road was strewn with shattered boughs;
trunks of trees, half consumed by fire, or cleft by the wedge, were still
standing in the track we were following. We continued to proceed till we reached
a wood in which all the trees seemed to have been suddenly struck dead; in the
height of summer their boughs were as leafless as in winter; and upon closer
examination we found that a deep circle had been cut round the bark, which, by
stopping the circulation of the sap, soon kills the tree. We were informed that
this is commonly the first thing a pioneer does; as he cannot in the first year
cut down all the trees which cover his new parcel of land, he sows Indian corn
under their branches, and puts the trees to death in order to prevent them from
injuring his crop. Beyond this field, at present imperfectly traced out, we
suddenly came upon the cabin of its owner, situated in the centre of a plot of
ground more carefully cultivated than the rest, but where man was still waging
unequal warfare with the forest; there the trees were cut down, but their roots
were not removed, and the trunks still encumbered the ground which they so
recently shaded. Around these dry blocks, wheat, suckers of trees, and plants of
every kind, grow and intertwine in all the luxuriance of wild, untutored nature.
Amidst this vigorous and various vegetation stands the house of the pioneer, or,
as they call it, the log house. Like the ground about it, this rustic dwelling
bore marks of recent and hasty labor; its length seemed not to exceed thirty
feet, its height fifteen; the walls as well as the roof were formed of rough
trunks of trees, between which a little moss and clay had been inserted to keep
out the cold and rain.
"As night was coming on, we determined to ask the master of the log house for a
lodging. At the sound of our footsteps, the children who were playing amongst
the scattered branches sprang up and ran towards the house, as if they were
frightened at the sight of man; whilst two large dogs, almost wild, with ears
erect and outstretched nose, came growling out of their hut, to cover the
retreat of their young masters. The pioneer himself made his appearance at the
door of his dwelling; he looked at us with a rapid and inquisitive glance, made
a sign to the dogs to go into the house, and set them the example, without
betraying either curiosity or apprehension at our arrival.
"We entered the log house: the inside is quite unlike that of the cottages of
the peasantry of Europe: it contains more than is superfluous, less than is
necessary. A single window with a muslin blind; on a hearth of trodden clay an
immense fire, which lights the whole structure; above the hearth a good rifle, a
deer's skin, and plumes of eagles' feathers; on the right hand of the chimney a
map of the United States, raised and shaken by the wind through the crannies in
the wall; near the map, upon a shelf formed of a roughly hewn plank, a few
volumes of books—a Bible, the six first books of Milton, and two of
Shakespeare's plays; along the wall, trunks instead of closets; in the centre of
the room a rude table, with legs of green wood, and with the bark still upon
them, looking as if they grew out of the ground on which they stood; but on this
table a tea-pot of British ware, silver spoons, cracked tea-cups, and some
newspapers.
"The master of this dwelling has the strong angular features and lank limbs
peculiar to the native of New England. It is evident that this man was not born
in the solitude in which we have met with him: his physical constitution
suffices to show that his earlier years were spent in the midst of civilized
society, and that he belongs to that restless, calculating, and adventurous race
of men, who do with the utmost coolness things only to be accounted for by the
ardor of the passions, and who endure the life of savages for a time, in order
to conquer and civilize the backwoods.
"When the pioneer perceived that we were crossing his threshold, he came to meet
us and shake hands, as is their custom; but his face was quite unmoved; he
opened the conversation by inquiring what was going on in the world; and when
his curiosity was satisfied, he held his peace, as if he were tired by the noise
and importunity of mankind. When we questioned him in our turn, he gave us all
the information we required; he then attended sedulously, but without eagerness,
to our personal wants. Whilst he was engaged in providing thus kindly for us,
how came it that in spit of ourselves we felt our gratitude die upon our lips?
It is that our host whilst he performs the duties of hospitality, seems to be
obeying an irksome necessity of his condition: he treats it as a duty imposed
upon him by his situation, not as a pleasure. By the side of the hearth sits a
woman with a baby on her lap: she nods to us without disturbing herself. Like
the pioneer, this woman is in the prime of life; her appearance would seem
superior to her condition, and her apparel even betrays a lingering taste for
dress; but her delicate limbs appear shrunken, her features are drawn in, her
eye is mild and melancholy; her whole physiognomy bears marks of a degree of
religious resignation, a deep quiet of all passions, and some sort of natural
and tranquil firmness, ready to meet all the ills of life, without fearing and
without braving them. Her children cluster about her, full of health,
turbulence, and energy: they are true children of the wilderness; their mother
watches them from time to time with mingled melancholy and joy: to look at their
strength and her languor, one might imagine that the life she has given them has
exhausted her own, and still she regrets not what they have cost her. The house
inhabited by these emigrants has no internal partition or loft. In the one
chamber of which it consists, the whole family is gathered for the night. The
dwelling is itself a little world—an ark of civilization amidst an ocean of
foliage: a hundred steps beyond it the primeval forest spreads its shades, and
solitude resumes its sway."
Appendix T
It is not the equality of conditions which makes men immoral and irreligious;
but when men, being equal, are at the same time immoral and irreligious, the
effects of immorality and irreligion easily manifest themselves outwardly,
because men have but little influence upon each other, and no class exists which
can undertake to keep society in order. Equality of conditions never engenders
profligacy of morals, but it sometimes allows that profligacy to show itself.
Appendix U
Setting aside all those who do not think at all, and those who dare not say what
they think, the immense majority of the Americans will still be found to appear
satisfied with the political institutions by which they are governed; and, I
believe, really to be so. I look upon this state of public opinion as an
indication, but not as a demonstration, of the absolute excellence of American
laws. The pride of a nation, the gratification of certain ruling passions by the
law, a concourse of circumstances, defects which escape notice, and more than
all the rest, the influence of a majority which shuts the mouth of all
cavillers, may long perpetuate the delusions of a people as well as those of a
man. Look at England throughout the eighteenth century. No nation was ever more
prodigal of self-applause, no people was ever more self-satisfied; then every
part of its constitution was right—everything, even to its most obvious defects,
was irreproachable: at the present day a vast number of Englishmen seem to have
nothing better to do than to prove that this constitution was faulty in many
respects. Which was right?—the English people of the last century, or the
English people of the present day?
The same thing has occurred in France. It is certain that during the reign of
Louis XIV the great bulk of the nation was devotedly attached to the form of
government which, at that time, governed the community. But it is a vast error
to suppose that there was anything degraded in the character of the French of
that age. There might be some sort of servitude in France at that time, but
assuredly there was no servile spirit among the people. The writers of that age
felt a species of genuine enthusiasm in extolling the power of their king; and
there was no peasant so obscure in his hovel as not to take a pride in the glory
of his sovereign, and to die cheerfully with the cry "Vive le Roi!" upon his
lips. These very same forms of loyalty are now odious to the French people.
Which are wrong?—the French of the age of Louis XIV, or their descendants of the
present day?
Our judgment of the laws of a people must not then be founded Future Condition
Of Three Races In The United States exclusively upon its inclinations, since
those inclinations change from age to age; but upon more elevated principles and
a more general experience. The love which a people may show for its law proves
only this:—that we should not be in too great a hurry to change them.
Appendix V
In the chapter to which this note relates I have pointed out one source of
danger: I am now about to point out another kind of peril, more rare indeed, but
far more formidable if it were ever to make its appearance. If the love of
physical gratification and the taste for well-being, which are naturally
suggested to men by a state of equality, were to get entire possession of the
mind of a democratic people, and to fill it completely, the manners of the
nation would become so totally opposed to military tastes, that perhaps even the
army would eventually acquire a love of peace, in spite of the peculiar interest
which leads it to desire war. Living in the midst of a state of general
relaxation, the troops would ultimately think it better to rise without efforts,
by the slow but commodious advancement of a peace establishment, than to
purchase more rapid promotion at the cost of all the toils and privations of the
field. With these feelings, they would take up arms without enthusiasm, and use
them without energy; they would allow themselves to be led to meet the foe,
instead of marching to attack him. It must not be supposed that this pacific
state of the army would render it adverse to revolutions; for revolutions, and
especially military revolutions, which are generally very rapid, are attended
indeed with great dangers, but not with protracted toil; they gratify ambition
at less cost than war; life only is at stake, and the men of democracies care
less for their lives than for their comforts. Nothing is more dangerous for the
freedom and the tranquillity of a people than an army afraid of war, because, as
such an army no longer seeks to maintain its importance and its influence on the
field of battle, it seeks to assert them elsewhere. Thus it might happen that
the men of whom a democratic army consists should lose the interests of citizens
without acquiring the virtues of soldiers; and that the army should cease to be
fit for war without ceasing to be turbulent. I shall here repeat what I have
said in the text: the remedy for these dangers is not to be found in the army,
but in the country: a democratic people which has preserved the manliness of its
character will never be at a loss for military prowess in its soldiers.
Appendix W
Men connect the greatness of their idea of unity with means, God with ends:
hence this idea of greatness, as men conceive it, leads us into infinite
littleness. To compel all men to follow the same course towards the same object
is a human notion;—to introduce infinite variety of action, but so combined that
all these acts lead by a multitude of different courses to the accomplishment of
one great design, is a conception of the Deity. The human idea of unity is
almost always barren; the divine idea pregnant with abundant results. Men think
they manifest their greatness by simplifying the means they use; but it is the
purpose of God which is simple—his means are infinitely varied.
Appendix X
A democratic people is not only led by its own tastes to centralize its
government, but the passions of all the men by whom it is governed constantly
urge it in the same direction. It may easily be foreseen that almost all the
able and ambitious members of a democratic community will labor without 2
ceasing to extend the powers of government, because they all hope at some time
or other to wield those powers. It is a waste of time to attempt to prove to
them that extreme centralization may be injurious to the State, since they are
centralizing for their own benefit. Amongst the public men of democracies there
are hardly any but men of great disinterestedness or extreme mediocrity who seek
to oppose the centralization of government: the former are scarce, the latter
powerless.
Appendix Y
I have often asked myself what would happen if, amidst the relaxation of
democratic manners, and as a consequence of the restless spirit of the army, a
military government were ever to be founded amongst any of the nations of the
present age. I think that even such a government would not differ very much from
the outline I have drawn in the chapter to which this note belongs, and that it
would retain none of the fierce characteristics of a military oligarchy. I am
persuaded that, in such a case, a sort of fusion would take place between the
habits of official men and those of the military service. The administration
would assume something of a military character, and the army some of the usages
of the civil administration. The result would be a regular, clear, exact, and
absolute system of government; the people would become the reflection of the
army, and the community be drilled like a garrison.
Appendix Z
It cannot be absolutely or generally affirmed that the greatest danger of the
present age is license or tyranny, anarchy or despotism. Both are equally to be
feared; and the one may as easily proceed as the other from the selfsame cause,
namely, that "general apathy," which is the consequence of what I have termed
"individualism": it is because this apathy exists, that the executive
government, having mustered a few troops, is able to commit acts of oppression
one day, and the next day a party, which has mustered some thirty men in its
ranks, can also commit acts of oppression. Neither one nor the other can found
anything to last; and the causes which enable them to succeed easily, prevent
them from succeeding long: they rise because nothing opposes them, and they sink
because nothing supports them. The proper object therefore of our most strenuous
resistance, is far less either anarchy or despotism than the apathy which may
almost indifferently beget either the one or the other.
Constitution Of The United States Of America
We The People of the United States, in Order to form a more perfect Union,
establish Justice, insure domestic Tranquillity, provide for the common defence,
promote the general welfare, and secure the blessings of Liberty to ourselves
and our Posterity, do ordain and establish this Constitution for the United
States of America:
Article I
Section 1. All legislative Powers herein granted shall be vested in a
Congress of the United States, which shall consist of a Senate and House of
Representatives.
Section 2. The House of Representatives shall be composed of Members of
chosen every second Year by the People of the several States, and the Electors
in each States shall have the Qualifications requisite for Electors of the most
numerous Branch of the State Legislature.
No Person shall be a Representative who shall not have attained to the Age of
twenty-five Years, and been seven Years a Citizen of the United States, and who
shall not, when elected, be an Inhabitant of that State in which he shall be
chosen.
Representatives and direct Taxes shall be apportioned among the several States
which may be included within this Union, according to their respective Numbers,
which shall be determined by adding to the whole Number of free Persons,
including those bound to service for a Term of Years, and excluding Indians not
taxed, three-fifths of all other Persons. The actual Enumeration shall be made
within three Years after the first Meeting of the Congress of the United States,
and within every subsequent Term of ten Years, in such Manner as they shall by
Law direct. The Number of Representatives shall not exceed one for every thirty
Thousand, but each State shall have at Least one Representative; and until such
enumeration shall be made, the State of New Hampshire shall be entitled to
choose three, Massachusetts, eight, Rhode-Island and Providence Plantations one,
Connecticut five, New York six, New Jersey four, Pennsylvania eight, Delaware
one, Maryland six, Virginia ten, North Carolina five, South Carolina five, and
Georgia three.
When vacancies happen in the Representation from any State, the Executive
Authority thereof shall issue Writs of Election to fill such Vacancies.
The House of Representatives shall choose their Speaker and other Officers; and
shall have the sole Power of Impeachment.
Section 3. The Senate of the United States shall be composed
of two Senators from each State, chosen by the Legislature thereof, for six
Years; and each Senator shall have one Vote.
Immediately after they shall be assembled in Consequence of the first Election,
they shall be divided as equally as may be into three Classes. The Seats of the
Senators of the first Class shall be vacated at the Expiration of the second
Year, of the second Class at the expiration of the fourth Year, and of the third
Class at the expiration of the sixth Year, so that one-third may be chosen every
second Year; and if Vacancies happen by Resignation, or otherwise, during the
Recess of the Legislature of any State, the Executive thereof may make temporary
Appointments until the next Meeting of the Legislature, which shall then fill
such Vacancies.
No person shall be a Senator who shall not have attained to the Age of thirty
Years, and been nine Years a Citizen of the United States, and who shall not,
when elected, be an Inhabitant of that State for which he shall be chosen.
The Vice-President of the United States shall be President of the Senate, but
shall have no Vote, unless they be equally divided. The Senate shall choose
their other Officers, and also a President pro tempore, in the Absence of the
Vice-President, or when he shall exercise the Office of President of the United
States.
The Senate shall have the sole power to try all Impeachments. When sitting for
that Purpose, they shall be on Oath or Affirmation. When the President of the
United States is tried, the Chief Justice shall preside: And no Person shall be
convicted without the Concurrence of two-thirds of the Members present. Judgment
in cases of Impeachment shall not extend further than to removal from Office,
and disqualification to hold and enjoy any Office of Honor, Trust, or Profit
under the United States: but the Party convicted shall nevertheless be liable
and subject to Indictment, Trial, Judgment, and Punishment according to Law.
Section 4. The Times, Places and Manner of holding Elections for
Senators and Representatives, shall be prescribed in each State by the
Legislature thereof; but the Congress may at any time by Law make or alter such
Regulations, except as to the Places of choosing Senators.
The Congress shall assemble at least once in every Year, and such Meeting shall
be on the first Monday in December, unless they shall by Law appoint a different
Day.
Section 5. Each House shall be the Judge of the Elections, Returns
and Qualifications of its own Members, and a Majority of each shall constitute a
Quorum to do Business; but a smaller Number may adjourn from day to day, and may
be authorized to compel the Attendance of Absent Members, in such Manner, and
under such Penalties as each House may provide.
Each House may determine the Rules of its Proceedings, punish its Members for
disorderly Behaviour, and, with a Concurrence of two-thirds, expel a Member.
Each House shall keep a Journal of its Proceedings, and from time to time
publish the same, excepting such Parts as may in their Judgment require Secrecy;
and the Yeas and Nays of the Members of either House on any question shall, at
the Desire of one-fifth of those present, be entered on the Journal.
Neither House, during the Session of Congress, shall, without the Consent of the
other, adjourn for more than three days, nor to any other Place than that in
which the two Houses shall be sitting.
Section 6. The Senators and Representatives shall receive a Compensation
for their Services, to be ascertained by Law, and paid out of the Treasury of
the United States. They shall in all Cases, except Treason, Felony, and Breach
of the Peace, be privileged from Arrest during their attendance at the Session
of their respective Houses, and in going to and returning from the same; and for
any Speech or Debate in either House, they shall not be questioned in any other
Place.
No Senator or Representative shall, during the Time for which he was elected, be
appointed to any civil Office under the Authority of the United States, which
shall have been created, or the Emoluments whereof shall have been increased
during such time; and no Person holding any Office under the United States,
shall be a Member of either House during his Continuance in Office.
Section 7. All Bills for Raising Revenue shall originate in the House of
Representatives; but the Senate may propose or concur with Amendments as on
other Bills.
Every Bill which shall have passed the House of Representatives and the Senate,
shall, before it become a Law, be presented to the President of the United
States; if he approve he shall sign it, but if not he shall return it, with his
Objections, to that House in which it shall have originated, who shall enter the
Objections at large on their Journal, and proceed to reconsider it. If after
such Reconsideration two-thirds of that House shall agree to pass the Bill, it
shall be sent, together with the Objections, to the other House, by which it
shall likewise be reconsidered, and if approved by two-thirds of that House, it
shall become a Law. But in all such Cases the Votes of both Houses shall be
determined by Yeas and Nays, and the Names of the Persons voting for and against
the Bill shall be entered on the Journal of each House respectively. If any Bill
shall not be returned by the President within ten days (Sundays excepted) after
it shall have been presented to him, the Same shall be a Law, in like manner as
if he had signed it, unless the Congress by their Adjournment prevent its
Return, in which Case it shall not be a Law.
Every Order, Resolution, or Vote to which the Concurrence of the Senate and
House of Representatives may be necessary (except on a question of Adjournment)
shall be presented to the President of the United States; and before the Same
shall take Effect, shall be approved by him, or being disapproved by him, shall
be repassed by two-thirds of the Senate and House of Representatives, according
to the Rules and Limitations prescribed in the case of a Bill.
Section 8. The Congress shall have Power to lay and collect Taxes,
Duties, Imposts, and Excises, to pay the Debts and provide for the common
Defence and general Welfare of the United States; but all Duties, Imposts and
Excises shall be uniform throughout the United States;
To borrow Money on the credit of the United States;
To regulate Commerce with foreign Nations, and among the several States, and
with the Indian Tribes;
To establish an Uniform Rule of Naturalization, and uniform Laws on the subject
of Bankruptcies throughout the United States; To coin Money, regulate the Value
thereof, and of foreign Coin, and fix the Standard of Weights and Measures;
To provide for the Punishment of counterfeiting the Securities and current Coin
of the United States;
To establish Post Offices and Post Roads;
To promote the Progress of Science and useful Arts, by securing for limited
Times to Authors and Inventors the exclusive Right to their respective Writings
and Discoveries;
To constitute Tribunals inferior to the Supreme Court; To define and punish
Piracies and Felonies committed on the high Seas, and Offences against the Law
of Nations;
To declare War, grant Letters of Marque and Reprisal, and make Rules concerning
Captures on Land and Water;
To raise and support Armies, but no Appropriation of Money to that Use shall be
for a longer Term than two years;
To provide and maintain a Navy;
To make Rules for the Government and Regulation of the land and naval Forces.
To provide for calling forth the Militia to execute the Laws of the Union,
suppress Insurrections and repel Invasions.
To provide for organizing, arming, and disciplining, the Militia, and for
governing such Part of them as may be employed in the Service of the United
States, reserving to the States respectively, the Appointment of the Officers,
and the Authority of training the Militia according to the discipline prescribed
by Congress;
To exercise exclusive Legislation in all Cases whatsoever, over such District
(not exceeding ten Miles square) as may, by Cession of particular States, and
the Acceptance of Congress become the Seat of the Government of the United
States, and to exercise like Authority over all Places purchased by the Consent
of the Legislature of the State in which the Same shall be, for the Erection of
Forts, Magazines, Arsenals, Dock-Yards, and other needful Buildings;—And To make
all Laws which shall be necessary and proper for carrying into Execution the
foregoing Powers, and all other Powers vested by this Constitution in the
Government of the United States, or in any Department or Officer thereof.
Section 9. The Migration or Importation of such Persons as any of the
States now existing shall think proper to admit, shall not be prohibited by the
Congress prior to the year one thousand eight hundred and eight, but a tax or
duty may be imposed on such Importation, not exceeding ten dollars for each
Person.
The Privilege of the Writ of Habeas Corpus shall not be suspended, unless when
in Cases of Rebellion or Invasion the public Safety may require it.
No Bill of Attainder or ex post facto Law shall be passed. No Capitation, or
other direct Tax shall be laid, unless in Proportion to the Census or
Enumeration herein before directed to be taken.
No Tax or Duty shall be laid on Articles exported from any State.
No preference shall be given by any Regulation of Commerce or Revenue to the
Ports of one State over those of another: nor shall Vessels bound to, or from,
one State, be obliged to enter, clear, or pay Duties in another.
No Money shall be drawn from the Treasury, but in consequence of Appropriations
made by Law; and a regular Statement and Account of the Receipts and
Expenditures of all public Money shall be published from time to time.
No Title of Nobility shall be granted by the United States: And no Person
holding any Office of Profit or Trust under them, shall, without the Consent of
the Congress, accept of any present, Emolument, Office, or Title of any kind
whatever, from any King, Prince, or foreign State.
Section 10. No State shall enter into any Treaty, Alliance, or
Confederation; grant Letters of Marque or Reprisal; coin Money; emit Bills of
Credit; make any Thing but gold and silver Coin a Tender in Payment of Debts;
pass any Bill of Attainder, ex post facto Law, or Law impairing the Obligation
of Contracts, or grant any Title of Nobility.
No State shall, without the Consent of the Congress, lay any Imposts or Duties
on Imports or Exports, except what may be absolutely necessary for executing its
inspection Laws: and the net Produce of all Duties and Imposts, laid by any
State on Imports or Exports shall be for the Use of the Treasury of the United
States; and all such laws shall be subject to the Revision and Control of the
Congress.
No State shall, without the Consent of Congress, lay any Duty of Tonnage, keep
Troops, or Ships of War in time of Peace, enter into any Agreement or Compact
with another State, or with a foreign Power, or engage in War, unless actually
invaded, or in such imminent Danger as will not admit of delay.
Article II
Section 1. The Executive Power shall be vested in a President of the
United States of America. He shall hold his Office during the Term of four
Years, and, together with the Vice-President, chosen for the same Term, be
elected as follows:
Each State shall appoint, in such Manner as the Legislature thereof may direct,
a Number of Electors, equal to the whole Number of Senators and Representatives
to which the State may be entitled in the Congress: but no Senator or
Representative, or Person holding an Office of Trust or Profit under the United
States, shall be appointed an Elector.
[The Electors shall meet in their respective States, and vote by Ballot for two
persons, of whom one at least shall not be an inhabitant of the same State with
themselves. And they shall make a List of all the Persons voted for, and of the
Number of Votes for each; which List they shall sign and certify, and transmit
sealed to the Seat of the Government of the United States, directed to the
President of the Senate. The President of the Senate shall, in the Presence of
the Senate and House of Representatives, open all the Certificates, and the
Votes shall then be counted. The Person having the greatest Number of Votes
shall be the President, if such Number be a Majority of the whole Number of
Electors appointed; and if there be more than one who have such Majority, and
have an equal number of Votes, then the House of Representatives shall
immediately choose by Ballot one of them for President; and if no Person have a
Majority, then from the five highest on the List the said House shall in like
Manner choose the President. But in choosing the President, the Votes shall be
taken by States, the Representation from each State having one Vote; A quorum
for this Purpose shall consist of a Member or Members from two-thirds of the
States, and a Majority of all the States shall be necessary to a Choice. In
every Case, after the Choice of the President, the Person having the greatest
number of Votes of the Electors shall be the Vice-President. But if there should
remain two or more who have equal Votes, the Senate shall choose from them by
Ballot the Vice-President.]*d
*d
[ This clause is superseded by Article XII, Amendments. See page 396.]
The Congress may determine the Time of choosing the Electors, and the Day on
which they shall give their Votes; which Day shall be the same throughout the
United States.
No Person except a natural born Citizen, or a Citizen of the United States, at
the time of the Adoption of this Constitution, shall be eligible to the Office
of President; neither shall any person be eligible to that Office who shall not
have attained to the Age of thirty-five Years, and been fourteen Years a
Resident within the United States.
In case of the Removal of the President from Office, or of his Death,
Resignation or Inability to discharge the Powers and Duties of the said Office,
the same shall devolve on the Vice-president, and the Congress may by Law
provide for the Case of Removal, Death, Resignation or Inability, both of the
President and Vice-President, declaring what Officer shall then act as
President, and such Officer shall act accordingly, until the Disability be
removed, or a President shall be elected.
The President shall, at stated Times, receive for his Services, a Compensation,
which shall neither be increased nor diminished during the Period for which he
shall have been elected, and he shall not receive within that period any other
Emolument from the United States, or any of them.
Before he enter on the Execution of his Office, he shall take the following Oath
or Affirmation:—"I do solemnly swear (or affirm) that I will faithfully execute
the Office of President of the United States, and will to the best of my
Ability, preserve, protect, and defend the Constitution of the United States."
Section 2. The President shall be Commander in Chief of the Army and
Navy of the United States, and of the Militia of the several States, when called
into the actual Service of the United States; he may require the Opinion, in
writing, of the principal Officer in each of the executive Departments, upon any
Subject relating to the Duties of their respective Offices, and he shall have
Power to grant Reprieves and Pardons for Offences against the United States,
except in Cases of Impeachment.
He shall have Power, by and with the Advice and Consent of the Senate, to make
Treaties, provided two-thirds of the Senators present concur; and he shall
nominate, and by and with the Advice and Consent of the Senate, shall appoint
Ambassadors, other public Ministers and Consuls, Judges of the Supreme Court,
and all other Officers of the United States, whose Appointments are not herein
otherwise provided for, and which shall be established by Law: but the Congress
may by Law vest the Appointment of such inferior Officers, as they think proper,
in the President alone, in the Courts of Law, or in the Heads of Departments.
The President shall have Power to fill up all vacancies that may happen during
the recess of the Senate, by granting Commissions which shall expire at the End
of their next Session.
Section 3. He shall from time to time give to the Congress Information
of the state of the Union, and recommend to their Consideration such Measures as
he shall judge necessary and expedient; he may, on extraordinary Occasions,
convene both Houses, or either of them, and in Case of Disagreement between
them, with Respect to the Time of Adjournment, he may adjourn them to such Time
as he shall think proper; he shall receive Ambassadors and other Public
Ministers; he shall take Care that the Laws be faithfully executed, and shall
Commission all the Officers of the United States.
Section 4. The President, Vice-President and all civil Officers of the
United States, shall be removed from Office on Impeachment for, and Conviction
of, Treason, Bribery, or other High Crimes and Misdemeanors.
Article III
Section 1. The judicial Power of the United States shall be vested in
one supreme Court, and in such inferior Courts as the Congress may from time to
time ordain and establish. The Judges, both of the Supreme and inferior Courts,
shall hold their Offices during good Behaviour, and shall, at stated Times,
receive for their Services, a Compensation, which shall not be diminished during
their Continuance in Office.
Section 2. The judicial Power shall extend to all cases, in Law and
Equity, arising under this Constitution, the Laws of the United States, and
Treaties made, or which shall be made, under their Authority;—to all Cases
affecting Ambassadors, other public Ministers and Consuls;—to all cases of
Admiralty and maritime Jurisdiction; to Controversies to which the United States
shall be a Party;—to Controversies between two or more States;—between a State
and Citizens of another State; between Citizens of different States,—between
Citizens of the same State claiming Lands under Grants of different States, and
between a State, or the Citizens thereof, and foreign States, Citizens or
Subjects.
In all Cases affecting Ambassadors, other public Ministers and Consuls, and
those in which a State shall be Party, the Supreme Court shall have original
Jurisdiction. In all the other Cases before mentioned, the Supreme Court shall
have appellate Jurisdiction, both as to Law and Fact, with such Exceptions and
under such Regulations as the Congress shall make.
The Trial of all Crimes, except in Cases of Impeachment, shall be by Jury; and
such Trial shall be held in the State where the said Crimes shall have been
committed; but when not committed within any State, the Trial shall be at such
Place or Places as the Congress may by Law have directed.
Section 3. Treason against the United States shall consist only in
levying War against them, or in adhering to their Enemies, giving them Aid and
Comfort. No person shall be convicted of Treason unless on the Testimony of two
Witnesses to the same overt Act, or on Confession in open Court.
The Congress shall have power to declare the Punishment of Treason, but no
Attainder of Treason shall work Corruption of Blood or Forfeiture except during
the life of the person attainted.
Article IV
Section 1. Full Faith and Credit shall be given in each State to the
Public Acts, Records, and judicial Proceedings of every other State. And the
Congress may by general Laws prescribe the Manner in which such Acts, Records
and Proceedings shall be proved, and the Effect thereof.
Section 2. The Citizens of each State shall be entitled to all
Privileges and Immunities of Citizens in the several States. A person charged in
any State with Treason, Felony, or other Crime, who shall flee from Justice, and
be found in another State, shall on Demand of the executive Authority of the
State from which he fled, be delivered up, to be removed to the State having
Jurisdiction of the Crime.
No Person held to Service or Labour in one State, under the Laws thereof,
escaping into another, shall, in consequence of any Law or Regulation therein,
be discharged from such Service or Labour, but shall be delivered up on Claim of
the Party to whom such Service or Labour may be due.
Section 3. New States may be admitted by the Congress into this Union;
but no new State shall be formed or erected within the Jurisdiction of any other
State; nor any State be formed by the Junction of two or more States, or Parts
of States, without the Consent of the Legislatures of the States concerned as
well as of the Congress.
The Congress shall have Power to dispose of and make all needful Rules and
Regulations respecting the Territory or other Property belonging to the United
States; and nothing in this Constitution shall be so construed as to Prejudice
any Claims of the United States, or of any particular State.
Section 4. The United States shall guarantee to every State in this
Union a Republican Form of Government, and shall protect each of them against
Invasion; and on Application of the Legislature, or of the Executive (when the
Legislature cannot be convened) against domestic Violence.
Article V
The Congress, whenever two-thirds of both Houses shall deem it necessary, shall
propose Amendments to this Constitution, or, on the Application of the
Legislatures of two-thirds of the several States, shall call a Convention for
proposing Amendments, which, in either Case, shall be valid to all Intents and
Purposes, as Part of this Constitution, when ratified by the Legislatures of
three-fourths of the several States, or by Conventions in three-fourths thereof,
as the one or the other Mode of Ratification may be proposed by the Congress;
Provided that no Amendment which may be made prior to the Year One thousand
eight hundred and eight shall in any Manner affect the first and fourth Clauses
in the Ninth Section of the first Article; and that no State, without its
Consent, shall be deprived of its equal Suffrage in the Senate.
Article VI
All Debts contracted and Engagements entered into, before the Adoption of this
Constitution, shall be as valid against the United States under this
Constitution, as under the Confederation.
This Constitution, and the Laws of the United States which shall be made in
Pursuance thereof; and all Treaties made, or which shall be made, under the
Authority of the United States, shall be the supreme Law of the Land; and the
Judges in every State shall be bound thereby, any Thing in the Constitution or
Laws of any State to the contrary notwithstanding.
The Senators and Representatives before mentioned, and the Members of the
several State Legislatures, and all executive and judicial Officers, both of the
United States and of the several States, shall be bound by Oath or Affirmation
to support this Constitution; but no religious test shall ever be required as a
Qualification to any Office or public Trust under the United States.
Article VII
The Ratification of the Conventions of nine States shall be sufficient for the
Establishment of this Constitution between the States so ratifying the Same.
Done in Convention by the Unanimous Consent of the States present the
Seventeenth Day of September in the Year of Our Lord One thousand seven hundred
and eighty-seven and of the Independence of the United States of America the
Twelfth. In witness whereof We have hereunto subscribed our Names,
Geo. Washington
Presidt. and deputy from Virginia.
New Hampshire
John Langdon
Nicholas Gilman
Massachusetts
Nathaniel Gorham
Rufus King
Connecticut
Wm. Saml. Johnson
Roger Sherman
New York
Alexander Hamilton
New Jersey
Wil. Livingston.
David Brearley.
Wm. Paterson.
Jona. Dayton
Pennsylvania
B Franklin
Thomas Mifflin
Robt. Morris.
Geo. Clymer
Thos. Fitzsimons
Jared Ingersoll
James Wilson
Gouv. Morris
Delaware
Geo. Read
Gunning Bedford Jun
John Dickinson
Richard Bassett
Jaco. Broom
Maryland
James McHenry
Dan of St Thos. Jenifer
Danl. Carroll
Virginia
John Blair—
James Madison Jr.
North Carolina
Wm. Blount
Richd. Dobbs Spaight
Hu. Williamson
South Carolina
J. Rutledge
Charles Cotesworth Pinckney
Charles Pinckney
Peirce Butler.
Georgia
William Few
Abr. Baldwin
Attest. William Jackson, Secretary
The Word 'the,' being interlined between the seventh and eighth Lines of the
first Page, The word 'Thirty' being partly written on an Erasure in the
fifteenth Line of the first Page, The Words 'is tried' being interlined between
the thirty-second and thirty-third Lines of the first Page, and the Word 'the'
being interlined between the forty-third and forty-fourth Lines of the second
page.
[Note by the Department of State.—The foregoing explanation in the original
instrument is placed on the left of the paragraph beginning with the words,
'Done in Convention,' and therefore precedes the signatures. The interlined and
rewritten words, mentioned in it, are in this edition printed in their proper
places in the text.]
Bill Of Rights
In addition to, and amendment of, the Constitution of the United States of
America, proposed by Congress and ratified by the Legislatures of the several
States, pursuant to the Fifth Article of the original Constitution
Article I
Congress shall make no law respecting an establishment of religion, or
prohibiting the free exercise thereof; or abridging the freedom of speech, or of
the press; or the right of the people peaceably to assemble, and to petition the
Government for a redress of grievances.
Article II
A well regulated Militia being necessary to the security of a free State, the
right of the people to keep and bear Arms shall not be infringed.
Article III
No Soldier shall in time of peace be quartered in any house without the consent
of the Owner, nor in time of war, but in a manner to be prescribed by law.
Article IV
The right of the people to be secure in their persons, houses, papers, and
effects, against unreasonable searches and seizures, shall not be violated, and
no warrants shall issue, but upon probable cause, supported by Oath or
Affirmation, and particularly describing the place to be searched, and the
persons or things to be seized.
Article V
No person shall be held to answer for a capital, or otherwise infamous crime,
unless on a presentment or indictment of a Grand Jury, except in cases arising
in the land or naval forces, or in the Militia, when in actual service in time
of War or public danger; nor shall any person be subject for the same offence to
be twice put in jeopardy of life or limb; nor shall be compelled in any Criminal
Case to be a witness against himself, nor be deprived of life, liberty, or
property, without due process of law; nor shall private property be taken for
public use, without just compensation.
Article VI
In all criminal prosecutions, the accused shall enjoy the right to a speedy and
public trial, by an impartial jury of the State and district wherein the crime
shall have been committed, which district shall have been previously ascertained
by law, and to be informed of the nature and cause of the accusation; to be
confronted with the witnesses against him; to have compulsory process for
obtaining witnesses in his favour, and to have the Assistance of Counsel for his
defence.
Article VII
In suits at common law, where the value in controversy shall exceed twenty
dollars, the right of trial by jury shall be preserved, and no fact tried by a
jury shall be otherwise re-examined in any Court of the United States, than
according to the rules of the common law.
Article VIII
Excessive bail shall not be required, nor excessive fines imposed, nor cruel and
unusual punishments inflicted.
Article IX
The enumeration in the Constitution, of certain rights, shall not be construed
to deny or disparage others retained by the people.
Article X
The powers not delegated to the United States by the Constitution, nor
prohibited by it to the States, are reserved to the States respectively, or to
the people.
Article XI
The Judicial power of the United States shall not be construed to extend to any
suit in law or equity, commenced or prosecuted against one of the United States
by Citizens of another State, or by Citizens or Subjects of any Foreign State.
Article XII
The electors shall meet in their respective States, and vote by ballot for
President and Vice-President, one of whom, at least, shall not be an inhabitant
of the same State with themselves; they shall name in their ballots the person
voted for as President; and in distinct ballots the person voted for as
Vice-President; and they shall make distinct lists of all persons voted for as
President, and of all persons voted for as Vice President, and of the number of
votes for each, which lists they shall sign and certify, and transmit sealed to
the seat of the government of the United States, directed to the President of
the Senate;—The President of the Senate shall, in the presence of the Senate and
House of Representatives, open all the certificates and the votes shall then be
counted;—The person having the greatest number of votes for President, shall be
the President, if such number be a majority of the whole number of Electors
appointed; and if no person have such majority, then from the persons having the
highest numbers not exceeding three on the list of those voted for as President,
the House of Representatives shall choose immediately, by ballot, the President.
But in choosing the President, the votes shall be taken by States, the
representation from each State having one vote; a quorum for this purpose shall
consist of a member or members from two-thirds of the States, and a majority of
all the States shall be necessary to a choice. And if the House of
Representatives shall not choose a President whenever the right of choice shall
devolve upon them, before the fourth day of March next following, then the
Vice-President shall act as President, as in the case of the death or other
constitutional disability of the President. The person having the greatest
number of votes as Vice-President, shall be the Vice-President, if such a number
be a majority of the whole number of Electors appointed, and if no person have a
majority, then from the two highest numbers on the list, the Senate shall choose
the Vice-President; a quorum for the purpose shall consist of two-thirds of the
whole number of Senators, and a majority of the whole number shall be necessary
to a choice. But no person constitutionally ineligible to the office of
President shall be eligible to that of Vice-President of the United States.
Article XIII
Section 1. Neither slavery nor involuntary servitude, except as a punishment for
crime whereof the party shall have been duly convicted, shall exist within the
United States, or any place subject to their jurisdiction.
Section 2. Congress shall have power to enforce this article by appropriate
legislation.
Article XIV
Section 1. All persons born or naturalized in the United States, and subject to
the jurisdiction thereof, are citizens of the United States and of the State
wherein they reside. No State shall make or enforce any law which shall abridge
the privileges or immunities of citizens of the United States; nor shall any
State deprive any person of life, liberty, or property, without due process of
law; nor deny to any person within its jurisdiction the equal protection of the
laws.
Section 2. Representatives shall be apportioned among the several States
according to their respective numbers, counting the whole number of persons in
each State, excluding Indians not taxed. But when the right to vote at any
election for the choice of electors for President and Vice-President of the
United States, Representatives in Congress, the Executive and Judicial officers
of a State, or the members of the Legislature thereof, is denied to any of the
male inhabitants of such State, being twenty-one years of age, and citizens of
the United States, or in any way abridged, except for participation in
rebellion, or other crime, the basis of representation therein shall be reduced
in the proportion which the number of such male citizens shall bear to the whole
number of male citizens twenty-one years of age in such State.
Section 3. No person shall be a Senator or Representative in Congress, or
elector of President and Vice-President, or hold any office, civil or military,
under the United States, or under any State, who, having previously taken an
oath, as a member of Congress, or as an officer of the United States, or as a
member of any State legislature, or as an executive or judicial officer of any
State, to support the Constitution of the United States, shall have engaged in
insurrection or rebellion against the same, or given aid or comfort to the
enemies thereof. But Congress may by a vote of two-thirds of each House, remove
such disability.
Section 4. The validity of the public debt of the United States, authorized
by law, including debts incurred for payment of pensions and bounties for
services in suppressing insurrection or rebellion, shall not be questioned. But
neither the United States nor any State shall assume or pay any debt or
obligation incurred in aid of insurrection or rebellion against the United
States, or any claim for the loss or emancipation of any slave; but all such
debts, obligations and claims shall be held illegal and void.
Section 5. The Congress shall have power to enforce, by appropriate
legislation, the provisions of this article.
Article XV
Section 1. The right of citizens of the United States to vote shall not be
denied or abridged by the United States or by any State on account of race,
colour, or previous condition of servitude.
Section 2. The Congress shall have power to enforce this article by
appropriate legislation.
End of Democracy In America, Volume 2 (of 2), by
Alexis de Toqueville
*** END OF DEMOCRACY IN AMERICA, V2 ***
|
|
Sponsoring Industry
Natural
Stone Veneer
Stone Directory
Education Resources



Management
Training Courses in Las Vegas USA
Leadership Training & Management Courses in Las Vegas

CEO Club
CEO executive networking and development club

Las Vegas Graphic &
Web Design
Professional
Graphic Design & Web Design in Las Vegas
Management Courses
Free Executive Seminars
Management
Best Practices
Management Best Practices
World Online
Education
World Education Portal
Management
Consulting Courses
Management Consulting Courses
Management
Training Courses
Management Training Courses
Business School
Online
Online Business Schools
Open Courseware
Free Open Courses
Online Business Courses
Business Schools Online
Business
Management Courses
Business Management Courses
CEO Magazine
CEO Magazine
CEO Library
CEO Library
CEO Club
Executive Networking
CEO Books
CEO Books
MBA Review
Review of MBA Programs
Best MBA
Ranking of World's Best MBA Programs
MBA distance
Learning
Online MBA
Top Ranking MBA
Ranking of Top MBA Programs
Online Executive
MBA
Online Executive MBA Programs
Accelerated MBA
Accelerated MBA Programs
|